summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authornfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-22 19:27:04 -0800
committernfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-22 19:27:04 -0800
commitc2c43f7286d4cf25e98ca25aa3af1a059095852c (patch)
treee63f5056e140b41d163c0b99f2ea0e594d8145af
parentc3a28e13770bd1c160a8435dc7bc96243ecc5d34 (diff)
NormalizeHEADmain
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/65998-0.txt15738
-rw-r--r--old/65998-0.zipbin296414 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/65998-h.zipbin6758079 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/65998-h/65998-h.htm21704
-rw-r--r--old/65998-h/images/cover.jpgbin302832 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/65998-h/images/fig01.jpgbin343058 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/65998-h/images/fig02.jpgbin379212 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/65998-h/images/fig03.jpgbin372313 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/65998-h/images/fig04.jpgbin373957 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/65998-h/images/fig05.jpgbin357017 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/65998-h/images/fig06.jpgbin370649 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/65998-h/images/fig07.jpgbin423388 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/65998-h/images/fig08.jpgbin383100 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/65998-h/images/fig09.jpgbin381335 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/65998-h/images/fig10.jpgbin382047 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/65998-h/images/fig11.jpgbin433112 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/65998-h/images/fig12.jpgbin402288 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/65998-h/images/fig13.jpgbin416997 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/65998-h/images/fig14.jpgbin393453 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/65998-h/images/fig15.jpgbin405178 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/65998-h/images/fig16.jpgbin334623 -> 0 bytes
24 files changed, 17 insertions, 37442 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..c69d6b7
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #65998 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/65998)
diff --git a/old/65998-0.txt b/old/65998-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 38aad63..0000000
--- a/old/65998-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,15738 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Witch’s Head, by H. Rider Haggard
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
-will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
-using this eBook.
-
-Title: The Witch’s Head
-
-Author: H. Rider Haggard
-
-Illustrator: Charles Kerr
-
-Release Date: August 5, 2021 [eBook #65998]
-[Most recently updated: October 16, 2021]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-Produced by: Larry Dunn
-
-*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE WITCH’S HEAD ***
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-The Witch’s Head
-
-by H. Rider Haggard
-
-
-AUTHOR OF
-
-“DAWN,” “MR. MEESON’S WILL,” “ALLAN’S
-WIFE,” “KING SOLOMON’S MINES,” “SHE,”
-“JESS,” ETC. ETC.
-
-
-WITH SIXTEEN FULL-PAGE ILLUSTRATIONS BY CHARLES KERR,
-REPRODUCED BY BOUSSOD, VALADON ET CIE, OF PARIS
-
-TWENTY-SIXTH THOUSAND
-
-LONDON
-SPENCER BLACKETT
-MILTON HOUSE, 35 ST. BRIDE STREET, LUDGATE CIRCUS
-[_All rights reserved_]
-
-
-Contents
-
- BOOK I.
- CHAPTER I. ERNEST’S APPEARANCE
- CHAPTER II. REGINALD CARDUS, ESQ., MISANTHROPE
- CHAPTER III. OLD DUM’S NESS
- CHAPTER IV. BOYS TOGETHER
- CHAPTER V. EVA’S PROMISE
- CHAPTER VI. JEREMY FALLS IN LOVE
- CHAPTER VII. ERNEST IS INDISCREET
- CHAPTER VIII. A GARDEN IDYL
- CHAPTER IX. EVA FINDS SOMETHING
- CHAPTER X. WHAT EVA FOUND
- CHAPTER XI. DEEP WATERS
- CHAPTER XII. DEEPER YET
- CHAPTER XIII. MR. CARDUS UNFOLDS HIS PLANS
- CHAPTER XIV. GOOD-BYE
- CHAPTER XV. ERNEST GETS INTO TROUBLE
- CHAPTER XVI. MADAME’S WORK
-
- BOOK II.
- CHAPTER I. MY POOR EVA
- CHAPTER II. THE LOCUM TENENS
- CHAPTER III. EVA TAKES A DISTRICT
- CHAPTER IV. JEREMY’S IDEA OF A SHAKING
- CHAPTER V. FLORENCE ON MARRIAGE
- CHAPTER VI. MR. PLOWDEN GOES A-WOOING
- CHAPTER VII. OVER THE WATER
- CHAPTER VIII. A HOMERIC COMBAT
- CHAPTER IX. ERNEST’S LOVE-LETTER
- CHAPTER X. A WAY OF ESCAPE
- CHAPTER XI. FOUND WANTING
- CHAPTER XII. ERNEST RUNS AWAY
- CHAPTER XIII. MR. PLOWDEN ASSERTS HIS RIGHTS
- CHAPTER XIV. THE VIRGIN MARTYR
- CHAPTER XV. HANS’S CITY OF REST
- CHAPTER XVI. ERNEST ACCEPTS A COMMISSION
- CHAPTER XVII. HANS PROPHESIES EVIL
- CHAPTER XVIII. MR. ALSTON’S VIEWS
- CHAPTER XIX. ISANDHLWANA
- CHAPTER XX. THE END OF ALSTON’S HORSE
-
- BOOK III.
- CHAPTER I. THE CLIFFS OF OLD ENGLAND
- CHAPTER II. ERNEST’S EVIL DESTINY
- CHAPTER III. INTROSPECTIVE
- CHAPTER IV. AFTER MANY DAYS
- CHAPTER V. HOME AGAIN
- CHAPTER VI. HOW IT ALL CAME ABOUT
- CHAPTER VII. MAZOOKU’S FAREWELL
- CHAPTER VIII. R. CARDUS ACCOMPLISHES HIS REVENGE
- CHAPTER IX. MAD ATTERLEIGH’S LAST RIDE
- CHAPTER X. DOROTHY’S TRIUMPH
-
-
-
-
-“Swell out, sad harmonies,
-From the slow cadence of the gathering years;
-For Life is bitter-sweet, yet bounds the flood
-Of human fears.
-A death-crowned queen, from her hid throne she scatters
-Smiles and tears
-
-Until Time turn aside,
-And we slip past him towards the wide increase
-Of all things beautiful, then finding there
-Our rest and peace;
-The mournful strain is ended. Sorrow and song
-Together cease.”
-
-A. M. BARBER.
-
-
-
-
-ILLUSTRATIONS
-
- THE WITCH’S HEAD
- HE CLENCHED HIS FISTS AND SHOOK THEM TOWARDS THE DOOR
- “_BY GEORGE!_”
- “O, RADIANT-WINGED HOUR!”
- HUGH KERSHAW FLUNG UP HIS ARMS, WILDLY
- A SHAPELY KAFIR GIRL
- THE RESULT WAS STARTLING
- THIS WAS INDEED A DAVID
- HE SLOWLY LIFTED THE PISTOL TOWARDS HIS HEAD
- MR. PLOWDEN LEFT THE HOUSE, WHITE WITH FURY
- ERNEST DID A BRAVE THING
- THE LAST CHARGE OF ALSTON’S HORSE
- HE FOUND HIM LYING ON THE GROUND, WHITE AND STILL
- AFTER MANY DAYS
- MAZOOKU’S FAREWELL
- MAD ATTERLEIGH’S LAST RIDE
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration: The Witch’s Head]
-
-
-
-
-THE WITCH’S HEAD
-
-
-
-
-BOOK I.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I.
-ERNEST’S APPEARANCE
-
-
-“Come here, boy, let me look at you.”
-
-Ernest advanced a step or two and looked his uncle in the face. He was
-a noble-looking lad of about thirteen, with large dark eyes, black hair
-that curled over his head, and the unmistakable air of breeding that
-marks Englishmen of good race.
-
-His uncle let his wandering glance stray round him, but, wandering as
-it was, it seemed to take him in from top to toe. Presently he spoke
-again:
-
-“I like you, boy.”
-
-Ernest said nothing.
-
-“Let me see—your second name is Beyton. I am glad they called you
-Beyton; it was your grandmother’s maiden name, and a good old name too.
-Ernest Beyton Kershaw. By the way, have you ever seen anything of your
-other uncle, Sir Hugh Kershaw?”
-
-The boy’s cheek flushed.
-
-“No, I have not; and I never wish to,” he answered.
-
-“Why not?”
-
-“Because when my mother wrote to him before she died”—and here the
-lad’s voice choked—“just after the bank broke and she lost all her
-money, he wrote back and said that because his brother—I mean my
-father—had made a low marriage, that was no reason why he should
-support his child and widow; but he sent her five pounds to go on with.
-She sent it back.”
-
-“That was like your mother, she always had a high spirit. He must be a
-cur, and he does not speak the truth. Your mother comes of a better
-stock than the Kershaws. The Carduses are one of the oldest families in
-the Eastern counties. Why, boy, our family lived down in the Fens by
-Lynn there for centuries, until your grandfather, poor weak man, got
-involved in his great lawsuit and ruined us all. There, there, it has
-gone into the law, but it is coming back, it is coming back fast. This
-Sir Hugh has only one son, by the way. Do you know that if anything
-happened to him you would be next in the entail?—at any rate you would
-get the baronetcy.”
-
-“I don’t want his baronetcy,” said Ernest, sulkily; “I will have
-nothing of his.”
-
-“A title, boy, is an incorporeal hereditament, for which the holder is
-indebted to nobody. It does not descend to him, it vests in him. But
-tell me, how long was this before your mother died—that he sent the
-five pounds, I mean?”
-
-“About three months.”
-
-Mr. Cardus hesitated a little before he spoke again, tapping his white
-fingers nervously on the table.
-
-“I hope my sister was not in want, Ernest?” he said, jerkily.
-
-“For a fortnight before she died we had scarcely enough to eat,” was
-the blunt reply.
-
-Mr. Cardus turned himself to the window, and for a minute the light of
-the dull December day shone and glistened upon his brow and head, which
-was perfectly bald. Then before he spoke he drew himself back into the
-shadow, perhaps to hide something like a tear that shone in his soft
-black eyes.
-
-“And why did she not appeal to me? I could have helped her.”
-
-“She said that when you quarrelled with her about her marrying my
-father, you told her never to write or speak to you again, and that she
-never would.”
-
-“Then why did you not do it, boy? You knew how things were.”
-
-“Because we had begged once, and I would not beg again.”
-
-“Ah,” muttered Mr. Cardus, “the old spirit cropping up. Poor Rose,
-nearly starving, and dying too, and I with so much which I do not want!
-O, boy, boy, when you are a man never set up an idol, for it frightens
-good spirits away. Nothing else can live in its temple; it is a place
-where all other things are forgotten—duty, and the claims of blood, and
-sometimes those of honour too. Look now, I have my idol, and it has
-made me forget my sister and your mother. Had she not written at last
-when she was dying, I should have forgotten you too.”
-
-The boy looked up puzzled.
-
-“An idol!”
-
-“Yes,” went on his uncle in his dreamy way—“an idol. Many people have
-them; they keep them in the cupboard with their family skeleton;
-sometimes the two are identical. And they call them by many names, too;
-frequently it is a woman’s name; sometimes that of a passion; sometimes
-that of a vice, but a virtue’s—not often.”
-
-“And what is the name of yours, uncle?” asked the wondering boy.
-
-“Mine? O, never mind!”
-
-At this moment a swing-door in the side of the room was opened, and a
-tall bony woman with beady eyes came through.
-
-“Mr. de Talor to see you, sir, in the office.”
-
-Mr. Cardus whistled softly.
-
-“Ah,” he said, “tell him I am coming. By the way, Grice, this young
-gentleman has come to live here; his room is ready, is it not?”
-
-“Yes, sir; Miss Dorothy has been seeing to it.”
-
-“Good; where is Miss Dorothy?”
-
-“She has walked into Kesterwick, sir.”
-
-“O, and Master Jeremy?”
-
-“He is about, sir; I saw him pass with a ferret a while back.”
-
-“Tell Sampson or the groom to find him and send him to Master Ernest
-here. That will do, thank you. Now, Ernest, I must go. I hope that you
-will be pretty happy here, my boy, when your trouble has worn off a
-bit. You will have Jeremy for a companion; he is a lout, and an
-unpleasant lout, it is true, but I suppose that he is better than
-nobody. And then there is Dorothy”—and his voice softened as he
-muttered her name—“but she is a girl.”
-
-“Who are Dorothy and Jeremy?” broke in his nephew; “are they your
-children?”
-
-Mr. Cardus started perceptibly, and his thick white eyebrows contracted
-over his dark eyes till they almost met.
-
-“Children!” he said, sharply; “I have no children. They are my wards.
-Their name is Jones;” and he left the room.
-
-“Well, he _is_ a rum sort,” reflected Ernest to himself, “and I don’t
-think I ever saw such a shiny head before. I wonder if he oils it? But,
-at any rate, he is kind to me. Perhaps it would have been better if
-mother had written to him before. She might have gone on living, then.”
-
-Rubbing his hand across his face to clear away the water gathering in
-his eyes at the thought of his dead mother, Ernest made his way to the
-wide fireplace at the top end of the room, peeped into the ancient
-inglenooks on each side, and at the old Dutch tiles with which it was
-lined, and then, lifting his coat after a grown-up fashion, proceeded
-to warm himself and inspect his surroundings. It was a curious room in
-which he stood, and its leading feature was old oak panelling. All down
-its considerable length the walls were oak-clad to the low ceiling,
-which was supported by enormous beams of the same material; the
-shutters of the narrow windows which looked out on the sea were oak,
-and so were the doors and table, and even the mantelshelf. The general
-idea given by the display of so much timber was certainly one of
-solidity, but it could scarcely be called cheerful—not even the
-numerous suits of armour and shining weapons which were placed about
-upon the walls could make it cheerful. It was a remarkable room, but
-its effect upon the observer was undoubtedly depressing.
-
-Just as Ernest was beginning to realise this fact, things were made
-more lively by the sudden appearance through the swing-door of a large
-savage-looking bull-terrier, which began to steer for the fireplace,
-where it was evidently accustomed to lie. On seeing Ernest it stopped
-and sniffed.
-
-“Hullo, good dog!” said Ernest.
-
-The dog growled and showed its teeth.
-
-Ernest put out his leg towards it as a caution to it to keep off. It
-acknowledged the compliment by sending its teeth through his trousers.
-Then the lad, growing wroth, and being not free from fear, seized the
-poker and hit the dog over the head so shrewdly that the blood streamed
-from the blow, and the brute, losing his grip, turned and fled howling.
-
-While Ernest was yet warm with the glow of victory, the door once more
-swung open, violently this time, and through it there came a boy of
-about his own age, a dirty deep-chested boy, with uncut hair, and a
-slow heavy face in which were set great gray eyes, just now ablaze with
-indignation. On seeing Ernest he pulled up much as the dog had done,
-and regarded him angrily.
-
-“Did you hit my dog?” he asked.
-
-“I hit a dog,” replied Ernest politely, “but—”
-
-“I don’t want your ‘buts.’ Can you fight?”
-
-Ernest inquired whether this question was put with a view of gaining
-general information or for any particular purpose.
-
-“Can you fight?” was the only rejoinder.
-
-Slightly nettled, Ernest replied that under certain circumstances he
-could fight like a tom-cat.
-
-“Then look out; I’m going to make your head as you have made my dog’s.”
-
-Ernest, in the polite language of youth, opined that there would be
-hair and toe-nails flying first.
-
-To this sally, Jeremy Jones, for it was he, replied only by springing
-at him, his hair streaming behind like a Red Indian’s, and, smiting him
-severely in the left eye, caused him to measure his length upon the
-floor. Arising quickly, Ernest returned the compliment with interest;
-but this time they both went down together, pummelling each other
-heartily. With whom the victory would ultimately have remained could
-scarcely be doubtful, for Jeremy, who even at that age gave promise of
-the enormous physical strength which afterwards made him such a noted
-character, must have crushed his antagonist in the end. But while his
-strength still endured Ernest was fighting with such ungovernable fury,
-and such a complete disregard of personal consequences, that he was for
-a while, at any rate, getting the best of it. And luckily for him,
-while matters were yet in the balanced scales of Fate, an interruption
-occurred. For at that moment there rose before the blurred sight of the
-struggling boys a vision of a small woman—at least she looked like a
-woman—with an indignant little face and an uplifted forefinger.
-
-“O, you wicked boys! what will Reginald say, I should like to know? O,
-you bad Jeremy! I am ashamed to have such a brother. Get up!”
-
-“My eye!” said Jeremy thickly, for his lip was cut; “it’s Dolly!”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II.
-REGINALD CARDUS, ESQ., MISANTHROPE
-
-
-When Mr. Cardus left the sitting-room where he had been talking to
-Ernest, he passed down a passage in the rambling old house which led
-him into a courtyard. On the farther side of the yard, which was walled
-in, stood a neat red-brick building one story high, consisting of two
-rooms and a passage. On to this building were attached a series of low
-green-houses, and against the wall at the farther end of these houses
-was a lean-to in which stood the boiler that supplied the pipes with
-hot water. The little red-brick building was Mr. Cardus’s office, for
-he was a lawyer by profession; the long tail of glass behind it were
-his orchid-houses, for orchid-growing was his sole amusement. The _tout
-ensemble_, office and orchid-houses, seemed curiously out of place in
-the gray and ancient courtyard where they stood, looking as they did on
-to the old one-storied house, scarred by the passage of centuries of
-tempestuous weather. Some such idea seemed to strike Mr. Cardus as he
-closed the door behind him, preparatory to crossing the courtyard.
-
-“Queer contrast,” he muttered to himself; “very queer. Something like
-that between Reginald Cardus, Esquire, Misanthrope, of Dum’s Ness, and
-Mr. Reginald Cardus, Solicitor, Chairman of the Stokesly Board of
-Guardians, Bailiff of Kesterwick, etc. And yet in both cases they are
-part of the same establishment. Case of old and new style!”
-
-Mr. Cardus did not make his way straight to the office. He struck off
-to the right, and entered the long line of glass-houses, walking up
-from house to house, till he reached the partition where the temperate
-sort were placed to bloom, and which was connected with his office by a
-glass door. Through this last he walked softly, with a cat-like step,
-till he reached the door, where he paused to observe a large coarse
-man, who was standing at the far end of the room, looking out intently
-on the courtyard.
-
-“Ah, my friend,” he said to himself, “so the shoe is beginning to
-pinch. Well, it is time.” Then he pushed the door softly open, passed
-into the room with the same cat-like step, closed it, and, seating
-himself at his writing-table, took up a pen. Apparently the
-coarse-looking man at the window was too much absorbed in his own
-thoughts to hear him, for he still stood staring into space.
-
-“Well, Mr. de Talor,” said the lawyer presently, in his soft, jerky
-voice, “I am at your service.”
-
-The person addressed started violently, and turned sharply round. “Good
-’eavens, Cardus, how did you get in?”
-
-“Through the door, of course; do you suppose I came down the chimney?”
-
-“It’s very strange, Cardus, but I never ’eard you come. You’ve given me
-quite a start.”
-
-Mr. Cardus laughed, a hard, little laugh. “You were too much occupied
-with your own thoughts, Mr. de Talor. I fear that they are not pleasant
-ones. Can I help you?”
-
-“How do you know that my thoughts are not pleasant, Cardus? I never
-said so.”
-
-“If we lawyers waited for our clients to tell us all their thoughts,
-Mr. de Talor, it would often take us a long time to reach the truth. We
-have to read their faces, or even their backs sometimes. You have no
-idea of how much expression a back is capable, if you make such things
-your study; yours, for instance, looks very uncomfortable to-day:
-nothing gone wrong, I hope?”
-
-“No, Cardus, no,” answered Mr. de Talor, dropping the subject of backs,
-which was, he felt, beyond him; “that is, nothing much, merely a
-question of business, on which I have come to ask your advice as a
-shrewd man.”
-
-“My best advice is at your service, Mr. de Talor: what is it?”
-
-“Well, Cardus, it’s this.” And Mr. de Talor seated his portly frame in
-an easy-chair, and turned his broad, vulgar face towards the lawyer.
-“It’s about the railway-grease business—”
-
-“Which you own up in Manchester?”
-
-“Yes, that’s it.”
-
-“Well, then, it ought to be a satisfactory subject to talk of. It pays
-hand over fist, does it not?”
-
-“No, Cardus, that is just the point: it did pay, it don’t now.”
-
-“How’s that?”
-
-“Well, you see, when my father took out the patent, and started the
-business, his ’ouse was the only ’ouse in the market, and he made a
-pot, and, I don’t mind telling you, I’ve made a pot too; but now, what
-do you think?—there’s a beggarly firm called Rastrick & Codley that
-took out a new patent last year, and is underselling us with a better
-stuff at a cheaper price than we can turn it out at.”
-
-“Well!”
-
-“Well, we’ve lowered our price to theirs, but we are doing business at
-a loss. We hoped to burst them, but they don’t burst: there’s somebody
-backing them, confound them, for Rastrick & Codley ain’t worth a
-sixpence; but who it is the Lord only knows. I don’t believe they know
-themselves.”
-
-“That is unfortunate, but what about it?”
-
-“Just this, Cardus. I want to ask your advice about selling out. Our
-credit is still good, and we could sell up for a large pile—not so
-large as we could have done, but still large—and I don’t know whether
-to sell or hold.”
-
-Mr. Cardus looked thoughtful. “It is a difficult point, Mr. de Talor,
-but for myself I am always against caving in. The other firm may smash
-after all, and then you would be sorry. If you were to sell now you
-would probably make their fortunes, which I suppose you don’t want to
-do.”
-
-“No, indeed.”
-
-“Then you are a very wealthy man; you are not dependent on this grease
-business. Even if things were to go wrong, you have all your landed
-property here at Ceswick’s Ness to fall back on. I should hold, if I
-were you, even if it was at a loss for a time, and trust to the fortune
-of war.”
-
-Mr. de Talor gave a sigh of relief. “That’s my view, too, Cardus. You
-are a shrewd man, and I am glad you jump with me. Damn Rastrick &
-Codley, say I!”
-
-“O yes, damn them by all means,” answered the lawyer, with a smile, as
-he rose to show his client to the door.
-
-On the farther side of the passage was another door, with a glass top
-to it, which gave on to a room furnished after the ordinary fashion of
-a clerk’s office. Opposite this door Mr. de Talor stopped to look at a
-man who was within, sitting at a table writing. The man was old, of
-large size, very powerfully built, and dressed with extreme neatness in
-hunting costume—boots, breeches, spurs, and all. Over his large head
-grew tufts of coarse gray hair, which hung down in dishevelled locks
-about his face, giving him a wild appearance, that was added to by a
-curious distortion of the mouth. His left arm, too, hung almost
-helpless by his side.
-
-Mr. Cardus laughed as he followed his visitor’s gaze. “A curious sort
-of clerk, eh?” he said. “Mad, dumb, and half-paralysed—not many lawyers
-could show such another.”
-
-Mr. de Talor glanced at the object of their observation uneasily.
-
-“If he’s so mad, how can he do clerk’s work?” he asked.
-
-“O, he’s only mad in a way; he copies beautifully.”
-
-“He has quite lost his memory, I suppose?” said De Talor, with another
-uneasy glance.
-
-“Yes,” answered Mr. Cardus, with a smile, “he has. Perhaps it is as
-well. He remembers nothing now but his delusions.”
-
-Mr. de Talor looked relieved. “He has been with you many years now,
-hasn’t he, Cardus?”
-
-“Yes, a great many.”
-
-“Why did you bring him ’ere at all?”
-
-“Did I never tell you the story? Then if you care to step back into my
-office I will. It is not a long one. You remember when our friend”—he
-nodded towards the office—“kept the hounds, and they used to call him
-‘hard-riding Atterleigh’?”
-
-“Yes, I remember, and ruined himself over them, like a fool.”
-
-“And of course you remember Mary Atterleigh, his daughter, whom we were
-all in love with when we were young?”
-
-Mr. de Talor’s broad cheek took a deeper shade of crimson as he nodded
-assent.
-
-“Then,” went on Mr. Cardus, in a voice meant to be indifferent, but
-which now and again gave traces of emotion, “you will also remember
-that I was the fortunate man, and, with her father’s consent, was
-engaged to be married to Mary Atterleigh so soon as I could show him
-that my income reached a certain sum.” Here Mr. Cardus paused a moment,
-and then continued, “But I had to go to America about the great Norwich
-bank case, and it was a long job, and travelling was slow then. When I
-got back, Mary was—married to a man called Jones, a friend of yours,
-Mr. de Talor. He was staying at your house, Ceswick’s Ness, when he met
-her. But perhaps you are better acquainted with that part of the story
-than I am.”
-
-Mr. de Talor was looking very uneasy again now.
-
-“No, I know nothing about it. Jones fell in love with her like the
-rest, and the next I heard of it was that they were to be married. It
-was rather rough on you, eh, Cardus? but, Lord, you shouldn’t have been
-fool enough to trust her.”
-
-Mr. Cardus smiled, a bitter smile. “Yes, it was a little ‘rough,’ but
-that has nothing to do with my story. The marriage did not turn out
-well; a curious fatality pursued all who had had any hand in it. Mary
-had two children; and then did the best thing she could do—died of
-shame and sorrow. Jones, who was rich, went fraudulently bankrupt, and
-ended by committing suicide. Hard-riding Atterleigh flourished for a
-while, and then lost his money in horses and a ship-building
-speculation, and got a paralytic stroke that took away all his speech
-and most of his reason. Then I brought him here to save him from the
-madhouse.”
-
-“That was kind of you, Cardus.”
-
-“O no, he is worth his keep, and besides, he is poor Mary’s father. He
-is under the fixed impression that I am the devil; but that does not
-matter.”
-
-“You’ve got her children too, eh?”
-
-“Yes, I have adopted them. The girl reminds me of her mother, though
-she will never have her mother’s looks. The boy is like old Atterleigh.
-I do not care about the boy. But, thank God, they are neither of them
-like their father.”
-
-“So you knew Jones?” said De Talor, sharply.
-
-“Yes, I met him after his marriage. Oddly enough, I was with him a few
-minutes before he destroyed himself. There, Mr. de Talor, I will not
-detain you any longer. I thought that you could perhaps tell me
-something of the details of Mary’s marriage. The story has a
-fascination for me, its results upon my own life have been so
-far-reaching. I am sure that I am not at the bottom of it yet. Mary
-wrote to me when she was dying, and hinted at something that I cannot
-understand. There was somebody behind who arranged the matter, who
-assisted Jones’s suit. Well, well, I shall find it all out in time, and
-whoever it is will no doubt pay the price of his wickedness, like the
-others. Providence has strange ways, Mr. de Talor, but in the end it is
-a terrible avenger. What! are you going? Queer talk for a lawyer’s
-office, isn’t it?”
-
-Here Mr. de Talor rose, looking pale, and, merely nodding to Mr.
-Cardus, left the room.
-
-The lawyer watched him till the door had closed, and then suddenly his
-whole face changed. The white eyebrows drew close together, the
-delicate features worked, and in the soft eyes there shone a look of
-hate. He clenched his fists, and shook them towards the door.
-
-[Illustration: “He clenched his fists and shook them towards the
-door.”]
-
-“You liar, you hound!” he said aloud. “God grant that I may live long
-enough to do to you as I have done to them! One a suicide, and one a
-paralytic madman; you—you shall be a beggar, if it takes me twenty
-years to make you so. Yes, that will hit you hardest. O Mary! Mary!
-dead and dishonoured through you, you scoundrel! O my darling, shall I
-ever find you again?”
-
-And this strange man dropped his head upon the desk before him, and
-groaned.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III.
-OLD DUM’S NESS
-
-
-When Mr. Cardus came half an hour or so later to take his place at the
-dinner-table—for in those days they dined in the middle of the day at
-Dum’s Ness—he was not in a good mood. The pool into which the records
-of our individual existence are ever gathering, and which we call our
-past, will not often bear much stirring, even when its waters are not
-bitter. Certainly Mr. Cardus’s would not. And yet that morning he had
-stirred it violently enough.
-
-In the long, oak-panelled room, used indifferently as a sitting and
-dining room, Mr. Cardus found “hard-riding Atterleigh” and his
-grand-daughter, little Dorothy Jones. The old man was already seated at
-table, and Dorothy was busying herself cutting bread, looking as
-composed and grown-up as though she had been four-and-twenty instead of
-fourteen. She was a strange child, with her assured air and woman’s
-ways and dress, her curious thoughtful face, and her large blue eyes
-that shone steadily as the light of a lamp. But just now the little
-face was more anxious than usual.
-
-“Reginald,” she began, as soon as he was in the room (for by Mr.
-Cardus’s wish she always called him by his Christian name), “I am sorry
-to tell you that there has been a sad disturbance.”
-
-“What is it?” he asked, with a frown; “Jeremy again?” Mr. Cardus could
-be very stern where Jeremy was concerned.
-
-“Yes, I am afraid it is. The two boys—” but it was unnecessary for her
-to carry her explanations further, for at that moment the swing-door
-opened, and through it appeared the young gentlemen in question, driven
-in like sheep by the beady-eyed Grice. Ernest was leading, attempting
-the impossible feat of looking jaunty with a lump of raw beefsteak tied
-over one eye, and presenting a general appearance that suggested the
-idea of the colours of the rainbow in a state of decomposition.
-
-Behind him shuffled Jeremy, his matted locks still wet from being
-pumped on. But his wounds were either unsuited to the dreadful remedy
-of raw beefsteak, or he had adopted in preference an heroic one of his
-own, of which grease plentifully sprinkled with flour formed the basis.
-
-For a moment there was silence, then Mr. Cardus, with awful politeness,
-asked Jeremy what was the meaning of this.
-
-“We’ve been fighting,” answered the boy, sulkily.” He hit—”
-
-“Thank you, Jeremy, I don’t want the particulars, but I will take this
-opportunity to tell you before your sister and my nephew what I think
-of you. You are a boor and a lout, and, what is more, you are a
-coward.”
-
-At this unjust taunt the lad coloured to his eyes.
-
-“Yes, you may colour, but let me tell you that it is cowardly to pick a
-quarrel with a boy the moment he sets foot inside my doors—”
-
-“I say, uncle,” broke in Ernest, who was unable to see anything
-cowardly about fighting, an amusement to which he was rather partial
-himself, and who thought that his late antagonist was getting more than
-his due, “I began it, you know.”
-
-It was not true, except in the sense that he had begun it by striking
-the dog; nor did this statement produce any great effect on Mr. Cardus,
-who was evidently seriously angry with Jeremy on more points than this.
-But at least it was one of those well-meant fibs at which the recording
-angel should not be offended.
-
-“I do not care who began it,” went on Mr. Cardus, angrily, “nor is it
-about this only that I am angry. You are a discredit to me, Jeremy, and
-a discredit to your sister. You are dirty, you are idle; your ways are
-not those of a gentleman. I sent you to school—you ran away. I give you
-good clothes—you will not wear them. I tell you, boy, that I will not
-stand it any longer. Now listen. I am going to make arrangements with
-Mr. Halford, the clergyman at Kesterwick, to undertake Ernest’s
-education. You shall go with him; and if I see no improvement in your
-ways in the course of the next few months, I shall wash my hands of
-you. Do you understand me now?”
-
-The boy Jeremy had, during this oration, been standing in the middle of
-the room, first on one leg, then on the other. At its conclusion he
-brought the leg that was at the moment in the air down to the ground,
-and stood firm.
-
-“Well,” went on Mr. Cardus, “what have you to say?”
-
-“I have to say,” blurted out Jeremy, “that I don’t want your education.
-You care nothing about me,” he went on, his gray eyes flashing and his
-heavy face lighting up; “nobody cares about me except my dog Nails.
-Yes, you make a dog of me myself; you throw things to me as I throw
-Nails a bone. I don’t want your education, and I won’t have it. I don’t
-want the fine clothes you buy for me, and I won’t wear them. I don’t
-want to be a burden on you either. Let me go away and be a fisher-lad
-and earn my bread. If it hadn’t been for her,” pointing to his sister,
-who was sitting aghast at his outburst, “and for Nails, I’d have gone
-long ago, I can tell you. At any rate, I should not be a dog then. I
-should be earning my living, and have no one to thank for it. Let me
-go, I say, where I sha’n’t be mocked at if I do my fair day’s work. I’m
-strong enough; let me go. There! I’ve spoken my mind now;” and the lad
-broke out into a storm of tears, and, turning, tramped out of the room.
-
-As he went, all Mr. Cardus’s wrath seemed to leave him.
-
-“I did not think he had so much spirit in him,” he said aloud. “Well,
-let us have our dinner.”
-
-At dinner the conversation flagged, the scene that preceded it having
-presumably left a painful impression; and Ernest, who was an observant
-youth, fell to watching little Dorothy doing the honours of the table:
-cutting up her crazed old grandfather’s food for him, seeing that
-everybody had what they wanted, and generally making herself
-unobtrusively useful. In due course the meal came to an end, and Mr.
-Cardus and old Atterleigh went back to the office, leaving Dorothy
-alone with Ernest. Presently the former began to talk.
-
-“I hope that your eye is not painful,” she said. “Jeremy hits very
-hard.”
-
-“O no, it’s all right. I’m used to it. When I was at school in London I
-often used to fight. I’m sorry for him, though—your brother, I mean.”
-
-“Jeremy! O yes, he is always in trouble, and now I suppose that it will
-be worse than ever. I do all I can to keep things smooth, but it is no
-good. If he won’t go to Mr. Halford’s, I am sure I don’t know what will
-happen;” and the little lady sighed deeply.
-
-“O, I daresay that he will go. Let’s go and look for him, and try and
-persuade him.”
-
-“We might try,” she said, doubtfully. “Stop a minute, and I will put on
-my hat, and then if you will take that nasty thing off your eye, we
-might walk on to Kesterwick. I want to take a book, out of which I have
-been teaching myself French, back to the cottage where old Miss Ceswick
-lives, you know.”
-
-“All right,” said Ernest.
-
-Presently Dorothy returned, and they went out by the back way to a
-little room near the coach-house, where Jeremy stuffed birds and kept
-his collection of eggs and butterflies; but he was not there. On
-inquiring of Sampson, the old Scotch gardener who looked after Mr.
-Cardus’s orchid-houses, she discovered that Jeremy had gone out to
-shoot snipe, having borrowed Sampson’s gun for that purpose.
-
-“That is just like Jeremy,” she sighed. “He is always going out
-shooting instead of attending to things.”
-
-“Can he hit birds flying, then?” asked Ernest.
-
-“Hit them!” she answered, with a touch of pride; “I don’t think he ever
-misses them. I wish he could do other things as well.”
-
-Jeremy at once went up at least fifty per cent. in Ernest’s estimation.
-
-On their way back to the house they peeped in through the office
-window, and Ernest saw “hard-riding Atterleigh” at his work, copying
-deeds.
-
-“He’s your grandfather, isn’t he?”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“Does he know you?”
-
-“In a sort of a way; but he is quite mad. He thinks that Reginald is
-the devil, whom he must serve for a certain number of years. He has got
-a stick with numbers of notches on it, and he cuts out a notch every
-month. It is all very sad. I think it is a very sad world;” and she
-sighed again.
-
-“Why does he wear hunting-clothes?” asked Ernest.
-
-“Because he always used to ride a good deal. He loves a horse now.
-Sometimes you will see him get up from his writing-table, and the tears
-come into his eyes if anybody comes into the yard on horseback. Once he
-came out and tried to get on to a horse and ride off, but they stopped
-him.”
-
-“Why don’t they let him ride?”
-
-“O, he would soon kill himself. Old Jack Tares, who lives at
-Kesterwick, and gets his living by rats and ferrets, used to be whip to
-grandfather’s hounds when he had them, and says that he always was a
-little mad about riding. One moonlight night he and grandfather went
-out to hunt a stag that had strayed here out of some park. They put the
-stag out of a little grove at a place called Claffton, five miles away,
-and he took them round by Starton and Ashleigh, and then came down the
-flats to the sea, about a mile and a half below here, just this side of
-the quicksand. The moon was so bright that it was almost like day, and
-for the last mile the stag was in view not more than a hundred yards in
-front of the hounds, and the pace was racing. When he came to the beach
-he went right through the waves out to the sea, and the hounds after
-him, and grandfather after them. They caught him a hundred yards out
-and killed him, and then grandfather turned his horse’s head and swam
-back with the hounds.”
-
-“My eye!” was Ernest’s comment on this story. “And what did Jack Tares
-do?”
-
-“O, he stopped on the beach and said his prayers; he thought that they
-would all be drowned.”
-
-Then they passed through the old house, which was built on a little
-ness or headland that jutted beyond the level of the shore-line, and
-across which the wind swept and raved all the winter long, driving the
-great waves in cease-less thunder against the sandy cliffs. It was a
-desolate spot that the gray and massive house, of which the roof was
-secured by huge blocks of rock, looked out upon, nude of vegetation,
-save for rank, rush-like grass and plants of sea-holly. In front was
-the great ocean, rushing in continually upon the sandy bulwarks, and
-with but few ships to break its loneliness. To the left, as far as the
-eye could reach ran a line of cliff, out of which the waves had taken
-huge mouthfuls, till it was as full of gaps as an old crone’s jaw.
-Behind this stretched mile upon mile of desolate-looking land, covered
-for the most part with ling and heath, and cut up with dikes, whence
-the water was pumped by means of windmills, that gave a Dutch
-appearance to the landscape.
-
-“Look,” said Dorothy, pointing to a small white house about a mile and
-a half away up the shore-line, “that is the lock-house where the great
-sluice-gates are, and beyond that is the dreadful quicksand in which a
-whole army was once swallowed up, like the Egyptians in the Red Sea.”
-
-“My word!” said Ernest, much interested; “and, I say, did my uncle
-build this house?”
-
-“You silly boy! why, it has been built for hundreds of years. Somebody
-of the name of Dum built it, and that is why it is called Dum’s Ness;
-at least I suppose so. There is an old chart that Reginald has, which
-was made in the time of Henry VII., and it is marked as Dum’s Ness
-there, so Dum must have lived before then. Look,” she went on, as,
-turning to the right, they rounded the old house and reached the road
-which ran along the top of the cliff, “there are the ruins of
-Titheburgh Abbey;” and she pointed to the remains of an enormous church
-with a still perfect tower, that stood within a few hundred yards of
-them, almost upon the edge of the cliff.
-
-“Why don’t they build it up again?” asked Ernest.
-
-Dorothy shook her head. “Because in a few years the sea will swallow
-it. Nearly all the graveyard has gone already. It is the same with
-Kesterwick, where we are going. Kesterwick was a great town once. The
-kings of East Anglia made it their capital, and a bishop lived there.
-And after that it was a great port, with thousands upon thousands of
-inhabitants. But the sea came on and on and choked up the harbour, and
-washed away the cliffs, and they could not keep it out, and now
-Kesterwick is nothing but a little village with one fine old church
-left. The real Kesterwick lies there, under the sea. If you walk along
-the beach after a great gale, you will find hundreds of bricks and
-tiles washed from the houses that are going to pieces down in the deep
-water. Just fancy, on one Sunday afternoon, in the reign of Queen
-Elizabeth, three of the parish churches were washed over the cliff into
-the sea!”
-
-And so she went on, telling the listening Ernest tale after tale of the
-old town, than which Babylon had not fallen more completely, till they
-came to a pretty little modern house bowered up in trees—that is, in
-summer, for there were no leaves upon them now—with which Ernest was
-destined to become very well acquainted in after years.
-
-Dorothy left her companion at the gate while she went in to leave her
-book, remarking that she would be ashamed to introduce a boy with so
-black an eye. Presently she came back again, saying that Miss Ceswick
-was out.
-
-“Who is Miss Ceswick?” asked Ernest, who at this period of his
-existence had a burning thirst for information of every sort.
-
-“She is a very beautiful old lady,” was Dorothy’s answer. “Her family
-lived for many years at a place called Ceswick’s Ness; but her brother
-lost all his money gambling, and the place was sold, and Mr. de Talor,
-that horrid fat man whom you saw drive away this morning, bought it.”
-
-“Does she live alone?”
-
-“Yes; but she has some nieces, the daughters of her brother who is
-dead, and whose mother is very ill; and if she dies one of them is
-coming to live with her. She is just my age, so I hope she will come.”
-
-After this there was silence for a while.
-
-“Ernest,” said the little woman presently, “you look kind, so I will
-ask you. I want you to help me about Jeremy.”
-
-Ernest, feeling much puffed up at the compliment implied, expressed his
-willingness to do anything he could.
-
-“You see, Ernest,” she went on, fixing her sweet blue eyes on his face,
-“Jeremy is a great trouble to me. He will go his own way. And he does
-not like Reginald, and Reginald does not like him. If Reginald comes in
-at one door, Jeremy goes out at the other. And besides he always flies
-in Reginald’s face. And, you see, it is not right of Jeremy, because
-after all Reginald is very kind to us, and there is no reason he should
-be, except that I believe he was fond of our mother; and if it was not
-for Reginald, whom I love very much, though he is curious sometimes, I
-don’t know what would become of grandfather or us. And so, you see, I
-think that Jeremy ought to behave better to him, and I want to ask you
-to bear with his rough ways, and try and be friends with him and get
-him to behave better. It is not much for him to do in return for all
-your uncle’s kindness. You see, I can do a little something, because I
-look after the housekeeping; but he does nothing. And first I want you
-to get him to make no more trouble about going to Mr. Halford’s.”
-
-“All right, I’ll try; but, I say, how do you learn? you seem to know an
-awful lot.”
-
-“O, I teach myself in the evenings. Reginald wanted to get me a
-governess, but I would not. How should I ever get Grice and the
-servants to obey me if they saw that I had to do what a strange woman
-told me? It would not do at all.”
-
-Just then they were passing the ruins of Titheburgh Abbey. It was
-almost dark, for the winter’s evening was closing in rapidly, when
-suddenly Dorothy gave a little shriek, for from behind a ruined wall
-there rose up an armed mysterious figure with something white behind
-it. Next second she saw that it was Jeremy, who had returned from
-shooting, and was apparently waiting for them.
-
-“O Jeremy, how you frightened me! What is it?”
-
-“I want to speak to _him,_” was the laconic reply.
-
-Ernest stood still, wondering what was coming.
-
-“Look here! You told a lie to try to save me from catching it this
-morning. You said that you began it. You didn’t. I began it. I’d have
-told him too,” and he jerked his thumb in the direction of Dum’s Ness,
-“only my mouth was so full of words I could not get it out. But I want
-to say I thank you, and here, take the dog. He’s a nasty tempered
-devil, but he’ll grow very fond of you if you are kind to him;” and
-seizing the astonished Nails by the collar, he thrust him towards
-Ernest.
-
-For a moment there was a struggle in Ernest’s mind, for he greatly
-longed to possess a bull-terrier dog; but his gentleman-like feeling
-prevailed. “I don’t want the dog, and I didn’t do anything in
-particular.”
-
-“Yes, you did, though,” replied Jeremy, greatly relieved that Ernest
-did not accept his dog, which he loved, “or at least you did more than
-anybody ever did before; but I tell you what, I’ll do as much for you
-one day. I’ll do anything you like.”
-
-“Will you, though?” answered Ernest, who was a sharp youth, and
-opportunely remembered Dorothy’s request.
-
-“Yes, I will.”
-
-“Well, then, come to this fellow Halford with me; I don’t want to go
-alone.”
-
-Jeremy slowly rubbed his face with the back of an exceedingly dirty
-hand. This was more than he had bargained for, but his word was his
-word.
-
-“All right,” he answered, “I’ll come.” And then whistling to his dog,
-he vanished into the shadows. And thus began a friendship between these
-two that endured all their lives.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV.
-BOYS TOGETHER
-
-
-Jeremy kept his word. On the appointed day he appeared ready, as he
-expressed it, to “tackle that bloke Halford.” What is more, he appeared
-with his hair cut, a decent suit of clothes on, and, wonder of wonders,
-his hands properly washed, for all of which he was rewarded by finding
-that the “tackling” was not such a fearful business as he had
-anticipated. It was, moreover, of an intermittent nature, for the lads
-found plenty of time to indulge in every sort of manly exercise
-together. In winter they would roam all over the wide marsh-lands in
-search of snipe and wild ducks, which Ernest missed and Jeremy brought
-down with unerring aim, and in summer they would swim, or fish, and
-bird-nest to their hearts’ content. In this way they contrived to
-combine the absorption of a little learning with that of a really
-extended knowledge of animal life and a large quantity of health and
-spirits.
-
-They were happy years, those, for both the lads, and to Jeremy, when he
-compared them to his life as it had been before Ernest came, they
-seemed perfectly heavenly. For whether it was that he had improved in
-his manners since then, or that Ernest stood as a buffer between him
-and Mr. Cardus, it certainly happened that he came into collision with
-him far less often. Indeed, it seemed to Jeremy that the old gentleman
-(it was the fashion to call Mr. Cardus old, though he was in reality
-only middle-aged) was more tolerant of him than formerly, though he
-knew that he would never be a favourite. As for Ernest, everybody loved
-the boy, and then, as afterwards, he was a great favourite with women,
-who would one and all do anything he asked. It was a wonder that he did
-not get spoiled by it all; but he did not. It was not possible to know
-Ernest Kershaw at any period of his life without taking a fancy to him,
-he was so eminently and unaffectedly a gentleman, and so completely
-free from any sort of swagger. Always ready to do a kindness, and never
-forgetting one done, generous with his possessions to such an extent
-that he seemed to have a vague idea that they were the common property
-of his friends and himself, possessing that greatest of gifts, a
-sympathetic mind, and true as steel, no wonder that he was always
-popular both with men and women.
-
-Ernest grew into a handsome lad, too, as soon as he began to get his
-height, with a shapely form, a beautiful pair of eyes, and an
-indescribable appearance of manliness and spirit. But the greatest
-charm of his face was always its quick intelligence and unvarying
-kindliness.
-
-As for Jeremy, he did not change much; he simply expanded, and, to tell
-the truth, expanded very largely. Year by year his form assumed more
-and more enormous proportions, and his strength grew more and more
-abnormal. As for his mind, it did not grow with the same rapidity, and
-was loth to admit a new idea; but once it was admitted, it never came
-out again.
-
-And he had a ruling passion, too, this dull giant, and that was his
-intense affection and admiration for Ernest. It was an affection that
-grew with his growth till it became a part of himself, increasing with
-the increasing years, till at last it was nearly pathetic in its
-entirety. It was but rarely that he parted from Ernest, except, indeed,
-on those occasions when Ernest chose to go abroad to pursue his study
-of foreign languages, of which he was rather fond. Then, and then only,
-Jeremy would strike. He disliked parting with Ernest much, but he
-objected—being intensely insular—to cohabit with foreigners yet more,
-so on these occasions, and these only, for a while they separated.
-
-So the years wore on till, when they were eighteen, Mr. Cardus, after
-his sudden fashion, announced his intention of sending them both to
-Cambridge. Ernest always remembered it, for it was on that very day
-that he first made the acquaintance of Florence Ceswick. He had just
-issued from his uncle’s presence, and was seeking Dolly, to communicate
-the intelligence to her, when he suddenly blundered in upon old Miss
-Ceswick, and with her a young lady. This young lady, to whom Miss
-Ceswick introduced him as her niece, at once attracted his attention.
-On being introduced the girl, who was about his own age, touched his
-outstretched palm with her slender fingers, throwing on him at the same
-moment so sharp a look from her brown eyes that he afterwards declared
-to Jeremy that it seemed to go right through him. She was a
-remarkable-looking girl. The hair, which curled profusely over a
-shapely head, was, like the eyes, brown; the complexion olive, the
-features were small, and the lips full, curving over a beautiful set of
-teeth. In person she was rather short, but squarely built, and at her
-early age her figure was perfectly formed. Indeed, she might to all
-appearance have been much older than she was. There was little of the
-typical girl about her. While he was still observing her, his uncle
-came into the room, and was duly introduced by the old lady to her
-niece, who had, she said, come to share her loneliness.
-
-“And how do you like Kesterwick, Miss Florence?” asked Mr. Cardus, with
-his usual courtly smile.
-
-“It is much what I expected—a little duller, perhaps,” she answered
-composedly.
-
-“Ah, perhaps you have been accustomed to a gayer spot.”
-
-“Yes, till my mother died we lived at Brighton; there is plenty of life
-there. Not that we could mix in it, we were too poor; but at any rate
-we could watch it.”
-
-“Do you like life, Miss Florence?”
-
-“Yes, we only live such a short time. I should like,” she went on,
-throwing her head back, and half-closing her eyes, “to see as much as I
-can, and to exhaust every emotion.”
-
-“Perhaps, Miss Florence, you would find some of them rather
-unpleasant,” answered Mr. Cardus, with a smile.
-
-“Possibly, but it is better to travel through a bad country than to
-grow in a good one.”
-
-Mr. Cardus smiled again: the girl interested him rather.
-
-“Do you know, Miss Ceswick,” he said, changing the subject, and
-addressing the stately old lady, who was sitting smoothing her laces,
-and looking rather aghast at her niece’s utterances, “that this young
-gentleman is going to college, and Jeremy, too?”
-
-“Indeed,” said Miss Ceswick; “I hope that you will do great things
-there, Ernest.”
-
-While Ernest was disclaiming any intentions of the sort, Miss Florence
-cut in again, raising her eyes from a deep contemplation of that young
-gentleman’s long shanks, which were writhing under her keen glance, and
-twisting themselves serpent-wise round the legs of the chair.
-
-“I did not know,” she said, “that they took _boys_ at college.”
-
-Then they took their leave, and Ernest stigmatised her to Dorothy as a
-“beast.”
-
-But she was at least attractive in her own peculiar fashion, and during
-the next year or two he got pretty intimate with her.
-
-And so Ernest and Jeremy went up to Cambridge, but did not set the
-place on fire, nor were the voices of tutors loud in their praise.
-Jeremy, it is true, rowed one year in the ’Varsity Race, and performed
-prodigies of strength, and so covered himself with a sort of glory,
-which, personally, being of a modest mind, he did not particularly
-appreciate. Ernest did not even do that. But somehow, by hook or by
-crook, at the termination of their collegiate career, they took some
-sort of degree, and then departed from the shores of the Cam, on which
-they had spent many a jovial day—Jeremy to return to Kesterwick, and
-Ernest to pay several visits to college friends in town and elsewhere.
-
-And so ended the first little round of their days.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V
-EVA’S PROMISE.
-
-
-When, on leaving Cambridge, Jeremy got back to Dum’s Ness, Mr. Cardus
-received him with his usual semi-contemptuous coldness, a mental
-attitude that often nearly drove the young fellow wild with
-mortification. Not that Mr. Cardus really felt any contempt for him
-now—he had lost all that years ago, when the boy had been so anxious to
-go and “earn his bread;” but he could never forgive him for being the
-son of his father, or conquer his inherent dislike to him. On the other
-hand, he certainly did not allow this to interfere with his treatment
-of the lad; if anything, indeed, it made him more careful. What he
-spent upon Ernest, the same sum he spent on Jeremy, pound for pound;
-but there was this difference about it—the money he spent on Ernest he
-gave from love, and that on Jeremy from a sense of duty.
-
-Now, Jeremy knew all this well enough, and it made him very anxious to
-earn his own living, and become independent of Mr. Cardus. But it was
-one thing to be anxious to earn your own living, and quite another to
-do it, as many a poor wretch knows to his cost, and when Jeremy set his
-slow brain to consider how he should go about the task it quite failed
-to supply him with any feasible idea. And yet he did not want much;
-Jeremy was not of an ambitious temperament. If he could earn enough to
-keep a cottage over his head, and find himself in food and clothes, and
-powder and shot, he would be perfectly content. Indeed, there were to
-be only two _sine qua nons_ in his ideal occupation: it must admit of a
-considerable amount of outdoor exercise, and be of such a nature as
-would permit him to see plenty of Ernest. Without more or less of
-Ernest’s company, life would not, he considered, be worth living.
-
-For a week or more after his arrival home these perplexing reflections
-simmered incessantly inside Jeremy’s head, till at length, feeling that
-they were getting too much for him, he determined to consult his
-sister, which, as she had three times his brains, he would have done
-well to think of before.
-
-Dolly fixed her steady blue eyes upon him and listened to his tale in
-silence.
-
-“And so you see, Doll”—he always called her Doll—he ended up, “I’m in a
-regular fix. I don’t know what I’m fit for, unless it’s to row a boat,
-or let myself out to bad shots to kill their game for them. You see I
-must stick on to Ernest; I don’t feel somehow as though I could get
-along without him; if it wasn’t for that I’d emigrate. I should be just
-the chap to cut down big trees in Vancouver’s Island or brand
-bullocks,”’ he added meditatively.
-
-“You are a great goose, Jeremy,” was his sister’s comment.
-
-He looked up, not as in any way disputing her statement, but merely for
-further information.
-
-“You are a great goose, I say. What do you suppose that I have been
-doing all these three years and more that you have been rowing boats
-and wasting time up at college? _I_ have been thinking, Jeremy.”
-
-“Yes, and so have I, but there is no good in thinking.”
-
-“No, not if you stop there; but I’ve been acting too. I’ve spoken to
-Reginald, and made a plan, and he has accepted my plan.”
-
-“You always were clever, Doll; you’ve got all the brains and I’ve got
-all the size;” and he surveyed as much as he could see of himself
-ruefully.
-
-“You don’t ask what I have arranged,” she said, sharply, for in
-alluding to her want of stature Jeremy had touched a sore point.
-
-“I am waiting for you to tell me.”
-
-“Well, you are to be articled to Reginald.”
-
-“O Lord!” groaned Jeremy, “I don’t like that at all.”
-
-“Be quiet till I have told you. You are to be articled to Reginald, and
-he is to pay you an allowance of a hundred a year while you are
-articled, so that if you don’t like it you needn’t live here.”
-
-“But I don’t like the business, Doll; I hate it; it is a beastly
-business; it’s a devil’s business.”
-
-“I should like to know what right you have to talk like that, Mr.
-Knowall! Let me tell you that many better men than you are content to
-earn their living by lawyer’s work. I suppose that a man can be honest
-as a lawyer as well as in any other trade.”
-
-Jeremy shook his head doubtfully. “It’s blood-sucking,” he said
-energetically.
-
-“Then you must suck blood,” she answered, with decision. “Look here,
-Jeremy, don’t be pig-headed and upset all my plans. If you fall out
-with Reginald over this, he won’t do anything else for you. He doesn’t
-like you, you know, and would be only too glad to pick a quarrel with
-you if he could do it with a clear conscience, and then where would you
-be, I should like to know?”
-
-Jeremy was unable to form an opinion as to where he would be, so she
-went on:
-
-“You must take to it for the present, at any rate. And then there is
-another thing to think of. Ernest is to go to the bar, and unless you
-become a lawyer, if anything happened to Reginald, there will be nobody
-to give him a start, and I’m told that is everything at the bar.”
-
-This last Jeremy admitted to be a weighty argument.
-
-“It is a precious rum sort of lawyer I shall make,” he said, sadly,
-“about as good as grandfather yonder, I’m thinking. By the way, how has
-he been getting on?”
-
-“O, just as usual—write, write, write all day. He thinks that he is
-working out his time. He has got a new stick now, on which he has
-nicked all the months and years that have to run before he has
-done—little nicks for the months and big ones for the years. There are
-eight or ten big ones left now. Every month he cuts out a nick. It is
-very dreadful. You know he thinks that Reginald is the devil, and he
-hates him, too. The other day, when he had no writing to do in the
-office, I found him drawing pictures of him with horns and a tail, such
-awful pictures, and I think Reginald always looks like that to him. And
-then sometimes he wants to go out riding, especially at night. Only
-last week they found him putting a bridle on to the gray mare—the one
-that Reginald sometimes rides, you know. When did you say that Ernest
-was coming back?” she said, after a pause.
-
-“Why, Doll, I told you—next Monday week.”
-
-Her face fell a little. “O, I thought you said Saturday.”
-
-“Why do you want to know?”
-
-“O, only about getting his room ready.”
-
-“Why, it is ready; I looked in yesterday.”
-
-“Nonsense! you know nothing about it,” she answered, colouring. “Come,
-I wish you would go out; I want to count the linen, and you are in the
-way.”
-
-Thus adjured, Jeremy removed his large form from the table on which he
-had been sitting, and whistling to Nails, now a very ancient and
-preternaturally wise dog, set off for a walk. He had mooned along some
-little way, with his hands in his pockets and his eyes on the ground,
-reflecting on the unpleasant fate in store for him as an articled
-clerk, continually under the glance of Mr. Cardus’s roving eye, when
-suddenly he became aware that two ladies were standing on the edge of
-the cliff within a dozen yards of him. He would have turned and fled,
-for Jeremy had a marked dislike to ladies’ society, and a strong
-opinion, which, however, he never expressed, that women were the root
-of all evil; but, thinking that he had been seen, he feared that
-retreat would appear rude. In one of the young ladies, for they were
-young, he recognised Miss Florence Ceswick, who to all appearance had
-not changed in the least since, some years ago, she came with her aunt
-to call on Dorothy. There was the same brown hair, curling as profusely
-as ever, the same keen brown eyes and ripe lips, the same small
-features and resolute expression of face. Her square figure had indeed
-developed a little. In her tight-fitting dress it looked almost
-handsome, and somehow its very squareness, that most women would have
-considered a defect, contributed to the air of power and unchanging
-purpose that would have made Florence Ceswick remarkable among a
-hundred handsomer women.
-
-“How do you do?” said Florence, in her sharp manner. “You looked as
-though you were walking in your sleep.”
-
-Before Jeremy could find a reply to this remark, the other young lady,
-who had been looking intently over the edge of the cliff, turned round
-and struck him dumb. In his limited experience he had never seen such a
-beautiful woman before.
-
-She was a head and shoulders taller than her sister, so tall indeed
-that only her own natural grace could save her from looking awkward.
-Like her sister she was a brunette, only of a much more pronounced
-type. Her waving hair was black, and so were her beautiful eyes and the
-long lashes that curled over them. The complexion was a clear olive,
-the lips were like coral, and the teeth small and regular. Every
-advantage that Nature can lavish on a woman she had endowed her with in
-abundance, including radiant health and spirits. To these charms must
-be added that sweet and kindly look which sometimes finds a home on the
-faces of good women, a soft voice, a quick intelligence, and an utter
-absence of conceit or self-consciousness, and the reader will get some
-idea of what Eva Ceswick was like in the first flush of her beauty.
-
-“Let me introduce my sister Eva, Mr. Jones.”
-
-But Mr. Jones was for the moment paralysed; he could not even take off
-his hat.
-
-“Well,” said Florence, presently, “she is not Medusa; there is no need
-for you to turn into stone.”
-
-This woke him up—indeed, Florence had an ugly trick of waking people up
-occasionally—and he took off his hat, which was as usual a dirty one,
-and muttered something inaudible. As for Eva, she blushed, and with
-ready wit said that Mr. Jones was no doubt astonished at the filthy
-state of her dress (as a matter of fact, Jeremy could not have sworn
-that she had one on at all, much less to its condition). “The fact is,”
-she went on, “I have been lying flat on the grass and looking over the
-edge of the cliff.”
-
-“What at?”
-
-“Why, the bones.”
-
-The spot on which they were standing was part of the ancient graveyard
-of Titheburgh Abbey, and as the sea encroached year by year, multitudes
-of the bones of the long dead inhabitants of Kesterwick were washed out
-of their quiet graves and strewed upon the beach and unequal surfaces
-of the cliff.
-
-“Look,” she said, kneeling down, an example that he followed. About six
-feet below them, which was the depth at which the corpses had
-originally been laid, could be seen fragments of lead and rotting wood
-projecting from the surface of the cliff, and, what was a more ghastly
-sight, eight inches or more of the leg-bones of a man, off which the
-feet had been washed away. On a ledge in the sandy cliff, about
-twenty-five feet from the top and sixty or so from the bottom, there
-lay quite a collection of human remains of all sorts and sizes,
-conspicuous among them being the bones which had composed the feet that
-belonged to the projecting shanks.
-
-“Isn’t it dreadful?” said Eva, gazing down with a species of
-fascination; “just fancy coming to that! Look at that little baby’s
-skull just by the big one. Perhaps that is the mother’s. And oh, what
-is that buried in the sand?”
-
-As much of the object to which she pointed at was visible looked like
-an old cannon-ball, but Jeremy soon came to a different conclusion.
-
-“It is a bit of a lead coffin,” he said.
-
-“Oh, I should like to get down there and find out what is in it. Can’t
-you get down?”
-
-Jeremy shook his head. “I’ve done it as a boy,” he said, “when I was
-very light; but it is no good my trying now: the sand would give with
-me, and I should go to the bottom.”
-
-He was willing to do most things to oblige this lovely creature, but
-Jeremy was above all things practical, and did not see the use of
-breaking his neck for nothing.
-
-“Well,” she said, “you certainly are rather heavy.”
-
-“Fifteen stone,” he said, mournfully.
-
-“But I am not ten; I think I could get down.”
-
-“You’d better not try without a rope.”
-
-Just then their conversation was interrupted by Florence’s clear voice:
-
-“When you two people have quite finished staring at those disgusting
-bones, perhaps, Eva, you will come home to lunch. If you only knew how
-silly you look, sprawling there like two Turks going to be bastinadoed,
-perhaps you would get up.”
-
-This was too much for Eva; she got up at once, and Jeremy followed
-suit.
-
-“Why could you not let us examine our bones in peace, Florence?” said
-her sister, jokingly.
-
-“Because you are really too idiotic. You see, Mr. Jones, anything that
-is old and fusty, and has to do with old fogies who are dead and gone
-centuries ago, has the greatest charms for my sister. She would like to
-go home and make stories about those bones: whose they were, and what
-they did, and all the rest of it. She calls it imagination; I call it
-fudge.”
-
-Eva flushed up, but said nothing; evidently she was not accustomed to
-answer her elder sister, and presently they parted to go their separate
-ways.
-
-“What a great oaf that Jeremy is!” said Florence to her sister on their
-homeward way.
-
-“I did not think him an oaf at all,” she replied, warmly; “I thought
-him very nice.”
-
-Florence shrugged her square shoulders. “Well, of course, if you like a
-giant with as much brain as an owl, there is nothing more to be said.
-You should see Ernest; he is nice, if you like.”
-
-“You seem very fond of Ernest.”
-
-“Yes, I am,” was the reply; “and I hope that when he comes you won’t
-poach on my manor.”
-
-“You need not be afraid,” answered Eva, smiling; “I promise to leave
-your Ernest alone.”
-
-“Then that is a bargain,” said Florence, sharply. “Mind that you keep
-to your word.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI.
-JEREMY FALLS IN LOVE
-
-
-Jeremy, for the first time for some years, had no appetite for his
-dinner that day, a phenomenon that filled Dorothy with alarm.
-
-“My dear Jeremy,” she said afterwards, “what can be the matter with
-you? you had only one helping of beef and no pudding!”
-
-“Nothing at all,” he replied sulkily; and the subject dropped.
-
-“Doll,” said Jeremy presently, “do you know Miss Eva Ceswick?”
-
-“Yes, I have seen her twice.”
-
-“What do you think of her, Doll?”
-
-“What do you think of her?” replied that cautious young person.
-
-“I think she is beautiful as—as an angel.”
-
-“Quite poetical, I declare! What next? Have you seen her?”
-
-“Of course, else how should I know she was beautiful?”
-
-“Ah, no wonder you had only once of beef!”
-
-Jeremy coloured.
-
-“I am going to call there this afternoon; would you like to come?” went
-on his sister.
-
-“Yes, I’ll come.”
-
-“Better and better; it will be the first call I ever remember your
-having paid.”
-
-“You don’t think she will mind, Doll?”
-
-“Why should she mind? Most people don’t mind being called on, even if
-they have a pretty face.”
-
-“Pretty face! She is pretty all over.”
-
-“Well, then, a pretty all over. I start at three; don’t be late.”
-
-Thereupon Jeremy went off to beautify himself for the occasion, and his
-sister gazed at his departing form with the puzzled expression that had
-distinguished her as a child.
-
-“He’s going to fall in love with her,” she said to herself, “and no
-wonder; any man would: she is ‘pretty all over,’ as he said, and what
-more does a man look at? I wish that _she_ would fall in love with him
-_before Ernest comes home;_” and she sighed.
-
-At a quarter to three Jeremy reappeared, looking particularly huge in a
-black coat and his Sunday trousers. When they reached the cottage where
-Miss Ceswick lived with her nieces, they were destined to meet with a
-disappointment, for neither of the young ladies was at home. Miss
-Ceswick, however, was there, and received them very cordially.
-
-“I suppose that you have come to see my newly imported niece,” she
-said; “in fact, I am sure that you have, Mr. Jeremy, because you never
-came to call upon me in your life. Ah, it is wonderful how young men
-will change their habits to please a pair of bright eyes!”
-
-Jeremy blushed painfully at this sally, but Dorothy came to his rescue.
-
-“Has Miss Eva come to live with you for good?” she asked.
-
-“Yes, I think so. You see, my dear, between you and me, her aunt in
-London, with whom she was living, has got a family of daughters, who
-have recently come out. Eva has been kept back as long as possible, but
-now that she is twenty it was impossible to keep her back any more. But
-then, on the other hand, it was felt—at least I think that it was
-felt—that to continue to bring Eva out with her cousins would be to
-quite ruin their chance of settling in life, because when _she_ was in
-the room, no man could be got to look at _them_. And so, you see, Eva
-has been sent down here as a penalty for being so handsome.”
-
-“Most of us would be glad to undergo heavier penalties than that if we
-could only be guilty of the crime,” said Dorothy, a little sadly.
-
-“Ah, my dear, I daresay you think so,” answered the old lady. “Every
-young woman longs to be beautiful and get the admiration of men, but
-are they any the happier for it? I doubt it. Very often that admiration
-brings endless troubles in its train, and perhaps in the end wrecks the
-happiness of the woman herself and of others who are mixed up with her.
-I was once a beautiful woman, my dear—I am old enough to say it now—and
-I can tell you that I believe that Providence cannot do a more unkind
-thing to a woman than to give her striking beauty, unless it gives with
-it great strength of mind. A weak-minded beauty is the most unfortunate
-of her sex. Her very attractions, which are sure to draw the secret
-enmity of other women on to her, are a source of difficulty to herself,
-because they bring her lovers with whom she cannot deal. Sometimes the
-end of such a woman is sad enough. I have seen it happen several times,
-my dear.”
-
-Often in after-life, and in circumstances that had not then arisen, did
-Dorothy think of old Miss Ceswick’s words, and acknowledge their truth;
-but at this time they did not convince her.
-
-“I would give anything to be like your niece,” she said bluntly, “and
-so would any other girl. Ask Florence, for instance.”
-
-“Ah, my dear, you think so now. Wait till another twenty years have
-passed over your heads, and then if you are both alive see which of you
-is the happiest. As for Florence, of course she would wish to be like
-Eva; of course it is painful for her to have to go about with a girl
-beside whom she looks like a little dowdy. I daresay that she would
-have been as glad if Eva had stopped in London as her cousins were that
-she left it. Dear, dear! I hope they won’t quarrel. Florence’s temper
-is dreadful when she quarrels.”
-
-This was a remark that Dorothy could not gainsay. She knew very well
-what Florence’s temper was like.
-
-“But, Mr. Jeremy,” went on the old lady, “all this must be stupid talk
-for you to listen to; tell me, have you been rowing any more races
-lately?”
-
-“No,” said Jeremy, “I strained a muscle in my arm in the ’Varsity Race,
-and it is not quite well yet.”
-
-“And where is my dear Ernest?” Like most women, of whatever age they
-might be, Miss Ceswick adored Ernest.
-
-“He is coming back on Monday week.”
-
-“O, then he will be in time for the Smythes’ lawn tennis party. I hear
-that they are going to give a dance after it. Do you dance, Mr.
-Jeremy?”
-
-Jeremy had to confess that he did not; indeed, as a matter of fact, no
-earthly power had ever been able to drag him inside a ballroom in his
-life.
-
-“That is a pity; there are so few young men in these parts. Florence
-counted them up the other day, and the proportion is one unmarried man,
-between the ages of twenty and forty-five, to every nine women between
-eighteen and thirty.”
-
-“Then only one girl in every nine can get married,” put in Dorothy,
-whose mind had a trick of following things to their conclusions.
-
-“And what becomes of the other eight?” asked Jeremy.
-
-“I suppose that they all grow into old maids like myself,” answered
-Miss Ceswick.
-
-Dorothy, again following the matter to its conclusion, reflected that
-in fifteen years or so there would, at the present rate of progression,
-be at least twenty-five old maids within a radius of three miles round
-Kesterwick. And, much oppressed by this thought, she rose to take her
-leave.
-
-“I know who won’t be left without a husband, unless men are greater
-stupids than I take them for—eh, Jeremy?” said the kindly old lady,
-giving Dorothy a kiss.
-
-“If you mean me,” answered Dorothy bluntly, with a slightly heightened
-colour, “I am not so vain as to think that anybody would care for an
-undersized creature whose only accomplishment is housekeeping; and I am
-sure it is not for anybody that I should care either.”
-
-“Ah, my dear, there are still a few men of sense in the world, who
-would rather get a _good_ woman as companion than a pretty face.
-Good-bye, my dear.”
-
-Though Jeremy was on this occasion disappointed of seeing Eva, on the
-following morning he was so fortunate as to meet her and her sister
-walking on the beach. But when he got into her gracious presence he
-found somehow that he had very little to say; and the walk would, to
-tell the truth, have been rather dull, if it had not occasionally been
-enlivened by flashes of Florence’s caustic wit.
-
-On the next day, however, he returned to the charge with several
-hundredweight of the roots of a certain flower which Eva had expressed
-a desire to possess. And so it went on till at last his shyness wore
-off a little, and they grew very good friends.
-
-Of course all this did not escape Florence’s sharp eyes, and one day,
-just after Jeremy had paid her sister a lumbering compliment and
-departed, she summarised her observations thus:
-
-“That moon-calf is falling in love with you, Eva.”
-
-“Nonsense, Florence! and why should you call him a moon-calf? It is not
-nice to talk of people so.”
-
-“Well, if you can find a better definition, I am willing to adopt it.”
-
-“I think that he is an honest gentleman-like boy; and even if he were
-falling in love with me, I do not think there would be anything to be
-ashamed of—there!”
-
-“Dear me, what a fuss we are in! Do you know, I shall soon begin to
-think that you are falling in love with the ‘honest gentleman-like
-boy’—yes, that is a better title than moon-calf, though not so
-nervous.”
-
-Here Eva marched off in a huff.
-
-“Well, Jeremy, and how are you getting on with the beautiful Eva?”
-asked Dorothy that same day.
-
-“I say, Doll,” replied Jeremy, whose general appearance was that of a
-man plunged into the depths of misery, “don’t laugh at a fellow; if you
-only knew what I feel—inside, you know—you wouldn’t——”
-
-“What! are you not well? have some brandy?” suggested his sister, in
-genuine alarm.
-
-“Don’t be an idiot, Doll; it isn’t my stomach, it’s here;” and he
-knocked his right lung, under the impression that he was indicating the
-position of his heart.
-
-“And what do you feel, Jeremy?”
-
-“Feel!” he answered with a groan; “what don’t I feel? When I am away
-from her I feel a sort of sinking, just like one does when one has to
-go without one’s dinner, only it’s always there. When she looks at me I
-go hot and cold all over, and when she smiles it’s just as though one
-had killed a couple of woodcocks right and left.”
-
-“Good gracious, Jeremy!” interposed his sister, who was beginning to
-think he had gone off his head; “and what happens if she doesn’t
-smile?”
-
-“Ah, then,” he replied, sadly, “it’s as though one had missed them
-both.”
-
-Though his similes were peculiar, it was clear to his sister that the
-feeling he meant to convey was genuine enough.
-
-“Are you really fond of this girl, Jeremy dear?” she said gently.
-
-“Well, Doll, you know, I suppose I am.”
-
-“Then why don’t you ask her to marry you?”
-
-“To marry _me!_ Why, I am not fit to clean her shoes.”
-
-“An honest gentleman is fit for any woman, Jeremy.”
-
-“And I haven’t got anything to support her on even if she said yes,
-which she wouldn’t.”
-
-“You may get that in time. Remember, Jeremy, she is a very lovely
-woman, and soon she is sure to find other lovers.”
-
-Jeremy groaned.
-
-“But if once you had secured her affection, and she is a good woman, as
-I think she is, that would not matter, though you might not be able to
-marry for some years.”
-
-“Then what am I to do?”
-
-“I should tell her that you loved her, and ask her, if she could care
-for you—to wait for you awhile.”
-
-Jeremy whistled meditatively.
-
-“I’ll ask Ernest about it when he comes back on Monday.”
-
-“If I were you I should act for myself in that matter,” she said
-quickly.
-
-“No good being in a hurry; I haven’t known her a fortnight—I’ll ask
-Ernest.”
-
-“Then you will regret it,” Dorothy answered, almost passionately, and
-rising, left the room.
-
-“Now, what did she mean by that?” reflected her brother aloud; “she
-always is so deuced queer when Ernest is concerned.” But his inner
-consciousness returned no satisfactory answer, so with a sigh the
-lovelorn Jeremy took up his hat and walked.
-
-On Sunday, that was the day following his talk with Dorothy, he saw Eva
-again in church, where she looked, he thought, more like an angel than
-ever, and was quite as inaccessible. In the churchyard he did, it is
-true, manage to get a word or two with her, but nothing more, for the
-sermon had been long, and Florence was hungry, and hurried her sister
-home to lunch.
-
-And then, at last, came Monday, the long-expected day of Ernest’s
-arrival.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII.
-ERNEST IS INDISCREET
-
-
-Kesterwick is a primitive place, and has no railway station nearer than
-Raffham, four miles off. Ernest was expected by the midday train, and
-Dorothy and her brother went to meet him.
-
-When they reached the station the train was just in sight, and Dorothy
-got down to await its arrival. Presently it snorted up
-composedly—trains do not hurry themselves on the single lines in the
-Eastern counties—and in due course deposited Ernest and his
-portmanteau.
-
-“Hullo, Doll! so you have come to meet me. How are you, old girl?” and
-he embraced her on the platform.
-
-“You shouldn’t, Ernest: I am too big to be kissed like a little girl,
-and in public too.”
-
-“Big—h’m! Miss five feet nothing, and as for the public, I don’t see
-any.” The train had gone on, and the solitary porter had vanished with
-the portmanteau.
-
-“Well, there is no need for you to laugh at me for being small; it is
-not everybody who can be a May-pole, like you, or as broad as he is
-long, like Jeremy.”
-
-An unearthly view halloo from this last-named personage, who had caught
-sight of Ernest through the door of the booking-office, put a stop to
-further controversy, and presently all three were driving back, each
-talking at the top of his or her voice.
-
-At the door of Dum’s Ness they found Mr. Cardus apparently gazing
-abstractedly at the ocean, but in reality waiting to greet Ernest, to
-whom of late years he had grown greatly attached, though his reserve
-seldom allowed him to show it.
-
-“Hullo, uncle, how are you? You look pretty fresh,” sang out that young
-gentleman before the cart had fairly come to a standstill.
-
-“Very well, thank you, Ernest. I need not ask how you are. I am glad to
-see you back. You have come at a lucky moment, too, for the ‘Batemania
-Wallisii’ is in flower, and the ‘Grammatophyllum speciosum’ too. The
-last is splendid.”
-
-“Ah,” said Ernest, deeply interested, for he had much of his uncle’s
-love for orchids, “let’s go and see them.”
-
-“Better have some dinner first; you must be hungry. The orchids will
-keep, but the dinner won’t.”
-
-It was curious to see what a ray of light this lad brought with him
-into that rather gloomy household. Everybody began to laugh as soon as
-he was inside the doors. Even Grice of the beady eyes laughed when he
-feigned to be thunder-struck at the newly developed beauty of her
-person, and mad old Atterleigh’s contorted features lit up with
-something like a smile of recognition when Ernest seized his hand and
-worked it like a pump-handle, roaring out his congratulations on the
-jollity of his looks. He was a bonny lad, the sight of whom was good
-for sore eyes.
-
-After dinner he went with his uncle, and spent half an hour in going
-round the orchid-houses with him and Sampson the gardener. The latter
-was not behind the rest of the household in his appreciation of
-“Meester” Ernest. “’Twasn’t many lads,” he would say, “that knew an
-‘Odontoglossum’ from a ‘Sobralia,’” but Ernest did, and, what was more,
-knew whether it was well grown or not. Sampson appreciated a man who
-could discriminate orchids, and set his preference for Ernest down to
-that cause. The dour-visaged old Scotchman did not like to own that
-what really charmed him was the lad’s open-handed, openhearted manner,
-to say nothing of his ready sympathy and honest eyes.
-
-While they were still engaged in admiring the lovely bloom of the
-Grammatophyllum, Mr. Cardus saw Mr. de Talor come into his office,
-which, it may be remembered, was connected with the orchid
-blooming-house by a glass door. Ernest was much interested in observing
-the curious change that this man’s appearance produced in his uncle. As
-a peaceful cat, dozing on a warm stone in summer, becomes suddenly
-changed into a thing of bristling wickedness and fury by the vision of
-the most inoffensive dog, so did the placid, bald-headed old gentleman,
-glowing with innocent pleasure at his horticultural masterpiece,
-commence to glow with very different emotions at the sight of the
-pompous De Talor. The ruling passion of his life asserted its sway in a
-moment, and his whole face changed; the upper lip began to quiver, the
-roving eyes glittered with a dangerous light; and then a mask seemed to
-gather over the features, which grew hard and almost inscrutable. It
-was an interesting transformation.
-
-Although they could see De Talor, he could not see them; so for a
-minute they enjoyed an undisturbed period of observation.
-
-The visitor walked round the room, and, casting a look of contempt at
-the flowers in the blooming-house, stopped at Mr. Cardus’s desk, and
-glanced at the papers lying on it. Finding apparently nothing to
-interest him he retired to the window, and, putting his thumbs in the
-arm-holes of his waistcoat, amused himself by staring out of it. There
-was something so intensely vulgar and insolent in his appearance as he
-stood thus, that Ernest could not help laughing.
-
-“Ah!” said Mr. Cardus, with a look of suppressed malignity, half to
-himself and half to Ernest, “I have really got a hold of you at last,
-and you may look out, my friend.” Then he went in, and as he left the
-blooming-house Ernest heard him greet his visitor in that suave manner,
-with just a touch of deference in it, that he knew so well how to
-assume, and De Talor’s reply of “’Ow do, Cardus? ’ow’s the business
-getting on?”
-
-Outside the glass-houses Ernest found Jeremy waiting for him. It had
-for years been an understood thing that the latter was not to enter
-them. There was no particular reason why he should not; it was merely
-one of those signs of Mr. Cardus’s disfavour that caused Jeremy’s pride
-such bitter injury.
-
-“What are you going to do, old fellow?” he asked of Ernest.
-
-“Well, I want to go down and see Florence Ceswick, but I suppose you
-won’t care to come.”
-
-“O yes, I’ll come.”
-
-“The deuce you will! well, I never! I say, Doll,” he sang out to that
-young lady as she appeared upon the scene, “what has happened to
-Jeremy—he’s coming out calling?”
-
-“I fancy he’s got an attraction,” said Miss Dorothy.
-
-“I say, old fellow, you haven’t been cutting me out with Florence, have
-you?”
-
-“I am sure it would be no great loss if he had,” put in Dorothy, with
-an impatient little stamp of the foot.
-
-“You be quiet, Doll. I’m very fond of Florence, she’s so clever, and
-nice-looking, too.”
-
-“If being clever means being able to say spiteful things, and having a
-temper like—like a fiend, she is certainly clever enough; and as for
-her looks, they are a matter of taste—not that it is for _me_ to talk
-about good looks.”
-
-“O, how humble we are, Doll! dust on our head and sackcloth on our
-back, and how our blue eyes flash!”
-
-“Be quiet, Ernest, or I shall get angry.”
-
-“O no, don’t do that; leave that to people with a temper ‘like—like a
-fiend,’ you know. There, there, don’t get cross, Dolly; let’s kiss and
-be friends.”
-
-“I won’t kiss you, and I won’t be friends, and you may walk by
-yourselves;” and before anybody could stop her she was gone.
-
-Ernest whistled softly, reflecting that Dorothy was not good at
-standing chaff. Then, after waiting awhile, he and Jeremy started to
-pay their call.
-
-But they were destined to be unfortunate. Eva, whom Ernest had never
-seen, and of whom he had heard nothing beyond that she was
-“good-looking”—for Jeremy, notwithstanding his expressed intention of
-consulting him, could not make up his mind to broach the subject—was in
-bed with a bad headache, and Florence had gone out to spend the
-afternoon with a friend. The old lady was at home, however, and
-received them both warmly, more especially her favourite Ernest, whom
-she kissed affectionately.
-
-“I am lucky,” she said, “in having two nieces, or I should never see
-anything of young gentlemen like you.”
-
-“I think,” said Ernest, audaciously, “that old ladies are much
-pleasanter to talk to than young ones.”
-
-“Indeed, Master Ernest! then why did you look so blank when I told you
-that my young ladies were not visible?”
-
-“Because I regretted,” replied that young gentleman, who was not often
-at a loss, “having lost an opportunity of confirming my views.”
-
-“I will put the question again when they are present to take their own
-part,” was the answer.
-
-When their call was over, Ernest and Jeremy separated, Jeremy to return
-home, and Ernest to go and see his old master, Mr. Halford, with whom
-he stopped to tea. It was past seven on one of the most beautiful
-evenings in July when he set out on his homeward path. There were two
-ways of reaching Dum’s Ness, either by the road that ran along the
-cliff, or by walking on the shingle of the beach. He chose the latter,
-and had reached the spot where Titheburgh Abbey frowned at its enemy,
-the advancing sea, when he suddenly became aware of a young lady
-wearing a shady hat and swinging a walking-stick, in whom he recognised
-Florence Ceswick.
-
-“How do you do, Ernest?” she said, coolly, but with a slight flush upon
-her olive skin, which betrayed that she was not quite so cool as she
-looked; “what are you dreaming about? I have seen you coming for the
-last two hundred yards, but you never saw me.”
-
-“I was dreaming of you, of course, Florence.”
-
-“O, indeed!” she answered dryly; “I thought perhaps that Eva had got
-over her headache—her headaches do go in the most wonderful way—and
-that you had seen her, and were dreaming of _her._”
-
-“And why should I dream of her, even if I had seen her?”
-
-“For the reason that men do dream of women—because she is handsome.”
-
-“Is she better-looking than you, then, Florence?”
-
-“Better-looking, indeed! I am not good-looking.”
-
-“Nonsense, Florence! you are very good-looking.”
-
-She stopped, for he had turned and was walking with her, and laid her
-hand lightly on his arm.
-
-“Do you really think so?” she said, gazing full into his dark eyes. “I
-am glad you think so.”
-
-They were quite alone in the summer twilight; there was not a single
-soul to be seen on the beach, or on the cliffs above it. Her touch and
-the earnestness of her manner thrilled him; the beauty and the quiet of
-the evening, the sweet freshness of the air, the murmur of the falling
-waves, the fading purples in the sky, all these things thrilled him
-too. Her face looked very handsome in its own stern way, as she gazed
-at him so earnestly; and, remember, he was only twenty-one. He bent his
-dark head towards her very slowly, to give her an opportunity of
-escaping if she wished; but she made no sign, and in another moment he
-had kissed her trembling lips.
-
-It was a foolish act, for he was not in love with Florence, and he had
-scarcely done it before his better sense told him that it was foolish.
-But it was done, and who can recall a kiss?
-
-He saw the olive face grow pale, and for a moment she raised her arm as
-though to fling it about his neck, but next second she started back
-from him.
-
-“Did you mean that,” she said wildly, “or are you playing with me?”
-
-Ernest looked alarmed, as well he might; the young lady’s aspect at the
-moment was not reassuring.
-
-“Mean it?” he said, “O yes, I meant it.”
-
-“I mean, Ernest,” and again she laid her hand upon his arm and looked
-into his eyes, “did you mean that you loved me, as—for now I am not
-ashamed to tell you—I love you?”
-
-Ernest felt that this was getting awful. To kiss a young woman was one
-thing—he had done that before—but such an outburst as this was more
-than he had bargained for. Gratifying as it was to him to learn that he
-possessed Florence’s affection, he would at that moment have given
-something to be without it. He hesitated a little.
-
-“How serious you are!” he said at last.
-
-“Yes,” she answered, “I am. I have been serious for some time. Probably
-you know enough of me to be aware that I am not a woman to be played
-with. I hope that you are serious too; if you are not, it may be the
-worse for us both;” and she flung his arm from her as though it had
-stung her.
-
-Ernest turned cold all over, and realised that the position was
-positively gruesome. What to say or do he did not know; so he stood
-silent, and, as it happened, silence served his turn better than
-speech.
-
-“There, Ernest, I have startled you. It is—it is because I love you.
-When you kissed me just now, everything that is beautiful in the world
-seemed to pass before my eyes, and for a moment I heard such music as
-they play in heaven. You don’t understand me yet, Ernest—I am fierce, I
-know—but sometimes I think that my heart is deep as the sea, and I can
-love with ten times the strength of the shallow women round me; and as
-I can love, so I can hate.”
-
-This was not reassuring intelligence to Ernest.
-
-“You are a strange girl,” he said feebly.
-
-“Yes,” she answered, with a smile. “I know I am strange; but while I am
-with you I feel so good, and when you are away all my life is a void,
-in which bitter thoughts flit about like bats. But there, good-night. I
-shall see you at the Smythes’ dance to-morrow, shall I not? You will
-dance with me, will you not? And you must not dance with Eva,
-remember—at least not too much—or I shall get jealous, and that will be
-bad for us both. And now goodnight, my dear, good-night;” and again she
-put up her face to be kissed.
-
-He kissed it—he had no alternative—and she left him swiftly. He watched
-her retreating form till it vanished in the shadows, and then he sat
-down upon a stone, wiped his forehead, and _whistled._ Well might he
-whistle!
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII.
-A GARDEN IDYL
-
-
-Ernest did not sleep well that night: the scene of the evening haunted
-his dreams, and he awoke with a sense of oppression that impartially
-follows on the heels of misfortune, folly, and lobster-salad. Nor did
-the broad light of the summer day disperse his sorrows; indeed, it only
-served to define them more clearly. Ernest was a very inexperienced
-youth, but, inexperienced as he was, he could not but recognise that he
-had let himself in for an awkward business. He was not in the smallest
-degree in love with Florence Ceswick; indeed, his predominant feeling
-towards her was one of fear. She was, as he had said, so terribly in
-earnest. In short, though she was barely a year older than himself, she
-was a woman possessed of a strength of purpose and a rigidity of will
-that few of her sex ever attain to at any period of their lives. This
-he had guessed long ago; but what he had not guessed was that all the
-tide of her life set so strongly towards himself. That unlucky kiss, as
-it were, had shot the bolt of the sluice-gates, and now he was in a
-fair way to be overwhelmed by the rush of the waters. What course of
-action he had best take with her now it was beyond his powers to
-decide. He thought of taking Dorothy into his confidence and asking her
-advice, but instinctively he shrank from doing so. Then he thought of
-Jeremy, only, however, to reject the idea. What would Jeremy know of
-such things? He little guessed that Jeremy was swelling with a secret
-of his own, of which he was too shy to deliver himself. It seemed to
-Ernest, the more he considered the matter, that there was only one safe
-course for him to follow, and that was to run away. It would be
-ignominious, it is true, but at any rate Florence could not run after
-him. He had made arrangements to meet a friend, and go for a tour with
-him in France towards the end of the month of August, or about five
-weeks from the present date. These arrangements he now determined to
-modify: he would go for his tour at once.
-
-Partially comforted by these reflections, he dressed himself that
-evening for the dance at the Smythes’, where he was to meet Florence,
-who, however, he gratefully reflected, could not expect him to kiss her
-there. The dance was to follow a lawn-tennis party, to which Dorothy,
-accompanied by Jeremy, had already gone, Ernest having, for reasons
-best known to himself, declined to go to the lawn-tennis, preferring to
-follow them to the dance.
-
-When he entered the ballroom at the Smythes’, the first quadrille was
-in progress. Making his way up the room, Ernest soon came upon Florence
-Ceswick, who was sitting with Dorothy, while in the background loomed
-Jeremy’s gigantic form. Both the girls appeared to be waiting for him,
-for on his approach Florence, by a movement of her dress, and an almost
-imperceptible motion of her hand, at once made room for him on the
-bench beside her, and invited him to sit down. He did so.
-
-“You are late,” she said; “why did you not come to the lawn-tennis?”
-
-“I thought that our party was sufficiently represented,” he answered,
-lamely, nodding towards Jeremy and his sister. “Why are you not
-dancing?”
-
-“Because nobody asked me,” she said, sharply; “and besides, I was
-waiting for you.”
-
-“Jeremy,” said Ernest, “here is Florence says that you didn’t ask her
-to dance.”
-
-“Don’t talk humbug, Ernest; you know I don’t dance.”
-
-“No, indeed,” put in Dorothy, “it is easy to see that; I never saw
-anybody look so miserable as you do.”
-
-“Or so big,” said Florence, consolingly.
-
-Jeremy shrank back into his corner and tried to look smaller. His
-sister was right, a dance was untold misery to him. The quadrille had
-ceased by now, and presently the band struck up a waltz, which Ernest
-danced with Florence. They both waltzed well, and Ernest kept going as
-much as possible, perhaps in order to give no opportunity for
-conversation. At any rate no allusion was made to the events of the
-previous evening.
-
-“Where are your aunt and sister, Florence?” he asked, as he led her
-back to her seat.
-
-“They are coming presently,” she answered, shortly.
-
-The next dance was a galop, and this he danced with Dorothy, whose slim
-figure looked, in the white muslin dress she wore, more like that of a
-child than a grown woman. But child or woman, her general appearance
-was singularly pleasing and attractive. Ernest thought that he had
-never seen the quaint, puckered little face, with the two steady blue
-eyes in it, look so attractive. Not that it was pretty—it was not, but
-it was a face with a great deal of thought in it, and moreover it was a
-face through which the goodness of its owner seemed to shine like the
-light through a lamp.
-
-“You look so nice to-night, Doll,” said Ernest.
-
-She flushed with pleasure, and answered simply, “I am glad you think
-so.”
-
-“Yes, I do think so; you are really pretty.”
-
-“Nonsense, Ernest! Can’t you find some other butt to practise your
-compliments on? What is the good of wasting them on me? I am going to
-sit down.”
-
-“Really, Doll, I don’t know what has come to you lately, you have grown
-so cross.”
-
-She sighed as she answered, gently:
-
-“No more do I, Ernest. I did not mean to speak crossly, but you should
-not make fun of me. Ah, here come Miss Ceswick and Eva.”
-
-They had rejoined Florence and Jeremy. The two ladies were seated,
-while Ernest and Jeremy were standing, the former in front of them, the
-latter against the wall behind, for they were gathered at the topmost
-end of the long room. At Dorothy’s announcement both the lads bent
-forward to look down the room, and both the women fixed their eyes on
-Ernest’s face anxiously, expectantly, something as a criminal fixes his
-eyes on the foreman of a jury who is about to pronounce words that will
-one way or another affect all his life.
-
-“I don’t see them,” said Ernest carelessly. “O, here they come. _By
-George!_”
-
-[Illustration: “_By George!_”]
-
-Whatever these two women were looking for in his face, they had found
-it, and, to all appearance, it pleased them very little. Dorothy turned
-pale, and leaned back with a faint smile of resignation; she had
-expected it, that smile seemed to say; but the blood flamed like a
-danger-flag into Florence’s haughty features—there was no resignation
-there. And meanwhile Ernest was staring down the room, quite unaware of
-the little comedy that was going on around him; so was Jeremy, and so
-was every other man who was there to stare.
-
-And this was what they were staring at. Up the centre of the long room
-walked, or rather swept, Miss Ceswick, for even at her advanced age she
-moved like a queen, and at any other time her appearance would in
-itself have been sufficient to excite remark. But people were not
-looking at Miss Ceswick, but rather at the radiant creature who
-accompanied her, and whose stature dwarfed her, tall as she was. Eva
-Ceswick—for it was she—was dressed in white _soie de Chine,_ in the
-bosom of which was fixed a single rose. The dress was cut low, and her
-splendid neck and arms were entirely without ornament. In the masses of
-dark hair, which was coiled like a coronet round her head, there
-glistened a diamond star. Simple as was her costume, there was a
-grandeur about it that struck the whole room; but in truth it sprang
-from the almost perfect beauty of the woman who wore it. Any dress
-would have looked beautiful upon that noble form, that towered so high,
-and yet seemed to float up the room with the grace of a swan and sway
-like a willow in the wind. But her loveliness did not end there. From
-those dark eyes there shone a light that few men could look upon and
-forget, and yet there was nothing bold about it. It was like the light
-of a star.
-
-On she came, her lips half-parted, seemingly unconscious of the
-admiration she was attracting, eclipsing all other women as she passed,
-and making their beauty, that before had seemed bright enough, look
-poor and mean beside her own. It took but a few seconds, ten perhaps,
-for her to walk up the room, and yet to Ernest it seemed long before
-her eyes met his own, and something passed from them into his heart
-that remained there all his life.
-
-His gaze made her blush a little, it was so unmistakable. She guessed
-who he was, and passed him with a little inclination of her head.
-
-“Well, here we are at last,” she said, addressing her sister in her
-pure musical voice. “What do you think? something went wrong with the
-wheel of the fly, and we had to stop to get it mended!”
-
-“Indeed!” answered Florence; “I thought that perhaps you came late in
-order to make a more effective entry.”
-
-“Florence,” said her aunt, reprovingly, “you should not say such
-things.”
-
-Florence did not answer, but put her lace handkerchief to her lip. She
-had bitten it till the blood ran.
-
-By this time Ernest had recovered himself. He saw several young fellows
-bearing down upon them, and knew what they were after.
-
-“Miss Ceswick,” he said, “will you introduce me?”
-
-No sooner said than done, and at that moment the band began to play a
-waltz. In five seconds more Eva was floating down the room upon his
-arm, and the advancing young gentlemen were left lamenting, and, if the
-truth must be told, anathematising “that puppy Kershaw” beneath their
-breath.
-
-There was a spirit in her feet; she danced divinely. Lightly leaning on
-his arm, they swept round the room, the incarnation of youthful
-strength and beauty, and, as they passed, even sour old Lady Asteigh
-lowered her ancient nose an inch or more, and deigned to ask who that
-handsome young man dancing with the “tall girl” was. Presently they
-halted, and Ernest observed a more than usually intrepid man coming
-towards them, with the design, no doubt, of obtaining an introduction
-and the promise of dances. But again he was equal to the occasion.
-
-“Have you a card?” he asked.
-
-“O, yes.”
-
-“Will you allow me to put my name down for another dance? I think that
-our steps suit.”
-
-“Yes, we get on nicely. Here it is.”
-
-Ernest took it. The young man had arrived now, and was hovering round
-and glowering. Ernest nodded to him cheerfully, and “put his name” very
-much down—indeed, for no less than three dances and an extra.
-
-Eva opened her eyes a little, but she said nothing; their steps suited
-so very well.
-
-“May I ask you, Kershaw—” began his would-be rival.
-
-“O, certainly,” answered Ernest benignly, “I will be with you
-presently;” and they floated off again on the rising wave of the music.
-
-When the dance ended, they stopped just by the spot where Miss Ceswick
-was sitting. Florence and Dorothy were both dancing, but Jeremy, who
-did not dance, was standing by her, looking as sulky as a bear with a
-sore head. Eva stretched out her hand to him with a smile.
-
-“I hope that you are going to dance with me, Mr. Jones,” she said.
-
-“I don’t dance,” he answered, curtly, and walked away.
-
-She gazed after him wonderingly; his manner was decidedly rude.
-
-“I do not think that Mr. Jones is in a good temper,” she said to
-Ernest, with a smile.
-
-“O, he is a queer fellow; going out always makes him cross,” he
-answered carelessly.
-
-Then the gathering phalanx of would-be partners marched in and took
-possession, and Ernest had to retire.
-
-The ball was drawing to its close. The dancing-room, notwithstanding
-its open windows, was intensely hot, and many of the dancers were
-strolling in the gardens, among them Ernest and Eva. They had just
-danced their third waltz, in which they had discovered that their steps
-suited better than ever.
-
-Florence, Dorothy, and her brother were also walking all three
-together. It is curious how people in misfortune cling to one another.
-They walked in silence; they had nothing to say. Presently they caught
-sight of two tall figures standing by a bush, on which was fixed a
-dying Chinese lantern. It is sometimes unfortunate to be tall, it
-betrays one’s identity; there was no mistaking the two figures, though
-it was so dark. Instinctively the three halted. And just then the
-expiring Chinese lantern did an unkind thing: it caught fire, and threw
-a lurid light upon a very pretty little scene. Ernest was bending
-forward towards Eva with all his soul in his expressive eyes, and
-begging for something. She was blushing sweetly, and looking down at
-the rose in her bosom; one hand, too, was raised, as though to unfasten
-it. The light for a moment was so strong that Dorothy afterwards
-remembered noticing how long Eva’s curling black eyelashes looked
-against her cheek. In another second it had flared out, and the
-darkness hid the sequel; but it may here be stated that when Eva
-reappeared in the ballroom she had lost her rose.
-
-Charming and idyllic as this _tableau très vivant_ of youth and beauty,
-obeying the primary law of nature, and making love to one another in a
-Garden of Eden illumined with Chinese lanterns, undoubtedly was, it did
-not seem to please any of the three spectators.
-
-Jeremy actually forgot the presence of ladies, and went so far as to
-swear aloud. Nor did they reprove him; probably it gave their feelings
-some vicarious relief.
-
-“I think that we had better be going home; it is late,” said Dorothy,
-after a pause. “Jeremy, will you go and order the carriage?”
-
-Jeremy went.
-
-Florence said nothing, but she took her fan in both her hands and bent
-it slowly, so that the ivory sticks snapped one by one with a
-succession of sharp reports. Then she threw it down, and set her heel
-upon it, and ground it into the path. There was something inexpressibly
-cruel about the way in which she crushed the pretty toy; the action
-seemed to be the appropriate and unconscious outcome of some mental
-process, and it is an odd proof of the excitement under which they were
-both labouring, that at the time the gentle-minded Dorothy saw nothing
-strange about it. At that moment the two girls were nearer each other
-than they had ever been before, or would ever be again; the common
-stroke of a misfortune for a moment welded their opposite natures into
-one. At that moment, too, they knew that they both loved the same man;
-before, they had guessed it, and had not liked each other the better
-for it, but now that was forgotten.
-
-“I think, Florence,” said Dorothy, with a little tremor in her voice,
-“that we are ‘out of the running,’ as Jeremy says. Your sister is too
-beautiful for any woman to stand against her. He has fallen in love
-with her.”
-
-“Yes,” said Florence, with a bitter laugh and a flash of her brown
-eyes; “his highness has thrown a handkerchief to a new favourite, and
-she has lost no time in picking it up. We always used to call her ‘the
-sultana;’” and she laughed again.
-
-“Perhaps,” suggested Dorothy, “she only means to flirt with him a
-little; I hoped that Jeremy——”
-
-“Jeremy! what chance has Jeremy against him? Ernest would make more way
-with a woman in two hours than Jeremy would in two years. We all love
-to be taken by storm, my dear. Do not deceive yourself. Flirt with him!
-she will love him wildly in a week. Who could help loving him?” she
-added, with a thrill of her rich voice.
-
-Dorothy said nothing: she knew that it was true, and they walked a few
-steps in silence.
-
-“Dorothy, do you know what generally happens to favourites and
-sultanas?”
-
-“No.”
-
-“They come to a bad end; the other ladies of the harem murder them, you
-know.”
-
-“What _do_ you mean?”
-
-“Don’t be frightened; I don’t mean that we should murder my dear
-sister. What I do mean is, that I think we might manage to depose her.
-Will you help me if I find a plan?”
-
-Dorothy’s better self had had time to assert itself by now; the
-influence of the blow was over, and their natures were wide apart
-again.
-
-“No, certainly not,” she answered. “Ernest has a right to choose for
-himself, and if your sister gets the better of us, it is the fortune of
-war, that is all—though certainly the fight is not quite fair,” she
-added, as she thought of Eva’s radiant loveliness.
-
-Florence glanced at her contemptuously.
-
-“You have no spirit,” she said.
-
-“What do you mean to do?”
-
-“Mean to do!” she answered, swinging round and facing her; “I mean to
-have my revenge.”
-
-“O Florence, it is wicked to talk so! whom are you going to be revenged
-on—Ernest? It is not his fault if —if you are fond of him.”
-
-“Yes, it is his fault; but whether it is his fault or not, he shall
-suffer. Remember what I say, for it will come true; he shall suffer.
-Why should I bear it all alone? But he shall not suffer so much as she.
-I told her that I was fond of him, and she promised to leave him
-alone—do you hear that?—and yet she is taking him away from me to
-gratify her vanity—she, who can have anybody she likes.”
-
-“Hush, Florence! Don’t give way to your temper so, or you will be
-overheard. Besides, I daresay that we are making a great deal out of
-nothing; after all, she only gave him a rose.”
-
-“I don’t care if we are overheard, and it is not nothing. I guessed
-that it would be so, I knew that it would be so, and I know what is
-coming now. Mark my words, within a month Ernest and my sweet sister
-will be sitting about on the cliff with their arms around each other’s
-necks. I have only to shut my eyes, and I can see it. O, here is
-Jeremy! Is the carriage there, Jeremy? That’s right. Come on, Dorothy,
-let us go and say good-night and be off. You will drop me at the
-cottage, won’t you?”
-
-Half an hour later the fly that had brought Miss Ceswick and Eva came
-round, and with it Ernest’s dog-cart. But as Miss Ceswick was rather
-anxious about the injured wheel, Ernest, as in duty bound, offered to
-see them safe home, and, ordering the cart to follow, got into the fly
-without waiting for an answer.
-
-Of course Miss Ceswick went to sleep, but it is not probable that
-either Ernest or Eva followed her example. Perhaps they were too tired
-to talk; perhaps they were beginning to find out what a delightful
-companionship is to be found in silence; perhaps his gentle pressure of
-the little white-gloved hand, that lay unresisting in his own, was more
-eloquent than any speech.
-
-Don’t be shocked, my reader; you or I would have done the same, and
-thought ourselves very lucky fellows!
-
-At any rate, that drive was over all too soon.
-
-Florence opened the door for them; she had told the servant to go to
-bed.
-
-When Eva reached the door of her room she turned round to say
-good-night to her sister; but the latter, instead of contenting herself
-with a nod, as was her custom, came and kissed her on the face.
-
-“I congratulate you on your dress and on your conquest,” and again she
-kissed her and was gone.
-
-“It is not like Florence to be so kind,” reflected her younger sister.
-“I can’t remember when she kissed me last.”
-
-Eva did not know that as there are some kisses that declare peace, and
-set the seal on love, there are others that announce war, and proclaim
-the hour of vengeance or treachery. Judas kissed his Master when he
-betrayed Him.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX.
-EVA FINDS SOMETHING
-
-
-When Ernest woke on the morning after the ball it was ten o’clock, and
-he had a severe headache. This—the headache—was his first impression,
-but presently his eye fell upon a withering red rose that lay upon the
-dressing-table, and he smiled. Then followed reflections, those
-confounded reflections that always dog the heels of everything pleasant
-in life, and he ceased to smile.
-
-In the end he yawned and got up. When he reached the sitting-room,
-which looked cool and pleasant in contrast to the hot July sunshine
-that beat upon the little patch of bare turf in front of the house, and
-the glittering sea beyond, he found that the others had done their
-breakfast. Jeremy had gone out, but his sister was there, looking a
-little pale, no doubt from the late hours of the previous night.
-
-“Good-morning, Doll!”
-
-“Good-morning, Ernest,” she answered, rather coldly. “I have been
-keeping your tea as warm as I can, but I’m afraid it is getting cold.”
-
-“You are a good Samaritan, Doll. I’ve got such a head! perhaps the tea
-will make it better.”
-
-She smiled as she gave it to him; had she spoken what was in her mind,
-she would have answered that she had “such a heart.”
-
-He drank the tea, and apparently felt better for it, for presently he
-asked her, in comparatively cheerful tones, how she liked the dance.
-
-“O, very well, thank you, Ernest: how did you like it?”
-
-“O, awfully! I say, Doll!”
-
-“Yes, Ernest.”
-
-“Isn’t she lovely?”
-
-“Who, Ernest?”
-
-“Who! why, Eva Ceswick, of course.”
-
-“Yes, Ernest, she is very lovely.”
-
-There was something about her tone that was not encouraging; at any
-rate he did not pursue the subject.
-
-“Where is Jeremy?” he asked next.
-
-“He has gone out.”
-
-Presently, Ernest, having finished his second cup of tea, went out too,
-and came across Jeremy mooning about the yard.
-
-“Hullo, my hearty! and how are you after your dissipations?”
-
-“All right, thank you,” answered Jeremy, sulkily.
-
-Ernest glanced up quickly. The voice was the voice of Jeremy, but the
-tones were not his tones.
-
-“What is up, old chap?” he said, slipping his arm through his friend’s.
-
-“Nothing.”
-
-“O yes, there is, though. What is it? Out with it? I am a splendid
-father confessor.”
-
-Jeremy freed his arm, and remained sulkier than ever. Ernest looked
-hurt, and the look softened the other.
-
-“Well, of course, if you won’t tell me, there is nothing more to be
-said;” and he prepared to move off.
-
-“As though you didn’t know!”
-
-“Upon my honour I don’t.”
-
-“Then if you’ll come in here, I will tell you;” and Jeremy opened the
-door of the little outhouse, where he stuffed his birds and kept his
-gun and collection of eggs and butterflies, and motioned Ernest
-majestically in.
-
-He entered and seated himself upon the stuffing-table, gazing
-abstractedly at a bittern that Jeremy had shot about the time that this
-story opened, and which was now very moth-eaten, and waved one
-melancholy leg in the air in a way meant to be imposing, but only
-succeeded in being grotesque.
-
-“Well, what is it?” he interrogated of the glassy eye of the decaying
-bittern.
-
-Jeremy turned his broad back upon Ernest—he felt that he could speak
-better on such a subject with his back turned—and, addressing empty
-space before him, said:
-
-“I think it was precious unkind of you.”
-
-“What was precious unkind?”
-
-“To go and cut me out of the only girl——”
-
-“I ever loved?” suggested Ernest, for he was hesitating.
-
-“I ever loved!” chimed in Jeremy; the phrase expressed his sentiments
-exactly.
-
-“Well, old chap, if you would come to the point a little more, and tell
-me who the deuce you are talking about——”
-
-“Why, who should I be talking about? there is only one girl——”
-
-“You ever loved?”
-
-“I ever loved!”
-
-“Well, in the name of the Holy Roman Empire, _who_ is she?”
-
-“Why, Eva Ceswick.”
-
-Ernest whistled.
-
-“I say, old chap,” he said, after a pause, “why didn’t you tell me? I
-didn’t even know that you knew her. Are you engaged to her, then?”
-
-“Engaged! no.”
-
-“Well, then, have you an understanding with her?”
-
-“No, of course not.”
-
-“Look here, old fellow, if you would just slew round a bit and tell me
-how the matter stands, we might get on a little.”
-
-“It doesn’t stand at all, but—I worship the ground she treads on;
-there!”
-
-“Ah!” said Ernest, “that’s awkward, for so do I—at least I think I do.”
-
-Jeremy groaned, and Ernest groaned too, by way of company.
-
-“Look here, old chap,” said the latter, “what is to be done? You should
-have told me, but you didn’t, you see. If you had, I would have kept
-clear. Fact is, she bowled me over altogether, bowled me clean.”
-
-“So she did me.”
-
-“I’ll tell you what, Jeremy, I’ll go away and leave you to make the
-running. Not that I see that there is much good in either of us making
-the running, for we have nothing to marry on, and no more has she.”
-
-“And we are only twenty-one. We can’t marry at twenty-one,” put in
-Jeremy, “or we should have a large family by the time we’re thirty.
-Fellows who marry at twenty-one always do.”
-
-“She’s twenty-one; she told me so.”
-
-“She told me too,” said Jeremy, determined to show that Ernest was not
-the only person favoured with this exciting fact.
-
-“Well, shall I clear? we can’t jaw about it for ever.”
-
-“No,” said Jeremy, slowly, and in a way that showed that it cost him an
-effort to say it, “that would not be fair; besides, I expect that the
-mischief is done; everybody gets fond of you, old fellow, men or women.
-No, you sha’n’t go, and we won’t get to loggerheads over it either.
-I’ll tell you what we will do—we will toss up.”
-
-This struck Ernest as a brilliant suggestion.
-
-“Right you are,” he said, at once producing a shilling; “singles or
-threes?”
-
-“Singles, of course; it’s sooner over.”
-
-Ernest poised the coin on his thumb.
-
-“You call. But, I say, what are we tossing for? We can’t draw lots for
-the girl like the fellows in Homer. We haven’t captured her yet.”
-
-This was obviously a point that required consideration. Jeremy
-scratched his head.
-
-“How will this do?” he said. “The winner to have a month to make the
-running in, the loser not to interfere. If she won’t have anything to
-say to him after a month, then the loser to have his fling. If she
-will, loser to keep clear.”
-
-“That will do. Stand clear; up you go.”
-
-The shilling spun in the air.
-
-“Tails!” howled Jeremy.
-
-It lit on the beak of the astonished bittern and bounded off on to the
-floor, finally rolling under a box full of choice specimens of the
-petrified bones of antediluvian animals that had been washed out of the
-cliffs. The box was lugged out of the way with difficulty, and the
-shilling disclosed.
-
-“Heads it is!” said Ernest exultingly.
-
-“I expected as much; just my luck. Well, shake hands, Ernest. We won’t
-quarrel about the girl, please God.”
-
-They shook hands heartily enough and parted; but from that time for
-many a long day there was an invisible something between them that had
-not been there before. Strong indeed must be the friendship of which
-the bonds do not slacken when the shadow of a woman’s love falls upon
-it.
-
-That afternoon Dorothy said that she wanted to go into Kesterwick to
-make some purchases, and Ernest offered to accompany her. They walked
-in silence as far as Titheburgh Abbey; indeed, they both suffered from
-a curious constraint that seemed effectually to check their usual
-brother-and-sister-like relations. Ernest was just beginning to feel
-the silence awkward when Dorothy stopped.
-
-“What was that?” she said. “I thought I heard somebody cry out.”
-
-They listened, and presently both heard a woman’s voice calling for
-help. The sound seemed to come from the cliff on their left. They
-stepped to the edge and looked over. As may be remembered, some twenty
-feet from the top of the cliff, and fifty or more from the bottom,
-there was at this spot a sandy ledge, on which were deposited many of
-the remains washed out of the churchyard by the sea. Now, this
-particular spot was almost inaccessible without ladders, because,
-although it was easy enough to get down to its level, the cliff bulged
-out on either side of it, and gave for the space of some yards little
-or no hold for the hands or feet of the climber.
-
-The first thing that caught Ernest’s eyes when he looked over was a
-lady’s foot and ankle, which appeared to be resting on a tiny piece of
-rock that projected from the surface of the cliff; the next was the
-imploring face of Eva Ceswick, who was sprawling in a most undignified
-position on the bulge of sandstone, with nothing more between her and
-eternity than that very unsatisfactory and insufficient knob of rock.
-It was evident that she could move neither one way or the other without
-being precipitated to the bottom of the cliff, to which she was
-apparently clinging by suction like a fly.
-
-“Great God!” exclaimed Ernest. “Hold on, I will come to you.”
-
-“I _can’t_ hold much longer.”
-
-It was one thing to say that he would come, and another to do it. The
-sand gave scarcely any foothold; how was he to get enough purchase to
-pull Eva round the bulge? He looked at Dorothy in despair. Her quick
-mind had taken in the situation at a glance.
-
-“You must get down there above her, Ernest, and lie flat, and stretch
-out your hand to her.”
-
-“But there is nothing to hold to. When she puts her weight on to my
-hand we shall both go together.”
-
-“No, I will hold your legs. Be quick, she is getting exhausted.”
-
-It took Ernest but two seconds to reach the spot that Dorothy had
-pointed to, and to lay himself flat, or rather slanting, for his heels
-were a great deal higher than his head. Fortunately, he discovered a
-hard knob of sandstone, against which he could rest his left hand.
-Meanwhile, Dorothy, seating herself as securely as she could above,
-seized him by the ankles. Then Ernest stretched his hand downwards,
-and, gripping Eva by the wrist, began to put out his strength. Had the
-three found any time to indulge their sense of humour, they might have
-found the appearance they presented intensely ludicrous; but they did
-not, for the very good reason that for thirty seconds or so their lives
-were not worth a farthing’s purchase. Ernest strained and strained, but
-Eva was a large woman, although she danced so lightly, and the bulge
-over which he had to pull her was almost perpendicular. Presently he
-felt that Dorothy was beginning to slip above him.
-
-“She must make an effort, or we shall all go,” she said in a quiet
-voice.
-
-“Drive your knees into the sand and throw yourself forward, it is your
-only chance!” gasped Ernest to the exhausted woman beneath him.
-
-She realised the meaning of his words, and gave a desperate struggle.
-
-“Pull, Doll; for God’s sake, pull! she’s coming.”
-
-Then followed a second of despairing effort, and she was beside him on
-the spot where he lay; another struggle, and the three sank exhausted
-on the top of the cliff, rescued from a most imminent death.
-
-“By Jove!” ejaculated Ernest, “that was a near thing!”
-
-Dorothy nodded; she was too exhausted to speak. Eva smiled and fainted.
-
-He turned to her with a little cry and began to chafe her cold hands.
-
-“O, she’s dead, Doll!” he said.
-
-“No, she has fainted, give me your hat.”
-
-Before he could do so she had seized it, and was running as quickly as
-her exhaustion would allow towards a spring that bubbled up a hundred
-yards away, and which once had been the water supply of the old abbey.
-
-Ernest went on rubbing for a minute or more, but without producing the
-slightest effect. He was in despair. The beautiful face beneath him
-looked so wan and death-like; all the red had left her lips. In his
-distress, and scarcely knowing what he did, he bent over them and
-kissed them, once, twice, thrice. That mode of restoration is not
-recommended in the medicine-chest “guide,” but in this instance it was
-not without its effect. Presently a faint and tremulous glow diffused
-itself over the pale cheek; in another moment it deepened to a most
-unmistakable blush. (Was it a half-consciousness of Ernest’s new method
-of treatment, or merely the returning blood, that produced the blush?
-Let us not inquire.) Next Eva sighed, opened her eyes, and sat up.
-
-“O, you are not dead!”
-
-“No, I don’t think so, but I can’t quite remember. What was it? Ah, I
-know;” and she shut her eyes, as though to keep out some horrid sight.
-Presently she opened them again. “You have saved my life,” she said.
-“If it had not been for you, I should have now been lying crushed at
-the foot of that dreadful cliff. I am so grateful.”’
-
-At that moment Dorothy came back with a little water in Ernest’s black
-hat, for in her hurry she had spilled most of it.
-
-“Here, drink some of this,” she said.
-
-Eva tried to do so; but a billycock hat is not a very convenient
-drinking-vessel till you get used to it, and she upset more than she
-swallowed. But what she drank did her good. She put down the hat, and
-they all three laughed a little; it was so funny drinking out of an old
-hat.
-
-“Were you long down there before we came?” asked Dorothy.
-
-“No, not long; only about half a minute on that dreadful bulge.”
-
-“What on earth did you go there for?” said Ernest, putting his dripping
-hat on to his head, for the sun was hot.
-
-“I wanted to see the bones. I am very active, and thought that I could
-get up quite safely; but sand is so slippery. O, I forgot; look here;”
-and she pointed to a thin cord that was tied to her wrist.
-
-“What is that?”
-
-“Why, it is tied to such an odd lead box that I found in the sand. Mr.
-Jones said the other day that he thought it was a bit of an old coffin;
-but it is not, it is a lead box with a rusty iron handle. I could not
-move it much; but I had this bit of cord with me—I thought I might want
-it getting down, you know—so I tied one end of it to the handle.”
-
-“Let us pull it up,” said Ernest, unfastening the cord from Eva’s
-wrist, and beginning to tug.
-
-But the case was too heavy for him to lift alone; indeed, it proved as
-much as they could all three manage to drag it to the top. However, up
-it came at last. Ernest examined it carefully, and came to the
-conclusion that it was very ancient. The massive iron handle at the top
-of the oblong case was almost eaten through with rust, and the lead
-itself was much corroded, although, from fragments that still clung to
-it, it was evident that it had once been protected by an outer case of
-oak. Evidently the case had been washed out of the churchyard where it
-had lain for centuries.
-
-“This is quite exciting,” said Eva, who was now sufficiently interested
-to forget all about her escape. “What can be in it?—treasure or papers,
-I should think.”
-
-“I don’t know,” answered Ernest; “I should hardly think that they would
-bury such things in a churchyard. Perhaps it is a small baby.”
-
-“Ernest,” broke in Dorothy, in an agitated way, “I don’t like that
-thing. I can’t tell you why, but I am sure it is unlucky. I wish that
-you would throw it back to where it came from, or into the sea. It is a
-horrid thing, and we have nearly lost our lives over it already.”
-
-“Nonsense, Doll! whoever thought that you were so superstitious? Why,
-perhaps it is full of money or jewels. Let’s take it home and open it.”
-
-“I am not superstitious, and you can take it home if you like. I will
-not touch it; I tell you it is a horrid thing.”
-
-“All right, Doll, then you sha’n’t have a share of the spoil. Miss
-Ceswick and I will divide it. Will you help me to carry it to the
-house, Miss Ceswick?—that is, unless you are afraid of it, like Doll.”
-
-“O no,” she answered, “I am not afraid; I am dying of curiosity to see
-what is inside.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X.
-WHAT EVA FOUND
-
-
-“You are sure you are not too tired?” said Ernest, after a moment’s
-consideration.
-
-“No, indeed, I have quite recovered,” she answered, with a blush.
-
-Ernest blushed too, from sympathy probably, and went to pick up a bough
-that lay beneath a stunted oak-tree which grew in the ruins of the
-abbey, on the spot where once the altar had stood. This he ran through
-the iron handle, and, directing Eva to catch hold of one end, he took
-the other himself, and they started for the house, Dorothy marching
-solemnly in front.
-
-As it happened, Jeremy and Mr. Cardus were strolling along together
-smoking, when suddenly they caught sight of the cavalcade advancing,
-and hurried to meet it.
-
-“What is all this?” asked Mr. Cardus of Dorothy, who was now nearly
-fifty yards ahead of the other two.
-
-“Well, Reginald, it is a long story. First we found Eva Ceswick
-slipping down the cliff, and dragged her up just in time.”
-
-“My luck again!” thought Jeremy, groaning in spirit.” I might have sat
-on the edge of that cliff for ten years, and never got a chance of
-dragging her up.”
-
-“Then we pulled up that horrid box, which she found down in the sand,
-and tied a cord to.”
-
-“Yes,” exclaimed Ernest, who was now arriving, “and, would you believe
-it, Dorothy wanted us to throw it back again!”
-
-“I know I did; I said that it was unlucky, and it is unlucky.”
-
-“Nonsense, Dorothy! it is very interesting. I expect that it will be
-found to contain deeds buried in the churchyard for safety and never
-dug up again,” broke in Mr. Cardus, much interested. “Let me catch hold
-of that stick, Miss Ceswick, and I daresay that Jeremy will go on and
-get a hammer and a cold chisel, and we will soon solve the mystery.”
-
-“Oh, very well, Reginald; you will see,” said Dorothy.
-
-Mr. Cardus glanced at her. It was curious her taking such an idea. Then
-they walked to the house. On reaching the sitting-room they found
-Jeremy already there with his hammer and chisel. He was an admirable
-amateur blacksmith; indeed, there were few manual trades of which he
-did not know a little, and, placing the case on the table, he set about
-the task of opening it in a most workmanlike manner.
-
-The lead, though it was in places eaten quite away, was still thick and
-sound near the edges, and it took him a good quarter of an hour’s hard
-chopping to remove what appeared to be the front of the case.
-Excitement was at its height as it fell forward with a bang on the
-table; but it was then found that what had been removed was merely a
-portion of an outer case, there being beneath it an inner chest, also
-of lead.
-
-“Well,” said Jeremy, “they fastened it up pretty well;” and then he set
-to work again.
-
-This inner skin of lead was thinner and easier to cut than the first
-had been, and he got through the job more quickly, though not nearly
-quickly enough for the impatience of the bystanders. At last the front
-fell out, and disclosed a small cabinet made of solid pieces of black
-oak and having a hinged door, which was fastened by a tiny latch and
-hasp of the common pattern, that is, probably, as old as doors are.
-From this cabinet there came a strong odour of spices.
-
-The excitement was now intense, and seemed to be shared by everybody in
-the house. Grice had come in through the swing-door and stationed
-herself in the background, Sampson and the groom were peeping through
-the window, and even old Atterleigh, attracted by the sound of the
-hammering, had strolled aimlessly in.
-
-“What can it be?” said Eva, with a gasp.
-
-Slowly Jeremy extracted the cabinet from its leaden coverings and set
-it on the table.
-
-“Shall I open it?” he said; and, suiting the action to the word, he
-lifted the latch, and placing the chisel between the edge of the little
-door and its frame, prised the cabinet open.
-
-The smell of spices became more pronounced than ever, and for a moment
-the cloud of dust that came from them, as their fragments rolled out of
-the cabinet on to the table, prevented the spectators, who, all but
-Dorothy, were crowding up to the case, from seeing what it contained.
-Presently, however, a large whitish bundle became visible. Jeremy put
-in his hand, pulled it out, and laid it on the top of the box. It was
-heavy. But when he had done this he did not seem inclined to go any
-further in the matter. The bundle had, he considered, an uncanny look.
-
-At that moment an interruption took place, for Florence Ceswick entered
-through the open door. She had come up to see Dorothy, and was
-astonished to find such a gathering.
-
-“Why, what is it all about?” she asked.
-
-Somebody told her in as few words as possible, for everybody’s
-attention was concentrated on the bundle, which nobody seemed inclined
-to touch.
-
-“Well, why don’t you open it?” asked Florence.
-
-“I think that they are all afraid,” said Mr. Cardus, with a laugh.
-
-He was watching the various expressions on the faces with an amused
-air.
-
-“Well, I am not afraid, at any rate,” said Florence. “Now, ladies and
-gentlemen, the Gorgon’s head is about to be unveiled: look the other
-way, or you will all be turned to stone.”
-
-“This is getting delightfully ghastly,” said Eva to Ernest.
-
-“I know that it will be something horrid,” added Dorothy.
-
-Meanwhile Florence had drawn out a heavy pin of ancient make, with
-which the wrapping of the bundle was fastened, and begun to unwind a
-long piece of discoloured linen. At the very first turn another shower
-of spices fell out. As soon as these had been swept aside, Florence
-proceeded slowly with her task, and as she removed fold after fold of
-the linen, the bundle began to take shape and form, and the shape it
-took was that of a human head!
-
-Eva saw it, and drew closer to Ernest; Jeremy saw it, and felt inclined
-to bolt; Dorothy saw it, and knew that her presentiments as to the
-disagreeable nature of the contents of that unlucky case were coming
-true; Mr. Cardus saw it, and was more interested than ever. Only
-Florence and Hard-riding Atterleigh saw nothing. Another turn or two of
-the long winding-sheet, and it slipped suddenly away from whatever it
-enclosed.
-
-There was a moment’s dead silence as the company regarded the object
-thus left open to their gaze. Then one of the women gave a low cry of
-fear, and, actuated by some common impulse, they all turned and broke
-from the room in terror, and calling, “It is alive!” No, not all.
-Florence turned pale, but she stood there by the object, the
-winding-sheet in her hands; and old Atterleigh also remained staring at
-it, either paralysed or fascinated.
-
-It, too, seemed to stare at him from its point of vantage on the oak
-chest, in which it had rested for so many centuries.
-
-And this was what he saw there upon the box. Let the reader imagine the
-face and head of a lovely woman of some thirty years of age, the latter
-covered with rippling brown locks of great length, above which was set
-a roughly fashioned coronet studded with uncut gems. Let him imagine
-this face, all but the lips, which were coloured red, pale with the
-bloodless pallor of death, and the flesh so firm and fresh-looking that
-it might have been that of a corpse not a day old; so firm, indeed,
-that the head and all its pendant weight of beautiful hair could stand
-on the unshrunken base of the neck which, in some far-past age, cold
-steel had made so smooth. Then let him imagine the crowning horror of
-this weird sight. The eyes of a corpse are shut, but the eyes in this
-head were wide open, and the long black lashes, as perfect now as on
-the day of death, hung over what, when the light struck them, appeared
-to be two balls of trembling fire, that glittered and rolled and fixed
-themselves upon the face of the observer like living human eyes. It was
-these awful eyes that carried such terror to the hearts of the
-on-lookers when they cast their first glance around, and made them not
-unnaturally cry out that the head was alive.
-
-It was not until he had made a very careful examination of these fiery
-orbs that Mr. Cardus was afterwards able to discover what they were;
-and as the reader may as well understand at once that this head had
-nothing about it different from any other skilfully preserved head, he
-shall be taken into confidence without delay. They were balls of
-crystal fitted, probably by the aid of slender strings, into the eye
-sockets with such infernal art that they shook and trembled to the
-slightest sound, and even on occasion rolled about. The head itself, he
-also discovered, had not been embalmed in the ordinary fashion, by
-extracting the brain, and filling the cavity with spices or bitumen,
-but had been preserved by means of the injection of silica, or some
-kindred substance, into the brain, veins, and arteries, which, after
-permeating all the flesh, had solidified and made it like marble. Some
-brilliant pigment had been used to give the lips their natural colour,
-and the hair had been preserved by means of the spices. But perhaps the
-most dreadful thing about this relic of forgotten ages was the mocking
-smile that the artist who “set it up” had managed to preserve upon the
-face—a smile that just drew the lips up enough to show the white teeth
-beneath, and gave the idea that its wearer had died in the full
-enjoyment of some malicious jest or triumph. It was a terrible thing to
-look on, that long-dead, beautiful face, with its abundant hair, its
-crowning coronet, its moving crystal eyes, and its smile; and yet there
-was something awfully fascinating about it: those who had seen it once
-would always long to see it again.
-
-Mr. Cardus had fled with the rest, but as soon as he got outside the
-swing-door his common sense reasserted itself, and he stopped.
-
-“Come, come,” he called to the others, “don’t be so silly; you are not
-going to run away from a dead woman’s head, are you?”
-
-“You ran too,” said Dorothy, pulling up and gasping.
-
-“Yes, I know I did; those eyes startled me; but, of course, they are
-glass. I am going back; it is a great curiosity.”
-
-“It is an accursed thing,” muttered Dorothy.
-
-Mr. Cardus turned and re-entered the room, and the others, comforting
-themselves with the reflection that it was broad daylight, and drawn by
-their devouring curiosity, followed him. That is, they all followed him
-except Grice, who was ill for two days afterwards. As for Sampson and
-the groom, who had seen the sight through the window, they ran for a
-mile or more along the cliff before they stopped.
-
-When they got back into the room, they found old Atterleigh still
-standing and staring at the crystal eyes, that seemed to be returning
-his gaze with compound interest, while Florence was there with the long
-linen wrapper in her hand, gazing down at the beautiful hair that
-flowed from the head on to the oak box, from the box to the table, and
-from the table nearly to the ground. It was, oddly enough, of the same
-colour and texture as her own. She had taken off her hat when she began
-to undo the wrappings, and they all noticed the fact. Nor did the
-resemblance stop there. The sharp fine features of the mummied head
-were very like Florence’s; so were the beautiful teeth and the fixed
-hard smile. The dead face was more lovely, indeed, but otherwise the
-woman of the Saxon era—for, to judge from the rude tiara on her brow,
-it is probable that she was Saxon—and the living girl of the nineteenth
-century might have been sisters, or mother and daughter. The
-resemblance startled them all as they entered the room, but they said
-nothing.
-
-They drew near, and gazed again without a word. Dorothy was the first
-to break the silence.
-
-“I think she must have been a witch,” she said. “I hope that you will
-have it thrown away, Reginald, for she will bring us bad luck. The
-place where she was buried has been unlucky; it was a great abbey once,
-now it is a deserted ruin. When we tried to get the case up, we were
-all very nearly killed. She will bring us bad luck. I am sure of it.
-Throw it away, Reginald, throw her into the sea. Look, she is just like
-Florence there.”
-
-Florence had smiled at Dorothy’s words, and the resemblance became more
-striking than ever. Eva shuddered as she noticed it.
-
-“Nonsense, Dorothy!” said Mr. Cardus, who was a bit of an antiquarian,
-and had now forgotten his start in his collector’s zeal, “it is a
-splendid find. But I forgot,” he added, in a tone of disappointment,
-“it does not belong to me, it belongs to Miss Ceswick.”
-
-“O, I am sure you are welcome to it, so far as I am concerned,” said
-Eva, hastily. “I would not have it near me on any account.”
-
-“O, very well. I am much obliged to you. I shall value the relic very
-much.”
-
-Florence had meanwhile moved round the table, and was gazing earnestly
-into the crystal eyes.
-
-“What are you doing, Florence?” asked Ernest, sharply, for the scene
-was uncanny, and jarred upon him.
-
-“I?” she answered, with a little laugh; “I am seeking an inspiration.
-That face looks wise, it may teach me something. Besides, it is so like
-my own, I think she must be some far-distant ancestress.”
-
-“So she has noticed it too,” thought Ernest.
-
-“Put her back in the box, Jeremy,” said Mr. Cardus. “I must have an
-air-tight case made.”
-
-“I can do that,” said Jeremy, “by lining the old one with lead, and
-putting a glass front to it.”
-
-Jeremy set about putting the head away, touching it very gingerly. When
-he got it back into the oak case, he dusted it, and placed it upon a
-bracket that jutted from the oak panelling at the end of the room.
-
-“Well,” said Florence, “now that you have put your guardian angel on
-her pedestal, I think that we must be going home. Will any of you walk
-a little way with us?”
-
-Dorothy said that they would all come—that is, all except Mr. Cardus,
-who had gone back to his office. Accordingly they started, and as they
-did so, Florence intimated to Ernest that she wished to speak to him.
-He was alarmed and disappointed, for he was afraid of Florence, and
-wished to walk with Eva, and presumably his face betrayed what was in
-his mind to her.
-
-“Do not be frightened,” she said, with a slight smile; “I am not going
-to say anything disagreeable.”
-
-Of course he replied that he knew that she never could say anything
-disagreeable at any time; at which she smiled again the same faint
-smile, and they dropped behind.
-
-“Ernest,” she said presently, “I want to speak to you. You remember
-what happened between us two evenings ago on this very beach;” for they
-were walking home by the beach.
-
-“Yes, Florence, I remember,” answered Ernest.
-
-“Well, Ernest, the words I have to say are hard for a woman’s lips, but
-I must say them. I made a mistake, Ernest, in telling you that I loved
-you as I did, and in talking all the wild nonsense that I talked. I
-don’t know what made me do it—some foolish impulse, no doubt. Women are
-very curious, you know, Ernest, and I think that I am more curious than
-most. I suppose I thought I loved you, Ernest—I know I thought it when
-you kissed me; but last night, when I saw you at the Smythes’ dance, I
-knew that it was all a mistake, and that I cared for you—no more than
-you cared for me, Ernest. Do you understand me?”
-
-He did not understand her in the least, but he nodded his head, feeling
-vaguely that things were turning out very well for him.
-
-“That is all right; and so here, in the same place where I said them, I
-renounce them. We will forget all that foolish scene, Ernest. I made a
-little mistake when I told you that my heart was as deep as the sea; I
-find that it is shallow as a brook. But will you answer me one
-question, Ernest, before we close this conversation?”
-
-“Yes, Florence, if I can.”
-
-“Well, when you—you kissed me the other night, you did not really mean
-it, did you? I mean you only did so for a freak, or from the impulse of
-the moment, not because you loved me? Don’t be afraid to tell me,
-because if it was so, I shall not be angry; you see you have so much to
-forgive me for. I am breaking faith, am I not?” And she looked him
-straight in the face with her piercing eyes.
-
-Ernest’s glance fell under that searching gaze, and the lie that men
-are apt to think it no shame to use where women are concerned rose to
-his lips. But he could not get it out—he could not bring himself to say
-that he did love her—so he compromised matters.
-
-“I think you were more in earnest than I was, Florence.”
-
-She laughed, a cold little laugh, that somehow made his flesh creep.
-
-“Thank you for being candid: it makes matters so much easier, does it
-not? But, do you know, I suspected as much, when I was standing there
-by that head to-day, just at the time that you took Eva’s hand.”
-
-Ernest started visibly. “Why, your back was turned!” he said.
-
-“Yes, but I saw what you did reflected in the crystal eyes. Well, do
-you know, as I stood there, it seemed to me as though I could consider
-the whole matter as dispassionately and with as clear a brain as though
-I had been that dead woman. All of a sudden I grew wise. But there are
-the others waiting for us.”
-
-“We shall part friends, I hope, Florence?” said Ernest anxiously.
-
-“O yes, Ernest, a woman always follows the career of her old admirer
-with the deepest interest, and for about five seconds you were my
-admirer—when you kissed me, you know. I shall watch all your life, and
-my thoughts shall follow your footsteps like a shadow. Good-night,
-Ernest, good-night;” and again she smiled that mocking smile which was
-so like that on the features of the dead woman, and fixed her piercing
-eyes upon his face. He bade her good-night, and made his way homewards
-with the others, feeling an undefinable dread heavy on his heart.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI.
-DEEP WATERS
-
-
-In due course Jeremy duly fitted up “the witch,” as the mysterious head
-came to be called at Dum’s Ness in her air-tight cabinet, which he
-lengthened till it looked like a clock-case, in order to allow the
-beautiful hair to hang down at full length, retaining, however, the
-original door and ancient latch and hasp. His next step was to fit the
-plate-glass front, and exhaust the air as well as was feasible from the
-interior of the case. Then he screwed on the outside door, and stood it
-back on its bracket in the oak-paneled sitting-room, where, as has been
-said, it looked for all the world like an eight-day clock-case.
-
-Just as he had finished the job, a visitor—it was Mr. de Talor—came in,
-and remarked that he had made a precious ugly clock. Jeremy, who
-disliked _the_ De Talor, as he called him, excessively, said that he
-would not say so when he had seen the works, and at the same time
-unhasped the oak door of the cabinet, and turned the full glare of the
-dreadful crystal eyes on to his face. The results were startling. For a
-moment De Talor stared and gasped; then all the rich hues faded from
-his features, and he sank back in a sort of fit. Jeremy shut up the
-door in a hurry, and his visitor soon recovered; but for years nothing
-would induce him to enter that room again.
-
-As for Jeremy himself, at first he was dreadfully afraid of “the
-witch,” but as time went on—for his job took him several days—he seemed
-to lose his awe of her, and even to find a fearful joy in her society.
-He spent whole hours, as he sat in his workshop in the yard, tinkering
-at the airtight case, in weaving histories in which this beautiful
-creature, whose head had been thus marvellously recovered, played the
-leading part. It was so strange to look at her lovely scornful face,
-and think that, long ages since, men had loved it, and kissed it, and
-played with the waving hair.
-
-There it was, this relic of the dead, preserved by the consummate skill
-of some old monk or chemist, so that it retained all its ancient beauty
-long after the echoes of the tragedy, with which it must have been
-connected, had died out of the world. For, as he wrought at his case,
-Jeremy grew certain that it was the ghastly memento of some enormous
-crime; indeed, by degrees, as he tacked and hammered at the lead
-lining, he made up a history that was quite satisfactory to his mind,
-appealing on doubtful points to the witch herself, who was on the table
-near him, and ascertaining whether she meant “yes” or “no” by the
-simple process of observing whether or not her eyes trembled when he
-spoke. It was slow work getting the story together in this fashion, but
-then the manufacture of the case was slow also, and it was not without
-its charm, for he felt it an honour to be taken into the confidence of
-so lovely a lady.
-
-But if the head had a fascination for Jeremy, it had a still greater
-charm for his grandfather. The old man would continually slip out of
-the office and cross the yard to the little room where Jeremy worked,
-in order to stare at this wonderful relic. One night, indeed, when the
-case was nearly finished, Jeremy remembered that he had not locked the
-door of his workshop. He was already half undressed, but slipping on
-his coat again, he went out by the back door and crossed the yard,
-carrying the key with him. It was bright moonlight, and Jeremy, having
-slippers on, walked without noise. When he reached the workshop, and
-was about to lock the door, he thought he heard a sound in the room.
-This startled him, and for a moment he meditated retreat, leaving the
-head to look after itself. Those eyes were interesting in the daytime,
-but he scarcely cared to face them alone at night. It was foolish, but
-they did look so very much alive! After a moment’s hesitation, during
-which the sound, whatever it was, again made itself audible, he
-determined to compromise matters by going round to the other side of
-the room and looking in at the little window. With a beating heart he
-stole round, and quietly peeped in. The moonlight was shining bright
-into the room, and struck full upon the long case he had manufactured.
-He had left it _shut_, and the head inside it. Now it was open; he
-could clearly see the white outlines of the trembling eyes. The sound,
-too—a muttering sound—was still going on. Jeremy drew back, and wiped
-the perspiration from his forehead, and for the second time thought of
-flight. But his curiosity overcame him, and he looked again. This time
-he discovered the cause of the muttering. Seated upon his
-carpentering-bench was his grandfather, old Atterleigh, who appeared to
-be staring with all his might at the head, and talking incoherently to
-himself. This was the noise he had heard through the door. It was an
-uncanny sight, and made Jeremy feel cold down the back. While he was
-still contemplating it, and wondering what to do, old Atterleigh rose,
-closed the case, and left the room. Jeremy slipped round, locked up the
-door, and made his way back to bed much astonished. He did not,
-however, say anything of what he had seen, only in future he was
-careful never to leave the door of his workshop open.
-
-At last the case was finished, and, for an amateur, a very good job he
-made of it. When it was done he placed it, as already narrated, back on
-the bracket, and showed it to Mr. de Talor.
-
-But from the day when Eva Ceswick nearly fell to the bottom of the
-cliff in the course of her antiquarian researches, things began to go
-wrong at Dum’s Ness. Everybody felt it except Ernest, and he was
-thinking too much of other things. Dorothy was very unhappy in those
-days, and began to look thin and miserable, though she sturdily
-alleged, when asked, that she never had been better in her life. Jeremy
-himself was also unhappy, and for a good reason. He had caught the
-fever that women like Eva Ceswick have it in their power to give to the
-sons of men. His was a deep self-contained nature, very gentle and
-tender, not admitting many things into its affections, but loving such
-as were admitted with all the heart and soul and strength. And it was
-in the deepest depths of this loyal nature that Eva Ceswick had printed
-her image; before he knew it, before he had time to think, it was
-photographed there upon his heart, and he felt that there it must stay
-for good or evil; that plate could never be used again.
-
-She had been so kind to him; her eyes had grown so bright and friendly
-when she saw him coming! He was sure that she liked him (which indeed
-she did), and once he had ventured to press her little hand, and he had
-thought that she returned the pressure, and had not slept all night in
-consequence.
-
-But perhaps this was a mistake. And then, just as he was getting on so
-nicely, came Ernest, and scattered his hopes like mists before the
-morning sun. From the moment that those two met, he knew that it was
-all up with his chance. And next, to make assurance doubly sure,
-Providence itself, in the shape of a shilling, had declared against
-him, and he was left lamenting. Well, it was all fair; but still it was
-very hard, and for the first time in his life he felt inclined to be
-angry with Ernest. Indeed, he was angry, and the fact made him more
-unhappy than ever, because he knew that his anger was unjust, and
-because his brotherly love condemned it.
-
-But for all that, the shadow between them grew darker.
-
-Mr. Cardus, too, had his troubles, connected, needless to say—for
-nothing else ever really troubled him—with his monomania of revenge.
-Mr. de Talor, of whose discomfiture he had at last made sure, had
-unexpectedly slipped out of his power, nor could he at present see any
-way in which to draw him back again. Consequently he was distressed. As
-for Hard-riding Atterleigh, ever since he had found himself fixed by
-“the witch’s” crystal eye, he had been madder than ever, and more
-perfectly convinced that Mr. Cardus was the devil in person. Indeed,
-Dorothy, who watched over the old man, the grandfather who never knew
-her, thought that she observed a marked change in him. He worked away
-at his writing as usual, but, it appeared to her, with more vigour, as
-though it were a thing to encounter and get rid of. He would cut the
-notches out of his stick calendar, too, more eagerly than heretofore,
-and altogether it seemed as though his life had become dominated by
-some new purpose. She called Mr. Cardus’s attention to this change; but
-he laughed, and said that it was nothing, and would probably pass with
-the moon.
-
-But if nobody else was happy, Ernest was—that is, except when he was
-sunk in the depths of woe, which was, on an average, about three days a
-week. On the occasion of these seizures, Dorothy, noting his miserable
-aspect and entire want of appetite, felt much alarmed, and took an
-occasion after supper to ask him what was the matter. Before many
-minutes were over she had cause to regret it; for Ernest burst forth
-with a history of his love and his wrongs that lasted for an hour. It
-appeared that another young gentleman, one of those who danced with the
-lovely Eva at the Smythes’ ball, had been making the most unmistakable
-advances; he had called—three times; he had sent flowers—twice (Ernest
-sent them every morning, beguiling Sampson into cutting the best
-orchid-blooms for that purpose); he had been out walking—once. Dorothy
-listened quietly, till he ceased of his own accord. Then she spoke.
-
-“So you really love her, Ernest?”
-
-“Love her! I”—but we will not enter into a description of this young
-man’s raptures. When he had done, Dorothy did a curious thing. She rose
-from her chair, and coming to where Ernest was sitting, bent over him,
-and kissed him on the forehead, and as she did so he noticed vaguely
-that she had great black rings round her eyes.
-
-“I hope that you will be happy, my dear brother. You will have a lovely
-wife, and I think that she is as good as she is beautiful.” She spoke
-quite quietly, but somehow her voice sounded like a sob. He kissed her
-in acknowledgment, and she glided away.
-
-Ernest did not think much of the incident, however. Indeed, in five
-minutes his thoughts were back with Eva, with whom he really was
-seriously and earnestly in love. In sober truth, the antics that he
-played were enough to make the angels weep to see a human being
-possessing the normal weight of brain making such a donkey of himself.
-For instance, he would promenade for hours at night in the
-neighbourhood of the Cottage. Once he ventured into the garden to enjoy
-the perfect bliss of staring at six panes of glass, got severely bitten
-by the house-dog for his pains, and was finally chased for a mile or
-more by both the dog and the policeman, who, having heard of the
-mysterious figure that was to be seen mooning (in every sense of the
-word) round the Cottage, had laid up to watch for him. Next day he had
-the satisfaction of hearing from his adored’s own lips the story of the
-attempted burglary, but as she told it there was a smile playing about
-the corners of her mouth which almost seemed to indicate that she had
-her suspicions as to who the burglar was. And then Ernest walked so
-very lame, which, considering that the teeth of a brute called Towzer
-had made a big hole in his calf, was not to be wondered at.
-
-After this he was obliged to give up his midnight sighing, but he took
-it out in other ways. Once indeed, without warning, he flopped down on
-to the floor and kissed Eva’s hand, and then, aghast at his own
-boldness, fled from the room.
-
-At first all this amused Eva greatly. She was pleased at her conquest,
-and took a malicious pleasure in leading Ernest on. When she knew that
-he was coming she would make herself look as lovely as possible, and
-put on all her charming little ways and graces in order to more
-thoroughly enslave him. Somehow, whenever Ernest thought of her in
-after years as she was at that period of her life, his memory would
-call up a vision of her in a pretty little drawing-room at the Cottage,
-leaning back in a low chair in such a way as to contrive to show off
-her splendid figure to the best advantage, and also the tiny foot and
-slender ankle that peeped from beneath her soft white dress. There she
-sat, a little Skye-terrier called “Tails” on her lap, with which his
-rival had presented her but a fortnight before, and—yes—actually
-kissing the brute at intervals, her eyes shining all the time with
-innocent coquetry. What would not Ernest have given to occupy for a
-single minute the position of that unappreciative Skye-terrier! It was
-agony to see so many kisses wasted on a dog, and Eva, seeing that he
-thought so, kissed the animal more vigorously than ever.
-
-At last he could stand it no longer. “Put that dog down!” he said,
-peremptorily.
-
-She obeyed him, and then, remembering that he had no right to dictate
-to her what she should do, made an effort to pick it up again; but
-“Tails,” who, be it added, was not used to being kissed in private
-life, and thought the whole operation rather a bore, promptly bolted.
-
-“Why should I put the dog down?” she asked, with a quick look of
-defiance.
-
-“Because I hate to see you kissing it; it is so effeminate.”
-
-He spoke in a masterful way; it was a touch of the curb, and there are
-few things a proud woman hates so much as the first touch of the curb.
-
-“What right have you to dictate what I shall or shall not do?” she
-asked, tapping her foot upon the floor.
-
-Ernest was very humble in those days, and he collapsed.
-
-“None at all. Don’t be angry, Eva” (it was the first time that he had
-called her so; till now she had always been Miss Ceswick), “but the
-fact was I could not bear to see you kissing that dog; I was jealous of
-the brute.”
-
-Whereupon she blushed furiously and changed the subject. But after a
-while Eva’s coquettishness began to be less and less marked. When they
-met she no longer greeted him with a smile of mischief, but with
-serious eyes that once or twice, he thought, bore traces of tears. At
-the same time she threw him into despair by her coldness. Did he
-venture a tender remark, she would pretend not to hear it—alas, that
-the mounting blood should so obstinately proclaim that she did! Did he
-touch her hand, it was cold and unresponsive. She was quieter too, and
-her reserve frightened him. Once he tried to break it, and began some
-passionate appeal, but she rose without answering and turned her face
-to the window. He followed her, and saw that her dark eyes were full of
-tears. This he felt was even more awful than her coldness, and, fearing
-that he had offended her, he obeyed her whispered entreaty and went.
-Poor boy! he was very young. Had he had a little more experience, he
-might have found means to brush away her tears and his own doubts. It
-is a melancholy thing that such opportunities should, as a rule,
-present themselves before people are old enough to take advantage of
-them.
-
-The secret of all this change of conduct was not far to seek. Eva had
-played with edged tools till she cut her fingers to the bone. The
-dark-eyed boy, who danced so well and had such a handsome, happy face,
-had become very dear to her. She had begun by playing with him, and
-now, alas! she loved him better than anybody in the world. That was the
-sting of the thing; she had fallen in love with a _boy_ as young as
-herself—a boy, too, who, so far as she was aware, had no particular
-prospects in life. It was humiliating to her pride to think that she,
-who in the few months that she had been “out” in London, before her
-cousins rose up and cast her forth, had already found the satisfaction
-of seeing one or two men of middle age and established position at her
-feet, and the further satisfaction of requesting them to kneel there no
-more, should in the upshot have to strike her colours to a boy of
-twenty-one, even though he did stand six feet high, and had more wits
-in his young head and more love in his young heart than all her
-middle-aged admirers put together.
-
-Perhaps, though she was a woman grown, she was not herself quite old
-enough to appreciate the great advantage it is to any girl to stamp her
-image upon the heart of the man she loves while the wax is yet soft and
-undefaced by the half worn-out marks of many shallow dies; perhaps she
-did not know what a blessing it is to be able to really _love_ a man at
-all, young, middle-aged, or old. Many women wait till they cannot love
-without shame to make that discovery. Perhaps she forgot that Ernest’s
-youth was a fault which would mend day by day, and he had abilities,
-which, if she would consent to inspire them, might lead him to great
-things. At any rate, two facts remained in her mind after much
-thinking: she loved him with all her heart, and she was ashamed of it.
-
-But as yet she could not make up her mind to any fixed course. It would
-have been easy to crush poor Ernest, to tell him that his pretensions
-were ridiculous, to send him away, or to go away herself, and so to
-make an end of a position that she felt was getting absurd, and which
-we may be sure her elder sister Florence did nothing to make more
-pleasant. But she could not do it; that was the long and short of the
-matter. The idea of living without Ernest made her feel cold all over;
-it seemed to her that the only hours that she really did live were the
-hours which they spent together, and that when he went away he took her
-heart with him. No, she could not make up her mind to that; the thought
-was too cruel. Then there was the other alternative—to encourage him a
-little and become engaged to him, to brave everything for his sake. But
-as yet she could not make up her mind to that either.
-
-Eva Ceswick was very loving, very sweet, and very good, but she did not
-possess a determined mind.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII.
-DEEPER YET
-
-
-While Ernest was wooing and Eva doubting, Time, whose interest in
-earthly affairs is that of the sickle in the growing crop, went on his
-way as usual.
-
-The end of August came, as it has come so many thousand times since
-this globe gave its first turn in space, as it will come for many
-thousand times more, till at last, its appointed course run out, the
-world darkens, quivers, and grows still; and, behold! Ernest was still
-wooing, Eva still doubting.
-
-One evening—it was a very beautiful evening—this pair were walking
-together on the sea-shore. Whether they met by appointment or by
-accident does not matter; they did meet, and there they were, strolling
-along together, as fully charged with intense feeling as a
-thunder-cloud with electricity, and almost as quiet. The storm had not
-yet burst.
-
-To listen to the talk of these two, they might have met for the first
-time yesterday. It was chiefly about the weather.
-
-Presently, in the course of their wanderings, they came to a little
-sailing-boat drawn up upon the beach—not far up, however, just out of
-the reach of the waves. By this boat, in an attitude of intense
-contemplation, there stood an ancient mariner. His hands were in his
-pockets, his pipe was in his mouth, his eyes were fixed upon the deep.
-Apparently he did not notice their approach till they were within two
-yards of him. Then he turned, “dashed” himself, and asked the lady,
-with a pull of his grizzled fore-lock, if she would not take a sail.
-
-Ernest looked surprised.
-
-“How’s the wind?” he asked.
-
-“Straight off shore, sir; will turn with the turn of the tide, sir, and
-bring you back.”
-
-“Will you come for a bit of a sail, Eva?”
-
-“O no, thank you. I must be getting home; it is seven o’clock.”
-
-“There is no hurry for you to get home. Your aunt and Florence have
-gone to tea with the Smythes.”
-
-“Indeed, I cannot come; I could not think of such a thing.”
-
-Her words were unequivocal, but the ancient mariner put a strange
-interpretation upon them. First he hauled up the little sail, and then,
-placing his brown hands against the stern of the boat, he rested his
-weight upon them, and caused her to travel far enough into the waves to
-float her bow.
-
-“Now, miss.”
-
-“I am not coming, indeed.”
-
-“_Now,_ miss.”
-
-“I will _not_ come, Ernest.”
-
-“Come,” said Ernest, quietly holding out his hand to help her in.
-
-She took it and got in. Ernest and the mariner gave a strong shove, and
-as the light boat took the water the former leaped in, and at the same
-second a puff of wind caught the sail, and took them ten yards out or
-more.
-
-“Why, the sailor is left behind!” said Eva.
-
-Ernest gave a twist to the tiller to get the boat’s head straight off
-shore, and then leisurely looked round. The mariner was standing as
-they had found him, his hands in his pockets, his pipe in his mouth,
-his eye fixed upon the deep.
-
-“He doesn’t seem to mind it,” he said, meditatively.
-
-“Yes, but I do; you must go back and fetch him.”
-
-Thus appealed to, Ernest went through some violent manoeuvres with the
-tiller, without producing any marked effect on the course of the boat,
-which by this time had got out of the shelter of the cliff, and was
-bowling along merrily.
-
-“Wait till we get clear of the draught from the cliff, and I will bring
-her round.”
-
-But when at last they were clear from the draught of the cliff, and he
-slowly got her head round, lo and behold, the mariner had vanished!
-
-“How unfortunate!” said Ernest, getting her head towards the open sea
-again; “he has probably gone to his tea.”
-
-Eva tried hard to get angry, but somehow she could not: she only
-succeeded in laughing.
-
-“If I thought that you had done this on purpose, I would never come out
-with you again.”
-
-Ernest looked horrified. “On purpose!” he said; and the subject
-dropped.
-
-They were sitting side by side in the stern-sheets of the boat, and the
-sun was just dipping all red-hot into the ocean. Under the lee of the
-cliff there were cool shadows; before them was a path of glory that led
-to a golden gate. The air was very sweet, and for those two all the
-world was lovely; there was no sorrow on the earth, there were no
-storms upon the sea.
-
-Eva took off her hat, and let the sweet breeze play upon her brow. Then
-she leaned over the side, and, dipping her hand into the cool water,
-watched the little track it made.
-
-“Eva.”
-
-“Yes, Ernest.”
-
-“Do you know I am going away?”
-
-The hand was withdrawn with a start.
-
-“Going away! when?”
-
-“The day after to-morrow; to Guernsey first, then to France.”
-
-“And when are you coming back again?”
-
-“I think that depends upon you, Eva.”
-
-The hand went back into the water. They were a mile or more from the
-shore now. Ernest manipulated the sail and tiller so as to sail slowly
-parallel with the coast-line. Then he spoke again.
-
-“Eva.”
-
-No answer.
-
-“Eva, for God’s sake look at me!”
-
-There was something in his voice that forced her to obey. She took her
-hand out of the water and turned her eyes on to his face. It was pale,
-and the lips were quivering.
-
-“I love you,” he said, in a low, choked voice.
-
-She grew angry. “Why did you bring me here? I will go home. This is
-nonsense; you are nothing but a boy!”
-
-There are moments in life when the human face is capable of conveying a
-more intense and vivid impression than any words, when it seems to
-speak to the very soul in a language of its own. And so it was with
-Ernest now: he made no answer to her reproaches, but, if that were
-possible, his features grew paler yet, and his eyes, shining like
-stars, fixed themselves upon her, and drew her to him. And what they
-said she and he knew alone, nor could any words convey it, for the
-tongue in which they talked is not spoken in this world.
-
-A moment still she wavered, fighting against the sweet mastery of his
-will with all her woman’s strength, and then—O Heaven! it was done, and
-his arms were round about her, her head upon his breast, and her voice
-was lost in sobs and broken words of love.
-
-O, radiant-winged hour of more than mortal joy; the hearts which you
-have touched will know when their time comes that they have not beat
-quite in vain!
-
-[Illustration: “O, radiant-winged hour!”]
-
-And so they sat, those two, quite silent, for there seemed to be no
-need for speech; words could not convey half they had to say, and,
-indeed, to tell the honest truth, their lips were, for the most part,
-otherwise employed.
-
-Meanwhile the sun went down, and the sweet moon arose over the quiet
-sea, and turned their little ship to silver. Eva gently disengaged
-herself from his arms, and half-rose to look at it; she had never
-thought it half so beautiful before. Ernest looked at it too. It is a
-way that lovers have.
-
-“Do you know the lines?” he said; “I think I can say them:
-
-‘With a swifter motion,
-Out upon the ocean,
-Heaven above and round us, and you along with me:
-Heaven around and o’er us,
-The Infinite before us,
-Floating on for ever, upon the flowing sea.’”
-
-
-“Go on,” she said, softly.
-
-“‘What time is it, dear, now?
-We are in the year now
-Of the New Creation, one million, two, or three;
-But where are we now, love?
-We are, as I trow, love,
-In the Heaven of Heavens, upon the Crystal Sea.’”
-
-
-“That is how I hope it may be with us, dear,” she said, taking his
-hand, as the last words passed his lips.
-
-“Are you happy now?” he asked her.
-
-“Yes, Ernest, I am happy indeed. I do not think that I shall ever be so
-happy again; certainly I never was so happy before. Do you know, dear,
-I wish to tell you so, that you may see how mean I have been; I have
-fought so hard against my love for you.”
-
-He looked pained. “Why?” he asked.
-
-“I will tell you quite truly, Ernest—because you are so young. I was
-ashamed to fall in love with a boy, and yet you see, dear, you have
-been too strong for me.”
-
-“Why, there is no difference in our ages!”
-
-“Ah, Ernest, but I am a woman, and ever so much older than you. We age
-so much quicker, you know. I feel about old enough to be your mother,”
-she said, with a pretty assumption of dignity.
-
-“And I feel quite old enough to be your lover,” he replied,
-impertinently.
-
-“So it seems. But, Ernest, if three months ago anybody had told me that
-I should be in love to-day with a boy of twenty-one, I would not have
-believed them. Dear, I have given you all my heart; you will not betray
-me, will you? You know very young men are apt to change their minds.”
-
-He flushed a little as he answered, feeling that it was tiresome to
-have the unlucky fact that he was only twenty-one so persistently
-thrust before him.
-
-“Then they are young men who have not had the honour of winning your
-affections. A man who has once loved you could never forget you.
-Indeed, it is more likely that you will forget me; you will have plenty
-of temptation to do so.”
-
-She saw that she had vexed him. “Don’t be angry, dear; but you see the
-position is a very difficult one, and, if I could not be quite sure of
-you, it would be intolerable.”
-
-“My darling, you may be as sure of me as woman can be of man; but don’t
-begin your doubts over again. They are settled now. Let us be quite
-happy just this one evening. No doubt there are plenty coming when we
-shall not be able to.”
-
-And so they kissed each other and sailed on—homeward, alas! for it was
-getting late—and were perfectly happy.
-
-Presently they drew near the shore, and there, at the identical spot
-where they had left him, stood the ancient mariner. His hands were in
-his pockets, his pipe was in his mouth, his eyes were fixed upon the
-deep.
-
-Ernest grounded the little boat skilfully enough, and, jumping over the
-bow, he and the mariner pulled it up. Then Eva got out, and as she did
-so she thought, in the moonlight, that she noticed something resembling
-a twinkle in the latter’s ancient eye. She felt confused—there is
-nothing so confusing as a guilty conscience—and, to cover her
-confusion, plunged into conversation, while Ernest was finding some
-money to pay for the boat.
-
-“Do you often let boats?” she asked.
-
-“No, miss, only to Mr. Ernest in a general way” (so that wicked Ernest
-had set a trap to catch her).
-
-“O, then, I suppose you go out fishing?”
-
-“No, miss, only for rikkration, like.”
-
-“Then what do you do?”—she was getting curious on the point.
-
-“Times I does nothing; times I stands on the beach and sees things;
-times I runs cheeses, miss.”
-
-“Run cheeses!”
-
-“Yes, miss, Dutch ones.”
-
-“He means that he brings cargoes of Dutch cheeses to Harwich.”
-
-“Oh!” said Eva.
-
-Ernest paid the man, and they turned to go. She had not gone many yards
-when she felt a heavy hand laid upon her shoulder. Turning round in
-astonishment, she perceived the mariner.
-
-“I say, miss,” he said, in a hoarse whisper.
-
-“Well, what?”
-
-“_Niver you eat the rind of a Dutch cheese!_ I says it as knows.”
-
-Eva did not forget his advice.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII.
-MR. CARDUS UNFOLDS HIS PLANS
-
-
-“Ernest,” said Mr. Cardus, on the morning following the events
-described in the previous chapter, “I want to speak to you in my
-office—and you too, Jeremy.”
-
-They both followed him into his room, wondering what was the matter. He
-sat down and so did they, and then, as was his habit, letting his eyes
-stray over every part of their persons except their faces, he began:
-
-“It is time that you two fellows took to doing something for
-yourselves. You must not learn to be idle men—not that most young men
-require much teaching in that way. What do you propose to do?”
-
-Jeremy and Ernest stared at one another rather blankly, but apparently
-Mr. Cardus did not expect an answer. At any rate, he went on before
-either of them could frame one.
-
-“You don’t seem to know, never gave the matter any consideration
-probably; quite content to obey the Bible literally, and take no
-thought for the morrow. Well, it is lucky that you have somebody to
-think for you. Now I will tell you what I propose for you both. I want
-you, Ernest, to go to the bar. It is a foolish profession for most
-young men to take to, but it will not be so in your case, because, as
-it happens, if you show yourself capable, I shall by degrees be able to
-put a good deal of business in your hands—Chancery business, for I have
-little to do with any other. I daresay that you will wonder where the
-business is to come from. I don’t seem to do very much here, do I? with
-a mad old hunting-man as a clerk, and Dorothy to copy my private
-letters; but I do, for all that. I may as well tell you both, in
-confidence, that this place is only the head-centre of my business. I
-have another office in London, another at Ipswich, and another at
-Norwich, though they all carry on business under different names;
-besides which I have other agencies of a different nature. But all this
-is neither here nor there. I have communicated with Aster, the rising
-Chancery man, and he will have a vacancy in his chambers next term. Let
-me see—term begins on November 2nd; I propose, Ernest, to write to-day
-to enter you at Lincoln’s Inn. I shall make you an allowance of three
-hundred a year, which you must clearly understand you must not exceed.
-I think that is all I have to say about the matter.”
-
-“I am sure I am very much obliged to you, uncle—” began Ernest,
-fervently, for since the previous evening he had clearly realised that
-it was necessary for him to make a beginning of doing something.
-
-But his uncle cut him short.
-
-“All right, Ernest, we will understand all that. Now, Jeremy, for you.
-I propose that you shall be articled to me, and if you work well and
-prove useful, it is my intention in time to admit you to a share of the
-business. In order that you may not feel entirely dependent, it is my
-further intention to make you an allowance also, on the amount of which
-I have not yet settled.”
-
-Jeremy groaned in spirit at the thought of becoming a lawyer, even with
-a “share of the business,” but he remembered his conversation with
-Dorothy, and thanked Mr. Cardus with the best grace that he could
-muster.
-
-“All right, then; I will have the articles prepared at once, and you
-can take to your stool in the office next week. I think that is all I
-have to say.”
-
-Acting on this hint, the pair were departing, Jeremy in the deepest
-state of depression, induced by the near prospect of that stool, when
-Mr. Cardus called Ernest back.
-
-“I want to speak to you about something else,” he said thoughtfully.
-“Shut the door.”
-
-Ernest turned cold down his back, and wondered if his uncle could have
-heard anything about Eva. He had the full intention of speaking to him
-about the matter, but it would be awkward to be boarded himself before
-he had made up his mind what to say. He shut the door, and then walking
-to the glass entrance to the orchid blooming-house, stood looking at
-the flowers, and waiting for Mr. Cardus to begin. But he did not begin;
-he seemed to be lost in thought.
-
-“Well, uncle,” he said at last.
-
-“It is a delicate business, Ernest, but I may as well get it over. I am
-going to make a request of you, a request to which I beg you will give
-me no immediate answer, for from its nature it will require the most
-anxious and careful consideration. I want you to listen, and say
-nothing. You can give me your answer when you come back from abroad. At
-the same time, I must tell you that it is a matter which I trust you
-will not disappoint me in; indeed, I do not think that you could be so
-cruel as to do so. I must also tell you that if you do, you must
-prepare to be a great loser, financially speaking.”
-
-“I have not the faintest idea what you are driving at, uncle,” said
-Ernest, turning from the glass door to speak.
-
-“I know you have not. I will tell you. Listen; I will tell you a little
-story. Many years ago a great misfortune overtook me, a misfortune so
-great that it struck me as lightning sometimes does a tree—it left the
-bark sound, but turned the heart to ashes. Never mind what the details
-were, they were nothing out of the common; such things sometimes happen
-to men and women. The blow was so severe that it almost turned my
-brain, so from that day I gave myself to revenge. It sounds
-melodramatic, but there was nothing of the sort about it. I had been
-cruelly wronged, and I determined that those who had wronged me should
-taste of their own medicine. With the exception of one man they have
-done so. He has escaped me for a time, but he is doomed. To pass on.
-The woman who caused the trouble—for wherever there is trouble there is
-generally a woman who causes it—had children. Those children are
-Dorothy and her brother. I adopted them. As time went on, I grew to
-love the girl for her likeness to her mother. The boy I never loved; to
-this hour I cannot like him, though he is a gentleman, which his father
-never was. I can, however, honestly say that I have done my duty by
-him. I have told you all this in order that you may understand the
-request which I am going to make. I trust to you never to speak of it,
-and if you can to forget it. And now for my request itself.”
-
-Ernest looked up wonderingly.
-
-“It is my most earnest desire that you should marry Dorothy.”
-
-His listener started violently, turned quite pale, and opened his lips
-to speak. Mr. Cardus lifted his hand and went on:
-
-“Remember what I asked you. Pray say nothing; only listen. Of course I
-cannot force you into this or any other marriage. I can only beg you to
-give heed to my wishes, knowing that they will in every way prove to
-your advantage. That girl has a heart of gold; and if you marry her you
-shall inherit nearly all my fortune, which is now very large. I have
-observed that you have lately been about a great deal with Eva Ceswick.
-She is a handsome woman, and very likely has taken some hold upon your
-fancy. I warn you that any entanglement in that direction would be most
-disagreeable to me, and would to a great extent destroy your prospects,
-so far as I am concerned.”
-
-Again Ernest was about to speak, and again his uncle stopped him.
-
-“I want no confidences, Ernest, and had much rather that no words
-passed between us that we might afterwards regret. And now I understand
-that you are going abroad with your friend Batty for a couple of
-months. When you return you shall give me your answer about Dorothy. In
-the meanwhile here is a cheque for your expenses: what is over you can
-spend as you like. Perhaps you have some bills to pay.”
-
-He gave him a folded cheque, and then went on:
-
-“Now leave me, as I am busy.”
-
-Ernest walked out of the room in a perfect maze. In the yard he
-mechanically unfolded the cheque. It was for a large sum—two hundred
-and fifty pounds. He put it in his pocket, and began to reflect upon
-his position, which was about as painful as a position can well be.
-Truly he was on the horns of a dilemma; probably before he was much
-older, one of them would have pierced him. For a moment he was about to
-return to his uncle and tell him all the truth, but on reflection he
-could not see what was to be gained by such a course. At any rate, it
-seemed to him that he must first consult Eva, whom he had arranged to
-meet on the beach at three o’clock; there was nobody else whom he could
-consult, for he was shy of talking about Eva to Jeremy or Dolly.
-
-The rest of that morning went very ill for Ernest, but three o’clock
-came at last, and found him at the trysting-place.
-
-About a mile on the farther side of Kesterwick, that is, two miles or
-so from Titheburgh Abbey, the cliff jutted out into the sea in a way
-that corresponded very curiously with the little promontory known as
-Dum’s Ness, the reason of its resistance to the action of the waves
-being that it was at this spot composed of an upcrop of rock of a more
-durable nature than the sandstone and pebbles of the remainder of the
-line of cliff. Just at the point of this promontory the waves had worn
-a hollow in the rock that was locally dignified by the name of the
-Cave. For two hours or more at high tide this hollow was under water,
-and it was, therefore, impossible to pass the headland except by boat;
-but during the rest of the day it formed a convenient grotto or
-trysting-place, the more so as anybody sitting in it was quite
-invisible either from the beach, the cliff above, or indeed, unless the
-boat was quite close in shore, the sea in front.
-
-Here it was that Ernest had arranged to meet Eva, and on turning the
-rocky corner of the cave he found her sitting on a mass of fallen rock
-waiting for him. At the sight of her beautiful form he forgot all his
-troubles, and when rising to greet him, blushing like the dawn, she
-lifted her pure face for him to kiss, there was not a happier lad in
-England. Then she made room for him beside her—the rock was just wide
-enough for two—and he placed his arm round her waist, and for a minute
-or two she laid her head upon his shoulder, and they were very happy.
-
-“You are early,” he said at last.
-
-“Yes; I wanted to get away from Florence and have a good think. You
-have no idea how unpleasant she is; she seems to know everything. For
-instance, she knew that we went out sailing together last evening, for
-this morning at breakfast she said in the most cheerful way that she
-hoped that I enjoyed my moonlight sail last night.”
-
-“The deuce she did! and what did you say?”
-
-“I said that I enjoyed it very much, and luckily my aunt did not take
-any notice.”
-
-“Why did you not say at once that we were engaged? We _are_ engaged,
-you know.”
-
-“Yes—that is, I suppose so.”
-
-“Suppose so! There is no supposition about it. At least, if we are not
-engaged, what are we?”
-
-“Well, you see, Ernest, it sounds so absurd to say that one is engaged
-to a boy! I love you, Ernest, love you dearly, but how can I say that I
-am engaged to you?”
-
-Ernest rose in great wrath. “I tell you what it is, Eva, if I am not
-good enough to acknowledge, I am not good enough to have anything to do
-with. A boy, indeed! I am one-and-twenty; that is full age. Confound it
-all! you are always talking about my being so young, just as though I
-should not get old fast enough. Can’t you wait for me a year or two?”
-he asked, with tears of mortification in his eyes.
-
-“O Ernest, Ernest, do be reasonable, there’s a dear; what is the good
-of getting angry and making me wretched? Come and sit down here, dear,
-and tell me, am _I_ not worth a little patience? There is not the
-slightest possibility, so far as I can see, of our getting married at
-present; so the question is, if it is of any use to trumpet out an
-engagement that will only make us the object of a great deal of gossip,
-and which, perhaps, your uncle would not like?”
-
-“O, by Jove!” he said, “that reminds me;” and sitting down beside her
-again, he told her the story of the interview with his uncle. She
-listened in silence.
-
-“This is all very bad,” she said, when he had finished.
-
-“Yes, it is bad enough; but what is to be done?”
-
-“There is nothing to be done at present.”
-
-“Shall I make a clean breast of it to him?”
-
-“No, no, not now; it will only make matters worse. We must wait, dear.
-You must go abroad for a couple of months, as you had arranged, and
-then when you come back we must see what can be arranged.”
-
-“But, my dearest, I cannot bear to leave you; it makes my heart ache to
-think of it.”
-
-“Dear, I know that it is hard; but it must be done. You could not stop
-here now very well without speaking about our—our engagement, and to do
-that would only be to bring your uncle’s anger on you. No, you had
-better go away, Ernest, and meanwhile I will try to get into Mr.
-Cardus’s good graces, and, if I fail, then when you come back we must
-agree upon some plan. Perhaps by that time you will take your uncle’s
-view of the matter and want to marry Dorothy. She would make you a
-better wife than I shall, Ernest, my dear.”
-
-“Eva, how can you say such things! it is not kind of you!”
-
-“O, why not? It is true. O yes, I know that I am better-looking, and
-that is what you men always think of; but she has more brains, more
-fixity of mind, and, perhaps, for all I know, more heart than I have,
-though, for the matter of that, I feel as if I was all heart just now.
-Really, Ernest, you had better transfer your allegiance. Give me up,
-and forget me, dear; it will save you much trouble. I know that there
-is trouble coming; it is in the air. Better marry Dorothy, and leave me
-to fight my sorrow out alone. I will release you, Ernest;” and she
-began to cry at the bare idea.
-
-“I shall wait to give you up until you have given me up,” said Ernest,
-when he had found means to stop her tears; “and as for forgetting you,
-I can never do that. Please, dear, don’t talk so any more; it pains
-me.”
-
-“Very well, Ernest; then let us vow eternal fidelity instead; but, my
-dear, I _know_ that I shall bring you trouble.”
-
-“It is the price that men have always paid for the smiles of women like
-you,” he answered. “Trouble may come—so be it, let it come; at any
-rate, I have the consciousness of your love. When I have lost that,
-then, and then only, shall I think that I have bought you too dear.”
-
-In the course of his after life these words often came back to Ernest’s
-mind.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV.
-GOOD-BYE
-
-
-There are some scenes, trivial enough perhaps in themselves, that yet
-retain a peculiar power of standing out in sharp relief, as we cast our
-mind’s eye down the long vista of our past. The group of events with
-which these particular scenes were connected may have long ago vanished
-from our mental sight, or faded into a dim and misty uniformity, and be
-as difficult to distinguish one from the other as the trees of a forest
-viewed from a height. But here and there an event, a sensation, or a
-face will stand out as perfectly clear as if it had been that moment
-experienced, felt, or seen. Perhaps it is only some scene of our
-childhood, such as a fish darting beneath a rustic bridge, and the
-ripple which its motion left upon the water. We have seen many larger
-fish dart in many fine rivers since then, and have forgotten them; but
-somehow that one little fish has kept awake in the storehouse of our
-brain, where most things sleep, though none are really obliterated.
-
-It was in this clear and brilliant fashion that every little detail of
-the scene was indelibly photographed on Ernest’s mind when, on the
-morning following their meeting in the cave, he said good-bye to Eva
-before he went abroad. It was a public good-bye, for, as it happened,
-there was no opportunity for the lovers to meet alone. They were all
-gathered in the little drawing-room at the Cottage: Miss Ceswick seated
-on a straight-backed chair in the bow-window; Ernest on one side of the
-round table, looking intensely uncomfortable; Eva on the other, a
-scrapbook in her hand, which she studiously kept before her face; and
-in the background, leaning carelessly over the back of a chair in such
-a way that her own face could not be seen, though she could survey
-everybody else’s, was Florence. Ernest, from where he sat, could just
-make out the outline of her olive face, and the quick glance of her
-brown eyes.
-
-And so they sat for a long time, but what was said he could not
-remember; it was only the scene that imprinted itself upon his memory.
-
-And then at last the fatal moment came—he knew that it was time to go,
-and said good-bye to Miss Ceswick, who made some remark about his good
-fortune in going to France and Italy, and warned him to be careful not
-to lose his heart to a foreign girl. Then he crossed the room and shook
-hands with Florence, who smiled coolly in his face, and read him
-through with her piercing eyes; and last of all came to Eva, who
-dropped her album and a pocket-handkerchief in her confusion as she
-rose to give him her hand. He stooped and picked them up—the album he
-placed on the table, the little lace-edged handkerchief he crumpled up
-in the palm of his left hand and kept; it was almost the only souvenir
-he had of her. Then he took her hand, and for a moment looked into her
-face. It wore a smile, but beneath it the features were wan and
-troubled. It was so hard to go.
-
-“Well, Ernest,” said Miss Ceswick, “you two are taking leave of each
-other as solemnly as though you were never going to meet again.”
-
-“Perhaps they never will,” said Florence, in her clear voice; and at
-that moment Ernest felt as though he hated her.
-
-“You should not croak, Florence; it is unlucky,” said Miss Ceswick.
-
-Florence smiled.
-
-Then Ernest dropped the cold hand, and turning, left the room. Florence
-followed him, and, snatching a hat from the pegs, passed into the
-garden before him. When he was half-way down the garden-walk, he found
-her ostensibly picking some carnations.
-
-“I want to speak to you for a minute, Ernest,” she said; “turn this way
-with me;” and she led him past the bow-window, down a small
-shrubbery-walk about twenty paces long. “I must offer you my
-congratulations,” she went on. “I hope that you two will be happy. Such
-a handsome pair ought to be happy, you know.”
-
-“Why, Florence, who told you?”
-
-“Told me! nobody told me. I have seen it all along. Let me see, you
-first took a fancy to one another on the night of the Smythes’ dance,
-when she gave you a rose, and the next day you saved her life quite in
-the romantic and orthodox way. Well, and then events took their natural
-course, till one evening you went out sailing together in a boat. Shall
-I go on?”
-
-“I don’t think it is necessary, Florence, I am sure I don’t know how
-you know all these things.”
-
-She had stopped, and was standing slowly picking a carnation to pieces
-leaf by leaf.
-
-“Don’t you?” she answered, with a laugh. “Lovers are blind; but it does
-not follow that other people are. I have been thinking, Ernest, that it
-is very fortunate that I found out my little mistake before you
-discovered yours. Supposing I really had cared for you, the position
-would have been awkward now, would it not?”
-
-Ernest was forced to admit that it would.
-
-“But luckily, you see, I do not. I am only your true friend now,
-Ernest; and it is as a friend that I wish to say a word to you about
-Eva—a word of warning.”
-
-“Go on.”
-
-“You love Eva, and Eva loves you, Ernest; but remember this, she is
-weak as water. She always was so from a child; those beautiful women
-often are; Nature does not give them everything, you see.”
-
-“What do you mean?”
-
-“What I say, nothing more. She is very weak; and you must not be
-surprised if she throws you over.”
-
-“Good heavens, Florence! Why, she loves me with all her heart!”
-
-“Yes; but women often think of other things besides their hearts. But
-there, I don’t want to frighten you, only I would not pin all my faith
-to Eva’s constancy, however dearly you may think she loves you. Don’t
-look so distressed, Ernest; I did not wish to pain you. And remember
-that if any difficulty should arise between Eva and you, you will
-always have me on your side. You will always think of me as your true
-friend, won’t you, Ernest?” and she held out her hand.
-
-He took it.
-
-“Indeed I will,” he said.
-
-They had turned now, and again reached the bow-window, one of the
-divisions of which stood open. Florence touched his arm, and pointed
-into the room. He looked in through the open window. Miss Ceswick had
-gone, but Eva was still at her old place by the table. Her head was
-down upon the table, resting on the album he had picked up, and he
-could see from the motion of her shoulders that she was sobbing
-bitterly. Presently she lifted her face—it was all stained with
-tears—only, however, to drop it again. Ernest made a motion as though
-he would enter the house, but Florence stopped him.
-
-“Best leave her alone,” she whispered; and then, when they were well
-past the window, added aloud, “I am sorry that you saw her like that;
-if you should never meet again, or be separated for a very long time,
-it will leave a painful recollection in your mind. Well, good-bye. I
-hope that you will enjoy yourself.”
-
-Ernest shook hands in silence—there was a lump in his throat that
-prevented him from speaking—and then went on his way, feeling utterly
-miserable. As for Florence, she put up her hand to shade her keen eyes
-from the sun, and watched him till he turned the corner with a look of
-intense love and longing, which slowly changed into one of bitter hate.
-When he was out of sight she turned, and, making her way to her
-bedroom, flung herself upon the bed, and, burying her face in the
-pillow to stifle the sound of her sobbing, gave way to an outburst of
-jealous rage that was almost awful in its intensity.
-
-Ernest had only just time to get back to Dum’s Ness, and go through the
-form of eating some luncheon, before he was obliged to start to catch
-his train. Dorothy had packed his things, and made all those little
-preparations for his journey that women think of; so, after going to
-the office to bid good-bye to his uncle, who shook him heartily by the
-hand, and bade him not forget the subject of their conversation, he had
-nothing to do but jump into the cart and start. In the sitting-room he
-found Dorothy waiting for him, with his coat and gloves, also Jeremy,
-who was going to drive to the station with him. He put on his coat in
-silence; they were all quite silent; indeed, he might have been going
-for a long sojourn in a deadly climate, instead of a two months’
-pleasure-tour, so depressed was everybody.
-
-“Good-bye, Doll dear,” he said, stooping to kiss her; but she shrank
-away from him. In another minute he was gone.
-
-At the station a word or two about Eva passed between Jeremy and
-himself.
-
-“Well, Ernest,” asked the former nervously, “have you pulled it off?”
-
-“With her?”
-
-“Of course; who else?”
-
-“Yes, I have. But, Jeremy—”
-
-“Well!”
-
-“I don’t want you to say anything about it to anybody at present.”
-
-“Very good.”
-
-“I say, old fellow,” Ernest went on, after a pause, “I hope you don’t
-mind very much.”
-
-“If I said I did not mind, Ernest,” he answered, slowly turning his
-honest eyes full on to his friend’s face, “I should be telling a lie.
-But I do say this: as I could not win her myself, I am glad that you
-have, because next to her I think I love you better than anybody in the
-world. You always had the luck, and I wish you joy. There’s the train.”
-
-Ernest wrung his hand.
-
-“Thank you, old chap,” he said; “you are a downright good fellow, and a
-good friend too. I know I have had the luck, but perhaps it is going to
-turn. Good-bye.”
-
-Ernest’s plans were to sleep in London, and to leave on the following
-morning, a Wednesday, for Guernsey. There he was to meet his friend on
-Thursday, when they were to start upon their tour, first to Normandy,
-and thence wherever their fancy led them.
-
-This programme he carried out to the letter—at least the first part of
-it. On his way from Liverpool Street Station to the rooms where he had
-always slept on the few occasions that he had been in London, his
-hansom passed down Fleet Street, and got blocked opposite No. 19. His
-eye caught the number, and he wondered what there was about it familiar
-to him. Then he remembered that 19 Fleet Street was the address of
-Messrs. Goslings & Sharpe, the bankers on whom his uncle had given him
-the cheque for £250. Bethinking himself that he might as well cash it,
-he stopped the cab and entered the bank. As he did so, the cashier was
-just leaving his desk, for it was past closing hour; but he courteously
-took Ernest’s cheque, and, though it was for a large sum, cashed it
-without hesitation. Mr. Cardus’s name was evidently well known in the
-establishment. Ernest proceeded on his journey with a crisp little
-bundle of Bank of England notes in his breast-pocket, a circumstance
-that, in certain events of which at that moment he little dreamed,
-proved of the utmost service to him.
-
-It will not be necessary for us to follow him in his journey to St.
-Peter’s Port, which very much resembled other people’s journeys. He
-arrived there safely enough on Wednesday afternoon, and proceeded to
-the best hotel, took a room, and inquired the hour of the _table
-d’hôte_.
-
-In the course of the voyage from Southampton, Ernest had fallen into
-conversation with a quiet, foreign-looking man, who spoke English with
-a curious little accent. This gentleman—for there was no doubt about
-his being a gentleman—was accompanied by a boy about nine years of age,
-remarkable for his singularly prepossessing face and manners, whom
-Ernest rightly judged to be his son. Mr. Alston—for such he discovered
-his companion’s name to be—was a middle-aged man, not possessed of any
-remarkable looks or advantages of person, nor in any way
-brilliant-minded. But nobody could know Mr. Alston for long without
-discovering that, his neutral tints notwithstanding, he was the
-possessor of an almost striking individuality. From his open way of
-talking, Ernest guessed that he was a colonial; for he had often
-noticed at college that colonials are much less reserved than
-Englishmen proper are bred up to be. He soon learned that Mr. Alston
-was a Natal colonist, now, for the first time, paying a visit to the
-old country. He had, until lately, held a high position in the Natal
-Government service; but having unexpectedly come into a moderate
-fortune through the death of an aged lady, a sister of his father in
-England, he had resigned his position in the service; and after his
-short visit “home,” as colonists always call the mother country, even
-when they have never seen it, intended to start on a big game-shooting
-expedition in the country between Secocoeni’s country and Delagoa Bay.
-
-All this Ernest learned before the boat reached the harbour at St.
-Peter’s Port, and they separated. He was, however, pleased when, having
-seen his luggage put into his room, he went into the little courtyard
-of the hotel and found Mr. Alston standing there with his son, and
-looking rather puzzled.
-
-“Hullo!” said Ernest, “I am glad that you have come to this hotel. Do
-you want anything?”
-
-“Well, yes, I do. The fact of the matter is, I don’t understand a word
-of French, and I want to find my way to a place that my boy and I have
-come over here to see. If they talked Zulu or Sisutu, you see, I should
-be equal to the occasion; but to me French is a barbarous tongue, and
-the people about here all seem to talk nothing else. Here is the
-address.”
-
-“I can talk French,” said Ernest, “and, if you like, I will go with
-you. The _table d’hôte_ is not till seven, and it is not six yet.”
-
-“It is very kind of you.”
-
-“Not at all. I have no doubt that you would show me the way about
-Zululand, if ever I wandered there.”
-
-“Ay, that I would, with pleasure;” and they started.
-
-It was with considerable difficulty that Ernest discovered the place
-Mr. Alston was in search of. Finally, however, he found it. It was a
-quaint out-of-the-way little street, very narrow and crooked, an odd
-mixture of old private houses and shops, most of which seemed to deal
-in soap and candles. At last they came to No. 36, a gray old house
-standing in its own grounds. Mr. Alston scanned it eagerly.
-
-“That is the place,” he said; “she often told me of the coat-of-arms
-over the doorway—a mullet impaled with three squirrels; there they are.
-I wonder if it is still a school?”
-
-It turned out that it was still a school, and in due course they were
-admitted, and allowed to wander round the ancient walled garden, with
-every nook of which Mr. Alston seemed to be perfectly acquainted.
-
-“There is the tree under which she used to sit,” he said sadly to his
-boy, pointing out an old yew-tree, under which there stood a rotting
-bench.
-
-“Who?” asked Ernest, much interested.
-
-“My dead wife, that boy’s mother; she was educated here,” he said, with
-a sigh. “There, I have seen it. Let us go.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV.
-ERNEST GETS INTO TROUBLE
-
-
-When Mr. Alston and Ernest reached the hotel, there was still a quarter
-of an hour to elapse before the _table d’hôte_, so, after washing his
-hands and putting on a black coat, Ernest went down into the
-coffee-room. There was only one other person in it, a tall fair
-Frenchwoman, apparently about thirty years of age. She was standing by
-the empty fireplace, her arm upon the mantelpiece, and a lace
-pocket-handkerchief in her hand; and Ernest’s first impression of her
-was that she was handsome and much over-dressed. There was a newspaper
-upon the mantelpiece, which he desired to get possession of. As he
-advanced for this purpose, the lady dropped her handkerchief. Stooping
-down, he picked it out of the grate and handed it to her.
-
-“_Mille remerciments, monsieur,_” she said, with a little curtsey.
-
-“_Du tout, madame._”
-
-“_Ah, monsieur parle français?_”
-
-“_Mais oui, madame._”
-
-And then they drifted into a conversation, in the course of which
-Ernest learned that madame thought St. Peter’s Port very dull; that she
-had been there three days with her friends, and was nearly dead _de
-tristesse;_ that she was going, however, to the public dance at the
-“Hall” that night. “Of course monsieur would be there;” and many other
-things, for madame had a considerable command of language.
-
-In the middle of all this the door opened, and another lady of much the
-same cut as madame entered, followed by two young men. The first of
-these had a face of the commonplace English type, rather a
-good-humoured face; but when he saw the second, Ernest started, it was
-so like his own, as his would become if he were to spend half a dozen
-years in drinking, dicing, late hours, and their concomitants. The man
-to whom this face belonged was evidently a gentleman, but he looked an
-ill-tempered one, and very puny and out of health; at least so thought
-Ernest.
-
-“It is time for dinner, Camille,” said the gentleman to madame, at the
-same time favouring Ernest with a most comprehensive scowl.
-
-Madame appeared not to understand, and made some remark to Ernest.
-
-“It is time for dinner, Camille,” said the gentleman again, in a savage
-voice. This time she lifted her head and looked at him.
-
-“_Din-nare, dinnare!_ qu’est-que c’est que _din-nare?_”
-
-“_Table d’hôte,_” said the gentleman.
-
-“O, pardon;” and with a little bow and most fascinating smile to
-Ernest, she took the gentleman’s extended arm and sailed away.
-
-“Why did you pretend not to understand me?” Ernest heard him ask, and
-saw her shrug her shoulders in reply. The other gentleman followed with
-his companion, and after him came Ernest. When he reached the
-_salle-à-manger_ he found that the only chair vacant at the table was
-one next to his friend of the _salon._ Indeed, had he thought of it, it
-might have struck him that madame had contrived to keep that chair
-vacant, for on his approach she gathered together the folds of her silk
-dress, which had almost hidden it, and welcomed him with a little nod.
-
-Ernest took the chair, and forthwith madame entered into a most lively
-conversation with him, a course of proceeding that appeared to be
-extremely distasteful to the gentleman on her right, who pished and
-pshawed and pushed away his plate in a manner that soon became quite
-noticeable. But madame talked serenely on, quite careless of his
-antics, till at last he whispered something to her that caused the
-blood to mount to her fair cheek.
-
-“Mais tais-toi, donc,” Ernest heard her answer, and next moment—the
-subsequent history of our hero demands that the truth should be told—it
-was his turn to colour, for, alas! there was no doubt about it, he
-distinctly felt madame’s little foot pressed upon his own. He took up
-his wine and drank a little to hide his confusion; but whether he had
-or had not the moral courage to withdraw from the situation, by placing
-his toes under the more chilly but safe guardianship of the chair-legs,
-history saith not; let us hope and presume that he had. But if this was
-so or not he did not get on very well with his dinner, for the
-situation was novel and not conducive to appetite. Presently Mr.
-Alston, who was sitting opposite, addressed him across the table.
-
-“Are you going to the dance here to-night, Mr. Kershaw?”
-
-To Ernest’s surprise, the gentleman on the other side of madame
-answered, with an astonished look:
-
-“Yes, I am going.”
-
-“I beg your pardon,” said Mr. Alston, “I was speaking to the gentleman
-on your left.”
-
-“Oh, indeed! I thought you said Kershaw.”
-
-“Yes, I did; the gentleman’s name is Kershaw, I think.”
-
-“Yes,” put in Ernest, “my name is Kershaw.”
-
-“That is odd,” said the other gentleman, “so is mine. I did not know
-that there were any other Kershaws.”
-
-“Nor did I,” answered Ernest, “except Sir Hugh Kershaw;” and his face
-darkened as he pronounced the name.
-
-“I am Sir Hugh Kershaw’s son; my name is Hugh Kershaw,” was the reply.
-
-“Indeed! Then we are cousins, I suppose; for I am his nephew, the son
-of his brother Ernest.”
-
-Hugh Kershaw the elder did not receive this intelligence with even the
-moderate amount of enthusiasm that might have been expected; he simply
-lifted his scanty eyebrows, and said, “Oh, I remember, my uncle left a
-son;” then he turned and made some remark to the gentleman who sat next
-him that made the latter laugh.
-
-Ernest felt the blood rise to his cheeks; there was something very
-insolent about his cousin’s tone.
-
-Shortly afterwards the dinner came to an end, and madame, with another
-fascinating smile, retired. As for Ernest, he smoked a pipe with Mr.
-Alston, and about nine o’clock strolled over with him to the Hall, or
-Assembly Rooms, a building largely composed of glass, where thrice a
-week, during the season, the visitors at St. Peter’s Port adjourned to
-dance, flirt, and make merry.
-
-One of the first sights that caught his eye was a fair creature in
-evening-dress, and with conspicuously white shoulders, in whom he
-recognised madame. She was sitting near the door, and appeared to be
-watching it. Ernest bowed to her, and was about to pass on; but,
-pursuing her former tactics, she dropped the bouquet she was carrying.
-He stooped, picked it up, returned it, and again made as though he
-would pass on, when she addressed him, just as the band struck up.
-
-“Ah, que c’est belle, la musique! Monsieur valse, n’est-ce pas?”
-
-In another minute they were floating down the room together. As they
-passed along, Ernest saw his cousin standing in the corner, looking at
-him with no amiable air. Madame saw his glance.
-
-“Ah,” she said, “Monsieur Hugh ne valse pas, il se grise; il a l’air
-jaloux, n’est-ce pas?”
-
-Ernest danced three times with this fair enslaver, and with their last
-waltz the ball came to an end. Just then his cousin came up, and they
-all, including Mr. Alston, walked together along the steep streets,
-which were now quite deserted, to the door of the hotel. Here Ernest
-said good-night to madame, who extended her hand. He took it, and as he
-did so he felt a note slipped into it, which, not being accustomed to
-such transactions, he clumsily dropped. It was the ball programme, and
-there was something written across it in pencil. Unfortunately, he was
-not the only one who saw this; his cousin Hugh, who had evidently been
-drinking, saw it too, and tried to pick up the programme, but Ernest
-was too quick for him.
-
-“Give me that,” said his cousin, hoarsely.
-
-Ernest answered by putting it into his pocket.
-
-“What is written on that programme?”
-
-“I don’t know.”
-
-“What have you written on that programme, Camille?”
-
-“Mon Dieu, mais vous m’ennuyez!” was the answer.
-
-“I insist upon your giving me that!” with an oath.
-
-“Monsieur est _gentleman!_ Monsieur ne la rendra pas,” said madame,
-with a meaning glance; and then turning, she entered the hotel.
-
-“I am not going to give it to you,” said Ernest.
-
-“You shall give it to me.”
-
-“Is this lady your wife?” asked Ernest.
-
-“That is my affair; give me that note.”
-
-“I shall not give it to you,” said Ernest, whose temper was rapidly
-rising. “I don’t know what is on it, and I don’t wish to know; but
-whatever it is, the lady gave it to me, and not to you. She is not your
-wife, and you have no right to ask for it.”
-
-His cousin Hugh turned livid with fury. At the best of times he was an
-evil-tempered man; and now, inflamed as he was by drink and jealousy,
-he looked a perfect fiend.
-
-“Damn you!” he hissed, “you half-bred cur; I suppose that you get your
-—— manners from your —— of a mother!”
-
-He did not get any further; for at this point Ernest knocked him into
-the gutter, and then stood over him, very quiet and pale, and told him
-that if ever he dared to let a disrespectful word about his mother pass
-his lips again, he (Ernest) would half-kill him (Hugh). Then he let him
-get up.
-
-Hugh Kershaw rose, and turning, whispered something to his friend, who
-had sat next him at dinner, a man about thirty years of age, and with a
-military air about him. His friend listened, and pulled his large
-moustache thoughtfully. Then he addressed Ernest with the utmost
-politeness:
-
-“I am Captain Justice, of the —— Hussars. Of course, Mr. Kershaw, you
-are aware that you cannot indulge yourself in the luxury of knocking
-people down without hearing more about it. Have you any friend with
-you?”
-
-Ernest shook his head as he answered: “This,” indicating Mr. Alston,
-who had been an attentive observer of everything that had passed, “is
-the only gentleman I know in the town, and I cannot ask him to mix
-himself up in my quarrels.” Ernest was beginning to understand that
-this quarrel was a very serious business.
-
-“All right, my lad,” said Mr. Alston quietly, “I will stand by you.”
-
-“Really, I have no right——” began Ernest.
-
-“Nonsense! It is one of our colonial customs to stick by one another.”
-
-“Mr. Justice—”
-
-“Captain Justice,” put in that gentleman, with a bow.
-
-“Captain Justice, my name is Alston. I am very much at your service.”
-
-Captain Justice turned to Hugh Kershaw, whose clothes were dripping
-from the water in the gutter, and after whispering with him for a
-moment, said aloud, “If I were you, Kershaw, I should go and change
-those clothes; you will catch cold.” And then, addressing Mr. Alston,
-“I think the smoking-room is empty. Shall we go and have a chat?”
-
-Mr. Alston assented, and they went in together. Ernest followed; but
-having lit his pipe, sat down in a far corner of the room. Presently
-Mr. Alston called him.
-
-“Look here, Kershaw, this is a serious business, and as you are
-principally concerned, I think that you had better give your own
-answer. To be brief, your cousin, Mr. Hugh Kershaw, demands that you
-should apologise in writing for having struck him.”
-
-“I am willing to do that if he will apologise for the terms he used in
-connection with my mother.”
-
-“Ah!” said the gallant Captain, “the young gentleman is coming to
-reason.”
-
-“He also demands that you should hand over the note you received from
-the lady.”
-
-“That I certainly shall not do,” he answered; and drawing the card from
-his pocket, he tore it into fragments, unread.
-
-Captain Justice bowed and left the room. In a few minutes he returned,
-and, addressing Mr. Alston and Ernest, said:
-
-“Mr. Kershaw is not satisfied with what you offer to do. He declines to
-apologise for any expression that he may have used with reference to
-your mother, and he now wishes you to choose between signing an
-apology, which I shall dictate, or meeting him to-morrow morning. You
-must remember that we are in Guernsey, where you cannot insult a man on
-the payment of forty shillings.”
-
-Of course, this view was an entirely incorrect one. Although Guernsey
-has a political constitution of its own, many of its laws being based
-upon the old Norman-French customs, and judicial proceedings being
-carried on in French, &c., it is quite as criminal an act to fight a
-duel there as in England, as Captain Justice himself afterwards found
-out to his cost. But they none of them knew that.
-
-Ernest felt the blood run to his heart. He understood now what Captain
-Justice meant. He answered simply:
-
-“I shall be very happy to meet my cousin in whatever place and way you
-and Mr. Alston may agree upon;” and then he returned to his chair, and
-gave himself up to the enjoyment of his pipe and an entirely new set of
-sensations.
-
-Captain Justice gazed after him pityingly. “I am sorry for him,” he
-said to Mr. Alston. “Kershaw is, I believe, a good shot with pistols. I
-suppose you will choose pistols. It would be difficult to get swords in
-such a hurry. He is a fine young fellow. Took it coolly, by George!
-Well, I don’t think that he will trouble the world much longer.”
-
-“This is a silly business, and likely to land us all in a nasty mess.
-Is there no way out of it?”
-
-“None that I know of, unless your young friend will eat dirt. He is a
-nasty-tempered fellow, Kershaw, and wild about that woman, over whom he
-has spent thousands. Nor is he likely to forgive being rolled in the
-gutter. You had better get your man to give in, for if you don’t,
-Kershaw will kill him.”
-
-“It is no good talking of it. I have lived a rough life, and know what
-men are made of. He is not of that sort. Besides, your man is in the
-wrong, not that boy. If anybody spoke of my mother like that, I would
-shoot him.”
-
-“Very good, Mr. Alston. And now about the pistols; I have none.”
-
-“I have a pair of Smith & Wesson revolvers that I bought yesterday to
-take out to Africa with me. They throw a very heavy bullet, Captain
-Justice.”
-
-“Too heavy. If one of them is hit anywhere in the body——” He did not
-finish the sentence.
-
-Mr. Alston nodded. “We must put them twenty paces apart, to give them a
-chance of missing. And now about the place and the time?”
-
-“I know a place on the beach, about a mile and a half from here, that
-will do very well. You go down that street till you strike the beach,
-then turn to your right, and follow the line of the sea till you come
-to a deserted hut or cottage. There we will meet you.”
-
-“At what time?”
-
-“Let me see; shall we say a quarter to five? It will be light enough
-for us then.”
-
-“Very good. The Weymouth boat leaves at half-past six. I am going to
-see about getting my things ready to go to meet it. I should advise you
-to do the same, Captain Justice. We had better not return here after it
-is over.”
-
-“No.”
-
-And then they parted.
-
-Luckily the manager of the hotel had not gone to bed; so the various
-parties concerned were able to pay their bills, and make arrangements
-about their luggage being sent to meet the early boat, without exciting
-the slightest suspicion. Ernest wrote a note, and left it to be given
-to his friend when he should arrive on the morrow, in which he stated
-mysteriously that business had called him away. He could not help
-smiling to himself sadly when he thought that his business might be of
-a sort that it would take all eternity to settle.
-
-Then he went to his room and wrote two letters, one to Eva and one to
-Dorothy. Mr. Alston was to post them if anything happened to him. The
-first was of a passionate nature, and breathed hopes of reunion in
-another place—ah, how fondly the poor human heart clings to that
-idea!—the second collected and sensible enough. The letters finished,
-following Mr. Alston’s advice, he undressed and took a bath; then he
-said his prayers—the prayers his mother had taught him—put on a quiet
-dark suit of clothes, and went and sat by the open window.
-
-The night was very still and fragrant with the sweet strong breath of
-the sea. Not a sound came from the quaint old town beneath—all was at
-peace. Ernest, sitting there, wondered whether he would live to see
-another night, and, if not, what the nights were like in the land
-whither he was journeying. And as he thought of it the gray damps that
-hide that unrisen world from our gaze struck into his soul and made him
-feel afraid. Not afraid of death, but afraid of the empty loneliness
-beyond it—of the cold air of an infinite space in which nothing human
-can live. Would his mother meet him there, he wondered, or would she
-put him from her, coming with blood upon his hands. And then he thought
-of Eva, and in his solitude a tear gathered in his dark eyes. It seemed
-so hard to go to that other place without her.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI.
-MADAME’S WORK
-
-
-Presently the eastern sky began to be barred with rays of light, and
-Ernest knew that the dawn was near.
-
-Rising with a sigh, he made his last preparations, inwardly determining
-that, if he was to die, he would die in a way befitting an English
-gentleman. There should be no sign of his fears on his face when he
-looked at his adversary’s pistol.
-
-Presently there came a soft knock at the door, and Mr. Alston entered
-with his shoes off. In his hand he held a case containing the two Smith
-& Wessons.
-
-“We must be off presently,” he said. “I just heard Captain Justice go
-down. Look here, Kershaw, do you understand anything about these?” and
-he tapped the Smith & Wessons.
-
-“Yes; I have often practised with a pair of old duelling-pistols at
-home. I used to be a very fair shot with them.”
-
-“That is lucky. Now take one of these revolvers; I want to give you a
-lesson, and accustom you to handle it.”
-
-“No, I will not. It would not be fair on the other man. If I did, and
-killed him, I should feel like a murderer.”
-
-“As you like; but I am going to tell you something, and give you a bit
-of advice. These revolvers are hair-triggered; I had the scears filed.
-When the word is given, bring the barrel of your pistol _down_ till you
-get the sight well on to your antagonist somewhere about his chest,
-then _press_ the trigger, do not pull it, remember that. If you do as I
-tell you, he will never hear the report. Above all, do not lose your
-nerve; and don’t be sentimental and fire in the air, or any such
-nonsense, for that is a most futile proceeding, morally, and in every
-other way. Mark my words, if you do not kill him, he will kill you. He
-intends to kill you, and you are in the right. Now we must be going.
-Your luggage is in the hall, is it not?”
-
-“All except this bag.”
-
-“Very good; bring it down with you. My boy will bring it to the boat
-with my own. If you are not hit, you will do well to get out of this as
-soon as possible. I mean to make for Southampton as straight as I can.
-There is a vessel sailing for South Africa on Friday morning; I shall
-embark in her. We will settle what you are to do afterwards.”
-
-“Yes,” said Ernest, with a smile, “there is no need to talk of that at
-present.”
-
-Five minutes afterwards they met in the hall, and slipped quietly out
-through the door that always stood open all night for the accommodation
-of visitors addicted to late hours. Following the street that Captain
-Justice had pointed out, they descended to the beach, and, turning to
-the right, walked along it leisurely. The early morning air was very
-sweet, and all nature smiled dimly upon them as they went, for the sun
-was not yet up; but at that moment Ernest did not think much of the
-beauty of the morning. It all seemed like a frightful dream. At last
-they came to the deserted hut, looming large in the gray mist. By it
-stood two figures.
-
-“They are there already,” said Mr. Alston.
-
-As they approached the two figures lifted their hats, a compliment
-which they returned. Then Mr. Alston went to Captain Justice, and fell
-into conversation with him, and together they paced off a certain
-distance on the sand, marking its limits with their walking-sticks.
-Ernest noticed that it was about the length of a short cricket-pitch.
-
-“Shall we place them?” he heard Captain Justice say.
-
-“Not just yet,” was the reply; “there is barely light enough.”
-
-“Now, gentlemen,” said Mr. Alston presently, “I have prepared in
-duplicate a paper setting forth as fairly as I can the circumstances
-under which this unhappy affair has come about. I propose to read it to
-you, and to ask you all to sign it, as a protection to—to us all. I
-have brought a pen and a pocket ink-pot with me for that purpose.”
-
-Nobody objected, so he read the paper. It was short, concise, and just,
-and they all signed it as it stood. Ernest’s hand shook a good deal as
-he did so.
-
-“Come, that won’t do,” said Mr. Alston, encouragingly, as he pocketed
-one copy of the document after handing the other to Captain Justice.
-“Shake yourself together, man!”
-
-But for all his brave words he looked the more nervous of the two.
-
-“I wish to say,” began Ernest, addressing himself to all the other
-three, “that this quarrel is none of my seeking. I could not in honour
-give up the note the lady wrote to me. But I feel that this is a
-dreadful business; and if you,” addressing his cousin, “are ready to
-apologise for what you said about my mother, I am ready to do the same
-for attacking you.”
-
-Mr. Hugh Kershaw smiled bitterly, and, turning, said something to his
-second. Ernest caught the words “white feather.”
-
-“Mr. Hugh Kershaw refuses to offer any apology; he expects one,” was
-Captain Justice’s ready answer.
-
-“Then if any blood is shed, on his head be it!” said Mr. Alston
-solemnly. “Come, let us get it over.”
-
-Each took his man and placed him by one of the sticks, and then handed
-him a revolver.
-
-“Stand sideways, and remember what I told you,” whispered Mr. Alston.
-
-“Are you ready, gentlemen?” asked Captain Justice presently.
-
-There was no answer; but Ernest felt his heart stand still, and a mist
-gathered before his eyes. At that moment he heard a lark rise into the
-air near him and begin to sing. Unless he could get his sight back he
-felt that he was lost.
-
-“_One!_” The mist cleared away from his eyes; he saw his adversary’s
-pistol-barrel pointing steadily at him.
-
-“_Two!_” A ray broke from the rising sun, and caught a crystal pin Hugh
-Kershaw incautiously wore. Instinctively Ernest remembered Mr. Alston’s
-advice, and lowered the sight of his long barrel till it was dead on
-the crystal pin. Curiously enough, it reminded him at the moment of the
-eyes in the witch’s head at Dum’s Ness. His vital forces rose to the
-emergency, and his arm grew as steady as a rock. Then came a pause that
-seemed hours long.
-
-“_Three!_” There was a double report, and Ernest became aware of a
-commotion in his hair. Hugh Kershaw flung up his arms wildly, sprang a
-few inches off the ground, and fell backwards. Great God, it was over!
-
-[Illustration: “Hugh Kershaw flung up his arms, wildly.”]
-
-Ernest staggered a moment from the reaction, and then ran with the
-others towards his cousin—nay, towards what had been his cousin. He was
-lying on his back upon the sand, his wide-opened eyes staring up at the
-blue sky, as though to trace the flight of the spirit, his arms
-extended. The heavy revolver-ball had struck near the crystal pin, and
-then passed upwards through the throat and out at the base of the head,
-shattering the spinal column.
-
-“He is dead,” said Captain Justice, solemnly.
-
-Ernest wrung his hands.
-
-“I have killed him,” he said—“I have killed my own cousin!”
-
-“Young man,” said Mr. Alston, “do not stand there wringing your hands,
-but thank Providence for your own escape. He was very near killing you,
-let me tell you. Is your head cut?”
-
-Instinctively Ernest took off his hat, and as he did so some fragments
-of his curly hair fell to the ground. There was a neat hole through the
-felt, and a neat groove along his thick hair. His cousin had meant to
-kill him; and he was a good shot—so good that he thought that he could
-put a ball through Ernest’s head. But he forgot that a heavy American
-revolver, with forty grains of powder behind the ball, is apt to throw
-a trifle high.
-
-And then they all stood silent and looked at the body; and the lark,
-that had been frightened by the noise, began to sing again.
-
-“This will not do,” said Mr. Alston presently. “We had better move the
-body in there,” and he pointed to the deserted hut. “Captain Justice,
-what do you intend to do?”
-
-“Give myself up to the authorities, I suppose,” was the gallant
-Captain’s scared answer.
-
-“Very well. I don’t advise you to do that, but if you are determined
-to, there is no need for you to be in a hurry about it. You must give
-us time to get clear first.”
-
-They lifted the corpse, reverently bore it into the deserted hut, and
-laid it on the floor. Ernest remained standing looking at the red stain
-where it had been. Presently they came out again, and Mr. Alston kicked
-some sand over the stain and hid it.
-
-“Now,” he said, “we had better make an addition to those documents, to
-say how this came about.”
-
-They all went back to the hut, and the addition was made, standing
-there by the body. When it came to Ernest’s turn to sign, he almost
-wished that his signature was the one missing from the foot of that
-ghastly post-scriptum. Mr. Alston guessed his thoughts.
-
-“The fortune of war,” he said, coolly. “Now, Captain Justice, we are
-going to catch the early boat, and we hope that you will not give
-yourself up before midday, if you can help it. The inquiry into the
-affair will not then be held before to-morrow; and by eleven to-morrow
-morning I hope to have seen the last of England for some years to
-come.”
-
-The Captain was a good fellow at bottom, and had no wish to see others
-dragged into trouble.
-
-“I shall certainly give myself up,” he said; “but I don’t see any
-reason to hurry about it. I don’t think that they can do much to me
-here. Poor Hugh! he can well afford to wait,” he added, with a sigh,
-glancing down at the figure that lay so still, with a coat thrown over
-the face. “I suppose that they will lock me up for six months—pleasant
-prospect! But I say, Mr. Kershaw, you had better keep clear; it will be
-more awkward for you. You see, he was your cousin, and by his death you
-become, unless I am mistaken, next heir to the title.”
-
-“Yes, I suppose so,” said Ernest, vaguely.
-
-Here it may be stated that Captain Justice found himself sadly
-mistaken. Instead of the six months he expected, he was arraigned for
-murder, and finally sentenced to a term of penal servitude. He received
-a pardon, however, after serving about a year of his time.
-
-“Come, we must be off,” said Mr. Alston, “or we shall be late for the
-boat;” and, bowing to Captain Justice, he left the hut.
-
-Ernest followed his example, and, when he had gone a few yards, glanced
-round at the hateful spot. There stood Captain Justice in the doorway
-of the hut, looking much depressed, and there, a few yards to the left,
-was the impress in the sand that marked where his cousin had fallen. He
-never saw either the man or the place again.
-
-“Kershaw,” said Mr. Alston, “what do you propose doing?”
-
-“I don’t know.”
-
-“But you must think; remember you are in an awkward fix. You know by
-English law duelling is murder; and now I come to think of it, I expect
-that this place is subject to the English law in criminal matters, or
-at least that the law is identical.”
-
-“I think I had better give myself up, like Captain Justice.”
-
-“Nonsense. You must hide away somewhere for a year or two till the row
-blows over.”
-
-“Where am I to hide?”
-
-“Have you any money, or can you get any?”
-
-“Yes, I have nearly two hundred and fifty pounds on me now.”
-
-“My word, that is fortunate! Well, now, what I have to suggest is, that
-you should assume a false name, and sail for South Africa with me. I am
-going up-country on a shooting expedition, outside British territory,
-so there will be little fear of your being caught and extradited. Then,
-in a year or so, when the affair is forgotten, you can come back to
-England. What do you say to that?”
-
-“I suppose I may as well go there as anywhere else. I shall be a marked
-man all my life, anyhow. What does it matter where I go?”
-
-“Ah, you are down on your luck now; by-and-by you will cheer up again.”
-
-Just then they met a fisherman, who gazed at them, wondering what the
-two gentlemen were doing out walking at that hour; but concluding that,
-after the mad fashion of Englishmen, they had been to bathe, he passed
-them with a civil “Bonjour.” Ernest coloured to the eyes under the
-scrutiny; he was beginning to feel the dreadful burden of his secret.
-Presently they reached the steamer, and found Mr. Alston’s little boy
-Roger, who, though he was only nine years old, was as quick and
-self-reliant as many English lads of fourteen, waiting for them by the
-bridge.
-
-“O, here you are, father; you have been walking so long that I thought
-you would miss the boat. I have brought the luggage down all right, and
-this gentleman’s too.”
-
-“That’s right, my lad. Kershaw, do you go and take the tickets; I want
-to get rid of this;” and he tapped the revolver-case, that was
-concealed beneath his coat.
-
-Ernest did so, and presently met Mr. Alston on the boat. A few minutes
-more and, to his intense relief, she cast off and stood out to sea.
-There were not very many passengers on board, and those there were,
-were too much taken up in making preparations to be sea-sick to take
-any notice of Ernest. And yet he could not shake himself free from the
-idea that everybody knew that he had just killed a man. His own
-self-consciousness was so intense that he saw his guilt reflected on
-the faces of all he met. He gazed around him in awe, expecting every
-moment to be greeted as a murderer. Most people who have ever done
-anything they should not are acquainted with this sensation. Overcome
-with this idea, he took refuge in his berth, nor did he emerge
-therefrom till the boat reached Weymouth. There both he and Mr. Alston
-bought some rough clothes, and, to a great extent, succeeded in
-disguising themselves; then made their way across country to
-Southampton in the same trains, but in separate compartments. Reaching
-Southampton without let or hindrance, they agreed to take passages in
-the Union Company’s R.M.S. _Moor,_ sailing on the following morning.
-Mr. Alston obtained a list of the passengers; fortunately, there was
-nobody among them whom he knew. For greater security, however, they
-took steerage passages, and booked themselves under assumed names.
-Ernest took his second Christian name, and figured on the passenger
-list as E. Beyton, while Mr. Alston and his boy assumed the name of
-James. They took their passages at different times, and feigned to be
-unknown to each other. These precautions they found to be doubly
-necessary, inasmuch as at Southampton Mr. Alston managed to get hold of
-a book on English criminal law, from which it appeared that the fact of
-the duel having been fought at Guernsey did not in the least clear them
-from the legal consequences of the act, as they had vaguely supposed
-would be the case, on the insufficient authority of Captain Justice’s
-statement.
-
-At last the vessel sailed, and it was with a sigh of relief that Ernest
-saw his native shores fade from view. As they disappeared, a
-fellow-passenger, valet to a gentleman going to the Cape for his
-health, politely offered him a paper to read. It was the _Standard_ of
-that day’s date. He took it and glanced at the foreign intelligence.
-The first thing that caught his eye was the following paragraph, headed
-“A Fatal Duel”:
-
-“The town of St. Peter’s in Guernsey has been thrown into a state of
-consternation by the discovery of the body of an English gentleman, who
-was this morning shot dead in a duel. Captain Justice, of the ——
-Hussars, who was the unfortunate gentleman’s second, has surrendered
-himself to the authorities. The other parties, who are at present
-unknown, have absconded. It is said that they have been traced to
-Weymouth; but there all trace of them has been lost. The cause of the
-duel is unknown, and in the present state of excitement it is difficult
-to obtain authentic information.”
-
-By the pilot who left the vessel Ernest despatched two letters, one to
-Eva Ceswick, and the other—which contained a copy of the memoranda
-drawn up before and after the duel, and attested by Mr. Alston—to his
-uncle. To both he told the story of his misfortune, fully and fairly,
-imploring the former not to forget him and to wait for happier times,
-and asking the forgiveness of the latter for the trouble that he had
-brought upon himself and all belonging to him. Should they wish to
-write to him, he gave his address as Ernest Beyton, Post-office,
-Maritzburg.
-
-The pilot-boat hoisted her brown sail with a huge white P. upon it and
-vanished into the night; and Ernest, feeling that he was a ruined man,
-and with the stain of blood upon his hands, crept to his bunk and wept
-like a child.
-
-Yesterday he had been loved, prosperous, happy, with a bright career
-before him. To-day he was a nameless outcast, departing into exile, and
-his young life shadowed by a cloud in which he could see no break.
-
-Well might he weep; it was a hard lesson.
-
-
-
-
-BOOK II.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I.
-MY POOR EVA
-
-
-Two days after the pilot-boat, flitting away from the vessel’s side
-like some silent-flighted bird, had vanished into the night, Florence
-Ceswick happened to be walking past the village post-office on her way
-to pay a visit to Dorothy, when it struck her that the afternoon post
-must be in, and that she might as well ask if there were any letters
-for Dum’s Ness. There was no second delivery at Kesterwick, and she
-knew that it was not always convenient to Mr. Cardus to send in. The
-civil old postmaster gave her a little bundle of letters, remarking at
-the same time that he thought that there was one for the Cottage.
-
-“Is it for me, Mr. Brown?” asked Florence.
-
-“No, miss; it is for Miss Eva.”
-
-“O, then I will leave it; I am going up to Dum’s Ness. No doubt Miss
-Eva will call.”
-
-She knew that Eva watched the arrival of the posts very carefully. When
-she got outside the office she glanced at the bundle of letters in her
-hand, and noticed with a start that one of them, addressed to Mr.
-Cardus, was in Ernest’s handwriting. It bore a Southampton post-mark.
-What, she wondered, could he be doing at Southampton? He should have
-been in Guernsey.
-
-She walked on briskly to Dum’s Ness, and on her arrival found Dorothy
-sitting working in the sitting-room. After she had greeted her she
-handed over the letters.
-
-“There is one from Ernest,” she said.
-
-“O, I am so glad!” answered Dorothy. “Who is it for?”
-
-“For Mr. Cardus. O, here he comes.”
-
-Mr. Cardus shook hands with her, and thanked her for bringing the
-letters, which he turned over casually, after the fashion of a man
-accustomed to receive large quantities of correspondence of an
-uninteresting nature. Presently his manner quickened, and he opened
-Ernest’s letter. Florence fixed her keen eyes upon him. He read the
-letter; she read his face.
-
-Mr. Cardus was accustomed to conceal his emotions, but on this occasion
-it was clear that they were too strong for him. Astonishment and grief
-pursued each other across his features as he proceeded. Finally he put
-the letter down and glanced at an enclosure.
-
-“What is it, Reginald, what is it?” asked Dorothy.
-
-“It is,” answered Mr. Cardus solemnly, “that Ernest is a murderer and a
-fugitive.”
-
-Dorothy sank into a chair with a groan, and covered her face with her
-hands. Florence turned ashy pale.
-
-“What do you mean?” she said.
-
-“Read the letter for yourself, and see. Stop, read it aloud, and the
-enclosure too. I may have misunderstood.”
-
-Florence did so in a quiet voice. It was wonderful how her power came
-out in contrast to the intense disturbance of the other two. The old
-man of the world shook like a leaf, the young girl stood firm as a
-rock. Yet, in all probability, her interest in Ernest was more intense
-than his.
-
-When she had finished, Mr. Cardus spoke again.
-
-“You see,” he said, “I was right. He is a murderer and an outcast. And
-I loved the boy, I loved him. Well, let him go.”
-
-“O Ernest, Ernest!” sobbed Dorothy.
-
-Florence glanced from one to the other with contempt.
-
-“What are you talking about?” she said at last. “What is there to make
-all this fuss about? ‘Murderer,’ indeed! Then our grandfathers were
-often murderers. What would you have had him do? Would you have had him
-give up the woman’s letter to save himself? Would you have had him put
-up with this other man’s insults about his mother? If he had, I would
-never have spoken to him again. Stop that groaning, Dorothy. You should
-be proud of him; he behaved as a gentleman should. If I had the right I
-should be proud of him;” and her breast heaved and the proud lips
-curled as she said it.
-
-Mr. Cardus listened attentively, and it was evident that her enthusiasm
-moved him.
-
-“There is something in what Florence says,” he broke in. “I should not
-have liked the boy to show the white feather. But it is an awful
-business to kill one’s own first cousin, especially when one is next in
-the entail. Old Kershaw will be furious at losing his only son, and
-Ernest will never be able to come back to this country while he lives,
-or he will set the law on him.”
-
-“It is dreadful!” said Dorothy; “just as he was beginning life, and
-going into a profession, and now to have to go and wander in that
-far-off country under a false name!”
-
-“O yes, it is sad enough,” said Mr. Cardus; “but what is done cannot be
-undone. He is young, and will live it down, and if the worst comes to
-the worst, must make himself a home out there. But it is hard upon me,
-hard upon me;” and he went off to his office, muttering, “hard upon
-me.”
-
-When Florence started upon her homeward way, the afternoon had set in
-wet and chilly, and the sea was hidden in wreaths of gray mist.
-Altogether the scene was depressing. On arrival at the Cottage she
-found Eva standing, the picture of melancholy, by the window, and
-staring out at the misty sea.
-
-“O Florence, I am glad that you have come home; I really began to feel
-inclined to commit suicide.”
-
-“Indeed! and may I ask why?”
-
-“I don’t know; the rain is so depressing, I suppose.”
-
-“It does not depress me.”
-
-“No, nothing ever does; you live in the land of perpetual calm.”
-
-“I take exercise, and keep my liver in good order. Have you been out
-this afternoon?”
-
-“No.”
-
-“Ah, I thought not. No wonder you feel depressed, staying indoors all
-day. Why don’t you go for a walk?”
-
-“There is nowhere to go.”
-
-“Really, Eva, I don’t know what has come to you lately, why don’t you
-go along the cliff, or stop—have you been to the post-office? I called
-for the Dum’s Ness letters, and Mr. Brown said that there was one for
-you.”
-
-Eva jumped up with remarkable animation, and passed out of the room
-with her peculiar light tread. The mention of that word “letter” had
-sufficed to change the aspect of things considerably.
-
-Florence watched her go with a dark little smile.
-
-“Ah,” she said aloud, as the door closed, “your feet will soon fall
-heavily enough.”
-
-Presently Eva went out, and Florence, having thrown off her cloak, took
-her sister’s place at the window and waited. It was seven minutes’ walk
-to the post-office. She would be back in about a quarter of an hour.
-Watch in hand, Florence waited patiently. Seventeen minutes had elapsed
-when the garden-gate was opened, and Eva re-entered, her face quite
-gray with pain, and furtively applying a handkerchief to her eyes.
-Florence smiled again.
-
-“I thought so,” she said.
-
-From all of which it will be seen that Florence was a very remarkable
-woman. She had scarcely exaggerated when she said that her heart was as
-deep as the sea. The love that she bore Ernest was the strongest thing
-in all her strong and vigorous life; when every other characteristic
-and influence crumbled away and was forgotten, it would still remain
-overmastering as ever. And when she discovered that her high love, the
-greatest and best part of her, had been made a plaything of by a
-thoughtless boy, who kissed girls on the same principle that a duck
-takes to water, because it came natural to him, the love in its mortal
-agonies gave birth to a hate destined to grow great as itself. But,
-with all a woman’s injustice, it was not directed towards the same
-object. On Ernest, indeed, she would wreak vengeance if she could, but
-she still loved him as dearly as at first; the revenge would be a mere
-episode in the history of her passion. But to her sister, the innocent
-woman who, she chose to consider, had robbed her, she gave all that
-bountiful hate. Herself the more powerful character of the two, she
-determined upon the utter destruction of the weaker. Strong as Fate,
-and unrelenting as Time, she dedicated her life to that end.
-Everything, she said, comes to those who can wait. She forgot that the
-Providence above us can wait the longest of us all. In the end it is
-Providence that wins.
-
-Eva came in, and Florence heard her make her way up the stairs to her
-room. Again she spoke to herself:
-
-“The poor fool will weep over him and renounce him. If she had the
-courage she would follow him and comfort him in his trouble, and so tie
-him to her for ever. Oh, that I had her chance! But the chances always
-come to fools.”
-
-Then she went upstairs and listened outside Eva’s door. She was sobbing
-audibly. Turning the handle, she walked casually in.
-
-“Well, Eva, did you—Why, my dear girl, _what_ is the matter with you?”
-
-Eva, who was lying sobbing on her bed, turned her head to the wall and
-went on sobbing.
-
-“What _is_ the matter, Eva? If you only knew how absurd you look!”
-
-“No-no-thing!”
-
-“Nonsense! People do not make such scenes as this for nothing.”
-
-No answer.
-
-“Come, my dear, as your affectionate sister, I really must ask what has
-happened to you.”
-
-The tone was commanding, and half unconsciously Eva obeyed it.
-“Ernest!” she ejaculated.
-
-“Well, what about Ernest? He is nothing to you, is he?”
-
-“No—that is, yes. O, it is so dreadful! It was the letter;” and she
-touched a sheet of closely written paper that lay on the bed beside
-her.
-
-“Well, as you do not seem to be in a condition to explain yourself,
-perhaps you had better let me read the letter.” “O no.”
-
-“Nonsense! Give it me; perhaps I may be able to help you;” and she took
-the paper from her unresisting grasp, and, turning her face from the
-light, read it deliberately through.
-
-It was very passionate in its terms, and rather incoherent; such a
-letter, in short, as a lad almost wild with love and grief would write
-under the circumstances.
-
-“So,” said Florence, as she coolly folded it up, “it appears that you
-are engaged to him.”
-
-No answer, unless sobs can be said to constitute one. “And it seems
-that you are engaged to a man who has just committed a frightful
-murder, and run away from the consequences.”
-
-Eva sat up on the bed.
-
-“It was not a murder; it was a duel.”
-
-“Precisely, a duel about another woman; but the law calls it murder. If
-he is caught he will be hanged.”
-
-“O Florence! how can you say such dreadful things?”
-
-“I only say what is true. Poor Eva, I do not wonder that you are
-distressed.”
-
-“It is all so dreadful!”
-
-“You love him, I suppose?”
-
-“O yes, dearly.”
-
-“Then you must get over it; you must never think of him any more.”
-
-“Never think of him! I shall think of him all my life.”
-
-“That is as it may be. You must never have anything more to do with
-him. He has blood upon his hands, blood shed for some bad woman.”
-
-“I cannot desert him, Florence, because he has got into trouble.”
-
-“Over another woman.”
-
-A peculiar expression of pain passed over Eva’s face.
-
-“How cruel you are, Florence! He is only a boy, and boys will go wrong
-sometimes. Anybody can make a fool of a boy.”
-
-“And it seems that boys can make fools of some people who should know
-better.”
-
-“O Florence, what is to be done? You have such a clear head; tell me
-what I must do. I cannot give him up; I cannot indeed.”
-
-Florence seated herself on the bed beside her sister, and put an arm
-round her neck and kissed her. Eva was much touched at her kindness.
-
-“My poor Eva,” she said, “I am so sorry for you! But tell me, when did
-you get engaged to him—that evening you went out sailing together?”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“He kissed you, I suppose, and all that?”
-
-“Yes. Oh, I was so happy!”
-
-“My poor Eva!”
-
-“I tell you I cannot give him up.”
-
-“Well, perhaps there will be no need for you to do so. But you must not
-answer that letter.”
-
-“Why not?”
-
-“Because it will not do. Look at it which way you will, Ernest has just
-killed his own cousin in a quarrel about another woman. It is necessary
-that you should mark your disapproval of that in some way or other. Do
-not answer his letter. If in time he can wash himself clear of the
-reproach, and remains faithful to you, then it will be soon enough to
-show that you still care for him.”
-
-“But if I leave him like that, he will fall into the hands of other
-women, though he loves me all the time. I know him well; his is not a
-nature that can stand alone.”
-
-“Well, let him.”
-
-“But, Florence, you forget I love him, too. I cannot bear to think of
-it. O, I love him, I love him!” and she dropped her head upon her
-sister’s shoulder and began to sob again.
-
-“My dear, it is just because you do love him so that you should prove
-him; and besides, my dear, you have your own self-respect to think of.
-Be guided by me, Eva; do not answer that letter; I am sure that you
-will regret it if you do. Let matters stand for a few months, then we
-can arrange a plan of action. Above all, do not let your engagement
-transpire to anybody. There will be a dreadful scandal about this
-business, and it will be most unpleasant for you, and, indeed, for us
-all, to have our name mixed up in the matter. Hark! there is aunt
-coming in. I will go and talk to her; you can stop here and recover
-yourself a little. You will follow my advice, will you not, dearest?”
-
-“I suppose so,” answered Eva, with a heavy sigh, as she buried her face
-in the pillow.
-
-Then Florence left her.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II.
-THE LOCUM TENENS
-
-
-And so it came to pass that Ernest’s letter remained unanswered. But
-Mr. Cardus, Dorothy, and Jeremy all wrote. Mr. Cardus’s letter was very
-kind and considerate. It expressed his deep grief at what had happened,
-and told him of the excitement that the duel had caused, and of the
-threatening letters which he had received from Sir Hugh Kershaw, who
-was half-wild with grief and fury at the loss of his son. Finally, it
-commended his wisdom in putting the seas between himself and the
-avengers of blood, and told him that he should not want for money, as
-his drafts would be honoured to the extent of a thousand a year, should
-he require so much—Mr. Cardus was very open-handed where Ernest was
-concerned; also if he required any particular sum of money for any
-purpose, such as to buy land or start a business, he was to let him
-know.
-
-Dorothy’s letter was like herself, sweet and gentle, and overflowing
-with womanly sympathy. She bade him not to be down-hearted, but to hope
-for a time when all this dreadful business would be forgotten, and he
-would be able to return in peace to England. She bade him also, shyly
-enough, to remember that there was only one Power that could really
-wash away the stain of blood upon his hands. Every month she said she
-would write him a letter, whether he answered it or not. This promise
-she faithfully kept.
-
-Jeremy’s letter was characteristic. It is worth transcribing:
-
-“My DEAR OLD Fellow,—Your news has knocked us all into the middle of
-next week. To think of your fighting a duel, and my not being there to
-hold the sponge! And I will tell you what it is, old chap: some of
-these people round here, like that old De Talor, call it murder, but
-that is gammon, and don’t you trouble your head about it. It was he who
-got up the row, not you, and he tried to shoot you into the bargain. I
-am awfully glad that you kept your nerve and plugged him; it would have
-been better if you could have nailed him through the right shoulder,
-which would not have killed him; but at the best of times you were
-never good enough with a pistol for that. Don’t you remember when we
-used to shoot with the old pistols at the man I cut out on the cliff,
-you were always just as likely to hit him on the head or in the stomach
-as through the heart? It is a sad pity that you did not practise a
-little more, but it is no use crying over spilt milk—and after all the
-shot seems to have been a very creditable one. So you are going on a
-shooting expedition up in Secocoeni’s country. That is what I call
-glorious. To think of a rhinoceros makes my mouth water; I would give
-one of my fingers to shoot one. Life here is simply wretched now that
-you have gone—Mr. Cardus as glum as Titheburgh Abbey on a cloudy day,
-and Doll always looking as though she had been crying, or were going to
-cry. Old Grandfather Atterleigh is quite lively compared to those two.
-As for the office, I hate it, everlastingly copying deeds which I don’t
-in the slightest understand, and adding up figures in which I make
-mistakes. Your respected uncle told me the other day, in his politest
-way, that he considered I sailed as near being a complete fool as any
-man he ever knew. I answered that I quite agreed with him.
-
-“I met that young fellow Smithers the other day, the one who gave Eva
-Ceswick that little brute of a dog. He said something disagreeable
-about wondering if they would hang you. I told him that I didn’t know
-if they would or not, but unless he dropped his infernal sneer I was
-very sure that I would break his neck. He concluded to move on. By the
-way, I met Eva Ceswick herself yesterday. She looked pale, and asked if
-we had heard anything of you. She said that she had got a letter from
-you. Florence came up here, and spoke up well for you; she said that
-she was proud of you, or would be if she had a right to. I never liked
-her before, but now I think that she is a brick. Good-bye, old chap; I
-never wrote such a long letter before. You don’t know how I miss you;
-life don’t seem worth having. Yesterday was the First; I went out and
-killed twenty brace to my own gun—fired forty-six cartridges. Not bad,
-eh! And yet somehow I didn’t seem to care a twopenny curse about the
-whole thing, though if you had been there you would have duffed them
-awfully. I feel sure you would have set my teeth on edge with letting
-them off—the birds, I mean. Mind you write to me often. Good-bye, old
-fellow. God bless you!
-
-“Your affectionate friend,
-
-
-“Jeremy Jones.
-
-
-“P.S.—In shooting big game, a fellow told me that the top of the flank
-raking forward is a very deadly shot, as it either breaks the back or
-passes through the kidneys to the lungs or heart. I should have thought
-that the shot was very apt to waste itself in the flesh of the flank.
-Please try it, and take notes of the results.”
-
-About a fortnight after these letters, addressed Ernest Beyton, Esq.,
-Post Office, Maritzburg, Natal, had been despatched, Kesterwick and its
-neighbourhood was thrown into a state of mild excitement by the
-announcement that Mr. Halford, the clergyman, whose health had of late
-been none of the best, purposed taking a year’s rest, and that the
-Bishop had consented to the duties of his parish being carried on by a
-locum tenens, named the Reverend James Plowden. Mr. Halford was much
-liked and respected, and the intelligence was received with general
-regret, which was, however, tempered with curiosity as to the
-new-comer. Thus, when it became known that Mr. Plowden was to preach in
-the parish church at the evening service on the third Sunday in
-September, all Kesterwick was seized with profound religious fervour,
-and went to hear him.
-
-The parish church at Kesterwick was unusually large and beautiful,
-being a relic of an age when, whatever men’s lives may have been, they
-spared neither their money nor their thought in rearing up fitting
-habitations to the Deity, whom they regarded perhaps with more of
-superstitious awe than true religious feeling. Standing as it did
-somewhat back from the sea, it alone had escaped the shock of the
-devouring waves, and remained till this day a monument of architectural
-triumph. Its tall tower, pointing like a great finger up to heaven,
-looked very solemn on that quiet September evening as the crowd of
-church-goers passed beneath its shadow into the old doorway, through
-which most of them had been carried to their christening, and would in
-due time be carried to their burial. At least so thought Eva and
-Dorothy, as they stood for a moment by the monument to “five unknown
-sailors,” washed ashore after a great gale, and buried in a common
-grave. How many suffering, erring human beings had stood upon the same
-spot and thought the same thoughts! How many more now sleeping in the
-womb of time would stand there and think them, when these two had
-suffered and erred their full, and been long forgotten!
-
-They formed a strange contrast, those two sweet women, as they passed
-together into the sacred stillness of the church—the one stately, dark,
-and splendid, with an unrestful trouble in her eyes; the other almost
-insignificant in figure, but pure and patient of face, and with steady
-blue eyes which never wavered. Did they guess, those two, as they
-walked thus together, how closely their destinies were linked? Did they
-know that each at heart was striving for the same prize—a poor one
-indeed, but still all the world to them? Perhaps they did, very
-vaguely, and it was the pressure of their common trouble that drew them
-closer together in those days. But if they did, they never spoke of it;
-and as for little Dorothy, she never dreamed of winning. She was
-content to be allowed to toil along in the painful race.
-
-When they reached the pew that the Ceswicks habitually occupied, they
-found Miss Ceswick and Florence already there. Jeremy had refused to
-come; he had a most unreasonable antipathy to parsons. Mr. Halford he
-liked, but of this new man he would have none. The general curiosity to
-see him was to Jeremy inexplicable, his opinion being that he should
-soon see a great deal more of him than he liked. “Just like a pack of
-girls running after a new doll,” he growled; “well, there is one thing,
-you will soon be tired of hearing him squeak.”
-
-As the service went on, the aisles of the great church grew dim except
-where the setting sun shot a crimson shaft through the west window,
-which wandered from spot to spot and face to face, and made them
-glorious. When it came to the hymn before the sermon, Eva could
-scarcely see to read, and with the exception of the crimson pencil of
-sunlight that came through the head of the Virgin Mary, and wavered
-restlessly about, and the strong glow of the lights upon the pulpit,
-the church was almost dark.
-
-When the new clergyman, Mr. Plowden, ascended the steps of the ancient
-pulpit and gave out his text, Eva looked at him in common with the rest
-of the congregation. Mr. Plowden was a large man of a somewhat
-lumbering make. His head, too, was large, and covered with masses of
-rather coarse-textured black hair. The forehead was prominent, and gave
-signs of intellectual power; the eyebrows thick and strongly marked,
-and in curious contrast to the cold light-gray eyes that played
-unceasingly beneath them. All the lower part of the face, which, to
-judge from the purple hue of the skin, Nature had intended should be
-plentifully clothed with hair, was clean shaven, and revealed a large
-jaw, square chin, and pair of thick lips. Altogether Mr. Plowden was
-considered a fine man, and his face was generally spoken of as
-“striking.” Perhaps the most curious thing about it, however, was a
-species of varicose vein on the forehead, which was generally quite
-unnoticeable, but whenever he was excited or nervous stood out above
-the level of the skin in the form of a perfect cross. It was thus
-visible when Eva looked at him, and it struck her as being an
-unpleasant mark to have on one’s forehead. She turned her eyes away—the
-man did not please her fastidious taste—and listened for his voice.
-Presently it came; it was powerful and even musical, but coarse.
-
-“He is not a gentleman,” thought Eva to herself; and then dismissing
-him and his sermon too from her mind, she leaned back against the
-poppy-head at the end of the pew, half-closed her eyes, and let her
-thoughts wander in the way that thoughts have the power to do in
-church. Far across the sea they flew, to where a great vessel,
-labouring in a heavy gale, was ploughing her sturdy way along—to where
-a young man stood clinging to the iron stanchions, and gazed out into
-the darkness with sorrow in his eyes.
-
-Wonderfully soft and tender grew her beautiful face as the vision
-passed before her soul; the ripe lips quivered, and there was a world
-of love in the half-opened eyes. And just then the wandering patch of
-glory perceived her, settled on her like a butterfly upon a flower, and
-for a while wandered no longer.
-
-Suddenly she became aware of a momentary pause in the even flow of the
-clergyman’s eloquence, and waking from her reverie, glanced up at that
-spot of light surrounding him, and as she did so it struck her that she
-herself was illuminated with a more beautiful light—that he and she
-alone were distinguishable out of all the people beneath that roof.
-
-The same thought had evidently struck Mr. Plowden, for he was gazing
-intently at her.
-
-Instinctively she drew back into the shadow, and Mr. Plowden went on
-with his sermon. But he had driven away poor Eva’s vision; there only
-remained of it the sad reproachful look of those dark eyes.
-
-Outside the church Dorothy found Jeremy waiting to escort her home.
-They all went together as far as the Cottage. When they got clear of
-the crowd Florence spoke:
-
-“What a good-looking man Mr. Plowden is, and how well he preached!”
-
-“I did not like him much,” said Dorothy.
-
-“What do you think of him, Eva?” asked Florence.
-
-“I? Oh, I do not know. I do not think he is a gentleman.”
-
-“I am sure that he is not,” put in Jeremy. “I saw him by the
-post-office this afternoon. He is a cad.”
-
-“Rather a sweeping remark that, is it not, Mr. Jones?” said Florence.
-
-“I don’t know if it is sweeping or not,” answered Jeremy,
-sententiously, “but I am sure that it is true.”
-
-Then they said good-night, and went their separate ways.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III.
-EVA TAKES A DISTRICT
-
-
-The Reverend James Plowden was born of rich but honest parents in the
-sugar-broking way. He was one of a large family, who were objects of
-anxious thought to Mr. and Mrs. Plowden. These worthy people, aware of
-the disadvantages under which they laboured in the matter of education,
-determined that neither trouble nor money should be spared to make
-their children “genteel.” And so it came to pass that the “mansion”
-near Bloomsbury was overrun with the most expensive nurses, milliners,
-governesses, and tutors, all straining every nerve to secure the
-perfect gentility of the young Plowdens. The result was highly
-ornamental, but scarcely equivalent to the vast expense incurred. The
-Plowden youth of both sexes may be said to have been painted, and
-varnished, and gilded into an admirable imitation of gentlefolks; but
-if the lacquer-work would stand the buffetings of the world’s weather
-was another question, and one which does not concern us, except in so
-far as it has to do with a single member of the family.
-
-Master James Plowden came about half-way down the family list, but he
-might just as well have stood at the head of it, for he ruled his
-brothers and sisters—old and young—with a heavy rod. He was the strong
-one of the family, strong both in mind and body, and he had a hand of
-iron.
-
-For his misdeeds were his brothers thrashed, preferring to take those
-ills they knew of from the hands of the thrasher rather than endure the
-unimagined horrors brother James would make ready for them should they
-venture to protest.
-
-Thus it was that he came to be considered _par excellence_ the good boy
-of the family, and he was certainly the clever one, and bore every sort
-of blushing honour thick upon him.
-
-It was to an occurrence in his boyhood that Mr. Plowden owed his
-parents’ determination to send him into the Church. His future career
-had always been a matter of much speculation to them, for they belonged
-to that class of people who love to arrange their infants’ destinies
-when the infants themselves are still in the cradle, and argue their
-fitness for certain lines of life from remarks which they make at three
-years old.
-
-Now, James’s mamma had a very favourite parrot with a red tail, and out
-of this tail it was James’s delight to pull the feathers, having
-discovered that so doing gave a parrot a lively twinge of pain. The
-onus of the feather-pulling, if discovered, was shouldered on to a
-chosen brother, who was promptly thrashed.
-
-But on one occasion things went wrong with Master James. The parrot was
-climbing up the outside of his cage, presenting the remainder of his
-tail to the hand of the spoiler in a way that was irresistibly
-seductive. But, aware of the fact that his enemy was in the
-neighbourhood, he kept a careful look-out from the corner of his eye,
-and the moment that he saw James’s stealthy hand draw near his tail
-made a sudden dart at it, and actually succeeded in making his powerful
-beak meet through its forefinger. James shrieked with pain and fury,
-and shaking the bird on to the floor, stunned it with a book. But he
-was not satisfied with this revenge, for, as soon as he saw that it
-could no longer bite, he seized it and twisted its neck.
-
-“There, you devil!” he said, throwing the creature into the cage.
-“Hullo, something has burst in my forehead!”
-
-“O James, what have you done!” said his little brother Montague, well
-knowing that he had a lively personal interest in James’s misdoings.
-
-“Nonsense! what have you done? Now remember, Montague, _you_ killed the
-parrot.”
-
-Just then Mr. and Mrs. Plowden came in from a drive, and a very lively
-scene ensued, into which we need not enter. Suffice it to say that, all
-evidence to the contrary notwithstanding, James was acquitted on the
-ground of general good character, and Montague, howling and protesting
-his innocence, was led off to execution. Justly fearful lest something
-further should transpire, James was hurriedly leaving the room, when
-his mother called him back. “Why, what is that on your forehead?”
-“Don’t know,” answered James; “something went snap there just now.”
-
-“Well, I never! Just look at the boy, John; he has got a cross upon his
-forehead.”
-
-Mr. Plowden papa examined the phenomenon very carefully, and then,
-solemnly removing his spectacles, remarked with much deliberation:
-
-“Elizabeth, that settles the point.” “What point, John?”
-
-“What point! Why, the point of the boy’s profession. It is, as you
-remark, a cross upon his forehead. Good!—he shall go into the Church.
-Now, I must decline to be argued with, Elizabeth. The matter is
-settled.”
-
-And so in due course James Plowden, Esq., went to Cambridge, and became
-the Reverend James Plowden.
-
-Shortly after the Reverend James had started in life as a curate—having
-first succeeded in beguiling his parents into settling on himself a
-portion just twice as large as that to which he was entitled—he found
-it convenient to cut off his connection with a family he considered
-vulgar, and a drag upon his professional success. But somehow, with all
-his gifts—and undoubtedly he was by nature well-endowed, especially as
-regards his mind, that was remarkable for a species of hard cleverness
-and persuasive power—and with all the advantages which he derived from
-being in receipt of an independent income, the Reverend James had not
-hitherto proved a conspicuous success. He had held some important
-curacies, and of late had acted as the locum tenens of several
-gentlemen who, like Mr. Halford, through loss of health or other
-reasons, had been called away from their livings for a length of time.
-
-But from all these places the Reverend James had departed without
-regret, nor had there been any very universal lamentations over his
-going. The fact of the matter was that the Reverend James was not a
-popular man. He had ability in plenty, and money in plenty, and would
-expend both without stint if he had an end to gain. He was more or less
-of a good companion, too, in the ordinary sense of the word; that is,
-he could make himself agreeable in a rough, exaggerated kind of way to
-both men and women. Indeed, by the former he was often spoken of
-carelessly as a “good fellow;” but women, or rather ladies, following
-their finer instincts, disliked him intensely. He jarred upon them.
-
-Of course, it is impossible to lay down any fixed rule about men, but
-there are two tokens by which they may be known. The first is by their
-friends; the second by the degree of friendship and affection to which
-they are admitted by women. The man to whom members of the other sex
-attach themselves is in ninety-nine cases out of a hundred a good
-fellow, and women’s instinct tells them so, or they would not love him.
-It may be urged that women often love blackguards. To this the answer
-is, that there must be a good deal of good mixed up with the
-blackguardism. Show me the man whom two or three women of his own rank
-love with all their honest hearts, and I will trust all I have into his
-hands and not be a penny the poorer.
-
-But women did not love the Reverend James Plowden, although he had for
-several years come to the conclusion that it was desirable that they
-should, or rather that one of them should. In plain language he had for
-some years past thought that he would improve his position by getting
-married. He was a shrewd man, and he could not disguise from himself
-the fact that so far he was not altogether a success. He had tried his
-best, but, with all his considerable advantages, he had failed. There
-was only one avenue to success which he had not tried, and that was
-marriage. Marriage with a woman of high caste, quick intellect, and
-beauty, might give him the tone that his social system so sadly needed.
-He was a man in a good position, he had money, he had intelligence of a
-robust if of a coarse order, he had fairly good looks, and he was only
-thirty-five; why should he not marry blood, brains, and beauty, and
-shine with a reflected splendour?
-
-Such were the thoughts which were simmering in the astute brain of the
-Reverend James Plowden when he first set eyes upon Eva Ceswick in the
-old church at Kesterwick.
-
-Within a week or so of his arrival, Mr. Plowden, in his character of
-spiritual adviser to the motley Kesterwick flock, paid a ceremonious
-call on the Miss Ceswicks. They were all at home.
-
-Miss Ceswick and Florence welcomed him graciously; Eva politely, but
-with an air that said plainly that he interested her not at all. Yet it
-was to Eva that he chiefly directed himself. He took this opportunity
-to inform them all, especially Eva, that he felt the responsibilities
-of his position as locum tenens to weigh heavily upon him. He appealed
-to them all, especially Eva, to help him to bear his load. He was going
-to institute a new system of district visiting. Would they all,
-especially Eva, assist him? If they would, the good work was already
-half done. There was so much for young ladies to do. He could assure
-them, from his personal experience, that one visit from a young lady,
-however useless she might be in a general way, which his instinct
-assured him these particular young ladies before him were not, had more
-influence with a distressed and godless family than six from
-well-meaning but unsympathetic clergymen like himself. Might he rely on
-their help?
-
-“I am afraid that I am too old for that sort of thing, Mr. Plowden,”
-answered Miss Ceswick. “You must see what you can do with my nieces.”
-
-“I am sure that I shall be delighted to help,” said Florence, “if Eva
-will bear me company. I always feel a shyness about intruding myself
-into cottages unsupported.”
-
-“Your shyness is not surprising, Miss Ceswick. I suffered from it
-myself for many years, but at last I have, I am thankful to say, got
-the better of it. But I am sure that we shall not appeal to your sister
-in vain.”
-
-“I shall be glad to help if you think that I can do any good,” put in
-Eva, thus directly appealed to; “but I must tell you I have no great
-faith in myself.”
-
-“Do the work. Miss Ceswick, and the faith will come; sow the seed and
-the tree will spring up, and bear fruit too in due season.”
-
-There was no reply, so he continued: “Then I have your permission to
-put you down for a district?”
-
-“O yes, Mr. Plowden,” answered Florence. “Will you take some more tea?”
-
-Mr. Plowden would take no more tea, but went on his way to finish the
-day’s work he had mapped out for himself—for he worked hard and
-according to a strict rule—reflecting that Eva Ceswick was the
-loveliest woman he had ever seen.
-
-“I think that we must congratulate you on a conquest, Eva,” said Miss
-Ceswick, cheerfully, as the front door closed. “Mr. Plowden never took
-his eyes off you, and really, my dear, I do not wonder at it; you look
-charming.”
-
-Eva flushed up angrily.
-
-“Nonsense, aunt!” she said, and left the room.
-
-“Really,” said Miss Ceswick, “I don’t know what has come to Eva lately,
-she is so very strange.”
-
-“I expect that you have touched her on a sore point. I rather fancy
-that she has taken a liking to Mr. Plowden,” said Florence, dryly.
-
-“O, indeed!” answered the old lady, nodding her head wisely.
-
-In due course a district was assigned to the two Miss Ceswicks, and for
-her part Eva was glad of the occupation. It brought her a good deal
-into contact with Mr. Plowden, which was not altogether pleasant to
-her, for she cherished a vague dislike of the clergyman, and did not
-admire his shifty eyes. But, as she got to know him better, she could
-find nothing to justify her dislike. He was not, it is true, quite a
-gentleman, but that was his misfortune. His manner to herself was
-subdued and almost deferential; he never obtruded himself upon her
-society, though somehow he was in it almost daily. Indeed, he even
-succeeded in raising her to some enthusiasm about her work, a quality
-in which poor Eva had of late been sadly lacking. She thought him a
-very good clergyman, with his heart in his duty. But she disliked him
-all the same.
-
-Eva never answered Ernest’s letter. Once she began an answer, but
-bethought her of Florence’s sage advice, and changed her mind. “He will
-write again,” she said to herself. She did not know Ernest; his was not
-a nature to humble itself before a woman. Could she have seen her lover
-hanging about the steps of the Maritzburg post-office when the English
-mail was being delivered, in order to go back to the window when the
-people had dispersed, and ask the tired clerk if he was “sure” that
-there were no more letters for Ernest Beyton, and get severely snubbed
-for his pains, perhaps her heart would have relented. And yet it was a
-performance which poor Ernest went through once a week out there in
-Natal.
-
-One mail-day Mr. Alston went with him.
-
-“Well, Ernest, has it come?” he asked, as he came down the steps, a
-letter from Dorothy in his hand.
-
-“No, Alston, and never will. She has thrown me over.”
-
-Mr. Alston took his arm, and walked away with him across the
-market-square.
-
-“Look here, my lad,” he said; “the woman who deserts a man in trouble,
-or as soon as his back is turned, is worthless. It is a sharp lesson to
-learn, but, as most men have cause to know, the world is full of sharp
-lessons and worthless women. You know that she got your letter?”
-
-“Yes, she told my friend so.”
-
-“Then I tell you that your Eva, or whatever her name is, is more
-worthless than most of them. She has been tried and found wanting.
-Look,” he went on, pointing to a shapely Kafir girl passing with a pot
-of native beer upon her head, “you had better take that Intombi to wife
-than such a woman as this Eva. She at any rate would stand by you in
-trouble, and if you fell would stop to be killed over your dead body.
-Come, be a man, and have done with her.”
-
-[Illustration: “A shapely Kafir girl.”]
-
-“Ay, by Heaven I will!” answered Ernest.
-
-“That’s right; and now, look here, the waggons will be at Lydenburg in
-a week. Let us take the post-cart tomorrow and go up. Then we can have
-a month’s wilderbeeste and koodoo shooting until it is safe to go into
-the fever country. Once you get among the big game, you won’t think any
-more about that woman. Women are all very well in their way, but if it
-comes to choosing between them and big game shooting, give me the big
-game.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV.
-JEREMY’S IDEA OF A SHAKING
-
-
-Two months or so after Ernest’s flight there came a letter from him to
-Mr. Cardus in answer to the one sent by his uncle. He thanked his uncle
-warmly for his kindness, and more especially for not joining in the hue
-and cry against him. As regarded money, he hoped to be able to make a
-living for himself, but if he wanted any he would draw. The letter,
-which was short, ended thus:
-
-“Thank Doll and Jeremy for their letters. I would answer them, but I am
-too down on my luck to write much; writing stirs up so many painful
-memories, and makes me think of all the dear folks at home more than is
-good for me. The fact is, my dear uncle, what between one thing and
-another, I never was so miserable in my life, and as for loneliness I
-never knew what it meant before. Sometimes I wish that my cousin had
-hit me instead of my hitting him, and that I was dead and buried, clean
-out of the way. Alston, who was my second in that unhappy affair, and
-with whom I am going up-country shooting, has been most kind to me, and
-has introduced me to a good many people here. They are very
-hospitable—everybody is hospitable in a colony; but somehow a hundred
-new faces cannot make up for one old one, and I should think old
-Atterleigh a cheerful companion beside the best of them. What is more,
-I feel myself an impostor intruding myself on them under an assumed
-name. Good-bye, my dear uncle. It would be difficult for me to explain
-how grateful I am for your goodness to me. Love to dear Doll and
-Jeremy.
-
-“Ever your affectionate nephew, E. K.”
-
-
-All the party at Dum’s Ness were much touched by this letter, more
-especially Dorothy, who could not bear to think of Ernest all alone out
-there in that strange far-off land. Her tender little heart grew alive
-with love and sorrow as she lay awake at night and thought of him
-travelling over the great African plains. She got all the books that
-were to be had about South Africa and read them, so that she might be
-the better able to follow his life in her thoughts. One day when
-Florence came to see her she read her part of Ernest’s letter, and when
-she had finished was astonished to see a tear in her visitor’s keen
-eyes. She liked Florence the better for that tear. Could she have seen
-the conflict that was raging in the fierce heart of the woman before
-her, she would have started from her as though she had been a poisonous
-snake. The letter touched Florence—touched her to the quick. The tale
-of Ernest’s loneliness almost overcame her resolution, for she alone
-knew why he was so utterly lonely, and what it was that crushed him.
-Had Ernest alone been concerned, it is probable that she would then and
-there have thrown up her cruel game; but he was not alone concerned.
-There was her sister who had robbed her of her lover—her sister whose
-loveliness was a standing affront to her as her sweetness was a
-standing reproach. She was sorry for Ernest, and would have been glad
-to make him happier, but as that could only be done by foregoing her
-revenge upon her sister, Ernest must continue to suffer. And after all
-why should he not suffer? she argued. Did not she suffer?
-
-When Florence got home she told Eva about the letter from her lover,
-but she said nothing of his evident distress. He was making friends, he
-expected great pleasure from his shooting—altogether he was getting on
-well.
-
-Eva listened, hardened her heart, and went out district visiting with
-Mr. Plowden.
-
-Time went on, and no letters came from Ernest. One month, two months,
-six months passed, and there was no intelligence of him. Dorothy grew
-very anxious, and so did Mr. Cardus, but they did not speak of the
-matter much, except to remark that the reason no doubt was that he was
-away on his shooting excursion.
-
-Jeremy also, in his slow way, grew intensely preoccupied with the fact
-that they never heard from Ernest now, and that life was consequently a
-blank. He sat upon the stool in his uncle’s outer office and made
-pretence to copy deeds and drafts, but in reality he occupied his time
-in assiduously polishing his nails and thinking. As for the deeds and
-drafts, he gave them to his grandfather to copy. “It kept the old
-gentleman employed,” he would explain to Dorothy, “and from indulging
-in bad thoughts about the devil.”
-
-But it was one night out duck-shooting that his great inspiration came.
-It was a bitter night, a night on which no sane creature except Jeremy
-would ever have dreamed of going to shoot ducks or anything else. The
-marshes were partially frozen, and a fierce east wind was blowing
-across them; but utterly regardless of the cold, there sat Jeremy under
-the lee of a dike bank, listening for the sound of the ducks’ wings as
-they passed to their feeding-grounds, and occasionally getting a shot
-at them as they crossed the moon above him. There were not many ducks,
-and the solitude and silence were inductive to contemplation. Ernest
-did not write. Was he dead? Not probable, or they would have heard of
-it. Where was he, then? Impossible to say, impossible to discover. Was
-it impossible? “_Swish, swish, bang!_” and down came a mallard at his
-feet. A quick shot, that! Yes, it was impossible; they had no means of
-inquiry here. The inquiry, if any, must be made there, on the other
-side of the water. But who was to make it? Ah! an idea struck him. Why
-should not he, Jeremy, make that inquiry? Why should he not go to South
-Africa and look for Ernest? A flight of duck passed over his head
-unheeded. What did he care for duck? He had solved the problem which
-had been troubling him all these months. He would go to South Africa
-and look for Ernest. If Mr. Cardus would not give him the money, he
-would work his way out. Anyhow he would go. He could bear the suspense
-no longer.
-
-Jeremy rose in the new-found strength of his purpose, and gathering up
-the slain—there were only three—whistled to his retriever, and made his
-way back to Dum’s Ness.
-
-He found Mr. Cardus and Dorothy by the fire in the sitting-room.
-Hard-riding Atterleigh was there too, in his place in the ingle-nook, a
-riding-whip in his ink-stained hand, with which he was tapping his
-top-boot. They turned as he entered, except his grandfather, who did
-not hear him.
-
-“What sport have you had, Jeremy?” asked his sister, with a sad little
-smile. Her face had grown very sad of late.
-
-“Three ducks,” he answered shortly, advancing his powerful form out of
-the shadows into the firelight. “I came home just as they were
-beginning to fly.”
-
-“You found it cold, I suppose?” said Mr. Cardus, absently. They had
-been talking of Ernest, and he was still thinking of him.
-
-“No, I did not think of the cold. I came home because I had an idea.”
-
-Both his hearers looked up surprised. Ideas were not very common to
-Jeremy, or if they were he kept them to himself.
-
-“Well, Jeremy?” said Dorothy, inquiringly.
-
-“Well, it is this. I cannot stand it about Ernest any longer, and I am
-going to look for him. If you won’t give me the money,” he went on,
-addressing Mr. Cardus almost fiercely, “I will work my way out. It is
-no credit to me,” he added; “I lead a dog’s life while I don’t know
-where he is.”
-
-Dorothy flushed a pale pink with pleasure. Rising, she went up to her
-great strong brother, and standing on tip-toe, managed to kiss him on
-the chin.
-
-“That is like you, Jeremy dear,” she said, softly.
-
-Mr. Cardus looked up too, and after his fashion let his eyes wander
-round Jeremy before he spoke.
-
-“You shall have as much money as you like, Jeremy,” he said presently;
-“and if you bring Ernest back safe, I will leave you twenty thousand
-pounds;” and he struck his hand down upon his knee, an evidence of
-excitement which it was unusual for him to display.
-
-“I don’t want your twenty thousand pounds—I want Ernest,” answered the
-young man, gruffly.
-
-“No, I know you don’t, my lad; I know you don’t. But find him and keep
-him safe, and you shall have it. Money is not to be sneezed at, let me
-tell you. I say keep him, for I forgot you cannot bring him back till
-this accursed business has blown over. When will you go?”
-
-“By the next mail, of course. They leave every Friday; I will not waste
-a day. To-day is Saturday; I will sail next Friday.”
-
-“That is right: you shall go at once. I will give you a cheque for £500
-to-morrow, and mind, Jeremy, you are not to spare money. If he has gone
-to the Zambesi, you must follow him. Never think of the money; I will
-think of that.”
-
-Jeremy soon made his preparations. They consisted chiefly of rifles. He
-was to leave Dum’s Ness early on the Thursday. On the Wednesday
-afternoon it occurred to him that he might as well tell Eva Ceswick
-that he was going in search of Ernest, and ask if she had any message.
-Jeremy was the only person, or thought that he was the only person, in
-the secret of Ernest’s affection for Eva. Ernest had asked him to keep
-it secret, and he had kept it as secret as the dead, never breathing a
-word of it, even to his sister.
-
-It was about five o’clock on a windy March afternoon when he set out
-for the Cottage. On the edge of the hamlet of Kesterwick, some three
-hundred yards from the cliff, stood two or three little hovels, turning
-their naked faces to the full fury of the sea-blast. He was drawing
-near to these when he came to a stile which gave passage over a sod
-wall that ran to the edge of the cliff, marking the limits of the
-village common. As he approached the stile the wind brought him the
-sound of voices—a man’s and a woman’s—engaged apparently in angry
-dispute on the farther side of the wall. Instead of getting over the
-stile, he stepped to the right and looked over the wall, and saw the
-new clergyman, Mr. Plowden, standing with his back towards him, and,
-apparently very much against her will, holding Eva Ceswick by the hand.
-Jeremy was too far off to overhear his words, but from his voice it was
-clear that Plowden was talking in an excited, masterful tone. Just then
-Eva turned her head a little, and he did hear what she said, her voice
-being so much clearer:
-
-“No, Mr. Plowden, no! Let go my hand. Ah! why will you not take an
-answer?”
-
-Just at that moment she succeeded in wrenching her imprisoned hand from
-his strong grasp, and without waiting for any more words, set off
-towards Kesterwick almost at a run.
-
-Jeremy was a man of slow mind, though when once his mind was made up,
-it was of a singularly determined nature. At first he did not quite
-take in the full significance of the scene, but when he did a great red
-flush spread over his honest face, and the big gray eyes sparkled
-dangerously. Presently Mr. Plowden turned and saw him. Jeremy noticed
-that the “sign of the cross” was remarkably visible on his forehead,
-and that his face wore an expression by no means pleasant to
-behold—anything but Christian, in short.
-
-“Hullo!” he said to Jeremy; “what are you doing there?”
-
-Before answering, Jeremy put his hand on the top of the sod wall, and
-vaulting over, walked straight up to the clergyman.
-
-“I was watching you,” he said, looking him straight in the eyes.
-
-“Indeed!—an honourable employment; eavesdropping I think it is
-generally called.”
-
-Whatever had passed between Mr. Plowden and Eva Ceswick, it had clearly
-not improved the former’s temper.
-
-“What do you mean?”
-
-“I mean what I say.”
-
-“Well, Mr. Plowden, I may as well tell you what _I_ mean; I am not good
-at talking, but I know that I shall be able to make you understand. I
-saw you just now assaulting Miss Ceswick.”
-
-“It is a lie!”
-
-“That is not a gentlemanlike word, Mr. Plowden, but as you are not a
-gentleman I will overlook it.” Jeremy, after the dangerous fashion of
-the Anglo-Saxon race, always got wonderfully cool as a row thickened.
-“I repeat that I saw you holding her, notwithstanding her struggles to
-get away.”
-
-“And what is that to you, confound you!” said Mr. Plowden, shaking with
-fury, and raising a thick stick he held in his hand in a suggestive
-manner.
-
-“Don’t lose your temper, and you shall hear. Miss Eva Ceswick is
-engaged to my friend Ernest Kershaw, or something very like it, and, as
-he is not here to look after his own interests, I must look after them
-for him.”
-
-“Ah, yes,” answered Mr. Plowden, with a ghastly smile, “I have heard of
-that. The murderer, yon mean?”
-
-“I recommend you, Mr. Plowden, in your own interest, “to be a little
-more careful in your terms.”
-
-“And supposing that there has been something between your—your friend—”
-
-“Much better term, Mr. Plowden.”
-
-“And Miss Eva Ceswick, what, I should like to know, is there to prevent
-her having changed her mind?”
-
-Jeremy laughed aloud, it must be admitted rather insolently, and in a
-way calculated to irritate people of meeker mind than Mr. Plowden.
-
-“To any one, Mr. Plowden, who has the privilege of your acquaintance,
-and who also knows Ernest Kershaw, your question would seem absurd. You
-see, there are some people between whom there can be no comparison. It
-is not possible that, after caring for Ernest, any woman could care for
-you;” and Jeremy laughed again.
-
-Mr. Plowden’s thick lips turned quite pale, the veinous cross upon his
-forehead throbbed until Jeremy thought that it would burst, and his
-eyes shone with the concentrated light of hate. His vanity was his
-weakest point. He controlled himself with an effort, however; though if
-there had been any deadly weapon at hand it might have gone hard with
-Jeremy.
-
-“Perhaps you will explain the meaning of your interference and your
-insolence, and let me go on?”
-
-“Oh, with pleasure,” answered Jeremy, with refreshing cheerfulness. “It
-is just this; if I catch you at any such tricks again, you shall suffer
-for it. One can’t thrash a clergyman, and one can’t fight him, because
-he won’t fight; but look here, one can _shake him,_ for that leaves no
-marks; and if you go on with these games, so sure as my name is Jeremy
-Jones, I will shake your teeth down your throat! Good-night!” and
-Jeremy turned to go.
-
-It is not wise to turn one’s back upon an infuriated animal, and at
-that moment Mr. Plowden was nothing more. Even as he turned, Jeremy
-remembered this, and gave himself a slew to one side. It was fortunate
-for him that he did so, for at that moment Mr. Plowden’s heavy
-blackthorn stick, directed downwards with ail the strength of Mr.
-Plowden’s powerful arm, passed within a few inches of his head, out of
-which, had he not turned, it would have probably knocked the brains. As
-it was, it struck the ground with such force that the jar sent it
-flying out of its owner’s hands.
-
-“Ah, you would!” was Jeremy’s reflection as he sprang at his assailant.
-
-Now Mr. Plowden was a very powerful man, but he was no match for
-Jeremy, who in after days came to be known as the strongest man in the
-east of England, and so he was destined to find out. Once Jeremy got a
-grip of him—for his respect for the Church prevented him from trying to
-knock him down—he seemed to crumple up like a piece of paper in his
-iron grasp. Jeremy could easily have thrown him, but he would not; he
-had his own ends in view. So he just held the Reverend James tight
-enough to prevent him from doing him any serious injury, and let him
-struggle frantically till he thought he was sufficiently exhausted for
-his purpose. Then Jeremy suddenly gave him a violent twist, got behind
-him, and set to work with a will to fulfil his promise of a shaking. O,
-what a shake that was! First of all he shook him backwards and forwards
-for Ernest’s sake, then he alternated the motion and shook him from
-side to side for his own sake, and finally he shook him every possible
-way for the sake of Eva Ceswick.
-
-It was a wonderful sight to see the great burly clergyman, his hat off,
-his white tie undone, and his coat-tails waving like streamers,
-bounding and gambolling on the breezy cliffs, his head, legs, and arms
-jerking in every possible direction, like those of a galvanised frog;
-while behind him, his legs slightly apart to get a better grip of the
-ground, and his teeth firmly clinched, Jeremy shook away with the
-fixity of Fate.
-
-At last, getting exhausted, he stopped, and, holding Mr. Plowden still,
-gave him a drop-kick—only one. But Jeremy’s leg was very strong, and he
-always wore thick boots, and the result was startling. Mr. Plowden rose
-some inches off the ground, and went on his face into a furze-bush.
-
-[Illustration: “The result was startling.”]
-
-“He will hardly like to show _that_ honourable wound,” reflected
-Jeremy, as he wiped the perspiration from his brow with every sign of
-satisfaction.
-
-Then he went and picked his fallen enemy out of the bush, where he had
-nearly fainted, smoothed his clothes, tied the white tie as neatly as
-he could, and put the wide hat on the dishevelled hair. Then he sat him
-down on the furze to recover himself.
-
-“Good-night, Mr. Plowden, good-night. Next time you wish to hit a man
-with a big stick, do not wait till his back is turned. Ah, I daresay
-your head aches. I should advise you to go home and have a nice sleep.”
-
-And Jeremy departed on his way, filled with a fearful joy.
-
-When he reached the Cottage he found everything in a state of
-confusion. Miss Ceswick, it appeared, had been suddenly taken very
-seriously ill; indeed, it was feared that she had got a stroke of
-apoplexy. He managed, however, to send up a message to Eva to say that
-he wished to speak to her for a minute. Presently she came down,
-crying.
-
-“O, my poor aunt is so dreadfully ill,” she said. “We think that she is
-dying!”
-
-Jeremy offered some awkward condolences, and indeed was much
-distressed. He liked old Miss Ceswick.
-
-“I am going to South Africa to-morrow. Miss Eva,” he said.
-
-She started violently, and blushed up to her hair.
-
-“Going to South Africa! What for?”
-
-“I am going to look for Ernest. We are afraid that something must have
-happened to him.”
-
-“O, don’t say that!” she said. “Perhaps he has—amusements which prevent
-his writing.”
-
-“I may as well tell you that I saw something of what passed between you
-and Mr. Plowden.”
-
-Again Eva blushed.
-
-“Mr. Plowden was very rude,” she said.
-
-“So I thought; but I think that he is sorry for it now!”
-
-“What do you mean?”
-
-“I mean that I nearly shook his ugly head off for him.”
-
-“O, how could you?” Eva asked, severely; but there was no severity on
-her face.
-
-Just then Florence’s voice was heard calling imperatively.
-
-“I must go,” said Eva.
-
-“Have you any message for Ernest, if I find him?”
-
-Eva hesitated.
-
-“I know all about it,” said Jeremy, considerately turning his head.
-
-“O no, I have no message—that is—O, tell him _that I love him dearly!_”
-and she turned and fled upstairs.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V.
-FLORENCE ON MARRIAGE
-
-
-Miss Ceswick’s seizure turned out to be even worse than was
-anticipated. Once she appeared to regain consciousness, and began to
-mutter something; then she sank back into a torpor, out of which she
-never woke again.
-
-It was fortunate that her condition was not such as to require the
-services of the clergyman, because, for some time after the events
-described in the last chapter, Mr. Plowden was not in any condition to
-give them. Whether it was the shaking or the well-planted kick or the
-shock to his system it is impossible to say, but in the upshot he was
-constrained to keep his bed for several days. Indeed, the first service
-that he took was on the occasion of the opening of the ancient Ceswick
-vault to receive the remains of the recently deceased lady. The only
-territorial possession which remained to the Ceswicks was their vault.
-Indeed, as Florence afterwards remarked to her sister, there was a
-certain irony in the reflection that of all their wide acres there
-remained only the few square feet of soil which for centuries had
-covered the bones of the race.
-
-When their aunt was dead and buried the two girls went back to the
-Cottage, and were very desolate. They had both of them loved the old
-lady in their separate ways, more especially Florence, both because she
-possessed the deeper nature of the two and because she had lived the
-longest with her.
-
-But the grief of youth at the departure of age is not inconsolable, and
-after a month or so they had conquered the worst of their sorrow. Then
-it was that the question what they were to do came prominently to the
-fore. Such little property as their aunt had possessed was equally
-divided between them, and the Cottage left to their joint use. This
-gave them enough to live on in their quiet way, but it undoubtedly left
-them in a very lonely and unprotected position. Such as it was,
-however, they, or rather Florence—for she managed all the
-business—decided to make the best of it. At Kesterwick, at any rate,
-they were known, and it was, they felt, better to stay there than to
-float away and become waifs and strays on the great sea of English
-life. So they settled to stay.
-
-Florence had, moreover, her own reasons for staying. She had come to
-the conclusion that it would be desirable that her sister Eva should
-marry Mr. Plowden. Not that she liked Mr. Plowden—her lady’s instincts
-rose up in rebellion against the man—but if Eva did not marry him, it
-was probable that she would in the long-run marry Ernest, and Ernest,
-Florence swore, she should not marry. To prevent such a marriage was
-the main purpose of her life. Her jealousy and hatred of her sister had
-become a part of herself; the gratification of her revenge was the evil
-star by which she shaped her course. It may seem a terrible thing that
-so young a woman could give the best energies of her life to such a
-purpose, but it was none the less the truth.
-
-Hers was a wild strange nature, a nature capable of violent love and
-violent hate; the same pendulum could swing with equal ease to each
-extreme. Eva had robbed her of Her lover; she would rob Eva, and put
-the prize out of her reach too. Little she recked of the wickedness of
-her design; for where in the long record of human crime is there a
-wickedness to surpass the deliberate separation, for no good reason, of
-two people who love each other with all their hearts? Surely there is
-none. She knew this, but she did not hesitate on that account. She was
-not hypocritical. She made no excuses to herself. She knew well that on
-every ground it was best that Eva should marry Ernest, and pursue her
-natural destiny, happy in his love and in her own. But she would have
-none of it. If once they should meet again, the game would pass out of
-her hands; for the weakest woman grows strong of purpose when she has
-her lover’s arm to lean on. Florence realised this, and determined that
-they should never set eyes on each other until an impassable barrier,
-in the shape of Mr. Plowden, had been raised between the two. Having
-thus finally determined on the sacrifice, she set about whetting the
-knife.
-
-One day, a month or so after Miss Ceswick was buried, Mr. Plowden
-called at the Cottage on some of the endless details of which
-district-visiting was the parent. He had hardly seen Eva since that
-never-to-be-forgotten day, when he had learned what Jeremy’s ideas of a
-shaking were, for the very good reason that she had carefully kept out
-of his way.
-
-So it came to pass that when, looking out of the window on the
-afternoon in question, she saw the crown of a clerical hat coming along
-the road, Eva promptly gathered up her work and commenced a hasty
-retreat to her bedroom.
-
-“Where are you going to, Eva?” asked her sister.
-
-“Upstairs—here he comes.”
-
-“‘He’! who is ‘he’?”
-
-“Mr. Plowden, of course.”
-
-“And why should you run away because Mr. Plowden is coming?”
-
-“I do not like Mr. Plowden.”
-
-“Really, Eva, you are too bad. You know what a friendless position we
-are in just now, and you go and get up a dislike to one of the few men
-we know. It is very selfish of you, and most unreasonable.”
-
-At that moment the front-door bell rang, and Eva fled.
-
-Mr. Plowden on entering looked round the room with a somewhat
-disappointed air.
-
-“If you are looking for my sister,” said Florence, “she is not very
-well.”
-
-“Indeed, I am afraid that her health is not good; she is so often
-indisposed.”
-
-Florence smiled, and they dropped into the district-visiting.
-Presently, however, Florence dropped out again.
-
-“By the way, Mr. Plowden, I want to tell you of something I heard the
-other day, and which concerns you. Indeed, I think that it is only
-right that I should do so. I heard that you were seen talking to my
-sister, not very far from the Titheburgh Abbey cottages, and that
-she—she ran away from you. Then Mr. Jones jumped over the wall, and
-also began to talk with you. Presently he also turned, and, so said my
-informant, you struck at him with a heavy stick, but missed him.
-Thereupon a tussle ensued, and you got the worst of it.”
-
-“He irritated me beyond all endurance,” broke in Mr. Plowden,
-excitedly.
-
-“O, then the story is true?”
-
-Mr. Plowden saw that he had made a fatal mistake; but it was too late
-to deny it.
-
-“To a certain extent,” he said, sulkily. “That young ruffian told me
-that I was not a gentleman.”
-
-“Really! Of course that was unpleasant. But how glad you must feel that
-you missed him, especially as his back was turned! It would have looked
-so bad for a clergyman to be had up for assault, or worse, wouldn’t
-it?”
-
-Mr. Plowden turned pale, and bit his lip. He began to feel that he was
-in the power of this quiet, dignified young woman, and the feeling was
-not pleasant.
-
-“And it would not look very well if the story got round here, would it?
-I mean even if it was not known that you hit at him with the stick when
-he was not looking, because, you see, it would seem so absurd! The idea
-of a clergyman more than six feet high being shaken like a naughty
-child! I suppose that Mr. Jones is very strong.”
-
-Mr. Plowden winced beneath her mockery, and rising, seized his hat; but
-she motioned him back to his chair.
-
-“Don’t go yet,” she said. “I wanted to tell you that you ought to be
-much obliged to me for thinking of all this for you. I thought that it
-would be painful to you to have the story all over the country-side, so
-I nipped it in the bud.”
-
-Mr. Plowden groaned in spirit. If these were the results of a story
-nipped in the bud, what would its uninjured bloom be like?
-
-“Who told you? “he asked, brusquely. “Jones went away.”
-
-“Yes. How glad you must be, by the way, that he is gone! But it was not
-Mr. Jones, it was a person who oversaw the difference of opinion. No,
-never mind who it was; I have found means to silence that person.”
-
-Little did Mr. Plowden guess that during the whole course of his
-love-scene, and the subsequent affair with Jeremy, there had leaned
-gracefully in an angle of the sod wall, not twenty yards away, a figure
-uncommonly resembling that of an ancient mariner in an attitude of the
-most intense and solemn contemplation; but so it was.
-
-“I am grateful to you, Miss Ceswick.”
-
-“Thank you, Mr. Plowden, it is refreshing to meet with true gratitude,
-it is a scarce flower in this world; but really I don’t deserve any.
-The observer who oversaw the painful scene between you and Mr. Jones
-also oversaw a scene preceding it, that, so far as I can gather, seems
-to have been hardly less painful in its way.”
-
-Mr. Plowden coloured, but said nothing.
-
-“Now you see, Mr. Plowden, I am left in a rather peculiar position as
-regards my sister; she is younger than I am, and has always been
-accustomed to look up to me, so, as you will easily understand, I feel
-my responsibilities to weigh upon me. Consequently, I feel bound to ask
-you what I am to understand from the report of my informant?”
-
-“Simply this, Miss Ceswick: I proposed to your sister, and she refused
-me.”
-
-“Indeed! you were unfortunate that afternoon.”
-
-“Miss Ceswick,” went on Mr. Plowden, after a pause, “if I could find
-means to induce your sister to change her verdict, would my suit have
-your support?”
-
-Florence raised her piercing eyes from her work, and for a second fixed
-them on the clergyman’s face.
-
-“That depends, Mr. Plowden.”
-
-“I am well off,” he went on, eagerly, “and I will tell you a secret. I
-have bought the advowson of this living; I happened to hear that it was
-going, and got it at a bargain. I don’t think that Halford’s life is
-worth five years’ purchase.’”
-
-“Why do you want to marry Eva, Mr. Plowden,” asked Florence, ignoring
-this piece of information; “you are not in love with her?”
-
-“In love! No, Miss Ceswick. I don’t think that sensible men fall in
-love; they leave that to boys and women.”
-
-“O! Then why do you want to marry Eva? It will be best to tell me
-frankly, Mr. Plowden.”
-
-He hesitated, and then came to the conclusion that, with a person of
-Florence’s penetration, frankness was the best game.
-
-“Well, as you must know, your sister is an extraordinarily beautiful
-woman.”
-
-“And would therefore form a desirable addition to your establishment?”
-
-“Precisely,” said Mr. Plowden. “Also,” he went on, “she is a
-distinguished-looking woman, and quite the lady.”
-
-Florence shuddered at this phrase.
-
-“And would therefore give you social status, Mr. Plowden?”
-
-“Yes. She is also sprung from an ancient family.”
-
-Florence smiled, and looked at Mr. Plowden with an air that said more
-plainly than any words, “Which you clearly are not.”
-
-“In short, I am anxious to get married, and I admire your sister Eva
-more than anybody I ever saw.”
-
-“All of which are very satisfactory reasons, Mr. Plowden; all you have
-to do is to convince my sister of the many advantages you have to offer
-her, and—to win her affections.”
-
-“Ah, Miss Ceswick, that is just the point. She told me that her
-affections were already irredeemably engaged, and that she had none to
-give. If only I have the opportunity, however, I shall hope to be able
-to distance my rival.”
-
-Florence looked at him scrutinisingly as she answered:
-
-“You do not know Ernest Kershaw, or you would not be so confident.”
-
-“Why am I not as good as this Ernest?” he asked; for Florence’s remark,
-identical as it was with that of Jeremy, wounded his vanity intensely.
-
-“Well, Mr. Plowden, I do not want to be rude, but it is impossible for
-me to conceive a woman’s affections being won away from Ernest Kershaw
-by you. You are so very _different._”
-
-If Mr. Plowden wanted a straightforward answer, he had certainly got
-it. For some moments he sat in sulky silence, and then he said:
-
-“I suppose, if that is the case, there is nothing to be done.”
-
-“I never said that. Women are frequently married whose affections are
-very much engaged elsewhere. You know how they win their wives in
-savage countries, Mr. Plowden: they catch them. Marriage by capture is
-one of the oldest institutions in the world.”
-
-“Well!”
-
-“Well, the same institution still obtains in England, only we don’t
-call it by that name. Do you suppose that no women are hunted down
-nowadays? Ah, very many are; the would-be husband heads the pack, and
-all the loving relatives swell its cry.”
-
-“You mean that your sister can be hunted down,” he said, bluntly.
-
-“I! I mean nothing, except that the persistent suitor on the spot often
-has a better chance than the lover at a distance, however dear he may
-be.”
-
-Then Mr. Plowden took his leave. Florence watched him walking down the
-garden-path.
-
-“I am glad Jeremy shook you soundly,” she said, aloud. “Poor Eva!”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI.
-MR. PLOWDEN GOES A-WOOING
-
-
-Mr. Plowden was not a suitor to let the grass grow under his feet. As
-he once took the trouble to explain to Florence, he considered that
-there was nothing like boldness in wooing, and he acted up to his
-convictions. Possessing no more delicacy of feeling than a
-bull-elephant, and as much consideration for the lady as the elephant
-has for the lily it tramples underfoot, he, figuratively speaking,
-charged at Eva every time he saw her. He laid wait for her round
-corners, and asked her to marry him; he dropped in on her at odd hours,
-and insisted upon her marrying him. It was quite useless for her to
-say, “No, no, no,” or to appeal to his better feelings or compassion,
-for he had none. He simply would not listen to her; but encouraged
-thereto by the moral support which he received from Florence, he
-crushed the poor girl with his amorous eloquence.
-
-It was a merry chase that Florence sat and watched with a dark smile on
-her scornful lip. In vain did the poor white doe dash along at her best
-speed; the great black hound was ever at her flank, and each time she
-turned came bounding at her throat. This idea of a chase, and a hound,
-and a doe took such a strong possession of Florence’s saturnine
-imagination, that she actually made a drawing of it, for she was a
-clever artist, and not without training, throwing, by a few strokes of
-her pencil, a perfect likeness of Mr. Plowden into the fierce features
-of the hound. The doe she drew with Eva’s dark eyes, and when she had
-done them there was such agony in their tortured gaze that she could
-not bear to look at them, and tore her picture up.
-
-One day Florence came in, and found her sister weeping.
-
-“Well, Eva, what is it now?” she asked, contemptuously.
-
-“Mr. Plowden,” sobbed Eva.
-
-“Oh, Mr. Plowden again! Well, my dear, if you will be so beautiful, and
-encourage men, you must take the consequences.”
-
-“I never encouraged Mr. Plowden.”
-
-“Nonsense, Eva! you will not get me to believe that. If you did not
-encourage him, he would not go on making love to you. Gentlemen are not
-so fond of being snubbed.”
-
-“Mr. Plowden is not a gentleman,” exclaimed Eva.
-
-“What makes you say that?”
-
-“Because a gentleman would not persecute one as he does. He will not
-take No for an answer, and to-day he kissed my hand. I tried to get it
-away from him, but I could not. Oh, I hate him!”
-
-“I tell you what it is, Eva; I have no patience with you and your
-fancies. Mr. Plowden is a very respectable man; he is a clergyman, and
-well off, altogether quite the sort of man to marry. Ah, Ernest—I am
-sick of Ernest! If he wanted to marry you, he should not go shooting
-people, and then running off to South Africa. Don’t you be so silly as
-to pin your faith to a boy like that. He was all very well to flirt
-with while he was here; now he has made a fool of himself and gone, and
-there is an end of him.”
-
-“But, Florence, I love Ernest. I think I love him more dearly every
-day, and I detest Mr. Plowden.”
-
-“Very likely. I don’t ask you to love Mr. Plowden; I ask you to marry
-him. What have love and marriage got to do with each other, I should
-like to know? If people were always to marry the people they loved,
-things would soon get into a pretty mess. Look here, Eva, as you know I
-do not often obtrude myself or my own interests, but I think that I
-have a right to be considered a little in this matter. You have now got
-an opportunity of making a home for both of us. There is nothing
-against Mr. Plowden. Why should you not marry him as well as anybody
-else? Of course, if you choose to sacrifice your own ultimate happiness
-and the comfort of us both to a silly whim, I cannot prevent you; you
-are your own mistress. Only I beg you to disabuse your mind of the idea
-that you could not be happy with Mr. Plowden, because you happen to
-fancy yourself in love with Ernest. Why, in six months you will have
-forgotten all about him.”
-
-“But I don’t want to forget about him.”
-
-“I daresay not. That is your abominable egotism again. But whether you
-want to or not, you will. In a year or two, when you have your own
-interests and your children.”
-
-“Florence, you may talk till midnight if you like; but, once and for
-all, I will not marry Mr. Plowden;” and she swept out of the room in
-her stately way.
-
-Florence laughed softly to herself as she said after her:
-
-“Oh yes, you will, Eva. I shall be pinning a bride’s veil on to that
-proud head of yours before you are six months older, my dear.”
-
-Florence was quite right; it was only a question of time and cunningly
-applied pressure. Eva yielded at last.
-
-But there is no need for us to follow the hateful story through its
-various stages. If by chance any of the readers of this history are
-curious about them, let them go and study from the life. Such cases
-exist around them, and, so far as the victims are concerned, there is a
-painful monotony in the development of their details and their
-conclusion.
-
-And so it came to pass that one afternoon in the early summer,
-Florence, coming in from walking, found Mr. Plowden and her sister
-together in the little drawing-room. The latter was very pale, and
-shrinking with scared eyes and trembling limbs up against the
-mantelpiece, near which she was standing. The former, looking big and
-vulgar, was standing over her and trying to take her hand.
-
-“Congratulate me, Miss Florence,” he said. “Eva has promised to be
-mine.”
-
-“Has she?” said Florence, coldly. “How glad you must be that Mr. Jones
-is out of the way!”
-
-It was not a kind speech, but the fact was there were few people in the
-world for whom Florence had such a complete contempt, or whom she
-regarded with such intense dislike, as she did Mr. Plowden. The mere
-presence of the man irritated her beyond all bearing. He was an
-instrument suited to her purposes, so she used him; but she could find
-it in her heart to regret that the instrument was not more pleasant to
-handle.
-
-Mr. Plowden turned pale at her taunt, and even in the midst of her fear
-and misery Eva smiled, and thought to herself that it was lucky for her
-hateful lover that somebody else was “out of the way.”
-
-Poor Eva!
-
-“Poor Eva!” you think to yourself, my reader. “There was nothing poor
-about her. She was weak; she was wicked and contemptible.”
-
-O, pause awhile before you say so! Remember that circumstances were
-against her; remember that the ideas of duty and of gain drilled into
-her breast and the breasts of her ancestresses from generation to
-generation, and fated as often as not to prove more of a bane than a
-blessing, were against her; remember that her sister’s ever-present
-influence overshadowed her, and that her suitor’s vulgar vitality
-crushed her to the ground.
-
-“Yet with it all she was weak,” you say. Well, she _was_ weak, as weak
-as you must expect women to be after centuries of custom have bred
-weakness into their very nature. Why are women weak? Because men have
-made them so. Because the law that was framed by men, and the public
-opinion which it has been their privilege to direct, have from age to
-age drilled into women the belief—in which, it must be admitted, they
-for the most part readily acquiesce—that they are chattels, to be owned
-and played with, existing for the male pleasure and passion. Because
-men have systematically stunted their mental growth and denied them
-their natural rights, and that equality which is theirs. Weak!—women
-have become weak because weakness is the passport to the favour of our
-sex. They have become foolish because education has been withheld from
-them and ability discouraged; they have become frivolous because
-frivolity has been declared to be the natural mission of woman. There
-is no male simpleton who does not like to find a bigger simpleton than
-he is to lord it over. Truly, the triumph of the stronger sex has been
-complete, for it has even succeeded in enlisting its victims in its
-service. The great instruments in the suppression of women, and in
-their retention at their present level, are women themselves. And yet
-let us be for a minute just. Which is the superior of the two—the woman
-or the man? In strength we have the advantage, but in intellect she is
-almost our equal, if only we will give her fair-play. And in purity, in
-tenderness, in long-suffering, in fidelity, in all the Christian
-virtues, which is the superior in these things? O man, whoever you are,
-think of your mother and your sisters; think of her who nursed you in
-sickness, of her who stood by you in trouble when all others would have
-none of you, and then answer. Poor Eva! Yes, give her all your pity,
-but, if you can, purge it of your contempt. It requires that a woman
-should possess a mind of unusual robustness to stand out against
-circumstances such as hemmed her in, and this she did not possess.
-Nature, which had showered physical gifts upon her with such a lavish
-hand, had not given her that most useful of all gifts, the power of
-self-defence. She was made to yield; but this was her only fault, an
-absolutely fatal one. For the rest she was pure as the mountain snow,
-and with a heart of gold. Herself incapable of deceit, it never
-occurred to her to imagine it in others. She never suspected that
-Florence could have a motive in her advocacy of Mr. Plowden’s cause. On
-the contrary, she was possessed to the full with that idea of duty and
-self-sacrifice which in some women amounts almost to madness. The
-notion so cleverly started by Florence, that she was bound to take this
-opportunity of giving her sister a home and the permanent protection of
-a brother-in-law, had taken a firm hold of her mind. As for the cruel
-wrong and injustice which her marriage with Mr. Plowden would work to
-Ernest, strange as it may seem, as is usual in such cases it never
-occurred to her to consider the matter in that light. She knew what her
-own sufferings were and always must be; she thought that she would
-rather die than be false to Ernest; but somehow she never looked at the
-other side of the picture, never considered the matter from Ernest’s
-point of view. After the true womanly fashion she was prepared to throw
-herself under her Juggernaut called Duty, and let her inner life, the
-life of her heart, be crushed out of her; but she never thought of the
-other life which was welded with her own, and which must be crushed
-too. How curious it is that when women talk so much of their duties
-they often think so little of the higher duty which they owe to the
-unlucky man whose love they have won, and whom they cherish in their
-misguided hearts! The only feasible explanation of the mystery—outside
-of that of innate selfishness—is, that one of the ideas which has been
-persistently drilled into the female breast is that men have not any
-real feelings. It is vaguely supposed that they will “get over it.”
-However this may be, when a woman decides to do violence to her natural
-feelings, and because of pressure or profit contracts herself into an
-unholy marriage, the lover whom she deserts is generally the last
-person to be considered. Poor wretch! he will, no doubt, “get over it.”
-
-Fortunately, many do.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII.
-OVER THE WATER
-
-
-Mr. Alston and Ernest carried out their plans as regarded sport. They
-went up to Lydenburg and had a month’s wilderbeeste and blesbok
-shooting within three days’ “trek” with an ox-waggon from that curious
-little town. The style of life was quite new to Ernest, and he enjoyed
-it much. They owned an ox-waggon and a span of sixteen “salted” oxen,
-that is, oxen which will not die of lung-sickness, and in this
-lumbering vehicle they travelled about wherever fancy or the presence
-of buck took them. Mr. Alston and his boy Roger slept in the waggon,
-and Ernest in a little tent which was pitched every night alongside,
-and never did he sleep sounder. There was a freshness and freedom about
-the life which charmed him. It is pleasant after the day’s shooting or
-travelling to partake of a hearty meal, of which the _pièce de
-résistance_ generally consists of a stew compounded indiscriminately of
-wilderbeeste beef, bustard, partridges, snipe, rice, and compressed
-vegetables—a dish, by the way, which is, if properly cooked, fit to set
-before a king. And then comes the pipe, or rather a succession of
-pipes, and the talk over the day’s sport, and the effect of that long
-shot, and the hunting-yarn that it “reminds me” of. And after the yarn
-the well-known square bottle is produced, and the tin pannikins, out of
-which you have been drinking tea, are sent to the spring down in the
-hollow to be washed by the Zulu “voorlooper,” who objects to going
-because of the “spooks” (ghosts) which he is credibly informed inhabit
-that hollow; and you indulge in your evening “tot,” and smoke more
-pipes, and talk or ruminate as the fancy takes you. And then at last up
-comes the splendid African moon like a radiant queen rising from a
-throne of inky cloud, flooding the whole wide veldt with mysterious
-light, and reveals the long lines of game slowly travelling to their
-feeding-grounds along the ridges of the rolling plain.
-
-Well, “one more drop,” and then to bed, having come to the admirable
-decision—so easy to make overnight, so hard to adhere to when the time
-comes—to “trek from the yoke” at dawn. And then, having undressed
-yourself outside the tent, all except the flannel shirt in which you
-are going to sleep—for there is no room to do so inside—you stow your
-clothes and boots away under your mackintosh sheet—for clothes wet
-through with dew are unpleasant to wear before the sun is up—creep on
-your hands and knees into your little tenement, and wriggle between the
-blankets.
-
-For awhile, perhaps, you lie so, your pipe still between your lips, and
-gazing up through the opening of the little tent at two bright
-particular stars shining in the blue depths above, or watching the
-waving of the tall tambouki-grass as the night-wind goes sighing
-through it. And then, behold! the cold far stars draw near, grow warm
-with life, and change to Eva’s eyes—if unluckily you have an Eva—and
-the yellow tambouki-grass is her waving hair, and the sad whispering of
-the wind her voice, which speaks and tells you that she has come from
-far across the great seas to tell you that she loves you to lull you to
-your rest.
-
-What was it that frighted her so soon? The rattling of chains and the
-deep lowing of the oxen, rising to be ready for the dawn. It has not
-come yet; but it is not far off. See, the gray light begins to gleam
-upon the oxen’s horns, and far away, there in the east, the gray is
-streaked with primrose. Away with dreams, and up to pull the shivering
-Kafirs from their snug lair beneath the waggon, and to give the good
-nags, which must gallop wilderbeeste all to-day, a double handful of
-mealies before you start.
-
-_Ah neu-yak-trek!_ the great waggon strains and starts, and presently
-the glorious sun comes up, and you eat a crust of bread as you sit on
-the waggon-box, and wash it down with a mouthful of spirit, and feel
-that it is a splendid thing to get up early.
-
-Then, about half past eight, comes the halt for breakfast, and the
-welcome tub in the clear stream that you have been making for, and,
-after breakfast, saddle up the nags, take your bearings by the kopje,
-and off after that great herd of wilderbeeste.
-
-And so, my reader, day adds itself to day, and each day will find you
-healthier, happier, and stronger than the last. No letters, no
-newspapers, no duns, no women, and no babies. Think of the joy of it,
-effete Caucasian, then go buy an ox-waggon and do likewise.
-
-After a month of this life, Mr. Alston came to the conclusion that
-there would now be no danger in descending into the low country towards
-Delagoa Bay in search of large game. Accordingly, having added to their
-party another would-be Nimrod, a gentleman just arrived from England in
-search of sport, they started. For the first month or so, things went
-very well with them. They killed a good quantity of buffalo, koodoo,
-eland, and water-buck, also two giraffes; but to Ernest’s great
-disappointment did not come across any rhinoceros, and only got a shot
-at one lion, which he missed, though there were plenty round them. But
-soon the luck turned. First their horses died of the terrible scourge
-of ail this part of South Africa, the horse-sickness. They had given
-large prices for them, about seventy pounds each, as “salted”
-animals—that is, animals that, having already had the sickness and
-recovered from it, were supposed to be proof against its attacks. But
-for all that they died one after another. This was only the beginning
-of evils. The day after the last horse died, the companion who had
-joined them at Lydenburg was taken ill of the fever. Mr. Jeffries—for
-that was his name—was a very reserved English gentleman of good
-fortune, something over thirty years of age. Like most people who came
-into close relationship with Ernest, he had taken a considerable fancy
-to him, and the two were, comparatively speaking, intimate. During the
-first stages of his fever, Ernest nursed him like a brother, and was at
-length rewarded by seeing him in a fair way to recovery. On one unlucky
-day, however, Jeffries being so much better, Mr. Alston and Ernest went
-out to try and shoot a buck, as they were short of meat, leaving the
-camp in charge of the boy Roger. For a long while they could find no
-game, but at last Ernest came across a fine bull-eland standing rubbing
-himself against a mimosa thorn-tree. A shot from his express, planted
-well behind the shoulder, brought the noble beast down quite dead, and
-having laden the two Kafirs with them with the tongue, liver, and as
-much of the best meat as they could carry, they started back for camp.
-
-Meanwhile one of the sudden and tremendous thunderstorms peculiar to
-South Africa came swiftly up against the wind, heralding its arrival by
-a blast of ice-cold air, and presently they were staggering along in
-the teeth of a fearful tempest. The whole sky was lurid with lightning,
-the hills echoed with the continuous roll of thunder, and the rain came
-down in sheets. In the thick of it all, exhausted, bewildered, and wet
-to the skin, they reached the camp. There a sad sight awaited them. In
-front of the tent which served as a hospital for Jeffries was a large
-ant-heap, and on this ant-heap, clad in nothing but a flannel shirt,
-sat Jeffries himself. The rain was beating on his bare head and
-emaciated face, and the ice-cold breeze was tossing his dripping hair.
-One hand he kept raising to the sky to let the cold water fall upon it;
-the other the boy Roger held, and by it vainly attempted to drag him
-back to the tent. But Jeffries was a man of large build, and the little
-lad might as well have tried to drag an ox.
-
-“Isn’t it glorious?” shouted the delirious man, as they came up. “I’ve
-got cool at last!”
-
-“Yes, and you will soon be cold, poor fellow!” muttered Mr. Alston, as
-they hurried up.
-
-They got him back into the tent, and in half an hour he was beyond all
-hope. He did not rave much, but kept repeating a single word in every
-possible tone, that word was:
-
-_Alice._
-
-At dawn on the following morning he died with it on his lips. Ernest
-often wondered afterwards who “Alice” could be.
-
-Next day they dug a deep grave under an ancient thorn-tree, and
-reverently laid him to his rest. On his breast they piled great stones
-to keep away the jackals, filling in the cracks with earth.
-
-Then they left him to his sleep. It is a sad task this, burying a
-comrade in the lonely wilderness.
-
-As they were approaching the waggon again, little Roger sobbing
-bitterly—for Mr. Jeffries had been very kind to him, and a first
-experience of death is dreadful to the young—they met the Zulu
-voorlooper, a lad called Jim, who had been out all day watching the
-cattle as they grazed. He saluted Mr. Alston after the Zulu fashion, by
-lifting the right arm and saying the word “Inkoos,” and then stood
-still.
-
-“Well, what is it, boy? “asked Mr. Alston. “Have you lost the oxen?”
-
-“No, Inkoos, the oxen are safe at the yoke. It is this. When I was
-sitting on the kopje yonder, watching that the oxen of the Inkoos
-should not stray, an Intombi (young girl) from the kraal under the
-mountain yonder came to me. She is the daughter of a Zulu mother who
-fell into the hands of a Basutu dog, and my half-cousin.”
-
-“Well?”
-
-“Inkoos, I have met this girl before, I have met her when I have been
-sent to buy ‘maas’ (buttermilk) at the kraal.”
-
-“Good!”
-
-“Inkoos, the girl came to bring heavy news, such as will press upon
-your heart. Secocoeni, chief of the Bapedi, who lives over yonder under
-the Blue Mountains, has declared war against the Boers.”
-
-“I hear.”
-
-“Sikukuni wants rifles for his men, such as the Boers use. He has heard
-of the Inkosis hunting here. To-night he will send an Impi to kill the
-Inkosis and take their guns.”
-
-“These are the words of the Intombi?”
-
-“Yes, Inkoos, these are her very words. She was sitting outside the
-hut, grinding ‘imphi’ (Kafir corn) for beer, when she heard Secocoeni’s
-messenger order her father to call the men together to kill us
-to-night.”
-
-“I hear. At what time of the night was the killing to be?”
-
-“At the first break of the dawn, so that they may have light to take
-the waggon away by.”
-
-“Good! we shall escape them. The moon will be up in an hour, and we can
-trek away.”
-
-The lad’s face fell.
-
-“Alas!” he said, “it is impossible; there is a spy watching the camp
-now. He is up there among the rocks; I saw him as I brought the oxen
-home. If we move he will report it, and we shall be overtaken in an
-hour.”
-
-Mr. Alston thought for a moment, and then made up his mind with the
-rapidity that characterises men who spend their lives in dealing with
-savage races.
-
-“Mazooku!” he called to a Zulu who was sitting smoking by the
-camp-fire, a man whom Ernest had hired as his particular servant. The
-man rose and came to him, and saluted.
-
-He was not a very tall man; but, standing there nude except for the
-“moocha” round his centre, his proportions, especially those of the
-chest and lower limbs, looked gigantic. He had been a soldier in one of
-Cetywayo’s regiments, but having been so indiscreet as to break through
-some of the Zulu marriage laws, had been forced to fly for refuge to
-Natal, where he had become a groom, and picked up a peculiar language,
-which he called English. Even among a people where all the men are
-fearless he bore a reputation for bravery. Leaving him standing awhile,
-Mr. Alston rapidly explained the state of the case to Ernest, and what
-he proposed to do. Then turning, he addressed the Zulu:
-
-“Mazooku, the Inkoos here, your master, whom you black people have
-named Mazimba, tells me that he thinks you a brave man.”
-
-The Zulu’s handsome face expanded into a smile that was positively
-alarming in its extent.
-
-“He says that you told him that when you were Cetywayo’s man in the
-Undi Regiment, you once killed four Basutos, who set upon you
-together.”
-
-Mazooku lifted his right arm and saluted, by way of answer, and then
-glanced slightly at the assegai-wounds on his chest.
-
-“Well, I tell your master that I do not believe you. It is a lie you
-speak to him; you ran away from Cetywayo because you did not like to
-fight and be killed as the king’s ox, as a brave man should.”
-
-The Zulu coloured up under his dusky skin, and again glanced at his
-wounds.
-
-“Ow-w!” he said.
-
-“Bah! there is no need for you to look at those scratches; they were
-left by women’s nails. You are nothing but a woman. Silence! who told
-you to speak? If you are not a woman, show it. There is an armed Basutu
-among those rocks. He watches us. Your master cannot eat and sleep in
-peace when he is watched. Take that big stabbing assegai you are so
-fond of showing, and kill him, or die a coward! He must make no sound,
-remember.”
-
-Mazooku turned towards Ernest for confirmation of the order. A Zulu
-always likes to take his orders straight from his own chief. Mr. Alston
-noticed it, and added:
-
-“I am the Inkoosi’s mouth, and speak his words.”
-
-Mazooku saluted again, and turning, went to the waggon to fetch his
-assegai.
-
-“Tread softly, or you will wake him; and he will run from so great a
-man,” Mr. Alston called after him sarcastically.
-
-“I go among the rocks to seek ‘mouti’” (medicine), the Zulu answered
-with a smile.
-
-“We are in a serious mess, my boy,” said Mr. Alston to Ernest, “and it
-is a toss-up if we get out of it. I taunted that fellow so that there
-may be no mistake about the spy. He must be killed, and Mazooku would
-rather die himself than not kill him now.”
-
-“Would it not have been safer to send another man with him?”
-
-“Yes; but I was afraid that if the scout saw two men coming towards him
-he would make off, however innocent they might look. Our horses are
-dead, and if that fellow escapes we shall never get out of this place
-alive. It would be folly to expect Basutos to distinguish between Boers
-and Englishmen when their blood is up; and besides, Secocoeni has sent
-orders that we are to be killed, and they would not dare to disobey.
-Look, there goes Mr. Mazooku with an assegai as big as a fire-shovel.”
-
-The kopje, or stony hill, where the spy was hid, was about three
-hundred yards from the little hollow in which the camp was formed, and
-across the stretch of bushy plain between the two Mazooku was quietly
-strolling, his assegai in one hand and two long sticks in the other.
-Presently he vanished in the shadow, for the sun was rapidly setting,
-and, after what seemed a long pause to Ernest, who was watching his
-movements through a pair of field-glasses, reappeared walking along the
-shoulder of the hill right against the sky-line, his eyes fixed upon
-the ground as though he were searching among the crevices of the rocks
-for the medical herbs which Zulus prize.
-
-All of a sudden Ernest saw the stalwart form straighten itself and
-spring down into a dip, which hid it from sight, with the assegai in
-its hand raised to the level of its head. Then came a pause, lasting
-perhaps for twenty seconds. On the farther side of the dip was a large
-flat rock, which was straight in a line with the fiery ball of the
-setting sun. Suddenly a tall figure sprang up out of the hollow on to
-this rock, followed by another figure, in whom Ernest recognised
-Mazooku. For a moment the two men, looking from their position like
-people afire, struggled together on the top of the flat stone, and
-Ernest could clearly distinguish the quick flash of their spears as
-they struck at each other; then they vanished together over the edge of
-the stone.
-
-“By Jove!” said Ernest, who was trembling with excitement, “I wonder
-how it has ended?”
-
-“We shall know presently,” answered Mr. Alston, coolly. “At any rate,
-the die is cast one way or other, and we may as well make a bolt for
-it. Now, you Zulus, down with those tents and get the oxen inspanned,
-and look quick about it, if you don’t want a Basutu assegai to send you
-to join the spirit of Chaka.”
-
-The voorlooper Jim had by this time communicated his alarming
-intelligence to the driver and other Kafirs, and Mr. Alston’s
-exhortation to look sharp was quite unnecessary. Ernest never saw camp
-struck or oxen inspanned with such rapidity before. But before the
-first tent was fairly down, they were all enormously relieved to see
-Mazooku coming trotting cheerfully across the plain, droning a little
-Zulu song as he ran. His appearance, however, was by no means cheerful,
-for he was perfectly drenched with blood, some of it flowing from a
-wound in his left shoulder, and the rest evidently, till recently, the
-personal property of somebody else. Arrived in front of where Mr.
-Alston and Ernest were standing, he raised his broad assegai, which was
-still dripping blood, and saluted.
-
-“I hear,” said Mr. Alston.
-
-“I have done the Inkoosi Mazimba’s bidding. There were two of them; the
-first I killed easily in the hollow, but the other, a very big man,
-fought well for a Basutu. They are dead, and I threw them into a hole,
-that their brothers might not find them easily.”
-
-“Good! go wash yourself and get your master’s things into the waggon.
-Stop! let me sew up that cut. How came you to be so awkward as to get
-touched by a Basutu?”
-
-“Inkoos, he was very quick with his spear, and he fought like a cat.”
-Mr. Alston did not reply, but, taking a stout needle and some silk from
-a little housewife he carried in his pocket, he quickly stitched up the
-assegai-gash, which, fortunately, was not a deep one. Mazooku stood
-without flinching till the job was finished, and then retired to wash
-himself at the spring.
-
-The short twilight rapidly faded into darkness, or rather into what
-would have been darkness, had it not been for the half-grown moon,
-which was to serve to light them on their path. Then, a large fire
-having been lit on the site of the camp to make it appear as though it
-were still pitched there, the order was given to start. The oxen,
-obedient to the voice of the driver, strained at the trek-tow, the
-waggon creaked and jolted, and they began their long flight for life.
-The order of march was as follows: Two hundred yards ahead of the
-waggon walked a Kafir, with strict orders to keep his eyes very wide
-open indeed, and report in the best way possible, under the
-circumstances, if he detected any signs of an ambush. At the head of
-the long line of cattle, leading the two front oxen by a “reim,” or
-strip of buffalo-hide, was the Zulu boy Jim, to whose timely discovery
-they owed their lives, and by the side of the waggon the driver, a Cape
-Hottentot, plodded along in fear and trembling. On the waggon-box
-itself, each with a Winchester repeating rifle on his knees, and
-keeping a sharp lookout into the shadows, sat Mr. Alston and Ernest. In
-the hinder part of the waggon, also armed with a rifle and keeping a
-keen look-out, sat Mazooku. The other servants marched alongside, and
-the boy Roger was asleep inside, on the “cartle,” or hide bed.
-
-And so they travelled on hour after hour. Now they bumped down terrific
-hills strewn with boulders, which would have smashed anything less
-solid than an African ox-waggon to splinters; now they crept along a
-dark valley, that looked spiritual and solemn in the moonlight,
-expecting to see Secocoeni’s Impi emerge from every clump of bush; and
-now again they waded through mountain-streams. At last, about midnight,
-they reached a plain dividing two stretches of mountainous country, and
-here they halted for a while to give the oxen, which were fortunately
-in good condition and fat after their long rest, a short
-breathing-time. Then on again through the long, quiet night, on, still
-on, till the dawn found them the other side of the wide plain at the
-foot of the mountain-range.
-
-Here they rested for two hours, and let the oxen fill themselves with
-the lush grass. They had travelled thirty miles since the yokes were
-put upon their necks—not far according to our way of journeying, but
-very far for cumbersome oxen over an almost impassable country. As soon
-as the sun was well up they inspanned again, and hurried forwards,
-bethinking them of the Basutu horde who would now be pressing on their
-spoor; on with brief halts through all that day and the greater part of
-the following night, till the cattle began to fall down in the
-yokes—till at last they crossed the boundary and were in Transvaal
-territory.
-
-When dawn broke, Mr. Alston took the glasses and examined the track
-over which they had fled. There was nothing to be seen except a great
-herd of hartebeest.
-
-“I think that we are safe now,” he said, at last, “and thank God for
-it. Do you know what those Basutu devils would have done if they had
-caught us?”
-
-“What?”
-
-“They would have skinned us, and made our hearts and livers into
-‘mouti’ (medicine), and eaten them to give them the courage of the
-white man.”
-
-“By Jove!” said Ernest.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII.
-A HOMERIC COMBAT
-
-
-When Mr. Alston and Ernest found themselves safe upon Transvaal soil,
-they determined to give up the idea of following any more big game for
-the present, and to content themselves with the comparatively humble
-wilderbeeste, blesbok, springbok, and other small antelopes. The plan
-they pursued was to slowly journey from one point of the country to
-another, stopping wherever they found the buck particularly plentiful.
-In this way they got excellent sport, and spent several months very
-agreeably, with the further advantage that Ernest obtained considerable
-knowledge of the country and its inhabitants, the Boers.
-
-It was a wild rough life that they led, but by no means a lowering one.
-The continual contact with Nature in all her moods, and in her wildest
-shapes, to a man of impressionable mind like Ernest, was an education
-in itself. His mind absorbed something of the greatness round him, and
-seemed to grow wider and deeper during those months of lonely travel.
-The long struggle, too, with the hundred difficulties which arise in
-waggon-journeys, and the quickness of decision necessary to avoid
-danger or discomfort in such a mode of life, were of great service to
-him in shaping his character. Nor was he left without suitable society,
-for in his companion he found a friend for whose talents and
-intelligence he had the highest respect.
-
-Mr. Alston was a very quiet individual; he never said a thing unless he
-had first considered it in all its bearings; but when he did say it, it
-was always well worth listening to. He was a man who had spent his life
-in the closest observation of human nature in the rough. Now you, my
-reader, may think that there is a considerable difference between human
-nature “in the rough,” as exemplified by a Zulu warrior stalking out of
-his kraal in a kaross and brandishing an assegai, and yourself, say,
-strolling up the steps of your club in a frock coat, and twirling one
-of Brigg’s umbrellas. But, as a matter of fact, the difference is of a
-most superficial character, bearing the same proportion to the common
-substance that the furniture polish does to the table. Scratch the
-polish, and there you have best raw Zulu human nature. Indeed, to
-anybody who has taken the trouble to study the question, it is simply
-absurd to observe how powerless high civilisation has been to do
-anything more than veneer that raw material, which remains identical in
-each case.
-
-To return. The result of Mr. Alston’s observations had been to make him
-an extremely shrewd companion, and an excellent judge of men and their
-affairs. There were few subjects which he had not quietly considered
-during all the years that he had been trading or shooting or serving
-the Government in one capacity or another; and Ernest was astonished to
-find, although he had only spent some four months of his life in
-England, how intimate was his knowledge of the state of political
-parties, of the great social questions of the day, and even of matters
-connected with literature and art. It is not too much to say that it
-was from Mr. Alston that Ernest imbibed principles on all these
-subjects which he never deserted in after-life, and which subsequent
-experience proved to be for the most part sound.
-
-And thus, between shooting and philosophical discussion, the time
-passed on pleasantly enough, till at length they drew near to Pretoria,
-the capital of the Transvaal, where they had decided to go and rest the
-oxen for a month or two before making arrangements for a real big-game
-excursion up towards Central Africa. They struck into the Pretoria road
-just above a town called Heidelberg, about sixty miles from the former
-place, and proceeded by easy stages towards their destination.
-
-As they went on, they generally found it convenient to out-span at
-spots which it was evident had been used for the same purpose by some
-waggon that was travelling one stage ahead of them. So frequently did
-this happen, that during their first five or six out-spans they were
-able on no less than three occasions to avail themselves of the dying
-fires of their predecessors’ camp. This was a matter of lively interest
-to Ernest, who always did cook; and a very good cook he became. One of
-the great bothers of South African travelling is the fire question.
-Indeed, how to make sufficient fire to boil a kettle when you have no
-fuel to make it of is the great question of South African travel. A
-ready-made fire is, therefore, peculiarly acceptable; and for the last
-half-hour of the trek Ernest was always in a great state of expectation
-as to whether the waggon before them had or had not been considerate
-enough to leave theirs burning.
-
-Thus it came to pass that one morning, when they were about fifteen
-miles from Pretoria, which they expected to reach the same evening, and
-the waggon was slowly drawing up to the outspan-place, Ernest,
-accompanied by Mazooku, who lounged about after him like a black
-shadow, ran forward to see if their predecessors had or had not been
-considerate. In this instance energy was rewarded, for the fire was
-still burning.
-
-“Hoorah!” said Ernest. “Get the sticks, Mazooku, and go and fill the
-kettle. By Jove! there’s a knife.”
-
-There was a knife, a many-bladed knife, with a buck horn handle and a
-corkscrew in it, left by the dying fire. Ernest took it up and looked
-at it; somehow it seemed familiar to him. He turned it round, examined
-the silver plate upon it, and suddenly started.
-
-“What is the matter, Ernest?” said Mr. Alston, who had joined them.
-
-“Look there,” he answered; pointing to two initials cut on the knife.
-
-“Well, I see some fellow has left his knife; so much the better for the
-finder.”
-
-“You have heard me speak of my friend Jeremy. That is his knife; I gave
-it to him years ago. Look—J. J.”
-
-“Nonsense! it is some knife like it; I have seen hundreds of that
-make.”
-
-“I believe that it is the same. He must be here.”
-
-Mr. Alston shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“Not probable,” he said.
-
-Ernest made no answer. He stood staring at the knife.
-
-“Have you written to your people lately, Ernest?”
-
-“No; the last letter I wrote was down there in Secocoeni’s country; you
-remember I sent it by the Basutu who was going to Lydenburg, just
-before Jeffries died.”
-
-“Like enough he never got to Lydenburg. He would not have dared to go
-to Lydenburg after the war broke out. You should write.”
-
-“I mean to, from Pretoria; but somehow I have had no heart for
-writing.”
-
-Nothing more was said about the matter, and Ernest put the knife into
-his pocket.
-
-That evening they trekked down through the “Poort” that commands the
-most charming of the South African towns, and, on the plain below,
-Pretoria, bathed in the bright glow of the evening sunshine, smiled its
-welcome to them. Mr. Alston, who knew the town, determined to trek
-straight through it and outspan the waggon on the farther side, where
-he thought there would be better grazing for the cattle. Accordingly,
-they rumbled on past the gaol, past the pleasant white building which
-afterwards became Government House, and which was at that moment
-occupied by the English Special Commissioner and his staff, about whose
-doings all sorts of rumours had reached them during their journey, and
-on to the market-square. This area was at the moment crowded with Boer
-waggons, whose owners had trekked in to celebrate their “nachtmaal”
-(communion), of which it is their habit, in company with their wives
-and children, to partake four times a year. The “Volksraad,” or local
-Parliament, was also in special session to consider the proposals made
-to it on behalf of the Imperial Government, so that the little town was
-positively choked with visitors. The road down which they were passing
-ran past the buildings used as Government offices, and between this and
-the Dutch church a considerable crowd was gathered, which, to judge
-from the shouts and volleys of oaths—Dutch and English—that proceeded
-from it, was working itself up into a state of excitement.
-
-“Hold on,” shouted Ernest to the voorlooper; and then, turning to Mr.
-Alston, “There is a jolly row going on there; let us go and see what it
-is.”
-
-“All right, my boy; where the fighting is, there will the Englishmen be
-gathered together;” and they climbed down off the waggon and made for
-the crowd.
-
-The row was this. Among the Boers assembled for the “nachtmaal”
-festival was a well-known giant of the name of Van Zyl. This man’s
-strength was a matter of public notoriety all over the country, and
-many were the feats which were told of him. Among others it was said
-that he could bear the weight of the after-part of an African buck
-waggon on his shoulders, with a load of three thousand pounds of corn
-upon it, while the wheels were greased. He stood about six feet seven
-high, weighed eighteen stone and a half, and had a double row of teeth.
-On the evening in question this remarkable specimen of humanity was
-sitting on his waggon-box with a pipe, of which the size was
-proportionate to his own, clinched firmly between his double row of
-teeth. About ten paces from him stood a young Englishman, also of large
-size, though he looked quite small beside the giant, who was
-contemplating the phenomenon on the waggon-box, and wondering how many
-inches he measured round the chest. That young Englishman had just got
-off a newly arrived waggon, and his name was Jeremy Jones.
-
-To these advances a cringing Hottentot boy of small size. The Hottentot
-is evidently the servant or slave of the giant, and a man standing by
-Jeremy, who understands Dutch, informs him that he is telling his
-master that an ox has strayed. Slowly the giant rouses himself, and,
-descending from the waggon-box, seizes the trembling Tottie with one
-hand, and, taking a reim of buftalo-hide, lashes him to the
-waggon-wheel.
-
-“Now,” remarked Jeremy’s acquaintance, “you will see how a Boer deals
-with a nigger.”
-
-“You don’t mean to say that great brute is going to beat that poor
-little devil?”
-
-Just then a small fat woman put her head out of a tent pitched by the
-waggon, and inquired what the matter was. She was the giant’s wife. On
-being informed of the straying of the ox, her wrath knew no bounds.
-
-“Slaat em! slaat de swartsel!” (Thrash him! thrash the black creature!)
-she cried out in a shrill voice, running to the waggon, and with her
-own fair hands drawing out a huge “sjambock,” that is, a strip of
-prepared hippopotamus-hide, used to drive the after-oxen with, and
-giving it to her spouse. “Cut the liver out of the black devil!” she
-went on, “but mind you don’t hit his head, or he won’t be able to go to
-work afterwards. Never mind about making the blood come! I have got
-lots of salt to rub in.”
-
-Her harangue, and the sight of the Hottentot tied to the wheel, had by
-this time attracted quite a crowd of Boers and Englishmen who were
-idling about the market-square.
-
-“Softly, Vrouw, softly; I will thrash enough to satisfy even you, and
-we all know that must be very hard where a black creature is in
-question.”
-
-A roar of laughter from the Dutch people round greeted this sally of
-wit, and the giant, taking the sjambock with a good-humoured smile—for,
-like most giants, he was easy-tempered by nature—lifted it, whirled his
-great arm, thick as the leg of an average man, round his head, and
-brought the whip down on the back of the miserable Hottentot. The poor
-wretch yelled with pain, and no wonder, for the greasy old shirt he
-wore was divided clean in two, together with the skin beneath it, and
-the blood was pouring from the gash.
-
-“Allamachter! dat is een lecker slaat” (Almighty! that was a nice one),
-said the old woman; at which the crowd laughed again.
-
-But there was one man who did not laugh, and that man was Jeremy. On
-the contrary, his clear eyes flashed and his brown cheek burned with
-indignation. Nor did he stop at that. Stepping forward, he placed
-himself between the giant and the howling Hottentot, and said to the
-former, in the most nervous English:
-
-“You are a damned coward!”
-
-The Boer stared at him and smiled, and then, turning, asked what the
-“English fellow” was saying. Somebody translated Jeremy’s remark,
-whereupon the Boer, who was not a bad-natured fellow, smiled again, and
-remarked that Jeremy must be madder than the majority of “accursed
-Englishmen.” Then he turned to continue thrashing the Hottentot, but,
-lo! the mad Englishman was still there. This put the Dutchman out.
-
-“Footsack, carl; ik is Van Zyl!” (Get out, fellow; I am Van Zyl!) This
-was interpreted to Jeremy by the by-standers.
-
-“All right; and tell him that I am Jones, a name he may have heard
-before,” was the reply.
-
-“What does this brain-sick fellow want?” shouted the giant.
-
-Jeremy explained that he wanted him to stop his brutality. “And what
-will the little man do if I refuse?” “I shall try to make you,” was the
-answer. This remark was received with a shout of laughter from the
-crowd which had now collected, in which the giant joined very heartily
-when it was interpreted to him.
-
-Giving Jeremy a shove to one side, he again lifted the great sjambock,
-with the purpose of bringing it down on the Hottentot. Another second,
-and Jeremy had snatched the whip from his hand, and sent it flying
-fifty yards away. Then, realising that his antagonist was really in
-earnest, the great Dutchman solemnly set himself to crush him. Doubling
-a fist which was the size of a Welsh leg of mutton, he struck with all
-his strength straight at the Englishman’s head. Had the blow caught
-Jeremy, it would in all probability have killed him; but he was a
-practised boxer, and, without moving his body, he swung his head to one
-side. The Boer’s fist passed him harmlessly, and, striking the panel of
-the waggon, went clean through it. Next instant several of the giant’s
-double row of teeth were rolling loose in his mouth. Jeremy had
-returned the stroke by a right-hander, into which he put all his power,
-and which would have knocked any other man backwards.
-
-A great shout from the assembled Englishmen followed this blow, and a
-counter-shout from the crowd of Dutchmen, who pointed triumphantly to
-the hole in the stout yellow-wood panel made by their champion’s fist,
-and asked who the madman was who dared to stand against him.
-
-The Boer turned and spat out some of his superfluous teeth, and at the
-same instant a young Englishman came and caught hold of Jeremy by the
-arm.
-
-“For Heaven’s sake, my dear fellow, be careful! That man will kill you;
-he is the strongest man in the Transvaal. You are a fellow to be proud
-of, though!”
-
-“He may try,” said Jeremy laconically, stripping off his coat and
-waistcoat. “Will you hold these for me?”
-
-“Hold them?” answered the young fellow, who was a good sort; “ay, that
-I will, and I would give half I have to see you lick him. Dodge him;
-don’t let him strike you, or he will kill you. I saw him stun an ox
-once with a blow of his fist.”
-
-Jeremy smiled.
-
-“Stop,” he said. “Ask that coward, if I best him, if he will let off
-that miserable beggar?” and he pointed to the trembling Hottentot.
-
-The question was put, and the great man answered, “Yah, yah! I will
-make you a present of him!” ironically, and then expressed his
-intention of knocking Jeremy into small pieces in the course of the
-next two minutes.
-
-Then they faced one another. The giant was a trifle over six feet seven
-high; Jeremy was a trifle under six feet two and a half, and looked
-short beside him. But one or two critical observers, looking at the
-latter now that he was stripped for the encounter, shrewdly guessed
-that the Dutchman would have his work cut out. Jeremy did not, it is
-true, scale more than fourteen stone six, but his proportions were
-perfect. The great deep chest, the brawny arms—not very large, but a
-mass of muscle—the short strong neck, the quick eye, and massive leg,
-all bespoke the strength of a young Hercules. It was evident, too, that
-though he was so young, and not yet come to his full power, he was in
-the most perfect training. The Boer, on the other hand, was enormous,
-but his flesh was somewhat soft. Still, knowing his feats, the
-Englishmen present sighed for their champion, feeling that he had no
-chance.
-
-For a moment they stood facing each other; then Jeremy made a feint,
-and, getting in, planted a heavy blow with his left hand on his
-adversary’s chest. But he was to pay for it, for the next second the
-Dutchman got in his right hand, and Jeremy was lifted clean off his
-feet, and sent flying backwards among the crowd.
-
-The Boers cheered, the giant smiled, and the Englishmen looked sad.
-They knew how it would be.
-
-But Jeremy picked himself up little the worse. The stroke had struck
-the muscles of his chest, and had not hurt him greatly. As he advanced,
-the gradually increasing crowd of Englishmen cheered him warmly, and he
-swore in his heart that he would justify those cheers, or die for it.
-
-It was at this juncture that Ernest and Mr. Alston came up.
-
-“Good heavens!” exclaimed the former; “it is Jeremy.”
-
-Mr. Alston took in the situation at a glance.
-
-“Don’t let him see you; you will put him off,” he said. “Get behind
-me.”
-
-Ernest obeyed, overwhelmed. Mr. Alston shook his head. He recognised
-that Jeremy had a poor chance, but he did not say so to Ernest.
-
-Meanwhile Jeremy came up and faced the Dutchman. Encouraged by his late
-success, presently his adversary struck a tremendous blow at him.
-Jeremy dodged, and next instant succeeded in landing such a fearful
-right and left full on the giant’s face that the latter went reeling
-backwards.
-
-A yell of frantic excitement arose from the English portion of the
-crowd. This was indeed a David.
-
-[Illustration: “This was indeed a David.”]
-
-The Dutchman soon recovered, however, and, rendered more cautious, in
-his turn, kept out of Jeremy’s reach, trying to strike him down from a
-distance. For a round or two no important blow was struck, till at last
-a brilliant idea took possession of the young fellow who had charge of
-Jeremy’s coat.
-
-“Hit him about the body,” he whispered; “he’s soft.”
-
-Jeremy took the advice, and next round succeeded in getting in two or
-three blows straight from the shoulder, every one of which bruised the
-Boer’s huge body sadly, and made him rather short of wind.
-
-Next round he repeated the same tactics, receiving himself a stroke on
-the shoulder from Van Zyl’s right hand that for a moment rendered his
-left arm helpless. Before another second was over, however, Jeremy had
-his revenge, and the blood was pouring from his adversary’s lips.
-
-And now the popular excitement on both sides grew intense, for to the
-interest attaching to the encounter was added that of national feeling,
-which was then at a high state of tension. Englishmen, Dutchmen, and a
-mob of Kafirs yelled and shouted, and each of the former two felt that
-the honour of his people was on the issue. And yet it was an unequal
-fight.
-
-“I believe that your friend will be a match for Van Zyl,” said Mr.
-Alston, coolly, but the flash of his eye belied his coolness; “and I
-tell you what, he’s a devilish fine fellow, too.”
-
-At that moment, however, an untoward thing happened. The giant struck
-out his strongest, and Jeremy could not succeed in entirely warding off
-the blow, though he broke its force. Crashing through his guard, it
-struck him on the forehead, and for a moment he dropped senseless. His
-second rushed up and dashed some water over him, and in another instant
-he was on his legs again; but for the rest of that round he contented
-himself with dodging his adversary’s attack, at which the Dutchmen
-cheered, thinking that his iron strength was broken.
-
-But presently, when for the sixth time Jeremy came up with the same
-quiet look of determination in his eyes, and, except that the gaping of
-the nostrils and the twitching of the lip showed a certain measure of
-distress, looking but little the worse, they turned with anxiety to
-examine the condition of the giant. It was not very promising. He was
-perspiring profusely, and his enormous chest rose and fell in jerks.
-Wherever Jeremy’s strokes had fallen, also, a great blue bruise had
-risen on his flesh. It was evident that his condition was the worse of
-the two, but still the Boers had little doubt of the issue. It could
-not be that the man could be worsted by an English lad, who, for a bet,
-with one hand had once quelled the struggles of a wild ox, holding it
-for the space of five minutes by the horn. So they called on him to
-stop playing with the English boy, and crush him.
-
-Thus encouraged, the giant came on, striking out with fearful force,
-but wildly, for he could not box. For thirty seconds or more Jeremy
-contented himself with avoiding the blows; then, seeing an opportunity,
-he planted a heavy one on his adversary’s chest. This staggered Van Zyl
-and threw him off his guard, and, taking the offensive, Jeremy dodged
-in right under the huge fists that beat the air above him, and hit
-upwards with all his power. Thud, thud! The sound of the blows could be
-heard fifty yards off. Nor were they without their effect. The giant
-staggered, threw up his arms, and, amidst fearful shouts and groans,
-fell like an ox struck with a pole-axe. But it was not over yet. In
-another moment he was on his legs again, and, spitting out blood and
-teeth, whirling his hands like the sails of a windmill, reeled straight
-at Jeremy, a fearful and alarming spectacle. As he came, again Jeremy
-hit him in the face, but it did not stop him, and in another second the
-huge arms had closed round him and held him like a vice.
-
-“Not fair! no holding!” shouted the Englishmen; but the Boer held on.
-Indeed, he did more. Putting all his vast strength into the effort, he
-strained and tugged, meaning to lift Jeremy up and dash him on the
-ground. But lo! amid frantic shouts from the crowd, Jeremy stood firm,
-moving not an inch, whereupon the Boers called out, saying that he was
-not a mortal, but a man possessed with a devil! Again the Dutchman
-gripped him, and this time succeeded in lifting him a few inches from
-the ground.
-
-“By George, he will throw him next time!” said Mr. Alston to Ernest,
-who was shaking like a leaf with the excitement; “look!—he is turning
-white; the grip is choking him.”
-
-And, indeed, Jeremy was in evil case; his senses were fast being
-crushed out of him in that fearful embrace, and he vas thinking with
-bitter sorrow that he must fail after all, for an Englishman does not
-like to be beaten even when he has fought his best. Just then it was,
-when things were beginning to swim around him, that a voice he loved,
-and which he had been listening for these many months, rang in his
-ears; whether it was fancy or whether he really heard it he knew not.
-
-“Remember ‘Marsh Joe,’ Jeremy, and _lift him._ Don’t be beat. For God’s
-sake, lift him!” said the voice.
-
-Now there was a trick, which I will not tell you, but which a famous
-Eastern Counties’ wrestler, known as Marsh Joe, had taught to Jeremy.
-So well had he taught him, indeed, that at the age of seventeen Jeremy
-had hoisted his teacher with his own trick.
-
-Just at the moment that Jeremy heard the voice, the giant shifted his
-hold a little, preparatory to making a fresh effort, and thus enabled
-his antagonist to fill his lungs with air. Ernest saw the broad white
-chest heave with relief, for by this time most of the upper clothing of
-the combatants had been wrenched away, and the darkening eye grow
-bright again, and he knew that Jeremy had heard him, and that he would
-conquer or die where he was.
-
-And then—lo, and behold! just as the Boer, feeling that at last he was
-master of the situation, leisurely enough prepared himself for the
-final struggle, suddenly the Englishman advanced his right leg a few
-inches, and with the rapidity of lightning entirely shifted his grip.
-Then he gathered himself for the effort. What secret reserve of
-strength he drew on, who can say? But Ernest’s voice had excited it,
-and it came at his call: and he did a thing that few living men could
-have done, and the fame of which will go down in South Africa from
-generation to generation. For the Englishman’s lithe arms had found
-their hold; they tightened and gripped till they sunk in almost level
-with the flesh of his mighty foe. Then slowly Jeremy began to gather
-purchase, swaying backwards and forwards, and the Dutchman swayed with
-him.
-
-“Make an end of him! make an end of him!” shouted the Boers. But
-behold! their champion’s eyes are starting from his blackened face; his
-head sinks lower and lower, his buttocks rise: he cannot stir.
-
-To and fro sways Jeremy, and now the giant’s feet are lifted from the
-ground. And then one slow and mighty effort—oh, gallant Jeremy!—up,
-still up above the gasping of the wonder-stricken crowd, up to his
-shoulders, Heaven, over it!
-
-Crash!
-
-Van Zyl fell, to be carried away by six strong men a cripple for life.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX.
-ERNEST’S LOVE-LETTER
-
-
-Cheer after cheer arose from the Englishmen around, and angry curses
-from the Dutchmen, as Jeremy turned to look at the senseless carcass of
-the giant. But, even as he turned, exhausted Nature gave out, and he
-fell fainting into Ernest’s arms.
-
-Then did selected individuals of his fellow-countrymen come forward and
-bear him reverently to a restaurant called the “European,” where the
-proprietor—himself an old Eton fellow—met him, and washed and clothed
-and restored him, and vowed with tears in his eyes that he, Jeremy,
-should live at his expense for as long as he liked—ay, even if he chose
-to drink nothing meaner than champagne all day long; for thus it is
-that Englishmen greet one who ministers to that deepest rooted of all
-their feelings—national pride. And then, when at length he had been
-brought to, and refreshed with a tumblerful of dry Monopole, and
-wonderingly shaken Ernest by the hand, the enthusiasm of the crowd
-outside burst its bounds, and they poured into the restaurant, and,
-seizing Jeremy and the chair whereon he sat, they bore him in triumph
-round the market-square to the tune of “God save the Queen.” This was a
-proceeding that would have ended in provoking a riot had not an
-aide-de-camp from his Excellency the Special Commissioner, who sent a
-message begging that they would desist, succeeded in persuading them to
-return to the restaurant. And here they all dined, and forced Jeremy to
-drink a great deal more dry Monopole than was good for him, with the
-result that for the first and last time in his life he was persuaded
-into making an after-dinner speech. As far as it was reported it ran
-something like this:
-
-“Dear friends” (cheers) “and Englishmen” (renewed cheers)—pause—” all
-making great fuss about nothing” (cheers, and shouts of “No, no!”).
-“Fight the Dutchman again to-morrow—very big, but soft as putty—anybody
-fight him” (frantic cheering). “Glad I wasn’t thrashed, as you all seem
-so pleased. Don’t know why you are pleased; ’spose you didn’t like the
-Dutchman. ’Fraid he hurt himself over my shoulder. Wonder what he did
-it for? Sit down now. Dear friends, dear old Ernest—been looking for
-you for long while;” and he turned his glassy eye on to Ernest, who
-cheered frantically, under the impression that Jeremy had just said
-something very much to the point. “Sit down now” (“No, no; go on”).
-“Can’t go on—” quite pumped—very thirsty, too” (“Give him some more
-champagne; open a fresh case”). “Wish Eva and Doll were here, don’t
-you?” (loud cheers). “Gemman” (cheers)—“no, not gemman—friends” (louder
-cheers)—“no, not gemman—friends—English brothers” (yet louder cheers),
-“I give you a toast. Eva and Doll: you all know ’em and love ’em, or if
-you don’t you would, you see, if you did, you know.” (Frantic outburst
-of cheering, during which Jeremy tries to resume his seat, but
-gracefully drops on to the floor, and begins singing “Auld lang syne”
-under the table; whereupon the whole company rise, and with the
-exception of Ernest and a jovial member of the Special Commissioner’s
-staff, who get upon the table to lead the chorus, join hands and sing
-that beautiful old song with all the solemnity of intoxication; after
-which they drink more champagne, and jointly and severally swear
-eternal friendship, especially Ernest and the member of his
-Excellency’s staff, who shake hands and bless each other, till the
-warmth of their emotions proves too much for them, and they weep in
-chorus there upon the table.)
-
-For the rest, Ernest had some vague recollection of helping to drive
-his newly found friend home in a wheelbarrow that would persist in
-upsetting in every “sluit” or ditch, especially if it had running water
-in it; and that was about all he did remember.
-
-In the morning he woke up, or rather first became conscious of pain in
-his head, in a little double-bedded room attached to the hotel. On the
-pillow of the bed opposite to him lay Jeremy’s battered face.
-
-For a while Ernest could make nothing of all this. Why was Jeremy
-there? Where were they? Everything turned round and seemed
-phantasmagorial; the only real, substantial thing was that awful pain
-in the head. But presently things began to come back to him, and the
-sight of Jeremy’s bruised face recalled the fight, and the fight
-recalled the dinner, and the dinner brought back a vague recollection
-of Jeremy’s speech and of something he had said about Eva. What could
-it have been? Ah, Eva! Perhaps Jeremy knew something about her; perhaps
-he had brought the letter that had been so long in coming. O, how his
-heart went out towards her! But how came Jeremy there in bed before
-him? how came he to be in South Africa at all?
-
-At that moment his reflections were interrupted by the entry of
-Mazooku, bearing the coffee which it is the national habit in South
-Africa to drink early in the morning.
-
-The martial-looking Zulu, who seemed curiously out of place carrying
-cups of coffee, seeing that his master was awake, saluted him with the
-customary “Koos,” lifting one of the cups of coffee to give emphasis to
-the word, and nearly upsetting it in the effort.
-
-“Mazooku,” said Ernest, severely, “how did we get here?”
-
-The substance of the retainer’s explanation was as follows: When the
-moon was getting low—vanishing, indeed, behind the “horned house”
-yonder (the Dutch church with pinnacles on it), it occurred to him,
-waiting on the verandah, that his master must be weary; and as most had
-departed from the “dance” in the “tin house” (restaurant), evidently
-made happy by the “twala” (drink), he entered into the tin house to
-look for him, and found him overcome by sleep under the table, lying
-next to the “Lion-who-threw-oxen-over-his-shoulder” (i.e., Jeremy), so
-overcome by sleep, indeed, that it was quite impossible to conduct him
-to the waggon. This being so, he (Mazooku) considered what was his duty
-under the circumstances, and he came to the accurate conclusion that
-the best thing to do was to put them into the white man’s bed, since he
-knew that his master did not love the floor to lie on. Accordingly,
-having discovered that this was a room of beds, he and another Zulu
-entered, but were perplexed to find the beds already occupied by two
-white men, who had lain down to rest with their clothes on. But, under
-all these circumstances, he and the other Zulu, considering that their
-first thought should be towards their own master, had taken the liberty
-of lifting up the two white men, who were slumbering profoundly after
-the “dance,” by the head and by the heels, and putting them out in the
-sweet cool air of the night, leaving thus “made a place,” they then
-conveyed first Ernest, and having removed his clothes, put him into one
-bed, and next, in consideration of his undoubted greatness, they
-ventured to take the “Lion-who, &c.,” himself, and put him in the
-other. He was a very great man, the “Lion,” and his art of throwing
-greater men over his shoulder could only be attributed to witchcraft.
-He himself (Mazooku) had tried it on that morning with a Basutu, with
-whom he had a slight difference of opinion, but the result had not been
-all that could be desired, inasmuch as the Basutu had kicked him in the
-stomach, and forced him to drop him.
-
-Ernest laughed as heartily as his headache would allow at this story,
-and in doing so woke up Jeremy, who at once clapped his hands to his
-head and looked round; whereupon Mazooku, having saluted the awakened
-“Lion-who, &c.,” with much fervour, and spilled a considerable quantity
-of hot coffee over him in doing so, took his departure abashed, and at
-length the two friends were left alone. Thereupon, rising from their
-respective pallets, they took a step in all the glory of their undress
-uniform into the middle of the little room, and, after the manner of
-Englishmen, shook hands and called each other “old fellow.” Then they
-went back to bed and began to converse.
-
-“I say, old fellow, what on earth brought you out here?”
-
-“Well, you see, I came out to look you up. You did not write any
-letters, and they began to get anxious about you at home, so I packed
-up my duds and started. Your uncle stands unlimited tin, so I am
-travelling like a prince in a waggon of my own. I heard of you down in
-Maritzburg, and guessed that I had best make for Pretoria; and here I
-am and there you are, and I am devilish glad to see you again, old
-chap. By Jove, what a head I have! But, I say, why didn’t you write?
-Doll half broke her heart about it, and so did your uncle, only he
-would not say so.”
-
-“I did write. I wrote from Secocoeni’s country, but I suppose the
-letter did not fetch,” answered Ernest, feeling very guilty. “The fact
-is, old fellow, I had not the heart to write much; I have been so
-confoundedly down on my luck ever since that duel business.”
-
-“Ah!” interposed Jeremy, “that shot was a credit to you. I didn’t think
-you could have done it.”
-
-“A credit! I’ll tell you what, it is an awful thing to kill a man like
-that. I often see his face as he fell, at night in my sleep.”
-
-“I was merely looking at it as a shot,” replied Jeremy, innocently, “I
-don’t trouble myself with moral considerations, which are topsy-turvy
-sort of things; and, considered as a shot at twenty paces and under
-trying circumstances, it was a credit to you.”
-
-“And then, you see, Jeremy, there was another thing, you
-know—about—about Eva. Well, I wrote to her, and she has never answered
-my letter, unless,” with a gleam of hope, “you have brought an answer.”
-
-Jeremy shook his aching head.
-
-“Ah! no such luck. Well, it put me off, and that’s the fact. Since she
-has chucked me up, I don’t care twopence about anything. I don’t say
-but what she is right; I daresay that I am not worth sticking to. She
-can do much better elsewhere;” and Ernest groaned, and thought that his
-head was very bad indeed. “But there it is. I hadn’t the heart to write
-any more letters, and I was too proud to write again to her. Confound
-her! let her go! I am not going to grovel to any woman under heaven,
-no, not even to her!” and he kicked the bedclothes viciously.
-
-“I haven’t learned much Zulu yet,” replied Jeremy, sententiously; “but
-I know two words—‘hamba gachlé.’”
-
-“Well, what of them?” said Ernest, testily.
-
-“They mean, I am told, ‘take it easy,’ or ‘look before you leap,’ or
-‘never jump to conclusions,’ or ‘don’t be in a confounded hurry’; “very
-fine mottoes, I think.”
-
-“Of course they do; but what have they got to do with Eva?”
-
-“Well, just this: I said I had got no letter; I never said—”
-
-“What?” shouted Ernest.
-
-“Hamba gachlé,” replied Jeremy, the imperturbable, gazing at Ernest out
-of his blackened eyes. “I never said that I had not got a message.”
-
-Ernest sprang clean out of the little truckle-bed, shaking with
-excitement. “What is it, man?”
-
-“Just this. She told me to tell you that she ‘loved you dearly.’”
-
-Slowly Ernest sat down on the bed again, and, throwing a blanket over
-his head and shoulders, remarked, in a tone befitting a sheeted ghost:
-
-“The devil she did! Why couldn’t you say so before?”
-
-Then he got up again and commenced walking, blanket and all, up and
-down the little room with long strides, and knocking over the water-jug
-in his excitement.
-
-“Hamba gachlé,” again remarked Jeremy, rising and picking up the
-water-jug. “How are we going to get any more water? I’ll tell you all
-about it.”
-
-And he did, including the story of Mr. Plowden’s shaking, at which
-Ernest chuckled fiercely.
-
-“I wish I had been there to kick him,” he remarked, parenthetically.
-
-“I did that too; I kicked him hard,” put in Jeremy; at which Ernest
-chuckled again.
-
-“I can’t make it all out,” said Ernest, at length, “but I will go home
-at once.”
-
-“You can’t do that, old fellow. Your respected uncle, Sir Hugh, will
-have you run in.”
-
-“Ah, I forgot! Well, I will write to her to-day.”
-
-“That’s better; and now let’s dress. My head is rather clearer. By
-George, though, I am stiff! It is no joke fighting a giant.”
-
-But Ernest answered not a word. He was already, after his quick-brained
-fashion, employed in concocting his letter to Eva.
-
-In the course of the morning he drafted it. It, or rather that part of
-it with which we need concern ourselves, ran thus:
-
-“Such then, my dearest Eva, was the state of my mind towards you. I
-thought—God forgive me for the treason!—that perhaps you were, as so
-many women are, a fairweather lover, and that now that I am in trouble
-you wished to slip the cable. If that was so, I felt that it was not
-for me to remonstrate. I wrote to you, and I knew that the letter came
-safely to your hands. You did not answer it, and I could only come to
-one conclusion. Hence my own silence. And to be plain I do not at this
-moment quite understand why you have never written. But Jeremy has
-brought me your message, and with that I must be content; for no doubt
-you have reasons which are satisfactory to yourself, and if that is so,
-no doubt, too, they would be equally satisfactory to me if I only knew
-them. You see, my dearest love, the fact is that I trust and believe in
-you utterly and entirely. What is right and true, what is loyal and
-sincere to me and to yourself—those are the things that you will do.
-Jeremy tells me a rather amusing story about the new clergyman who has
-come to Kesterwick, and who is, it appears, an aspirant for your hand.
-Well, Eva, I am sufficiently conceited not to be jealous; although I am
-in the unlucky position of an absent man, and worse still, an absent
-man under a cloud, I do not believe that he will cut me out. But on the
-day that you can put your hand upon your heart, and look me straight in
-the eyes, and tell me, on your honour as a lady, that you love this or
-any other man better than you do me, on that day I shall be ready to
-resign you to him. But till that day comes—and there is something which
-tells me that it is as impossible for it to come as for the
-mountain-range I look on as I write to move towards the town and bury
-it—I am free from jealousy, for I know that it is impossible that you
-should be faithless to your love.
-
-“Oh, my sweet, the troth we plighted was not for days, or years, or
-times—it was for ever. I believe that nothing can dissolve it, and that
-Death himself will be powerless against it. I believe that with each
-new and progressive existence it will re-arise as surely as the flowers
-in spring, only, unlike them, more fragrant and beautiful than before.
-Sometimes I think that it has already existed through countless ages.
-Strange thoughts come into a man’s mind out there on the great veldt,
-riding alone hour after hour, and day after day, through sunlight and
-through moonlight, till the spirit of Nature broods upon him, and he
-begins to learn the rudiments of truth. Some day I shall tell them all
-to you. Not that _I_ have ever been quite alone, for I can say honestly
-that you have always been at my side since I left you; there has been
-no hour of the day or night when you have not been in my thoughts, and
-I believe that, till death blots out my senses, no such hour will ever
-come.
-
-“Day by day, too, my love has grown stronger even in its despair. Day
-by day it has taken shape and form and colour, and become more and more
-a living thing, more and more an entity, as distinct as soul and body,
-and yet as inextricably blended and woven into the substance of each.
-If ever a woman was beloved, you are that woman, Eva Ceswick; if ever a
-man’s life, present and to come, lay in a woman’s hands, my life lies
-in yours. It is a germ which you can cast away or destroy, or which you
-can nourish till it bursts into bloom, and bears fruit beautiful beyond
-imagining. You are my fate, my other part. With you my destiny is
-intertwined, and you can mould it as you will. There is no height to
-which I cannot rise by your side; there is no depth to which I may not
-sink without you.
-
-“And now, what does all this lead up to? Will you make a sacrifice for
-me, who am ready to give all my life to you—no, who have already given
-it? That sacrifice is this: I want you to come out here and marry me;
-for, as you know, circumstances prevent me from returning to you. If
-you will come, I will meet you at the Cape, and marry you there. Ah,
-surely you will come! As for money, I have plenty from home, and can
-make as much more as we shall want here, so that need be no obstacle.
-It is long to wait for your answer—three months—but I hope that the
-faith that will, as the Bible tells us, enable people to move
-mountains—and my faith in you is as great as that—will also enable me
-to bear the suspense, and in the end prove its own reward.”
-
-Ernest read selected portions of this exalted composition to Mr. Alston
-and Jeremy. Both listened in solemn silence, and at the conclusion
-Jeremy scratched his head and remarked that it was deep enough to
-“fetch” any girl, though for his part he did not quite understand it.
-Mr. Alston relit his pipe, and for awhile said nothing; but to himself
-he thought that it was a remarkable letter for so young a man to have
-written, and revealed a curious turn of mind. One remark he did make,
-however, and that was rather a rude one:
-
-“The girl won’t understand what you are driving at. Master Ernest; she
-will think that you have gone off your head in these savage parts. All
-you say may or may not be true—on that point I express no opinion; but
-to write such things to a woman is to throw your pearls before swine.
-You should ask her about her bonnets, my boy, and tell her what sort of
-dresses she should bring out, and that the air is good for the
-complexion. She would come then.”
-
-Here Ernest fired up.
-
-“You are beastly cynical, Alston, and you should not speak of Miss
-Ceswick like that to me. Bonnets, indeed!”
-
-“All light, my lad—all right. Time will show. Ah, you boys! you go
-building up your ideals of ivory and gold and fine linen, only to find
-them one day turned into the commonest of clay, draped in the dirtiest
-of rags. Well, well, it is the way of the world; but you take my
-advice, Ernest: burn that letter, and go in for an Intombi. It is not
-too late yet, and there is no mistake about the sort of clay a Kafir
-girl is made of.”
-
-Here Ernest stamped out of the room in a passion.
-
-“Too cock-sure, wanted cooling down a little,” remarked Mr. Alston to
-Jeremy; “should never be cock-sure where a woman is concerned; women
-are fond of playing dirty tricks, and saying they could not help it. I
-know them; for, though you mightn’t think it, I was once young myself.
-Come on; let us go and find him, and go for a walk.”
-
-They found Ernest sitting on the box of the waggon, which was
-outspanned together with Jeremy’s, just outside the town, and looking
-rather sulky.
-
-“Come on, Ernest,” said Mr. Alston, apologetically; “I will throw no
-more mud at your ideal. In the course of the last thirty years I have
-seen so many fall to pieces of their own accord that I could not help
-warning you. But perhaps they make them of better stuff in England than
-we do in these parts.”
-
-Ernest descended and soon forgot his pique. It was but rarely that he
-bore malice for more than half an hour. As they walked along one of the
-by-streets they met the young fellow who had acted as second to Jeremy
-in the big fight of the previous day. He informed them that he had just
-been to inquire how the giant was. It appeared that he had received an
-injury to the spine, the effect of Jeremy’s “lift,” from which there
-was little hope of his recovery. He was not, however, in much pain.
-This intelligence distressed Jeremy not a little. He had earnestly
-desired to thrash the giant, but he had had no wish to injure him. With
-his usual promptitude he announced his intention of going to see his
-fallen enemy.
-
-“You are likely to meet with a warm reception if you do,” said Mr.
-Alston.
-
-“I’ll risk it. I should like to tell him that I am sorry.”
-
-“Very good; come along—that is the house.”
-
-The injured man had been carried to the house of a relative just
-outside the town, a white thatched building that had been built
-five-and-thirty years before, when the site of Pretoria was a plain,
-inhabited only by quaggas, eland, and vilderbeeste. In front of the
-door was a grove of orange-trees, which smelled sweet and looked golden
-with hanging fruit.
-
-The house itself was a small white building, with a double-swinging
-door, like those used in stables in this country. The top half of the
-door was open, and over the lower portion of it leaned a Boer, a
-rough-looking customer, smoking a huge pipe.
-
-“‘Dagh, Oom’” (Good-day, uncle), said Mr. Alston, stretching out his
-hand.
-
-The other looked at him suspiciously, and then held out a damp paw to
-each in turn, at the same time opening the door. As Ernest passed the
-threshold he noticed that the clay flooring was studded with
-peach-stones well trodden into its substance to prevent wear and tear
-from passing feet. The door opened into a fair-sized room with
-whitewashed walls called the “sit-kam” or sitting-room, and furnished
-with a settee, a table, and several chairs seated with “rimpi,” or
-strips of hide. On the biggest of these chairs sat a woman of large
-size, the mother of the family. She did not rise on their entry, but
-without speaking held out a limp hand, which Mr. Alston and the others
-shook, addressing her affectionately as “tanta,” or aunt. Then they
-shook hands with six or seven girls and young men, the latter sitting
-about in an aimless sort of way, the former clearing off the remains of
-the family meal, which had consisted of huge bones of boiled fresh
-beef. So fresh was it, indeed, that on the floor by the side of the
-table lay the gory head and skin of a newly killed ox, from which the
-beef had been cut. Ernest, noticing this, wondered at the superhuman
-strength of stomach that could take its food under such circumstances.
-
-The preliminary ceremony of hand-shaking having been got through, Mr.
-Alston, who spoke Dutch perfectly, explained the object of their visit.
-The faces of the Dutchmen darkened as he did so, and the men scowled at
-Jeremy with hatred not unmingled with terror. When he had done, the
-oldest man said that he would ask his cousin if he would see them,
-adding, however, that he was so ill that he did not think it likely.
-Raising a curtain, which served as a door, he passed from the
-sitting-room into the bedroom, or “slaap-kam.” Presently he returned,
-and beckoned to the Englishmen to enter. They passed into a small
-chamber about ten feet square, which was hermetically sealed from air,
-after the fashion of these people in cases of any illness. On a large
-bed that blocked up most of the room, and on which it was the usual
-habit of the master of the house and his wife to sleep _in their
-clothes,_ lay the fallen giant. So much as could be seen of his face
-was a mass of hideous bruises, and one of his hands, which lay on the
-bed, was in splints; the chief injury, however, was to his back, and
-from this he could never expect to recover. By his side sat his little
-wife, who had on the previous day urged the thrashing of the Hottentot.
-She glared fiercely at Jeremy, but said nothing. On catching sight of
-his victor, the giant turned his face to the wall, and asked what he
-wanted.
-
-“I have come,” said Jeremy, Mr. Alston interpreting for him, “to say
-that I am sorry that you are injured so much; that I wanted to beat
-you, but had no idea that I should hurt you so. I know that the trick
-of throwing a man as I threw you is very dangerous, and I only used it
-as a last resource, and because you would have killed me if I had not.”
-
-The Boer muttered something in reply about its being very bitter to be
-beaten by such a little man.
-
-It was evident to Ernest that the man’s pride was utterly broken. He
-had believed himself the strongest man, white or black, in Africa, and
-now an English lad had thrown him over his shoulder like a plaything.
-
-Jeremy next said that he hoped that he bore no malice, and would shake
-hands.
-
-The giant hesitated a little, and then stretched out his uninjured
-hand, which Jeremy took.
-
-“Englishman,” he said, “you are a wonderful man, and you will grow
-stronger yet. You have made a baby of me for life, and turned my heart
-to a baby’s too. Perhaps one day some man will do the same for you.
-Till then you can never know what I feel. They will give you the
-Hottentot outside. No, you must take him; you won him in fair fight. He
-is a good driver, though he is so small. Now go.”
-
-The sight was a painful one, and they were not sorry to get away from
-it. Outside they found one of the young Boers waiting with the
-Hottentot boy, whom he insisted on handing over to Jeremy.
-
-Any scruples the latter had about accepting him were overcome by the
-look of intense satisfaction on the features of the poor wretch himself
-when he learnt that he was to be handed over.
-
-His name was “Aasvögel” (vulture), and he made Jeremy an excellent and
-most faithful servant.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X.
-A WAY OF ESCAPE
-
-
-When Mr. Alston, Jeremy, and Ernest emerged from the back street in
-which was the house they had visited into one of the principal
-thoroughfares of Pretoria, they came upon a curious sight. In the
-middle of the street stood, or rather danced, a wiry Zulu, dressed in
-an old military greatcoat and the ordinary native “moocha,” or scanty
-kilt, and having a red worsted comforter tied round one arm. He was
-shouting out something at the top of his voice, and surrounded by a
-crowd of other natives, who at intervals expressed their approval of
-what he was saying in deep guttural exclamations.
-
-“What is that lunatic after?” asked Jeremy.
-
-Mr. Alston listened for a minute, and answered:
-
-“I know the man well. His name is Goza. He is the fleetest runner in
-Natal, and can go as fast as a horse; indeed, there are few horses that
-he cannot tire out. By profession he is a ‘praiser.’ He is now singing
-the praises of the Special Commissioner—‘bongering’ they call it. This
-is what he is saying:
-
-“‘Listen to the foot of the great elephant Somptseu (Sir T. Shepstone).
-Feel how the earth shakes beneath the tread of the white t’Chaka,*
-father of the Zulus, foremost among the great white people. Ou! he is
-coming; ou! he is here. See how the faces of the “Amaboona” (the Boers)
-turn pale before him. He will eat them up; he will swallow them, the
-huge vulture, who sits still till the ox is dead, who fights the fight
-of “sit down.” Oh! he is great, the lion; where he turns his eye the
-people melt away, their hearts turn to fat. Where is there one like
-Somptseu, the man who is not afraid of Death; who looks at Death and it
-runs from him; who has the tongue of honey; who reigns like the first
-star at night; who is beloved and honoured of the great white mother,
-the Queen; who loves his children, the Amazulu, and shelters them under
-his wide wing; who lifted Cetywayo out of the dirt, and can put him
-back in the dirt again? Abase yourselves, you low people, doctor
-yourself with medicine, lest his fierce eyes should burn you up. O,
-hark! he comes, the father of kings, the Chaka; O! be still; O! be
-silent; O! shake in your knees. He is here, the elephant, the lion, the
-fierce one, the patient one, the strong one! See he deigns to talk to
-little children; he teaches them wisdom; he gives light like the sun—he
-is the sun—he is t’Somptseu.’“
-
-At this juncture a quiet-looking, oldish gentleman, entirely unlike
-either an elephant, a lion, or a vulture, of medium height, with gray
-whiskers, a black coat, and a neat black tie fastened in a bow, came
-round the corner, leading a little girl by the hand. As he came the
-praiser lifted up his right hand, and in the most stentorian tones gave
-the royal salute, “Bayte,” which was re-echoed by all the other
-natives.
-
-The oldish gentleman, who was none other than the Special Commissioner
-himself, turned upon his extoller with a look of intense annoyance, and
-addressed him very sharply in Zulu.
-
-“Be still,” he said. “Why do you always annoy me with your noise? Be
-still, I say, you loud-tongued dog, or I will send you back to Natal.
-My head aches with your empty words.”
-
-* The Zulu Napoleon, great-uncle to the last King of Zululand,
-Cetywayo.
-
-
-“O, elephant! I am silent as the dead: Bayte. O Somptseu! I am quiet:
-‘Bayte.’“
-
-“Go! Begone!”
-
-With a final shout of Bayte the Zulu turned and fled down the street
-with the swiftness of the wind, shouting praises as he went.
-
-“How do you do, sir?” said Mr. Alston, advancing. “I was just coming up
-to call upon you.”
-
-“Ah, Alston, I am delighted to see you. I heard that you were gone on a
-hunting trip. Given up work and taken to hunting, eh? Well, I should
-like to do the same. If I could have found you when I came up here, I
-should have been tempted to ask you to come with us.”
-
-At this point Mr. Alston introduced Ernest and Jeremy. The Special
-Commissioner shook hands with them.
-
-“I have heard of you,” he said to Jeremy; “but I must ask you not to
-fight any more giants here just at present; the tension between Boer
-and Englishman is too great to allow of its being stretched any more.
-Do you know, you nearly provoked an outbreak last night with your
-fighting? I trust that you will not do it again.”
-
-He spoke rather severely, and Jeremy coloured. Presently, however, he
-made amends by asking them all to dinner.
-
-On the following morning Ernest sent off his letter to Eva. He also
-wrote to his uncle and to Dorothy, explaining his long silence as best
-he could. The latter, too, he for the first time took into his
-confidence about Eva. At a distance he no longer felt the same shyness
-in speaking to her about another woman that had always overpowered him
-when he was by her side.
-
-Now that he had been away from England for a year or so, many things
-connected with his home life had grown rather faint amid the daily
-change and activity of his new life. The rush of fresh impressions had
-to a great extent overlaid the old ones, and Dorothy and Mr. Cardus and
-all the old Kesterwick existence and surroundings seemed faint and far
-away. They were indeed rapidly assuming that unreality which in time
-the wanderer finds gather round his old associations. He feels that
-they know him no more; very likely he imagines that they have forgotten
-him, and so they become like the shades of the dead. It is almost a
-shock to such an one to come back and find, after an absence of many
-years, that though he has been living a rapid vigorous life, and
-storing his time with many acts, good, bad, and indifferent; though he
-thinks that he has changed so completely, and developed greatly in one
-direction or another, yet the old spots, the old familiar surroundings,
-and the old dear faces have changed hardly one whit. They have been
-living their quiet English life, in which sensation, incident, and
-excitement are things unfamiliar, and have varied not at all.
-
-Most people, as a matter of fact, change very little except in so far
-as they are influenced by the cyclic variations of their life, the
-passage from youth to maturity, and from maturity to age, and the
-attendant modes of thought and action befitting each period. But even
-then the change is superficial rather than real. What the child is,
-that the middle-aged person and the old man will be also. The reason of
-this appears to be sufficiently obvious: the unchanging personality
-that grows not old, the animating spiritual “ego,” is there, and
-practically identical at all periods of life. The body, the brain, and
-the subtler intellect may all vary according to the circumstances,
-mostly physical, of personal existence; but the effect that the passage
-of a few years, more or less active or stormy, can produce upon a
-principle so indestructible, so immeasurably ancient, and the inheritor
-of so far-reaching a destiny as we believe the individual human soul to
-be, surely must be small.
-
-Already Ernest began to find it something of a labour to indite
-epistles to people in England, and yet he had the pen of a ready
-writer. The links that bound them together were fast breaking loose.
-Eva, and Eva alone, remained clear and real to the vision of his mind.
-She was always with him; and to her, at any period of his life, he
-never found difficulty in writing. For, in truth, their very natures
-were interwoven, and the _rapport_ between them was not produced merely
-by the pressure of external circumstances, or by the fact of continual
-contact and mutual attraction arising from physical causes, such as the
-natural leaning of youth to youth and beauty to beauty.
-
-These causes, according to Ernest’s creed, no doubt had to do with its
-production, and perhaps were necessary to its mundane birth, as the
-battery is necessary to the creation of the electric spark. Thus, had
-Eva been old, instead of a young and lovely girl, the _rapport_ would
-perhaps never have come into being here. In short, they formed the
-cable along which the occult communication could pass, but there their
-function ended. Having once established that communication, and
-provided a means by which the fusion of spirit could be effected, youth
-and beauty and the natural attraction of sex to sex had done their
-part. The great dividing river that rolls so fast and wide between our
-souls in their human shape had been safely passed, and the two
-fortunate travellers had been allowed before their time to reap
-advantages—the measureless advantage of real love, so rare on earth,
-and at its best so stained by passion, which will only come to most of
-us, and then perhaps imperfectly in a different world from this.
-
-Yes, the bridge might now be broken down; it had served its purpose.
-Come age, or loss of physical attraction, or separation and icy
-silence, or the change called death itself, and the souls thus subtly
-blended can and will and do defy them. For the real life is not here;
-here only is the blind beginning of things, maybe the premature
-beginning.
-
-And so Ernest posted his letters, and then, partly to employ his
-thoughts, and partly because it was his nature to throw himself into
-whatever stream of life was flowing past him, he set himself to master
-the state of political affairs in the country in which he found
-himself.
-
-This need not be entered into here, further than to say that it was
-such as might with advantage have employed wiser heads than his, and
-indeed did employ them. Suffice it to say that he contrived to make
-himself of considerable use to the English party, both before and after
-the annexation of the Transvaal to the dominions of the Crown. Among
-other things he went on several missions in conjunction with Mr.
-Alston, with a view of ascertaining the real state of feeling among the
-Boers. Also, together with Jeremy, he joined a volunteer corps which
-was organised for the defence of Pretoria when it was still a matter of
-doubt whether or not the contemplated annexation would or would not
-result in an attack being made upon the town by the Boers. It was a
-most exciting time, and once or twice Ernest and Jeremy had narrow
-escapes of being murdered.
-
-However, nothing worthy of note happened to them, and at last the
-long-expected annexation came off successfully, to the intense joy of
-all the Englishmen in the country, and to the great relief of the vast
-majority of the Boers.
-
-Now, together with the proclamation by which the Transvaal was annexed
-to her Majesty’s dominions, was issued another that was to have a
-considerable bearing upon Ernest’s fortunes. This was none other than a
-promise of her Majesty’s gracious pardon to all such as had been
-resident in the Transvaal for a period of six months previous to the
-date of annexation, being former British subjects and offenders against
-the English criminal law, who would register their name and offence
-within a given time. The object of this proclamation was to give
-immunity from prosecution to many individuals formerly deserters from
-the English army, and other people who had in some way transgressed the
-laws, but were now occupying respectable positions in their adopted
-country.
-
-Mr. Alston read this proclamation attentively when it came out in a
-special number of the _Gazette._ Then, after thinking for a while, he
-handed it to Ernest.
-
-“You have read this amnesty proclamation?” he said.
-
-“Yes,” answered Ernest; “what of it?”
-
-“What of it? Ah, the stupidity of youth! Go down, go down on your
-knees, young man, and render thanks to the Power that inspired Lord
-Carnarvon with the idea of annexing the Transvaal. Can’t you very well
-see that it takes your neck out of the halter? Off with you, and
-register your name and offence with the secretary to Government, and
-you will be clear for ever from any consequences that might ensue from
-the slight indiscretion of having shot your own first cousin on British
-soil.”
-
-“By Jove, Alston! you don’t mean that!”
-
-“Mean it? of course I do. The proclamation does not specify any
-particular offence to which pardon is to be denied, and you have lived
-more than six months on Transvaal territory. Off you go!”
-
-And Ernest went like an arrow.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI.
-FOUND WANTING
-
-
-Ernest reached the Government office and registered his name, and in
-due course received “her Majesty’s gracious pardon and indemnity from
-and against all actions, proceedings, and prosecutions at law, having
-arisen, arising, or to arise, by whomsoever undertaken, &c., conveyed
-through his Excellency the Administrator of Our said territory of the
-Transvaal.”
-
-When this precious document was in his pocket, Ernest thought that he
-now for the first time fully realised what must be the feelings of a
-slave unexpectedly manumitted. Had it not been for this fortunate
-accident, the consequences of that fatal duel must have continually
-overshadowed him. Had he returned to England, he would have been liable
-at any period of his life to a prosecution for murder. Indeed, the arm
-of the law is long, and he lived in continual apprehension of an
-application for his extradition being made to the authorities of
-whatever country he was in. But now all this was gone from him, and he
-felt that he would not be afraid to have words with an
-attorney-general, or shudder any more at the sight of a policeman.
-
-His first idea on getting his pardon was to return straightway to
-England; but that silent Fate which directs men’s lives, driving them
-whither they would not, and forcing their bare and bleeding feet to
-stumble along the stony paths of its hidden purpose, came into his
-mind, and made him see that it would be better to delay a while. In a
-few weeks Eva’s answer would surely reach him. If he were to go now, it
-was even possible that he might pass her in mid-ocean, for in his heart
-he never doubted but that she would come.
-
-And indeed the very next mail there came a letter from Dorothy, written
-in answer to that which he had posted on the same day that he had
-written to Eva. It was only a short letter—the last post that could
-catch the mail was just going out, and his welcome letter had only just
-arrived; but she had twenty minutes, and she would send one line. She
-told him how grateful they were to hear that he was well and safe, and
-reproached him gently for not writing. Then she thanked him for making
-her his confidante about Eva Ceswick. She had guessed it long before,
-she said; and she thought they were both lucky in each other, and hoped
-and prayed that when the time came they would be as completely happy as
-it was possible for people to be. She had never spoken to Eva about
-him; but she should no longer feel any diffidence in doing so now. She
-should go and see her very soon, and plead his cause: not that it
-wanted any pleading, however, she was sure of that. Eva looked sad now
-that he was gone. There had been some talk a while back of Mr. Plowden,
-the new clergyman; but she supposed that Eva had given him his quietus,
-as she heard no more of it now; and so on, till “the postman is at the
-door waiting for this letter.”
-
-Little did Ernest guess what it cost poor Dorothy to write her
-congratulations and wishes of happiness. A man—the nobler animal,
-remember—could hardly have done it; only the inferior woman would show
-such unselfishness.
-
-This letter filled Ernest with a sure and certain hope. Eva, he clearly
-saw, had not had time to write by that mail; by the next her answer
-would come. It can be imagined that he waited for its advent with some
-anxiety.
-
-Mr. Alston, Ernest, and Jeremy had taken a house in Pretoria, and for
-the past month or two had been living in it very comfortably. It was a
-pleasant one-storied house, with a verandah and a patch of
-flower-garden in front of it, in which grew a large gardenia-bush
-covered with hundreds of sweet-scented blooms, and many rose-trees,
-that in the divine climate of Pretoria flourish like thistles in our
-own. Beyond the flowers was a patch of vines, covered at this season of
-the year with enormous bunches of grapes, extending down to the line of
-waving willow-trees, interspersed with clumps of bamboo that grew along
-the edge of the sluit and kept the house private from the road. On the
-other side of the narrow path which led to the gate was a bed of
-melons, now rapidly coming to perfection. This garden was Ernest’s
-especial pride and occupation, and just then he was much troubled in
-his mind about the melons, which were getting scorched by the bright
-rays of the sun. To obviate this he had designed cunning frameworks of
-little willow twigs, which he stuck over the melons and covered with
-dry grass—“parasols” he called them.
-
-One morning—it was a particularly lovely morning—Ernest was standing
-after breakfast on this path, smoking, and directing Mazooku as to the
-erection of the “parasols” over his favourite melons. It was not a job
-at all suited to the capacity of the great Zulu, whose assegai, stuck
-in the ground behind him in the middle of a small bundle of
-knob-sticks, seemed a tool ominously unlike those used by gardeners of
-other lands. However, “needs must when the devil drives,” and there was
-the brawny fellow on his knees, puffing and blowing, and trying to fix
-the tuft of grass to Ernest’s satisfaction.
-
-“Mazooku, you lazy hound,” said the latter, at last, “if you don’t put
-that tuft right in two shakes, by the heaven you will never reach, I’ll
-break your head with your own kerrie!”
-
-“Ow, Inkoos,” replied the Zulu, sulkily, again trying to prop up the
-tuft, and muttering to himself meanwhile.
-
-“Do you catch what that fellow of yours is saying?” asked Mr. Alston.
-“He is saying that all Englishmen are mad, and that you are the maddest
-of the mad. He considers that nobody who was not a lunatic would bother
-his head with those ‘weeds that stink’ (flowers), or these fruits
-which, even if you succeed in growing them—and surely the things are
-bewitched, or they would grow without ‘hats’ (Ernest’s parasols)— must
-lie very cold on the stomach.”
-
-At that moment the particular “hat” which Mazooku was trying to arrange
-fell down again, whereupon the Zulu’s patience gave out, and, cursing
-it for a witch in the most vigorous language, he emphasised his words
-by bringing his fist straight down on the melon, smashing it to pieces.
-Whereupon Ernest made for him, and he vanished swiftly.
-
-Mr. Alston stood by laughing at the scene, and awaited Ernest’s return.
-Presently he came strolling back, not having caught Mazooku. Indeed, it
-would not have greatly mattered if he had; for, as that swarthy
-gentleman very well knew, great indeed must be the provocation that
-could induce Ernest to touch a native. It was a thing to which he had
-an almost unconquerable aversion, in the same way that he objected to
-the word “nigger” as applied to a people who, whatever their faults may
-be, are, as a rule, gentlemen in the truest sense of the word.
-
-As he came strolling down the path towards him, his face a little
-flushed with the exertion, Mr. Alston thought to himself that Ernest
-was growing into a very handsome fellow. The tall frame, narrow at the
-waist and broad at the shoulders, the eloquent dark eyes, which so far
-surpass the loveliest gray or blue, the silken hair, which curled over
-his head like that on a Grecian statue, the curved lips, the quick
-intelligence and kindly smile that lit the whole face—all these things
-helped to make his appearance not so much handsome as charming, and to
-women captivating to a dangerous extent. His dress, too—which consisted
-of riding-breeches, boots and spurs, a white waistcoat and linen coat,
-with a very broad soft felt hat looped up at one side, so as to throw
-the face into alternate light and shadow—helped the general effect
-considerably. Altogether Ernest was a pretty fellow in those days.
-
-Jeremy was lounging on an easy-chair in the verandah, in company with
-the boy Roger Alston, and intensely interested in watching a furious
-battle between two lines of ants, black and red, who had their homes
-somewhere in the stonework. For a long while the issue of the battle
-remained doubtful, victory inclining, if anything, to the side of the
-thin red line, when suddenly, from the entrance to the nest of the
-black ants, there emerged a battalion of giants—great fellows, at least
-six times the size of the others—who fell upon the red ants and routed
-them, taking many prisoners. Then followed the most curious spectacle,
-namely, the deliberate execution of the captive red ants, by having
-their heads bitten off by the great black soldiers. Jeremy and Roger
-knew what was coming very well, for these battles were of frequent
-occurrence, and the casualties among the red ants simply frightful. On
-this occasion they determined to save the prisoners, which was effected
-by dipping a match in some of the nicotine at the bottom of a pipe, and
-placing it in front of the black giants. The ferocious insects would
-thereupon abandon their captives, and, rushing at the strange intruder,
-hang on like bulldogs till the poison did its work, and they dropped
-off senseless, to recover presently and stagger off home, holding their
-legs to their antennas and exhibiting every other symptom of frightful
-headache.
-
-Jeremy was sitting on a chair, oiling the matches, and Roger, kneeling
-on the pavement, was employed in beguiling the giants into biting them,
-when suddenly they heard the sound of galloping horses and the rattle
-of wheels. The lad, lowering his head still more, looked out towards
-the market-square through a gap between the willow-stems.
-
-“Hurrah, Mr. Jones,” he said, “here comes the mail!”
-
-Next minute, amid loud blasts from the bugle, and enveloped in a cloud
-of dust, the heavy cart, to the sides and seats of which the begrimed
-and worn-out passengers were clinging like drowning men to straws, came
-rattling along as fast as the six grays reserved for the last stage
-could gallop, and vanished towards the post-office.
-
-“There’s the mail, Ernest,” hallooed Jeremy; “she will bring the
-English letters.”
-
-Ernest nodded, turned a little pale, and nervously knocked out his
-pipe. No wonder: that mail-cart carried his destiny, and he knew it.
-Presently he walked across the square to the post-office. The letters
-were not sorted, and he was the first person there. Very soon one of
-his Excellency’s staff came riding down to get the Government House
-bag. It was the same gentleman with whom he had sung “Auld lang syne”
-so enthusiastically on the day of Jeremy’s encounter with the giant,
-and had afterwards been carted home in the wheelbarrow.
-
-“Hullo, Kershaw, here we are, ‘primos inter omnes,’ ‘primos primi
-primores,’ which is it? Come, Kershaw, you are the last from
-school—which is it? I don’t believe, you know—ha! ha! ha! What are you
-doing down here so soon? Does the ‘expectant swain await the postman’s
-knock’? Why, my dear fellow, you look pale; you must be in love or
-thirsty. So am I—the latter, not the former. Love, I do abjure thee.
-‘Quis separabit,’ who will have a split? I think that the sun can’t be
-far from the line. Shall we, my dear Kershaw, _shall_ we take an
-observation? Ha! ha! ha!”
-
-“No, thank you, I never drink anything between meals.”
-
-“Ah! my boy, a bad habit; give it up before it is too late. Break it
-off, my dear Kershaw, and always wet your whistle in the strictest
-moderation, or you will die young. What says the poet?—
-
-‘_He who drinks strong beer, and goes to bed mellow,
-Lives as he ought to live, lives as he ought to live,
-Lives as he ought to live, and dies a jolly good fellow._’
-
-
-Byron, I think, is it not? Ha! ha! ha!”
-
-Just then some others came up, and, somewhat to Ernest’s relief, his
-friend turned the light of his kindly countenance to shine elsewhere,
-and left him to his thoughts.
-
-At last the little shutter of the post-office was thrown up, and Ernest
-got his own letters, together with those belonging to Mr. Alston and
-Jeremy. He turned into the shade of a neighbouring verandah, and
-rapidly sorted the pile. There was no letter in Eva’s handwriting. But
-there was one in that of her sister Florence. Ernest knew the writing
-well; there was no mistaking its peculiar upright, powerful-looking
-characters. This he opened hurriedly. Enclosed in the letter was a
-note, which was in the writing he had expected to see. He rapidly
-unfolded it, and, as he did so, a flash of fear passed through his
-brain.
-
-“Why did she write in this way?”
-
-The note could not have been a long one, for in another minute it was
-lying on the ground, and Ernest, pale-faced and with catching breath,
-was clinging to the verandah post with both hands to save himself from
-falling. In a few seconds he recovered, and, picking up the note,
-walked quickly across the square towards his house. Halfway across he
-was overtaken by his friend on the Staff cantering gaily along on a
-particularly wooden-looking pony, from the sides of which his legs
-projected widely, and waving in one hand the Colonial Office bag
-addressed to the administrator of the Government.
-
-“Hullo, my abstemious friend!” he hallooed, as he pulled up the wooden
-pony with a jerk that sent each of its stiff legs sprawling in a
-different direction. “Was patience rewarded? Is Chloe over the water
-kind? If not, take my advice, and don’t trouble your head about her.
-_Quant on n’a pas ce qu’on aime,_ the wise man _aimes ce qu’il a._
-Kershaw, I have conceived a great affection for you, and I will let you
-into a secret. Come with me this afternoon, and I will introduce you to
-two charming specimens of indigenous beauty. Like roses they bloom upon
-the veldt, and waste their sweetness on the desert air. ‘Mater pulchra,
-puella pulcherrima,’ as Virgil says. I, as befits my years, will attach
-myself to the mater, for you sweet youth shall be reserved the puella.
-Ha! ha! ha! “And he brought the despatch-bag down with a sounding whack
-between the ears of the wooden pony, with the result that he was nearly
-sent flying into the sluit, being landed by a sudden plunge well on to
-the animal’s crupper.
-
-“Woho, Bucephalus, woho! or your mealies shall be cut off.”
-
-Just then he for the first time caught sight of the face of his
-companion, who was plodding along in silence by his side.
-
-“Hullo! what’s up, Kershaw?” he said, in an altered tone; “you don’t
-look well. Nothing wrong, I hope?”
-
-“Nothing, nothing,” answered Ernest, quietly; “that is, I have got some
-bad news, that is all. Nothing to speak of, nothing.”
-
-“My dear fellow, I am so sorry, and I have been troubling you with my
-nonsense. Forgive me. There, you wish to be alone. Good-bye.”
-
-A few seconds later, Mr. Alston and Jeremy, from their point of vantage
-on the verandah, saw Ernest coming with swift strides up the
-garden-path. His face was drawn with pain, and there was a fleck of
-blood upon his lip. He passed them without a word, and, entering the
-house, slammed the door of his own room. Mr. Alston and Jeremy looked
-at one another.
-
-“What’s up?” said the laconic Jeremy.
-
-Mr. Alston thought a while before he answered, as was his fashion.
-
-“Something gone wrong with ‘the ideal,’ I should say,” he said at
-length; “that is the way of ideals.”
-
-“Shall we go and see?” said Jeremy, uneasily.
-
-“No, give him a minute or two to pull himself together. Lots of time
-for consolation afterwards.”
-
-Meanwhile Ernest, having got into his room, sat down upon the bed, and
-again read the note which was enclosed in Florence’s letter. Then he
-folded it up and put it down, slowly and methodically. Next he opened
-the other letter, which he had not yet looked at, and read that too.
-After he had done it he threw himself face downwards on the pillow, and
-thought a while. Presently he arose, and, going to the other side of
-the room, took down a revolver case which hung to a nail, and drew out
-a revolver, which was loaded. Returning, he again sat down upon the
-bed, and cocked it. So he remained for a minute or two, and then slowly
-lifted the pistol towards his head. At that moment he heard footsteps
-approaching, and, with a quick movement, threw the weapon under the
-bed. As he did so Mr. Alston and Jeremy entered.
-
-[Illustration: “He slowly lifted the pistol towards his head.”]
-
-“Any letters, Ernest?” asked the former.
-
-“Letters! O yes, I beg your pardon; here they are;” and he took a
-packet from the pocket of his white coat, and handed them to him.
-
-Mr. Alston took them, looking all the while fixedly at Ernest, who
-avoided his glance.
-
-“What is the matter, my boy?” he said kindly, at last; “nothing wrong,
-I hope?”
-
-Ernest looked at him blankly.
-
-“What is it, old chap?” said Jeremy, seating himself on the bed beside
-him, and laying his hand on his arm.
-
-Then Ernest broke out into a paroxysm of grief painful to behold.
-Fortunately for all concerned, it was brief. Had it lasted much longer,
-something must have given way. Suddenly his mood changed, and he grew
-hard and bitter.
-
-“Nothing, my dear fellows, nothing,” he said; “that is, only the sequel
-to a pretty little idyl. You may remember a letter I wrote—to a
-woman—some months back. There, you both of you know the story. Now you
-shall hear the answer, or, to be more correct, the answers.
-
-“That—woman has a sister. Both she and her sister have written to me.
-My—her sister’s letter is the longest. We will take it first. I think
-that we may skip the first page, there is nothing particular in it, and
-I do not wish to—waste your time. Now listen:
-
-“‘By the way, I have a piece of news for you which will interest you,
-and which you will, I am sure, be glad to hear; for, of course, you
-will have by this time got over any little _tendresse_ you may have had
-in that direction. Eva’ (that is the woman to whom I wrote, and to whom
-I thought I was engaged) ‘is going to be married to a Mr. Plowden, a
-gentleman who has been acting as _locum tenens_ for Mr. Halford.’” Here
-Jeremy sprang up, and swore a great oath. Ernest motioned him down, and
-went on: “‘I say I am certain that you will be glad to hear this,
-because the match is in every respect a satisfactory one, and will, I
-am sure, bring dear Eva happiness. Mr. Plowden is well off, and, of
-course, a clergyman—two great guarantees for the success of their
-matrimonial venture. Eva tells me that she had a letter from you last
-mail’ (the letter I read you, gentlemen), ‘and asks me to thank you
-for it. If she can find time, she will send you a line shortly; but, as
-you will understand, she has her hands very full just at present. The
-wedding is to take place at Kesterwick Church on the 17th of May’ (that
-is to-morrow, gentlemen), ‘and, if this letter reaches you in time, I
-am sure you will think of us all on that day. It will be very quiet
-owing to our dear aunt’s death being still so comparatively recent.
-Indeed, the engagement has, in obedience to Mr. Plowden’s wishes—for he
-is very retiring—been kept quite secret, and you are absolutely the
-first person to whom it has been announced. I hope that you will feel
-duly flattered, sir. We are very busy about the trousseau, and just now
-the burning question is, of what colour the dress in which Eva is to go
-away in after the wedding shall be. Eva and I are all for gray. Mr.
-Plowden is for olive-green, and, as is natural under the circumstances,
-I expect that he will carry the day. They are together in the
-drawing-room settling it now. You always admired Eva (rather warmly
-once; do you remember how cut up you both were when you went away? Alas
-for the fickleness of human nature!); you should see her now. Her
-happiness makes her look lovely—but I hear her calling me. No doubt
-they have settled the momentous question. Good-bye. I am not clever at
-writing, but I hope that my news will make up for my want of
-skill.—Always yours,
-
-“‘Florence Ceswick.’
-
-
-Now for the enclosure,” said Ernest:
-
-“‘Dear Ernest,—I got your letter. Florence will tell you what there is
-to tell. I am going to be married. Think what you will of me; I cannot
-help myself. Believe me, this has cost me great suffering; but my duty
-seems clear. I hope that you will forget me, Ernest, as henceforth it
-will be my duty to forget you. Good-bye, my dear Ernest; O, good-bye!’”
-                        ‘E.’”
-
-
-
-
-“Humph!” murmured Mr. Alston beneath his breath. “As I thought—clay,
-and damned bad clay, too!”
-
-Slowly Ernest tore the letter into small fragments, threw them down,
-and stamped upon them with his foot as though they were a living thing.
-
-“I wish that I had shaken the life out of that devil of a parson!”
-groaned Jeremy, who was in his way as much affected by the news as his
-friend.
-
-“Curse you!” said Ernest, turning on him fiercely; “why didn’t you stop
-where you were and look after her, instead of coming humbugging after
-me?”
-
-Jeremy only groaned humbly by way of answer. Mr. Alston, as was his way
-when perplexed, filled his pipe and lit it. Ernest paced swiftly up and
-down the little room, the white walls of which he had decorated with
-pictures cut from illustrated papers, Christmas cards, and photographs.
-Over the head of the bed was a photograph of Eva herself, which he had
-framed in some beautiful native wood. He reached it down.
-
-“Look,” he said, “that is the lady herself. Handsome, isn’t she, and
-pleasant to look on? Who would have thought that she was such a devil?
-Tells me to forget her, and talks about ‘her duty’! Women love a little
-joke!”
-
-He hurled the photograph on to the floor, and treated it as he had
-treated the letter, grinding it to pieces with his heel.
-
-“They say,” he went on, “that a man’s curses are sometimes heard
-wherever it is they arrange these pleasant surprises for us. Now, you
-fellows bear witness to what I say, and watch that woman’s life. I
-curse her before God and man! May she lay down her head in sorrow night
-by night and year by year! May her——”
-
-“Stop, Ernest,” said Mr. Alston, with a shrug; “you might be taken at
-your word, and you wouldn’t like that, you know. Besides, it is
-cowardly to go on cursing at a woman.”
-
-Ernest paused, standing for a moment with his clenched fist still
-raised above his head, his pale lips quivering with intense excitement,
-and his dark eyes flashing and blazing like stars.
-
-“You are right,” he said, dropping his fist on to the table. “It is
-with the man that I have to deal.”
-
-“What man?”
-
-“This Plowden. I fear that I shall disturb his honeymoon.”
-
-“What do you mean?”
-
-“I mean that I am going to kill him, or he is going to kill me; it does
-not matter which.”
-
-“Why, what quarrel have you with the man? Of course he looked after
-himself. You could not expect him to consider your interests, could
-you?”
-
-“If he had cut me out fairly, I should not have a word to say. Every
-man for himself in this pleasant world. But, mark my words, this parson
-and Florence have forced Eva into this unholy business, and I will have
-his life in payment. If you don’t believe me, ask Jeremy. He saw
-something of the game before he left.”
-
-“Look here, Kershaw, the man’s a parson. He will take shelter behind
-his cloth; he won’t fight. What shall you do then?”
-
-“I shall shoot him,” was the cool reply.
-
-“Ernest, you are mad; it won’t do. You shall not go, and that is all
-about it. You shall not ruin yourself over this woman, who is not fit
-to black an honest man’s shoes.”
-
-“Shall not! shall not! Alston, you use strong language. Who will
-prevent me?”
-
-“I will prevent you,” he answered, sternly. “I am your superior
-officer, and the corps you belong to is not disbanded. If you try to
-leave this place you shall be arrested as a deserter. Now don’t be a
-fool, lad; you have killed one man, and got out of the mess. If you
-kill another you will not get out of it. Besides, what will the
-satisfaction be? If you want revenge, be patient. It will come. I have
-seen something of life; at least, I am old enough to be your father,
-and I know that you think me a cynic because I laugh at your
-‘high-falutin’ about women. How justly I warned you, you see now. But,
-cynic or not, I believe in the God above us, and I believe, too, that
-there is a rough justice in this world. It is in the world principally
-that people expiate the sins of the world; and if this marriage is such
-a wicked thing as you think, it will bring its own trouble with it,
-without any help from you. Time will avenge you. Everything comes to
-him who can wait.”
-
-Ernest’s eyes glittered coldly as he answered: “I cannot wait. I am a
-ruined man already; all my life is laid waste. I wish to die, but I
-wish to kill him before I die.”
-
-“So sure as my name is Alston you shall not go!”
-
-“So sure as my name is Kershaw I _will_ go!”
-
-For a moment the two men faced one another; it would have been hard to
-say which looked the most determined. Then Mr. Alston turned and left
-the room and the house. On the verandah he paused and considered for a
-moment.
-
-“The boy means business,” he thought to himself. “He will try and bolt.
-How can I stop him? Ah, I have it!” And he set off briskly towards
-Government House, saying aloud as he went, “I love that lad too well to
-let him destroy himself over a jilt.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII.
-ERNEST RUNS AWAY
-
-
-When Alston left the room, Ernest sat down on the bed again.
-
-“I am not going to be domineered over by Alston,” he said excitedly;
-“he presumes upon his friendship.”
-
-Jeremy came and sat beside him, and took hold of his arm.
-
-“My dear fellow, don’t talk like that. You know he means kindly by you.
-You are not yourself just yet. By-and-by you will see things in a
-different light.”
-
-“Not myself, indeed! Would you be yourself, I wonder, if you knew that
-the woman who had pinned all your soul to her bosom, as though it were
-a ribbon, was going to marry another man to-morrow?”
-
-“Old fellow, you forget, though I can’t talk of it in as pretty words
-as you can, I loved her too. I could bear to give her up to you,
-especially as she didn’t care a brass farthing about me; but when I
-think about this other fellow, with his cold gray eye and that mark on
-his confounded forehead—ah, Ernest, it makes me sick!”
-
-And they sat on the bed together and groaned in chorus, looking, to
-tell the truth, rather absurd.
-
-“I tell you what it is, Jeremy,” said Ernest, when he had finished
-groaning at the vision of his successful rival as painted by Jeremy;
-“you are a good fellow, and I am a selfish beast. Here have I been
-kicking up all this devil’s delight, and you haven’t said a word. You
-are a more decent chap than I am, Jeremy, by a long chalk. And I
-daresay you are as fond of her as I am. No, I don’t think you can be
-that, though.”
-
-“My dear fellow, there is no parallel between our cases. I never
-expected to marry her. You did, and had every right to do so. Besides,
-we are differently made. You feel things three times as much as I do.”
-
-Ernest laughed bitterly.
-
-“I don’t think that I shall ever feel anything again,” he said. “My
-capacities for suffering will be pretty nearly used up. O, what a
-sublime fool is the man who gives all his life and heart to one woman!
-No man would have done it; but what could you expect of a couple of
-boys like we were? That is why women like boys: it is so easy to take
-them in—like puppies going to be drowned, in love and faith they lick
-the hand that will destroy them. It must be amusing—to the destroyers.
-By Jove, Alston was right about his ideals! Do you know, I am beginning
-to see all these things in quite a different light. I used to believe
-in women, Jeremy—actually I used to believe in them. I thought they
-were better than we are,” and he laughed hysterically. “Well, we buy
-our experience; I sha’n’t make the mistake again.”
-
-“Come, come, Ernest, don’t go on talking like that. You have got a blow
-as bad as death, and the only thing to do is to meet it as you would
-meet death—in silence. You will not go after that fellow, will you? It
-will only make things worse, you see. You won’t have time to kill him
-before he marries her, and it really would not be worth while getting
-hanged about it when the mischief is done. There is literally nothing
-to be done except grin and bear it. We won’t go back to England at all,
-but right up to the Zambesi, and hunt elephants; and as things have
-turned out, if you should get knocked on the head, why, you won’t so
-much mind it, you know.”
-
-Ernest made no answer to this consolatory address, and Jeremy left him
-alone, thinking that he had convinced him. But the Ernest of midday was
-a very different man from the Ernest of the morning, directing the
-erection of “parasols” over melons. The cruel news that the mail had
-brought him, and which from force of association caused him for years
-afterwards to hate the sight of a letter, had, figuratively speaking,
-destroyed him. He could never recover from it, though he would
-certainly survive it. Sharp indeed must be the grief which kills. But
-all the bloom and beauty had gone from his life; the gentle faith which
-he had placed in women was gone (for so narrowminded are we all, that
-we cannot help judging a class by our salient experiences of
-individuals), and, from that day forwards, for many years, he was
-handed over to a long-drawn-out pain, which never quite ceased, though
-it frequently culminated in paroxysms, and to which death itself would
-have been almost preferable.
-
-But as yet he did not realise all these things; what he did realise was
-an intense and savage thirst for revenge—so intense, indeed, that he
-felt as though he must put himself in a way to gratify it, or his brain
-would go. To-morrow, he thought, was to see the final act of his
-betrayal. To-day was the eve of her marriage, and he as powerless to
-avert it as a child. O, great God! And yet through it all he knew she
-loved him.
-
-Ernest, like many other pleasant, kindly-tempered men, if once stung
-into action by the sense of overpowering wrong, was extremely
-dangerous. Ill indeed would it have fared with Mr. Plowden if he could
-have come across him at that moment. And he honestly meant that it
-should fare ill with that reverend gentleman. So much did he mean it,
-that before he left his room he wrote his resignation of membership of
-the volunteer corps to which he belonged, and took it up to the
-Government office. Then, remembering that the Potchefstroom post-cart
-left Pretoria at dawn on the following morning, he made his way to the
-office, and ascertained that there were no passengers booked to leave
-by it. But he did not take a place; he was too clever to do that.
-Leaving the office, he went to the bank, and drew one hundred and fifty
-pounds in gold. Then he went home again. Here he found a Kafir
-messenger, dressed in the Government white uniform, waiting for him
-with an official letter.
-
-The letter acknowledged receipt of his resignation, but “regretted
-that, in the present unsettled state of affairs, his Excellency was, in
-the interest of the public service, unable to dispense with his
-services.”
-
-Ernest dismissed the messenger, and tore the letter across. If the
-Government could not dispense with him, he would dispense with the
-Government. His aim was to go to Potchefstroom, and thence to the
-Diamond Fields. Once there, he could take the post-cart to Cape Town,
-where he would meet the English mail steamer, and in one month from the
-present date be once more in England.
-
-That evening he dined with Mr. Alston, Jeremy, and Roger as usual, and
-no allusion was made to the events of the morning. About eleven o’clock
-he went to bed, but not to sleep. The post-cart left at four. At three
-he rose very quietly, and put a few things into a leather saddle-bag,
-extracted his revolver from under the bed where he had thrown it when,
-in the first burst of his agony, he had been interrupted in his
-contemplated act of self destruction, and buckled it round his waist.
-Then he slipped out through the window of his room, crept stealthily
-down the garden-path, and struck out for the Potchefstroom road. But,
-silently and secretly as he went, there went behind him one more silent
-and secret than he—one to whose race, through long generations of
-tracking foes and wild beasts, silence and secrecy had become an
-instinct. It was the Hottentot boy, Aasvögel.
-
-The Hottentot followed him in the dim light, never more than fifty
-paces behind him, sometimes not more than ten, and yet totally
-invisible. Now he was behind a bush or a tuft of rank grass; now he was
-running down a ditch; and now again creeping over the open on his belly
-like a two-legged snake. As soon as Ernest got out of the town, and
-began to loiter along the Potchefstroom road, the Hottentot halted,
-uttering to himself a guttural expression of satisfaction. Then,
-watching his opportunity, he turned and ran swiftly back to Pretoria.
-In ten minutes he was at Ernest’s house.
-
-In front of the door were five horses, three with white riders, two
-being held by Kafirs. On the verandah, as usual smoking, was Mr.
-Alston, and with him Jeremy, the latter armed and spurred.
-
-The Hottentot made his report and vanished.
-
-Mr. Alston turned and addressed Jeremy in the tone of one giving an
-order.
-
-“Now go,” he said at last, handing him a paper; and Jeremy went, and,
-mounting one of the led horses, a powerful cream-coloured animal with a
-snow-white mane and tail, galloped off into the twilight, followed by
-the three white men.
-
-Meanwhile Ernest walked quietly along the road. Once he paused,
-thinking that he heard the sound of galloping horses, half a mile or so
-to the left. It passed, and he went on again. Presently the mist began
-to lift, and the glorious sun came up; then came a rumble of wheels
-running along the silent road, and the post-cart with six fresh horses
-was upon him. He halted, and held up his hand to the native driver. The
-man knew him, and stopped the team at once.
-
-“I am going with you to Potchefstroom, Apollo,” he said.
-
-“All right, sar; plenty of room inside, sar. No passenger this trip,
-sar, and damn good job too.”
-
-Ernest got up, and off they went. He was safe now. There was no
-telegraph to Potchefstroom, and nothing could catch the post-cart if it
-had an hour’s start.
-
-A mile farther on there was a hill, up which the unlovely Apollo walked
-his horses. At the top of the hill was a clump of mimosa-bush, out of
-which, to the intense astonishment of both Ernest and Apollo, there
-emerged four mounted men with a led horse. One of these men was Jeremy;
-it was impossible to mistake his powerful form, sitting on his horse
-with the grip of a centaur.
-
-They rode up to the post-cart in silence. Jeremy motioned to Apollo to
-pull up. He obeyed, and one of the men dismounted and seized the
-horse’s head.
-
-“Tricked, by Heaven!” said Ernest.
-
-“You must come back with me, Ernest,” said Jeremy quietly. “I have a
-warrant for your arrest as a deserter, signed by the Governor.”
-
-“And if I refuse?”
-
-“Then my orders are to take you back.”
-
-Ernest drew his revolver.
-
-“This is a trick,” he said, “and I shall not go back.”
-
-“Then I must take you,” was the reply; and Jeremy coolly dismounted.
-
-Ernest’s eyes flashed dangerously, and he lifted the pistol.
-
-“O yes, you can shoot me if you like; but if you do, the others will
-take you;” and he continued to walk towards him.
-
-Ernest cocked his revolver and pointed it.
-
-“At your peril!” he said.
-
-“So be it,” said Jeremy, and he walked up to the cart.
-
-Ernest dropped his weapon.
-
-“It is mean of you, Jeremy,” he said. “You know I can’t fire at you.”
-
-“Of course you can’t, old fellow. Come, skip out of that! you are
-keeping the mail. I have a horse ready for you, a slow one; you won’t
-be able to run away on him.”
-
-Ernest obeyed, feeling rather small, and in half an hour was back at
-his own house.
-
-Mr. Alston was waiting for him.
-
-“Good-morning, Ernest,” he said, cheerfully. “Went out driving and come
-back riding, eh?” Ernest looked at him, and his brown cheek flushed.
-
-“You have played me a dirty trick,” he said.
-
-“Look here, my boy,” answered Mr. Alston, sternly, “I am slow at making
-a friend; but when once I take his hand I hold it till one of the two
-grows cold. I should have been no true friend to you if I had let you
-go on this fool’s errand, this wicked errand. Will you give me your
-word that you will not attempt to escape, or must I put you under
-arrest?”
-
-“I give you my word,” answered Ernest, humbled; “and I ask your
-forgiveness.”
-
-Thus it was that, for the first time in his life, Ernest tried to run
-away.
-
-That morning Jeremy, missing Ernest, went into his room to see what he
-was doing. The room was shuttered to keep out the glare of the sun: but
-when he got used to the light he discovered Ernest sitting at the
-table, and staring straight before him with a wild look in his eyes.
-
-“Come in, old fellow, come in,” he called out, with bitter jocularity,
-“and assist at this happy ceremony. Rather dark, isn’t it? but lovers
-like the dark. Look!” he went on, pointing to his watch, which lay upon
-the table before him, “by English time it is now about twenty minutes
-past eleven. They are being married now, Jeremy, my boy, I can feel it.
-By Heaven, I have only to shut my eyes and I can _see_ it!”
-
-“Come, come, Ernest,” said Jeremy, “don’t go on like that. You are not
-yourself, man.”
-
-He laughed, and answered:
-
-“I am sure I wish I wasn’t, I tell you I can see it all. I can see
-Kesterwick Church full of people, and before the altar, in her white
-dress, is Eva; but her face is whiter than her dress, Jeremy, and her
-eyes are very much afraid. And there is Florence, with her dark smile,
-and your friend Mr. Plowden, too, with his cold eyes and the cross upon
-his forehead. Oh, I assure you, I can see them all. It is a pretty
-wedding, very. There, it is over now, and I think I will go away before
-the kissing.”
-
-“O, hang it all, Ernest, wake up!” said Jeremy, shaking him by the
-shoulder. “You will drive yourself mad if you give your imagination so
-much rein.”
-
-“Wake up, my boy! I feel more inclined to sleep. Have some grog. Won’t
-you? Well, I will.”
-
-He rose and went to the mantelpiece, on which stood a square bottle of
-hollands and a tumbler. Rapidly filling the tumbler with raw spirit, he
-drank it as fast as the contractions of his throat would allow. He
-filled it again, and drank that too. Then he fell insensible upon the
-bed.
-
-It was a strange scene, and in some ways a coarse one, but yet not
-without a pathos of its own.
-
-“Ernest,” said Mr. Alston, three weeks later, “you are strong enough to
-travel now; what do you say to six months or a year among the
-elephants? The oxen are in first-rate condition, and we ought to get to
-our ground in six or seven weeks.”
-
-Ernest, who was lying back in a low cane-chair, looking very thin and
-pale, thought for a moment before he answered:
-
-“All right, I’m your man; only let’s get off soon. I am tired of this
-place, and want something to think about.”
-
-“You have given up the idea of returning to England?”
-
-“Yes, quite.”
-
-“And what do you say, Jeremy?”
-
-“Where Ernest goes, there will I go also. Besides, to shoot an elephant
-is the one ambition of my life.”
-
-“Good! then we will consider that settled. We shall want to pick up
-another eight-bore; but I know of one a fellow wants to sell, a beauty,
-by Riley. I will begin to make arrangements at once.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII.
-MR. PLOWDEN ASSERTS HIS RIGHTS
-
-
-When last we saw Eva she had just become privately engaged to the
-Reverend James Plowden. But the marriage was not to take place till the
-following spring, and the following spring was a long way off. Vaguely
-she hoped something might occur to prevent it, forgetting that, as a
-rule, in real life it is only happy things which accidents occur to
-prevent. Rare, indeed, is it that the Plowdens of this world are
-prevented from marrying the Evas; Fate has sufficient to do in
-thwarting the Ernests. And, meanwhile, her position was not altogether
-unendurable, for she had made a bargain with her lover that the usual
-amenities of courtship were to be dispensed with. There were to be no
-embracings or other tender passages; she was not even to be forced to
-call him James. “James!” how she detested the name! Thus did the
-wretched girl try to put off the evil day, much as the ostrich is
-supposed to hide her head in a bush and indulge in dreams of fancied
-security. Mr. Plowden did not object; he was too wary a hunter to do
-so. While his stately prey was there with her head in the thickest of
-the bush he was sure of her. She would never wake from her foolish
-dreams till the ripe moment came to deliver the fatal blow, and all
-would be over. But if, on the contrary, he startled her now, she might
-take flight more swiftly than he could follow, and leave him alone in
-the desert.
-
-So when Eva made her little stipulations he acquiesced in them, after
-only just so much hesitation as he thought would seem lover-like.
-“Life, Eva,” he said, sententiously, “is a compromise. I yield to your
-wishes.” But in his heart he thought that a time would come when she
-would have to yield to his, and his cold eye gleamed. Eva saw the
-gleam, and shuddered prophetically.
-
-The Reverend Mr. Plowden did not suffer much distress at the coldness
-with which he was treated. He knew that his day would come, and was
-content to wait for it like a wise man. He was not in love with Eva. A
-nature like his is scarcely capable of any such feeling as that, for
-instance, which Eva and Ernest bore to each other. True love, crowned
-with immortality, veils his shining face from such men as Mr. Plowden.
-He was fascinated by her beauty, that was all. But his cunning was of a
-superior order, and he was quite content to wait. So he contrived to
-extract a letter from Eva, in which she talked of “our engagement,” and
-alluded to “our forthcoming marriage,” and waited.
-
-And thus the time went on all too quickly for Eva. She was quietly
-miserable, but she was not acutely unhappy. That was yet to come, with
-other evil things. Christmas came and went, the spring came too, and
-with the daffodils and violets came Ernest’s letter.
-
-Eva was down the first one morning, and was engaged in making the tea
-in the Cottage dining-room, when that modern minister to the decrees of
-Fate, the postman, brought the letter. She recognised the writing in a
-moment, and the tea-caddy fell with a crash on to the floor. Seizing
-the sealed letter, she tore it open and read it swiftly. O, what a wave
-of love surged up in her heart as she read! Pressing the senseless
-paper to her lips, she kissed it again and again.
-
-“O Ernest!” she murmured; “O my love, my darling!”
-
-Just then Florence came down, looking cool and composed, and giving
-that idea of quiet strength which is the natural attribute of some
-women.
-
-Eva pushed the letter into her bosom.
-
-“What is the matter, Eva?” said Florence, quietly, noting her flushed
-face, “and why have you upset the tea?”
-
-“Matter!” she answered, laughing happily—she had not laughed so for
-months; “O, nothing—I have heard from Ernest, that is all.”
-
-“Indeed!” answered her sister, with a troubled smile on her dark face;
-“and what has our runaway to say for himself?”
-
-“Say! O, he has a great deal to say, and I have something to say too. I
-am going to marry him.”
-
-“Indeed! And Mr. Plowden?”
-
-Eva turned pale.
-
-“Mr. Plowden! I have done with Mr. Plowden.”
-
-“Indeed!” said Florence, again; “really this is quite romantic. But
-please pick up that tea. Whoever you marry, let us have some breakfast
-in the meanwhile. Excuse me for one moment, I have forgotten my
-handkerchief.”
-
-Eva did as she was bid, and made the tea after a fashion.
-
-Meanwhile Florence went to her room and scribbled a note, enclosed it
-in an envelope, and rang the bell.
-
-The servant answered.
-
-“Tell John to take this to Mr. Plowden’s lodgings at once; and if he
-should be out, to follow him till he finds him, and deliver it.”
-
-“Yes, miss.”
-
-Ten minutes later Mr. Plowden got the following note:
-
-“Come here at once. Eva has heard from Ernest Kershaw, and announces
-her intention of throwing you over and marrying him. Be prepared for a
-struggle, but do not show that you have heard from me. You must find
-means to hold your own. Burn this.”
-
-Mr. Plowden whistled as he laid the paper down. Going to his desk, he
-unlocked it, and extracted the letter he had received from Eva, in
-which she acknowledged her engagement to him, and then, seizing his
-hat, walked swiftly towards the Cottage.
-
-Meanwhile Florence made her way downstairs again, saying to herself as
-she went, “An unlucky chance. If I had seen the letter first, I would
-have burned it. But we shall win yet. She has not the stamina to stand
-out against that brute.”
-
-As soon as she reached the dining-room Eva began to say something more
-about her letter, but her sister stopped her quickly.
-
-“Let me have my breakfast in peace, Eva. We will talk of the letter
-afterwards. He does not interest me, your Ernest, and it takes away my
-appetite to talk business at meals.”
-
-Eva ceased, and sat silent; breakfast had no charms for her that
-morning.
-
-Presently there was a knock at the door, and Mr. Plowden entered with a
-smile of forced gaiety on his face.
-
-“How do you do, Florence?” he said; “how do you do, dear Eva? You see I
-have come to see you early this morning. I want a little refreshment to
-enable me to get through my day’s duty. The early suitor has come to
-pick up the worm of his affections,” and he laughed at his joke.
-
-Florence shuddered at the simile, and thought to herself that there was
-a fair chance of the affectionate worm disagreeing with the early
-suitor.
-
-Eva said nothing. She sat quite still and pale.
-
-“Why, what is the matter with you both? Have you seen a ghost?”
-
-“Not exactly; but I think that Eva has received a message from the
-dead,” said Florence, with a nervous laugh.
-
-Eva rose. “I think, Mr. Plowden,” she said, “that I had better be frank
-with you at once. I ask you to listen to me for a few moments.”
-
-“Am I not always at your service, dear Eva?”
-
-“I wish,” began Eva, and broke down—“I wish,” she went on again, “to
-appeal to your generosity and to your feelings as a gentleman.”
-
-Florence smiled.
-
-Mr. Plowden bowed with mock humility and smiled too—a very ugly smile.
-
-“You are aware that, before I became engaged to you, I had had a
-previous—affair.”
-
-“With the boy who committed a murder,” put in Mr. Plowden.
-
-“With a gentleman who had the misfortune to kill a man in a duel,”
-explained Eva.
-
-“The Church and the law call it murder.”
-
-“Excuse me, Mr. Plowden, we are dealing neither with the Church nor the
-law; we are dealing with the thing as it is called among gentlemen and
-ladies.”
-
-“Go on,” said Mr. Plowden.
-
-“Well, misunderstandings, which I need not now enter into, arose with
-reference to that affair, though, as I told you, I loved the man.
-To-day I have heard from him, and his letter puts everything straight
-in my mind, and I see how wrong and unjust has been my behaviour to
-him, and I know that I love him more than ever.”
-
-“Curse the fellow’s impudence!” said the clergyman, furiously; “if he
-were here, I would give him a bit of my mind!”
-
-Eva’s spirit rose, and she turned on him with flashing eyes, looking
-like a queen in her imperial beauty.
-
-“If he were here, Mr. Plowden, you would not dare to look him in the
-face. Men like you only take advantage of the absent.”
-
-The clergyman ground his teeth. He felt his furious temper rising and
-did not dare to answer, though he was a bold man, in face of a woman.
-He feared lest it should get beyond him; but beneath his breath he
-muttered, “You shall pay for that, my lady!”
-
-“Under these circumstances,” went on Eva, “I appeal to you as a
-gentleman to release me from an engagement into which, as you know, I
-have been drawn more by force of circumstances than by my own wish.
-Surely, it is not necessary for me to say any more.”
-
-Mr. Plowden rose and came and stood quite close to her, so that his
-face was within a few inches of her eyes.
-
-“Eva,” he said, “I am not going to be trifled with like this. You have
-promised to marry me, and I shall keep you to your promise. You laid
-yourself out to win my affection, the affection of an honest man.”
-
-Again Florence smiled, and Eva made a faint motion of dissent.
-
-“Yes, but you did, you encouraged me. It is very well for you to deny
-it now, when it suits your purpose, but you did, and you know it, and
-your sister there knows it.”
-
-Florence bowed her head in assent.
-
-“And now you wish, in order to gratify an unlawful passion for a
-shedder of blood—you wish to throw me over, to trample upon my holiest
-feelings, and to rob me of the prize which I have won. No, Eva, I will
-not release you.”
-
-“Surely, surely, Mr. Plowden,” said Eva, faintly, for she was a gentle
-creature, and the man’s violence overwhelmed her, “you will not force
-me into a marriage which I tell you is repugnant to me? I appeal to
-your generosity to release me. You can never oblige me to marry you
-when I tell you that I do not love you, and that my whole heart is
-given to another man.”
-
-Mr. Plowden saw that his violence was doing its work, and determined to
-follow it up. He raised his voice till it was almost a shout.
-
-“Yes,” he said, “I will; I will not submit to such wickedness. Love!
-that will come. I am quite willing to take my chance of it. No, I tell
-you fairly that I will not let you off; and if you try to avoid
-fulfilling your engagement to me I will do more: I will proclaim you
-all over the country as a jilt; I will bring an action for breach of
-promise of marriage against you—perhaps you did not know that men can
-do that as well as women—and cover your name with disgrace! Look, I
-have your written promise of marriage;” and he produced her letter.
-
-Eva turned to her sister.
-
-“Florence,” she said, “cannot you say a word to help me? I am
-overwhelmed.”
-
-“I wish I could, Eva dear,” answered her sister, kindly; “but how can
-I? What Mr. Plowden says is just and right. You are engaged to him, and
-are in honour bound to marry him. O Eva, do not bring trouble and
-disgrace upon us all by your obstinacy! You owe something to your name
-as well as to yourself, and something to me too. I am sure that Mr.
-Plowden will be willing to forget all about this if you will undertake
-never to allude to it again.”
-
-“O yes, certainly, Miss Florence. I am not revengeful; I only want my
-rights.”
-
-Eva looked faintly from one to the other; her head sank, and great
-black rings painted themselves beneath her eyes. The lily was broken at
-last.
-
-“You are very cruel,” she said, slowly; “but I suppose it must be as
-you wish. Pray God I may die first, that is all!” and she put her hands
-to her head and stumbled from the room, leaving the two conspirators
-facing each other.
-
-“Come, we got over that capitally,” said Mr. Plowden, rubbing his
-hands. “There is nothing like taking the high hand with a woman. Ladies
-must sometimes be taught that a gentleman has rights as well as
-themselves.”
-
-Florence turned on him with bitter scorn.
-
-“_Gentlemen!_ Mr. Plowden, why is the word so often on your lips?
-Surely, after the part you have just played, you do not presume to rank
-yourself among _gentlemen?_ Listen! it suits my purposes that you
-should marry Eva, and you shall marry her; but I will not stoop to play
-the hypocrite with a man like you. You talk of yourself as a gentleman,
-and do not scruple to force an innocent girl into a wicked marriage,
-and to crush her spirit with your cunning cruelty. A _gentleman_
-forsooth!—a satyr, a devil in disguise!”
-
-“I am only asserting my rights,” he said, furiously; “and whatever I
-have done, you have done more.”
-
-“Do not try your violence on me, Mr. Plowden; it will not do. I am not
-made of the same stuff as your victim. Lower your voice, or leave the
-house and do not enter it again.”
-
-Mr. Plowden’s heavy under-jaw fell a little; he was terribly afraid of
-Florence.
-
-“Now,” she said, “listen! I do not choose that you should labour under
-any mistake. I hold your hand in this business, though to have to do
-with you in any way is in itself a defilement,” and she wiped her
-delicate fingers on a pocket-handkerchief as she said the word,
-“because I have an end of my own to gain. Not a vulgar end like yours,
-but a revenge, which shall be almost divine or diabolical, call it
-which you will, in its completeness. Perhaps it is a madness, perhaps
-it is an inspiration, perhaps it is a fate. Whatever it is, it animates
-me body and soul, and I will gratify it, though to do so I have to use
-a tool like you. I wished to explain this to you. I wished, too, to
-make it clear to you that I consider you contemptible. I have done
-both, and I have now the pleasure to wish you good-morning.”
-
-Mr. Plowden left the house white with fury, and cursing in a manner
-remarkable in a clergyman.
-
-[Illustration: “Mr. Plowden left the house, white with fury.”]
-
-“If she wasn’t so handsome, hang me if I would not throw the whole
-thing up!” he said.
-
-Needless to say, he did nothing of the sort; he only kept out of
-Florence’s way.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV.
-THE VIRGIN MARTYR
-
-
-Dorothy, in her note to Ernest that he received by the mail previous to
-the one that brought the letters which at a single blow laid the hope
-and promise of his life in the dust, it may be remembered, had stated
-her intention of going to see Eva in order to plead Ernest’s cause; but
-what with one thing and another, her visit was considerably delayed.
-Twice she was on the point of going, and twice something occurred to
-prevent her. The fact of the matter was, the errand was distasteful,
-and she was in no hurry to execute it. She loved Ernest herself, and,
-however deep that love might be trampled down, however fast it might be
-chained in the dungeons of her secret thoughts, it was still there, a
-living thing, an immortal thing. She could tread it down and chain it;
-she could not kill it. Its shade would rise and walk in the upper
-chambers of her heart, and wring its hands and cry to her, telling what
-it suffered in those subterranean places, whispering how bitterly it
-envied the bright and happy life which moved in the free air, and had
-usurped the love it claimed. It was hard to have to ignore those
-pleadings, to disregard those cries for pity, and to say that there was
-no hope, that it must always be chained, till time ate away the chains.
-It was harder still to have to be one of the actual ministers to the
-suffering. Still, she meant to go. Her duty to Ernest was not to be
-forsaken because it was a painful duty.
-
-On two or three occasions she met Eva, but got no opportunity of
-speaking to her. Either her sister Florence was with her, or she was
-obliged to return immediately. The truth was that, after the scene
-described in the last chapter, Eva was subjected to the closest
-espionage. At home, Florence watched her as a cat watches a mouse;
-abroad, Mr. Plowden seemed to be constantly hovering on her flank, or,
-if he was not there, then she became aware of the presence of the
-ancient and contemplative mariner who traded in Dutch cheeses. Mr.
-Plowden feared lest she should run away, and so cheat him of his prize;
-Florence, lest she should confide in Dorothy, or possibly Mr. Cardus,
-and, supported by them, find the courage to assert herself and defraud
-her of her revenge. So they watched her every movement.
-
-At last Dorothy made up her mind to wait no longer for opportunities,
-but to go and see Eva at her own home. She knew nothing of the Plowden
-imbroglio; but it did strike her as curious that no one had said
-anything about Ernest. He had written; it was scarcely likely the
-letter had miscarried. How was it that Eva had not said anything on the
-subject? Little did Dorothy guess that, even as these thoughts were
-passing through her mind, a great vessel was steaming out of
-Southampton docks, bearing those epistles of final renunciation which
-Ernest, very little to his satisfaction, received in due course.
-
-Full of these reflections, Dorothy found herself one lovely spring
-afternoon knocking at the door of the Cottage. Eva was at home, and she
-was at once ushered into her presence. She was sitting on a low
-chair—the same on which Ernest always pictured her with that confounded
-Skye terrier she was so fond of kissing—an open book upon her knee, and
-looking out at the little garden and the sea beyond. She looked pale
-and thin, Dorothy thought.
-
-On her visitor’s entrance, Eva rose and kissed her.
-
-“I am so glad to see you,” she said; “I was feeling lonely.”
-
-“Lonely!” answered Dorothy, in her straightforward way; “why, I have
-been trying to find you alone for the last fortnight, and have never
-succeeded.”
-
-Eva coloured. “One may be lonely with ever so many people round one.”
-
-Then for a minute or so they talked about the weather; so persistently
-did they discuss it, indeed, that the womanly instinct of each told her
-that the other was fencing.
-
-After all, it was Eva who broke the ice first.
-
-“Have you heard from Ernest lately?” she said, nervously.
-
-“Yes; I got a note by last mall.”
-
-“Oh,” said Eva, clasping her hands involuntarily, “what did he say?”
-
-“Nothing much. But I got a letter by the mail before that, in which he
-said a good deal. Among other things, he said he had written to you.
-Did you get the letter?”
-
-Eva coloured to her eyes. “Yes,” she whispered.
-
-Dorothy rose, and seated herself again on a footstool by Eva’s feet,
-and wondered at the trouble in her eyes. How could she be troubled when
-she had heard from Ernest—“like that?”
-
-“What did you answer him, dear?”
-
-Eva covered her face with her hands.
-
-“Do not talk about it,” she said; “it is too dreadful to me!”
-
-“What can you mean? He tells me you are engaged to him.”
-
-“Yes—that is, no. I was half engaged. Now I am engaged to Mr. Plowden.”
-
-Dorothy gave a gasp of horrified astonishment.
-
-“Engaged to that man when you were engaged to Ernest! You must be
-joking.”
-
-“O Dorothy, I am not joking; I wish to Heaven I were. I am engaged to
-him. I am to marry him in less than a month. O, pity me, I am
-wretched.”
-
-“You mean to tell me,” said Dorothy rising, “that you are engaged to
-Mr. Plowden when you love Ernest?”
-
-“Yes, oh yes; I cannot help—”
-
-At that moment the door opened, and Florence entered, attended by Mr.
-Plowden.
-
-Her keen eyes saw at once that something was wrong, and her
-intelligence told her what it was. After her bold fashion, she
-determined to take the bull by the horns. Unless something were done,
-with Dorothy at her back, Eva might prove obdurate after all.
-
-Advancing, she shook Dorothy cordially by the hand.
-
-“I see from your face,” she said, “that you have just heard the good
-news. Mr. Plowden is so shy that he would not consent to announce it
-before; but here he is to receive your congratulations.”
-
-Mr. Plowden took the cue, and advanced effusively on Dorothy with
-outstretched hand. “Yes, Miss Jones, I am sure you will congratulate
-me; and I ought to be congratulated. I am the luckiest—”
-
-Here he broke off. It really was very awkward. His hand remained limply
-hanging in the air before Dorothy, but not the slightest sign did that
-dignified little lady show of taking it. On the contrary, she drew
-herself up to her full height—which was not very tall—and fixing her
-steady blue eyes on the clergyman’s shifty orbs, deliberately placed
-her right hand behind her back.
-
-“I do not shake hands with people who play such tricks,” she said,
-quietly.
-
-Mr. Plowden’s hand fell to his side, and he stepped back. He did not
-expect such courage in anything so small. Florence, however, sailed in
-to the rescue.
-
-“Really, Dorothy, we do not quite understand.”
-
-“O yes, I think you do, Florence, or if you do not, then I will
-explain. Eva here was engaged to marry Ernest Kershaw. Eva here has
-just with her own lips told me that she still loves Ernest, but that
-she is obliged to marry—that man;” and she pointed with her little
-forefinger at Mr. Plowden, who recoiled another step. “Is not that
-true, Eva?”
-
-Eva bowed her head by way of answer. She still sat in the low chair,
-with her hands over her face.
-
-“Really, Dorothy, I fail to see what right you have to interfere in
-this matter,” said Florence.
-
-“I have the right of common justice, Florence—the right a friend has to
-protect the absent. Are you not ashamed of such a wicked plot to wrong
-an absent man? Is there no way” (addressing Mr. Plowden) “in which I
-can appeal to your feelings, to induce you to free this wretched girl
-you have entrapped?”
-
-“I only ask my own,” said Mr. Plowden, sulkily.
-
-“For shame! for shame! and you a minister of God’s Word! And you too,
-Florence! Oh, now I can read your heart, and see the bad thoughts
-looking from your eyes!”
-
-Florence for a moment was abashed, and turned her face aside.
-
-“And you, Eva—how can you become a party to such a shameful thing? You,
-a good girl, to sell yourself away from dear Ernest to such a man as
-that;” and again she pointed contemptuously at Mr. Plowden.
-
-“Oh, don’t, Dorothy, don’t; it is my duty. You don’t understand.”
-
-“Yes, Eva, I do understand. I understand that it is your duty to drown
-yourself before you do such a thing, I am a woman as well as you, and
-though I am not beautiful, I have a heart and a conscience, and I
-understand only too well.”
-
-“You will be lost if you drown yourself—I mean it is very wicked,” said
-Mr. Plowden to Eva, suddenly assuming his clerical character as most
-likely to be effective. The suggestion alarmed him. He had bargained
-for a live Eva.
-
-“Yes, Mr. Plowden,” went on Dorothy, “you are right: it would be
-wicked, but not so wicked as to marry you. God gave us women our lives,
-but He put a spirit in our hearts which tells us that we should rather
-throw them away than suffer ourselves to be degraded. Oh, Eva, tell me
-that you will not do this shameful thing. No, do not whisper to her,
-Florence.”
-
-“Dorothy, Dorothy,” said Eva, rising and wringing her hands, “it is all
-useless. Do not break my heart with your cruel words. I must marry him.
-I have fallen into the power of people who do not know what mercy is.”
-
-“Thank you,” said Florence.
-
-Mr. Plowden scowled darkly.
-
-“Then I have done;” and Dorothy walked towards the door. Before she
-reached it she paused and turned. “One word, and I will trouble you no
-more. What do you all expect will come of this wicked marriage?”
-
-There was no answer. Then Dorothy went.
-
-But her efforts did not stop there. She made her way straight to Mr.
-Cardus’s office.
-
-“O Reginald,” she said, “I have such dreadful news for you. There, let
-me cry a little first, and I will tell you.”
-
-And she did, telling him the whole story from beginning to end. It was
-entirely new to him, and he listened with some astonishment, and with a
-feeling of something like indignation against Ernest. He had intended
-that young gentleman to fall in love with Dorothy, and behold, he had
-fallen in love with Eva. Alas for the perversity of youth!
-
-“Well,” he said, when she had done, “and what do you wish me to do? It
-seems that you have to do with a heartless scheming woman, a clerical
-cad, and a beautiful fool. One might deal with the schemer and the
-fool, but no power on earth can soften the cad. At least, that is my
-experience. Besides, I think the whole thing is much better left alone.
-I should be very sorry to see Ernest married to a woman so worthless as
-this Eva must be. She is handsome, it is true, and that is about all
-she is, as far as I can see. Don’t distress yourself, my dear; he will
-get over it, and after he has had his fling out there, and lived down
-that duel business, he will come home, and if he is wise, I know where
-he will look for consolation.”
-
-Dorothy tossed her head and coloured.
-
-“It is not a question of consolation,” she said; “it is a question of
-Ernest’s happiness in life.”
-
-“Don’t alarm yourself, Dorothy; people’s happiness is not so easily
-affected. He will forget all about her in a year.”
-
-“I think that men always talk of each other like that, Reginald,” said
-Dorothy, resting her head upon her hands, and looking straight at the
-old gentleman. “Each of you likes to think that he has a monopoly of
-feeling, and that the rest of his kind are as shallow as a milk-pan.
-And yet it was only last night that you were talking to me about my
-mother. You told me, you remember, that life had been a worthless thing
-to you since she was torn from you, which no success had been able to
-render pleasant. You said more: you said that you hoped that the end
-was not far off; that you had suffered enough and waited enough; and
-that, though you had not seen her face for five-and-twenty years, you
-loved her as wildly as you did the day when she first promised to
-become your wife.”
-
-Mr. Cardus had risen, and was looking through the glass door at the
-blooming orchids. Dorothy got up, and, following him, laid her hand
-upon his shoulder.
-
-“Reginald,” she said, “think! Ernest is about to be robbed of his wife
-under circumstances curiously like those by which you were robbed of
-yours. Unless it is prevented, what you have suffered all your life
-that he will suffer also. Remember you are of the same blood, and,
-allowing for the difference between your ages, of very much the same
-temperament too. Think how different life would have been to you if any
-one had staved off your disaster, and then I am sure you will do all
-you can to stave off his.”
-
-“Life would have been non-existent for you,” he answered, “for you
-would never have been born.”
-
-“Ah, well,” she said, with a little sigh, “I am sure I should have got
-on very well without. I could have spared myself.”
-
-Mr. Cardus was a keen man, and could see as far into the human heart as
-most.
-
-“Girl,” he said, contracting his white eyebrows and suddenly turning
-round upon her, “you love Ernest yourself. I have often suspected it;
-now I am sure you do.”
-
-Dorothy flinched.
-
-“Yes,” she answered, “I do love him. What then?”
-
-“And yet you are advocating my interference to secure his marriage with
-another woman, a worthless creature who does not know her own mind. You
-cannot really care about him.”
-
-“Care about him!” and she turned her sweet blue eyes upwards. “I love
-him with all my heart and soul and strength. I have always loved him; I
-always shall love him. I love him so well that I can do my duty to him,
-Reginald. It is my duty to strain every nerve to prevent this marriage.
-I had rather that my heart should ache than Ernest’s. I implore of you
-to help me.”
-
-“Dorothy, it has always been my dearest wish that you should marry
-Ernest. I told him so just before that unhappy duel. I love you both.
-All the fibres of my heart that are left alive have wound themselves
-around you. Jeremy I could never care for. Indeed, I fear that I used
-sometimes to treat the boy harshly. He reminds me so of his father. And
-do you know, my dear, I sometimes think that on that point I am not
-quite sane. But because you have asked me to do it, and because you
-have quoted your dear mother—may peace be with her!—I will do what I
-can. This girl Eva is of age, and I will write and offer her a home.
-She need fear no persecution here.”
-
-“You are kind and good, Reginald, and I thank you.”
-
-“The letter shall go by to-night’s post. But run away now; I see my
-friend De Talor coming to speak to me;” and the white eyebrows drew
-near together in a way that it would have been unpleasant for the great
-De Talor to behold. “That business is drawing towards its end.”
-
-“O Reginald,” answered Dorothy, shaking her forefinger at him in her
-old childish way, “haven’t you given up those ideas yet? They are very
-wrong.”
-
-“Never mind, Dorothy. I shall give them up soon, when I have squared
-accounts with De Talor. A year or two more—a stern chase is a long
-chase, you know—and the thing will be done, and then I shall become a
-good Christian again.”
-
-The letter was written. It offered Eva a home and protection.
-
-In due course an answer, signed by Eva herself, came back. It thanked
-him for his kindness, and regretted that circumstances and “her sense
-of duty” prevented her from accepting the offer.
-
-Then Dorothy felt that she had done all that in her lay, and gave the
-matter up.
-
-
-
-
-It was about this time that Florence drew another picture. It
-represented Eva as Andromeda gazing hopelessly in the dim light of a
-ghastly dawn out across a glassy sea; and far away in the oily depths
-there was a ripple, and beneath the ripple a form travelling towards
-the chained maiden. The form had a human head and cold gray eyes, and
-its features were those of Mr. Plowden.
-
-And so, day by day, Destiny, throned in space, shot her flaming shuttle
-from darkness into darkness, and the time passed on, as the time must
-pass, till the inevitable end of all things is attained.
-
-Eva existed and suffered, and that was all she did. She scarcely ate,
-or drank, or slept. But still she lived; she was not brave enough to
-die, and the chains were riveted too tight round her tender wrists to
-let her flee away. Poor nineteenth-century Andromeda! No Perseus shall
-come to save you.
-
-The sun rose and set in his appointed course, the flowers bloomed and
-died, children were born, and the allotted portion of mankind passed
-onwards to its rest; but no godlike Perseus came flying out of the
-golden east.
-
-Once more the sun rose. The dragon heaved his head above the quiet
-waters, and she was lost. By her own act, of her own folly and
-weakness, she was undone. Behold her! the wedding is over. The echoes
-of the loud mockery of the bells have scarcely died upon the noonday
-air, and in her chamber, the chamber of her free and happy maiden-hood,
-the virgin martyr stands alone.
-
-It is done. There lie the sickly scented flowers; there, too, the
-bride’s white robe. It is done. Oh, that life were done too, that she
-might once press her lips to his and die!
-
-The door opens, and Florence stands before her, pale, triumphant,
-awe-inspiring.
-
-“I must congratulate you, my dear Eva. You really went through the
-ceremony very well; only you looked like a statue.”
-
-“Florence, why do you come to mock me?”
-
-“Mock you, Eva, mock you! I come to wish you joy as Mr. Plowden’s wife.
-I hope that you will be happy.”
-
-“Happy! I shall never be happy. I detest him!”
-
-“You detest him, and you marry him; there must be some mistake.”
-
-“There is no mistake. O Ernest, my darling!”
-
-Florence smiled.
-
-“If Ernest is your darling, why did you not marry Ernest?”
-
-“How could I marry him when you forced me into this?”
-
-“Forced you! A free woman of full age cannot be forced. You married Mr.
-Plowden of your own will. You might have married Ernest Kershaw if you
-chose—he is in many ways a more desirable match than Mr. Plowden—but
-you did not choose.”
-
-“Florence, what do you mean? You always said it was impossible. Is this
-all some cruel plot of yours?”
-
-“Impossible! there is nothing impossible to those who have courage.
-Yes,” and she turned upon her sister fiercely, “it _was_ a plot, and
-you shall know it, you poor weak fool! _I_ loved Ernest Kershaw, and
-_you_ robbed me of him, although you promised to leave him alone; and
-so I have revenged myself upon you. I despise you, I tell you; you are
-quite contemptible, and yet he could prefer you to me. Well, he has got
-his reward. You have deserted him when he was absent and in trouble,
-and you have outraged his love and your own. You have fallen very low
-indeed, Eva, and presently you will fall lower yet. I know you well.
-You will sink, till at last you even lose the sense of your own
-humiliation. Don’t you wonder what Ernest must think of you now? There
-is Mr. Plowden calling you. Come, it is time for you to be going.”
-
-Eva listened aghast, and then sank against the wall, sobbing
-despairingly.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV.
-HANS’S CITY OF REST
-
-
-Mr. Alston, Ernest, and Jeremy had very good sport among the elephants,
-killing in all nineteen bulls. It was during this expedition that an
-incident occurred which in its effect endeared Ernest to Mr. Alston
-more than ever.
-
-The boy Roger, who always went wherever Mr Alston went, was the object
-of his father’s most tender solicitude. He believed in the boy as he
-believed in little else in the world—for at heart Mr. Alston was a sad
-cynic—and to a certain extent the boy justified his belief. He was
-quick, intelligent, and plucky, much such a boy as you may pick up by
-the dozen out of any English public school, except that his knowledge
-of men and manners was more developed, as is usual among young
-colonists. At the age of twelve Master Roger Alston knew many things
-denied to most children of his age. On the subject of education Mr.
-Alston had queer ideas. “The best education for a boy,” he would say,
-“is to mix with grown-up gentlemen. If you send him to school, he
-learns little except mischief; if you let him live with gentlemen, he
-learns, at any rate, to be a gentleman.”
-
-But whatever Master Roger knew, he did not know much about elephants,
-and on this point he was destined to gain some experience.
-
-One day—it was just after they had got into the elephant country—they
-were all engaged in following the fresh spoor of a solitary bull. But
-though an elephant is a big beast, it is hard work catching him up
-because he never seems to get tired, and this was exactly what our
-party of hunters found. They followed that energetic elephant for
-hours, but they could not catch him, though the spoorers told them that
-he was certainly not more than a mile or so ahead. At last the sun
-began to get low, and their legs had already got weary; so they gave it
-up for that day, determining to camp where they were. This being so,
-after a rest, Ernest and the boy Roger started out of camp to see if
-they could not shoot a buck or some birds for supper. Roger had a
-repeating Winchester carbine, Ernest a double-barrelled shot-gun.
-Hardly had they left the camp when Aasvögel, Jeremy’s Hottentot, came
-running in, and reported that he had seen the elephant, an enormous
-bull with a white spot upon his trunk, feeding in a clump of mimosa,
-not a quarter of a mile away. Up jumped Mr. Alston and Jeremy, as fresh
-as though they had not walked a mile, and, seizing their double-eight
-elephant rifles, started off with Aasvögel.
-
-Meanwhile Ernest and Roger had been strolling towards this identical
-clump of mimosa. As they neared it, the former saw some guinea-fowl run
-into the shelter of the trees.
-
-“Capital!” he said. “Guinea-fowl are first-class eating. Now, Roger,
-just you go into the bush and drive the flock over me. I’ll stand here,
-and make believe they are pheasants.”
-
-The lad did as he was bid. But in order to get well behind the covey of
-guinea-fowl, which are dreadful things to run, he made a little circuit
-through the thickest part of the clump. As he did so his quick eye was
-arrested by a most unusual performance on the part of one of the
-flat-crowned mimosa-trees. Suddenly, and without the slightest apparent
-reason, it rose into the air, and then, behold! where its crown had
-been a moment before, appeared its roots.
-
-Such an “Alice in Wonderland” sort of performance on the part of a tree
-could not but excite the curiosity of an intelligent youth.
-Accordingly, Roger pushed forwards, and slipped round an intervening
-tree. This was what he saw: In a little glade about ten paces from him,
-flapping its ears, stood an enormous elephant with great white tusks,
-looking as large as a house and as cool as a cucumber. Nobody, to look
-at the brute, would have believed that he had given them a twenty
-miles’ trot under a burning sun. He was now refreshing himself by
-pulling up mimosa-trees as easily as though they were radishes, and
-eating the sweet fibrous roots.
-
-Roger saw this, and his heart burned with ambition to kill that
-elephant—the mighty great beast, about a hundred times as big as
-himself, who could pull up a large tree and make his dinner off the
-roots. Roger was a plucky boy, and, in his sportsmanlike zeal, he quite
-forgot that a repeating carbine is not exactly the weapon one would
-choose to shoot elephants with. Indeed, without giving the matter
-another thought, he lifted the little rifle, aimed it at the great
-beast’s head, and fired. He hit it somewhere, that was very clear, for
-next moment the air resounded with the most terrific scream of fury
-that it had ever been his lot to hear. That scream was too much for
-him; he turned and fled swiftly. Elephants were evidently difficult
-things to kill.
-
-Fortunately for Roger, the elephant could not for some seconds make out
-where his tiny assailant was. Presently, however, he winded him, and
-came crashing after him, screaming shrilly, with his trunk and tail
-well up. On hearing the shot and the scream of the elephant, Ernest,
-who was standing some way out in the open, in anticipation of a driving
-shot at the guinea-fowl, had run towards the spot where Roger had
-entered the bush; and, just as he got opposite to it, out he came,
-scuttling along for his life, with the elephant not more than twenty
-paces behind him.
-
-Then Ernest did a brave thing.
-
-[Illustration: “Ernest did a brave thing.”]
-
-“Make for the bush!” he yelled to the boy, who at once swerved to the
-right. On thundered the elephant, straight towards Ernest. But with
-Ernest it was evident he considered he had no quarrel, for presently he
-tried to swing himself round after Roger. Then Ernest lifted his
-shot-gun, and sent a charge of No. 4 into the brute’s face, stinging
-him sadly. It was, humanly speaking, certain death which he courted,
-but at the moment his main idea was to save the boy. Screaming afresh,
-the elephant abandoned the pursuit of Roger, and made straight for
-Ernest, who fired the other barrel of small-shot, in the vain hope of
-blinding him. By now the boy had pulled up, being some forty yards off,
-and seeing Ernest just about to be crumpled up, wildly fired the
-repeating rifle in their direction. Some good angel must have guided
-the little bullet; for, as it happened, it struck the elephant in the
-region of the knee, and, forcing its way in, slightly injured a tendon,
-and brought the great beast thundering to the ground. Ernest had only
-just time to dodge to one side as the huge mass came to the earth;
-indeed, as it was, he got a tap from the tip of the elephant’s trunk
-which knocked him down, and, though he did not feel it at the time,
-made him sore for days afterwards. In a moment, however, he was up
-again, and away at his best speed, legging it as he had never legged it
-before in his life; and so was the elephant. People have no idea at
-what a pace an elephant can go when he is out of temper, until they put
-it to the proof. Had it not been for the slight injury to the knee, and
-the twenty yards’ start he got, Ernest would have been represented by
-little pieces before he was ten seconds older. As it was, when, a
-hundred and fifty yards farther on, elephant and Ernest broke upon the
-astonished view of Mr. Alston and Jeremy, who were hurrying up to the
-scene of action, they were almost one flesh; that is, the tip of the
-elephant’s trunk was now up in the air, and now about six inches off
-the seat of Ernest’s trousers, at which it snapped convulsively.
-
-Up went Jeremy’s heavy rifle, which luckily he had in his hand.
-
-“Behind the shoulder, half-way down the ear,” said Mr. Alston,
-beckoning to a Kafir to bring his rifle, which he was carrying. The
-probability of Jeremy’s stopping the beast at that distance—they were
-quite sixty yards off—was infinitesimal.
-
-There was a second’s pause. The snapping tip touched the retreating
-trousers, but did not get hold of them, and the contact sent a magnetic
-thrill up Ernest’s back.
-
-“Boom—thud—crash!” and the elephant was down dead as a door-nail.
-Jeremy had made no mistake: the bullet went straight through the great
-brute’s heart, and broke the shoulder on the other side. He was one of
-those men who not only rarely miss, but always seem to hit their game
-in the right place.
-
-Ernest sank exhausted on the ground, and Mr. Alston and Jeremy rushed
-up rejoicing.
-
-“Near go that, Ernest,” said the former.
-
-Ernest nodded in reply. He could not speak.
-
-“By Jove! where is Roger?” he went on, turning pale as he missed his
-son for the first time.
-
-But at this moment that young gentleman hove in sight, and, recovering
-from his fright when he saw that the great animal was stone-dead,
-rushed up with yells of exultation, and, climbing on to the upper tusk,
-began to point out where he had hit him.
-
-Meanwhile Mr. Alston had extracted the story of the adventure from
-Ernest.
-
-“You young rascal,” he said to his son, “come off that tusk. Do you
-know that if it had not been for Mr. Kershaw here, who courted almost
-certain death to save you from the results of your own folly, you would
-be as dead as that elephant and as flat as a biscuit? Come down, sir,
-and offer up your thanks to Providence and Mr. Kershaw that you have a
-sound square inch of skin left on your worthless young body!”
-
-Roger descended accordingly, considerably crestfallen.
-
-“Never you mind, Roger; that was a most rattling good shot of yours at
-his knee,” said Ernest, who had now got his breath again. “You would
-not do it again if you fired at elephants for a week.”
-
-And so the matter passed off; but afterwards Mr. Alston thanked Ernest
-with tears in his eyes for saving his son’s life.
-
-This was the first elephant they killed, and also the largest. It
-measured ten feet eleven inches at the shoulder, and the tusks weighed,
-when dried out, about sixty pounds each.
-
-They remained in the elephant country for nearly four months, when the
-approach of the unhealthy season forced them to leave it—not, however,
-before they had killed a great quantity of large game of all sorts. It
-was a most successful hunt, so successful, indeed, that the ivory they
-brought down paid all the expenses of the trip, and left a handsome
-surplus over.
-
-It was on the occasion of their return to Pretoria that Ernest made the
-acquaintance of a curious character in a curious way.
-
-As soon as they reached the boundaries of the Transvaal, Ernest bought
-a horse from a Boer, on which he used to ride after the herds of buck
-which swarmed upon the high veldt. They had none with them, because in
-the country where they had been shooting no horse would live. One day,
-as they were travelling slowly along a little before midday, a couple
-of bull-vilderbeeste galloped across the waggon-track about two hundred
-yards in front of the oxen. The voorlooper stopped the oxen in order to
-give Ernest, who was sitting on the waggon-box with a rifle by his
-side, a steady shot. Ernest fired at the last of the two galloping
-bulls. The line was good; but he did not make sufficient allowance for
-the pace at which the bull was travelling, with the result that instead
-of striking it forwards and killing it, the bullet shattered its flank,
-and did not stop its career.
-
-“Dash it!” said Ernest, when he saw what he had done, “I can’t leave
-the poor beast like that. Bring me my horse; I will go after him, and
-finish him.”
-
-The horse, which was tied already saddled behind the waggon, was
-quickly brought, and Ernest, mounting, told them not to keep the
-waggons for him, as he would strike across country and meet them at the
-outspan place, about a mile or so on. Then he started after his wounded
-bull, which could be plainly discerned standing with one leg up on the
-crest of a rise about a thousand yards away. But if ever a vilderbeeste
-was possessed by a fixed determination not to be finished off, it was
-that particular vilderbeeste. The pace at which a vilderbeeste can
-travel on three legs when he is not too fat is perfectly astonishing,
-and Ernest had traversed a couple of miles of great rolling plain
-before he even got within fair galloping distance of him. He had a good
-horse, however, and at last he got within fifty yards, and then away
-they went at a merry pace, Ernest’s object being to ride alongside and
-put a bullet through him. Their gallop lasted a good two miles or more.
-On the level, Ernest gained on the vilderbeeste, but whenever they came
-to a patch of ant-bear holes or a ridge of stones, the vilderbeeste had
-the pull, and drew away again. At last they came to a dry pan or lake
-about half a mile broad, crowded with hundreds of buck of all sorts,
-which scampered away as they came tearing along. Here Ernest at length
-drew up level with his quarry, and grasping the rifle with his right
-hand, tried to get it so that he could put a bullet through the beast,
-and drop him. But it was no easy matter, as any one who has ever tried
-it will know, and, while he was still making up his mind, the
-vilderbeeste slewed round, and came at him bravely. Had his horse been
-unused to the work, he must have had his inside ripped out by the
-crooked horns; but he was an old hunter, and equal to the occasion. To
-turn was impossible, the speed was too great, but he managed to slew,
-with the result that the charging animal brushed his head, instead of
-landing himself in his belly. At the same moment Ernest stretched out
-his rifle and pulled the trigger, and, as it chanced, put the bullet
-right through the vilderbeeste and dropped him dead.
-
-Then he pulled up, and, dismounting, cut off some of the best of the
-beef with his hunting-knife, stowed it away in a saddle-bag, and set
-off on his horse, now pretty well fagged, to find the waggons. But to
-find a waggon-track on the great veldt, unless you have in the first
-instance taken the most careful bearings, is almost as difficult as it
-would be to return from a distance to any given spot on the ocean
-without a compass. There are no trees nor hills to guide the traveller;
-nothing but a vast wilderness of land resembling a sea petrified in a
-heavy swell.
-
-Ernest rode on for three or four miles, as he thought, retracing his
-steps over the line of country he had traversed, and at last, to his
-joy, struck the path. There were waggon-tracks on it; but he thought
-they did not look quite fresh. However, he followed them _faute de
-mieux_ for some five miles. Then he became convinced that they could
-not have been made by his waggons. He had overshot the mark, and must
-hark back. So he turned his weary horse’s head, and made his way along
-the road to the spot where his spoor struck into it. The waggons must
-be outspanned, waiting for him a little farther back. He went on, one
-mile, two, three—no waggons. A little to the left of the road was an
-eminence. He rode to it, and up and scanned the horizon. O joy! there
-far away, five or six miles off, was the white cap of a waggon. He rode
-to it straight across country. Once he got bogged in a vlei or swamp,
-and had to throw himself off, and drag his horse out by the bridle. He
-struggled on, and at last came to the dip in which he had seen the
-waggon-tent. It was a great white stone perched on a mound of brown
-ones.
-
-By this time he had utterly lost his reckoning. Just then, to make
-matters worse, a thunder-shower came up with a bitter wind, and
-drenched him to the skin. The rain passed, but the wind did not. It
-blew like ice, and chilled his frame, enervated with the tropical heat
-in which he had been living, through and through. He wandered on
-aimlessly, till suddenly his tired horse put his foot in a hole and
-fell heavily, throwing him on to his head and shoulder. For a few
-minutes his senses left him; but he recovered, and, mounting his
-worn-out horse, wandered on again. Luckily, he had broken no bones. Had
-he done so, he would probably have perished miserably in that lonely
-place.
-
-The sun was sinking now, and he was faint for want of food, for he had
-eaten nothing that day but a biscuit. He had not even a pipe of tobacco
-with him. Just as the sun vanished he hit a little path, or what might
-once have been a path. He followed it till the pitchy darkness set in;
-then he got off his horse and took off the saddle, which he put down on
-the bare black veldt, for a fire had recently swept off the dry grass,
-and wrapping the saddle-cloth round his feet, laid his aching head upon
-the saddle. The reins he hitched round his arm, lest the horse should
-stray away from him to look for food. The wind was bitterly cold, and
-he was wet through; the hyenas came and howled round him. He cut off a
-piece of the raw vilderbeeste-beef and chewed it, but it turned his
-stomach and he spat it out. Then he shivered and sank into a torpor
-from which there was a poor chance of his awakening.
-
-How long he lay so he did not know—it seemed a few minutes; it was
-really an hour when suddenly he was awakened by feeling something
-shaking him by the shoulder.
-
-“What is it?” he said wearily.
-
-“Wat is it? Ach Himmel! wat is it? dat is just wat I wants to know. Wat
-do you here? You shall die so.”
-
-The voice was the voice of a German, and Ernest knew German well.
-
-“I have lost my way,” he said, in that language; “I cannot find the
-waggons.”
-
-“Ah, you can speak the tongue of the Vaterland,” said his visitor,
-still addressing him in English. “I will embrace you!” and he did so.
-
-Ernest sighed. It is a bore to be embraced in the dark by an unknown
-male German when you feel that you are not far off dissolution.
-
-“You are hungered?” said the German.
-
-Ernest signified that he was.
-
-“And athirsted?”
-
-Again he signified assent.
-
-“And perhaps you have no ‘gui’ (tobacco)?”
-
-“No, none.”
-
-“Good! my little wife, my Wilhelmina, shall find you all these things.”
-
-“What the devil,” thought Ernest to himself, “can a German be doing
-with his little wife in this place?”
-
-By this time the stars had come out, and gave some light.
-
-“Come, rouse yourself, and come and see my little wife. O, the pferd!”
-(horse)—“we will tie him to my wife. Ah, she is beautiful, though her
-leg shakes. O yes, you will love her.”
-
-“The deuce I shall!” ejaculated Ernest; and then, mindful of the good
-things the lady in question was to provide him with, he added solemnly,
-“Lead on, Macduff.”
-
-“Macduffer! my name is not so, my name is Hans; all ze great South
-Africa know me very well, and all South Africa love my wife.”
-
-“Really!” said Ernest.
-
-Although he was so miserable, he began to feel that the situation was
-interesting. A lady to whom his horse was to be tied, and whom all
-South Africa was enamoured of, could hardly fail to be interesting.
-Rising, he advanced a step or two with his friend, who he could now see
-was a large burly man with white hair, apparently about sixty years of
-age. Presently they came to something that in the dim light reminded
-him of the hand-hearse in Kesterwick Church, only it had two wheels
-instead of four, and no springs.
-
-“Behold my beautiful wife,” said the German. “Soon I will show you how
-her leg shakes; it shakes, O, horrid!”
-
-“Is—is the lady inside?” asked Ernest. It occurred to him that his
-friend might be carting about a corpse.
-
-“Inside! no, she is outside, she is all over;” and stepping back, the
-German put his head on one side in a most comical fashion, and,
-regarding the unofficial hearse with the deepest affection, said in a
-low voice, “Ah, liebe vrouw, ah, Wilhelmina, is you tired, my dear? and
-how is your poor leg?” and he caught hold of a groggy wheel and shook
-it.
-
-Had Ernest been a little less wretched, and one degree further off
-starvation, it is probable that he would have exploded with laughter,
-for he had a keen sense of the ludicrous; but he had not got a laugh
-left in him, and, besides, he was afraid of offending the German. So he
-merely murmured, “Poor, poor leg!” sympathetically, and then alluded to
-the question of eatables.
-
-“Ah, yes, of course. Let us see what Wilhelmina shall give us;” and he
-trotted round to the back end of the cart, which, in keeping with its
-hearse-like character, opened by means of two little folding-doors, and
-pulled out, first, two blankets, one of which he gave to Ernest to put
-round his shoulders; second, a large piece of biltong, or sun-dried
-game-flesh, and some biscuits; and, third, a bottle of peach-brandy. On
-these viands they fell to, and though they were not in themselves of an
-appetising nature, Ernest never enjoyed anything more in his life.
-Their meal did not take long, and after it his friend Hans produced
-some excellent Boer tobacco, and over their pipes Ernest told him how
-he had lost his way. Hans asked him what road he had been travelling
-on.
-
-“The Rustenburg road.”
-
-“Then, my friend, you are not more than one thousand paces off it. My
-wife and I we travel along him all day, till just now Wilhelmina she
-think she would like to come up here, and so I come, and now you see
-the reason why. She know you lie here and die in the cold, and she turn
-up to save your life. Ah, the good woman!”
-
-Ernest was greatly relieved to hear that he was so near the road, as,
-once upon it, he would have no difficulty in falling in with the
-waggons. Clearly, during the latter part of his wanderings, he must
-have unknowingly approached it. His mind, relieved upon this point, was
-at liberty to satisfy his curiosity about his friend. He soon
-discovered that he was a harmless lunatic, whose craze it was to wander
-all over South Africa, dragging his hand-cart after him. He made for no
-fixed point, nor had he any settled round. The beginning of the year
-might find him near the Zambesi, and the end near Cape Town or anywhere
-else. By the natives he was looked upon as inspired, and invariably
-treated with respect, and he lived upon what was given to him, or what
-he shot as he walked along. This mode of life he had pursued for years,
-and though he had many adventures, he never came to harm.
-
-“You see, my friend,” said the simple man, in answer to Ernest’s
-inquiries, “I make my wife down there in Scatterdorp, in the old
-colony. The houses are a long way off each other there, and the church
-it is in the middle. And the good volk there, they die very fast, and
-did get tired of carrying each other to be buried, and so they come to
-me and say, ‘Hans, you are a carpenter, you must make a beautiful black
-cart to put us in when we die.’ And so I set to, and I work, and work,
-and work at my cart till I gets quite—what you call him?—stoopid. And
-then one night, just as my cart was finished, I dreams that she and I
-are travelling along a wide straight road, like the road on the high
-veldt, and I knows that she is my wife, and that we must travel always
-together till we reach the City of Rest. And far, far away, above the
-top of a high mountain like the Drakensberg, I see a great wide tree,
-rooted on a cloud and covered all over with beautiful snow, that shined
-in the sunlight like the diamonds at Kimberley. And I know that under
-that tree is the gate of the real Rustenburg, the City of Rest, and my
-wife and I, we must journey on, on, on till we find it.”
-
-“Where do you come from now?” asked Ernest.
-
-“From Utrecht, from out of the east, where the sun rises so red every
-morning over Zululand, the land of bloodshed. O, the land will run with
-blood there. I know it; Wilhelmina told me as we came along; but I
-don’t know when. But you are tired. Good! you shall sleep with
-Wilhelmina; I will sleep beneath her. No, you shall, or she will
-be—what you call him?—offended.”
-
-Ernest crept into the cavity, and at once fell asleep, and dreamed that
-he had been buried alive. Suddenly in the middle of the night there was
-a most fearful jolt, caused by his horse, which was tied to the pole of
-Wilhelmina, having pulled the prop aside and let the pole down with a
-run. This Ernest mistook for the resurrection, and was extremely
-relieved to find himself in error. At dawn he emerged, bade his friend
-farewell, and gaining the road, rejoined the waggons in safety.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI.
-ERNEST ACCEPTS A COMMISSION
-
-
-A YOUNG man of that ardent, impetuous, intelligent mind which makes him
-charming and a thing to love, as contrasted with the young man of the
-sober, cautious, moneymaking mind (infinitely the most useful article),
-which makes him a “comfort” to his relatives and a thing to respect,
-avoid, and marry your daughter to, has two great safeguards standing
-between him and the ruin which dogs the heels of the ardent, the
-impetuous, and the intelligent. These are, his religion and his belief
-in women. It is probable that he will start on his erratic career with
-a full store of both. He has never questioned the former; the latter,
-so far as his own class in life is concerned, are to him all sweet and
-good, and perhaps there is one particular star who only shines for him,
-and is the sweetest and best of them all. But one fine day the sweetest
-and best of all throws him over, being a younger son, and marries his
-eldest brother, or a paralytic cotton-spinner of enormous wealth and
-uncertain temper, and then a sudden change comes over the spirit of the
-ardent, intelligent, and impetuous one. Not being of a well-balanced
-mind, he rushes to the other extreme, and believes in his sore heart
-that all women would throw over such as he and marry eldest brothers or
-superannuated cotton-spinners. He may be right or he may be wrong. The
-materials for ascertaining the fact are wanting, for all women engaged
-to impecunious young gentlemen do not get the chance. But, right or
-wrong, the result upon the sufferer is the same—his faith in women is
-shaken, if not destroyed. Nor does the mischief stop there; his
-religion often follows his belief in the other sex, for in some
-mysterious way the two things are interwoven. A young man of the nobler
-class of mind in love is generally for the time being a religious man;
-his affection lifts him more or less above the things of earth, and
-floats him on its radiant wings a day’s journey nearer heaven.
-
-The same thing applies conversely. If a man’s religious belief is
-emasculated, he becomes suspicious of the “sweetest and best;” he grows
-cynical, and no longer puts faith in superlatives. From atheism there
-is but a small step to misogyny, or rather to that disbelief in
-humanity which embraces a profounder constituent disbelief in its
-feminine section, and in turn, as already said, the misogynist walks
-daily along the edge of atheism. Of course there is a way out of these
-discouraging results. If the mind that suffers and falls through its
-suffering be of the truly noble order, it may in time come to see that
-this world is a world not of superlatives, but of the most arid
-positives, with here and there a little comparative oasis to break the
-monotony of its general outline. Its owner may learn that the fault lay
-with him, for believing too much, for trusting too far, for setting up
-as an idol a creature exactly like himself, only several degrees lower
-beneath proof; and at last he may come to see that though “sweetests
-and bests” are chimerical, there are women in the world who may fairly
-be called “sweet and good.” Or, to return to the converse side of the
-picture, it may occur to our young gentleman that although Providence
-starts us in the world with a full inherited or indoctrinated belief in
-a given religion, that is not what Providence understands by faith.
-Faith, perfect faith, is only to be won by struggle, and in most
-cultivated minds by the passage through the dim, mirage-clad land of
-disbelief. The true believer is he who has trodden down disbelief, not
-he who has run away from it. When we have descended from the height of
-our childhood, when we have entertained Apollyon, and having considered
-what he has to say, given him battle and routed him in the plain, then,
-and not till then, can we say with guileless hearts, “Lord, I believe,”
-and feel no need to add the sadly qualifying words, “help Thou mine
-unbelief.” Now these are more or less principles of human nature. They
-may not be universally true, probably nothing is—that is, as we define
-and understand truth. But they apply to the majority of those cases
-which fall strictly within their limits. Among others they applied
-rather strikingly to Ernest Kershaw. Eva’s desertion struck his belief
-in womanhood to the ground, and soon his religion lay in the dust
-beside it. Of this his life for some years after that event gave
-considerable evidence. He took to evil ways, he forgot his better self.
-He raced horses, he devoted himself with great success to love-affairs
-that he would have done better to leave alone. Sometimes, to his shame
-be it said, he drank—for the excitement of drinking, not for the love
-of it. In short, he gave himself and all his fund of energy up to any
-and every excitement and dissipation he could command, and he managed
-to command a good many. Travelling rapidly from place to place in South
-Africa, he was well known and well liked in all. Now he was at
-Kimberley, now at King William’s Town, now at Durban. In each of these
-places he kept race-horses; in each there was some fair woman’s face
-that grew the brighter for his coming.
-
-But Ernest’s face did not grow the brighter; on the contrary, his eyes
-acquired a peculiar sadness which was almost pathetic in one so young.
-He could not forget. For a few days or a few months he might stifle
-thought, but it always re-arose. Eva, pale queen of women, was ever
-there to haunt his sleep, and though in his waking hours he might curse
-her memory, when night drew the veil from truth the words he murmured
-were words of love eternal.
-
-He no longer prayed, he no longer reverenced woman, but he was not the
-happier for having freed his soul from these burdens. He despised
-himself. Occasionally he would take stock of his mental condition, and
-at each such stocktaking he would notice that he had receded, not
-progressed. He was growing coarse, his finer sense was being blunted;
-he was no longer the same Ernest who had written that queer letter to
-his betrothed before disaster overwhelmed him. Slowly and surely he was
-sinking. He knew it, but he did not try to save himself. Why should he?
-He had no object in life. But at times a great depression and weariness
-of existence would take possession of him. It has been said that he
-never prayed; that is not strictly true. Once or twice he did throw
-himself upon his knees and pray with all his strength that he might
-die. He did more: he persistently courted death, and, as is usual in
-such cases, it persistently avoided him. About taking his own life he
-had scruples, or perhaps he would have taken it. In those dark days he
-hated life, and in his calmer and more reflective moments he loathed
-the pleasures and excitements by means of which he strove to make it
-palatable. His was a fine strung mind, and, in spite of himself, he
-shuddered when it was set to play such coarse music.
-
-During those years Ernest seemed to bear a charmed existence. There was
-a well-known thoroughbred horse in the Transvaal which had killed two
-men in rapid succession. Ernest bought it and rode it, and it never
-hurt him. Disturbances broke out in Secocoeni’s country, and one of the
-chief strongholds was ordered to be stormed. Ernest rode down from
-Pretoria with Jeremy to see the fun, and, reaching the fort the day
-before the attack, got leave to join the storming party. Accordingly,
-next day at dawn they attacked in the teeth of a furious fusillade, and
-in time took the place, though with very heavy loss to themselves.
-Jeremy’s hat was shot off with one bullet and his hand cut by another;
-Ernest, as usual, came off scathless; the man next to him was killed,
-but he was not touched. After that he insisted upon going
-buftalo-shooting towards Delagoa Bay in the height of the fever-season,
-having got rid of Jeremy by persuading him to go to New Scotland to see
-about a tract of land they had bought. He started with a dozen bearers
-and Mazooku. Six weeks later he, Mazooku, and three bearers
-returned—all the rest were dead of fever.
-
-On another occasion, Alston, Jeremy, and himself were sent on a
-political mission to a hostile chief, whose stronghold lay in the heart
-of almost inaccessible mountains. The “indaba” (palaver) took all day,
-and was purposely prolonged in order to enable the intelligent native
-to set an ambush in the pass through which the white chiefs must go
-back, with strict instructions to murder all three of them. When they
-left the stronghold the moon was rising, and, as they neared the pass,
-up she came behind the mountains in all her splendour, flooding the
-wide valley behind them with her mysterious light, and throwing a pale,
-sad lustre on every stone and tree. On they rode steadily through the
-moonlight and the silence, little guessing how near death was to them.
-The faint beauty of the scene sank deep into Ernest’s heart, and
-presently, when they came to a spot where a track ran out loopwise from
-the main pass, returning to it a couple of miles farther on, he half
-insisted on their taking it, because it passed over yet higher ground,
-and would give them a better view of the moon-bathed valley. Mr. Alston
-grumbled at “his nonsense” and complied, and meanwhile a party of
-murderers half a mile farther on played with their assegais, and
-wondered why they did not hear the sound of the white men’s feet. But
-the white men had already passed along the higher path three-quarters
-of a mile to their right. Ernest’s love of moonlight effects had saved
-them all from a certain and perhaps from a lingering death.
-
-It was shortly after this incident that Ernest and Jeremy were seated
-together on the verandah of the same house at Pretoria where they had
-been living before they went on the elephant hunt, and which they had
-now purchased. Ernest had been in the garden, watering a cucumber-plant
-he was trying to develop from a very sickly seedling. Even if he only
-stopped a month in a place he would start a little garden; it was a
-habit of his. Presently he came back to the verandah, where Jeremy was
-as usual watching the battle of the red and black ants, which after
-several years’ encounter was not yet finally decided.
-
-“Curse that cucumber-plant!” said Ernest, emphatically, “it won’t grow.
-I tell you what it is, Jeremy, I am sick of this place; I vote we go
-away.”
-
-“For goodness’ sake, Ernest, let us have a little rest; you do rattle
-one about so in those confounded post-carts,” replied Jeremy, yawning.
-
-“I mean, go away from South Africa altogether.”
-
-“Oh,” said Jeremy, dragging his great frame into an upright position,
-“the deuce you do! And where do you want to go to—England?”
-
-“England! no, I have had enough of England. South America, I think. But
-perhaps you want to go home. It is not fair to keep dragging you all
-over the world.”
-
-“My dear fellow, I like it, I assure you. I have no wish to return to
-Mr. Cardus’s stool. For goodness’ sake don’t suggest such a thing; I
-should be wretched.”
-
-“Yes, but you ought to be doing something with your life. It is all
-very well for me, who am a poor devil of a waif and stray, to go on
-with this sort of existence, but I don’t see why you should; you should
-be making your way in the world.”
-
-“Wait a bit, my hearty!” said Jeremy, with his slow smile; “I am going
-to read you a statement of our financial affairs which I drew up last
-night. Considering that we have been doing nothing all this time except
-enjoy ourselves, and that all our investments have been made out of
-income, which no doubt your respected uncle fancies were dissipated, I
-do not think that the total is so bad. And Jeremy read:
-
-“Landed property in Natal and the Transvaal,
- estimated value . . . . . . £2500
-This house . . . . . . . . . 940
-Stocks—waggons, &c., say . . . . 300
-Race-horses . . . . . . . . .
- ——–
-
-
-I have left that blank.”
-
-“Put them at 800_l._,” said Ernest, after thinking. “You know I won
-500_l._ with Lady Mary on the Cape Town Plate last week.”
-
-Jeremy went on:
-
-“Race-horses and winnings . . . . £1300
-Sundries—cash, balance,&c . . . . 180
- ——–
- Total . . . . . . £5220
-
-
-Now of this we have actually saved and invested about twenty-five
-hundred, the rest we have made or has accumulated. Now, I ask you,
-where could we have done better than that, as things go? So don’t talk
-to me about wasting my time.”
-
-“’Bravo, Jeremy! My uncle was right, after all: you ought to have been
-a lawyer; you are first-class at figures. I congratulate you on your
-management of the estates.”
-
-“My system is simple,” answered Jeremy. Whenever there is any money to
-spare I buy something with it then you are not likely to spend it.
-Then, when I have things enough—waggons, oxen, horses, what not,—I sell
-them and buy some land; that can’t run away. If you only do that sort
-of thing long enough, you will grow rich at last.”
-
-“Sweetly simple, certainly. Well, five thousand will go a Iong way
-towards stocking a farm or something in South America or wherever we
-make up our minds to go, and then I don’t think that we need draw on my
-uncle any more. It is hardly fair to drain him so. Old Alston will come
-with us, I think, and will put in another five thousand. He told me
-some time ago that he was getting tired of South Africa with its Boers
-and blacks, in his old age and had a fancy to make a start in some
-other place. I will write to him to-night. What hotel is he staying at
-in Maritzburg? the Royal, isn’t it? And then I vote we clear in the
-spring.”
-
-“Right you are, my hearty!”
-
-“But I say, Jeremy, I really should advise you to think twice before
-you come. A fine, upstanding young man like you should not waste his
-sweetness on the desert air of Mexico, or any such place. You should go
-home and be admired of the young women—they appreciate a great big chap
-like you—and make a good marriage, and rear up a large family in a
-virtuous, respectable, and Jones-like fashion. I am a sort of wandering
-comet without the shine; but, I repeat, I see no reason why you should
-play tail to a second-class comet.”
-
-“Married! get married! I! No, thank you, my boy. Look you, Ernest, in
-the words of the prophet, ‘When a wise man openeth his eye, and seeth a
-thing, verily he shutteth it not up again.’ Now, I opened my eye and
-saw one or two things in the course of our joint little affair—Eva, you
-know.”
-
-Ernest winced at the name.
-
-“I beg your pardon,” said Jeremy, noticing it; “I don’t want to allude
-to painful subjects, but I must to make my meaning clear. I was very
-hard hit, you know, over that lady, but I stopped in time, and, not
-having any imagination to speak of, did not give it rein. What is the
-consequence? I have got over it; sleep well at night, have a capital
-appetite, and don’t think about her twice a week. But with you it is
-different. Hard hit, too, large amount of imagination galloping about
-loose, so to speak—rapturous joy, dreams of true love and perfect union
-of souls, which no doubt would be well enough if the woman could put in
-her whack of soul, which she can’t, not having it to spare, but in a
-general way is gammon. Results, when the burst-up comes: want of sleep,
-want of appetite, a desire to go buffalo-shooting in the fever-season,
-and to be potted by Basutus from behind rocks. In short, a general
-weariness and disgust of life—O yes, you needn’t deny it, I have
-watched you—most unwholesome state of mind. Further results:
-horse-racing, a disposition to stop away from church, and nip Cape
-sherry; and, worst sign of all, a leaning to ladies’ society. Being a
-reasoning creature I notice this, and draw my own deductions, which
-amount to the conclusion that you are in a fair way to go to the deuce,
-owing to trusting your life to a woman. And the moral of all this,
-which I lay to heart for my own guidance, is, never speak to a woman if
-you can avoid it, and when you can’t, let your speech be yea, yea, and
-nay, nay, more especially ‘nay.’ Then you stand a good chance of
-keeping your appetite and peace of mind, and of making your way in the
-world. Marriage, indeed!—never talk to me of marriage again;” and
-Jeremy shivered at the thought.
-
-Ernest laughed out loud at his lengthy disquisition.
-
-“And I’ll tell you what, old fellow,” he went on, drawing himself up to
-his full height, and standing right over Ernest, so that the latter’s
-six feet looked very insignificant beside him, “never you speak to me
-about leaving you again, unless you want to put me clean out of temper,
-because, look here, I don’t like it. We have lived together since we
-were twelve, or thereabouts, and, so far as I am concerned, I mean to
-go on living together to the end of the chapter, or till I see I am not
-wanted. You can go to Mexico, or the North Pole, or Acapulco, or
-wherever you like, but I shall go too, and so that is all about it.”
-
-“Thank you, old fellow,” said Ernest, simply; and at that moment their
-conversation was interrupted by the arrival of a Kafir messenger with a
-telegram addressed to Ernest. He opened it and read it. “Hullo,” he
-said, “here is something better than Mexico; listen:
-
-“‘Alston, Pieter Maritzburg, to Kershaw, Pretoria. High Commissioner
-has declared war against Cetywayo. Local cavalry urgently required for
-service in Zululand. Have offered to raise a small corps of about
-seventy mounted men. Offer has been accepted. Will you accept post of
-second in command?—you would hold the Queen’s commission. If so, set
-about picking suitable recruits. Terms ten shillings a day, all found.
-Am coming up Pretoria by this post-cart. Ask Jones if he will accept
-sergeant-major-ship.’
-
-“Hurrah!” sang out Ernest, with flashing eyes. “Here is some real
-service at last. Of course you will accept.”
-
-“Of course,” said Jeremy, quietly; “but don’t indulge in rejoicings
-yet; this is going to be a big business, unless I am mistaken.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII.
-HANS PROPHESIES EVIL
-
-
-Ernest and Jeremy did not let the grass grow under their feet. They
-guessed that there would soon be a great deal of recruiting for various
-corps, and so set to work at once to secure the best men. The stamp of
-men they aimed at getting was the colonial-born Englishman, both
-because such men have more self-respect, independence of character, and
-“gumption,” than the ordinary drifting sediment from the fields and
-seaports, and also because they were practically ready-made soldiers.
-They could ride as well as they could walk, they were splendid
-rifle-shots, and they had, too, from childhood, been trained in the art
-of travelling without baggage, and very rapidly. Ernest did not find
-much difficulty in the task. Mr. Alston was well known, and had seen a
-great deal of service as a young man in the Basutu wars, and stories
-were still told of his nerve and pluck. He was known, too, to be a wary
-man, not rash or over-confident, but of a determined mind; and, what is
-more, to possess a perfect knowledge of Zulu warfare and tactics. This
-went a long way with intending recruits, for the first thing a would-be
-colonial volunteer inquires into is the character of his officers. He
-will not trust his life to men in whom he puts no reliance. He is
-willing to lose it in the way of duty, but he has a great objection to
-having it blundered away. Indeed, in many South African volunteer corps
-it is a fundamental principle that the officers should be elected by
-the men themselves. Once elected, however, they cannot be deposed
-except by competent authority.
-
-Ernest, too, was by this time well known in the Transvaal, and
-universally believed in. Mr. Alston could not have chosen a better
-lieutenant. He was known to have pluck and dash, and to be ready-witted
-in emergency; but it was not that only which made him acceptable to the
-individuals whose continued existence would very possibly depend upon
-his courage and discretion. Indeed, it would be difficult to say what
-it was; but there are some men who are by nature born leaders of their
-fellows, and who inspire confidence magnetically. Ernest had this great
-gift. At first sight he was much like any other young man, rather
-careless-looking than otherwise in appearance, and giving the observer
-the impression that he was thinking of something else; but old hands at
-native warfare, looking into his dark eyes, saw something there which
-told them that this young fellow, boy as he was, comparatively
-speaking, would not show himself wanting in the moment of emergency,
-either in courage or discretion. Jeremy’s nomination, too, as
-sergeant-major, a very important post in such a corps, was popular
-enough. People had not forgotten his victory over the Boer giant, and
-besides, a sergeant-major with such a physique would have been a credit
-to any corps.
-
-All these things helped to make recruiting an easy task, and when
-Alston and his son Roger, weary and bruised, stepped out of the Natal
-post-cart four days later, it was to be met by Ernest and Jeremy with
-the intelligence that his telegram had been received, the appointments
-accepted, and thirty-five men provisionally enrolled subject to his
-approval.
-
-“My word, young gentlemen,” he said, highly pleased, “you are
-lieutenants worth having.”
-
-The next fortnight was a busy one for all concerned. The organisation
-of a colonial volunteer corps is no joke, as anybody who has ever tried
-it can testify. There were rough uniforms to be provided, arms to be
-obtained, and a hundred and one other wants to be satisfied. Then came
-some delay about the horses, which were to be served out by Government.
-At last these were handed over, a good-looking lot, but apparently very
-wild. Matters were at this point, when one day Ernest was seated in the
-room he used as an office in his house, enrolling a new recruit
-previous to his being sworn, interviewing a tradesman about flannel
-shirts, making arrangements for a supply of forage, filling up the
-endless forms which the imperial authorities required for transmission
-to the War Office, and a hundred other matters. Suddenly his orderly
-announced that two privates of the corps wished to see him.
-
-“What is it?” he asked of the orderly, testily; for he was nearly
-worked to death.
-
-“A complaint, sir.”
-
-“Well, send them in.”
-
-The door opened, and a curious couple entered. One was a great, burly
-sailor-man, who had been a quartermaster on board one of her Majesty’s
-ships at Cape Town, got drunk, overstayed his leave, and deserted
-rather than face the punishment; the other a quick, active little
-fellow, with a face like a ferret. He was a Zululand trader, who had
-ruined himself by drink, and a peculiarly valuable member of the corps
-on account of his knowledge of the country in which they were going to
-serve. Both the men saluted and stood at ease.
-
-“Well, my men, what is it?” asked Ernest, going on filling up his
-forms.
-
-“Nothing, so far as I am concerned, sir,” said the little man.
-
-Ernest looked up sharply at the quondam tar.
-
-“Now, Adam, your complaint; I have no time to waste.”
-
-Adam hitched up his breeches and began:
-
-“You see, sir, I brought _he_ here by the scruff of the neck.”
-
-“That’s true, sir,” said the little man, rubbing that portion of his
-body.
-
-“Because he and I, sir, as is messmates, sir, ’ad a difference of
-opinion. It was his day, you see, sir, to cook for our mess, and
-instead of putting on the pot, sir, he comes to me he does, and he says
-‘Adam, you blooming father of a race of fools’—that’s what he says,
-sir, a-comparing of me to the gent who lived in a garden—‘why don’t you
-come and take the —— skins off the —— taters, instead of a-squatting of
-yourself down on that there —— bed!’”
-
-“Slightly in error, sir,” broke in the little man, suavely; “our big
-friend’s memory is not as substantial as his form. What I said was, ‘My
-_dear_ Adam, as I see you have nothing to occupy your time, except sit
-and play a jew’s-harp upon your _couch,_ would you be so kind as to
-come and assist me to remove the outer integument of these potatoes?’”
-
-Ernest began to explode, but checked himself, and said sternly:
-
-“Don’t talk nonsense, Adam; tell me your complaint.”
-
-“Well, sir,” answered the big sailor, scratching his head, “if I must
-give it a name, it is this—this here man, sir, be too _infarnal
-sargustic_.”
-
-“Be off with you both,” said Ernest, sternly, “and don’t trouble me
-with any such nonsense again, or I will put you both under arrest, and
-stop your pay. Come, march!” and he pointed to the door. As he did so
-he observed a Boer gallop swiftly past the house, and take the turn to
-Government House.
-
-“What is up now?” he wondered.
-
-Half an hour afterwards another man passed the window, also at full
-gallop, and also turned up towards Government House. Another half-hour
-passed, and Mr. Alston came hurrying in.
-
-“Look here, Ernest,” he said, “here is a pretty business. Three men
-have come in to report that Cetewayo has sent an Impi (army) round by
-the back of Secocoeni’s country to burn Pretoria, and return to
-Zululand across the High Veldt. They say that the Impi is now resting
-in the Saltpan Bush, about twenty miles off, and will attack the town
-to-night or to-morrow night. All these three, who have, by the way, had
-no communication with each other, state that they have actually seen
-the captains of the Impi, who came to tell them to bid the other
-Dutchmen stand aside, as they are now fighting the Queen, and they
-would not be hurt.”
-
-“It seems incredible,” said Ernest; “do you believe it?”
-
-“I don’t know. It is possible, and the evidence is strong. It is
-possible; I have known the Zulus make longer marches than that. The
-Governor has ordered me to gallop to the spot, and report if I can see
-anything of this Impi.”
-
-“Am I to go too?”
-
-“No, you will remain in the corps. I take Roger with me—he is a light
-weight—and two spare horses. If there should be an attack and I should
-not be back, or if anything should happen, you will do your duty.”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“Good-bye. I am off. You had better muster the men to be ready for an
-emergency;” and he was gone.
-
-Ten minutes afterwards, down came an orderly from the officer
-commanding, with a peremptory order to the effect that the officer
-commanding Alston’s Horse was to mount and parade his men in readiness
-for immediate service.
-
-“Here is a pretty go,” thought Ernest, “and the horses not served out
-yet!”
-
-Just then Jeremy came in, saluted, and informed him that the men were
-mustered.
-
-“Serve out the saddlery. Let every man shoulder his saddle. Tell
-Mazooku to bring out the ‘Devil’ (Ernest’s favourite horse), and march
-the men up to the Government stables. I will be with you presently.”
-
-Jeremy saluted again with much ceremony and vanished. He was the most
-punctilious sergeant-major who ever breathed.
-
-Twenty minutes later, a long file of men, each with a carbine slung to
-his back, and a saddle on his head, which, at a distance, gave them the
-appearance of a string of gigantic mushrooms, were to be seen
-proceeding towards the Government stables a mile away.
-
-Ernest, mounted on his great black stallion, and looking, in his
-military uniform and the revolver slung across his shoulders, a typical
-volunteer officer, was there before them.
-
-“Now, my men,” he said, as soon as they were paraded, “go in, and each
-man choose the horse which he likes best, bridle him, and bring him out
-and saddle him. Sharp!”
-
-The men broke their ranks and rushed to the stables, each anxious to
-secure a better horse than his neighbours. Presently from the stables
-there arose a sound of kicking, plunging, and “wo-hoing” impossible to
-describe.
-
-“There will be a pretty scene soon, with these unbroken brutes,”
-thought Ernest.
-
-He was not destined to be disappointed. The horses were dragged out,
-most of them lying back upon their haunches, kicking, bucking, and
-going through every other equine antic.
-
-“Saddle up!” shouted Ernest, as soon as they were all out.
-
-It was done with great difficulty.
-
-“Now mount.”
-
-Sixty men lifted their legs and swung themselves into the saddle, not
-without sad misgivings. A few seconds passed, and at least twenty of
-them were on the broad of their backs; one or two were being dragged by
-the stirrup-leather; a few were clinging to their bucking and plunging
-steeds; and the remainder of Alston’s Horse was scouring the plain in
-every possible direction. Never was there such a scene.
-
-In time, however, most of the men got back again, and some sort of
-order was restored. Several men were hurt, one or two badly. These were
-sent to the hospital, and Ernest formed the rest into half-sections, to
-be marched to the place of rendezvous. Just then, to make matters
-better, down came the rain in sheets, soaking them to the skin, and
-making confusion worse confounded. So they rode to the town, which was
-by this time in an extraordinary state of panic. All business was
-suspended; women were standing about on the verandahs, hugging their
-babies and crying, or making preparations to go into laager; men were
-hiding deeds and valuables, or hurrying to defence meetings on the
-market-square, where the Government were serving out rifles and
-ammunition to all able-bodied citizens; frightened mobs of Basutos and
-Christian Kafirs were jabbering in the streets, and telling tales of
-the completeness of Zulu slaughter, or else running from the city to
-pass the night among the hills. Altogether the scene was most curious,
-till dense darkness came down over it like an extinguisher, and put it
-out.
-
-Ernest took his men to a building which the Government had placed at
-their disposal, and had the horses stabled, but not unsaddled.
-Presently orders came down to him to keep the corps under arms all
-night; to send out four patrols, to be relieved at midnight, to watch
-the approaches to the town; and at dawn to saddle up and reconnoitre
-the neighbouring country.
-
-Ernest obeyed these orders as well as he could; that is, he sent the
-patrols out, but so dense was the darkness that they never got back
-again till the following morning, when they were collected, and, in one
-instance, dug out of the various ditches, quarry-holes, &c., into which
-they had fallen.
-
-About eleven o’clock Ernest was seated in a little room that opened out
-of the main building where they were quartered, consulting with Jeremy
-about matters connected with the corps, and wondering if Alston had
-found a Zulu Impi, or if it was all gammon when suddenly they heard the
-sharp challenge of the sentry outside:
-
-“Who goes there?”
-
-“Whoever it is had better answer sharp,” said Ernest; “I gave the
-sentry orders to be quick with his rifle to-night.”
-
-Bang!—crash! followed by loud howls of “Wilhelmina, my wife! Ah, the
-cruel man has killed my Wilhelmina!”
-
-“Heavens, it is that lunatic German! Here, orderly, run up to the
-Defence Committee and the Government offices, and tell them that it is
-nothing; they will think the Zulus are here. Tell two men to bring the
-man in here, and to stop his howls.”
-
-Presently Ernest’s old friend of the High Veldt, looking very wild and
-uncouth in the lamplight, with his long beard and matted hair, from
-which the rain was dripping, was bundled rather unceremoniously into
-the room.
-
-“Ah, there you are, dear sir; it is two—three years since we meet. I
-look for you everywhere, and they tell me you are here, and I come on
-quick all through the dark and the rain; and then before I know if I am
-on my head or my heel, the cruel man he ups a rifle, and do shoot my
-Wilhelmina, and make a great hole through her poor stomach. O sir, wat
-shall I do?” and the great child began to shed tears; “you, too, will
-weep: you, too, love my Wilhelmina, and sleep with her one
-night—bo-hoo!”
-
-“For goodness’ sake, stop that nonsense! This is no time or place for
-such fooling.”
-
-He spoke sharply, and the monomaniac pulled up, only giving vent to an
-occasional sob.
-
-“Now, what is your business with me?”
-
-The German’s face changed from its expression of idiotic grief to one
-of refined intelligence. He glanced towards Jeremy, who was exploding
-in the corner.
-
-“You can speak before this gentleman, Hans,” said Ernest.
-
-“Sir, I am going to say a strange thing to you this night.”
-
-He was speaking quite quietly and composedly now, and might have been
-mistaken for a sane man.
-
-“Sir, I hear that you go down to Zululand to help to fight the fierce
-Zulus. When I hear it, I was far away, but something come into my head
-to travel as quick as Wilhelmina can, and come and tell you not to go.”
-
-“What do you mean?”
-
-“How can I say what I do mean? This I know—many shall go down to
-Zululand who rest in this house to-night, few shall come back.”
-
-“You mean that I shall be killed?”
-
-“I know not. There are things as bad as death, and yet not death.”
-
-He covered his eyes with his hand, and continued:
-
-“I cannot _see_ you dead, but do not go; I pray you do not go.”
-
-“My good Hans, what is the good of coming to me with such an old wives’
-tale? Even if it were true, and I knew that I must be killed twenty
-times, I should go. I cannot run away from my duty.”
-
-“That is spoken as a brave man should,” answered his visitor, in his
-native tongue. “I have done _my_ duty, and told you what Wilhelmina
-said. Now go, and when the black men are leaping up at you like the
-sea-waves round a rock, may the God of Rest guide your hand, and bring
-you safe from the slaughter!”
-
-Ernest gazed at the old man’s pale face; it wore a curious rapt
-expression, and the eyes were looking upwards.
-
-“Perhaps, old friend,” he said, addressing him in German, “I, as well
-as you, have a City of Rest which I would reach, and care not if I pass
-thither on an assegai.”
-
-“I know it,” replied Hans, in the same tongue; “but useless is it to
-seek rest till God gives it. You have sought and passed through the
-jaws of many deaths, but you have not found. If it be not God’s will,
-you will not find it now. I know you too seek rest, my brother, and had
-I known that you would find that only down there”—and he pointed
-towards Zululand—“I had not come down to warn you, for blessed is rest,
-and happy he who gains it. But no, it is not that; I am sure now that
-you will not die; your evil, whatever it is, will fall from heaven.”
-
-“So be it,” said Ernest; “you are a strange man. I thought you a common
-monomaniac, and now you speak like a prophet.”
-
-The old man smiled.
-
-“You are right; I am both. Mostly I am mad. I know it. But sometimes my
-madness has its moments of inspiration, when the clouds lift from my
-mind, and I see things none others can see, and hear voices to which
-your ears are deaf. Such a moment is on me now; soon I shall be mad
-again. But before the cloud settles I would speak to you. Why, I know
-not, save that I loved you when first I saw your eyes open there upon
-the cold veldt. Presently I must go, and we shall meet no more, for I
-draw near to the snow-clad tree that marks the gate of the City of
-Rest. I can look into your heart now and see the trouble in it, and the
-sad, beautiful face that is printed on your mind. Ah, she is not happy;
-she, too, must work out her rest. But the time is short, the cloud
-settles, and I would tell you what is in my mind. Even though trouble,
-great trouble, close you in, do not be cast down, for trouble is the
-key of heaven. Be good; turn to the God you have neglected; struggle
-against the snares of the senses. O, I can see now! For you and for all
-you love there is joy and there is peace!”
-
-Suddenly he broke off; the look of inspiration faded from his face,
-which grew stupid and wild-looking.
-
-“Ah, the cruel man; he made a great hole in the stomach of my
-Wilhelmina!”
-
-Ernest had been bending forwards, listening with parted lips to the old
-man’s talk. When he saw that the inspiration had left him, he raised
-his head and said:
-
-“Gather yourself together, I beg you, for a moment. I wish to ask one
-question. Shall I ever——”
-
-“How shall I stop de bleeding from the witals of my dear wife?—who will
-plug up the hole in her?”
-
-Ernest gazed at the man. Was he putting all this on?—or was he really
-mad? For the life of him he could not tell.
-
-Taking out a sovereign, he gave it to him.
-
-“There is money to doctor Wilhelmina with,” he said. “Would you like to
-sleep here?—I can give you a blanket.”
-
-The old man took the money without hesitation, and thanked Ernest for
-it, but said he must go on at once.
-
-“Where are you going to?” asked Jeremy, who had been watching him with
-great curiosity, but had not understood that part of the conversation
-which had been carried on in German.
-
-Hans turned upon him with a quick look of suspicion.
-
-“Rustenburg” (_Anglicè,_ the town of rest), he answered.
-
-“Indeed! the road is bad, and it is far to travel.”
-
-“Yes,” he replied, “the road is rough and long. Farewell!” And he was
-gone.
-
-“Well, he is a curious old buster, and no mistake, with his cheerful
-anticipations and his Wilhelmina,” reflected Jeremy, aloud. “Just fancy
-starting for Rustenburg at this hour of the night, too! Why it is a
-hundred miles off!”
-
-Ernest only smiled. He knew that it was no earthly Rustenburg that the
-old man sought.
-
-Some while afterwards he heard that Hans had attained the rest which he
-desired. Wilhelmina got fixed in a snowdrift in a pass of the
-Drakensberg. He was unable to drag her out.
-
-So he crept underneath and fell asleep, and the snow came down and
-covered them.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII.
-MR. ALSTON’S VIEWS
-
-
-The Zulu attack on Pretoria ultimately turned out only to have existed
-in the minds of two mad Kafirs, who dressed themselves up after the
-fashion of chiefs, and personating two Zulu nobles of repute, who were
-known to be in the command of regiments, rode from house to house,
-telling the Dutch inhabitants that they had an Impi of thirty thousand
-men lying in the bush, and bidding them stand aside while they
-destroyed the Englishmen. Hence the scare.
-
-The next month was a busy one for Alston’s Horse. It was drill, drill,
-drill, morning, noon, and night. But the results soon became apparent.
-In three weeks from the day they got their horses, there was not a
-smarter, quicker corps in South Africa, and Mr. Alston and Ernest were
-highly complimented on the soldier-like appearance of the men, and the
-rapidity and exactitude with which they executed all the ordinary
-cavalry manoeuvres.
-
-They were to march from Pretoria on the 10th of January, and expected
-to overtake Colonel Glynn’s column, with which was the General, about
-the 18th, by which time Mr. Alston calculated the real advance upon
-Zululand would begin.
-
-On the 8th, the good people of Pretoria gave the corps a farewell
-banquet, for most of its members were Pretoria men; and colonists are
-never behindhand when there is an excuse for conviviality and
-good-fellowship.
-
-Of course, after the banquet, Mr.—or, as he was now called,
-Captain—Alston’s health was drunk. But Alston was a man of few words,
-and had a horror of speech-making.
-
-He contented himself with a few brief sentences of acknowledgment, and
-sat down. Then somebody proposed the health of the other commissioned
-and noncommissioned officers, and to this Ernest rose to respond,
-making a very good speech in reply. He rapidly sketched the state of
-political affairs, of which the Zulu war was the outcome, and, without
-expressing any opinion on the justice or wisdom of that war, of which,
-to speak the truth, he had grave doubts, he went on to show, in a few
-well-chosen, weighty words, how vital were the interests involved in
-its successful conclusion, now that it once had been undertaken.
-Finally he concluded thus:
-
-“I am well aware, gentlemen, that with many of those who are your
-guests here to-night, and my own comrades, this state of affairs and
-the conviction of the extreme urgency of the occasion has been the
-cause of their enlistment. It is impossible for me to look down these
-tables, and see so many in our rough-and-ready uniform, whom I have
-known in other walks of life, as farmers, storekeepers, Government
-clerks, and what not, without realising most clearly the extreme
-necessity that can have brought these peaceable citizens together on
-such an errand as we are bent on. Certainly it is not the ten shillings
-a day, or the mere excitement of savage warfare, that has done this”
-(cries of ‘No, no!’);” because most of them can well afford to despise
-the money, and many more have seen enough of native war, and know well
-that few rewards and plenty of hard work fall to the lot of colonial
-volunteers. Then what is it? I will venture a reply. It is that sense
-of patriotism which is a part and parcel of the English mind” (cheers),
-“and which from generation to generation has been the root of England’s
-greatness, and, so long as the British blood remains untainted, will
-from unborn generation to generation be the mainspring of the greatness
-that is yet to be of those wider Englands, of which I hope this
-continent will become not the least.” (Loud cheers.)
-
-“That, gentlemen and men of Alston’s Horse, is the bond which unites us
-together; it is the sense of a common duty to perform, of a common
-danger to combat, of a common patriotism to vindicate. And for that
-reason, because of the patriotism and the duty, I feel sure that when
-the end of this campaign comes, whatever that end may be, no one, be he
-imperial officer, or newspaper correspondent, or Zulu foe, will be able
-to say that Alston’s Horse shirked its work, or was mutinous, or proved
-a broken reed, piercing the side of those who leaned on it.” (Cheers.)
-“I feel sure, too, that, though there may be a record of brave deeds
-such as become brave men, there will be none of a comrade deserted in
-the time of need, or of a failure in the moment of emergency, however
-terrible that emergency may be.” (Cheers.) “Ay, my brethren in arms,”
-and here Ernest’s eyes flashed and his strong clear voice went ringing
-down the great hall, “whom England has called, and who have not failed
-to answer to the call, I repeat, however terrible may be that
-emergency, even if it should involve the certainty of death—I speak
-thus because I feel I am addressing brave men, who do not fear to die,
-when death means duty, and life means dishonour—I know well that you
-will rise to it, and, falling shoulder to shoulder, will pass as heroes
-should on to the land of shades—on to that Valhalla of which no true
-heart should fear to set foot upon the threshold.”
-
-Ernest sat down amid ringing cheers. Nor did these noble words, coming
-as they did straight from the loyal heart of an English gentleman, fail
-of their effect. On the contrary, when, a fortnight later, Alston’s
-Horse formed that fatal ring on Isandhlwana’s bloody field, they
-flashed through the brain of more than one despairing man, so that he
-set his teeth and died the harder for them.
-
-“Bravo, my young Viking!” said Mr. Alston to Ernest, while the roof was
-still echoing to the cheers evoked by his speech, “the old Bersekir
-spirit is cropping up, eh?” He knew that Ernest’s mother’s family, like
-so many of the old Eastern County stocks, were of Danish extraction.
-
-It was a great night for Ernest.
-
-Two days later Alston’s Horse, sixty-four strong, marched out of
-Pretoria with a military band playing before. Alas! they never marched
-back again.
-
-At the neck of the poort or pass the band and the crowd of ladies and
-gentlemen who had accompanied them halted, and, having given them three
-cheers, turned and left them. Ernest, too, turned and gazed at the
-pretty town, with its white houses and rose-hedges red with bloom,
-nestling on the plain beneath, and wondered if he would ever see it
-again. He never did.
-
-The troop was then ordered to march at ease in half-sections, and
-Ernest rode up to the side of Alston; on his other side was the boy
-Roger, now about fourteen years of age, who acted as Alston’s
-aide-de-camp, and was in high spirits at the prospect of the coming
-campaign. Presently Alston sent his son back to the other end of the
-line on some errand.
-
-Ernest watched him as he galloped off, and a thought struck him.
-
-“Alston,” he said, “do you think that it is wise to bring that boy into
-this business?”
-
-His friend slewed himself round sharply in the saddle.
-
-“Why not?” he asked, in his deliberate way.
-
-“Well, you know there is a risk.”
-
-“And why should not the boy run risks as well as the rest of us? Look
-here, Ernest, when I first met you there in Guernsey I was going to see
-the place where my wife was brought up. Do you know how she died?”
-
-“I have heard she died a violent death; I do not know how.”
-
-“Then I will tell you, though it costs me something to speak of it. She
-died by a Zulu assegai, a week after the boy was born. She saved his
-life by hiding him under a heap of straw. Don’t ask me particulars; I
-can’t bear to talk of it. Perhaps now you understand why I am
-commanding a corps enrolled to serve against the Zulus. Perhaps, too,
-you will understand why the lad is with me. We go to avenge my wife and
-his mother, or to fall in the attempt. I have waited long for the
-opportunity; it has come.”
-
-Ernest relapsed into silence, and presently fell back to his troop.
-
-On the 20th of January, Alston’s Horse, having moved down by easy
-marches from Pretoria, camped at Rorke’s Drift, on the Bulialo River,
-not far from a store and a thatched building used as a hospital, which
-were destined to become historical. Here orders reached them to march
-on the following day and join No. 3 column, with which was Lord
-Chelmsford himself, and which was camped about nine miles from the
-Bulialo River, at a spot called Isandhlwana, or the “Place of the
-Little Hand.” Next day, the 21st of January, the corps moved on
-accordingly, and following the waggon-track that runs past the
-Inhlazatye Mountain, by midday came up to the camp, where about
-twenty-five hundred men of all arms were assembled under the immediate
-command of Colonel Glynn. Their camp, which was about eight hundred
-yards square, was pitched facing a wide plain, with its back towards a
-precipitous, slab-sided hill, of the curious formation sometimes to be
-seen in South Africa. This was Isandhlwana.
-
-“Hullo!” said Alston, as, on reaching the summit of the neck over which
-the waggon-road runs, they came in sight of the camp, “they are not
-entrenched. By Jove,” he added, after scanning the camp carefully,
-“they haven’t even got a waggon-laager!” and he whistled expressively.
-
-“What do you mean?” asked Ernest.
-
-Mr. Alston so rarely showed surprise that he knew there must be
-something very wrong.
-
-“I mean, Ernest, that there is nothing to prevent this camp from being
-destroyed, and every soul in it, by a couple of Zulu regiments, if they
-choose to make a night attack. How are they to be kept out, I should
-like to know, in the dark, when you can’t see to shoot them, unless
-there is some barrier? These officers, fresh from home, don’t know what
-a Zulu charge is, that is very clear. I only hope they won’t have
-occasion to find out. Look there,” and he pointed to a waggon lumbering
-along before them, on the top of which, among a lot of other
-miscellaneous articles, lay a bundle of cricketing bats and wickets,
-“they think that they are going on a picnic. What is the use, too, I
-should like to know, of sending four feeble columns sprawling over
-Zululand, to run the risk of being crushed in detail by a foe that can
-move from point to point at the rate of fifty miles a day, and which
-can at any moment slip past them and turn Natal into a howling
-wilderness? There, it is no use grumbling; I only hope I may be wrong.
-Get back to your troop, Ernest, and let us come into camp smartly. Form
-fours—trot!”
-
-On arrival in the camp, Mr. Alston learned, on reporting himself to the
-officer commanding, that two strong parties of mounted men under the
-command of Major Dartnell were out on a reconnaissance towards the
-Inhlazatye Mountain, in which direction the Zulus were supposed to be
-in force. The orders he received were to rest his horses, as he might
-be required to join the mounted force with Major Dartnell on the
-morrow.
-
-That night, as Alston and Ernest stood together at the door of their
-tent, smoking a pipe before turning in, they had some conversation. It
-was a beautiful night, and the stars shone brightly. Ernest looked at
-them, and thought on how many of man’s wars those stars had looked.
-
-“Star-gazing?” asked Mr. Alston.
-
-“I was contemplating our future homes,” said Ernest, laughing.
-
-“Ah, you believe that, do you? think you are immortal, and that sort of
-thing?”
-
-“Yes; I believe that we shall live many lives, and that some of them
-will be there,” and he pointed to the stars. “Don’t you?”
-
-“I don’t know. I think it rather presumptuous. Why should you suppose
-that for you is reserved a bright destiny among the stars more than for
-these?” and he put out his hand and clasped several of a swarm of
-flying-ants which were passing at the time. Just think how small must
-be the difference between these ants and us in the eyes of a Power who
-can produce both. The same breath of life animates both. These have
-their homes, their government, their colonies, their drones and
-workers. They enslave and annex, lay up riches, and, to bring the
-argument to an appropriate conclusion, make peace and war. What then is
-the difference? We are bigger, walk on two legs, have a larger capacity
-for suffering, and, we believe, a soul. Is it so great that we should
-suppose that for us is reserved a heaven, or all the glorious worlds
-which people space—for these, annihilation? Perhaps we are at the top
-of the tree of development, and for them may be the future, for us the
-annihilation. Who knows? There, fly away, and make the most of the
-present, for nothing else is certain.”
-
-“You overlook religion entirely.”
-
-“Religion? Which religion? There are so many. Our Christian God,
-Buddha, Mohammed, Brahma, all number their countless millions of
-worshippers. Each promises a different thing, each commands the equally
-intense belief of his worshippers, for with them all blind faith is a
-condition precedent; and each appears to satisfy their spiritual
-aspirations. Can all of these be true religions? Each holds the other
-false and outside the pale; each tries to convert the other, and fails.
-There are many lesser ones of which the same thing may be said.”
-
-“But the same spirit underlies them all.”
-
-“Perhaps. There is much that is noble in all religions, but there is
-also much that is terrible. To the actual horrors and wearing anxieties
-of physical existence, religion bids us add on the vaguer horrors of a
-spiritual existence, which are to be absolutely endless. The average
-Christian would be uncomfortable if you deprived him of his hell and
-his personal devil. For myself, I decline to believe in such things. If
-there is a hell, it is this world; this world is the place of expiation
-for the sins of the world, and the only real devil is the devil of
-man’s evil passions.”
-
-“It is possible to be religious and be a good man without believing in
-hell,” said Ernest.
-
-“Yes, I think so, otherwise my chance is a poor one. Besides, I do not
-deny the Almighty Power. I only deny the cruelty that is attributed to
-Him. It may be that, from the accumulated mass of the wrong and
-bloodshed and agony of this hard world, that Power is building up some
-high purpose. Out of the bodies of millions of living creatures Nature
-worked out her purpose and made the rocks, but the process must have
-been unpleasant to the living creatures by whose humble means the great
-strata were reared up. They lived, to die in billions, that tens of
-thousands of years afterwards there might be a rock. It may be so with
-us. Our tears and blood and agony may produce some solid end that now
-we cannot guess; their volume, which cannot be wasted, for nothing is
-wasted, may be building up one of the rocks of God’s far-off purpose.
-But that we shall be tortured here for a time in order that we may be
-indefinitely tortured there and he pointed to the stars, “that I will
-never believe. Look at the mist rising from that hollow; so does the
-reek of the world’s misery rise as an offering to the world’s gods. The
-mist will cease to rise, and fall again in rain, and bring a blessing;
-but the incense of human suffering rises night and day for so long as
-the earth shall endure, nor does it fall again in dews of mercy. And
-yet Christians, who declare that God is love, declare, too, that for
-the vast majority of their fellow-creatures this process is to continue
-from millennium to millennium.”
-
-“It depends on our life, they say.”
-
-“Look here, Ernest, a man can do no more than he can. When I got to the
-age of discretion, which I put at eight-and-twenty—you have hardly
-reached it yet, my boy, you are nothing but a babe—I made three
-resolutions: always to try and do my duty, never to turn my back on a
-poor man or a friend in trouble, and, if possible, not to make love to
-my neighbour’s wife. Those resolutions I have often broken more or
-less, either in the spirit or the letter, but in the main I have stuck
-to them, and I can put my hand upon my heart to-night and say, ‘I have
-done my best!’ And so I go my path, turning neither to the right nor to
-the left, and when Fate finds me, I shall meet him, fearing nothing,
-for I know he has wreaked his worst upon me, and can only at the utmost
-bring me eternal sleep; and hoping nothing, because my experience here
-has not been such as to justify the hope of any happiness for man, and
-my vanity is not sufficiently strong to allow me to believe in the
-intervention of a superior Power to save so miserable a creature from
-the common lot of life. Good-night.”
-
-On the following day his fate found him.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIX.
-ISANDHLWANA
-
-
-Midnight came, and the camp was sunk in sleep. Up to the sky, whither
-it was decreed their spirits should pass before the dark closed in
-again and hid their mangled corpses, floated the faint breath of some
-fourteen hundred men. There they lay, sleeping the healthy sleep of
-vigorous manhood, their brains busy with the fantastic madness of a
-hundred dreams, and little recking of the inevitable morrow. There, in
-his sleep, the white man saw his native village, with its tall,
-wind-swayed elms, and the gray old church that for centuries had
-watched the last slumber of his race; the Kafir, the sunny slope of
-fair Natal, with the bright light dancing on his cattle’s horns, and
-the green of the gardens, where, for his well-being, his wives and
-children toiled. To some that night came dreams of high ambition, of
-brave adventure, crowned with the perfect triumph we never reach; to
-some, visions of beloved faces, long since passed away; to some, the
-reflected light of a far-off home, and echoes of the happy laughter of
-little children. And so their lamps wavered hither and thither in the
-spiritual breath of sleep, flickering wildly, ere they went out for
-ever. The night-wind swept in sad gusts across Isandhlwana’s plain,
-tossing the green grass, which to-morrow would be red. It moaned
-against Inhlazatye’s Mountain and died upon Upindo, fanning the dark
-faces of a host of warriors who rested there upon their spears,
-sharpened for the coming slaughter. And as it breathed upon them, they
-turned, those brave soldiers of U’Cetywayo—“born to be killed,” as
-their saying runs, at Cetywayo’s bidding—and, grasping their assegais,
-raised themselves to listen. It was nothing, death was not yet; death
-for the morrow, sleep for the night.
-
-A little after one o’clock on the morning of the 22nd of January,
-Ernest was roused by the sound of a horse’s hoofs and the harsh
-challenge of the sentries. “Despatch from Major Dartnell,” was the
-answer, and the messenger passed on. Half an hour more and the reveille
-was sounded, and the camp hummed in the darkness like a hive of bees
-making ready for the dawn.
-
-Soon it was known that the General and Colonel Glynn were about to move
-out to the support of Major Dartnell, who reported a large force of the
-enemy in front of him, with six companies of the second battalion of
-the 24th Regiment, four guns, and the mounted infantry.
-
-At dawn they left.
-
-At eight o’clock a report arrived from a picket, stationed about a mile
-away on a hill to the north of the camp, that a body of Zulus was
-approaching from the north-east.
-
-At nine o’clock the enemy showed over the crest of the hills for a few
-minutes, and then disappeared.
-
-At ten o’clock Colonel Durnford arrived from Rorke’s Drift with a
-rocket battery and two hundred and fifty mounted native soldiers, and
-took over the command of the camp from Colonel Pulleine. As he came up
-he stopped for a minute to speak to Alston, whom he knew, and Ernest
-noticed him. He was a handsome, soldier-like man, with his arm in a
-sling, a long, fair moustache, and restless, anxious expression of
-face.
-
-At 10.30, Colonel Durnford’s force, divided into two portions, was,
-with the rocket battery, pushed some miles forwards to ascertain the
-enemy’s movements, and a company of the 24th was directed to take up a
-position on the hill about a mile to the north of the camp. Meanwhile,
-the enemy, which they afterwards heard consisted of the Undi Corps, the
-Nokenke and Umcitu Regiments, and the Nkobamakosi and Imbonambi
-Regiments, in all about twenty thousand men, were resting about two
-miles from Isandhlwana, with no intention of attacking that day. They
-had not yet been “moutied” (doctored), and the condition of the moon
-was not propitious.
-
-Unfortunately, however, Colonel Durnford’s mounted Basutos, in pushing
-forwards, came upon a portion of the Umcitu Regiment, and fired on it;
-whereupon the Umcitu came into action, driving Durnford’s Horse before
-them, and then engaged the company of the 24th, which had been
-stationed on the hill to the north of the camp, and, after a stubborn
-resistance, annihilating it. It was followed by the Nokenke, Imbonambi,
-and Nkobamakosi Regiments, who executed a flanking movement, and
-threatened the front of the camp. For awhile the Undi Corps, which
-formed the chest of the army, held its ground. Then it marched off to
-the right, and directed its course to the north of Isandhlwana
-Mountain, with the object of turning the position.
-
-Meanwhile, the remaining companies of the 24th were advanced to various
-positions in front of the camp, and engaged the enemy, for awhile
-holding him in check; the two guns under Major Smith shelling the
-Nokenke Regiment, which formed the Zulu left centre, with great effect.
-The shells could be seen bursting amid the dense masses of Zulus, who
-were coming on slowly and in perfect silence, making large gaps in
-their ranks, which instantly closed up over the dead.
-
-At this point the advance of the Undi Regiment to the Zulu right and
-the English left was reported; and Alston’s Horse were ordered to
-proceed, and, if possible, to check it. Accordingly they left, and,
-riding behind the company of the 24th on the hill, to the north of the
-camp, which was now hotly engaged with the Umcitu, and Durnford’s
-Basutos, who, fighting splendidly, were slowly being pushed back, made
-for the north side of Isandhlwana. As soon as they got on to the high
-ground they caught sight of the Undi, who, something over three
-thousand strong, were running swiftly in a formation of companies,
-about half a mile away to the northward.
-
-“By Heaven, they mean to turn the mountain, and seize the waggon-road!”
-said Mr. Alston. “Gallop!”
-
-The troop dashed down the slope towards a pass in a stony ridge, which
-would command the path of the Undi, as they did so breaking through and
-killing two or three of a thin line of Zulus that formed the extreme
-point of one of the horns or nippers, by means of which the enemy
-intended to enclose the camp and crush it.
-
-After this, Alston’s Horse saw nothing more of the general fight; but
-it may be as well to briefly relate what happened. The Zulus of the
-various regiments pushed slowly on towards the camp, notwithstanding
-their heavy losses. Their object was to give time to the horns or
-nippers to close round it. Meanwhile, those in command realised too
-late the extreme seriousness of the position, and began to concentrate
-the various companies. Too late! The enemy saw that the nippers had
-closed. He knew, too, that the Undi could not be far off the
-waggon-road, the only way of retreat; and so, abandoning his silence
-and his slow advance, he raised the Zulu war-shout, and charged in from
-a distance of from six to eight hundred yards.
-
-Up to this time the English loss had been small, for the shooting of
-the Zulus was vile. The enemy, on the contrary, had, especially during
-the last half-hour before they charged, lost heavily. But now the
-tables turned. First the Natal Contingent, seeing that they were
-surrounded, bolted, and laid open the right and rear flank of the
-troops. In poured the Zulus, so that most of the soldiers had not even
-time to fix bayonets. In another minute, our men were being assegaied
-right and left, and the retreat on the camp had become a fearful rout.
-But even then there was nowhere to run to. The Undi Corps (which
-afterwards passed on and attacked the post at Rorke’s Drift) already
-held the waggon-road, and the only practical way of retreat was down a
-gully to the south of the road. Into this the broken fragments of the
-force plunged wildly, and after them and mixed up with them went their
-Zulu foes, massacring every living thing they came across.
-
-So the camp was cleared. When, a couple of hours afterwards, Commandant
-Lonsdale, of Lonsdale’s Horse, was sent back by General Chelmsford to
-ascertain what the firing was about, he could see nothing wrong. The
-tents were standing, the waggons were there; there were even soldiers
-moving about. It did not occur to him that it was the soldiers’ coats
-which were moving on the backs of Kafirs, and that the soldiers
-themselves would never move again. So he rode quickly up to the
-headquarter tents; out of which, to his surprise, there suddenly
-stalked a huge naked Zulu, smeared all over with blood, and waving in
-his hand a bloody assegai.
-
-Having seen enough, he then rode back again to tell the General that
-his camp was taken.
-
-To God’s good providence and Cetywayo’s clemency, rather than to our
-own wisdom, do we owe it that all the outlying homesteads in Natal were
-not laid in ashes, and men, women, and children put to the assegai.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XX.
-THE END OF ALSTON’S HORSE
-
-
-Alston’s Horse soon reached the ridge, past which the Undi were
-commencing to run, at a distance of about three hundred and fifty
-yards, and the order was given to dismount and line it. This they did,
-one man in every four keeping a few paces back to hold the horses of
-his section. Then they opened fire; and next second came back the sound
-of the thudding of the bullets on the shields and bodies of the Zulu
-warriors.
-
-Ernest, seated up high on his great black horse “The Devil,” for the
-officers did not dismount, could see how terrible was the effect of
-that raking fire, delivered as it was, not by raw English boys, who
-scarcely knew one end of a rifle from the other, but by men, all of
-whom could shoot, and many of whom were crack shots. All along the line
-of the Undi companies men threw up their arms and dropped dead, or
-staggered out of the ranks wounded. But the main body never paused.
-By-and-by they would come back and move the wounded, or kill them if
-they were not likely to recover.
-
-Soon, as the range got longer, the fire began to be less deadly, and
-Ernest could see that fewer men were dropping.
-
-“Ernest,” said Alston, galloping up to him, “I am going to charge them.
-Look, they will soon cross the donga, and reach the slopes of the
-mountain, and we sha’n’t be able to follow them on the broken ground.”
-
-“Isn’t it rather risky?” asked Ernest, somewhat dismayed at the idea of
-launching their little clump of mounted men at the moving mass before
-them.
-
-“Risky? yes, of course it is, but my orders were to delay the enemy as
-much as possible, and the horses are fresh. But, my lad”—and he bent
-towards him and spoke low—“it doesn’t much matter whether we are killed
-charging or running away. I am sure that the camp must be taken; there
-is no hope. Good-bye, Ernest; if I fall, fight the corps as long as
-possible, and kill as many of those devils as you can; and if you
-survive, remember to make off well to the left. The regiments will have
-passed by then. God bless you, my boy! Now order the bugler to sound
-the ‘cease fire,’ and let the men mount.”
-
-“Yes, sir.”
-
-They were the last words Alston ever spoke to him, and Ernest often
-remembered, with affectionate admiration, that even at that moment he
-thought more of his friend’s safety than he did of his own. As to their
-tenor, Ernest had already suspected the truth, though, luckily, the
-suspicion had not as yet impregnated the corps. Mazooku, too, who as
-usual was with him, mounted on a Basutu pony, had just informed him
-that, in his (Mazooku’s) opinion, they were all as good as ripped up
-(alluding to the Zulu habit of cutting a dead enemy open), and adding a
-consolatory remark to the effect that man can die but once, and “good
-job too.”
-
-But, strangely enough, he did not feel afraid; indeed, he never felt
-quieter in his life than he did in that hour of near death. A wild
-expectancy thrilled his nerves and looked out of his eyes. “What would
-it be like?” he wondered. And in another minute all such thoughts were
-gone, for he was at the head of his troop, ready for the order.
-
-Alston, followed by the boy Roger, galloped swiftly round, seeing that
-the formation was right, and then gave the word to unsheath the short
-swords with which he had insisted upon the corps being armed.
-Meanwhile, the Undi were drawing on to a flat plain, four hundred yards
-or more broad, at the foot of the mountain, a very suitable spot for a
-cavalry manoeuvre.
-
-“Now, men of Alston’s Horse, there is the enemy before you. Let me see
-how you can go through them. _Charge!_”
-
-“_Charge!_” re-echoed Ernest.
-
-[Illustration: “The last Charge of Alston’s Horse.”]
-
-“_Charge!_” roared Sergeant-Major Jones, brandishing his sword.
-
-Down the slope they go, slowly at first; now they are on the plain, and
-the pace quickens to a hand-gallop. Ernest feels his great horse gather
-himself together and spring along beneath him; he hears the hum of
-astonishment rising from the dense black mass before them as it halts
-to receive the attack; he glances round, and sees the set faces and
-determined look upon the features of his men, and his blood boils up
-with a wild exhilaration, and for awhile he tastes the fierce joy of
-war.
-
-Quicker still grows the pace; now he can see the white round the dark
-eyeballs of the Zulus.
-
-“_Crash!_” They are among them, trampling them down, hewing them down,
-thrusting, slashing, stabbing, and being stabbed. The air is alive with
-assegais, and echoes with the savage Zulu war-cries and with the shouts
-of the gallant troopers, fighting now as troopers have not often fought
-before. Presently, as in a dream, Ernest sees a huge Zulu seize
-Alston’s horse by the bridle, jerk it on to its haunches, and raise his
-assegai. Then the boy Roger, who is by his father’s side, makes a point
-with his sword, and runs the Zulu through. He falls, but next moment
-the lad is attacked by more, is assegaied, and falls fighting bravely.
-Then Alston pulls up, and, turning, shoots with his revolver at the men
-who have killed his son. Two fall, another runs up, and with a shout
-drives a great spear right through Alston, so that it stands out a
-hand-breadth behind his back. On to the body of his son he, too, falls
-and dies. Next second the Zulu’s head is cleft in twain down to the
-chin. That was Jeremy’s stroke.
-
-All this time, they are travelling on, leaving a broad red line of dead
-and dying in their track. Presently it was done; they had passed right
-through the Impi. But out of sixty-four men they had lost their captain
-and twenty troopers. As they emerged, Ernest noticed that his sword was
-dripping blood, and his sword-hand stained red. Yet he could not at the
-moment remember having killed anybody.
-
-But Alston was dead, and he was now in command of what remained of the
-corps. They were in no condition to charge again, for many horses and
-some men were wounded. So he led them round the rear of the Impi,
-which, detaching a company of about three hundred men to deal with the
-remnants of the troop, went on its way with lessened numbers, and
-filled with admiration at the exhibition of a courage in no way
-inferior to their own.
-
-This company, running swiftly, took possession of the ridge down which
-the troop had charged, and by which alone it would be possible for
-Ernest to retreat, and taking shelter behind stones, began to pour in
-an inaccurate but galling fire on the little party of whites. Ernest
-charged up through them, losing two more men and several horses in the
-process; but what was his horror, on reaching the crest of the ridge,
-to see about a thousand Zulus, drawn up, apparently in reserve, in the
-neck of the pass leading to the plain beyond! To escape through them
-would be almost impossible, for he was crippled with wounded and
-dismounted men, and the pace of a force is the pace of the slowest.
-Their position was desperate, and looking round at his men, he could
-see that they thought so too.
-
-His resolution was soon taken. A few paces from where he had for a
-moment halted the remainder of the corps was a little eminence,
-something like an early Saxon tumulus. To this he rode, and,
-dismounting, turned his horse loose, ordering his men to do the same.
-So good was the discipline, and so great his control over them, that
-there were no wild rushes to escape: they obeyed, reaching their
-desperate case, and formed a ring round the rise.
-
-“Now, men of Alston’s Horse,” said Ernest, “we have done our best, let
-us die our hardest.”
-
-The men set up a cheer, and next minute the Zulus, creeping up under
-shelter of the rocks which were strewed around, attacked them with
-fury.
-
-In five minutes, in spite of the withering fire which they poured in
-upon the surrounding Zulus, six more of the little band were dead. Four
-were shot, two were killed in a rush made by about a dozen men, who,
-reckless of their own life, determined to break through the white man’s
-ring. They perished in the attempt, but not before they had stabbed two
-of Alston’s Horse. The remainder, but little more than thirty men,
-retired a few paces farther up the little rise so as to contract their
-circle, and kept up a ceaseless fire upon the enemy. The Zulus, thanks
-to the accurate shooting of the white men, had by this time lost more
-than fifty of their number, and, annoyed at being put to such loss by a
-foe numerically so insignificant, they determined to end the matter
-with a rush. Ernest saw their leader, a great almost naked fellow, with
-a small shield and a necklace of lion’s claws, walking, utterly
-regardless of the pitiless rifle fire, from group to group, and
-exhorting them. Taking up a rifle which had just fallen from the hand
-of a dead trooper—for up to the present Ernest had not joined in the
-firing—he took a fine sight at about eighty yards at the Zulu chief’s
-broad chest, and pulled. The shot was a good one; the great fellow
-sprang into the air and dropped. Instantly another commander took his
-place and the final advance began.
-
-But the Zulus had to come up-hill, with but little cover, and scores
-were mown down by the scorching and continuous fire from the
-breech-loaders. Twice, when within twenty yards, were they driven back,
-twice did they come on again. Now they were but twelve paces or so
-away, and a murderous fire was kept up upon them. For a moment they
-wavered, then pushed forwards up the slope.
-
-“Close up!” shouted Ernest, “and use your swords and pistols.”
-
-His voice was heard above the din. Some of the men dropped the now
-useless rifles, and the revolvers began to crack.
-
-Then the Zulus closed in upon the doomed band, with a shout of “Bulala
-umlungo!” (Kill the white man!)
-
-Out rang the pistol-shots, and fire flew from the clash of swords and
-assegais; and still the little band, momentarily growing fewer, fought
-on with labouring breath. Never did hope-forsaken men make a more
-gallant stand. Still they fought, and still they fell, one by one, and
-as they fell were stabbed to death; but scarcely one of them was there
-whose death-wound was in his back.
-
-At last the remaining Zulus drew back; they thought that it was done.
-
-But no; three men yet stood together upon the very summit of the mound,
-holding six foes at bay. The Zulu captain laughed aloud when he saw it,
-and gave a rapid order. Thereupon the remaining Zulus formed up, and
-stabbing the wounded as they went, departed swiftly over the dead,
-after the main body of the corps, which had now vanished round the
-mountain.
-
-They left the six to finish the three.
-
-Three hundred had come to attack Alston’s Horse; not more than one
-hundred departed from that attack. The overpowered white men had
-rendered a good account of their foes.
-
-The three left alive on the summit of the little hill were, as Fate
-would have it, Ernest, Jeremy, and the ex-sailor, who had complained of
-the “sargustic” companion, who, it happened, had just died by his side.
-
-Their revolvers were empty; Ernest’s sword had broken off short in the
-body of a Zulu; Jeremy still had his sword, and the sailor a clubbed
-carbine.
-
-Presently one of the six Zulus dodged in under the carbine and ran the
-sailor through. Glancing round, Ernest saw his face turn grey. The
-honest fellow died as he had lived, swearing hard.
-
-“Ah, you —— black mate,” he sang out, “take that, and be damned to
-you!” The clubbed rifle came down upon the Zulu’s skull and cracked it
-to bits, and both fell dead together.
-
-Now there were five Zulus left, and only Ernest and Jeremy to meet
-them. But stay; suddenly from under a corpse uprises another foe. No,
-it is not a foe, it is Mazooku, who has been shamming dead, but
-suddenly and most opportunely shows himself to be very much alive.
-Advancing from behind, he stabs one of the attacking party, and kills
-him. That leaves four. Then he engages another, and after a long
-struggle kills him too, which leaves three. And still the two white men
-stand back to back with flashing eyes and gasping breath, and hold
-their own. Soaked with blood, desperate, and expecting death, they were
-yet a gallant sight to see. Two of the remaining Zulus rush at the
-giant Jeremy, one at Ernest. Ernest, having no effective weapon left,
-dodges the assegai thrust, and then closes with his antagonist, and
-they roll, over and over, down the hill together, struggling for the
-assegai the Zulu holds. It snaps in two, but the blade and about eight
-inches of the shaft remain with Ernest. He drives it through his
-enemy’s throat, and he dies. Then he struggles up to see the closing
-scene of the drama, but not in time to help in it. Mazooku has wounded
-his man badly, and is following to kill him. And Jeremy? He has struck
-at one of the Kafirs, with his sword. The blow is received on the edge
-of the cowhide shield, and sinks half-way through it, so that the hide
-holds the steel fast. With a sharp twist of the shield the weapon is
-jerked out of his hand, and he is left defenceless, with nothing to
-trust to except his native strength. Surely he is lost! But no—with a
-sudden rush he seizes both Zulus by the throat, one in each hand, and,
-strong men as they are, swings them wide apart. Then with a tremendous
-effort he jerks their heads together with such awful force that they
-fall senseless, and Mazooku comes up and spears them.
-
-
-
-
-Thus was the fight ended.
-
-Ernest and Jeremy sank upon the bloody grass, gasping for breath. The
-firing from the direction of the camp had now died away, and, after the
-tumult, the shouts, and the shrieks of the dying, the silence seemed
-deep.
-
-It was the silence of the dead.
-
-There they lay, white man and Zulu, side by side in the peaceable
-sunlight and in a vague bewildered way Ernest noticed that the faces,
-which a few minutes before looked so grim, were mostly smiling now.
-They had passed through the ivory gates and reached the land of smiles.
-How still they all were! A little black-and-white bird, such as fly
-from ant-hill to ant-hill, came and settled upon the forehead of a
-young fellow, scarcely more than a boy, and the only son of his mother,
-who lay quiet across two Zulus. The bird knew why he was so still.
-Ernest had liked the boy, and knew his mother, and began to wonder as
-he lay panting on the grass what she would feel when she heard of her
-son’s fate. But just then Mazooku’s voice broke the silence. He had
-been standing staring at the body of one of the men he had killed, and
-was now apostrophising it in Zulu.
-
-“Ah, my brother,” he said, “son of my own father, with whom I used to
-play when I was little; I always told you that you were a perfect fool
-with an assegai but little thought that I should ever have such an
-opportunity of proving it to you. Well, it can’t be helped; duty is
-duty, and family ties must give way to it. Sleep well, my brother; it
-was painful to kill you—very!”
-
-Ernest lifted himself from the ground, and laughed the hysterical laugh
-of shattered nerves, at this naive and thoroughly Zulu moralising. Just
-then Jeremy rose and came to him. He was a fearful sight to see—his
-hands, his face, his clothes, were all red; and he was bleeding from a
-cut on the face, and another on the hand.
-
-“Come, Ernest,” he said, in a hollow voice, “we must clear out of
-this.”
-
-“I suppose so,” said Ernest.
-
-On the plain at the foot of the hill several of the horses were quietly
-cropping the grass, till such time as the superior animal, man, had
-settled his differences. Among them was Ernest’s black stallion, “The
-Devil,” which had been wounded, though slightly, on the flank. They
-walked towards the horses, stopping on their way to arm themselves from
-the weapons which lay about. As they passed the body of the man Ernest
-had killed in his last struggle for life, he stopped and drew the
-broken assegai from his throat. “A memento!” said he. The horses were
-caught without difficulty, and “The Devil” and the two next best
-animals selected. Then they mounted, and rode towards the top of the
-ridge over which Ernest had seen the body of Zulus lying in reserve.
-When they were near it Mazooku got down and crept to the crest on his
-stomach. Presently, to their great relief, he signalled to them to
-advance: the Zulus had moved on, and the valley was deserted. And so
-the three passed over the neck, that an hour and a half before they had
-crossed with sixty-one companions, who were now all dead. “I think we
-have charmed lives,” said Jeremy, presently. “All gone except us two.
-It can’t be chance.”
-
-“It is fate,” said Ernest, briefly.
-
-From the top of the neck they got a view of the camp, which now looked
-quiet and peaceful, with its white tents and its Union Jack fluttering
-as usual in the breeze.
-
-“They must be all dead too,” said Ernest; “which way shall we go?”
-
-Then it was that Mazooku’s knowledge of the country proved of the
-utmost service to them. He had been brought up at a kraal in the
-immediate neighbourhood, and knew every inch of the land. Avoiding the
-camp altogether, he led them to the left of the battle-field, and after
-two hours’ ride over rough country, brought them to a ford of the
-Bulialo which he was acquainted with, some miles below where the few
-survivors of the massacre struggled across the river, or were drowned
-in attempting to do so. Following this route they never saw a single
-Zulu, for these had all departed in the other direction, and were
-spared the horrors of the stampede and of “Fugitives’ Drift.”
-
-At last they gained the farther side of the river, and were,
-comparatively speaking, safe on Natal ground.
-
-They determined, after much anxious consultation, to make for the
-little fort at Helpmakaar, and had ridden about a mile or so towards
-it, when suddenly the Zulu’s quick ear caught the sound of distant
-firing to their right. It was their enemy, the Undi Corps, attacking
-Rorke’s Drift. Leaving Mazooku to hold the horses, Ernest and Jeremy
-dismounted, and climbed a solitary koppie or hill which just there
-cropped out from the surface of the plain. It was of an ironstone
-formation, and on the summit lay a huge flat slab of almost pure ore.
-On to this they climbed, and looked along the course of the river, but
-could see nothing. Rorke’s Drift was hidden by a rise in the ground.
-
-All this time a dense thundercloud had been gathering in the direction
-of Helpmakaar, and was now, as is common before sunset in the South
-African summer season, travelling rapidly up against the wind, set in a
-faint rainbow as in a frame. The sun, on the other hand, was sinking
-towards the horizon, so that his golden beams, flying across a space of
-blue sky, impinged upon the black bosom of the cloud, and were
-reflected thence in sharp lights and broad shadows, flung like
-celestial spears and shields across the plains of Zululand.
-Isandhlwana’s Mountain was touched by one great ray which broke in
-glory upon his savage crest, and crowned him that day as king of death,
-but the battlefield over which he towered was draped in gloom. It was a
-glorious scene. Above, the wild expanse of sky broken up by flaming
-clouds, and tinted with hues such as might be reflected from the
-jewelled walls of heaven. Behind, the angry storm, set in its
-rainbow-frame like ebony in a ring of gold. In front, the rolling
-plain, where the tall grasses waved, the broad Bulialo flashing through
-it like a silver snake, the sun-kissed mountains, and the shadowed
-slopes.
-
-It was a glorious scene. Nature in her most splendid mood flung all her
-colour-streamers loose across the earth and sky, and waved them wildly
-ere they vanished into night’s abyss. Life, in his most radiant
-ecstasy, blazed up in varied glory before he sank, like a lover, to
-sleep awhile in the arms of his eternal mistress—Death.
-
-Ernest gazed upon it, and it sank into his heart, which, set to
-Nature’s tune, responded ever when her hands swept the chords of earth
-or heaven. It lifted him above the world, and thrilled him with
-indescribable emotion. His eyes wandered over the infinite space above,
-searching for the presence of a God; then they fell upon Isandhlwana,
-and marked the spot just where the shadows were deepest; where his
-comrades lay, and gazed upon the splendid sky with eyes that could not
-see; and at last his spirit gave way, and, weakened with emotion and
-long toil and abstinence, he burst into a paroxysm of grief.
-
-“O Jeremy,” he sobbed, “they are all dead, all except you and I, and I
-feel a coward that I should still live to weep over them. When it was
-over, I should have let that Zulu kill me; but I was a coward, and I
-fought for my life. Had I but held my hand for a second, I should have
-gone with Alston and the others, Jeremy.”
-
-“Come, come, old fellow, you did your best, and fought the corps like a
-brick. No man could have done more.”
-
-“Yes, Jeremy, but I should have died with them; it was my duty to die.
-And I do not care about living, and they did. I have been an
-unfortunate dog all my life. I shot my cousin, I lost Eva, and now I
-have seen all my comrades killed, and I, who was their leader, alone
-escaped, and perhaps I have not done with my misfortunes yet. What
-next, I wonder? what next?”
-
-Ernest’s distress was so acute, that Jeremy, looking at him and seeing
-that all he had gone through had been too much for him, tried to soothe
-him, lest he should go into hysterics, by putting his arm round his
-waist and giving him a good hug.
-
-“Look here, old chap,” he said; “it is no use bothering one’s head
-about these things. We are just so many feathers blown about by the
-wind, and must float where the wind blows us. Sometimes it is a good
-wind, and sometimes a bad one; but on the whole it is bad, and we must
-just make the best of it, and wait till it doesn’t think it worth while
-to blow our particular feathers about any more, and then we shall come
-to the ground, and not till then. And now we have been up here for more
-than five minutes, and given the horses a bit of a rest. We must be
-pushing on if we want to get to Helpmakaar before dark, and I only hope
-we shall get there before the Zulus, that’s all. By Jove, here comes
-the storm—come on!” And Jeremy jumped off the lump of iron-ore, and
-began to descend the koppie.
-
-Ernest, who had been listening with his face in his hands, rose and
-followed him in silence. As he did so, a breath of ice-cold air from
-the storm-cloud, which was now right over-head, fanned his hot brow,
-and when he had gone a few yards he turned to meet it, and to cast one
-more look at the scene.
-
-It was the last earthly landscape he ever saw. For at that instant
-there leaped from the cloud overhead a fierce stream of jagged light,
-which struck the mass of iron-ore on which they had been seated,
-shivered and fused it, and then ran down the side of the hill to the
-plain. Together with the lightning there came an ear-splitting crack of
-thunder.
-
-Jeremy, who was now nearly at the bottom of the little hill, staggered
-at the shock. When he recovered, he looked up where Ernest had been
-standing, and could not see him. He rushed up the hill again, calling
-him in accents of frantic grief. There was no answer. Presently he
-found him lying on the ground, white and still.
-
-[Illustration: “He found him lying on the ground, white and still.”]
-
-
-
-
-BOOK III.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I.
-THE CLIFFS OF OLD ENGLAND
-
-
-It was an April evening; off the south coast of England. The sun had
-just made up his mind to struggle out from behind a particularly black
-shower-cloud, and give that part of the world a look before he bade it
-good-night.
-
-“That is lucky,” said a little man, who was with difficulty hanging on
-to the bulwark netting of the H.M.S. _Conway Castle;_ “now, Mr. Jones,
-look if you can’t see them in the sunlight.”
-
-Mr. Jones accordingly looked through his glasses again.
-
-“Yes,” he said, “I can see them distinctly.”
-
-“See what?” asked another passenger, coming up. “The cliffs of Old
-England,” answered the little man, joyously.
-
-“Oh, is that all?” said the other; “curse the cliffs of Old England!”
-
-“Nice remark that for a man who is going home to be married, eh?” said
-the little man, turning to where his companion had stood.
-
-But Mr. Jones had shut up his glasses, and vanished aft.
-
-Presently he reached a deck-cabin, and entered without knocking.
-
-“England is in sight, old fellow,” he said, addressing somebody who lay
-back smoking in a cane-chair.
-
-The person addressed made a movement as though to rise, then put up his
-hand to a shade that covered his eyes.
-
-“I forgot,” he answered, with a smile; “it will have to be very much in
-sight before I can see it. By the way, Jeremy,” he went on, nervously,
-“I want to ask you something. These doctors tell such lies.” And he
-removed the shade. “Now, look at my eyes, and tell me honestly, am I
-disfigured? Are they shrunk, I mean, or have they got a squint, or
-anything of that sort?” and Ernest turned up his dark orbs, which,
-except that they had acquired that painful, expectant look peculiar to
-the blind, were just as they always had been.
-
-Jeremy looked at them, first in one light, then in another.
-
-“Well!” said Ernest, impatiently. “I can feel that you are staring me
-out of countenance.”
-
-“Hamba gachlé,” replied the imperturbable one. “I am di—di—diagnosing
-the case. There, that will do. To all appearance, your optics are as
-sound as mine. You get a girl to look at them, and see what she says.”
-
-“Ah, well; that is something to be thankful for.”
-
-Just then somebody knocked at the cabin-door. It was a steward.
-
-“You sent for me, Sir Ernest?”
-
-“O yes, I remember. Will you be so good as to find my servant? I want
-him.”
-
-“Yes, Sir Ernest.”
-
-Ernest moved impatiently.
-
-“Confound that fellow, with his everlasting ‘Sir Ernest’!”
-
-“What, haven’t you got used to your handle yet?”
-
-“No, I haven’t, and I wish it were at Jericho, and that is a fact. It
-is all your fault, Jeremy. If you had not told that confoundedly
-garrulous little doctor, who went and had the information printed in
-the _Natal Mercury,_ it would never have come out at all. I could have
-dropped the title in England; but now all these people know that I am
-Sir Ernest, and Sir Ernest I shall remain for the rest of my days.”
-
-“Well, most people would not think that such a dreadful misfortune.”
-
-“Yes, they would, if they had happened to shoot the real heir. By the
-way, what did the lawyer say in his letter? As we are so near home, I
-suppose I had better post myself up. You will find it in the
-despatch-box. Read it, there’s a good fellow.”
-
-Jeremy opened the box, battered with many years of travel, and searched
-about for the letter. It contained a curious collection of articles,
-prominent among which was a handkerchief, which once belonged to Eva
-Ceswick; a long tress of chestnut hair tied up with a blue ribbon;
-ditto of golden, which had come—well, not from Eva’s locks; a whole
-botanical collection of dead flowers, tender souvenirs of goodness
-knows who, for, after awhile, these accumulated dried specimens are
-difficult to identify; and many letters and other curiosities.
-
-At last Jeremy came to the desired document, written in a fair clerk’s
-hand; and having shovelled back the locks of hair, &c., began to read
-it aloud:
-
-_St. Ethelred’s Court, Poultry,_
-
-_22nd January, 1879._
-
-“Sir,—”
-
-
-“You see,” broke in Ernest, “while we were fighting over there at
-Isandhlwana, those beggars were writing to tell me that I was a
-baronet. Case of the ‘bloody hand’ with a vengeance, eh?”
-
-“Sir” (began Jeremy again), “it is our duty to inform you of the death,
-on the 16th of the present month, of our esteemed client, Sir Hugh
-Kershaw, Bart., of Archdale Hall, Devonshire, and of the consequent
-devolution of the baronetcy to yourself, as only son of the late Sir
-Hugh’s only brother, Ernest Kershaw, Esq.
-
-“Into the question of the unhappy manner in which you came to be placed
-in the immediate succession it does not become us to enter. We have
-before us at this moment a copy of Her Majesty’s pardon, granted to you
-under the Transvaal Amnesty Act, and forwarded to us by Reginald
-Cardus, Esq., of Dum’s Ness, Suffolk, which we have neither the wish
-nor the will to dispute. It is clear to us that, under this pardon, you
-are totally free from any responsibility for the breach of the law
-which you perpetrated some years since; and of this it is our duty to
-advise you your title to succeed is also a clear one.
-
-“As was only to be expected under the circumstances, the late Sir Hugh
-did not bear any feeling of goodwill towards you. Indeed, we do not
-think that we shall be exaggerating if we say that the news of your
-free pardon materially hastened his end. On the attainment of full age
-by the late Hugh Kershaw, Esq., who fell by your hand, the entail of
-the family estates was cut, and only the mansion-house of Archdale
-Hall, the heirlooms, which are numerous and valuable, therein
-contained, and the deer-park, consisting of one hundred and eighty-five
-acres of land, were resettled. These consequently pass to you, and we
-shall be glad to receive your instructions concerning them, should you
-elect to honour us with your confidence. The estates pass, under the
-will of the late Baronet, to a distant cousin of his late wife’s, James
-Smith, Esq., 52 Camperdown Road, Upper Clapham. We now think that we
-have put you in possession of all the facts connected with your
-accession to the baronetcy, and, awaiting your instructions, have the
-honour to remain,
-
-“Your obedient servants,
-
-(Signed) “Paisley & Paisley.”
-
-
-“Ah, so much for that!” was Ernest’s comment. “What am I to do with
-Archdale Hall, its heirlooms, and its deer-park of one hundred and
-eighty-five acres, I wonder? I shall sell them if I can. Mine is a
-pretty position: a baronet with about sixpence halfpenny per annum to
-support my rank on; a very pretty position!”
-
-“Hamba gachlé,” replied Jeremy; “time enough to consider all that. But
-now, as we are on the reading lay, I may as well give you the benefit
-of my correspondence with the officer commanding Her Majesty’s forces
-in Natal and Zululand.”
-
-“Fire away!” remarked Ernest, wearily.
-
-“First letter, dated Newcastle, Natal, 27th January, from your humble
-servant to officer commanding, &c.:
-
-“‘Sir,—I have the honour to report, by order of Lieutenant and Adjutant
-Kershaw, of Alston’s Horse, at present incapacitated by lightning from
-doing so himself’——”
-
-“Very neatly put that, I think!” interpolated Jeremy.
-
-“Very. Go on.”
-
-—“‘that on the 22nd inst., Alston’s Horse, having received orders to
-check the flanking movement of the Undi Corps, proceeded to try and do
-so. Coming to a ridge commanding the advance of the Undi, the corps, by
-order of their late commander, Captain Alston, dismounted, and opened
-fire on them at a distance of about three hundred yards, with
-considerable effect. This did not, however, check the Undi, who
-appeared to number between three and four thousand men, so Captain
-Alston issued an order to charge the enemy. This was done with some
-success. The Zulus lost a number of men; the corps, which passed right
-through the enemy, about twenty troopers, Captain Alston, and his son
-Roger Alston, who acted as his aide-de-camp. Several horses and one or
-two men were also severely wounded, which crippled the further
-movements of the corps.
-
-“’Lieutenant and Adjutant Kershaw, on taking command of the corps,
-determined to attempt to retreat. In this attempt, however, he failed,
-owing to the presence of dismounted and wounded men; to the detachment
-of a body of about three hundred Zulus to intercept any such retreat;
-and to the presence of a large body of Zulus on the farther side of the
-pass leading to the valley through which such retreat must be
-conducted.
-
-“’Under these circumstances he determined to fight the remains of the
-corps to the last, and dismounting them, took possession of a fairly
-advantageous position. A desperate hand-to-hand encounter ensued. It
-ended in the almost total extermination of Alston’s Horse, and in that
-of the greater part of the attacking Zulus. The names of the surviving
-members of Alston’s Horse are—Lieutenant and Adjutant Kershaw,
-Sergeant-Major Jeremy Jones, Trooper Mazooku (the only native in the
-corps). These ultimately effected their escape, the enemy having either
-been all destroyed or having followed the track of the Undi. Lieutenant
-and Adjutant Kershaw regrets to have to state that in process of
-effecting his escape he was struck by lightning and blinded.
-
-“’He estimates the total loss inflicted on the enemy by Alston’s Horse
-at from four hundred to four hundred and fifty men. In face of such
-determined bravery as was evinced by every one of his late gallant
-comrades, Lieutenant Kershaw feels that it would be invidious for him
-to mention any particular names. Every man fought desperately, and died
-with his face to the enemy. He begs to enclose a return of the names of
-those lost, the accuracy of which he cannot, however, guarantee, as it
-is compiled from memory, the papers of the corps having all been lost.
-Trusting that the manoeuvres attempted by Lieutenant Kershaw under
-somewhat difficult circumstances will meet with your approval, I have,
-&c.—By order of Lieutenant Kershaw,
-
-(Signed) Jeremy Jones, _Sergeant-Major._
-
-
-“Then follows the reply, dated Maritzburg, 2nd February:
-
-“‘Sir,—1. I have to direct you to convey to Lieutenant and Adjutant
-Kershaw, and the surviving members of the corps known as Alston’s
-Horse, the high sense entertained by the Officer, &c., of the gallant
-conduct of that corps in the face of overwhelming odds at Isandhlwana
-on the 22nd of January.
-
-“‘2. It is with deep regret that the Officer, &c., learns of the heavy
-misfortune which has befallen Lieutenant Kershaw. He wishes to express
-his appreciation of the way in which that officer handled the remnants
-of his corps, and to inform him that his name will be forwarded to the
-proper quarter for the expression of Her Majesty’s pleasure with regard
-to his services.*
-
-“‘3. I am directed to offer you a commission in any of the volunteer
-corps now on service in this campaign.—I have, &c.,
-
-(Signed) “‘CHIEF OF THE STAFF.’”
-
-
-Then comes a letter from Sergeant-Major Jones, gratefully acknowledging
-the expression of the high opinion of the Officer, &c., and declining
-the offer of a commission in another volunteer corps.
-
-Next is a private letter from the Officer, &c., offering to recommend
-Sergeant-Major Jeremy Jones for a commission in the army.
-
-And, finally, a letter from Sergeant-Major Jones to the Officer, &c.,
-gratefully declining the same.
-
-Ernest looked up sharply. The _raison d’être_ of the movement was gone,
-for he could no longer see, but the habit remained.
-
-* It may be stated here that, if this was ever done, the War Office did
-not consider Ernest’s service worthy of notice; for he never heard
-anything more about them.
-
-
-“Why did you decline the commission, Jeremy?”
-
-Jeremy moved uneasily, and looked through the little cabin-window.
-
-“On general principles,” he answered, presently.
-
-“Nonsense! I know you would have liked to go into the army. Don’t you
-remember, as we were riding up to the camp at Isandhlwana, you said
-that you proposed that if the corps did anything, we should try and
-work it?”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“Well?”
-
-“Well, I said _we!_”
-
-“I don’t quite follow you, Jeremy.”
-
-“My dear Ernest, you can’t go in for a commission now, can you?”
-
-Ernest laughed a little bitterly.
-
-“What has that to do with it?”
-
-“Everything. I am not going to leave you in your misfortune to go and
-enjoy myself in the army. I could not do it; I should be wretched if I
-did. No, old fellow, we have gone through a good many things side by
-side, and, please God, we will stick to each other to the end of the
-chapter.”
-
-Ernest was always easily touched by kindness, especially now that his
-nerves were shaken, and his heart softened by misfortune, and his eyes
-filled with tears at Jeremy’s words. Putting out his hand, he felt
-about for Jeremy’s, and, when he had found it, grasped it warmly.
-
-“If I have troubles, Jeremy, at least I have a blessing that few can
-boast—a true friend. If you had gone with the rest at Isandhlwana
-yonder, I think that my heart would have broken. I think we do bear one
-another a love ‘passing the love of women.’ It would not be worth much
-if it didn’t, that is one thing. I wonder if Absalom was a finer fellow
-than you are, Jeremy? ‘from the sole of his foot even to the crown of
-his head there was no blemish in him.’ Your hair would not weigh ‘two
-hundred shekels after the king’s weight,’ though” (Jeremy wore his hair
-cropped like a convict’s); “but I would back you to throw Absalom over
-your shoulder, hair and all.”
-
-It was his fashion to talk nonsense when affected by anything, and
-Jeremy, knowing it, said nothing.
-
-Just then there came a knock at the door, and who should enter but
-Mazooku, and Mazooku transformed. His massive frame, instead of being
-clothed in the loose white garments he generally wore, was arrayed in a
-flannel shirt with an enormous stick-up collar, a suit of
-pepper-and-salt reach-me-downs several sizes too small for him, and a
-pair of boots considerably too large for his small and shapely feet;
-for, like those of most Zulus of good blood, his hands and feet were
-extremely delicately made.
-
-To add to the incongruity of his appearance, on the top of his hair,
-which was still done in ridges, Zulu fashion, and decorated with long
-bone snuff-spoons, was perched an extremely small and rakish-looking
-billycock hat, and in his hand he carried his favourite and most
-gigantic knobstick.
-
-On opening the cabin-door he saluted in the ordinary fashion, and
-coming in, squatted down on his haunches to await orders, forgetting
-that he was not in all the freedom of his native dress. The results
-were most disastrous. With a crack and a bang the reach-me-down
-trousers, already strained to their utmost capacity, split right up the
-back. The astonished Zulu flew up into the air, but presently
-discovering what had happened, sat down again, remarking that there was
-“much more room now.”
-
-Jeremy burst out laughing, and having sketched his retainer’s
-appearance for the benefit of Ernest, told him what had happened.
-
-“Where did you get those things from, Mazooku?” asked Ernest.
-
-Mazooku explained that he had bought the rig-out for three pound ten
-from a second-class passenger, as the weather was growing cold.
-
-“Do not wear them again. I will buy you clothes as soon as we get to
-England. If you are cold, wear your great-coat.”
-
-“Koos!”
-
-“How is ‘The Devil’?” Ernest had brought the black stallion on which he
-had escaped from Isandhlwana home with him.
-
-Mazooku replied that the horse was well, but playful. A man forward had
-been teasing him with a bit of bread. He had waited till that man
-passed under his box, and had seized him in his teeth, lifted him off
-the ground by his coat, and shaken him severely.
-
-“’Good! Give him a bran-mash to-night.”
-
-“Koos!”
-
-“And so you find the air cold. Are you not regretting that you came? I
-warned you that you would regret.”
-
-“Ou ka Inkoos” (“O no, chief”), the Zulu answered, in his liquid native
-tongue. “When first we came upon the smoking ship, and went out on to
-the black water out of which the white men rise, and my bowels twisted
-up and melted within me, and I went through the agonies of a hundred
-deaths, then I regretted. ‘O, why,’ I said in my heart, ‘did not
-Mazimba my father kill me rather than bring me on to this great moving
-river? Surely if I live I shall grow like a white man from the
-whiteness of my heart, for I am exceedingly afraid, and have cast all
-my inside forth.’ All this I said, and many more things which I cannot
-remember, but they were dark and heavy things. But behold! my father,
-when my bowels ceased to melt, and when new ones had grown to replace
-those which I had thrown forth, I was glad, and did eat much beef, and
-then I questioned my heart about this journey over the black water. And
-my heart answered and said, ‘Mazooku, son of Ingoluvu, of the tribe of
-the Maquilisini, of the people of the Amazulu, you have done well.
-Great is the chief whom you serve; great is Mazimba on the
-hunting-path; great was he in the battle; all the Undi could not kill
-him, and his brother the lion (Jeremy), and his servant the jackal
-(Mazooku), who hid in a hole and then bit those who digged. O yes,
-Mazimba is great, and his breast is full of valour; you have seen him
-strike the Undi down; and his mind is full of the white man’s knowledge
-and discretion; you have seen him form the ring that spat out fire so
-fast that his servants the horsemen were buried under the corpses of
-the Undi. So great is he, that the “heaven above” smelled him out as
-“tagati,” as a wizard, and struck him with their lightning, but could
-not kill him then.’ And so now my father wanders and wanders, and shall
-wander in the darkness, seeing not the sun or the stars, or the
-flashing of spears, or the light that gathers in the eyes of brave men
-as they close in the battle, or the love which gleams in the eyes of
-women. And how is this? Shall my father want a dog to lead him in his
-darkness? Shall his dog Mazooku, son of Ingoluvu, prove a faithless
-dog, and desert the hand that fed him, and the man who is braver than
-himself? No, it shall not be so, my chief and my father. By the head of
-Chaka, whither thou goest thither will I go also, and where thou shalt
-build thy kraal there shall I make my hut. Koos! Baba!”
-
-And having saluted after the dignified Zulu fashion, Mazooku departed
-to tie up his split trousers with a bit of string. There was something
-utterly incongruous between his present appearance and his melodious
-and poetical words, instinct as they were with qualities which in some
-respects make the savage Zulu a gentleman, and put him above the white
-Christian, who for the most part regards the “nigger” as a creature
-beneath contempt. For there are lessons to be learned even from Zulu
-“niggers,” and among them we may reckon those taught by a courage which
-laughs at death; an absolute fidelity to those who have the right to
-command it, or the qualities necessary to win it; and, in their raw and
-unconverted state, perfect honesty and truthfulness.
-
-“He is a good fellow, Mazooku,” said Ernest, when the Zulu had gone;
-“but I fear that one of two things will happen to him. Either he will
-get homesick and become a nuisance, or he will get civilised and become
-drunken and degraded. I should have done better to leave him in Natal.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II.
-ERNEST’S EVIL DESTINY
-
-
-About nine o’clock on the morning following Mazooku’s oration, a young
-lady came running up the stairs of the principal Plymouth hotel, and
-burst into a private sitting-room, like a human bomb-shell of
-attractive appearance, somewhat to the astonishment of a bald old
-gentleman who was sitting at breakfast.
-
-“Good gracious, Dorothy, have you gone suddenly mad?”
-
-“O Reginald, the _Conway Castle_ is nearly in, and I have been to the
-office and got leave for us to go off in the launch; so come along,
-quick!”
-
-“What time does the launch leave?”
-
-“A quarter to ten exactly.”
-
-“Then we have three-quarters of an hour.”
-
-“O please, Reginald, be quick; it might go before, you know.”
-
-Mr. Cardus smiled, and, rising, put on his hat and coat, “to oblige
-Dorothy,” he said; but, as a matter of fact, he was as excited as she
-was. There was a patch of red on each of his pale cheeks, and his hand
-shook.
-
-In a quarter of an hour they were walking up and down the quay by the
-Custom House, waiting for the launch to start.
-
-“After all these years,” said Mr. Cardus, “and blind!” “Do you think
-that he will be much disfigured, Reginald?” “I don’t know, dear; your
-brother said nothing about it.” “I can hardly believe it; it seems so
-strange to think that he and Jeremy should have been spared out of all
-those people. How good God is!”
-
-“A cynic,” replied Mr. Cardus, with a smile, “or the relations of the
-other people, might draw a different conclusion.”
-
-But Dorothy was thinking how good God was to _her._ She was dressed in
-pink that morning, and
-
-“Oh, she looked sweet
-As the little pink flower that grows in the wheat.”
-
-
-Dorothy neither was, nor ever would be, a pretty woman, but she was
-essentially a charming one. Her kindly puzzled face (and, to judge from
-the little wrinkles on it, she had never got to the bottom of the
-questions which contracted her forehead as a child), her steady blue
-eyes, her diminutive rounded form, and, above all, the indescribable
-light of goodness which shone round her like a halo, all made her
-charming. What did it matter if the mouth was a little wide, or the
-nose somewhat “tip-tilted?” Those who can look so sweet are able to
-dispense with such fleshly attributes as a Grecian nose or chiselled
-lips. At the least, they will have the best of it after youth is past;
-and let me remind you, my young and lovely reader, that the longer and
-dustier portion of life’s road winds away towards the pale horizon of
-our path on the farther side of the grim mile-post marked “30.”
-
-But what made her chiefly attractive was her piquante taking manner and
-the _chic_ of her presence. She was such a perfect lady.
-
-“All aboard, if you please,” broke in the agent. “Run in the
-gangway!”and they were off towards the great gray vessel with a blue
-pennant at her top.
-
-It was a short run, but it seemed long to Dorothy and the old gentleman
-with her. Bigger and bigger grew the great vessel, till at last it
-seemed to swallow up their tiny steamer.
-
-“Ease her! Look out for the line there! Now haul away! Make fast!”
-
-It was all done in an instant, and next moment they stood upon the
-broad white deck, amid the crowd of passengers, and were looking round
-for Ernest and Jeremy.
-
-But they were not to be seen.
-
-“I hope they are here,” faltered Dorothy.
-
-Mr. Cardus took his hat off, and wiped his bald head. He too hoped that
-they were there.
-
-At that moment Dorothy became aware of a black man, clad in a white
-smock pulled on over a great-coat, and carrying a big spear and a
-kerrie in his hand, who was pushing his way towards them. Next moment
-he stood before them, saluting vigorously.
-
-“Koos!” he said, thrusting his spear into the air before Mr. Cardus’s
-astonished nose.
-
-“Inkosikaas!” (chieftainess) he repeated, going through the same
-process before Dorothy. “This way, master; this way, missie. The chief
-without eyes send me to you. This way; the lion bring him now.”
-
-They followed him through the press towards the after-part of the ship,
-while, giving up the unfamiliar language, he vociferated in Zulu (it
-might have been Sanskrit, for all they knew):
-
-“Make way, you low people, make way for the old man with the shining
-head, on whose brow sits wisdom, and the fair young maiden, the sweet
-rosebud, who comes,” &c.
-
-At that moment Dorothy’s quick eye saw a great man issuing from a
-cabin, leading another man by the hand. And then she forgot everything,
-and ran forward.
-
-“O Ernest, Ernest!” she cried.
-
-The blind man’s cheek flushed at the music of her voice.
-
-He drew his hand from Jeremy’s, and stretched out his arms towards the
-voice. It would have been easy to avoid them—one never need be kissed
-by a blind man—but she did not avoid them. On the contrary, she placed
-herself so that the groping arms closed round her, while a voice said:
-“Dolly, where are you?”
-
-“Here, Ernest, here!” and in another moment he had drawn her to him,
-and kissed her on the face, and she had returned the kiss.
-
-Then she kissed Jeremy too, or rather Jeremy lifted her up two or three
-feet and kissed her—it came to the same thing. And then Mr. Cardus
-wrung them both by the hand, wringing Ernest’s the hardest; and Mazooku
-stood by, and, Zulu fashion, chanted a little song of his own
-improvising, about how the chiefs came back to their kraal after a long
-expedition, in which they had, &c.; and how Wisdom, in the shape of a
-shining headed and ancient one, the husband without any doubt of many
-wives, and the father of at least a hundred children, &c.; and Beauty,
-in the shape of a sweet and small one, &c.; and finally they all went
-very near to crying, and dancing a fling on the quarter-deck together.
-
-And then they all talked at once, and set about collecting their things
-in a muddle-headed fashion. When these had been put in a pile, and
-Mazooku was seated, assegai and all, upon the top of them, as a solemn
-warning to thieves (and ill would it have gone with the thief who dared
-to meddle with that pile), they started off to inspect Ernest’s great
-black horse, “The Devil.”
-
-And behold, Dorothy stroked “The Devil’s” nose, and he, recognising how
-sweet and good she was, abandoned his usual habits, and did not bite
-her, but only whinnied and asked for sugar. Then Ernest, going into the
-box with the horse, which nobody but he and Mazooku were fond of taking
-liberties with, felt down his flank till he came to a scar inflicted by
-an assegai in that mad charge through the Undi, and showed it to them.
-And Dorothy’s eyes filled with tears of thankfulness, as she thought of
-what that horse and its rider had gone through, and of the bleaching
-bones of those who had galloped by their side; and she would have liked
-to kiss Ernest again, only there was no excuse. So she only pressed his
-hand, feeling that the sorrow of the empty years which were gone was
-almost atoned for by this hour of joy.
-
-Then they went ashore to the hotel, and sat together in the pleasant
-sitting-room which Dorothy had chosen, and made sweet with great
-bunches of violets (for she remembered that Ernest loved violets), and
-talked. At length Mr. Cardus and Jeremy went off to see about getting
-the things through the Custom House, where they arrived to find Mazooku
-keeping half a dozen gorgeous officials, who wanted to open a box, at
-bay with his knobsticks, and plastering them with offensive epithets,
-which fortunately they did not understand.
-
-“Doll,” said Ernest, presently, “it is a beautiful day, is it not? Will
-you take me for a walk, dear? I should like to go for a walk.”
-
-“Yes, Ernest, of course I will.”
-
-“You are sure you do not mind being seen with a blind man? You must
-give me your hand to hold, you know.”
-
-“Ernest, how can you?”
-
-Mind giving him her hand to hold, indeed! thought Dorothy to herself,
-as she ran to put her bonnet on. O, that she could give it to him for
-always! And in her heart she blessed the accident of his blindness,
-because it brought him so much nearer to her. He would be helpless
-without her, this tall strong man, and she would be ever at his side to
-help him. He would not be able to read a book, or write a letter, or
-move from room to room without her. Surely she would soon be able so to
-weave herself into his life that she would become indispensable to it.
-And then, perhaps—perhaps—and her heart pulsed with a joy so intense at
-the mere thought of what might follow that it became a pain, and she
-caught her breath and leaned against the wall. For every fibre of her
-frame was thrilled with a passionate love of this blind man whom she
-had lost for so many years, and now had found again; and in her breast
-she vowed that if she could help it she would lose him no more. Why
-should she? When he had been engaged to Eva, she had done her best for
-him and her, and bitterly had she felt the way in which he had been
-treated, but Eva had taken her own course, and was now no longer in the
-outward and visible running, whatever place she might still hold in the
-inward and spiritual side of Ernest’s nature.
-
-Dorothy did not underrate that place; she knew well that the image of
-her rival had sunk too deep into his heart to be altogether dislodged
-by her. But she was prepared to put up with that.
-
-“One can’t have everything, you know,” she said, shaking her wise
-little head at her own reflection in the glass, as she tied her
-bonnet-strings.
-
-Dorothy was an eminently practical little person, and having recognised
-the “eternal verity” of the saying that half a loaf is better than no
-bread, especially if one happens to be dying of hunger, she made up her
-mind to make the best of the position. Since she could not help it, Eva
-would be welcome to the inward and spiritual side of Ernest, if only
-she could secure the outward and visible side; “for after all, that is
-real and tangible, and there isn’t much comfort in spiritual affection,
-you know,” she said, with another shake of the head.
-
-In short, the arguments which proved so convincing to her were not
-unlike those that carried conviction home to the gentle breast of Mr.
-Plowden, when he made up his mind to marry Eva in the teeth of her
-engagement to, and love for, Ernest; but, putting aside the diversity
-of the circumstances, there was this difference between them: Mr.
-Plowden recognised no higher spiritual part at all; he did not believe
-in that sort of thing; he contracted for Eva as he would have
-contracted to buy a lovely animal, and when he had got the given
-quantity of flesh and blood he was satisfied. Of the soul—the inner
-self—which the human casket held, and which loathed and hated him, he
-took no account. He had got the woman, what did he care about the
-woman’s soul? Souls, and spiritual parts, and affinities with what is
-good and high, and the divinity of love, &c. &c., were capital things
-to preach about, but they did not apply to the affairs of every-day
-life. Besides, if he had been asked, he would have given it as his
-candid opinion that women did not possess any of these things.
-
-There are hundreds of educated men who think like Mr. Plowden, and
-there are thousands of educated ladies who give colour to such opinions
-by their idle, aimless course of life, their utter inappreciation of
-anything beyond their own little daily round, and the gossip of the
-dozen or so of families who for them make up what they call society and
-the interests of existence, and by their conduct in the matter of
-marriage. Truly the great factor in the lowering of women is woman
-herself. But what does it matter? In due course they have their
-families, and the world goes on!
-
-Now, Dorothy did believe in all these things, and she knew what an
-important part they play in human affairs, and how they dominate over,
-and direct, finer minds. So did she believe in the existence of the
-planets, and in the blooming of roses in walled gardens; but she could
-not get near to know the beauties of the stars, or to see the opening
-rosebuds, so she had to satisfy herself with the heat that poured from
-the one, and the scent that came from the other. When one is
-star-stricken, or mad in the matter of roses, that is better than
-nothing.
-
-And so, taking Ernest by the hand, she led him through the crowded
-streets with tender care, and on to the quiet Hoe. And as they passed,
-the people turned to look at the handsome young fellow who was blind,
-and some thought that they would not mind a little blindness if it led
-to being personally conducted by so sweet a girl.
-
-Soon they reached the gardens.
-
-“Now tell me about yourself, Ernest. What have you been doing all these
-long years, besides growing bigger and handsomer, and getting that hard
-look about the mouth?”
-
-“A great many things, Doll. Shooting, fighting, playing the fool.”
-
-“Pshaw! I know all that, or at least I can guess it. What have you been
-doing in your mind, you know?”
-
-“Why, thinking of you, of course, Doll.”
-
-“Ernest, if you talk to me like that, I will go away, and leave you to
-find your own way home. I know well of whom you have been thinking
-every day and every night. It was not of me. Now, confess it.”
-
-“Don’t let’s talk of _her,_ Doll. If you talk of the devil, you know,
-you sometimes raise him; not that he requires much raising in this
-instance,” he laughed bitterly.
-
-“I was so sorry for you, Ernest dear, and I did my best; indeed I did.
-But I could do nothing with her. She must have been off her head, or
-that man” (Dorothy always spoke of Plowden as ‘that man’)” and Florence
-had some power over her; or perhaps she never really cared for you;
-there are some women, you know, who seem very sweet, but cannot truly
-care for anybody except themselves. At any rate, she married, and has a
-family of children, for I have seen their births in the paper. Oh,
-Ernest, when I think of all you must have suffered out there about that
-woman, I cease to be sorry for her, and begin to hate her. I am afraid
-you have been very unhappy, Ernest, all these years.”
-
-“Ah, yes, I have been unhappy sometimes—sometimes I have consoled
-myself. There, what is the use of telling lies?—I have always been
-unhappy, and never so much so as when I have been in process of
-consolation. But you should not hate her, poor girl! Perhaps she has
-her bad times too; only, fortunately, you women cannot feel, at least
-not much—not like us, I mean.”
-
-“I don’t know about that,” put in Dorothy.
-
-“Well, I will qualify my remark—most women. And, besides, it is not
-quite her fault; people cannot help themselves much in this world. She
-was appointed to be my evil destiny, that is all, and she must fulfil
-her mission. All my life she will probably bring me trouble, till at
-last the fate works itself out. But, Dolly, my dear, there must be an
-end to these things, and Nature, always fertile in analogies, teaches
-us that the end of sorrow will be happiness. It is from the darkness of
-night that day is born, and ice and snow are followed by the flowers.
-Nothing is lost in the world, as old Alston used to say, and it is
-impossible to suppose that all the grief and suffering are alone
-wasted; that they are the only dull seed that will not, when their day
-comes, bloom into a beautiful life. They may seem to be intangible
-things now; but, after all, the difference between tangible and
-intangible is only a difference of matter. We know that intangible
-things are real enough, and perhaps in a future state we shall find
-that they are the true immortal parts. I think so myself.”
-
-“I think so too.”
-
-“Well, then, Doll, you see, if once one gets the mastery of that idea,
-it makes the navigation easier. Once admit that everything works to an
-end, and that end a good and enduring one, and you will cease to call
-out under your present sorrows. But it is hard for the little boy to
-learn to like being whipped, and we are all children, Doll, to the end
-of our days.”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“And you see, Doll, for some reason I have been picked out to catch it
-pretty warm. It does seem rather hard that a woman like that should be
-allowed to turn all the wine of a man’s life into vinegar; but so it
-often is. Now, if she had died, that would have been bad enough; but I
-could have borne it, and bided my time in the hope of joining her. Or
-if she had ceased to love me, and learned to love the other man, I
-think I could have borne that, because my pride would have come to my
-rescue, and because I know that the law of her affections is the only
-law that the heart of woman really acknowledges, however many others
-she may be forced to conform to; and that a woman of refined nature who
-has ceased to love you, and is yet forced to live with you, is in
-consequence a thing worthless to you, and dishonoured in her own eyes.
-Besides, I ask no favour in such matters. I have no sympathy, as a
-general rule, with people who raise a howl because they have lost the
-affection of their wives or sweethearts, for they should have been able
-to keep them. If any man could have cut me out, he was welcome to do
-so, for he would have proved himself the better man, and as for the
-lady, I would not have her without her heart. But I gather that was not
-quite the case with Eva.”
-
-“O no, indeed; at least she said that she was wretched.”
-
-“Exactly as I thought. Well, now, you will understand that it is rather
-hard. You see I did love her dearly, and it is painful to think of this
-woman, whose love I won, and who by that divine right and by the law of
-nature should have been my wife, as forced into being the wife of
-another man, however charming he may be; and I hope for her sake that
-he is charming. In fact, it fills me with a sensation I cannot
-describe.”
-
-“Poor Ernest!”
-
-“Oh no, don’t pity me. Everybody has his troubles—this is mine.”
-
-“Oh, Ernest, but you have been unfortunate, and now your sight has
-gone; but perhaps Critchett or Couper would be able to do something for
-that.”
-
-“All the Critchetts and Coupers in the world will never do anything for
-it, my dear. But you must remember that where I only lost my sight,
-many others lost their lives, and it is supposed to be better to lose
-your sight than your life. Besides, blindness has its advantages: it
-gives you so much more time to think, and it humbles you so. You can
-have no idea what it is like, Doll. Intense, everlasting blackness
-hedging you in like a wall: one long, long night, even when the
-sunlight is beating on your face; and out of the night, voices and the
-touching of hands, like the voices and the touchings of departed
-spirits. Your physical body is as helpless and as much at the mercy of
-the world as your spiritual body is in the hands of the Almighty. And
-things grow dim to you too: you begin to wonder what familiar faces and
-sights are like, as you wonder about the exact appearance of those who
-died many years ago, or of places you have not seen for years. All of
-which, my dear Doll, is very favourable to thought. When next you lie
-awake for five or six hours in the night, try to reckon all the things
-which occupy your brain; then imagine such wakefulness and its
-accompanying thoughts extended over the period of your natural life,
-and you will get some idea of the depth and breadth and height of total
-blindness.”
-
-His words struck her, and she did not know what to answer, so she only
-pressed his hand in token of her mute sympathy.
-
-He understood her meaning; the faculties of the blind are very quick.
-
-“Do you know, Doll,” he said, “coming back to you and to your gentle
-kindness is like coming into the peace and quiet of a sheltered harbour
-after bearing the full brunt of the storm.” Just then a cloud which had
-obscured the sun passed away, and its full light struck upon his face.
-“There,” he went on, “it is like that. It is like emerging into the
-sweet sunshine after riding for miles through the rain and mist. You
-bring peace with you, my dear. I have not felt such peace for years as
-I feel holding your hand to-day.”
-
-“I am very glad, dear Ernest,” she answered; and they walked on in
-silence. At that moment, a little girl, who was trundling a hoop down
-the gravel-path, stopped her hoop to look at the pair. She was very
-pretty, with large dark eyes, but Dorothy noticed that she had a
-curious mark upon her forehead. Presently Dorothy saw her run back
-towards an extremely tall and graceful woman, who was sauntering along,
-followed at some distance by a nurse with a baby in her arms, and
-turning occasionally to look at the beds of spring flowers, hyacinths
-and tulips, which bordered the path.
-
-“O mother!” she heard the little girl call out, in the clear voice of
-childhood, “there is such a nice blind man! He isn’t old and ugly, and
-he hasn’t a dog, and he doesn’t ask for pennies. Why is he blind if he
-hasn’t a dog, and doesn’t ask for pennies?”
-
-Blindness, according to this little lady’s ideas, evidently sprang from
-the presence of a cur and an unsatisfied hunger for copper coin.
-Sometimes it does.
-
-The tall graceful lady looked up carelessly, saying, “Hush, dear!” She
-was quite close to them now, for they were walking towards each other,
-and Dorothy gave a great gasp, for before her stood _Eva Plowden._
-There was no doubt about it. She was paler and haughtier-looking than
-of yore; but it was she. No one who had once seen her could mistake
-that queenly beauty. Certainly Dorothy could not mistake it.
-
-“What is the matter, Doll?” said Ernest, carelessly. He was thinking of
-other things.
-
-“Nothing; I hurt myself.”
-
-They were quite close now.
-
-And Eva, too, looked at them, and she, too, saw the face she had never
-thought to see again. With all her eyes, and with her lips parted as
-though to cry out, she gazed at the sight before her—slowly, slowly,
-taking in all it meant.
-
-They were nearly level now.
-
-Then there leaped up into her eyes and face—the eyes and face which a
-second before had been so calm and statue-like—a wild light of love, an
-intensity of passionate and jealous desire, such as is not often to be
-seen on the faces of women.
-
-“Ernest there, and Ernest blind, and being led by the hand of Dorothy,
-and looking happy with her! How dared she touch her love! How dared he
-look happy with her!” Those were the thoughts which flashed through her
-troubled mind.
-
-She made a step towards them, as though to address him, and the blind
-eyes fell upon her lovely face, and wandered over it. It made her mad.
-His eyes were on her face, and yet he could not see her. O God!
-
-Dorothy saw the motion, and, moved by an overmastering instinct, threw
-herself between them in an attitude of protection not unmixed with
-defiance. And so, for a second, their eyes flashing and their bosoms
-heaving with emotion, the two women stood face to face, and the blind
-pathetic eyes wandered uneasily over both, feeling a presence they were
-unable to define.
-
-It was a tragic, almost a dreadful scene. The passions it revealed were
-almost too intense for words, as no brush can justly paint a landscape
-made vivid by the unnatural fierceness of the lightning.
-
-“Well, Doll, why do you stop?” Ernest said, impatiently.
-
-His voice broke the spell. Eva withdrew her arm, which was half
-outstretched, and touched her lips with her finger as though to enjoin
-silence. Then a deep misery spread itself over her flushed face, her
-head sank low, and she passed thence with rapid steps. Presently the
-nurse with the baby followed her, and Dorothy noticed vaguely that this
-child had also a mark upon its forehead. The whole thing had not taken
-forty seconds.
-
-“Doll,” said Ernest, in a wild voice, and commencing to tremble, “who
-was that passed us?”
-
-“A lady,” was the answer.
-
-“A lady; yes, I know that—what lady?”
-
-“I don’t know—a lady with children.”
-
-It was a fib; but she could not tell him then; an instinct warned her
-not to do so.
-
-“Oh, it is strange, Doll, strange; but, do you know, I felt just now as
-though Eva were very near me. Come, let us go home!”
-
-Just then the cloud got over the sun again, and they walked home in the
-shadow. Apparently, too, all their talkativeness had gone the way of
-the sun. They had nothing to say.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III.
-INTROSPECTIVE
-
-
-Eva Plowden could scarcely be said to be a happy woman. A refined woman
-who has deliberately married one man when she loves another is not as a
-rule happy afterwards, unless, indeed, she is blessed, or cursed, with
-a singularly callous nature. But there are degrees and degrees of
-unhappiness. Such a fate as Eva’s would have killed Dorothy, and would
-have driven Florence, bad as she might otherwise be, to suicide or
-madness. But with Eva herself it was not so; she was not sufficiently
-finely strung to suffer thus. Hers was not a very happy life, and that
-was all about it. She had been most miserable; but when the first burst
-of her misery had passed, like the raving storm that sometimes ushers
-in a wet December day, she had more or less reconciled herself—like a
-sensible woman—to her position. The day was always rather wet, it is
-true; but still the sun peeped out now and again, and if life was not
-exactly a joyous thing, it was at least endurable.
-
-And yet with it all she loved Ernest in her heart as much as ever; his
-memory was inexpressibly dear to her, and her regrets were sometimes
-very bitter. On the whole, however, she had got over it
-wonderfully—better than anybody would have thought possible, who could
-have witnessed her agony some years before, when Florence told her the
-whole truth immediately after the wedding. The Sabine women, we are
-told, offered every reasonable resistance to their rape by the Romans,
-but before long they gave the strongest proofs of reconciliation to
-their lot. There was something of the Sabine woman about Eva. Indeed,
-the contrast between her state of mind as regarded Ernest, and Ernest’s
-state of mind as regarded her, would make a curious study. They each
-loved the other, and yet how different had the results of that love
-been on the two natures! To Eva it had been and was a sorrow, sometimes
-a very real one; to Ernest, the destruction of all that made life worth
-living. The contrast, indeed, was almost pitiable, it was so striking;
-so wide a gulf was fixed between the two. The passion of the one was a
-wretched thing compared to the other. But both were real; it was merely
-a difference of degree. If Eva’s affection was weak when measured by
-Ernest’s, it was because the soil in which it grew was poorer. She gave
-all she had to give.
-
-As for Mr. Plowden, he could not but feel that on the whole his
-matrimonial speculation had answered very well. He was honestly fond of
-his wife, and, as he had a right to be, very proud of her. At times she
-was cold and capricious, and at times she was sarcastic; but, take it
-altogether, she made him a good and serviceable wife, and lifted him up
-many pegs in the social scale. People saw that though Plowden was not a
-gentleman, he had managed to marry a lady, and a very lovely lady too;
-and he was tolerated, indeed to a certain extent courted, for the sake
-of his wife. It was principally to attain this end that he had married
-her, so he had every reason to be satisfied with his bargain, and he
-was, besides, proud to be the legal owner of so handsome a creature.
-
-Eva often thought of her old lover, though, except in the vaguest way,
-she had heard nothing of him for years. Indeed, she was, as it
-happened, thinking of him tenderly enough that very morning, when her
-little girl had called her attention to the “nice blind man.” And when
-at last, in a way which seemed to her little short of miraculous, she
-set eyes again upon his face, all her smouldering passion broke into
-flame, and she felt that she still loved him with all her strength,
-such as it was.
-
-At that moment indeed she realised how great, how bitter, how complete
-was the mistake she had made, and what a beautiful thing life might
-have been for her if things had gone differently. But, remembering how
-things _were,_ she bowed her head and passed on, for the time
-completely crushed.
-
-Presently, however, two points became clear in the confusion of her
-mind, taking shape and form as distinct and indisputable mental facts,
-and these were—first, that she was wildly jealous of Dorothy; second,
-that it was her fixed determination to see Ernest. She regretted now
-that she had been too overcome to go up and speak to him, for see him
-she must and would; indeed, her sick longing to look upon his face and
-hear his voice filled her with alarm.
-
-Eva reached her home, after the meeting on the Hoe, just before
-luncheon-time. Her husband was now acting as locum tenens for the
-rector of one of the Plymouth parishes. They had moved thus from place
-to place for years, waiting for the Kesterwick living to fall vacant,
-and Eva liked the roving life well enough—it diverted her thoughts.
-
-Presently she heard her husband enter, bringing somebody else with him,
-and summoned up the sweet smile for which she was remarkable to greet
-him.
-
-In another instant he was in the room, followed by a fresh-faced
-subaltern, whose appearance reminded her of the pictures of cherubs.
-Mr. Plowden had changed but little since we saw him last, with the
-exception that his hair was now streaked with white, and the whole face
-rather stouter. Otherwise the cold gray eyes were as cold as ever, and
-the countenance of Plowden was what the countenance of Plowden had
-always been—powerful, intelligent, and coarse-looking.
-
-“Let me introduce my friend Lieutenant Jasper to you, my dear,” he
-said, in his full strong voice, which was yet unpleasant to the ear.
-“We met at Captain Johnstone’s, and, as it is a long way to go to the
-barracks for lunch, I asked him to come and take pot-luck with us.”
-
-The cherubic Jasper had screwed an eyeglass into his round eye, and
-through it was contemplating Eva with astonished ecstasy; but, like
-most very beautiful women, she was used to that sort of thing, and it
-only amused her faintly. Mr. Plowden, too, was used to it, and took it
-as a personal compliment.
-
-“I am delighted,” she murmured, and held out her hand.
-
-The cherub, suddenly awaking to the fact, dropped his eyeglass, and,
-plunging at the hand, seized it as a pike does a little fish, and shook
-it with enthusiasm.
-
-Eva smiled again.
-
-“Shall we go to lunch?” she said, sweetly: and they went to lunch, she
-sailing down in front of them with the grace of a swan.
-
-At lunch itself the conversation flagged rather—that is, Mr. Plowden
-talked with all the facility of an extemporary preacher; the cherub
-gazed at this pale dark-eyed angel; and Eva, fully occupied with her
-own thoughts, contributed a great many appreciative smiles and a few
-random remarks. Just as they were, to her intense relief, nearing the
-conclusion of the meal, a messenger arrived to summon Mr. Plowden to
-christen a dying baby. He got up at once, for he was punctilious in the
-performance of his duties, and, making excuses to his guest, departed
-on his errand, thus forcing Eva to carry on the conversation.
-
-“Have you been in Plymouth long, Mr. Jasper?” she asked.
-
-The eyeglass dropped spasmodically.
-
-“Plymouth? O dear, no; I only landed this morning.”
-
-“Landed? Indeed! where from? I did not know that any boat was in except
-the _Conway Castle._
-
-“Well, I came by her, from the Zulu war, you know. I was invalided home
-for fever.”
-
-The cherub suddenly became intensely interesting to Eva, for it had
-struck her that Ernest must have come from Africa.
-
-“Indeed! I hope you had a pleasant passage. It depends so much on your
-fellow-passengers, does it not?”
-
-“O yes, we had a very nice lot of men on board, wounded officers
-mostly. There were a couple of very decent civilians, too—a giant of a
-fellow called Jones, and a blind baronet, Sir Ernest Kershaw.”
-
-Eva’s bosom heaved.
-
-“I once knew a Mr. Ernest Kershaw; I wonder if it is the same? He was
-tall, and had dark eyes.”
-
-“That’s the man; he only got his title a month or two ago. A melancholy
-sort of chap, I thought; but then he can’t see now. That Jones is a
-wonderful fellow, though—could pull two heavy men up at once, as easily
-as you would lift a puppy-dog. Saw him do it myself. I knew them both
-out there.”
-
-“Oh! Where did you meet them?”
-
-“Well, it was rather curious. I suppose you heard of the great disaster
-at that place with an awful name. Well, I was at a beastly hole called
-Helpmakaar, when a fellow came riding like anything from Rorke’s Drift,
-telling us what had happened, and that the Zulus were coming. So we all
-set to and worked like mad, and just as we had got the place a little
-fit for them, somebody shouted that he saw them coming. That was just
-as it was getting dark. I ran to the wall to look, and saw, not the
-Zulus, but a great big fellow carrying a dead fellow in his arms,
-followed by a Kafir leading three horses. At least, I thought the
-fellow was dead, but he wasn’t—he had been struck by lightning. We let
-him in; and such a sight as they were you never saw, all soaked with
-blood from top to toe!”
-
-“Ah! And how did they come like that?”
-
-“They were the only survivors of a volunteer corps called Alston’s
-Horse. They killed all the Zulus that were attacking them, when the
-Zulus had killed everybody except them. Then they came away, and the
-blind fellow—that is, Sir Ernest—got struck in a storm; fellows often
-do out there.”
-
-Eva put further questions, and listened with breathless interest to the
-story of Ernest’s and Jeremy’s wonderful escape, so far as the details
-were known to Mr. Jasper, quite regardless of the pitiless fire that
-young gentleman was keeping on herself through his eyeglass. At last,
-reluctantly enough, he rose to go.
-
-“I must be off now, Mrs. Plowden; I want to go and call on Sir Ernest
-at the hotel. He lent me a Derringer pistol to practise at a bottle
-with, and I forgot to give it back.”
-
-Eva turned the full battery of her beautiful eyes upon him. She saw
-that the young gentleman was struck, and determined to make use of him.
-Women are unscrupulous when they have an end in view.
-
-“I am so sorry you must go; but I hope you will come and see me again,
-and tell me some more about the war and the battles.”
-
-“You are very kind,” he stammered. “I shall be delighted.”
-
-He did not think it necessary to add that he had not had the luck to
-see a shot fired himself. Why should he?
-
-“By the way, if you are going to see Sir Ernest, do you think you could
-give him a private message from me? I have a reason for not wishing it
-to be overheard.”
-
-“O yes, I daresay I can. Nothing would give me greater pleasure.”
-
-“You are very good.” Another glance. “Will you tell him that I wish he
-would take a fly and come to see me? I shall be in all this afternoon.”
-
-A pang of jealousy shot through the cherubic bosom, but he comforted
-himself with the reflection that a fine woman like that could not care
-for a “blind fellow.”
-
-“O, certainly, I will try.”
-
-“Thank you;” and she extended her hand.
-
-He took it, and, intoxicated by those superb eyes, ventured to press it
-tenderly. A mild wonder took possession of Eva’s mind that anybody so
-very young could have developed such an astonishing amount of
-impudence, but she did not resent the pressure. What did she care about
-having her hand squeezed when it was a question of seeing Ernest?
-
-Poor deluded cherub!
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV.
-AFTER MANY DAYS
-
-
-Within an hour of the departure of Lieutenant Jasper, Eva heard a fly
-draw up at the door. Then came an interval and the sound of two people
-walking up the steps, one of whom stumbled a good deal; then a ring.
-
-“Is Mrs. Plowden at home?” said a clear voice, the well-remembered
-tones of which sent the blood to her head and then back to her heart
-with a rush.
-
-“Yes, sir.”
-
-“Oh! Wait here, flyman. Now, my good girl, I must ask you to give me
-your hand, for I am not in a condition to find my way about strange
-places.”
-
-Another pause, and the drawing-room door opened, and the maid came in,
-leading Ernest, who wore a curious, drawn look upon his face.
-
-“How do you do?” she said, in a low voice, coming and taking him by the
-hand. “That will do, Jane.”
-
-He did not speak till the door closed; he only looked at her with those
-searching blind eyes.
-
-Thus they met again after many years.
-
-She led him to a sofa, and he sat down.
-
-“Do not leave go of my hand,” he said quickly; “I have not yet got used
-to talking to people in the dark.”
-
-She sat down on the sofa beside him, feeling frightened and yet happy.
-For awhile they remained silent; apparently they could find nothing to
-say, and, after all, silence seemed most fitting. She had never thought
-to sit hand in hand with him again. She looked at him; there was no
-need for her to keep a guard over her loving glances, for he was blind.
-At length she broke the silence.
-
-“Were you surprised to get my message?” she asked, gently.
-
-“Yes; it was like getting a message from the dead. I never expected to
-see you again. I thought that you had quite passed out of my life.”
-
-“So you had forgotten me?”
-
-“Why do you say such a thing to me? You must know, Eva, that it is
-impossible for me to forget you; I almost wish that it were possible. I
-meant that you had passed out of my outward life, for out of my mind
-you can never pass.”
-
-Eva hung her head and was silent, and yet his words sent a thrill of
-happiness through her. So she had not quite lost him after it all.
-
-“Listen, Eva,” Ernest went on, gathering himself together, and speaking
-sternly enough now, and with a strange suppressed energy that
-frightened her. “How you came to do what you have done you best know.”
-
-“It is done; do not let us speak of it. I was not altogether to blame,”
-she broke in.
-
-“I was not going to speak of it. But I was going to say this, now while
-I have the chance, because time is short, and I think it right that you
-should know the truth. I was going to tell you just that for what you
-have done I freely forgive you.”
-
-“O Ernest!”
-
-“It is,” he went on, not heeding her, “a question that you can settle
-with your conscience and your God. But I wish to tell you what it is
-that you have done. You have wrecked my life, and made it an unhappy
-thing; you have taken that from me which I can never have to give
-again; you have embittered my mind, and driven me to sins of which I
-should not otherwise have dreamed. I loved you, and you gave me proofs
-which I could not doubt that I had won your love. You let me love you,
-and then when the hour of trial came you deserted and morally destroyed
-me, and the great and holy affection that should have been the blessing
-of my life has become its curse.”
-
-Eva covered her face with her hands and sat silent.
-
-“You do not answer me, Eva,” he said presently, with a little laugh.
-“Perhaps you find what I have to say difficult to answer, or perhaps
-you think I am taking a liberty.”
-
-“You are very hard,” she said, in a low voice.
-
-“Had you not better wait till I have done before you call me hard? If I
-wished to be hard, I should tell you that I no longer cared for you,
-that my prevailing feeling towards you was one of contempt. It would,
-perhaps, mortify you to think that I had shaken off such heavy chains.
-But it is not the truth, Eva. I love you now, as I always have loved
-you, as I always shall love you. I hope for nothing, I ask for nothing;
-in this business it has always been my part to give, not to receive. I
-despise myself for it, but so it is.”
-
-She laid her hand upon his shoulder. “Spare me, Ernest,” she whispered.
-
-“I have very little more to say, only this: I believe all that I have
-given you has not been given uselessly. I believe that the love of the
-flesh will die with the flesh. But my love for you has been something
-more and higher than that, or how has it lived without hope, and in
-spite of its dishonour, through so many years? It is of the spirit, and
-I believe that its life will be like that of the spirit, unending, and
-that when this hateful existence is done with I shall in some way reap
-its fruits with you.”
-
-“Why do you believe that, Ernest? It seems too happy to be true.”
-
-“Why do I believe it? I cannot tell you. Perhaps it is nothing but the
-fantasy of a mind broken down with brooding on its grief. In trouble we
-grow towards the light—like a plant in the dark, you know. As a crushed
-flower smells sweet, so all that is most aspiring in human nature is
-called into life when God lays His heavy hand upon us. Heaven is
-sorrow’s sole ambition. No, Eva, I do not know why I believe
-it—certainly you have given me no grounds for this—but I do believe it,
-and it comforts me. By the way, how did you know that I was here?”
-
-“I passed you on the Hoe this morning, walking with Dorothy.”
-
-Ernest started. “I felt you pass,” he said, “and asked Dorothy who it
-was. She said she did not know.”
-
-“She knew, but I made a sign to her not to say.”
-
-“Oh!”
-
-“Ernest, will you promise me something?” asked Eva, wildly.
-
-“What is it?”
-
-“Nothing. I have changed my mind—nothing at all!”
-
-The promise that she was about to ask was that he would not marry
-Dorothy, but her better nature rose in rebellion against it. Then they
-talked awhile of Ernest’s life abroad.
-
-“Well,” said Ernest, rising after a pause, “good-bye, Eva.”
-
-“It is a very cruel word,” she murmured.
-
-“Yes, it is cruel, but not more cruel than the rest.”
-
-“It has been a happiness to see you, Ernest.”
-
-He shrugged his shoulders as he answered. “Has it? For myself I am not
-sure if it has been a happiness or a misery. I must have a year or two
-of quiet and darkness to think it over before I make up my mind. Will
-you kindly ring the bell for the servant to take me away?”
-
-Half unconsciously she obeyed him, and then she came and took his hand
-and looked with all her eyes and all her soul into his face. It was
-fortunate that he could not see her.
-
-“O Ernest, you are blind!” she said, scarcely knowing what she said.
-
-He laughed—a hard little laugh. “Yes, Eva, _I_ am as blind now as _you_
-have been always.”
-
-“Ernest! Ernest! how can I live without seeing you? _I love you!_” and
-she fell into his arms.
-
-He kissed her once—twice, and then somehow, he never knew how, found
-the strength to put her from him. Perhaps it was because he heard the
-servant coming.
-
-Next moment the servant came and led him away. As soon as he was gone
-Eva flung herself on to the sofa, and sobbed as though her heart would
-break.
-
-When Dorothy saw a fresh-faced young officer, who had come up to see
-Ernest, mysteriously lead him aside, and whisper something in his ear
-which caused him to turn first red and then white, being a shrewd
-observer, she thought it curious. But when Ernest asked her to ring the
-bell and then ordered a fly to be brought round at once, the idea of
-Eva at once flashed into her mind. She and no other must be at the
-bottom of this mystery. Presently the fly was announced, and Ernest
-went off without a word, leaving her to the tender mercies of the
-cherub, who was contemplating her with his round eye as he had
-contemplated Eva, and finding her also charming. It must be remembered
-that he had but just returned from South Africa, and was prepared,
-_faute de mieux,_ to fall in love with an apple-woman. How much more,
-then, would he succumb to the charms of the stately Eva and the
-extremely fascinating Dorothy! It was some time before the latter could
-get rid of his eyeglass. On an ordinary occasion she would have been
-glad enough to entertain him, for Dorothy liked a little male society;
-and the cherub, though he did look so painfully young, was not half a
-bad fellow, and after all his whole soul was in his eyeglass, and his
-staring was meant to be complimentary. But just now she had a purpose
-in her head, and was heartily glad when he departed to reflect over the
-rival attractions of the two charmers.
-
-[Illustration: “After many days.”]
-
-It was very evident to Dorothy, who was always strictly practical, that
-to keep Eva and Ernest in the same town was to hold dry tow to a
-lighted match over a barrel of gun-powder. She only hoped that he might
-come back now without having put his foot into it.
-
-“Oh, what fools men are!” she said to herself, with a stamp; “a pretty
-face and a pair of bright eyes, and they count the world well lost for
-them. Bah! if it had been a plain woman who played Ernest that trick,
-would he be found dangling about after her now? Not he. But with her,
-she has only to say a soft word or two, and he will be at her feet,
-I’ll be bound. I am ashamed of them both.”
-
-Meanwhile she was putting on her bonnet, which was a very favourite
-time with her for meditation, having already made up her mind as to her
-course of action. Ernest had authorised her to make arrangements for an
-interview with an oculist. She proceeded to make those arrangements by
-telegram, wiring to a celebrated surgeon to know if he could make an
-appointment for the following afternoon. Then she took a walk by
-herself to think things over. In an hour she returned, to find Ernest
-in the sitting-room, looking extremely shaken and depressed.
-
-“You have been to see Eva?” she said.
-
-“Yes,” he answered.
-
-Just then there was a knock at the door, and the servant brought in a
-telegram. It was from the oculist. He would be glad to see Sir Ernest
-Kershaw at four o’clock on the following afternoon.
-
-“I have made an appointment for you with an eye-doctor, Ernest, at four
-o’clock to morrow.”
-
-“To-morrow!” he said.
-
-“Yes. The sooner you get your eyes looked to the better.”
-
-He sighed. “What is the good? However, I will go.”
-
-And so next morning they all took the express, and at the appointed
-time Ernest found himself in the skilful hands of the oculist. But
-though an oculist can mend the sight, he cannot make it.
-
-“I can do nothing for you, Sir Ernest,” he said, after an exhaustive
-examination. “Your eyes will remain as they are, but you must always be
-blind.”
-
-Ernest took the news with composure.
-
-“I thought as much,” he said; but Dorothy put her handkerchief to her
-face and wept secretly.
-
-Next morning he went with Jeremy to call on Messrs. Paisley and
-Paisley, and told them to try and let Archdale Hall, and to lock up the
-numerous and valuable heirlooms, as unfortunately he was unable to see
-them. Then they went on home to Dum’s Ness, and that night Ernest lay
-awake in the room where he had slept for so many years in the boyhood
-which now seemed so dim and remote, and listened to the stormy wind
-raving round the house, and thought with an aching heart of Eva, but
-was thankful that he had bid her farewell, and wondered if he could
-find the strength to keep away from her.
-
-And Eva, his lost love, she too lay by the sea and listened to the
-wind, and thought on him. There she lay in her beauty, seeking the
-sleep that would not settle round her. She could not sleep; forgetful
-sleep does not come readily to such as she. For her and those like her
-are vain regrets and an empty love and longing, and the wreath of
-thorns that crowns the brow where sorrow is enthroned.
-
-Yet, Eva, lift that fevered head, and turn those seeking eyes to
-heaven. See, through the casement, above the tumult of the storm, there
-gleams a star. For you, too, there shines a star called Hope, but it is
-set in no earthly sky. Have patience, wayward heart, there is but a
-space of trouble. As you suffer, so have millions suffered, and are
-they not at peace? so shall millions suffer:
-
- “While thou, that once didst make the place thou stoodst in lovely, shalt lie still,
- Thy form departed, and thy face remembered not in good or ill.”
-
-For of this we may be sure—if suffering is not the widest gate of
-heaven, then heaven has no gates. Unhappy woman, stretch out those
-longing arms in supplication to the God of sorrows for strength to bear
-your load, since here it shall not be lightened. The burdens which
-Providence binds on our backs, Providence will sometimes lessen, but
-those which our own folly fastens remain till death deliver us.
-
-So, Eva, dry your tears, for they can avail you naught, and go get you
-to your daily task—go tend your children, and smile that sweet sad
-smile on all alike, and _wait._ As you have sowed so shall you reap,
-but seed-time is not done, and not yet is the crop white to the
-harvest.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V.
-HOME AGAIN
-
-
-It was very peaceful, that life at Kesterwick, after all the fierce
-racket and excitement of the past years. Indeed, as day succeeded day,
-and brought nothing to disturb his darkness but the sound of Dorothy’s
-gentle voice, and the scent of flowers on the marshes when the wind
-blew towards the ocean, and the sharp strong odour of the sea when it
-set upon the land, Ernest could almost fancy that the past was nothing
-but a dream more or less ugly, and that this was a dream more or less
-pleasant, from which he should presently wake up and find himself a boy
-again.
-
-English villages change but little. Now and again a person dies, and
-pretty frequently some one is born; but, on the whole, the tide of time
-creeps on very imperceptibly, and though in the course of nature the
-entire population is changed every sixty years or so, nobody seems to
-realise that it is changing. There is so little in such places by which
-to mark the change. The same church-tower makes a landmark to the eye
-as it did centuries ago to the eyes of our ancestors, and the same
-clouds sweep across the same blue space above it. There are the same
-old houses, the same streams, and, above all, the same roads and lanes.
-If you could put one of our Saxon forefathers down in the neighbourhood
-of most of our country towns, he would have little difficulty in
-finding his way about. It is the men who change, not the places.
-
-Still there were some few changes at Kesterwick. Here and there the sea
-had taken another bite out of the cliff, notably on the north side of
-Dum’s Ness, out of which a large slice had gone, thus bringing the
-water considerably nearer to the house. Here and there a tree, too, had
-been cut down, or a cottage built, or a family changed its residence.
-For instance, Miss Florence Ceswick had suddenly shut up the Cottage,
-where she had remained ever since Eva’s marriage, seeing nothing of her
-sister or her sister’s husband, and had gone abroad—people said to
-Rome, to study art. For Florence had suddenly electrified the
-Kesterwick neighbourhood by appearing as an artist of tragic force and
-gruesome imagination. A large picture by her hand had been exhibited in
-the Royal Academy of the previous year, and, though the colouring was
-somewhat crude, it made a great and deserved sensation, and finally
-sold for a considerable sum.
-
-This picture represented a promontory of land running out far into a
-stormy ocean. The sky above the sea was of an inky blackness, except
-where a fierce ray of light from a setting sun pierced it, and impinged
-upon the boiling waters which surged round the low cliff of the
-promontory. On the extreme edge of the cliff stood a tall and lovely
-woman. The wind caught the white robe she wore and pressed it against
-her, revealing the extraordinary beauty of her form, and, lifting her
-long fair locks, tossed them in wild confusion. She was bending
-forward, pointing with her right hand at the water, with such a look of
-ghastly agony upon her beautiful face and in the great gray eyes, that
-people of impressionable temperament were wont to declare it haunted
-their sleep for weeks. Down below her, just where the fierce ray lit up
-the heaving waters, gleamed a naked corpse. It was that of a young man,
-and was slowly sinking into the unfathomable darkness of the depths,
-turning round and round as it sank. The eyes and mouth were wide open,
-and the stare of the former appeared to be fixed upon those of the
-woman on the cliff. Lastly, over the corpse, in the storm-wreaths above
-their heads, there hovered on steady wings a dim female figure, with
-its arm thrown across the face as though to hide it. In the catalogue
-this picture was called “The Lost Lover,” but speculation was rife as
-to what it meant.
-
-Dorothy heard of it, and went to London to see it. The first thing that
-struck her about the work was the extraordinary contrast it presented
-to the commonplace canvases by which it was surrounded, of reapers, of
-little girls frisking with baa-lambs, and nude young women musing
-profoundly on the edge of pools, as though they were trying to solve
-the great question—to wash or not to wash. But presently the horror of
-the picture laid hold upon her, and seemed to fascinate her, as it had
-so many others. Then she became aware that the faces were familiar to
-her, and suddenly it broke upon her mind that the sinking corpse was
-Ernest, and the agonised woman, Eva. She examined the faces more
-attentively. There was no doubt about it. Florence, with consummate
-art, had changed the colouring of the hair and features, and even to a
-great extent altered the features themselves; but she had preserved the
-likeness perfectly, both upon the dead face of the murdered man, and in
-the horror-inspired eyes of his lover. The picture made her sick with
-fear—she could not tell why—and she hurried from Burlington House full
-of dread of the terrible mind that had conceived it.
-
-There had been no intercourse between the two women since Eva’s
-marriage. Florence lived quite alone at the Cottage, and never went out
-anywhere; and if they met by any chance, they passed with a bow. But
-for all that, it was a relief to Dorothy to hear that she was not for
-some long time to see that stern face with its piercing brown eyes.
-
-In Dum’s Ness itself there appeared to be no change at all. Except that
-Mr. Cardus had built a new orchid-house at the back—for as he grew
-older his mania for orchids increased rather than diminished—the place
-was exactly the same. Even the arrangement of the sitting-room was
-unchanged, and on its familiar bracket rested the case which Jeremy had
-made containing the witch’s head.
-
-The people in the house to all appearance had changed as little as the
-house itself. Jeremy confided to Ernest that Doll had grown rather
-“tubby,” which was his elegant way of indicating that she had developed
-a very pretty figure, and that Grice (the old housekeeper) was as
-skinny as a flayed weasel, and had eyes like the point of a knife.
-Ernest maliciously repeated these sayings to the two ladies concerned,
-with the result that they were both furious. Then he retreated, and
-left them to settle it with Jeremy.
-
-Old Atterleigh, too, was almost exactly the same, except that of late
-years his intellect seemed to have brightened a little. It was,
-however, difficult to make him understand that Ernest was blind,
-because the latter’s eyes looked all right. He retained some
-recollection of him, and brought him his notched stick to show him
-that, according to his (“hard-riding Atterleigh’s”) calculation, his
-time of service with the devil, otherwise Mr. Cardus, would expire in a
-few months. Dorothy read what the old man wrote upon his slate, and
-repeated it to Ernest; for, he being practically dumb and Ernest being
-blind, that was the only way in which they could communicate.
-
-“And what will you do then?” asked Ernest. “You will be wretched
-without any writs to fill up. Who will look after the lost souls, I
-should like to know?”
-
-The old man at once wrote vigorously on his slate:
-
-“I shall go out hunting on the big black horse you brought with you; he
-will carry my weight.”
-
-“I should advise you not to try,” said Ernest, laughing; “he does not
-like strange riders.” But the old man, at the mere thought of hunting,
-was striding up and down the room, clanking his spurs and waving his
-hunting crop with his uninjured arm.
-
-“Is your grandfather as much afraid of my uncle as ever, Doll?”
-
-“Oh yes, I think so; and do you know, Ernest, I don’t quite like the
-way he looks at him sometimes.”
-
-Ernest laughed. “I should think that the old boy is harmless enough,”
-he said.
-
-“I hope so,” said Dorothy.
-
-When first they came back to Dum’s Ness, Jeremy was at a great loss to
-know what to do with himself, and was haunted by the idea that Mr.
-Cardus would want him to resume that stool in his office which years
-before he had quitted to go in search of Ernest. A week or so after his
-arrival, however, his fears were very pleasantly set at rest. After
-breakfast, Mr. Cardus sent for him to come into his office.
-
-“Well, Jeremy,” he said, letting his soft black eyes wander round that
-young gentleman’s gigantic form—for it was by now painfully large—not
-so much in height, for he was not six feet three—as in its great width,
-which made big men look like children beside him, and even dwarfed his
-old grandfather’s enormous frame—“well, Jeremy, what do you think of
-doing? You are too big for a lawyer; all your clients would be afraid
-of you.”
-
-“I don’t know about being too big,” said Jeremy, solemnly, “but I know
-that I am too great an ass. Besides, I can’t afford to spend several
-years in being articled at my time of life.”
-
-“Quite so. Then what do you propose doing?”
-
-“I don’t know from Adam.”
-
-“Well, how would you like to turn your sword to a plough-share, and
-become a farmer?”
-
-“I think that would suit me first-rate. I have some capital laid by.
-Ernest and I made a little money out there.”
-
-“No, I would not advise you to take a farm in that way; these are bad
-times. But I want a practical man to look after my land round
-here—salary £150. What do you say?”
-
-“You are very kind; but I doubt if I can boss that coach; I don’t know
-anything of the work.”
-
-“Oh, you will very soon learn; there is a capital bailiff; Stamp—you
-remember him—he will soon put you up to the ropes. So we will consider
-that settled.”
-
-Thus it was that our friend Jeremy entered on a new walk in life, and
-one which suited him very well. In less than a year’s time he grew
-aggressively agricultural, and one never met him but what he had a
-handful of oats, or a mangel-wurzel in his coat-tail pocket, which he
-was ready to swear were samples of the finest oats, mangel-wurzel, or
-whatever the particular agricultural product might be that ever had
-been, or were ever likely to be, grown.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI.
-HOW IT ALL CAME ABOUT
-
-
-How did it all come about?
-
-Let us try and discover. Dorothy and Ernest were together all day long.
-They only separated when Mazooku came to lead the latter off to bed. At
-breakfast-time he led him back again, and handed him over to Dorothy
-for the day. Not that our Zulu friend liked this; he did not like it at
-all. It was, he considered, his business to lead his master about, and
-not that of the “Rosebud,” who was, as he discovered, after all nothing
-but a girl connected with his master neither by birth nor marriage. And
-on this point there finally arose a difference of opinion between the
-Rosebud and Mazooku.
-
-The latter was leading Ernest for his morning walk, when Dorothy,
-perceiving it, and being very jealous of what she considered her
-rights, sallied out and took his hand from the great Zulu’s. Then did
-Mazooku’s long-pent indignation break forth.
-
-“O Rosebud, sweet and small Rosebud!” he commenced, addressing her in
-Zulu, of which, needless to say, she understood not one word, “why do
-you come and take my father’s hand out of my hand? Is not Mazimba my
-father blind, and am I not his dog, his old dog, to lead him in his
-blindness? Why do you take his bone from a dog?”
-
-“What is the man saying?” asked Dorothy.
-
-“He is offended because you come to lead me; he says that he is my dog,
-and that you snatch his bone from him: A pretty sort of bone indeed!”
-he added.
-
-“Tell him,” said Dorothy, “that here in this country I hold your hand.
-What does he want? Is he not always with you? Does he not sleep across
-your door? What more does he want?”
-
-Ernest translated her reply.
-
-“Ow!” said the Zulu, with a grunt of dissatisfaction.
-
-“He is a faithful fellow, Doll, and has stood by me for many years; you
-must not vex him.”
-
-But Dorothy, after the manner of loving women, was tenacious of what
-she considered _her_ rights.
-
-“Tell him that he can walk in front,” she said, putting on an obstinate
-little look—and she could look obstinate when she liked. “Besides,” she
-added, “he cannot be trusted to lead you. I am sure he was tipsy last
-night.”
-
-Ernest translated the first remark only—into the latter he did not care
-to inquire, for the Zulu vowed that he could never understand Dorothy’s
-English, and Mazooku accepted the compromise. Thus for awhile the
-difference was patched up.
-
-Sometimes Dorothy and Ernest would go out riding together; for, blind
-as he was, Ernest could not be persuaded to give up his riding. It was
-a pretty sight to see them; Ernest mounted on his towering black
-stallion, “The Devil,” which in his hands was as gentle as a lamb, but
-with everybody else fully justified his appellation, and Dorothy on a
-cream-coloured cob Mr. Cardus had given her, holding in her right hand
-a steel guiding-rein linked to “The Devil’s” bit. In this way they
-would wander all over the country-side, and sometimes, when a good
-piece of turf presented itself, even venture on a sharp canter. Behind
-them Mazooku rode as groom, mounted on a stout pony, with his feet
-stuck, Zulu fashion, well out at right-angles to his animal’s side.
-
-They were a strange trio.
-
-And so from week’s end to week’s end Dorothy was ever by Ernest’s side,
-reading to him, writing for him, walking and riding with him, weaving
-herself into the substance of his life.
-
-And at last there came one sunny August day, when they were sitting
-together in the shade of the chancel of Titheburgh Abbey. It was a
-favourite spot of theirs, for the gray old walls sheltered them from
-the glare of the sun and the breath of the winds. It was a spot, too,
-rich in memories of the dead past, and a pleasant place to sit.
-
-Through the gaping window-places came the murmur of the ocean and the
-warmth of the harvest sunshine; and gazing out by the chancel doorway,
-Dorothy could see the long lights of the afternoon dance and sparkle on
-the emerald waves.
-
-She had been reading to him, and the book lay idle on her knees as she
-gazed dreamily at those lights and shadows, a sweet picture of pensive
-womanhood. He, too, had relapsed into silence, and was evidently
-thinking deeply.
-
-Presently she roused herself.
-
-“Well, Ernest,” she said, “what are you thinking about? You are as dull
-as—as the dullest thing in the world, whatever that may be. What is the
-dullest thing in the world?”
-
-“I don’t know,” he answered, awakening. “Yes, I think I do; an American
-novel.”
-
-“Yes, that is a good definition. You are as dull as an American novel.”
-
-“It is unkind of you to say so, Doll, my dear. I was thinking of
-something, Doll.”
-
-She made a little face, which of course he could not see, and answered
-quickly:
-
-“You generally are thinking of something. You generally are thinking
-of—Eva, except when you are asleep, and then you are dreaming of her.”
-
-Ernest coloured up.
-
-“Yes,” he said, “it is true; she is often more or less in my mind. It
-is my misfortune, Doll, not my fault. You see, I do not do things by
-halves.”
-
-Dorothy bit her lip.
-
-“She should be vastly flattered, I am sure. Few women can boast of
-having inspired such affection in a man. I suppose it is because she
-treated you so badly. Dogs love the hand that whips them. You are a
-curious character, Ernest. Not many men would give so much to one who
-has returned so little.”
-
-“So much the better for them. If I had a son, I think that I should
-teach him to make love to all women, and to use their affection as a
-means of amusement and self-advancement, but to fall in love with
-none.”
-
-“That is one of your bitter remarks, for which I suppose we must thank
-Eva. You are always making them now. Let me tell you that there are
-good women in the world; yes, and honest, faithful women, who, when
-they have given their heart, are true to their choice, and would not do
-it violence to be made Queen of England. But you men do not go the
-right way to find them. You think of nothing but beauty, and never take
-the trouble to learn the hearts of the sweet girls who grow like
-daisies in the grass all round you, but who do not happen to have great
-melting eyes or a splendid figure. You tread them underfoot, and if
-they were not so humble they would be crushed, as you rush off and try
-to pick the rose; and then you prick your fingers and cry out, and tell
-all the daisies how shamefully the rose has treated you.”
-
-Ernest laughed, and Dorothy went on:
-
-“Yes, it is an unjust world. Let a woman but be beautiful and
-everything is at her feet, for you men are despicable creatures, and
-care for little except what is pleasant to the senses. On the other
-hand, let her be plain, or only ordinary-looking—for the fate of most
-of us is just to escape being ugly—and you pay as much regard to her as
-you do to the chairs you sit on. And yet, strange as it may seem to
-you, probably she has her feelings, and her capacities for high
-affection, and her imaginative power, all working vigorously behind her
-plain little face. Probably, too, she is better than your beauty.
-Nature does not give everything. When she endows a woman with perfect
-loveliness, she robs her either of her heart or her brains. But you men
-don’t see that, because you won’t look; so in course of time all the
-fine possibilities in Miss Plainface wither up, and she becomes a
-disappointed old maid, while my Lady Beauty pursues her career of
-selfishness and mischief-making, till at last she withers up too,
-that’s one comfort. We all end in bones, you know, and there isn’t much
-difference between us then.”
-
-Ernest had been listening with great amusement to Dorothy’s views. He
-had no idea that she took such matters into her shrewd consideration.
-
-“I heard a girl say the other day that, on the whole, most women
-preferred to become old maids,” he said.
-
-“Then she told fibs; they don’t. It isn’t natural that they should—that
-is, if they care for anybody. Just think, there are more than ten
-hundred thousand of our charming sisterhood in these islands, and more
-women being born every day! Ten hundred thousand restless, unoccupied,
-disgusted, loveless women! It is simply awful to think of. I wonder
-they don’t breed a revolution. If they were all beautiful, they would.”
-
-He laughed again.
-
-“Do you know what remedy Mazooku would apply to this state of affairs?”
-
-“No.”
-
-“The instant adoption of polygamy. There are no unmarried women among
-the Natal Zulus, and as a class they are extremely happy.”
-
-Dorothy shook her head.
-
-“It wouldn’t do here; it would be too expensive.”
-
-“I say, Doll, you spoke just now of our ‘charming sisterhood’; you are
-rather young to consider yourself an old maid. Do you want to become
-one?”
-
-“Yes,” she said sharply.
-
-“Then _you_ don’t care for anybody, eh?”
-
-She blushed up furiously.
-
-“What business is that of yours, I should like to know?” she answered.
-
-“Well, Doll, not much. But will you be angry with me if I say
-something?”
-
-“I suppose you can say what you like.”
-
-“Yes; but will you listen?”
-
-“If you speak I cannot help hearing.”
-
-“Well, then, Doll—now don’t be angry, dear.”
-
-“O Ernest, how you aggravate me! Can’t you get it out and have done
-with it?”
-
-“All right, Doll, I’ll steam straight ahead this time. It is this. I
-have sometimes lately been vain enough to think that you cared a little
-about me, Doll, although I am as blind as a bat. I want to ask you if
-it is true. You must tell me plain, Doll, because I cannot see your
-eyes to learn the truth from them.”
-
-She turned quite pale at his words, and her eyes rested upon his blind
-orbs with a look of unutterable tenderness. So it had come at last.
-
-“Why do you ask me that question. Ernest? Whether or no I care for you,
-I am very sure that you do not care for me.”
-
-“You are not quite right there, Doll, but I will tell you why I ask it;
-it is not out of mere curiosity.
-
-“You know all the history of my life, Doll, or at least most of it. You
-know how I loved Eva, and gave her all that a foolish youngster can
-give to a weak woman—gave it in such a way that I can never have it
-back again. Well, she deserted me; I have lost her. The best happiness
-of my life has been wrecked beyond redemption; that is a fact which
-must be accepted as much as the fact of my blindness. I am physically
-and morally crippled, and certainly in no fit state to ask a woman to
-marry me on the ground of my personal advantages. But if, my dear Doll,
-you should, as I have sometimes thought, happen to care about anything
-so worthless, then, you see, the affair assumes a different aspect.”
-
-“I don’t quite understand you. What do you mean?” she said, in a low
-voice.
-
-“I mean that in that case I will ask you if you will take me for a
-husband.”
-
-“You do not love me, Ernest; I should weary you.”
-
-He felt for her hand, found it, and took it in his own. She made no
-resistance.
-
-“Dear,” he said, “it is this way: I can never give you that passion I
-gave to Eva, because, thank God, the human heart can know it but once
-in a life; but I can and will give you a husband’s tenderest love. You
-are very dear to me, Doll, though it is not in the same way that Eva is
-dear. I have always loved you as a sister, and I think that I should
-make you a good husband. But, before you answer me, I want you to
-thoroughly understand about Eva. Whether I marry or not, I fear that I
-shall never be able to shake her out of my mind. At one time I thought
-that perhaps if I made love to other women I might be able to do so, on
-the principle that one nail drives out another. But it was a failure;
-for a month or two I got the better of my thoughts, then they would get
-the better of me again. Besides, to tell you the truth, I am not quite
-sure that I wish to do so. My trouble about this woman has become a
-part of myself. It is, as I told you, my ‘evil destiny,’ and goes where
-I go. And now, dear Doll, you will see why I asked you if you really
-cared for me before I asked you to marry me. If you do not care for me,
-then it will clearly not be worth your while to marry me, for I am
-about as poor a catch as a man can well be; if you do—well, then it is
-a matter for your consideration.”
-
-She paused awhile and answered:
-
-“Suppose that the positions were reversed, Ernest; at least, suppose
-this: suppose that you had loved your Eva all your life, but she had
-not loved you except as a brother, having given her heart to some other
-man, who was, say, married to somebody else, or in some way separated
-from her. Well, supposing that this man died, and that one day Eva came
-to you and said, ‘Ernest, my dear, I cannot love you as I loved him who
-has gone, and whom I one day hope to rejoin in heaven; but if you wish
-it, and it will make you the happier, I will be your true and tender
-wife.’ What should you answer her, Ernest?”
-
-“Answer? why, I suppose that I should take her at her word and be
-thankful. Yes, I think that I should take her at her word.”
-
-“And so, dear Ernest, do I take you at your word; for as it is with you
-about Eva, so it is with me about you. As a child I loved you; ever
-since I have been a woman I have loved you more and more, even through
-all those cold years of absence. And when you came back, ah, then it
-was to me as it would be to you if you suddenly once more saw the light
-of day. Ernest, my beloved, you are all my life to me, and I take you
-at your word, my dear. I will be your wife.”
-
-He stretched out his arms, found her, drew her to him, and kissed her
-on the lips.
-
-“Doll, I don’t deserve that you should love me so; it makes me feel
-ashamed that I have not more to give you in return.”
-
-“Ernest, you will give me all you can; I mean to make you grow very
-fond of me. Perhaps one day you will give me everything.”
-
-He hesitated a little while before he spoke again.
-
-“Doll,” he said, “you are quite sure that you do not mind about Eva?”
-
-“My dear Ernest, I accept Eva as a fact, and make the best of her, just
-as I should if I wanted to marry a man with a monomania that he was
-Henry VIII.”
-
-“Doll, you know I call her my evil destiny. The fact is, I am afraid of
-her; she overpowers my reason. Well, now, Doll, what I am driving at is
-this: supposing—not that I think she will—that she were to crop up
-again, and take it into her head to try and make a fool of me! She
-_might_ succeed, Doll.”
-
-“Ernest, will you promise me something on your honour?”
-
-“Yes, dear.”
-
-“Promise me that you will hide from me nothing that passes between Eva
-and yourself, if anything ever should pass, and that in this matter you
-will always consider me not in the light of a wife, but of a trusted
-friend.”
-
-“Why do you ask me to promise that?”
-
-“Because then I shall, I hope, be able to keep you both out of trouble.
-You are not fit to look after yourselves, either of you.”
-
-“I promise. And now, Doll, there is one more thing. It is somehow fixed
-in my mind that my fate and that woman’s are intertwined. I believe
-that what we are now passing through is but a single phase of
-interwoven existence; that we have, perhaps, already passed through
-many stages, and that many higher stages and developments await us. Of
-course, it may be fantasy, but at any rate I believe it. The question
-is, do you care to link your life with that of a man who holds such a
-belief?”
-
-“Ernest, I daresay your belief is a true one, at any rate for you who
-believe it, for it seems probable that as we sow so shall we reap, as
-we spiritually imagine so shall we spiritually inherit, since causes
-must in time produce effects. These beliefs are not implanted in our
-hearts for nothing, and surely in the wide heavens there is room for
-the realisation of them all. But I too have my beliefs, and one of them
-is, that in God’s great Hereafter every loving and desiring soul will
-be with the soul thus loved and desired. For him or her, at any rate,
-the other will be there, forming a part of his or her life, though,
-perhaps, it may elsewhere and with others also be pursuing its own
-desires and satisfying its own aspirations. So you see, Ernest, your
-beliefs will not interfere with mine, nor shall I be afraid of losing
-you in another place.
-
-“And now, Ernest, my heart’s love, take my hand, and let me lead you
-home; take my hand, as you have taken my heart, and never leave go of
-it again till at last I die.”
-
-And so hand in hand they went home together, through the lights and
-shadows of the twilight.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII.
-MAZOOKU’S FAREWELL
-
-
-Dorothy and Ernest got back to Dum’s Ness just in time to dress for
-dinner, for since Ernest and Jeremy had come back, Dorothy, whose will
-in that house was law, had instituted late dinner. The dinner passed
-over as usual, Dorothy sitting between Ernest and her grandfather, and
-attending to the wants of those two unfortunates, both of whom would
-have found it rather difficult to get through their meal without her
-gentle, unobtrusive help. But when dinner was over and the cloth
-removed, and Grice had placed the wine upon the table and withdrawn, an
-unusual thing happened.
-
-Ernest asked Dorothy to fill his glass with port, and when she had done
-so he said:
-
-“Uncle and Jeremy, I am going to ask you to drink a health.”
-
-The old man looked up sharply. “What is it, Ernest, my boy?”
-
-As for Dorothy, she blushed a rosy red, guessing what was coming, and
-not knowing whether to be pleased or angry.
-
-“It is this, uncle—it is the health of my future wife, Dorothy.”
-
-Then came a silence of astonishment. Mr. Cardus broke it:
-
-“Years ago, Ernest, my dear nephew, I told you that I wished this to
-come to pass; but other things happened to thwart my plans, and I never
-expected to see it. Now in God’s good time it has come, and I drink the
-health with all my heart. My children, I know that I am a strange man,
-and my life has been devoted to a single end, which is now drawing near
-its final development; but I have found time in it to learn to love you
-both. Dorothy, my daughter, I drink your health. May the happiness that
-was denied to your mother fall upon your head, her share and your share
-too! Ernest, you have passed through many troubles, and have been
-preserved almost miraculously to see this day. In Dorothy you will find
-a reward for everything, for she is a good woman. Perhaps I shall never
-live to see your happiness and the children of your happiness—I do not
-think I shall; but may the solemn blessing I give you now rest upon
-your dear heads! God bless you both, my children. All peace go with
-you, Dorothy and Ernest!”
-
-“Amen!” said Jeremy, in a loud voice, and with a vague idea that he was
-in church. Then he got up and shook Ernest’s hand so hard in his
-fearful grip that the latter was constrained to holloa out, and lifted
-Dolly out of her chair like a plaything, and kissed her boisterously,
-knocking the orchid-bloom she wore out of her hair in the process. Then
-they all sat down again and beamed at one another and drank
-port-wine—at least the men did—and were inanely happy.
-
-Indeed, the only person to whom the news was not satisfactory was
-Mazooku.
-
-“Ou!” he said, with a grunt, when Jeremy communicated it to him. “So
-the Rosebud is going to become the Rose, and I shan’t even be able to
-lead my father to bed now. Ou!” And from that day forward Mazooku’s
-abstracted appearance showed that he was meditating deeply on
-something.
-
-Next morning his uncle sent for Ernest into the office. Dorothy led him
-in.
-
-“O, here you are!” said his uncle.
-
-“Yes, here we are, Reginald,” answered Dorothy; “what is it? Shall I go
-away?”
-
-“No, don’t go away. What I have to say concerns you both. Come and look
-at the orchids, Ernest; they are beautiful. Ah!” he went on,
-stammering, “I forgot you can’t see them. Forgive me.”
-
-“Never mind, uncle, I can smell them;” and they went into the
-blooming-house appropriated to the temperate kinds.
-
-At the end of this house was a little table and some iron chairs, where
-Mr. Cardus would sometimes come and smoke a cigarette. Here they sat
-down.
-
-“Now, young people,” said Mr. Cardus, wiping his bald head, “you are
-going to get married. May I ask what you are going to get married on?”
-
-“By Jove,” said Ernest, “I never thought of that! I haven’t got much,
-except a title, a mansion with ‘numerous and valuable’ heirlooms, and
-one hundred and eighty acres of park,” he added, laughing.
-
-“No, I don’t suppose you have; but, luckily for you both, I am not so
-badly off, and I mean to do something for you. What do you think would
-be the proper thing? Come, Dorothy, my little housewife, what do you
-reckon you can live on—living here, I mean, for I suppose that you do
-not mean to run away and leave me alone in my old age, do you?”
-
-Dorothy wrinkled up her forehead as she used to as a child, and began
-to calculate upon her fingers. Presently she answered:
-
-“Three hundred a year comfortably, quietly on two.”
-
-“What!” said Mr. Cardus, “when the babies begin to come?”
-
-Dorothy blushed, old gentlemen are so unpleasantly out-spoken, and
-Ernest jumped, for the prospect of unlimited babies is alarming till
-one gets used to it.
-
-“Better make it five hundred,” he said.
-
-“Oh,” said Mr. Cardus, “that’s what you think, is it? Well, I tell you
-what I think. I am going to allow you young people two thousand a year
-and pay the housekeeping bills.”
-
-“My dear uncle, that is far more than we want.”
-
-“Nonsense, Ernest! it is there and to spare; and why should you not
-have it, instead of its piling up in the bank or in investments? There
-are enough of them now, I can tell you. Everything that I have touched
-has turned to gold; I believe it has often been the case with
-unfortunate men. Money! I have more than I know what to do with, and
-there are idiots who think that to have lots of money is to be happy.”
-
-He paused awhile and then went on:
-
-“I would give you more, but you are both comparatively young, and I do
-not wish to encourage habits of extravagance in you. The world is full
-of vicissitudes, and it is impossible for anybody to know how he may be
-pecuniarily situated in ten years’ time. But I wish you, Ernest, to
-keep up your rank—moderately, if you like, but still to keep it up.
-Life is all before you now, and whatever you choose to go in for, you
-shall not want the money to back you. Look here, my children, I may as
-well tell you that when I die you will inherit nearly all I have got; I
-have left it to be divided equally between you, with reversion to the
-survivor. I drew up that will some years back, and I do not think that
-it is worth while altering it now.”
-
-“Forgive me,” said Ernest, “but how about Jeremy?”
-
-Mr. Cardus’s face changed a little. He had never got over his dislike
-of Jeremy, though his sense of justice caused him to stifle it.
-
-“I have not forgotten Jeremy,” he said, in a tone that indicated that
-he did not wish to pursue the conversation.
-
-Ernest and Dorothy thanked the old man for his goodness, but he would
-not listen, so they went off and left him to return to his
-letter-writing. In the passage Dorothy peeped through the glass half of
-the door which opened into her grandfather’s room.
-
-There sat the old man writing, writing, his long iron-gray hair hanging
-all about his face. Presently he seemed to think of something, and a
-smile, which the contorted mouth made ghastly, spread itself over the
-pallid countenance. Rising, he went to the corner and extracted a long
-tally-stick on which notches were cut. Sitting down again, he counted
-the remaining notches over and over, and then took a penknife and cut
-one out. This done, he put the stick back, and, looking at the wall,
-began to mutter—for he was not quite dumb—and to clasp and unclasp his
-powerful hand. Dorothy entered the room quickly.
-
-“Grandfather, what are you doing?” she said sharply.
-
-The old man started, and his jaw dropped. Then the eyes grew dull, and
-his usual apathetic look stole over his face. Taking up his slate, he
-wrote, “Cutting out my notches.”
-
-Dorothy asked him some farther questions, but could get nothing more
-out of him.
-
-“I don’t at all like the way grandfather has been going on lately,” she
-said to Ernest. “He is always muttering and clinching his hand, as
-though he had some one by the throat. You know he thinks that he has
-been serving the fiend all these years, and that his time will be up
-shortly, whereas you know, though Reginald had no cause to love him, he
-has been very kind to him. If it had not been for Reginald, my
-grandfather would have been sent to the madhouse; but because he was
-connected with his loss of fortune, he thinks he is the devil. He
-forgets how he served Reginald; you see even in madness the mind only
-remembers the injuries inflicted on itself, and forgets those it
-inflicted on others. I don’t at all like his way.” “I should think that
-he had better be shut up.”
-
-“Oh, Reginald would never do it. Come, dear, let us go out.”
-
-It was a month or so after Mr. Cardus’s announcement of his pecuniary
-intentions that a little wedding-party stood before the altar in
-Kesterwick Church. It was a very small party, consisting, indeed, only
-of Ernest, Dorothy, Mr. Cardus, Jeremy, and a few idlers, who, seeing
-the church door open, had strolled in to see what was going on. Indeed,
-the marriage had been kept a profound secret; for since he had been
-blind, Ernest had developed a great dislike to being stared at. Nor,
-indeed, had he any liking for the system under which a woman proclaims
-with loud and unseemly rejoicings that she has found a man to marry
-her, and the clan of her relations celebrate her departure with a few
-outward and visible tears and much inward and spiritual joy.
-
-But among that small crowd, unobserved by any of them, quite close up
-in the shadow of one of the massive pillars, sat a veiled woman. She
-sat quite quiet and still; she might have been carved in stone; but as
-the service went on she raised her thick veil, and fixed her keen brown
-eyes upon the two who stood before the altar. And as she did so, the
-lips of this shadowy lady trembled a little, and a mist of trouble rose
-from the unhealthy marshes of her mind and clouded her fine cut
-features. Long and steadily she gazed, then dropped the veil again, and
-said beneath her breath:
-
-“Was it worth while for this? Well, I have seen him.”
-
-Then this shadowy noble-looking lady rose, and glided from the church,
-bearing away with her the daunting burden of her sin.
-
-And Ernest? He stood there and said the responses in his clear manly
-voice; but even as he did so there rose before him the semblance of the
-little room in faraway Pretoria, and of the vision which he had had of
-this very church, and of a man standing where he himself stood now, and
-a lovely woman standing where stood Dorothy his wife. Well, it was
-gone, as all visions go—as we, who are but visions of a longer life, go
-too. It was gone—gone into that limbo of the past which is ever opening
-its insatiable maw and swallowing us and our joys and our
-sorrows—making a meal of the atoms of to-day that it may support itself
-till the atoms of to-morrow are ready for its appetite.
-
-It was gone, and he was married, and Dorothy his wife stood there
-wreathed in smiles and blushes which he could not see, and Mr.
-Halford’s voice, now grown weak and quavering, was formulating
-heartfelt congratulations, which were being repeated in the gigantic
-echo of Jeremy’s deep tones, and in his uncle’s quick jerky utterances.
-So he took Dorothy his wife into his arms and kissed her, and she led
-him down the church to the old vestry, into which so many thousand
-newly married couples had passed during the course of the last six
-centuries, and he signed his name where they placed his pen upon the
-parchment, wondering the while if he was signing it straight, and then
-went out, and was helped into the carriage, and driven home.
-
-Ernest and his wife went upon no honeymoon; they stopped quietly there
-at the old house, and began to accustom themselves to their new
-relationship. Indeed, to the outsider at any rate, there seemed to be
-little difference between it and the former one; for they could not be
-much more together now than they had been before. Yet in Dorothy’s face
-there was a difference. A great peace, an utter satisfaction which had
-been wanting before, came down and brooded upon it, and made it
-beautiful. She both looked and was a happy woman.
-
-But to the Zulu Mazooku this state of affairs did not appear to be
-satisfactory.
-
-One day—it was three days after the marriage—Ernest and Dorothy were
-walking together outside the house, when Jeremy, coming in from a visit
-to a distant farm, advanced, and, joining them, began to converse on
-agricultural matters; for he was already becoming intensely and
-annoyingly technical. Presently, as they talked, they became aware of
-the sound of naked feet running swiftly over the grass.
-
-“That sounds like a Zulu dancing,” said Ernest, quickly.
-
-It was a Zulu; it was Mazooku, but Mazooku transformed. It had been his
-fancy to bring a suit of war finery, such as he had worn when he was
-one of Cetywayo’s soldiers, with him from Natal; and now he had donned
-it all, and stood before them, a striking yet alarming figure. From his
-head a single beautiful gray feather, taken from the Bell crane, rose a
-good two feet into the air; around his waist hung a kilt of white
-ox-tails, and beneath his right knee and shoulder were small circles of
-white goat’s hair. For the rest, he was naked. In his left hand he held
-a milk-white fighting shield made of ox-hide, and in his right his
-great “bangwan,” or stabbing assegai. Still as a statue he stood before
-them, his plume bending in the breeze; and Dorothy, looking with
-wondering eyes, marvelled at the broad chest scarred all over with
-assegai wounds, and the huge sinewy limbs. Suddenly he raised the
-spear, and saluted in sonorous tones:
-
-“Koos! Baba!”
-
-“Speak,” said Ernest.
-
-“I speak, Mazimba, my father. I come to meet my father as a man meets a
-man. I come with spear and shield, but not in war. With my father I
-came from the land of the sun into this cold land, where the sun is as
-pale as the white faces it shines on. Is it not so, my father?”
-
-“I hear you.”
-
-“With my father I came. Did not my father and I stand together for many
-a day? Did I not slay the two Basutus down in the land of Secocoeni,
-chief of the Bapedi, at my father’s bidding? Did I not once save my
-father from the jaws of the wild beast that walks by night—from the
-fangs of the lion? Did I not stand by the side of my father at the
-place of the Little Hand, when all the plain of Isandhlwana was red
-with blood? Do I dream in the night, or was it so, my father?”
-
-“I hear you. It was so.”
-
-“Then when the heavens above smelt out my father, and smote him with
-their fire, did I not say, ‘Ah, my father, now art thou blind, and
-canst fight no more, and no more play the part of a man. Better that
-thou hadst died a man’s death, O my father! But as thou art blind, lo!
-whither thou goest, thither will I go also and be my father’s dog.’ Did
-I not say this, O Mazimba, my father?”
-
-“Thou didst say it.”
-
-“And so we sailed across the black water, thou Mazimba and I and the
-great Lion, like unto whom no man was ever born of woman, and came
-hither, and have lived for many moons the lives of women, have eaten
-and drunken, and have not fought or hunted, or known the pleasure of
-men. Is it not so, Mazimba, my father?”
-
-“Thou speakest truly, Mazooku; it is even so.”
-
-“Yes, we sailed across the black water in the smoking ship, sailed to
-the land of wonders, which is full of houses and trees, so that a man
-cannot breathe in it, or throw out his arms lest they should strike a
-wall; and, behold! there came an ancient one with a shining head
-wonderful to look on, and a girl Rosebud, small but very sweet, and
-greeted my father and the Lion, and led them away in the carriages
-which put the horses inside them, and set them in this place, where
-they may look for ever at the sadness of the sea.
-
-“And then, behold, the Rosebud said, ‘What doth this black dog here?
-Shall a dog lead Mazimba by the hand? Begone, thou black dog, and walk
-in front or ride behind; it is I who will hold Mazimba’s hand.’
-
-“Then my father, sinking deep in ease, and becoming a fat man, rich in
-oxen and waggons and corn, said to himself, ‘I will take this Rosebud
-to wife.’ And so the Rosebud opened her petals, and closed them round
-my father, and became a Rose; and now she sheds her fragrance round him
-day by day and night by night, and the black dog stands and howls
-outside the door.
-
-“And so, my father, it came to pass that Mazooku, thy ox and thy dog,
-communed with his heart, and said: ‘Here is no more any place for thee.
-Mazimba thy chief has no longer any need of thee, and behold in this
-land of women thou, too, shalt grow like a woman. So get up and go to
-thy father, and say to him, “O my father, years ago I put my hand
-between thy hands, and became a loyal man to thee; now I would withdraw
-it, and return to the land whence we came; for here I am not wanted,
-and here I cannot breathe.”’ I have spoken, O my father and my chief.”
-
-“Mazooku, umdanda ga Ingoluvu, umfana ga Amazulu” (son of Ingoluvu,
-child of the Zulu race), answered Ernest, adopting the Zulu metaphor,
-his voice sounding wonderfully soft as the liquid tongue he spoke so
-well came rolling out, “thou hast been a good man to me, and I have
-loved thee. But thou shalt go. Thou art right: now is my life the life
-of a woman; never again shall I hear the sound of the rifle or the
-ringing of steel in war. And so thou goest, Mazooku. It is well. But at
-times thou wilt think of thy blind master Mazimba, and of Alston, the
-wise captain who sleeps, and of the Lion who threw the ox over his
-shoulder. Go, and be happy. Many be thy wives, many thy children, and
-countless thy cattle! The Lion shall take thee by the hand and lead
-thee to the sea, and shall give thee of my bounty wherewith to buy a
-little food when thou comest to thine own land, and a few oxen, and a
-piece of ground, or a waggon or two, so that thou shalt not be hungry,
-nor want for cattle to give for wives. Mazooku, fare thee well!”
-
-[Illustration: Mazooku’s Farewell.]
-
-“One word, Mazimba, my father, and I will trouble thine ears no more,
-since for thee my voice shall be silent for ever. When the time has
-come for thee to die, and thou dost pass, as the white men say, up
-‘into the heavens above,’ and thy sight dawns again, and thou art once
-more a man eager for battle, then turn thee and cry with a loud voice:
-‘Mazooku, son of Ingoluvu, of the tribe of the Maquilisini, where art
-thou, O my dog? Come thou and serve me!’ And surely, if I still live,
-then shall I hear thy voice, and groan and die, that I may pass to
-thee; and if I be already dead, then shall I be there at thy side even
-as thou callest. This thou wilt do for me, O Mazimba, my father and my
-chief, because, lo! I have loved thee as the child loves her who
-suckled it, and I would look upon thy face again, O my father from the
-olden time, my chief from generation to generation!”
-
-“If it be in my power, this I will do, Mazooku.”
-
-The great Zulu drew himself up, raised his spear, and for the first and
-last time in his life gave Ernest the royal salute—to which, by the
-way, he had no right at all—“_Bayte, Bayte!_” Then he turned and ran
-swiftly thence, nor would he see Ernest again before he went. “The pain
-of death was over,” he said.
-
-As the sound of his footsteps grew faint, Ernest sighed.
-
-“There goes our last link with South Africa, Jeremy, my boy. It is a
-good thing, for he was growing too fond of the bottle; they all do
-here. But it makes me very sad, and sometimes I think that, as Mazooku
-says, it is a pity we did not go under with Alston and the others. It
-would all have been over now.”
-
-“Thank you,” said Jeremy, after reflecting; “on the whole, I am pretty
-comfortable as I am.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII.
-MR. CARDUS ACCOMPLISHES HIS REVENGE
-
-
-Mr. de Talor owed his great wealth not to his own talents, but to a
-lucky secret in the manufacture of the grease used on railways
-discovered by his father. Talor _pre_ had been a railway-guard till his
-discovery brought him wealth. He was a shrewd man, however, and on his
-sudden accession of fortune did his best to make a gentleman of his
-only son, at that date a lad of fifteen. But it was too late; the
-associations and habits of childhood are not easily overcome, and no
-earthly power or education could accomplish the desired object. When
-his son was twenty years of age, old Jack Talor died, and his son
-succeeded to his large fortune and a railway-grease business which
-supplied the principal markets of the world.
-
-This son had inherited a good deal of his father’s shrewdness, and set
-himself to make the best of his advantages. First he placed a “de”
-before his name, and assumed a canting crest. Next he bought the
-Ceswick Ness estates, and bloomed into a country gentleman. It was
-shortly after this latter event that he made a mistake, and fell in
-love with the beauty of the neighbourhood, Mary Atterleigh. But Mary
-Atterleigh would have none of him, being at the time secretly engaged
-to Mr. Cardus. In vain did he resort to every possible means to shake
-her resolution, even going so far as to try to bribe her father to put
-pressure upon her; but at this time old Atterleigh, “Hard-riding
-Atterleigh,” as he was called, was well off, and resisted his advances,
-whereupon De Talor, in a fit of pique, married another woman, who was
-only too glad to put up with his vulgarity in consideration of his
-wealth and position as a county magnate.
-
-Shortly afterwards three events occurred almost simultaneously.
-“Hard-riding Atterleigh” got into money difficulties through
-over-gratification of his passion for hounds and horses; Mr. Cardus was
-taken abroad for the best part of a year in connection with a business
-matter and a man named Jones, a friend of Mr. de Talor’s staying in his
-house at the time, fell in love with Mary Atterleigh. Herein De Talor
-saw an opportunity of revenge upon his rival, Mr. Cardus. He urged upon
-Jones that his real road to the possession of the lady lay through the
-pocket of her father, and even went so far as to advance him the
-necessary funds to bribe Atterleigh; for though Jones was well off, he
-could not at such short notice lay hands upon a sufficient sum in cash
-to serve his ends.
-
-The plot succeeded. Atterleigh’s scruples were overcome as easily as
-the scruples of men in his position without principle to back them
-generally are, and pressure of a most outrageous sort was brought to
-bear upon the gentle-minded Mary, with the result that when Mr. Cardus
-returned from abroad he found his affianced bride the wife of another
-man, who became in due course the father of Jeremy and Dolly.
-
-This cruel and most unexpected bereavement drove Mr. Cardus partially
-mad, and when he came to himself there arose in his mind a monomania
-for revenge on all concerned in bringing it about. It became the
-passion and object of his life. Directing all his remarkable
-intelligence and energy to the matter, he early discovered the heinous
-part that De Talor had played in the plot, and swore to devote his life
-to the unholy purpose of avenging it. For years he pursued his enemy,
-trying plan after plan to achieve his ruin, and as one failed fell back
-upon another. But to ruin a man of De Talor’s wealth was no easy
-matter, especially when, as in the present instance, the avenger was
-obliged to work like a mole in the dark, never allowing his enemy to
-suspect that he was other than a friend. How he ultimately achieved his
-purpose the reader shall now learn.
-
-Ernest and Dorothy had been married about three weeks, and the latter
-was just beginning to get accustomed to hearing herself called Lady
-Kershaw, when one morning a dogcart drove up to the door, and out of it
-emerged Mr. de Talor.
-
-“Dear me, how Mr. de Talor has changed of late!” said Dorothy, who was
-looking out of the window.
-
-“How? Has he grown less like a butcher?” asked Ernest.
-
-“No,” she answered; “but he looks like a used-up butcher about to go
-through the Bankruptcy Court.”
-
-“Butchers never go bankrupt,” said Ernest; and at that moment Mr de
-Talor came in.
-
-Dorothy was right; the man was much changed. The fat cheeks were flabby
-and fallen, the insolent air was gone, and he was so shrunken that he
-looked not more than half his former size.
-
-“How do you do, Lady Kershaw? I saw Cardus ’ad got some one with him,
-so I drove round to pay my respects and congratulate the bride. Why,
-bless me. Sir Ernest, you ’ave grown since I saw you last! Ah, we used
-to be great friends then. You remember how you used to come and shoot
-up at the Ness” (he had once or twice given the two lads a day’s
-rabbit-shooting). “But, bless me, I hear that you have become quite a
-fire-eater since then, and been knocking over the niggers right and
-left—eh?”
-
-He paused for breath, and Ernest said a few words, not many, for he
-disliked the man’s flattery as much as in past years he used to dislike
-his insolence.
-
-“Ah,” went on De Talor, looking up and pointing to the case containing
-the witch’s head, “I see you’ve still got that beastly thing your
-brother once showed me; I thought it was a clock, and he pretty well
-frightened me out of my wits. Now I think of it, I’ve never ’ad any
-luck since I saw that thing.”
-
-At this moment the housekeeper Grice came to say that Mr. Cardus was
-ready to see Mr. de Talor if he would step into the office. Dorothy
-thought that their visitor turned paler at this news, and it evidently
-occupied his mind sufficiently to cause him to hurry from the room
-without bidding them good-bye.
-
-When Mr. de Talor entered the office he found the lawyer pacing up and
-down.
-
-“How do you do, Cardus?” he said jauntily.
-
-“How do you do, Mr. de Talor?” was the cold reply.
-
-De Talor walked to the glass door and looked at the glowing mass of
-blooming orchids.
-
-“Pretty flowers, Cardus, those, very. Orchids, ain’t they? Must have
-cost you a pot of money.”
-
-“They have not cost me much, Mr. de Talor; I have reared most of them.”
-
-“Then you are lucky; the bill my man gives me for his orchids is
-something awful.”
-
-“You did not come to speak to me about orchids, Mr. de Talor.”
-
-“No, Cardus, I didn’t; business first, pleasure afterwards—eh?”
-
-“Yes,” said Mr. Cardus, in his soft, jerky way. “Business first,
-pleasure afterwards.”
-
-Mr. de Talor fidgeted his legs about.
-
-“Well, Cardus, about that mortgage. You are going to give me a little
-more time, I hope?”
-
-“On the contrary, Mr. de Talor, the interest being now eight months
-overdue, I have given my London agents orders to foreclose, for I don’t
-conduct such business myself.”
-
-De Talor turned pale. “Foreclose! Good God, Cardus! it is not
-possible—on such an old friend too!”
-
-“Excuse me, it is not only possible, but a fact. Business is business,
-even where _old friends_ are concerned.”
-
-“But if you foreclose, what is to become of me, Cardus?”
-
-“That, I imagine, is a matter for your exclusive consideration.”
-
-His visitor gasped, and looked like an unfortunate fish suddenly pulled
-out of the water.
-
-“Let us recapitulate the facts. I have at different periods within the
-last several years lent you sums of money secured on your landed
-estates at Ceswick’s Ness and the neighbourhood, amounting in
-all”—referring to a paper—“to one hundred and seventy-six thousand five
-hundred and thirty-eight pounds ten shillings and fourpence; or,
-reckoning in the overdue interest, to one hundred and seventy-nine
-thousand and fifty-two pounds eight shillings. That is so, I think.”
-
-“Yes, I suppose so, Cardus.”
-
-“There is no supposition about it. The documents prove it.”
-
-“Well, Cardus?”
-
-“Well, Mr. de Talor; and now, as you cannot pay, I have instructed my
-London agents to commence an action in Chancery for the sale of the
-lands, and to buy in the property. It is a most desirable property.”
-
-“O Cardus, don’t be rough on me! I am an old man now, and you led me
-into this speculation.”
-
-“Mr. de Talor, I also am an old man; if not very old in years, at least
-as old as Methuselah in heart.”
-
-“I don’t understand it all, Cardus.”
-
-“It will give me the greatest pleasure to explain. But to do so I must
-go back a little. Some ten or twelve years ago, you may remember,” he
-began, sitting down with his back to the light, which struck full on
-the wretched De Talor’s face, “that a firm named Rastrick and Codley
-took out a patent for a new railway-grease, and set up an establishment
-in Manchester not far from the famous De Talor house, which was
-established by your father.”
-
-“Yes, curse them!” groaned De Talor.
-
-Mr. Cardus smiled.
-
-“By all means, curse them. But what did this enterprising firm do, Mr.
-de Talor? They set to work, and sold a grease superior to the article
-manufactured by your house, at about eighteen per cent. cheaper. But
-the De Talor house had the ear of the markets, and the contracts with
-all the leading lines and Continental firms, and for awhile it seemed
-as though the new house must go to the wall; and if they had not had
-considerable capital at command, they must have gone to the wall.”
-
-“Ah, and where did they get it from? That’s the mystery,” said De
-Talor.
-
-“Precisely; that was the mystery. I shall clear it up a little
-presently. To return. After awhile the buyers began to find that
-Rastrick and Codley’s grease was a better grease and a cheaper grease,
-and as the contracts lapsed, the companies renewed them, not with the
-De Talor house, but with the house of Rastrick and Codley. Doubtless
-you remember.”
-
-Mr. de Talor groaned in acquiescence, and the lawyer continued: “In
-time this state of affairs produced its natural results—De Talor’s
-house was ruined, and the bulk of the trade fell into the hands of the
-new firm.”
-
-“Ah, I should just like to know who they really were—the low sneaks!”
-
-“Would you? I will tell you. The firm of Rastrick and Codley
-were—Reginald Cardus, solicitor, of Dum’s Ness.”
-
-Mr. de Talor struggled out of his chair, looked wildly at the lawyer,
-and sank down again.
-
-“You look ill; may I offer you a glass of wine?”
-
-The wretched man shook his head.
-
-“Very good. Doubtless you are curious to know how I, a lawyer, and not
-otherwise connected with Manchester, obtained the monopoly of the
-grease trade, which is, by the way, at this moment paying very well. I
-will satisfy your curiosity. I have always had a mania for taking up
-inventions, quite quietly, and in the names of others. Sometimes I have
-made money over them, sometimes I have lost; on the whole, I have made
-largely. But whether I have made or lost, the inventors have, as a
-rule, never known who was backing them. One day, one lucky day, this
-railway-grease patent was brought to my notice. I took it up and
-invested fifty thousand in it straight off the reel. Then I invested
-another fifty thousand. Still your firm cut my throat. I made an
-effort, and invested a third fifty thousand. Had I failed, I should
-then have been a ruined man; I had strained my credit to the utmost.
-But fortune favours the brave, Mr. de Talor, and I succeeded. It was
-your firm that failed. I have paid all my debts, and I reckon that the
-railway-grease concern is worth, after paying liabilities, some two
-hundred thousand pounds. If you should care to go in for it, Messrs.
-Rastrick and Codley will, I have no doubt, be most happy to treat with
-you. It has served its purpose, and is now in the market.”
-
-De Talor looked at him with amazement. He was too upset to speak.
-
-“So much, Mr. de Talor, for my share in the grease episode. The failure
-of your firm, or rather its stoppage from loss of trade, left you still
-a rich man, but only half as rich as you had been. And this, you may
-remember, made you furious. You could not bear the idea of losing
-money; you would rather have lost blood from your veins than sovereigns
-from your purse. When you thought of the grease which had melted in the
-fire of competition, you could have wept tears of rage. In this plight
-you came to me to ask advice.”
-
-“Yes; and you told me to speculate.”
-
-“Not quite accurate, Mr. de Talor. I said—I remember the words
-well—‘You are an able man, and understand the money market; why don’t
-you take advantage of these fluctuating times, and recoup yourself for
-all you have lost?’ The prospect of gain tempted you, Mr. de Talor, and
-you jumped at the idea. You asked me to introduce you to a reliable
-firm, and I introduced you to Messrs. Campsey and Ash, one of the best
-in the City.”
-
-“Confound them for a set of rogues!” answered De Talor.
-
-“Rogues! I am sorry you think so, for I have an interest in their
-business.”
-
-“Good heavens! what next?” groaned De Talor.
-
-“Well, notwithstanding the best efforts of Messrs. Campsey and Ash on
-your behalf, in pursuance of such written instructions as you from time
-to time communicated to them, and to which you can no doubt refer if
-you please, things went wrong with you, Mr. de Talor, and year by year,
-when your balance-sheet was sent in, you found that you had lost more
-than you gained. At last, one unlucky day, about three years ago, you
-made a plunge against the advice, you may remember, of Messrs. Campsey
-and Ash, and lost. It was after that, that I began to lend you money.
-The first loan was for fifty thousand; then came more losses, and more
-loans, till at length we had reached the present state of affairs.”
-
-“O Cardus, you don’t mean to sell me up, do you? What shall I do
-without money? And think of my daughters: ’ow will they manage without
-their comforts? Give me time. What makes you so rough on me?”
-
-Mr. Cardus had been walking up and down the room rapidly. At De Talor’s
-words he stopped, and going to a despatch-box, unlocked it, and drew
-from a bundle of documents a yellow piece of stamped paper. It was a
-cancelled bill for ten thousand pounds in the favour of Jonas de Talor,
-Esquire. This bill he came and held before his visitor’s eyes.
-
-“That, I believe, is your signature,” he said quietly, pointing to the
-receipt written across the bill.
-
-De Talor turned almost livid with fear, and his lips and hands began to
-tremble.
-
-“Where did you get that?” he asked.
-
-Mr. Cardus regarded him, or rather all round him, with the melancholy
-black eyes that never looked straight at anything, and yet saw
-everything, and then answered:
-
-“Among your friend Jones’s papers. You scoundrel!” he went on, with a
-sudden change of manner, “now perhaps you begin to understand why I
-have hunted you down step by step: why for thirty years I have waited,
-and watched, and failed, and at last succeeded. It is for the sake of
-Mary Atterleigh. It was you who, infuriated because she would have none
-of such a coarse brute, set the man Jones on to her. It was you who
-lent him the money with which to buy her from old Atterleigh. There
-lies the proof before you. By the way, Jones need never have repaid you
-that ten thousand pounds, for it was marriage-brokage, and therefore
-not recoverable at law. It was you, I say, who were the first cause of
-my life being laid waste, and who nearly drove me to the madhouse, ay,
-who did drive Mary, my betrothed wife, into the arms of that fellow,
-whence, God be praised! she soon passed to her rest.”
-
-Mr. Cardus paused, breathing quick with suppressed rage and excitement;
-the large white eyebrows contracted till they nearly met, and,
-abandoning his usual habit, he looked straight into the eyes of the
-abject creature in the chair before him.
-
-“It’s a long while ago, Cardus; can’t you forgive, and let bygones be
-bygones?”
-
-“Forgive! Yes, for my own sake, I could forgive; but for her sake, whom
-you first dishonoured and then killed, I will never forgive. Where are
-your companions in guilt? Jones is dead; I ruined him. Atterleigh is
-there; I did not ruin him, because, after all, he was the author of
-Mary’s life; but his ill-gotten gains did him no good; a higher power
-than mine took vengeance on his crime, and I saved him from the
-madhouse. And Jones’s children, they are here too, for once they lay
-beneath _her_ breast. But do you think that I will spare you, you
-coarse arrogant knave—you, who spawned the plot? No, not if it were to
-cost me my own life, would I forego one jot or tittle of my revenge!”
-
-At that moment Mr. Cardus happened to look up, and saw through the
-glass part of the door of his office, of which the curtain was
-partially drawn, the wild-looking head of Hard-riding Atterleigh. He
-appeared to be looking through the door, for his eyes, in which there
-was a very peculiar look, were fixed intently upon Mr. Cardus’s face.
-When he saw that he was observed, he vanished.
-
-“Now go,” said the lawyer sternly to the prostrate De Talor; “and never
-let me see your face again!”
-
-“But I haven’t any money; where am I to go?” groaned De Talor.
-
-“Wherever you like, Mr. de Talor—this is a free country; but, if I had
-control of your destination, it should be—to the devil!”
-
-The wretched man staggered to his feet.
-
-“All right, Cardus; I’ll go, I’ll go. You’ve got it all your own way
-now. You are damned hard, you are; but perhaps you’ll get it taken out
-of you some day. I’m glad you never got hold of Mary; it must have been
-pleasant to you to see her marry Jones.”
-
-In another second he was gone, and Mr. Cardus was left thinking, among
-other things, of that look in old Atterleigh’s eyes, which he could not
-get out of his mind. Thus did he finally accomplish the revenge to
-which he had devoted his life.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX.
-MAD ATTERLEIGH’S LAST RIDE
-
-
-A month had passed since Mr. de Talor had crept, utterly crushed, from
-the presence of the man whom Providence had appointed to mete out to
-him his due. During this time Mr. Cardus had been busy from morning
-till night. He was always a busy man, writing daily with his own hand
-an almost incredible number of letters; for he carried on all, or
-nearly all, his great affairs by correspondence, but of late his work
-seemed to have doubled.
-
-In the course of that month the society in the neighbourhood of
-Kesterwick experienced a pleasurable sensation of excitement, for
-suddenly the De Talor family vanished off the face of the Kesterwick
-world, and the Ceswick Ness estates, after being advertised, were put
-up for sale, and bought, so said report, by a London firm of lawyers on
-behalf of an unknown client. The De Talors were gone, where to nobody
-knew, nor did they much care to inquire—that is, with the exception of
-the servants whose wages were left unpaid, and the tradespeople to whom
-large sums were owing. They inquired vigorously enough, but without the
-smallest result; the De Talors had gone and left no trace, except the
-trace of bankruptcy, and Kesterwick knew them no more, but was glad
-over the sensation made by their disappearance.
-
-But on one Saturday Mr. Cardus’s business seemed to come to a sudden
-stop. He wrote some letters and put them in the post-bag, and then he
-went to admire his orchids.
-
-“Life,” he said aloud to himself, “shall be all orchids now; my work is
-done. I will build a new house for Brazilian sons, and spend two
-hundred pounds on stocking it. Well, I can afford it.”
-
-This was about five o’clock. Half an hour later, when he had well
-examined his flowers, he strolled out Titheburgh Abbey way, and here he
-met Ernest and his wife, who had been sitting in their favourite spot.
-
-“Well, my dears,” he said, “and how are you?”
-
-“Pretty well, uncle, thank you; and how are you?”
-
-“I? Oh, I am very jolly indeed for an old man; as jolly as an
-individual who has just bid good-bye to work for ever should be,” he
-said.
-
-“Why, Reginald, what _do_ you mean?”
-
-“Mean, Dorothy, my dear? I mean that I have wound up my affairs and
-retired on a modest competence. Ah, you young people should be grateful
-to me, for let me tell you that everything is now in apple-pie order,
-and when I slip off you will have no trouble at all, except to pay the
-probate duty, and that will be considerable. I never quite knew till a
-week ago how rich I was; but, as I said the other day, everything I
-have touched has turned to gold. It will be a large fortune for you to
-manage, my dears; you will find it a great responsibility.”
-
-“I hope you will live many years to manage it yourself,” said Ernest.
-
-“Ah, I don’t know, I am pretty tough; but who can see the future?
-Dolly, my dear girl,” he went on, in a dreamy way, “you are growing
-like your mother. Do you know, I sometimes think that I am not far off
-her now; you see I speak plainly to you two. Years ago I used to
-think—that is, sometimes—that your mother was dust and nothing more;
-that she had left me for ever; but of late I have changed my ideas. I
-have seen,” he went on, speaking in an absent way, as though he were
-meditating to himself, “how wonderfully Providence works even in the
-affairs of this imperfect world, and I begin to believe that there must
-be a place where it allows itself a larger development. Yes, I think I
-shall find your mother somewhere, Dorothy, my dear. I seem to feel her
-very near me sometimes. Well, I have avenged her.”
-
-“I think that you will find her, Reginald,” she answered; “but your
-vengeance is wicked and wrong. I have often made bold to tell you so,
-though sometimes you have been angry with me, and I tell you so again.
-It can only bring evil with it. What have we poor creatures to do with
-vengeance, who do not understand the reason of things, and can scarcely
-see an inch before our noses?”
-
-“Perhaps you are right, my love—you generally are right in the main;
-but my desire for vengeance upon that man De Talor has been the breath
-of my nostrils, and behold! I have achieved it. Man, if he only lives
-long enough, and has strength of will enough can achieve anything. But
-man fritters away his powers over a variety of objects; he is led
-astray in pursuit of the butterfly Pleasure, or the bubble Ambition, or
-the Destroying Angel Woman; and his purposes fall to the ground between
-a dozen stools. Most men, too, are not capable of a purpose. Men are
-weak creatures; and yet what a mighty seed lies hid in every human
-breast! Think, my children, what man might, nay, may become, when his
-weakness and follies have fallen from him, when his rudimentary virtues
-have been developed, and his capacities for physical and mental
-beauties brought to an undreamed of perfection! Look at the wild flower
-and the flower of the hot-house—it is nothing compared to the
-possibilities inherent in man, even as we know him. It is a splendid
-dream! Will it ever be fulfilled, I wonder? Well, well—
-
-‘Whatever there is to know
-That we shall know one day.’
-
-
-Come, let us turn; it will soon be time to dress for dinner. By the
-way, Dorothy, that reminds me. I don’t quite like the way that your
-respected grandfather is going on. I told him that I had no more deeds
-for him to copy, that I had done with deeds, and he went and got that
-confounded stick of his, and showed me that according to his own little
-calculations his time was up; and then he got his slate and wrote about
-my being the devil on it, but that I had no more power over him, and
-that he was bound for heaven. The other day, too, I caught him staring
-at me through the glass of the door with a very queer look in his
-eyes.”
-
-“Ah, Reginald, so you have noticed it! I quite agree with you; I don’t
-at all like his goings-on. Do you know, I think that he had better be
-shut up.”
-
-“I don’t like to shut him up, Dorothy. However, here we are; we will
-talk about it to-morrow.”
-
-Having led Ernest to his room, Dorothy, before beginning to dress
-herself, went to the office to see if her grandfather was still there.
-And there, sure enough, she found him, pacing up and down, muttering,
-and waving his long stick, out of which all the notches had now been
-cut.
-
-“What are you doing, grandfather?” she asked; “why haven’t you gone to
-dress?”
-
-He snatched up his slate and wrote rapidly upon it:
-
-“Time’s up! Time’s up! Time’s up! I’ve done with the devil and all his
-works. I’m off to heaven on the big black horse to find Mary. Who are
-you? You look like Mary.”
-
-“Grandfather,” said Dolly, quietly taking the slate out of his hand,
-“what do you mean by writing such nonsense? Let me hear no more of it.
-You ought to be ashamed of yourself. Now, mind, I will have no more of
-it. Put away that stick, and go and wash your hands for dinner.”
-
-The old man did as he was bid somewhat sulkily, Dorothy thought; but
-when he arrived at the dinner-table there was nothing noticeable about
-his manner.
-
-They dined at a quarter to seven, and dinner did not take them very
-long. When it was over, old Atterleigh drank some wine, and then,
-according to his habit, went and sat in the ancient ingle-nook which
-had presumably been built by the forgotten Dum for his comfort on
-winter evenings. And on winter evenings, when there was a jolly
-wood-fire burning on the hearth, it was a pleasant spot enough; but to
-sit there in the dark on a lovely summer night was an act, well—worthy
-of old Atterleigh.
-
-After dinner the conversation turned upon that fatal day when Alston’s
-Horse was wiped out at Isandhlwana. It was a painful subject both to
-Ernest and Jeremy, but the former was gratifying his uncle’s curiosity
-by explaining to him how that last dread struggle with the six Zulus
-came to determine itself in their favour.
-
-“And how was it,” asked Mr. Cardus, “that you managed to get the better
-of the fellow you rolled down the hill with?”
-
-“Because the assegai broke, and, fortunately enough, the blade was left
-in my hand. Where is it, Doll?” (for Jeremy had brought it home with
-him.)
-
-Dorothy got up and reached the broken assegai, which had about eight
-inches of the shaft, from its place over the mantelpiece.
-
-“Now then, Jeremy, if you would be so good as to sprawl upon your back
-on the floor, I will just show my uncle what happened.”
-
-Jeremy complied, not without grumbling about dirtying his dress-coat.
-
-“Now, Jeremy, my boy, where are you? O, there! Well, excuse my taking
-the liberty of kneeling on your chest, and holloa out if the assegai
-goes into you. If we are going to have a performance at all, it may as
-well be a realistic one. Now, uncle, you see when we finished rolling,
-which was just as this assegai snapped in two, as luck would have it I
-was uppermost, and managed to get my knee on my friend’s left arm and
-to hold his right with my left. Then, before he could get loose, I
-drove this bit of spear through the side of his throat, just there, so
-that it cut the jugular vein, and he died shortly afterwards; and now
-you know all about it.”
-
-Here Ernest rose and laid the spear upon the table, and Jeremy,
-entering into the spirit of the thing, began to die as artistically as
-a regard for his dress-coat would allow. Just then Dorothy, looking up,
-saw her grandfather Atterleigh’s distorted face peering round the wall
-of the ingle-nook, where he was sitting in the dark, and looking at the
-scene of mimic slaughter with that same curious gaze that he had worn
-on several occasions lately. He withdrew his head at once.
-
-“Get up, Jeremy!” said his sister, sharply, “and stop writhing about
-there like a great snake. You look as though you had been murdered; it
-is horrible!”
-
-Jeremy arose laughing, and, having obtained Dorothy’s permission, they
-all lit their pipes, and, sitting there in the fading light, fell to
-talking about that sad scene of slaughter, which indeed appeared that
-night to have a strange fascination for Mr. Cardus. He asked Ernest and
-Jeremy about it again and again—how this man was killed, and that?—did
-they die at once? and so on.
-
-The subject was always distressing to Ernest, and one to which he
-rarely alluded, full as it was for him of the most painful
-recollections, especially those connected with his dear friend Alston
-and his son.
-
-Dorothy knew this, and knew too that Ernest would be low spirited, for
-at least a day after the conversation, which she did her best to stop.
-At last she succeeded; but the melancholy associations connected with
-the talk had apparently already done their work, for everybody lapsed
-into the most complete silence, and sat grouped together at the top end
-of the old oak table as quietly as though they were cut in stone.
-Meanwhile, the twilight deepened, and little gusts of wind arose, and
-gently shook the old-fashioned window-lattices, making a sound as
-though feeble hands were trying to throw them open. The dull evening
-light crept from place to place, and threw great shadows about the
-room, glanced upon the armour on its panelled walls, and at last began
-to die away into darkness. The whole scene was eerie, and for some
-unknown reason it oppressed Dorothy. She wondered why everybody was so
-silent, and yet she herself did not feel equal to breaking the silence;
-there was a load upon her heart.
-
-Just then a curious thing happened. As may be remembered, the case
-containing the wonderful mummied head, found by Eva Ceswick, had years
-before been placed by Jeremy upon a bracket at the end of the room.
-Round about this case hung various pieces of armour, and among others,
-above it, suspended by a piece of string from a projecting hook, was a
-heavy iron gauntlet. For many years—twenty or more—it had hung from the
-hook, but now at last the string was worn through, and even as Dorothy
-was wondering at the silence it gave. Down came the heavy iron hand
-with a crash, and, as it passed, it caught the latch of the long
-air-tight case, and jarred the door wide open.
-
-Everybody in the room sprang to their feet, and, as they did so, a last
-ray from the setting sun struggled through one of the windows and
-rested upon the open case, staining it, and all about it, the hue of
-blood, and filling the fearful crystal eyes within with a lurid light.
-How they glowed and shone, to be sure, after their long years of
-sleep!—for the case had scarcely been opened for years—while their
-tremulous glance, now dull, now intense, according as the light played
-upon them, appeared to wander round and round the room, as though in
-search of somebody or something.
-
-It was an awful sight which that ray of sunlight showed, as it played
-upon the trembling crystal orbs, the scornful, deathly features, and
-the matchless hair that streamed on either side. Together with the
-sudden break in the silence, caused by the crashing fall of the
-gauntlet, as it had done many years before, it proved altogether too
-much for the beholder’s nerves.
-
-“What is that?” asked Ernest, with a start, as the gauntlet fell.
-
-Dorothy glanced up and gave a little cry of horror. “Oh, that dreadful
-head! it is looking at us.”
-
-They all rose to their feet, and Dorothy, seizing Ernest by one hand,
-and covering her eyes with the other, retreated, slowly followed by the
-others, towards the swing-door. Soon they had reached the door, were
-through it, down the passage, and out into the peaceful stillness of
-the evening. Then Jeremy spoke, and his language was more forcible than
-polite.
-
-“Well, I am blowed!” he said, wiping the cold perspiration from his
-forehead.
-
-“Oh, Reginald, I do wish you would get that horrible thing out of the
-house; there has been nothing but misfortune ever since it has been
-here. I cannot bear it, I cannot bear it!” said Dolly, hysterically.
-
-“Nonsense, you superstitious child!” answered Mr. Cardus, who was now
-recovering from his start. “The gauntlet knocked the door open, that
-was all. It is nothing but a mummied head; but, if you don’t like it, I
-will send it to the British Museum to-morrow.”
-
-“Oh, please do, Reginald,” answered Dorothy, who appeared quite
-unhinged.
-
-So hurried had been their retreat from the room that everybody had
-forgotten “Hard-riding Atterleigh” sitting in the dark in the
-ingle-nook. But the bustle in the room had attracted him, and already,
-before they had left, he had projected his large head covered with the
-tangled gray locks, and begun to stare about. Presently his eyes fell
-upon the crystal orbs, and then, to him, the orbs appeared to cease
-their wanderings and rest upon his eyes. For awhile the two heads
-stared at each other thus—the golden head without a body in the box,
-and the gray head that, thrust out as it were from the ingle-wall,
-seemed to have no body either. They stared and stared, till at last the
-golden head got the mastery of the grey head, and the old man crept
-from his corner, crept down the room till he was almost beneath the
-baleful eyes, and _nodded, nodded, nodded_ at them.
-
-And they, too, seemed to _nod, nod, nod_ at him. Then he retreated
-backwards as slowly as he had come, nodding all the while, till he came
-to where the broken assegai lay upon the table, and, taking it, thrust
-it up his sleeve. As he did so, the ray of light faded and the fiery
-eyes went out. It was as though the thick white lids and long eyelashes
-had dropped over them.
-
-None of the other four returned to the sitting-room that night.
-
-When he had recovered from his fright, Jeremy went into his little
-room, the same in which he used to stuff birds as a boy, and busied
-himself with his farm accounts. Mr. Cardus, Dorothy, and Ernest walked
-about together in the balmy moonlight, for, very shortly after the
-twilight had departed, the great harvest-moon came up and flooded the
-world with light. Mr. Cardus was in a talkative, excited mood that
-night. He talked about his affairs, which he had now finally wound up,
-and about Mary Atterleigh, mentioning little tricks of manner and voice
-which were reproduced in Dorothy. He talked too about Ernest’s and
-Dorothy’s marriage, and said what a comfort it was to him. Finally,
-about ten o’clock, he said that he was tired and was going to bed.
-
-“God bless you, my dears; sleep well! Good-night,” he said. “We will
-settle about that new orchid-house to-morrow. Good-night, good-night.”
-
-Shortly afterwards Dorothy and Ernest also went to bed, reaching their
-room by a back entrance, for they neither of them felt inclined to come
-under the fire of the crystal eyes again, and soon they were asleep in
-each other’s arms.
-
-The minutes stole on one by one through the dead silence of the night,
-bearing their records with them to the archives of the past. Eleven
-o’clock came and fled away; midnight came too, and swept on bat-like
-wings across the world. Everywhere—on land, sky, and sea—there was
-silence, nothing but silence sleeping in the moonlight.
-
-
-
-
-_Hark!_ Oh, heavens, what was that!
-
-One fearful, heartrending yell of agony, ringing all through the
-ancient house, rattling the casements, shaking the armour against the
-panelled walls, pulsing and throbbing in horrible notes out into the
-night, echoing and dying far away over the sea! And then silence again,
-silence sleeping in the moonlight.
-
-They sprang from their beds, did every living soul beneath that roof,
-and rushed in their night-gear, men and women together, into the
-sitting-room. The crystal eyes seemed to be awake again, for the moon
-was up and played upon them, causing them now and then to flash out in
-gleams of opalescent light.
-
-Somebody lit a candle, somebody missed Mr. Cardus; surely he could
-never have slept through that! Yes, he had slept through it. They
-rushed and tumbled, a confused mass of white, into the room where he
-lay. He was there sure enough, and he slept very sound, with a red gash
-in his throat, from which the blood fell in heavy drops, down, down to
-the ground.
-
-They stood aghast, and as they stood, from the courtyard outside there
-came a sound of galloping hoofs. They knew the sound of the galloping;
-it was that of Ernest’s great black stallion!
-
-
-
-
-A mile or more away out on the marshes, just before you come to the
-well-known quicksands, which have, tradition says, swallowed so many
-unfortunates, and which shudder palpably at times and are unpleasant to
-look on, stands a lock-house, inhabited by one solitary man, who has
-charge of the sluice. On this very night it is necessary for him to
-open his sluice-gates at a particular moment, and now he stands
-awaiting that propitious time. He is an ancient mariner; his hands are
-in his pockets, his pipe is in his mouth, his eyes are fixed upon the
-sea. We have met him before. Suddenly he hears the sound of a powerful
-horse galloping furiously. He turns, and his hair begins to rise upon
-his head, for this is what he sees in the bright moonlight:
-
-Fast, fast towards him thunders a great coal-black horse, snorting with
-mingled rage and terror, and on its bare back there sits a man with a
-grip of iron—an old man, for his gray locks stream out behind him—who
-waves above his head the fragment of a spear.
-
-On they come. Before them is the wide sluice; if they are mortal, they
-will turn or plunge into it. No; the great black horse gathers himself,
-and springs into the air.
-
-By Heaven, he has cleared it! No horse ever took that leap before, or
-will again. On at whirlwind speed towards the shuddering quicksand two
-hundred yards away!
-
-_Splash!_ Horse and man are in it, making the moist mass shake and
-tremble for twenty yards round. The bright moonlight shows it all. The
-horse shrieks in fear and agony, as only a horse can; the man on its
-back waves the spear.
-
-The horse vanishes, the man vanishes; the spear glitters an instant
-longer in the moonlight, and then vanishes too. They have all vanished
-for ever.
-
-They have all vanished, and again the perfect silence sleeps in the
-moonlight.
-
-“Bust me!” says the ancient one, aloud, and shaking with a mortal
-dread; “bust me, I have stood still and seed many a queer thing, but I
-never seed a thing like that!” And he turned and fled fast as his old
-legs would carry him, forgetful of Dutch cheeses and of sluice-gates,
-forgetful of everything except that demon horse and man.
-
-Thus ended “Hard-riding Atterleigh’s” maddest gallop, and thus, too
-ended the story of Mr. Cardus and his revenge.
-
-[Illustration: Mad Atterleigh’s last Ride.]
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X.
-DOROTHY’S TRIUMPH
-
-
-Some years passed before Eva Plowden returned to Kesterwick, and then
-she was carried thither. Alive she did not return, nor during all those
-years did she and Ernest ever meet.
-
-They buried her, in obedience to her last wishes, there in the
-churchyard where lay generation upon generation of her ancient race,
-and the daisies grew above her head. Twice had they bloomed above her
-before Sir Ernest Kershaw stood by the spot, hallowed by the presence
-of what once held the spirit of the woman he had loved.
-
-Ernest was now getting well into middle life, and Dorothy’s bright hair
-was slightly lined with gray, as they stood that summer evening by
-Eva’s grave. Many things had happened to the pair since Mr. Cardus’s
-tragic death. They had had children—some they had lost, some
-remained—honest English lads and lasses, with their father’s eyes. They
-had enjoyed great wealth, and spent it royally, giving with both hands
-to all who needed. They had drunk deep of the cup of this world’s joys
-and sorrows. Ernest had gone into Parliament for a couple of years, and
-made something of a name there. Then, impatient for the active life of
-other days, he had accepted a high Colonial appointment, for which,
-notwithstanding his blindness, his wealth and parliamentary reputation
-eminently fitted him. Now he was just about to leave to fill the
-governorship of one of the Australian colonies.
-
-Long years had passed, many things had happened; and yet as he stood by
-that heap of turf, which he could not see, it seemed but yesterday
-when—and he sighed.
-
-“Not quite cured yet, Ernest?” said Dorothy, interrogatively.
-
-“Yes, Dorothy,” he answered, with a little sigh, “I think I am cured.
-At any rate,” he went on, as she took his hand to lead him away from
-the grave, “I have learned to accept the decrees of Providence without
-murmuring. I have done with dreams, and outlived pessimism. Life would,
-it is true, have been a different thing for me if poor Eva had not
-deserted me, for she poisoned its waters at the fount, and so they have
-always tasted bitter. But happiness is not the end and object of man’s
-existence; and if I could I do not think I would undo the past. Take me
-to the old flat tombstone, Dolly, near the door.”
-
-She led him to it, and he sat down.
-
-“Ah,” he went on, “how beautiful she was! Was there ever woman like
-her, I wonder? And now her bones lie there; her beauty is all gone; and
-there lives of her only the unending issues of _what she did._ I have
-only to think, Dolly, and I can see her as I saw her a score of times
-passing in and out of this church-door. Yes, I can see her, and the
-people round her, and the clothes she wore, and the smile in her
-beautiful dark eyes—for her eyes seemed to smile, you remember, Dolly.
-How I worshipped her, too, with all my heart and soul and strength, as
-though she were an angel! And that was my mistake, Dolly. She was only
-a woman—a weak woman.”
-
-“You said just now that you were cured, Ernest; one would hardly think
-it to hear you talk,” put in Dorothy, smiling.
-
-“Yes, Doll, I am cured; you have cured me, my dear wife, for you have
-crept into my life, and taken possession of it, so that there is little
-room for anybody else; and now, Dorothy, I love you with all my heart.”
-
-She pressed his hand and smiled again, for she knew that she had
-triumphed, and that he did love her, truly love her, and that his
-passion for Eva was a poor thing compared to what it had been years
-before—more indeed of a tender regret, not unmingled with a starry
-hope, than a passion at all. Dorothy was a clever little person, and
-understood something of Ernest and the human heart in general. She had
-thought long ago that she would win Ernest altogether to her in the
-end. By what tenderness, by what devotion and nobility of character she
-accomplished this, those who know her can well imagine, but in the end
-she did accomplish it, as she deserved to. The contrast between the
-conduct of the two women who had mainly influenced his life was too
-marked for Ernest, a man of a just and reasonable mind, to altogether
-ignore; and when once he came to comparisons the natural results
-followed. And yet, though he learned to love Dorothy so dearly, it
-cannot be said that he forgot Eva; because there are things that some
-men can never forget, since they are a part of their inner life, and of
-these first love is unfortunately one.
-
-“Ernest,” went on Dorothy, “you remember what you told me when you
-asked me to marry you in Titheburgh Abbey, about your belief that your
-affection for Eva would outlast this world. Do you still believe that?”
-
-“Yes, Doll, to a great extent.”
-
-His wife sat and thought for a minute.
-
-“Ernest,” she said presently.
-
-“Yes, dear.”
-
-“I have managed to hold my own against Eva in this world, when she had
-all the chances and all the beauty on her side, and what I have to say
-about your theories now is, that when we get to the next, and are all
-beautiful, it will be very strange if I don’t manage to hold my own
-there. She had her chance, and she threw it away; now I have got mine,
-and I don’t mean to throw it away, either in this world or the next.”
-
-Ernest laughed a little. “I must say, my dear, it would be a very poor
-heaven if you were not there.”
-
-“I should think so, indeed. ‘Those whom God hath joined together let
-not man put asunder’—nor woman either. But what is the good of our
-stopping here to talk such stuff about things of which we really
-understand nothing? Come, Ernest, Jeremy and the boys will be waiting
-for us.”
-
-And so hand in hand they went on homeward through the quiet twilight.
-
-
-
-*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE WITCH’S HEAD ***
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
-United States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that:
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without
-widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/65998-0.zip b/old/65998-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 918b109..0000000
--- a/old/65998-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/65998-h.zip b/old/65998-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index b33e423..0000000
--- a/old/65998-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/65998-h/65998-h.htm b/old/65998-h/65998-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 125195a..0000000
--- a/old/65998-h/65998-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,21704 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
-"http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
-<head>
-<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
-<meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
-<title>The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Witch's Head, by H. Rider Haggard</title>
-<link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
-<style type="text/css">
-
-body { margin-left: 20%;
- margin-right: 20%;
- text-align: justify; }
-
-h1, h2, h3, h4, h5 {text-align: center; font-style: normal; font-weight:
-normal; line-height: 1.5; margin-top: .5em; margin-bottom: .5em;}
-
-h1 {font-size: 300%;
- margin-top: 0.6em;
- margin-bottom: 0.6em;
- letter-spacing: 0.12em;
- word-spacing: 0.2em;
- text-indent: 0em;}
-h2 {font-size: 150%; margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 1em;}
-h3 {font-size: 130%; margin-top: 1em;}
-h4 {font-size: 120%;}
-h5 {font-size: 110%;}
-
-.no-break {page-break-before: avoid;} /* for epubs */
-
-div.chapter {page-break-before: always; margin-top: 4em;}
-
-hr {width: 80%; margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 2em;}
-
-p {text-indent: 1em;
- margin-top: 0.25em;
- margin-bottom: 0.25em; }
-
-.p2 {margin-top: 2em;}
-
-p.poem {text-indent: 0%;
- margin-left: 10%;
- font-size: 90%;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em; }
-
-p.letter {text-indent: 0%;
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em; }
-
-p.noindent {text-indent: 0% }
-
-p.center {text-align: center;
- text-indent: 0em;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em; }
-
-p.right {text-align: right;
- margin-right: 10%;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em; }
-
-p.footnote {font-size: 90%;
- text-indent: 0%;
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em; }
-
-sup { vertical-align: top; font-size: 0.6em; }
-
-div.fig { display:block;
- margin:0 auto;
- text-align:center;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;}
-
-p.caption {font-weight: bold;
- text-align: center; }
-
-a:link {color:blue; text-decoration:none}
-a:visited {color:blue; text-decoration:none}
-a:hover {color:red}
-
-</style>
-
-</head>
-
-<body>
-
-<div style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Witch’s Head, by H. Rider Haggard</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: The Witch’s Head</p>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: H. Rider Haggard</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Illustrator: Charles Kerr</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: August 5, 2021 [eBook #65998]<br />
-[Most recently updated: October 16, 2021]</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Character set encoding: UTF-8</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Produced by: Larry Dunn</div>
-
-<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE WITCH’S HEAD ***</div>
-
-<div class="fig" style="width:55%;">
-<img src="images/cover.jpg" style="width:100%;" alt="[Illustration]" />
-</div>
-
-<h1>The Witch&rsquo;s Head</h1>
-
-<h2 class="no-break">by H. Rider Haggard</h2>
-
-<p class="center">
-AUTHOR OF
-</p>
-
-<p class="center">
-&ldquo;DAWN,&rdquo; &ldquo;MR. MEESON&rsquo;S WILL,&rdquo; &ldquo;ALLAN&rsquo;S
-WIFE,&rdquo; &ldquo;KING SOLOMON&rsquo;S MINES,&rdquo; &ldquo;SHE,&rdquo;
-&ldquo;JESS,&rdquo; ETC. ETC.<br/><br/><br/>
-</p>
-
-<p class="center">
-WITH SIXTEEN FULL-PAGE ILLUSTRATIONS BY CHARLES KERR,
-REPRODUCED BY BOUSSOD, VALADON ET CIE, OF PARIS<br/><br/><br/>
-</p>
-
-<p class="center">
-<b>TWENTY-SIXTH THOUSAND</b><br/><br/><br/><br/>
-</p>
-
-<p class="center">
-<big>LONDON<br/>
-SPENCER BLACKETT</big><br/>
-MILTON HOUSE, 35 ST. BRIDE STREET, LUDGATE CIRCUS<br/>
-[<i>All rights reserved</i>]
-</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<h2>Contents</h2>
-
-<table summary="" style="">
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#book01"><b>BOOK I.</b></a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap01">CHAPTER I. ERNEST&rsquo;S APPEARANCE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap02">CHAPTER II. REGINALD CARDUS, ESQ., MISANTHROPE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap03">CHAPTER III. OLD DUM&rsquo;S NESS</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap04">CHAPTER IV. BOYS TOGETHER</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap05">CHAPTER V. EVA&rsquo;S PROMISE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap06">CHAPTER VI. JEREMY FALLS IN LOVE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap07">CHAPTER VII. ERNEST IS INDISCREET</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap08">CHAPTER VIII. A GARDEN IDYL</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap09">CHAPTER IX. EVA FINDS SOMETHING</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap10">CHAPTER X. WHAT EVA FOUND</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap11">CHAPTER XI. DEEP WATERS</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap12">CHAPTER XII. DEEPER YET</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap13">CHAPTER XIII. MR. CARDUS UNFOLDS HIS PLANS</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap14">CHAPTER XIV. GOOD-BYE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap15">CHAPTER XV. ERNEST GETS INTO TROUBLE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap16">CHAPTER XVI. MADAME&rsquo;S WORK</a><br /><br /></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#book02"><b>BOOK II.</b></a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap17">CHAPTER I. MY POOR EVA</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap18">CHAPTER II. THE LOCUM TENENS</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap19">CHAPTER III. EVA TAKES A DISTRICT</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap20">CHAPTER IV. JEREMY&rsquo;S IDEA OF A SHAKING</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap21">CHAPTER V. FLORENCE ON MARRIAGE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap22">CHAPTER VI. MR. PLOWDEN GOES A-WOOING</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap23">CHAPTER VII. OVER THE WATER</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap24">CHAPTER VIII. A HOMERIC COMBAT</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap25">CHAPTER IX. ERNEST&rsquo;S LOVE-LETTER</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap26">CHAPTER X. A WAY OF ESCAPE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap27">CHAPTER XI. FOUND WANTING</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap28">CHAPTER XII. ERNEST RUNS AWAY</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap29">CHAPTER XIII. MR. PLOWDEN ASSERTS HIS RIGHTS</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap30">CHAPTER XIV. THE VIRGIN MARTYR</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap31">CHAPTER XV. HANS&rsquo;S CITY OF REST</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap32">CHAPTER XVI. ERNEST ACCEPTS A COMMISSION</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap33">CHAPTER XVII. HANS PROPHESIES EVIL</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap34">CHAPTER XVIII. MR. ALSTON&rsquo;S VIEWS</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap35">CHAPTER XIX. ISANDHLWANA</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap36">CHAPTER XX. THE END OF ALSTON&rsquo;S HORSE</a><br /><br /></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#book03"><b>BOOK III.</b></a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap37">CHAPTER I. THE CLIFFS OF OLD ENGLAND</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap38">CHAPTER II. ERNEST&rsquo;S EVIL DESTINY</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap39">CHAPTER III. INTROSPECTIVE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap40">CHAPTER IV. AFTER MANY DAYS</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap41">CHAPTER V. HOME AGAIN</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap42">CHAPTER VI. HOW IT ALL CAME ABOUT</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap43">CHAPTER VII. MAZOOKU&rsquo;S FAREWELL</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap44">CHAPTER VIII. R. CARDUS ACCOMPLISHES HIS REVENGE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap45">CHAPTER IX. MAD ATTERLEIGH&rsquo;S LAST RIDE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#chap46">CHAPTER X. DOROTHY&rsquo;S TRIUMPH</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-</table>
-
-<p class="poem">
-&ldquo;Swell out, sad harmonies,<br/>
-From the slow cadence of the gathering years;<br/>
-For Life is bitter-sweet, yet bounds the flood<br/>
-Of human fears.<br/>
-A death-crowned queen, from her hid throne she scatters<br/>
-Smiles and tears<br/>
-<br/>
-Until Time turn aside,<br/>
-And we slip past him towards the wide increase<br/>
-Of all things beautiful, then finding there<br/>
-Our rest and peace;<br/>
-The mournful strain is ended. Sorrow and song<br/>
-Together cease.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-A. M. BARBER.
-</p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p class="center">
-ILLUSTRATIONS
-</p>
-
-<table summary="" style="">
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#illus01">THE WITCH&rsquo;S HEAD </a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#illus02">HE CLENCHED HIS FISTS AND SHOOK THEM TOWARDS THE DOOR</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#illus03">&ldquo;<i>BY GEORGE!</i>&rdquo;</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#illus04">&ldquo;O, RADIANT-WINGED HOUR!&rdquo;</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#illus05">HUGH KERSHAW FLUNG UP HIS ARMS, WILDLY</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#illus06">A SHAPELY KAFIR GIRL</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#illus07">THE RESULT WAS STARTLING</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#illus08">THIS WAS INDEED A DAVID</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#illus09">HE SLOWLY LIFTED THE PISTOL TOWARDS HIS HEAD</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#illus10">MR. PLOWDEN LEFT THE HOUSE, WHITE WITH FURY</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#illus11">ERNEST DID A BRAVE THING</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#illus12">THE LAST CHARGE OF ALSTON&rsquo;S HORSE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#illus13">HE FOUND HIM LYING ON THE GROUND, WHITE AND STILL</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#illus14">AFTER MANY DAYS</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#illus15">MAZOOKU&rsquo;S FAREWELL</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td> <a href="#illus16">MAD ATTERLEIGH&rsquo;S LAST RIDE</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-</table>
-
-<div class="fig" style="width:100%;">
-<a name="illus01"></a>
-<br />
-<img src="images/fig01.jpg" width="404" height="600" alt="[Illustration: ]" />
-<p class="caption">The Witch&rsquo;s Head
-</p>
-</div>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2>THE WITCH&rsquo;S HEAD</h2>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="book01"></a>BOOK I.</h2>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap01"></a>CHAPTER I.<br/>
-ERNEST&rsquo;S APPEARANCE</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Come here, boy, let me look at you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest advanced a step or two and looked his uncle in the face. He was a
-noble-looking lad of about thirteen, with large dark eyes, black hair that
-curled over his head, and the unmistakable air of breeding that marks
-Englishmen of good race.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-His uncle let his wandering glance stray round him, but, wandering as it was,
-it seemed to take him in from top to toe. Presently he spoke again:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I like you, boy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest said nothing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let me see&mdash;your second name is Beyton. I am glad they called you
-Beyton; it was your grandmother&rsquo;s maiden name, and a good old name too.
-Ernest Beyton Kershaw. By the way, have you ever seen anything of your other
-uncle, Sir Hugh Kershaw?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The boy&rsquo;s cheek flushed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, I have not; and I never wish to,&rdquo; he answered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why not?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Because when my mother wrote to him before she died&rdquo;&mdash;and
-here the lad&rsquo;s voice choked&mdash;&ldquo;just after the bank broke and
-she lost all her money, he wrote back and said that because his brother&mdash;I
-mean my father&mdash;had made a low marriage, that was no reason why he should
-support his child and widow; but he sent her five pounds to go on with. She
-sent it back.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That was like your mother, she always had a high spirit. He must be a
-cur, and he does not speak the truth. Your mother comes of a better stock than
-the Kershaws. The Carduses are one of the oldest families in the Eastern
-counties. Why, boy, our family lived down in the Fens by Lynn there for
-centuries, until your grandfather, poor weak man, got involved in his great
-lawsuit and ruined us all. There, there, it has gone into the law, but it is
-coming back, it is coming back fast. This Sir Hugh has only one son, by the
-way. Do you know that if anything happened to him you would be next in the
-entail?&mdash;at any rate you would get the baronetcy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t want his baronetcy,&rdquo; said Ernest, sulkily; &ldquo;I
-will have nothing of his.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;A title, boy, is an incorporeal hereditament, for which the holder is
-indebted to nobody. It does not descend to him, it vests in him. But tell me,
-how long was this before your mother died&mdash;that he sent the five pounds, I
-mean?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;About three months.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus hesitated a little before he spoke again, tapping his white fingers
-nervously on the table.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope my sister was not in want, Ernest?&rdquo; he said, jerkily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;For a fortnight before she died we had scarcely enough to eat,&rdquo;
-was the blunt reply.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus turned himself to the window, and for a minute the light of the dull
-December day shone and glistened upon his brow and head, which was perfectly
-bald. Then before he spoke he drew himself back into the shadow, perhaps to
-hide something like a tear that shone in his soft black eyes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And why did she not appeal to me? I could have helped her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She said that when you quarrelled with her about her marrying my father,
-you told her never to write or speak to you again, and that she never
-would.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then why did you not do it, boy? You knew how things were.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Because we had begged once, and I would not beg again.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah,&rdquo; muttered Mr. Cardus, &ldquo;the old spirit cropping up. Poor
-Rose, nearly starving, and dying too, and I with so much which I do not want!
-O, boy, boy, when you are a man never set up an idol, for it frightens good
-spirits away. Nothing else can live in its temple; it is a place where all
-other things are forgotten&mdash;duty, and the claims of blood, and sometimes
-those of honour too. Look now, I have my idol, and it has made me forget my
-sister and your mother. Had she not written at last when she was dying, I
-should have forgotten you too.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The boy looked up puzzled.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;An idol!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; went on his uncle in his dreamy way&mdash;&ldquo;an idol.
-Many people have them; they keep them in the cupboard with their family
-skeleton; sometimes the two are identical. And they call them by many names,
-too; frequently it is a woman&rsquo;s name; sometimes that of a passion;
-sometimes that of a vice, but a virtue&rsquo;s&mdash;not often.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And what is the name of yours, uncle?&rdquo; asked the wondering boy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mine? O, never mind!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At this moment a swing-door in the side of the room was opened, and a tall bony
-woman with beady eyes came through.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mr. de Talor to see you, sir, in the office.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus whistled softly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;tell him I am coming. By the way, Grice, this
-young gentleman has come to live here; his room is ready, is it not?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, sir; Miss Dorothy has been seeing to it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Good; where is Miss Dorothy?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She has walked into Kesterwick, sir.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, and Master Jeremy?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He is about, sir; I saw him pass with a ferret a while back.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Tell Sampson or the groom to find him and send him to Master Ernest
-here. That will do, thank you. Now, Ernest, I must go. I hope that you will be
-pretty happy here, my boy, when your trouble has worn off a bit. You will have
-Jeremy for a companion; he is a lout, and an unpleasant lout, it is true, but I
-suppose that he is better than nobody. And then there is
-Dorothy&rdquo;&mdash;and his voice softened as he muttered her
-name&mdash;&ldquo;but she is a girl.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who are Dorothy and Jeremy?&rdquo; broke in his nephew; &ldquo;are they
-your children?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus started perceptibly, and his thick white eyebrows contracted over
-his dark eyes till they almost met.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Children!&rdquo; he said, sharply; &ldquo;I have no children. They are
-my wards. Their name is Jones;&rdquo; and he left the room.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, he <i>is</i> a rum sort,&rdquo; reflected Ernest to himself,
-&ldquo;and I don&rsquo;t think I ever saw such a shiny head before. I wonder if
-he oils it? But, at any rate, he is kind to me. Perhaps it would have been
-better if mother had written to him before. She might have gone on living,
-then.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rubbing his hand across his face to clear away the water gathering in his eyes
-at the thought of his dead mother, Ernest made his way to the wide fireplace at
-the top end of the room, peeped into the ancient inglenooks on each side, and
-at the old Dutch tiles with which it was lined, and then, lifting his coat
-after a grown-up fashion, proceeded to warm himself and inspect his
-surroundings. It was a curious room in which he stood, and its leading feature
-was old oak panelling. All down its considerable length the walls were oak-clad
-to the low ceiling, which was supported by enormous beams of the same material;
-the shutters of the narrow windows which looked out on the sea were oak, and so
-were the doors and table, and even the mantelshelf. The general idea given by
-the display of so much timber was certainly one of solidity, but it could
-scarcely be called cheerful&mdash;not even the numerous suits of armour and
-shining weapons which were placed about upon the walls could make it cheerful.
-It was a remarkable room, but its effect upon the observer was undoubtedly
-depressing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Just as Ernest was beginning to realise this fact, things were made more lively
-by the sudden appearance through the swing-door of a large savage-looking
-bull-terrier, which began to steer for the fireplace, where it was evidently
-accustomed to lie. On seeing Ernest it stopped and sniffed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hullo, good dog!&rdquo; said Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The dog growled and showed its teeth.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest put out his leg towards it as a caution to it to keep off. It
-acknowledged the compliment by sending its teeth through his trousers. Then the
-lad, growing wroth, and being not free from fear, seized the poker and hit the
-dog over the head so shrewdly that the blood streamed from the blow, and the
-brute, losing his grip, turned and fled howling.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-While Ernest was yet warm with the glow of victory, the door once more swung
-open, violently this time, and through it there came a boy of about his own
-age, a dirty deep-chested boy, with uncut hair, and a slow heavy face in which
-were set great gray eyes, just now ablaze with indignation. On seeing Ernest he
-pulled up much as the dog had done, and regarded him angrily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Did you hit my dog?&rdquo; he asked.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hit a dog,&rdquo; replied Ernest politely, &ldquo;but&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t want your &lsquo;buts.&rsquo; Can you fight?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest inquired whether this question was put with a view of gaining general
-information or for any particular purpose.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Can you fight?&rdquo; was the only rejoinder.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Slightly nettled, Ernest replied that under certain circumstances he could
-fight like a tom-cat.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then look out; I&rsquo;m going to make your head as you have made my
-dog&rsquo;s.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest, in the polite language of youth, opined that there would be hair and
-toe-nails flying first.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-To this sally, Jeremy Jones, for it was he, replied only by springing at him,
-his hair streaming behind like a Red Indian&rsquo;s, and, smiting him severely
-in the left eye, caused him to measure his length upon the floor. Arising
-quickly, Ernest returned the compliment with interest; but this time they both
-went down together, pummelling each other heartily. With whom the victory would
-ultimately have remained could scarcely be doubtful, for Jeremy, who even at
-that age gave promise of the enormous physical strength which afterwards made
-him such a noted character, must have crushed his antagonist in the end. But
-while his strength still endured Ernest was fighting with such ungovernable
-fury, and such a complete disregard of personal consequences, that he was for a
-while, at any rate, getting the best of it. And luckily for him, while matters
-were yet in the balanced scales of Fate, an interruption occurred. For at that
-moment there rose before the blurred sight of the struggling boys a vision of a
-small woman&mdash;at least she looked like a woman&mdash;with an indignant
-little face and an uplifted forefinger.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, you wicked boys! what will Reginald say, I should like to know? O,
-you bad Jeremy! I am ashamed to have such a brother. Get up!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My eye!&rdquo; said Jeremy thickly, for his lip was cut;
-&ldquo;it&rsquo;s Dolly!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap02"></a>CHAPTER II.<br/>
-REGINALD CARDUS, ESQ., MISANTHROPE</h2>
-
-<p>
-When Mr. Cardus left the sitting-room where he had been talking to Ernest, he
-passed down a passage in the rambling old house which led him into a courtyard.
-On the farther side of the yard, which was walled in, stood a neat red-brick
-building one story high, consisting of two rooms and a passage. On to this
-building were attached a series of low green-houses, and against the wall at
-the farther end of these houses was a lean-to in which stood the boiler that
-supplied the pipes with hot water. The little red-brick building was Mr.
-Cardus&rsquo;s office, for he was a lawyer by profession; the long tail of
-glass behind it were his orchid-houses, for orchid-growing was his sole
-amusement. The <i>tout ensemble</i>, office and orchid-houses, seemed curiously
-out of place in the gray and ancient courtyard where they stood, looking as
-they did on to the old one-storied house, scarred by the passage of centuries
-of tempestuous weather. Some such idea seemed to strike Mr. Cardus as he closed
-the door behind him, preparatory to crossing the courtyard.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Queer contrast,&rdquo; he muttered to himself; &ldquo;very queer.
-Something like that between Reginald Cardus, Esquire, Misanthrope, of
-Dum&rsquo;s Ness, and Mr. Reginald Cardus, Solicitor, Chairman of the Stokesly
-Board of Guardians, Bailiff of Kesterwick, etc. And yet in both cases they are
-part of the same establishment. Case of old and new style!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus did not make his way straight to the office. He struck off to the
-right, and entered the long line of glass-houses, walking up from house to
-house, till he reached the partition where the temperate sort were placed to
-bloom, and which was connected with his office by a glass door. Through this
-last he walked softly, with a cat-like step, till he reached the door, where he
-paused to observe a large coarse man, who was standing at the far end of the
-room, looking out intently on the courtyard.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, my friend,&rdquo; he said to himself, &ldquo;so the shoe is
-beginning to pinch. Well, it is time.&rdquo; Then he pushed the door softly
-open, passed into the room with the same cat-like step, closed it, and, seating
-himself at his writing-table, took up a pen. Apparently the coarse-looking man
-at the window was too much absorbed in his own thoughts to hear him, for he
-still stood staring into space.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, Mr. de Talor,&rdquo; said the lawyer presently, in his soft, jerky
-voice, &ldquo;I am at your service.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The person addressed started violently, and turned sharply round. &ldquo;Good
-&rsquo;eavens, Cardus, how did you get in?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Through the door, of course; do you suppose I came down the
-chimney?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s very strange, Cardus, but I never &rsquo;eard you come.
-You&rsquo;ve given me quite a start.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus laughed, a hard, little laugh. &ldquo;You were too much occupied
-with your own thoughts, Mr. de Talor. I fear that they are not pleasant ones.
-Can I help you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How do you know that my thoughts are not pleasant, Cardus? I never said
-so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If we lawyers waited for our clients to tell us all their thoughts, Mr.
-de Talor, it would often take us a long time to reach the truth. We have to
-read their faces, or even their backs sometimes. You have no idea of how much
-expression a back is capable, if you make such things your study; yours, for
-instance, looks very uncomfortable to-day: nothing gone wrong, I hope?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, Cardus, no,&rdquo; answered Mr. de Talor, dropping the subject of
-backs, which was, he felt, beyond him; &ldquo;that is, nothing much, merely a
-question of business, on which I have come to ask your advice as a shrewd
-man.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My best advice is at your service, Mr. de Talor: what is it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, Cardus, it&rsquo;s this.&rdquo; And Mr. de Talor seated his portly
-frame in an easy-chair, and turned his broad, vulgar face towards the lawyer.
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s about the railway-grease business&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Which you own up in Manchester?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, that&rsquo;s it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, then, it ought to be a satisfactory subject to talk of. It pays
-hand over fist, does it not?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, Cardus, that is just the point: it did pay, it don&rsquo;t
-now.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How&rsquo;s that?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, you see, when my father took out the patent, and started the
-business, his &rsquo;ouse was the only &rsquo;ouse in the market, and he made a
-pot, and, I don&rsquo;t mind telling you, I&rsquo;ve made a pot too; but now,
-what do you think?&mdash;there&rsquo;s a beggarly firm called Rastrick &amp;
-Codley that took out a new patent last year, and is underselling us with a
-better stuff at a cheaper price than we can turn it out at.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, we&rsquo;ve lowered our price to theirs, but we are doing business
-at a loss. We hoped to burst them, but they don&rsquo;t burst: there&rsquo;s
-somebody backing them, confound them, for Rastrick &amp; Codley ain&rsquo;t
-worth a sixpence; but who it is the Lord only knows. I don&rsquo;t believe they
-know themselves.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That is unfortunate, but what about it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Just this, Cardus. I want to ask your advice about selling out. Our
-credit is still good, and we could sell up for a large pile&mdash;not so large
-as we could have done, but still large&mdash;and I don&rsquo;t know whether to
-sell or hold.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus looked thoughtful. &ldquo;It is a difficult point, Mr. de Talor, but
-for myself I am always against caving in. The other firm may smash after all,
-and then you would be sorry. If you were to sell now you would probably make
-their fortunes, which I suppose you don&rsquo;t want to do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, indeed.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then you are a very wealthy man; you are not dependent on this grease
-business. Even if things were to go wrong, you have all your landed property
-here at Ceswick&rsquo;s Ness to fall back on. I should hold, if I were you,
-even if it was at a loss for a time, and trust to the fortune of war.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. de Talor gave a sigh of relief. &ldquo;That&rsquo;s my view, too, Cardus.
-You are a shrewd man, and I am glad you jump with me. Damn Rastrick &amp;
-Codley, say I!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O yes, damn them by all means,&rdquo; answered the lawyer, with a smile,
-as he rose to show his client to the door.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-On the farther side of the passage was another door, with a glass top to it,
-which gave on to a room furnished after the ordinary fashion of a clerk&rsquo;s
-office. Opposite this door Mr. de Talor stopped to look at a man who was
-within, sitting at a table writing. The man was old, of large size, very
-powerfully built, and dressed with extreme neatness in hunting
-costume&mdash;boots, breeches, spurs, and all. Over his large head grew tufts
-of coarse gray hair, which hung down in dishevelled locks about his face,
-giving him a wild appearance, that was added to by a curious distortion of the
-mouth. His left arm, too, hung almost helpless by his side.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus laughed as he followed his visitor&rsquo;s gaze. &ldquo;A
-curious sort of clerk, eh?&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;Mad, dumb, and
-half-paralysed&mdash;not many lawyers could show such another.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. de Talor glanced at the object of their observation uneasily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If he&rsquo;s so mad, how can he do clerk&rsquo;s work?&rdquo; he asked.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, he&rsquo;s only mad in a way; he copies beautifully.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He has quite lost his memory, I suppose?&rdquo; said De Talor, with
-another uneasy glance.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; answered Mr. Cardus, with a smile, &ldquo;he has. Perhaps it
-is as well. He remembers nothing now but his delusions.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. de Talor looked relieved. &ldquo;He has been with you many years now,
-hasn&rsquo;t he, Cardus?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, a great many.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why did you bring him &rsquo;ere at all?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Did I never tell you the story? Then if you care to step back into my
-office I will. It is not a long one. You remember when our
-friend&rdquo;&mdash;he nodded towards the office&mdash;&ldquo;kept the hounds,
-and they used to call him &lsquo;hard-riding Atterleigh&rsquo;?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, I remember, and ruined himself over them, like a fool.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And of course you remember Mary Atterleigh, his daughter, whom we were
-all in love with when we were young?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. de Talor&rsquo;s broad cheek took a deeper shade of crimson as he nodded
-assent.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then,&rdquo; went on Mr. Cardus, in a voice meant to be indifferent, but
-which now and again gave traces of emotion, &ldquo;you will also remember that
-I was the fortunate man, and, with her father&rsquo;s consent, was engaged to
-be married to Mary Atterleigh so soon as I could show him that my income
-reached a certain sum.&rdquo; Here Mr. Cardus paused a moment, and then
-continued, &ldquo;But I had to go to America about the great Norwich bank case,
-and it was a long job, and travelling was slow then. When I got back, Mary
-was&mdash;married to a man called Jones, a friend of yours, Mr. de Talor. He
-was staying at your house, Ceswick&rsquo;s Ness, when he met her. But perhaps
-you are better acquainted with that part of the story than I am.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. de Talor was looking very uneasy again now.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, I know nothing about it. Jones fell in love with her like the rest,
-and the next I heard of it was that they were to be married. It was rather
-rough on you, eh, Cardus? but, Lord, you shouldn&rsquo;t have been fool enough
-to trust her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus smiled, a bitter smile. &ldquo;Yes, it was a little
-&lsquo;rough,&rsquo; but that has nothing to do with my story. The marriage did
-not turn out well; a curious fatality pursued all who had had any hand in it.
-Mary had two children; and then did the best thing she could do&mdash;died of
-shame and sorrow. Jones, who was rich, went fraudulently bankrupt, and ended by
-committing suicide. Hard-riding Atterleigh flourished for a while, and then
-lost his money in horses and a ship-building speculation, and got a paralytic
-stroke that took away all his speech and most of his reason. Then I brought him
-here to save him from the madhouse.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That was kind of you, Cardus.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O no, he is worth his keep, and besides, he is poor Mary&rsquo;s father.
-He is under the fixed impression that I am the devil; but that does not
-matter.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You&rsquo;ve got her children too, eh?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, I have adopted them. The girl reminds me of her mother, though she
-will never have her mother&rsquo;s looks. The boy is like old Atterleigh. I do
-not care about the boy. But, thank God, they are neither of them like their
-father.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So you knew Jones?&rdquo; said De Talor, sharply.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, I met him after his marriage. Oddly enough, I was with him a few
-minutes before he destroyed himself. There, Mr. de Talor, I will not detain you
-any longer. I thought that you could perhaps tell me something of the details
-of Mary&rsquo;s marriage. The story has a fascination for me, its results upon
-my own life have been so far-reaching. I am sure that I am not at the bottom of
-it yet. Mary wrote to me when she was dying, and hinted at something that I
-cannot understand. There was somebody behind who arranged the matter, who
-assisted Jones&rsquo;s suit. Well, well, I shall find it all out in time, and
-whoever it is will no doubt pay the price of his wickedness, like the others.
-Providence has strange ways, Mr. de Talor, but in the end it is a terrible
-avenger. What! are you going? Queer talk for a lawyer&rsquo;s office,
-isn&rsquo;t it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Here Mr. de Talor rose, looking pale, and, merely nodding to Mr. Cardus, left
-the room.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The lawyer watched him till the door had closed, and then suddenly his whole
-face changed. The white eyebrows drew close together, the delicate features
-worked, and in the soft eyes there shone a look of hate. He clenched his fists,
-and shook them towards the door.
-</p>
-
-<div class="fig" style="width:100%;">
-<a name="illus02"></a>
-<br />
-<img src="images/fig02.jpg" width="407" height="600" alt="[Illustration: ]" />
-<p class="caption">&ldquo;He clenched his fists and shook them towards the
-door.&rdquo;
-</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You liar, you hound!&rdquo; he said aloud. &ldquo;God grant that I may
-live long enough to do to you as I have done to them! One a suicide, and one a
-paralytic madman; you&mdash;you shall be a beggar, if it takes me twenty years
-to make you so. Yes, that will hit you hardest. O Mary! Mary! dead and
-dishonoured through you, you scoundrel! O my darling, shall I ever find you
-again?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And this strange man dropped his head upon the desk before him, and groaned.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap03"></a>CHAPTER III.<br/>
-OLD DUM&rsquo;S NESS</h2>
-
-<p>
-When Mr. Cardus came half an hour or so later to take his place at the
-dinner-table&mdash;for in those days they dined in the middle of the day at
-Dum&rsquo;s Ness&mdash;he was not in a good mood. The pool into which the
-records of our individual existence are ever gathering, and which we call our
-past, will not often bear much stirring, even when its waters are not bitter.
-Certainly Mr. Cardus&rsquo;s would not. And yet that morning he had stirred it
-violently enough.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In the long, oak-panelled room, used indifferently as a sitting and dining
-room, Mr. Cardus found &ldquo;hard-riding Atterleigh&rdquo; and his
-grand-daughter, little Dorothy Jones. The old man was already seated at table,
-and Dorothy was busying herself cutting bread, looking as composed and grown-up
-as though she had been four-and-twenty instead of fourteen. She was a strange
-child, with her assured air and woman&rsquo;s ways and dress, her curious
-thoughtful face, and her large blue eyes that shone steadily as the light of a
-lamp. But just now the little face was more anxious than usual.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Reginald,&rdquo; she began, as soon as he was in the room (for by Mr.
-Cardus&rsquo;s wish she always called him by his Christian name), &ldquo;I am
-sorry to tell you that there has been a sad disturbance.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is it?&rdquo; he asked, with a frown; &ldquo;Jeremy
-again?&rdquo; Mr. Cardus could be very stern where Jeremy was concerned.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, I am afraid it is. The two boys&mdash;&rdquo; but it was
-unnecessary for her to carry her explanations further, for at that moment the
-swing-door opened, and through it appeared the young gentlemen in question,
-driven in like sheep by the beady-eyed Grice. Ernest was leading, attempting
-the impossible feat of looking jaunty with a lump of raw beefsteak tied over
-one eye, and presenting a general appearance that suggested the idea of the
-colours of the rainbow in a state of decomposition.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Behind him shuffled Jeremy, his matted locks still wet from being pumped on.
-But his wounds were either unsuited to the dreadful remedy of raw beefsteak, or
-he had adopted in preference an heroic one of his own, of which grease
-plentifully sprinkled with flour formed the basis.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-For a moment there was silence, then Mr. Cardus, with awful politeness, asked
-Jeremy what was the meaning of this.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We&rsquo;ve been fighting,&rdquo; answered the boy, sulkily.&rdquo; He
-hit&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Thank you, Jeremy, I don&rsquo;t want the particulars, but I will take
-this opportunity to tell you before your sister and my nephew what I think of
-you. You are a boor and a lout, and, what is more, you are a coward.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At this unjust taunt the lad coloured to his eyes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, you may colour, but let me tell you that it is cowardly to pick a
-quarrel with a boy the moment he sets foot inside my doors&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I say, uncle,&rdquo; broke in Ernest, who was unable to see anything
-cowardly about fighting, an amusement to which he was rather partial himself,
-and who thought that his late antagonist was getting more than his due,
-&ldquo;I began it, you know.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was not true, except in the sense that he had begun it by striking the dog;
-nor did this statement produce any great effect on Mr. Cardus, who was
-evidently seriously angry with Jeremy on more points than this. But at least it
-was one of those well-meant fibs at which the recording angel should not be
-offended.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I do not care who began it,&rdquo; went on Mr. Cardus, angrily,
-&ldquo;nor is it about this only that I am angry. You are a discredit to me,
-Jeremy, and a discredit to your sister. You are dirty, you are idle; your ways
-are not those of a gentleman. I sent you to school&mdash;you ran away. I give
-you good clothes&mdash;you will not wear them. I tell you, boy, that I will not
-stand it any longer. Now listen. I am going to make arrangements with Mr.
-Halford, the clergyman at Kesterwick, to undertake Ernest&rsquo;s education.
-You shall go with him; and if I see no improvement in your ways in the course
-of the next few months, I shall wash my hands of you. Do you understand me
-now?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The boy Jeremy had, during this oration, been standing in the middle of the
-room, first on one leg, then on the other. At its conclusion he brought the leg
-that was at the moment in the air down to the ground, and stood firm.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well,&rdquo; went on Mr. Cardus, &ldquo;what have you to say?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I have to say,&rdquo; blurted out Jeremy, &ldquo;that I don&rsquo;t want
-your education. You care nothing about me,&rdquo; he went on, his gray eyes
-flashing and his heavy face lighting up; &ldquo;nobody cares about me except my
-dog Nails. Yes, you make a dog of me myself; you throw things to me as I throw
-Nails a bone. I don&rsquo;t want your education, and I won&rsquo;t have it. I
-don&rsquo;t want the fine clothes you buy for me, and I won&rsquo;t wear them.
-I don&rsquo;t want to be a burden on you either. Let me go away and be a
-fisher-lad and earn my bread. If it hadn&rsquo;t been for her,&rdquo; pointing
-to his sister, who was sitting aghast at his outburst, &ldquo;and for Nails,
-I&rsquo;d have gone long ago, I can tell you. At any rate, I should not be a
-dog then. I should be earning my living, and have no one to thank for it. Let
-me go, I say, where I sha&rsquo;n&rsquo;t be mocked at if I do my fair
-day&rsquo;s work. I&rsquo;m strong enough; let me go. There! I&rsquo;ve spoken
-my mind now;&rdquo; and the lad broke out into a storm of tears, and, turning,
-tramped out of the room.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-As he went, all Mr. Cardus&rsquo;s wrath seemed to leave him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I did not think he had so much spirit in him,&rdquo; he said aloud.
-&ldquo;Well, let us have our dinner.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At dinner the conversation flagged, the scene that preceded it having
-presumably left a painful impression; and Ernest, who was an observant youth,
-fell to watching little Dorothy doing the honours of the table: cutting up her
-crazed old grandfather&rsquo;s food for him, seeing that everybody had what
-they wanted, and generally making herself unobtrusively useful. In due course
-the meal came to an end, and Mr. Cardus and old Atterleigh went back to the
-office, leaving Dorothy alone with Ernest. Presently the former began to talk.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope that your eye is not painful,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;Jeremy hits
-very hard.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O no, it&rsquo;s all right. I&rsquo;m used to it. When I was at school
-in London I often used to fight. I&rsquo;m sorry for him, though&mdash;your
-brother, I mean.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Jeremy! O yes, he is always in trouble, and now I suppose that it will
-be worse than ever. I do all I can to keep things smooth, but it is no good. If
-he won&rsquo;t go to Mr. Halford&rsquo;s, I am sure I don&rsquo;t know what
-will happen;&rdquo; and the little lady sighed deeply.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, I daresay that he will go. Let&rsquo;s go and look for him, and try
-and persuade him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We might try,&rdquo; she said, doubtfully. &ldquo;Stop a minute, and I
-will put on my hat, and then if you will take that nasty thing off your eye, we
-might walk on to Kesterwick. I want to take a book, out of which I have been
-teaching myself French, back to the cottage where old Miss Ceswick lives, you
-know.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right,&rdquo; said Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Presently Dorothy returned, and they went out by the back way to a little room
-near the coach-house, where Jeremy stuffed birds and kept his collection of
-eggs and butterflies; but he was not there. On inquiring of Sampson, the old
-Scotch gardener who looked after Mr. Cardus&rsquo;s orchid-houses, she
-discovered that Jeremy had gone out to shoot snipe, having borrowed
-Sampson&rsquo;s gun for that purpose.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That is just like Jeremy,&rdquo; she sighed. &ldquo;He is always going
-out shooting instead of attending to things.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Can he hit birds flying, then?&rdquo; asked Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hit them!&rdquo; she answered, with a touch of pride; &ldquo;I
-don&rsquo;t think he ever misses them. I wish he could do other things as
-well.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy at once went up at least fifty per cent. in Ernest&rsquo;s estimation.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-On their way back to the house they peeped in through the office window, and
-Ernest saw &ldquo;hard-riding Atterleigh&rdquo; at his work, copying deeds.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He&rsquo;s your grandfather, isn&rsquo;t he?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Does he know you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;In a sort of a way; but he is quite mad. He thinks that Reginald is the
-devil, whom he must serve for a certain number of years. He has got a stick
-with numbers of notches on it, and he cuts out a notch every month. It is all
-very sad. I think it is a very sad world;&rdquo; and she sighed again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why does he wear hunting-clothes?&rdquo; asked Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Because he always used to ride a good deal. He loves a horse now.
-Sometimes you will see him get up from his writing-table, and the tears come
-into his eyes if anybody comes into the yard on horseback. Once he came out and
-tried to get on to a horse and ride off, but they stopped him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why don&rsquo;t they let him ride?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, he would soon kill himself. Old Jack Tares, who lives at Kesterwick,
-and gets his living by rats and ferrets, used to be whip to grandfather&rsquo;s
-hounds when he had them, and says that he always was a little mad about riding.
-One moonlight night he and grandfather went out to hunt a stag that had strayed
-here out of some park. They put the stag out of a little grove at a place
-called Claffton, five miles away, and he took them round by Starton and
-Ashleigh, and then came down the flats to the sea, about a mile and a half
-below here, just this side of the quicksand. The moon was so bright that it was
-almost like day, and for the last mile the stag was in view not more than a
-hundred yards in front of the hounds, and the pace was racing. When he came to
-the beach he went right through the waves out to the sea, and the hounds after
-him, and grandfather after them. They caught him a hundred yards out and killed
-him, and then grandfather turned his horse&rsquo;s head and swam back with the
-hounds.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My eye!&rdquo; was Ernest&rsquo;s comment on this story. &ldquo;And what
-did Jack Tares do?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, he stopped on the beach and said his prayers; he thought that they
-would all be drowned.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then they passed through the old house, which was built on a little ness or
-headland that jutted beyond the level of the shore-line, and across which the
-wind swept and raved all the winter long, driving the great waves in cease-less
-thunder against the sandy cliffs. It was a desolate spot that the gray and
-massive house, of which the roof was secured by huge blocks of rock, looked out
-upon, nude of vegetation, save for rank, rush-like grass and plants of
-sea-holly. In front was the great ocean, rushing in continually upon the sandy
-bulwarks, and with but few ships to break its loneliness. To the left, as far
-as the eye could reach ran a line of cliff, out of which the waves had taken
-huge mouthfuls, till it was as full of gaps as an old crone&rsquo;s jaw. Behind
-this stretched mile upon mile of desolate-looking land, covered for the most
-part with ling and heath, and cut up with dikes, whence the water was pumped by
-means of windmills, that gave a Dutch appearance to the landscape.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Look,&rdquo; said Dorothy, pointing to a small white house about a mile
-and a half away up the shore-line, &ldquo;that is the lock-house where the
-great sluice-gates are, and beyond that is the dreadful quicksand in which a
-whole army was once swallowed up, like the Egyptians in the Red Sea.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My word!&rdquo; said Ernest, much interested; &ldquo;and, I say, did my
-uncle build this house?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You silly boy! why, it has been built for hundreds of years. Somebody of
-the name of Dum built it, and that is why it is called Dum&rsquo;s Ness; at
-least I suppose so. There is an old chart that Reginald has, which was made in
-the time of Henry VII., and it is marked as Dum&rsquo;s Ness there, so Dum must
-have lived before then. Look,&rdquo; she went on, as, turning to the right,
-they rounded the old house and reached the road which ran along the top of the
-cliff, &ldquo;there are the ruins of Titheburgh Abbey;&rdquo; and she pointed
-to the remains of an enormous church with a still perfect tower, that stood
-within a few hundred yards of them, almost upon the edge of the cliff.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why don&rsquo;t they build it up again?&rdquo; asked Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy shook her head. &ldquo;Because in a few years the sea will swallow it.
-Nearly all the graveyard has gone already. It is the same with Kesterwick,
-where we are going. Kesterwick was a great town once. The kings of East Anglia
-made it their capital, and a bishop lived there. And after that it was a great
-port, with thousands upon thousands of inhabitants. But the sea came on and on
-and choked up the harbour, and washed away the cliffs, and they could not keep
-it out, and now Kesterwick is nothing but a little village with one fine old
-church left. The real Kesterwick lies there, under the sea. If you walk along
-the beach after a great gale, you will find hundreds of bricks and tiles washed
-from the houses that are going to pieces down in the deep water. Just fancy, on
-one Sunday afternoon, in the reign of Queen Elizabeth, three of the parish
-churches were washed over the cliff into the sea!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And so she went on, telling the listening Ernest tale after tale of the old
-town, than which Babylon had not fallen more completely, till they came to a
-pretty little modern house bowered up in trees&mdash;that is, in summer, for
-there were no leaves upon them now&mdash;with which Ernest was destined to
-become very well acquainted in after years.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy left her companion at the gate while she went in to leave her book,
-remarking that she would be ashamed to introduce a boy with so black an eye.
-Presently she came back again, saying that Miss Ceswick was out.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who is Miss Ceswick?&rdquo; asked Ernest, who at this period of his
-existence had a burning thirst for information of every sort.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She is a very beautiful old lady,&rdquo; was Dorothy&rsquo;s answer.
-&ldquo;Her family lived for many years at a place called Ceswick&rsquo;s Ness;
-but her brother lost all his money gambling, and the place was sold, and Mr. de
-Talor, that horrid fat man whom you saw drive away this morning, bought
-it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Does she live alone?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes; but she has some nieces, the daughters of her brother who is dead,
-and whose mother is very ill; and if she dies one of them is coming to live
-with her. She is just my age, so I hope she will come.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-After this there was silence for a while.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ernest,&rdquo; said the little woman presently, &ldquo;you look kind, so
-I will ask you. I want you to help me about Jeremy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest, feeling much puffed up at the compliment implied, expressed his
-willingness to do anything he could.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You see, Ernest,&rdquo; she went on, fixing her sweet blue eyes on his
-face, &ldquo;Jeremy is a great trouble to me. He will go his own way. And he
-does not like Reginald, and Reginald does not like him. If Reginald comes in at
-one door, Jeremy goes out at the other. And besides he always flies in
-Reginald&rsquo;s face. And, you see, it is not right of Jeremy, because after
-all Reginald is very kind to us, and there is no reason he should be, except
-that I believe he was fond of our mother; and if it was not for Reginald, whom
-I love very much, though he is curious sometimes, I don&rsquo;t know what would
-become of grandfather or us. And so, you see, I think that Jeremy ought to
-behave better to him, and I want to ask you to bear with his rough ways, and
-try and be friends with him and get him to behave better. It is not much for
-him to do in return for all your uncle&rsquo;s kindness. You see, I can do a
-little something, because I look after the housekeeping; but he does nothing.
-And first I want you to get him to make no more trouble about going to Mr.
-Halford&rsquo;s.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right, I&rsquo;ll try; but, I say, how do you learn? you seem to
-know an awful lot.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, I teach myself in the evenings. Reginald wanted to get me a
-governess, but I would not. How should I ever get Grice and the servants to
-obey me if they saw that I had to do what a strange woman told me? It would not
-do at all.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Just then they were passing the ruins of Titheburgh Abbey. It was almost dark,
-for the winter&rsquo;s evening was closing in rapidly, when suddenly Dorothy
-gave a little shriek, for from behind a ruined wall there rose up an armed
-mysterious figure with something white behind it. Next second she saw that it
-was Jeremy, who had returned from shooting, and was apparently waiting for
-them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O Jeremy, how you frightened me! What is it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I want to speak to <i>him,</i>&rdquo; was the laconic reply.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest stood still, wondering what was coming.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Look here! You told a lie to try to save me from catching it this
-morning. You said that you began it. You didn&rsquo;t. I began it. I&rsquo;d
-have told him too,&rdquo; and he jerked his thumb in the direction of
-Dum&rsquo;s Ness, &ldquo;only my mouth was so full of words I could not get it
-out. But I want to say I thank you, and here, take the dog. He&rsquo;s a nasty
-tempered devil, but he&rsquo;ll grow very fond of you if you are kind to
-him;&rdquo; and seizing the astonished Nails by the collar, he thrust him
-towards Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-For a moment there was a struggle in Ernest&rsquo;s mind, for he greatly longed
-to possess a bull-terrier dog; but his gentleman-like feeling prevailed.
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t want the dog, and I didn&rsquo;t do anything in
-particular.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, you did, though,&rdquo; replied Jeremy, greatly relieved that
-Ernest did not accept his dog, which he loved, &ldquo;or at least you did more
-than anybody ever did before; but I tell you what, I&rsquo;ll do as much for
-you one day. I&rsquo;ll do anything you like.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Will you, though?&rdquo; answered Ernest, who was a sharp youth, and
-opportunely remembered Dorothy&rsquo;s request.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, I will.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, then, come to this fellow Halford with me; I don&rsquo;t want to
-go alone.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy slowly rubbed his face with the back of an exceedingly dirty hand. This
-was more than he had bargained for, but his word was his word.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right,&rdquo; he answered, &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll come.&rdquo; And then
-whistling to his dog, he vanished into the shadows. And thus began a friendship
-between these two that endured all their lives.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap04"></a>CHAPTER IV.<br/>
-BOYS TOGETHER</h2>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy kept his word. On the appointed day he appeared ready, as he expressed
-it, to &ldquo;tackle that bloke Halford.&rdquo; What is more, he appeared with
-his hair cut, a decent suit of clothes on, and, wonder of wonders, his hands
-properly washed, for all of which he was rewarded by finding that the
-&ldquo;tackling&rdquo; was not such a fearful business as he had anticipated.
-It was, moreover, of an intermittent nature, for the lads found plenty of time
-to indulge in every sort of manly exercise together. In winter they would roam
-all over the wide marsh-lands in search of snipe and wild ducks, which Ernest
-missed and Jeremy brought down with unerring aim, and in summer they would
-swim, or fish, and bird-nest to their hearts&rsquo; content. In this way they
-contrived to combine the absorption of a little learning with that of a really
-extended knowledge of animal life and a large quantity of health and spirits.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They were happy years, those, for both the lads, and to Jeremy, when he
-compared them to his life as it had been before Ernest came, they seemed
-perfectly heavenly. For whether it was that he had improved in his manners
-since then, or that Ernest stood as a buffer between him and Mr. Cardus, it
-certainly happened that he came into collision with him far less often. Indeed,
-it seemed to Jeremy that the old gentleman (it was the fashion to call Mr.
-Cardus old, though he was in reality only middle-aged) was more tolerant of him
-than formerly, though he knew that he would never be a favourite. As for
-Ernest, everybody loved the boy, and then, as afterwards, he was a great
-favourite with women, who would one and all do anything he asked. It was a
-wonder that he did not get spoiled by it all; but he did not. It was not
-possible to know Ernest Kershaw at any period of his life without taking a
-fancy to him, he was so eminently and unaffectedly a gentleman, and so
-completely free from any sort of swagger. Always ready to do a kindness, and
-never forgetting one done, generous with his possessions to such an extent that
-he seemed to have a vague idea that they were the common property of his
-friends and himself, possessing that greatest of gifts, a sympathetic mind, and
-true as steel, no wonder that he was always popular both with men and women.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest grew into a handsome lad, too, as soon as he began to get his height,
-with a shapely form, a beautiful pair of eyes, and an indescribable appearance
-of manliness and spirit. But the greatest charm of his face was always its
-quick intelligence and unvarying kindliness.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-As for Jeremy, he did not change much; he simply expanded, and, to tell the
-truth, expanded very largely. Year by year his form assumed more and more
-enormous proportions, and his strength grew more and more abnormal. As for his
-mind, it did not grow with the same rapidity, and was loth to admit a new idea;
-but once it was admitted, it never came out again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And he had a ruling passion, too, this dull giant, and that was his intense
-affection and admiration for Ernest. It was an affection that grew with his
-growth till it became a part of himself, increasing with the increasing years,
-till at last it was nearly pathetic in its entirety. It was but rarely that he
-parted from Ernest, except, indeed, on those occasions when Ernest chose to go
-abroad to pursue his study of foreign languages, of which he was rather fond.
-Then, and then only, Jeremy would strike. He disliked parting with Ernest much,
-but he objected&mdash;being intensely insular&mdash;to cohabit with foreigners
-yet more, so on these occasions, and these only, for a while they separated.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-So the years wore on till, when they were eighteen, Mr. Cardus, after his
-sudden fashion, announced his intention of sending them both to Cambridge.
-Ernest always remembered it, for it was on that very day that he first made the
-acquaintance of Florence Ceswick. He had just issued from his uncle&rsquo;s
-presence, and was seeking Dolly, to communicate the intelligence to her, when
-he suddenly blundered in upon old Miss Ceswick, and with her a young lady. This
-young lady, to whom Miss Ceswick introduced him as her niece, at once attracted
-his attention. On being introduced the girl, who was about his own age, touched
-his outstretched palm with her slender fingers, throwing on him at the same
-moment so sharp a look from her brown eyes that he afterwards declared to
-Jeremy that it seemed to go right through him. She was a remarkable-looking
-girl. The hair, which curled profusely over a shapely head, was, like the eyes,
-brown; the complexion olive, the features were small, and the lips full,
-curving over a beautiful set of teeth. In person she was rather short, but
-squarely built, and at her early age her figure was perfectly formed. Indeed,
-she might to all appearance have been much older than she was. There was little
-of the typical girl about her. While he was still observing her, his uncle came
-into the room, and was duly introduced by the old lady to her niece, who had,
-she said, come to share her loneliness.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And how do you like Kesterwick, Miss Florence?&rdquo; asked Mr. Cardus,
-with his usual courtly smile.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is much what I expected&mdash;a little duller, perhaps,&rdquo; she
-answered composedly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, perhaps you have been accustomed to a gayer spot.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, till my mother died we lived at Brighton; there is plenty of life
-there. Not that we could mix in it, we were too poor; but at any rate we could
-watch it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you like life, Miss Florence?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, we only live such a short time. I should like,&rdquo; she went on,
-throwing her head back, and half-closing her eyes, &ldquo;to see as much as I
-can, and to exhaust every emotion.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Perhaps, Miss Florence, you would find some of them rather
-unpleasant,&rdquo; answered Mr. Cardus, with a smile.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Possibly, but it is better to travel through a bad country than to grow
-in a good one.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus smiled again: the girl interested him rather.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you know, Miss Ceswick,&rdquo; he said, changing the subject, and
-addressing the stately old lady, who was sitting smoothing her laces, and
-looking rather aghast at her niece&rsquo;s utterances, &ldquo;that this young
-gentleman is going to college, and Jeremy, too?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Indeed,&rdquo; said Miss Ceswick; &ldquo;I hope that you will do great
-things there, Ernest.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-While Ernest was disclaiming any intentions of the sort, Miss Florence cut in
-again, raising her eyes from a deep contemplation of that young
-gentleman&rsquo;s long shanks, which were writhing under her keen glance, and
-twisting themselves serpent-wise round the legs of the chair.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I did not know,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;that they took <i>boys</i> at
-college.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then they took their leave, and Ernest stigmatised her to Dorothy as a
-&ldquo;beast.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But she was at least attractive in her own peculiar fashion, and during the
-next year or two he got pretty intimate with her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And so Ernest and Jeremy went up to Cambridge, but did not set the place on
-fire, nor were the voices of tutors loud in their praise. Jeremy, it is true,
-rowed one year in the &rsquo;Varsity Race, and performed prodigies of strength,
-and so covered himself with a sort of glory, which, personally, being of a
-modest mind, he did not particularly appreciate. Ernest did not even do that.
-But somehow, by hook or by crook, at the termination of their collegiate
-career, they took some sort of degree, and then departed from the shores of the
-Cam, on which they had spent many a jovial day&mdash;Jeremy to return to
-Kesterwick, and Ernest to pay several visits to college friends in town and
-elsewhere.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And so ended the first little round of their days.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap05"></a>CHAPTER V<br/>
-EVA&rsquo;S PROMISE.</h2>
-
-<p>
-When, on leaving Cambridge, Jeremy got back to Dum&rsquo;s Ness, Mr. Cardus
-received him with his usual semi-contemptuous coldness, a mental attitude that
-often nearly drove the young fellow wild with mortification. Not that Mr.
-Cardus really felt any contempt for him now&mdash;he had lost all that years
-ago, when the boy had been so anxious to go and &ldquo;earn his bread;&rdquo;
-but he could never forgive him for being the son of his father, or conquer his
-inherent dislike to him. On the other hand, he certainly did not allow this to
-interfere with his treatment of the lad; if anything, indeed, it made him more
-careful. What he spent upon Ernest, the same sum he spent on Jeremy, pound for
-pound; but there was this difference about it&mdash;the money he spent on
-Ernest he gave from love, and that on Jeremy from a sense of duty.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Now, Jeremy knew all this well enough, and it made him very anxious to earn his
-own living, and become independent of Mr. Cardus. But it was one thing to be
-anxious to earn your own living, and quite another to do it, as many a poor
-wretch knows to his cost, and when Jeremy set his slow brain to consider how he
-should go about the task it quite failed to supply him with any feasible idea.
-And yet he did not want much; Jeremy was not of an ambitious temperament. If he
-could earn enough to keep a cottage over his head, and find himself in food and
-clothes, and powder and shot, he would be perfectly content. Indeed, there were
-to be only two <i>sine qua nons</i> in his ideal occupation: it must admit of a
-considerable amount of outdoor exercise, and be of such a nature as would
-permit him to see plenty of Ernest. Without more or less of Ernest&rsquo;s
-company, life would not, he considered, be worth living.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-For a week or more after his arrival home these perplexing reflections simmered
-incessantly inside Jeremy&rsquo;s head, till at length, feeling that they were
-getting too much for him, he determined to consult his sister, which, as she
-had three times his brains, he would have done well to think of before.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dolly fixed her steady blue eyes upon him and listened to his tale in silence.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And so you see, Doll&rdquo;&mdash;he always called her Doll&mdash;he
-ended up, &ldquo;I&rsquo;m in a regular fix. I don&rsquo;t know what I&rsquo;m
-fit for, unless it&rsquo;s to row a boat, or let myself out to bad shots to
-kill their game for them. You see I must stick on to Ernest; I don&rsquo;t feel
-somehow as though I could get along without him; if it wasn&rsquo;t for that
-I&rsquo;d emigrate. I should be just the chap to cut down big trees in
-Vancouver&rsquo;s Island or brand bullocks,&rdquo;&rsquo; he added
-meditatively.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are a great goose, Jeremy,&rdquo; was his sister&rsquo;s comment.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He looked up, not as in any way disputing her statement, but merely for further
-information.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are a great goose, I say. What do you suppose that I have been doing
-all these three years and more that you have been rowing boats and wasting time
-up at college? <i>I</i> have been thinking, Jeremy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, and so have I, but there is no good in thinking.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, not if you stop there; but I&rsquo;ve been acting too. I&rsquo;ve
-spoken to Reginald, and made a plan, and he has accepted my plan.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You always were clever, Doll; you&rsquo;ve got all the brains and
-I&rsquo;ve got all the size;&rdquo; and he surveyed as much as he could see of
-himself ruefully.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You don&rsquo;t ask what I have arranged,&rdquo; she said, sharply, for
-in alluding to her want of stature Jeremy had touched a sore point.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am waiting for you to tell me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, you are to be articled to Reginald.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O Lord!&rdquo; groaned Jeremy, &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t like that at
-all.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Be quiet till I have told you. You are to be articled to Reginald, and
-he is to pay you an allowance of a hundred a year while you are articled, so
-that if you don&rsquo;t like it you needn&rsquo;t live here.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But I don&rsquo;t like the business, Doll; I hate it; it is a beastly
-business; it&rsquo;s a devil&rsquo;s business.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I should like to know what right you have to talk like that, Mr.
-Knowall! Let me tell you that many better men than you are content to earn
-their living by lawyer&rsquo;s work. I suppose that a man can be honest as a
-lawyer as well as in any other trade.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy shook his head doubtfully. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s blood-sucking,&rdquo; he
-said energetically.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then you must suck blood,&rdquo; she answered, with decision.
-&ldquo;Look here, Jeremy, don&rsquo;t be pig-headed and upset all my plans. If
-you fall out with Reginald over this, he won&rsquo;t do anything else for you.
-He doesn&rsquo;t like you, you know, and would be only too glad to pick a
-quarrel with you if he could do it with a clear conscience, and then where
-would you be, I should like to know?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy was unable to form an opinion as to where he would be, so she went on:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You must take to it for the present, at any rate. And then there is
-another thing to think of. Ernest is to go to the bar, and unless you become a
-lawyer, if anything happened to Reginald, there will be nobody to give him a
-start, and I&rsquo;m told that is everything at the bar.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This last Jeremy admitted to be a weighty argument.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is a precious rum sort of lawyer I shall make,&rdquo; he said, sadly,
-&ldquo;about as good as grandfather yonder, I&rsquo;m thinking. By the way, how
-has he been getting on?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, just as usual&mdash;write, write, write all day. He thinks that he is
-working out his time. He has got a new stick now, on which he has nicked all
-the months and years that have to run before he has done&mdash;little nicks for
-the months and big ones for the years. There are eight or ten big ones left
-now. Every month he cuts out a nick. It is very dreadful. You know he thinks
-that Reginald is the devil, and he hates him, too. The other day, when he had
-no writing to do in the office, I found him drawing pictures of him with horns
-and a tail, such awful pictures, and I think Reginald always looks like that to
-him. And then sometimes he wants to go out riding, especially at night. Only
-last week they found him putting a bridle on to the gray mare&mdash;the one
-that Reginald sometimes rides, you know. When did you say that Ernest was
-coming back?&rdquo; she said, after a pause.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, Doll, I told you&mdash;next Monday week.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Her face fell a little. &ldquo;O, I thought you said Saturday.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why do you want to know?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, only about getting his room ready.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, it is ready; I looked in yesterday.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense! you know nothing about it,&rdquo; she answered,
-colouring. &ldquo;Come, I wish you would go out; I want to count the linen, and
-you are in the way.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Thus adjured, Jeremy removed his large form from the table on which he had been
-sitting, and whistling to Nails, now a very ancient and preternaturally wise
-dog, set off for a walk. He had mooned along some little way, with his hands in
-his pockets and his eyes on the ground, reflecting on the unpleasant fate in
-store for him as an articled clerk, continually under the glance of Mr.
-Cardus&rsquo;s roving eye, when suddenly he became aware that two ladies were
-standing on the edge of the cliff within a dozen yards of him. He would have
-turned and fled, for Jeremy had a marked dislike to ladies&rsquo; society, and
-a strong opinion, which, however, he never expressed, that women were the root
-of all evil; but, thinking that he had been seen, he feared that retreat would
-appear rude. In one of the young ladies, for they were young, he recognised
-Miss Florence Ceswick, who to all appearance had not changed in the least
-since, some years ago, she came with her aunt to call on Dorothy. There was the
-same brown hair, curling as profusely as ever, the same keen brown eyes and
-ripe lips, the same small features and resolute expression of face. Her square
-figure had indeed developed a little. In her tight-fitting dress it looked
-almost handsome, and somehow its very squareness, that most women would have
-considered a defect, contributed to the air of power and unchanging purpose
-that would have made Florence Ceswick remarkable among a hundred handsomer
-women.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How do you do?&rdquo; said Florence, in her sharp manner. &ldquo;You
-looked as though you were walking in your sleep.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Before Jeremy could find a reply to this remark, the other young lady, who had
-been looking intently over the edge of the cliff, turned round and struck him
-dumb. In his limited experience he had never seen such a beautiful woman
-before.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She was a head and shoulders taller than her sister, so tall indeed that only
-her own natural grace could save her from looking awkward. Like her sister she
-was a brunette, only of a much more pronounced type. Her waving hair was black,
-and so were her beautiful eyes and the long lashes that curled over them. The
-complexion was a clear olive, the lips were like coral, and the teeth small and
-regular. Every advantage that Nature can lavish on a woman she had endowed her
-with in abundance, including radiant health and spirits. To these charms must
-be added that sweet and kindly look which sometimes finds a home on the faces
-of good women, a soft voice, a quick intelligence, and an utter absence of
-conceit or self-consciousness, and the reader will get some idea of what Eva
-Ceswick was like in the first flush of her beauty.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let me introduce my sister Eva, Mr. Jones.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But Mr. Jones was for the moment paralysed; he could not even take off his hat.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Florence, presently, &ldquo;she is not Medusa; there
-is no need for you to turn into stone.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This woke him up&mdash;indeed, Florence had an ugly trick of waking people up
-occasionally&mdash;and he took off his hat, which was as usual a dirty one, and
-muttered something inaudible. As for Eva, she blushed, and with ready wit said
-that Mr. Jones was no doubt astonished at the filthy state of her dress (as a
-matter of fact, Jeremy could not have sworn that she had one on at all, much
-less to its condition). &ldquo;The fact is,&rdquo; she went on, &ldquo;I have
-been lying flat on the grass and looking over the edge of the cliff.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What at?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, the bones.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The spot on which they were standing was part of the ancient graveyard of
-Titheburgh Abbey, and as the sea encroached year by year, multitudes of the
-bones of the long dead inhabitants of Kesterwick were washed out of their quiet
-graves and strewed upon the beach and unequal surfaces of the cliff.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Look,&rdquo; she said, kneeling down, an example that he followed. About
-six feet below them, which was the depth at which the corpses had originally
-been laid, could be seen fragments of lead and rotting wood projecting from the
-surface of the cliff, and, what was a more ghastly sight, eight inches or more
-of the leg-bones of a man, off which the feet had been washed away. On a ledge
-in the sandy cliff, about twenty-five feet from the top and sixty or so from
-the bottom, there lay quite a collection of human remains of all sorts and
-sizes, conspicuous among them being the bones which had composed the feet that
-belonged to the projecting shanks.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Isn&rsquo;t it dreadful?&rdquo; said Eva, gazing down with a species of
-fascination; &ldquo;just fancy coming to that! Look at that little baby&rsquo;s
-skull just by the big one. Perhaps that is the mother&rsquo;s. And oh, what is
-that buried in the sand?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-As much of the object to which she pointed at was visible looked like an old
-cannon-ball, but Jeremy soon came to a different conclusion.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is a bit of a lead coffin,&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, I should like to get down there and find out what is in it.
-Can&rsquo;t you get down?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy shook his head. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve done it as a boy,&rdquo; he said,
-&ldquo;when I was very light; but it is no good my trying now: the sand would
-give with me, and I should go to the bottom.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He was willing to do most things to oblige this lovely creature, but Jeremy was
-above all things practical, and did not see the use of breaking his neck for
-nothing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;you certainly are rather heavy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Fifteen stone,&rdquo; he said, mournfully.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But I am not ten; I think I could get down.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You&rsquo;d better not try without a rope.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Just then their conversation was interrupted by Florence&rsquo;s clear voice:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;When you two people have quite finished staring at those disgusting
-bones, perhaps, Eva, you will come home to lunch. If you only knew how silly
-you look, sprawling there like two Turks going to be bastinadoed, perhaps you
-would get up.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This was too much for Eva; she got up at once, and Jeremy followed suit.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why could you not let us examine our bones in peace, Florence?&rdquo;
-said her sister, jokingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Because you are really too idiotic. You see, Mr. Jones, anything that is
-old and fusty, and has to do with old fogies who are dead and gone centuries
-ago, has the greatest charms for my sister. She would like to go home and make
-stories about those bones: whose they were, and what they did, and all the rest
-of it. She calls it imagination; I call it fudge.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva flushed up, but said nothing; evidently she was not accustomed to answer
-her elder sister, and presently they parted to go their separate ways.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What a great oaf that Jeremy is!&rdquo; said Florence to her sister on
-their homeward way.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I did not think him an oaf at all,&rdquo; she replied, warmly; &ldquo;I
-thought him very nice.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence shrugged her square shoulders. &ldquo;Well, of course, if you like a
-giant with as much brain as an owl, there is nothing more to be said. You
-should see Ernest; he is nice, if you like.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You seem very fond of Ernest.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, I am,&rdquo; was the reply; &ldquo;and I hope that when he comes
-you won&rsquo;t poach on my manor.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You need not be afraid,&rdquo; answered Eva, smiling; &ldquo;I promise
-to leave your Ernest alone.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then that is a bargain,&rdquo; said Florence, sharply. &ldquo;Mind that
-you keep to your word.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap06"></a>CHAPTER VI.<br/>
-JEREMY FALLS IN LOVE</h2>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy, for the first time for some years, had no appetite for his dinner that
-day, a phenomenon that filled Dorothy with alarm.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My dear Jeremy,&rdquo; she said afterwards, &ldquo;what can be the
-matter with you? you had only one helping of beef and no pudding!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nothing at all,&rdquo; he replied sulkily; and the subject dropped.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Doll,&rdquo; said Jeremy presently, &ldquo;do you know Miss Eva
-Ceswick?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, I have seen her twice.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What do you think of her, Doll?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What do you think of her?&rdquo; replied that cautious young person.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think she is beautiful as&mdash;as an angel.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Quite poetical, I declare! What next? Have you seen her?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Of course, else how should I know she was beautiful?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, no wonder you had only once of beef!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy coloured.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am going to call there this afternoon; would you like to come?&rdquo;
-went on his sister.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, I&rsquo;ll come.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Better and better; it will be the first call I ever remember your having
-paid.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You don&rsquo;t think she will mind, Doll?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why should she mind? Most people don&rsquo;t mind being called on, even
-if they have a pretty face.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Pretty face! She is pretty all over.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, then, a pretty all over. I start at three; don&rsquo;t be
-late.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Thereupon Jeremy went off to beautify himself for the occasion, and his sister
-gazed at his departing form with the puzzled expression that had distinguished
-her as a child.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He&rsquo;s going to fall in love with her,&rdquo; she said to herself,
-&ldquo;and no wonder; any man would: she is &lsquo;pretty all over,&rsquo; as
-he said, and what more does a man look at? I wish that <i>she</i> would fall in
-love with him <i>before Ernest comes home;</i>&rdquo; and she sighed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At a quarter to three Jeremy reappeared, looking particularly huge in a black
-coat and his Sunday trousers. When they reached the cottage where Miss Ceswick
-lived with her nieces, they were destined to meet with a disappointment, for
-neither of the young ladies was at home. Miss Ceswick, however, was there, and
-received them very cordially.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose that you have come to see my newly imported niece,&rdquo; she
-said; &ldquo;in fact, I am sure that you have, Mr. Jeremy, because you never
-came to call upon me in your life. Ah, it is wonderful how young men will
-change their habits to please a pair of bright eyes!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy blushed painfully at this sally, but Dorothy came to his rescue.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Has Miss Eva come to live with you for good?&rdquo; she asked.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, I think so. You see, my dear, between you and me, her aunt in
-London, with whom she was living, has got a family of daughters, who have
-recently come out. Eva has been kept back as long as possible, but now that she
-is twenty it was impossible to keep her back any more. But then, on the other
-hand, it was felt&mdash;at least I think that it was felt&mdash;that to
-continue to bring Eva out with her cousins would be to quite ruin their chance
-of settling in life, because when <i>she</i> was in the room, no man could be
-got to look at <i>them</i>. And so, you see, Eva has been sent down here as a
-penalty for being so handsome.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Most of us would be glad to undergo heavier penalties than that if we
-could only be guilty of the crime,&rdquo; said Dorothy, a little sadly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, my dear, I daresay you think so,&rdquo; answered the old
-lady. &ldquo;Every young woman longs to be beautiful and get the admiration of
-men, but are they any the happier for it? I doubt it. Very often that
-admiration brings endless troubles in its train, and perhaps in the end wrecks
-the happiness of the woman herself and of others who are mixed up with her. I
-was once a beautiful woman, my dear&mdash;I am old enough to say it
-now&mdash;and I can tell you that I believe that Providence cannot do a more
-unkind thing to a woman than to give her striking beauty, unless it gives with
-it great strength of mind. A weak-minded beauty is the most unfortunate of her
-sex. Her very attractions, which are sure to draw the secret enmity of other
-women on to her, are a source of difficulty to herself, because they bring her
-lovers with whom she cannot deal. Sometimes the end of such a woman is sad
-enough. I have seen it happen several times, my dear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Often in after-life, and in circumstances that had not then arisen, did Dorothy
-think of old Miss Ceswick&rsquo;s words, and acknowledge their truth; but at
-this time they did not convince her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I would give anything to be like your niece,&rdquo; she said bluntly,
-&ldquo;and so would any other girl. Ask Florence, for instance.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, my dear, you think so now. Wait till another twenty years have
-passed over your heads, and then if you are both alive see which of you is the
-happiest. As for Florence, of course she would wish to be like Eva; of course
-it is painful for her to have to go about with a girl beside whom she looks
-like a little dowdy. I daresay that she would have been as glad if Eva had
-stopped in London as her cousins were that she left it. Dear, dear! I hope they
-won&rsquo;t quarrel. Florence&rsquo;s temper is dreadful when she
-quarrels.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This was a remark that Dorothy could not gainsay. She knew very well what
-Florence&rsquo;s temper was like.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But, Mr. Jeremy,&rdquo; went on the old lady, &ldquo;all this must be
-stupid talk for you to listen to; tell me, have you been rowing any more races
-lately?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Jeremy, &ldquo;I strained a muscle in my arm in the
-&rsquo;Varsity Race, and it is not quite well yet.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And where is my dear Ernest?&rdquo; Like most women, of whatever age
-they might be, Miss Ceswick adored Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He is coming back on Monday week.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, then he will be in time for the Smythes&rsquo; lawn tennis party. I
-hear that they are going to give a dance after it. Do you dance, Mr.
-Jeremy?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy had to confess that he did not; indeed, as a matter of fact, no earthly
-power had ever been able to drag him inside a ballroom in his life.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That is a pity; there are so few young men in these parts. Florence
-counted them up the other day, and the proportion is one unmarried man, between
-the ages of twenty and forty-five, to every nine women between eighteen and
-thirty.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then only one girl in every nine can get married,&rdquo; put in Dorothy,
-whose mind had a trick of following things to their conclusions.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And what becomes of the other eight?&rdquo; asked Jeremy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose that they all grow into old maids like myself,&rdquo; answered
-Miss Ceswick.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy, again following the matter to its conclusion, reflected that in
-fifteen years or so there would, at the present rate of progression, be at
-least twenty-five old maids within a radius of three miles round Kesterwick.
-And, much oppressed by this thought, she rose to take her leave.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I know who won&rsquo;t be left without a husband, unless men are greater
-stupids than I take them for&mdash;eh, Jeremy?&rdquo; said the kindly old lady,
-giving Dorothy a kiss.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If you mean me,&rdquo; answered Dorothy bluntly, with a slightly
-heightened colour, &ldquo;I am not so vain as to think that anybody would care
-for an undersized creature whose only accomplishment is housekeeping; and I am
-sure it is not for anybody that I should care either.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, my dear, there are still a few men of sense in the world, who would
-rather get a <i>good</i> woman as companion than a pretty face. Good-bye, my
-dear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Though Jeremy was on this occasion disappointed of seeing Eva, on the following
-morning he was so fortunate as to meet her and her sister walking on the beach.
-But when he got into her gracious presence he found somehow that he had very
-little to say; and the walk would, to tell the truth, have been rather dull, if
-it had not occasionally been enlivened by flashes of Florence&rsquo;s caustic
-wit.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-On the next day, however, he returned to the charge with several hundredweight
-of the roots of a certain flower which Eva had expressed a desire to possess.
-And so it went on till at last his shyness wore off a little, and they grew
-very good friends.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Of course all this did not escape Florence&rsquo;s sharp eyes, and one day,
-just after Jeremy had paid her sister a lumbering compliment and departed, she
-summarised her observations thus:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That moon-calf is falling in love with you, Eva.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense, Florence! and why should you call him a moon-calf? It is not
-nice to talk of people so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, if you can find a better definition, I am willing to adopt
-it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think that he is an honest gentleman-like boy; and even if he were
-falling in love with me, I do not think there would be anything to be ashamed
-of&mdash;there!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dear me, what a fuss we are in! Do you know, I shall soon begin to think
-that you are falling in love with the &lsquo;honest gentleman-like
-boy&rsquo;&mdash;yes, that is a better title than moon-calf, though not so
-nervous.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Here Eva marched off in a huff.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, Jeremy, and how are you getting on with the beautiful Eva?&rdquo;
-asked Dorothy that same day.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I say, Doll,&rdquo; replied Jeremy, whose general appearance was that of
-a man plunged into the depths of misery, &ldquo;don&rsquo;t laugh at a fellow;
-if you only knew what I feel&mdash;inside, you know&mdash;you
-wouldn&rsquo;t&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What! are you not well? have some brandy?&rdquo; suggested his sister,
-in genuine alarm.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t be an idiot, Doll; it isn&rsquo;t my stomach, it&rsquo;s
-here;&rdquo; and he knocked his right lung, under the impression that he was
-indicating the position of his heart.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And what do you feel, Jeremy?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Feel!&rdquo; he answered with a groan; &ldquo;what don&rsquo;t I feel?
-When I am away from her I feel a sort of sinking, just like one does when one
-has to go without one&rsquo;s dinner, only it&rsquo;s always there. When she
-looks at me I go hot and cold all over, and when she smiles it&rsquo;s just as
-though one had killed a couple of woodcocks right and left.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Good gracious, Jeremy!&rdquo; interposed his sister, who was beginning
-to think he had gone off his head; &ldquo;and what happens if she doesn&rsquo;t
-smile?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, then,&rdquo; he replied, sadly, &ldquo;it&rsquo;s as though one had
-missed them both.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Though his similes were peculiar, it was clear to his sister that the feeling
-he meant to convey was genuine enough.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Are you really fond of this girl, Jeremy dear?&rdquo; she said gently.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, Doll, you know, I suppose I am.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then why don&rsquo;t you ask her to marry you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;To marry <i>me!</i> Why, I am not fit to clean her shoes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;An honest gentleman is fit for any woman, Jeremy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And I haven&rsquo;t got anything to support her on even if she said yes,
-which she wouldn&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You may get that in time. Remember, Jeremy, she is a very lovely woman,
-and soon she is sure to find other lovers.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy groaned.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But if once you had secured her affection, and she is a good woman, as I
-think she is, that would not matter, though you might not be able to marry for
-some years.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then what am I to do?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I should tell her that you loved her, and ask her, if she could care for
-you&mdash;to wait for you awhile.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy whistled meditatively.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll ask Ernest about it when he comes back on Monday.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If I were you I should act for myself in that matter,&rdquo; she said
-quickly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No good being in a hurry; I haven&rsquo;t known her a
-fortnight&mdash;I&rsquo;ll ask Ernest.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then you will regret it,&rdquo; Dorothy answered, almost passionately,
-and rising, left the room.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now, what did she mean by that?&rdquo; reflected her brother aloud;
-&ldquo;she always is so deuced queer when Ernest is concerned.&rdquo; But his
-inner consciousness returned no satisfactory answer, so with a sigh the
-lovelorn Jeremy took up his hat and walked.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-On Sunday, that was the day following his talk with Dorothy, he saw Eva again
-in church, where she looked, he thought, more like an angel than ever, and was
-quite as inaccessible. In the churchyard he did, it is true, manage to get a
-word or two with her, but nothing more, for the sermon had been long, and
-Florence was hungry, and hurried her sister home to lunch.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And then, at last, came Monday, the long-expected day of Ernest&rsquo;s
-arrival.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap07"></a>CHAPTER VII.<br/>
-ERNEST IS INDISCREET</h2>
-
-<p>
-Kesterwick is a primitive place, and has no railway station nearer than
-Raffham, four miles off. Ernest was expected by the midday train, and Dorothy
-and her brother went to meet him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When they reached the station the train was just in sight, and Dorothy got down
-to await its arrival. Presently it snorted up composedly&mdash;trains do not hurry
-themselves on the single lines in the Eastern counties&mdash;and in due course
-deposited Ernest and his portmanteau.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hullo, Doll! so you have come to meet me. How are you, old girl?&rdquo;
-and he embraced her on the platform.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You shouldn&rsquo;t, Ernest: I am too big to be kissed like a little
-girl, and in public too.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Big&mdash;h&rsquo;m! Miss five feet nothing, and as for the public, I
-don&rsquo;t see any.&rdquo; The train had gone on, and the solitary porter had
-vanished with the portmanteau.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, there is no need for you to laugh at me for being small; it is not
-everybody who can be a May-pole, like you, or as broad as he is long, like
-Jeremy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-An unearthly view halloo from this last-named personage, who had caught sight
-of Ernest through the door of the booking-office, put a stop to further
-controversy, and presently all three were driving back, each talking at the top
-of his or her voice.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At the door of Dum&rsquo;s Ness they found Mr. Cardus apparently gazing
-abstractedly at the ocean, but in reality waiting to greet Ernest, to whom of
-late years he had grown greatly attached, though his reserve seldom allowed him
-to show it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hullo, uncle, how are you? You look pretty fresh,&rdquo; sang out that
-young gentleman before the cart had fairly come to a standstill.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Very well, thank you, Ernest. I need not ask how you are. I am glad to
-see you back. You have come at a lucky moment, too, for the &lsquo;Batemania
-Wallisii&rsquo; is in flower, and the &lsquo;Grammatophyllum speciosum&rsquo;
-too. The last is splendid.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah,&rdquo; said Ernest, deeply interested, for he had much of his
-uncle&rsquo;s love for orchids, &ldquo;let&rsquo;s go and see them.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Better have some dinner first; you must be hungry. The orchids will
-keep, but the dinner won&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was curious to see what a ray of light this lad brought with him into that
-rather gloomy household. Everybody began to laugh as soon as he was inside the
-doors. Even Grice of the beady eyes laughed when he feigned to be
-thunder-struck at the newly developed beauty of her person, and mad old
-Atterleigh&rsquo;s contorted features lit up with something like a smile of
-recognition when Ernest seized his hand and worked it like a pump-handle,
-roaring out his congratulations on the jollity of his looks. He was a bonny
-lad, the sight of whom was good for sore eyes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-After dinner he went with his uncle, and spent half an hour in going round the
-orchid-houses with him and Sampson the gardener. The latter was not behind the
-rest of the household in his appreciation of &ldquo;Meester&rdquo; Ernest.
-&ldquo;&rsquo;Twasn&rsquo;t many lads,&rdquo; he would say, &ldquo;that knew an
-&lsquo;Odontoglossum&rsquo; from a &lsquo;Sobralia,&rsquo;&rdquo; but Ernest
-did, and, what was more, knew whether it was well grown or not. Sampson
-appreciated a man who could discriminate orchids, and set his preference for
-Ernest down to that cause. The dour-visaged old Scotchman did not like to own
-that what really charmed him was the lad&rsquo;s open-handed, openhearted
-manner, to say nothing of his ready sympathy and honest eyes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-While they were still engaged in admiring the lovely bloom of the
-Grammatophyllum, Mr. Cardus saw Mr. de Talor come into his office, which, it
-may be remembered, was connected with the orchid blooming-house by a glass
-door. Ernest was much interested in observing the curious change that this
-man&rsquo;s appearance produced in his uncle. As a peaceful cat, dozing on a
-warm stone in summer, becomes suddenly changed into a thing of bristling
-wickedness and fury by the vision of the most inoffensive dog, so did the
-placid, bald-headed old gentleman, glowing with innocent pleasure at his
-horticultural masterpiece, commence to glow with very different emotions at the
-sight of the pompous De Talor. The ruling passion of his life asserted its sway
-in a moment, and his whole face changed; the upper lip began to quiver, the
-roving eyes glittered with a dangerous light; and then a mask seemed to gather
-over the features, which grew hard and almost inscrutable. It was an
-interesting transformation.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Although they could see De Talor, he could not see them; so for a minute they
-enjoyed an undisturbed period of observation.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The visitor walked round the room, and, casting a look of contempt at the
-flowers in the blooming-house, stopped at Mr. Cardus&rsquo;s desk, and glanced
-at the papers lying on it. Finding apparently nothing to interest him he
-retired to the window, and, putting his thumbs in the arm-holes of his
-waistcoat, amused himself by staring out of it. There was something so
-intensely vulgar and insolent in his appearance as he stood thus, that Ernest
-could not help laughing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah!&rdquo; said Mr. Cardus, with a look of suppressed malignity, half to
-himself and half to Ernest, &ldquo;I have really got a hold of you at last, and
-you may look out, my friend.&rdquo; Then he went in, and as he left the
-blooming-house Ernest heard him greet his visitor in that suave manner, with
-just a touch of deference in it, that he knew so well how to assume, and De
-Talor&rsquo;s reply of &ldquo;&rsquo;Ow do, Cardus? &rsquo;ow&rsquo;s the
-business getting on?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Outside the glass-houses Ernest found Jeremy waiting for him. It had for years
-been an understood thing that the latter was not to enter them. There was no
-particular reason why he should not; it was merely one of those signs of Mr.
-Cardus&rsquo;s disfavour that caused Jeremy&rsquo;s pride such bitter injury.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What are you going to do, old fellow?&rdquo; he asked of Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, I want to go down and see Florence Ceswick, but I suppose you
-won&rsquo;t care to come.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O yes, I&rsquo;ll come.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The deuce you will! well, I never! I say, Doll,&rdquo; he sang out to
-that young lady as she appeared upon the scene, &ldquo;what has happened to
-Jeremy&mdash;he&rsquo;s coming out calling?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I fancy he&rsquo;s got an attraction,&rdquo; said Miss Dorothy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I say, old fellow, you haven&rsquo;t been cutting me out with Florence,
-have you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am sure it would be no great loss if he had,&rdquo; put in Dorothy,
-with an impatient little stamp of the foot.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You be quiet, Doll. I&rsquo;m very fond of Florence, she&rsquo;s so
-clever, and nice-looking, too.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If being clever means being able to say spiteful things, and having a
-temper like&mdash;like a fiend, she is certainly clever enough; and as for her
-looks, they are a matter of taste&mdash;not that it is for <i>me</i> to talk
-about good looks.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, how humble we are, Doll! dust on our head and sackcloth on our back,
-and how our blue eyes flash!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Be quiet, Ernest, or I shall get angry.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O no, don&rsquo;t do that; leave that to people with a temper
-&lsquo;like&mdash;like a fiend,&rsquo; you know. There, there, don&rsquo;t get
-cross, Dolly; let&rsquo;s kiss and be friends.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I won&rsquo;t kiss you, and I won&rsquo;t be friends, and you may walk
-by yourselves;&rdquo; and before anybody could stop her she was gone.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest whistled softly, reflecting that Dorothy was not good at standing chaff.
-Then, after waiting awhile, he and Jeremy started to pay their call.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But they were destined to be unfortunate. Eva, whom Ernest had never seen, and
-of whom he had heard nothing beyond that she was
-&ldquo;good-looking&rdquo;&mdash;for Jeremy, notwithstanding his expressed
-intention of consulting him, could not make up his mind to broach the
-subject&mdash;was in bed with a bad headache, and Florence had gone out to
-spend the afternoon with a friend. The old lady was at home, however, and
-received them both warmly, more especially her favourite Ernest, whom she
-kissed affectionately.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am lucky,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;in having two nieces, or I should
-never see anything of young gentlemen like you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think,&rdquo; said Ernest, audaciously, &ldquo;that old ladies are
-much pleasanter to talk to than young ones.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Indeed, Master Ernest! then why did you look so blank when I told you
-that my young ladies were not visible?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Because I regretted,&rdquo; replied that young gentleman, who was not
-often at a loss, &ldquo;having lost an opportunity of confirming my
-views.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I will put the question again when they are present to take their own
-part,&rdquo; was the answer.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When their call was over, Ernest and Jeremy separated, Jeremy to return home,
-and Ernest to go and see his old master, Mr. Halford, with whom he stopped to
-tea. It was past seven on one of the most beautiful evenings in July when he
-set out on his homeward path. There were two ways of reaching Dum&rsquo;s Ness,
-either by the road that ran along the cliff, or by walking on the shingle of
-the beach. He chose the latter, and had reached the spot where Titheburgh Abbey
-frowned at its enemy, the advancing sea, when he suddenly became aware of a
-young lady wearing a shady hat and swinging a walking-stick, in whom he
-recognised Florence Ceswick.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How do you do, Ernest?&rdquo; she said, coolly, but with a slight flush
-upon her olive skin, which betrayed that she was not quite so cool as she
-looked; &ldquo;what are you dreaming about? I have seen you coming for the last
-two hundred yards, but you never saw me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I was dreaming of you, of course, Florence.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, indeed!&rdquo; she answered dryly; &ldquo;I thought perhaps that Eva
-had got over her headache&mdash;her headaches do go in the most wonderful
-way&mdash;and that you had seen her, and were dreaming of <i>her.</i>&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And why should I dream of her, even if I had seen her?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;For the reason that men do dream of women&mdash;because she is
-handsome.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Is she better-looking than you, then, Florence?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Better-looking, indeed! I am not good-looking.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense, Florence! you are very good-looking.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She stopped, for he had turned and was walking with her, and laid her hand
-lightly on his arm.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you really think so?&rdquo; she said, gazing full into his dark eyes.
-&ldquo;I am glad you think so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They were quite alone in the summer twilight; there was not a single soul to be
-seen on the beach, or on the cliffs above it. Her touch and the earnestness of
-her manner thrilled him; the beauty and the quiet of the evening, the sweet
-freshness of the air, the murmur of the falling waves, the fading purples in
-the sky, all these things thrilled him too. Her face looked very handsome in
-its own stern way, as she gazed at him so earnestly; and, remember, he was only
-twenty-one. He bent his dark head towards her very slowly, to give her an
-opportunity of escaping if she wished; but she made no sign, and in another
-moment he had kissed her trembling lips.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was a foolish act, for he was not in love with Florence, and he had scarcely
-done it before his better sense told him that it was foolish. But it was done,
-and who can recall a kiss?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He saw the olive face grow pale, and for a moment she raised her arm as though
-to fling it about his neck, but next second she started back from him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Did you mean that,&rdquo; she said wildly, &ldquo;or are you playing
-with me?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest looked alarmed, as well he might; the young lady&rsquo;s aspect at the
-moment was not reassuring.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mean it?&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;O yes, I meant it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I mean, Ernest,&rdquo; and again she laid her hand upon his arm and
-looked into his eyes, &ldquo;did you mean that you loved me, as&mdash;for now I
-am not ashamed to tell you&mdash;I love you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest felt that this was getting awful. To kiss a young woman was one
-thing&mdash;he had done that before&mdash;but such an outburst as this was more
-than he had bargained for. Gratifying as it was to him to learn that he
-possessed Florence&rsquo;s affection, he would at that moment have given
-something to be without it. He hesitated a little.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How serious you are!&rdquo; he said at last.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; she answered, &ldquo;I am. I have been serious for some
-time. Probably you know enough of me to be aware that I am not a woman to be
-played with. I hope that you are serious too; if you are not, it may be the
-worse for us both;&rdquo; and she flung his arm from her as though it had stung
-her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest turned cold all over, and realised that the position was positively
-gruesome. What to say or do he did not know; so he stood silent, and, as it
-happened, silence served his turn better than speech.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There, Ernest, I have startled you. It is&mdash;it is because I love
-you. When you kissed me just now, everything that is beautiful in the world
-seemed to pass before my eyes, and for a moment I heard such music as they play
-in heaven. You don&rsquo;t understand me yet, Ernest&mdash;I am fierce, I
-know&mdash;but sometimes I think that my heart is deep as the sea, and I can
-love with ten times the strength of the shallow women round me; and as I can
-love, so I can hate.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This was not reassuring intelligence to Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are a strange girl,&rdquo; he said feebly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; she answered, with a smile. &ldquo;I know I am strange; but
-while I am with you I feel so good, and when you are away all my life is a
-void, in which bitter thoughts flit about like bats. But there, good-night. I
-shall see you at the Smythes&rsquo; dance to-morrow, shall I not? You will
-dance with me, will you not? And you must not dance with Eva, remember&mdash;at
-least not too much&mdash;or I shall get jealous, and that will be bad for us
-both. And now goodnight, my dear, good-night;&rdquo; and again she put up her
-face to be kissed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He kissed it&mdash;he had no alternative&mdash;and she left him swiftly. He
-watched her retreating form till it vanished in the shadows, and then he sat
-down upon a stone, wiped his forehead, and <i>whistled.</i> Well might he whistle!
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap08"></a>CHAPTER VIII.<br/>
-A GARDEN IDYL</h2>
-
-<p>
-Ernest did not sleep well that night: the scene of the evening haunted his
-dreams, and he awoke with a sense of oppression that impartially follows on the
-heels of misfortune, folly, and lobster-salad. Nor did the broad light of the
-summer day disperse his sorrows; indeed, it only served to define them more
-clearly. Ernest was a very inexperienced youth, but, inexperienced as he was,
-he could not but recognise that he had let himself in for an awkward business.
-He was not in the smallest degree in love with Florence Ceswick; indeed, his
-predominant feeling towards her was one of fear. She was, as he had said, so
-terribly in earnest. In short, though she was barely a year older than himself,
-she was a woman possessed of a strength of purpose and a rigidity of will that
-few of her sex ever attain to at any period of their lives. This he had guessed
-long ago; but what he had not guessed was that all the tide of her life set so
-strongly towards himself. That unlucky kiss, as it were, had shot the bolt of
-the sluice-gates, and now he was in a fair way to be overwhelmed by the rush of
-the waters. What course of action he had best take with her now it was beyond
-his powers to decide. He thought of taking Dorothy into his confidence and
-asking her advice, but instinctively he shrank from doing so. Then he thought
-of Jeremy, only, however, to reject the idea. What would Jeremy know of such
-things? He little guessed that Jeremy was swelling with a secret of his own, of
-which he was too shy to deliver himself. It seemed to Ernest, the more he
-considered the matter, that there was only one safe course for him to follow,
-and that was to run away. It would be ignominious, it is true, but at any rate
-Florence could not run after him. He had made arrangements to meet a friend,
-and go for a tour with him in France towards the end of the month of August, or
-about five weeks from the present date. These arrangements he now determined to
-modify: he would go for his tour at once.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Partially comforted by these reflections, he dressed himself that evening for
-the dance at the Smythes&rsquo;, where he was to meet Florence, who, however,
-he gratefully reflected, could not expect him to kiss her there. The dance was
-to follow a lawn-tennis party, to which Dorothy, accompanied by Jeremy, had
-already gone, Ernest having, for reasons best known to himself, declined to go
-to the lawn-tennis, preferring to follow them to the dance.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When he entered the ballroom at the Smythes&rsquo;, the first quadrille was in
-progress. Making his way up the room, Ernest soon came upon Florence Ceswick,
-who was sitting with Dorothy, while in the background loomed Jeremy&rsquo;s
-gigantic form. Both the girls appeared to be waiting for him, for on his
-approach Florence, by a movement of her dress, and an almost imperceptible
-motion of her hand, at once made room for him on the bench beside her, and
-invited him to sit down. He did so.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are late,&rdquo; she said; &ldquo;why did you not come to the
-lawn-tennis?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I thought that our party was sufficiently represented,&rdquo; he
-answered, lamely, nodding towards Jeremy and his sister. &ldquo;Why are you not
-dancing?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Because nobody asked me,&rdquo; she said, sharply; &ldquo;and besides, I
-was waiting for you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Jeremy,&rdquo; said Ernest, &ldquo;here is Florence says that you
-didn&rsquo;t ask her to dance.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t talk humbug, Ernest; you know I don&rsquo;t dance.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, indeed,&rdquo; put in Dorothy, &ldquo;it is easy to see that; I
-never saw anybody look so miserable as you do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Or so big,&rdquo; said Florence, consolingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy shrank back into his corner and tried to look smaller. His sister was
-right, a dance was untold misery to him. The quadrille had ceased by now, and
-presently the band struck up a waltz, which Ernest danced with Florence. They
-both waltzed well, and Ernest kept going as much as possible, perhaps in order
-to give no opportunity for conversation. At any rate no allusion was made to
-the events of the previous evening.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Where are your aunt and sister, Florence?&rdquo; he asked, as he led her
-back to her seat.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They are coming presently,&rdquo; she answered, shortly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The next dance was a galop, and this he danced with Dorothy, whose slim figure
-looked, in the white muslin dress she wore, more like that of a child than a
-grown woman. But child or woman, her general appearance was singularly pleasing
-and attractive. Ernest thought that he had never seen the quaint, puckered
-little face, with the two steady blue eyes in it, look so attractive. Not that
-it was pretty&mdash;it was not, but it was a face with a great deal of thought
-in it, and moreover it was a face through which the goodness of its owner
-seemed to shine like the light through a lamp.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You look so nice to-night, Doll,&rdquo; said Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She flushed with pleasure, and answered simply, &ldquo;I am glad you think
-so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, I do think so; you are really pretty.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense, Ernest! Can&rsquo;t you find some other butt to practise your
-compliments on? What is the good of wasting them on me? I am going to sit
-down.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Really, Doll, I don&rsquo;t know what has come to you lately, you have
-grown so cross.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She sighed as she answered, gently:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No more do I, Ernest. I did not mean to speak crossly, but you should
-not make fun of me. Ah, here come Miss Ceswick and Eva.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They had rejoined Florence and Jeremy. The two ladies were seated, while Ernest
-and Jeremy were standing, the former in front of them, the latter against the
-wall behind, for they were gathered at the topmost end of the long room. At
-Dorothy&rsquo;s announcement both the lads bent forward to look down the room,
-and both the women fixed their eyes on Ernest&rsquo;s face anxiously,
-expectantly, something as a criminal fixes his eyes on the foreman of a jury
-who is about to pronounce words that will one way or another affect all his
-life.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t see them,&rdquo; said Ernest carelessly. &ldquo;O, here
-they come. <i>By George!</i>&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<div class="fig" style="width:100%;">
-<a name="illus03"></a>
-<br />
-<img src="images/fig03.jpg" width="413" height="600" alt="[Illustration: ]" />
-<p class="caption">&ldquo;<i>By George!</i>&rdquo;
-</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>
-Whatever these two women were looking for in his face, they had found it, and,
-to all appearance, it pleased them very little. Dorothy turned pale, and leaned
-back with a faint smile of resignation; she had expected it, that smile seemed
-to say; but the blood flamed like a danger-flag into Florence&rsquo;s haughty
-features&mdash;there was no resignation there. And meanwhile Ernest was staring
-down the room, quite unaware of the little comedy that was going on around him;
-so was Jeremy, and so was every other man who was there to stare.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And this was what they were staring at. Up the centre of the long room walked,
-or rather swept, Miss Ceswick, for even at her advanced age she moved like a
-queen, and at any other time her appearance would in itself have been
-sufficient to excite remark. But people were not looking at Miss Ceswick, but
-rather at the radiant creature who accompanied her, and whose stature dwarfed
-her, tall as she was. Eva Ceswick&mdash;for it was she&mdash;was dressed in
-white <i>soie de Chine,</i> in the bosom of which was fixed a single rose. The
-dress was cut low, and her splendid neck and arms were entirely without
-ornament. In the masses of dark hair, which was coiled like a coronet round her
-head, there glistened a diamond star. Simple as was her costume, there was a
-grandeur about it that struck the whole room; but in truth it sprang from the
-almost perfect beauty of the woman who wore it. Any dress would have looked
-beautiful upon that noble form, that towered so high, and yet seemed to float
-up the room with the grace of a swan and sway like a willow in the wind. But
-her loveliness did not end there. From those dark eyes there shone a light that
-few men could look upon and forget, and yet there was nothing bold about it. It
-was like the light of a star.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-On she came, her lips half-parted, seemingly unconscious of the admiration she
-was attracting, eclipsing all other women as she passed, and making their
-beauty, that before had seemed bright enough, look poor and mean beside her
-own. It took but a few seconds, ten perhaps, for her to walk up the room, and
-yet to Ernest it seemed long before her eyes met his own, and something passed
-from them into his heart that remained there all his life.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-His gaze made her blush a little, it was so unmistakable. She guessed who he
-was, and passed him with a little inclination of her head.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, here we are at last,&rdquo; she said, addressing her sister in her
-pure musical voice. &ldquo;What do you think? something went wrong with the
-wheel of the fly, and we had to stop to get it mended!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Indeed!&rdquo; answered Florence; &ldquo;I thought that perhaps you came
-late in order to make a more effective entry.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Florence,&rdquo; said her aunt, reprovingly, &ldquo;you should not say
-such things.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence did not answer, but put her lace handkerchief to her lip. She had
-bitten it till the blood ran.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-By this time Ernest had recovered himself. He saw several young fellows bearing
-down upon them, and knew what they were after.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Miss Ceswick,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;will you introduce me?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-No sooner said than done, and at that moment the band began to play a waltz. In
-five seconds more Eva was floating down the room upon his arm, and the
-advancing young gentlemen were left lamenting, and, if the truth must be told,
-anathematising &ldquo;that puppy Kershaw&rdquo; beneath their breath.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There was a spirit in her feet; she danced divinely. Lightly leaning on his
-arm, they swept round the room, the incarnation of youthful strength and
-beauty, and, as they passed, even sour old Lady Asteigh lowered her ancient
-nose an inch or more, and deigned to ask who that handsome young man dancing
-with the &ldquo;tall girl&rdquo; was. Presently they halted, and Ernest
-observed a more than usually intrepid man coming towards them, with the design,
-no doubt, of obtaining an introduction and the promise of dances. But again he
-was equal to the occasion.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Have you a card?&rdquo; he asked.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, yes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Will you allow me to put my name down for another dance? I think that
-our steps suit.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, we get on nicely. Here it is.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest took it. The young man had arrived now, and was hovering round and
-glowering. Ernest nodded to him cheerfully, and &ldquo;put his name&rdquo; very
-much down&mdash;indeed, for no less than three dances and an extra.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva opened her eyes a little, but she said nothing; their steps suited so very
-well.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;May I ask you, Kershaw&mdash;&rdquo; began his would-be rival.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, certainly,&rdquo; answered Ernest benignly, &ldquo;I will be with you
-presently;&rdquo; and they floated off again on the rising wave of the music.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When the dance ended, they stopped just by the spot where Miss Ceswick was
-sitting. Florence and Dorothy were both dancing, but Jeremy, who did not dance,
-was standing by her, looking as sulky as a bear with a sore head. Eva stretched
-out her hand to him with a smile.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope that you are going to dance with me, Mr. Jones,&rdquo; she said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t dance,&rdquo; he answered, curtly, and walked away.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She gazed after him wonderingly; his manner was decidedly rude.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I do not think that Mr. Jones is in a good temper,&rdquo; she said to
-Ernest, with a smile.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, he is a queer fellow; going out always makes him cross,&rdquo; he
-answered carelessly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then the gathering phalanx of would-be partners marched in and took possession,
-and Ernest had to retire.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The ball was drawing to its close. The dancing-room, notwithstanding its open
-windows, was intensely hot, and many of the dancers were strolling in the
-gardens, among them Ernest and Eva. They had just danced their third waltz, in
-which they had discovered that their steps suited better than ever.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence, Dorothy, and her brother were also walking all three together. It is
-curious how people in misfortune cling to one another. They walked in silence;
-they had nothing to say. Presently they caught sight of two tall figures
-standing by a bush, on which was fixed a dying Chinese lantern. It is sometimes
-unfortunate to be tall, it betrays one&rsquo;s identity; there was no mistaking
-the two figures, though it was so dark. Instinctively the three halted. And
-just then the expiring Chinese lantern did an unkind thing: it caught fire, and
-threw a lurid light upon a very pretty little scene. Ernest was bending forward
-towards Eva with all his soul in his expressive eyes, and begging for
-something. She was blushing sweetly, and looking down at the rose in her bosom;
-one hand, too, was raised, as though to unfasten it. The light for a moment was
-so strong that Dorothy afterwards remembered noticing how long Eva&rsquo;s
-curling black eyelashes looked against her cheek. In another second it had
-flared out, and the darkness hid the sequel; but it may here be stated that
-when Eva reappeared in the ballroom she had lost her rose.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Charming and idyllic as this <i>tableau très vivant</i> of youth and beauty,
-obeying the primary law of nature, and making love to one another in a Garden
-of Eden illumined with Chinese lanterns, undoubtedly was, it did not seem to
-please any of the three spectators.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy actually forgot the presence of ladies, and went so far as to swear
-aloud. Nor did they reprove him; probably it gave their feelings some vicarious
-relief.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think that we had better be going home; it is late,&rdquo; said
-Dorothy, after a pause. &ldquo;Jeremy, will you go and order the
-carriage?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy went.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence said nothing, but she took her fan in both her hands and bent it
-slowly, so that the ivory sticks snapped one by one with a succession of sharp
-reports. Then she threw it down, and set her heel upon it, and ground it into
-the path. There was something inexpressibly cruel about the way in which she
-crushed the pretty toy; the action seemed to be the appropriate and unconscious
-outcome of some mental process, and it is an odd proof of the excitement under
-which they were both labouring, that at the time the gentle-minded Dorothy saw
-nothing strange about it. At that moment the two girls were nearer each other
-than they had ever been before, or would ever be again; the common stroke of a
-misfortune for a moment welded their opposite natures into one. At that moment,
-too, they knew that they both loved the same man; before, they had guessed it,
-and had not liked each other the better for it, but now that was forgotten.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think, Florence,&rdquo; said Dorothy, with a little tremor in her
-voice, &ldquo;that we are &lsquo;out of the running,&rsquo; as Jeremy says.
-Your sister is too beautiful for any woman to stand against her. He has fallen
-in love with her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Florence, with a bitter laugh and a flash of her brown
-eyes; &ldquo;his highness has thrown a handkerchief to a new favourite, and she
-has lost no time in picking it up. We always used to call her &lsquo;the
-sultana;&rsquo;&rdquo; and she laughed again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Perhaps,&rdquo; suggested Dorothy, &ldquo;she only means to flirt with
-him a little; I hoped that Jeremy&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Jeremy! what chance has Jeremy against him? Ernest would make more way
-with a woman in two hours than Jeremy would in two years. We all love to be
-taken by storm, my dear. Do not deceive yourself. Flirt with him! she will love
-him wildly in a week. Who could help loving him?&rdquo; she added, with a
-thrill of her rich voice.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy said nothing: she knew that it was true, and they walked a few steps in
-silence.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dorothy, do you know what generally happens to favourites and
-sultanas?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They come to a bad end; the other ladies of the harem murder them, you
-know.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What <i>do</i> you mean?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t be frightened; I don&rsquo;t mean that we should murder my
-dear sister. What I do mean is, that I think we might manage to depose her.
-Will you help me if I find a plan?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy&rsquo;s better self had had time to assert itself by now; the influence
-of the blow was over, and their natures were wide apart again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, certainly not,&rdquo; she answered. &ldquo;Ernest has a right to
-choose for himself, and if your sister gets the better of us, it is the fortune
-of war, that is all&mdash;though certainly the fight is not quite fair,&rdquo;
-she added, as she thought of Eva&rsquo;s radiant loveliness.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence glanced at her contemptuously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You have no spirit,&rdquo; she said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What do you mean to do?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mean to do!&rdquo; she answered, swinging round and facing her; &ldquo;I
-mean to have my revenge.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O Florence, it is wicked to talk so! whom are you going to be revenged
-on&mdash;Ernest? It is not his fault if &mdash;if you are fond of him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, it is his fault; but whether it is his fault or not, he shall
-suffer. Remember what I say, for it will come true; he shall suffer. Why should
-I bear it all alone? But he shall not suffer so much as she. I told her that I
-was fond of him, and she promised to leave him alone&mdash;do you hear
-that?&mdash;and yet she is taking him away from me to gratify her
-vanity&mdash;she, who can have anybody she likes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hush, Florence! Don&rsquo;t give way to your temper so, or you will be
-overheard. Besides, I daresay that we are making a great deal out of nothing;
-after all, she only gave him a rose.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t care if we are overheard, and it is not nothing. I guessed
-that it would be so, I knew that it would be so, and I know what is coming now.
-Mark my words, within a month Ernest and my sweet sister will be sitting about
-on the cliff with their arms around each other&rsquo;s necks. I have only to
-shut my eyes, and I can see it. O, here is Jeremy! Is the carriage there,
-Jeremy? That&rsquo;s right. Come on, Dorothy, let us go and say good-night and
-be off. You will drop me at the cottage, won&rsquo;t you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Half an hour later the fly that had brought Miss Ceswick and Eva came round,
-and with it Ernest&rsquo;s dog-cart. But as Miss Ceswick was rather anxious
-about the injured wheel, Ernest, as in duty bound, offered to see them safe
-home, and, ordering the cart to follow, got into the fly without waiting for an
-answer.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Of course Miss Ceswick went to sleep, but it is not probable that either Ernest
-or Eva followed her example. Perhaps they were too tired to talk; perhaps they
-were beginning to find out what a delightful companionship is to be found in
-silence; perhaps his gentle pressure of the little white-gloved hand, that lay
-unresisting in his own, was more eloquent than any speech.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Don&rsquo;t be shocked, my reader; you or I would have done the same, and
-thought ourselves very lucky fellows!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At any rate, that drive was over all too soon.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence opened the door for them; she had told the servant to go to bed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When Eva reached the door of her room she turned round to say good-night to her
-sister; but the latter, instead of contenting herself with a nod, as was her
-custom, came and kissed her on the face.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I congratulate you on your dress and on your conquest,&rdquo; and again
-she kissed her and was gone.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is not like Florence to be so kind,&rdquo; reflected her younger
-sister. &ldquo;I can&rsquo;t remember when she kissed me last.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva did not know that as there are some kisses that declare peace, and set the
-seal on love, there are others that announce war, and proclaim the hour of
-vengeance or treachery. Judas kissed his Master when he betrayed Him.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap09"></a>CHAPTER IX.<br/>
-EVA FINDS SOMETHING</h2>
-
-<p>
-When Ernest woke on the morning after the ball it was ten o&rsquo;clock, and he
-had a severe headache. This&mdash;the headache&mdash;was his first impression,
-but presently his eye fell upon a withering red rose that lay upon the
-dressing-table, and he smiled. Then followed reflections, those confounded
-reflections that always dog the heels of everything pleasant in life, and he
-ceased to smile.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In the end he yawned and got up. When he reached the sitting-room, which looked
-cool and pleasant in contrast to the hot July sunshine that beat upon the
-little patch of bare turf in front of the house, and the glittering sea beyond,
-he found that the others had done their breakfast. Jeremy had gone out, but his
-sister was there, looking a little pale, no doubt from the late hours of the
-previous night.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Good-morning, Doll!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Good-morning, Ernest,&rdquo; she answered, rather coldly. &ldquo;I have
-been keeping your tea as warm as I can, but I&rsquo;m afraid it is getting
-cold.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are a good Samaritan, Doll. I&rsquo;ve got such a head! perhaps the
-tea will make it better.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She smiled as she gave it to him; had she spoken what was in her mind, she
-would have answered that she had &ldquo;such a heart.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He drank the tea, and apparently felt better for it, for presently he asked
-her, in comparatively cheerful tones, how she liked the dance.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, very well, thank you, Ernest: how did you like it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, awfully! I say, Doll!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, Ernest.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Isn&rsquo;t she lovely?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who, Ernest?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who! why, Eva Ceswick, of course.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, Ernest, she is very lovely.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There was something about her tone that was not encouraging; at any rate he did
-not pursue the subject.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Where is Jeremy?&rdquo; he asked next.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He has gone out.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Presently, Ernest, having finished his second cup of tea, went out too, and
-came across Jeremy mooning about the yard.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hullo, my hearty! and how are you after your dissipations?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right, thank you,&rdquo; answered Jeremy, sulkily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest glanced up quickly. The voice was the voice of Jeremy, but the tones
-were not his tones.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is up, old chap?&rdquo; he said, slipping his arm through his
-friend&rsquo;s.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nothing.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O yes, there is, though. What is it? Out with it? I am a splendid father
-confessor.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy freed his arm, and remained sulkier than ever. Ernest looked hurt, and
-the look softened the other.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, of course, if you won&rsquo;t tell me, there is nothing more to be
-said;&rdquo; and he prepared to move off.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;As though you didn&rsquo;t know!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Upon my honour I don&rsquo;t.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then if you&rsquo;ll come in here, I will tell you;&rdquo; and Jeremy
-opened the door of the little outhouse, where he stuffed his birds and kept his
-gun and collection of eggs and butterflies, and motioned Ernest majestically
-in.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He entered and seated himself upon the stuffing-table, gazing abstractedly at a
-bittern that Jeremy had shot about the time that this story opened, and which
-was now very moth-eaten, and waved one melancholy leg in the air in a way meant
-to be imposing, but only succeeded in being grotesque.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, what is it?&rdquo; he interrogated of the glassy eye of the
-decaying bittern.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy turned his broad back upon Ernest&mdash;he felt that he could speak
-better on such a subject with his back turned&mdash;and, addressing empty space
-before him, said:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think it was precious unkind of you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What was precious unkind?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;To go and cut me out of the only girl&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I ever loved?&rdquo; suggested Ernest, for he was hesitating.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I ever loved!&rdquo; chimed in Jeremy; the phrase expressed his
-sentiments exactly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, old chap, if you would come to the point a little more, and tell
-me who the deuce you are talking about&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, who should I be talking about? there is only one girl&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You ever loved?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I ever loved!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, in the name of the Holy Roman Empire, <i>who</i> is she?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, Eva Ceswick.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest whistled.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I say, old chap,&rdquo; he said, after a pause, &ldquo;why didn&rsquo;t
-you tell me? I didn&rsquo;t even know that you knew her. Are you engaged to
-her, then?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Engaged! no.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, then, have you an understanding with her?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, of course not.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Look here, old fellow, if you would just slew round a bit and tell me
-how the matter stands, we might get on a little.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It doesn&rsquo;t stand at all, but&mdash;I worship the ground she treads
-on; there!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah!&rdquo; said Ernest, &ldquo;that&rsquo;s awkward, for so do
-I&mdash;at least I think I do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy groaned, and Ernest groaned too, by way of company.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Look here, old chap,&rdquo; said the latter, &ldquo;what is to be done?
-You should have told me, but you didn&rsquo;t, you see. If you had, I would
-have kept clear. Fact is, she bowled me over altogether, bowled me
-clean.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So she did me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll tell you what, Jeremy, I&rsquo;ll go away and leave you to
-make the running. Not that I see that there is much good in either of us making
-the running, for we have nothing to marry on, and no more has she.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And we are only twenty-one. We can&rsquo;t marry at twenty-one,&rdquo;
-put in Jeremy, &ldquo;or we should have a large family by the time we&rsquo;re
-thirty. Fellows who marry at twenty-one always do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She&rsquo;s twenty-one; she told me so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She told me too,&rdquo; said Jeremy, determined to show that Ernest was
-not the only person favoured with this exciting fact.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, shall I clear? we can&rsquo;t jaw about it for ever.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Jeremy, slowly, and in a way that showed that it cost
-him an effort to say it, &ldquo;that would not be fair; besides, I expect that
-the mischief is done; everybody gets fond of you, old fellow, men or women. No,
-you sha&rsquo;n&rsquo;t go, and we won&rsquo;t get to loggerheads over it
-either. I&rsquo;ll tell you what we will do&mdash;we will toss up.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This struck Ernest as a brilliant suggestion.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Right you are,&rdquo; he said, at once producing a shilling;
-&ldquo;singles or threes?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Singles, of course; it&rsquo;s sooner over.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest poised the coin on his thumb.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You call. But, I say, what are we tossing for? We can&rsquo;t draw lots
-for the girl like the fellows in Homer. We haven&rsquo;t captured her
-yet.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This was obviously a point that required consideration. Jeremy scratched his
-head.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How will this do?&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;The winner to have a month to
-make the running in, the loser not to interfere. If she won&rsquo;t have
-anything to say to him after a month, then the loser to have his fling. If she
-will, loser to keep clear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That will do. Stand clear; up you go.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The shilling spun in the air.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Tails!&rdquo; howled Jeremy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It lit on the beak of the astonished bittern and bounded off on to the floor,
-finally rolling under a box full of choice specimens of the petrified bones of
-antediluvian animals that had been washed out of the cliffs. The box was lugged
-out of the way with difficulty, and the shilling disclosed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Heads it is!&rdquo; said Ernest exultingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I expected as much; just my luck. Well, shake hands, Ernest. We
-won&rsquo;t quarrel about the girl, please God.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They shook hands heartily enough and parted; but from that time for many a long
-day there was an invisible something between them that had not been there
-before. Strong indeed must be the friendship of which the bonds do not slacken
-when the shadow of a woman&rsquo;s love falls upon it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-That afternoon Dorothy said that she wanted to go into Kesterwick to make some
-purchases, and Ernest offered to accompany her. They walked in silence as far
-as Titheburgh Abbey; indeed, they both suffered from a curious constraint that
-seemed effectually to check their usual brother-and-sister-like relations.
-Ernest was just beginning to feel the silence awkward when Dorothy stopped.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What was that?&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;I thought I heard somebody cry
-out.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They listened, and presently both heard a woman&rsquo;s voice calling for help.
-The sound seemed to come from the cliff on their left. They stepped to the edge
-and looked over. As may be remembered, some twenty feet from the top of the
-cliff, and fifty or more from the bottom, there was at this spot a sandy ledge,
-on which were deposited many of the remains washed out of the churchyard by the
-sea. Now, this particular spot was almost inaccessible without ladders,
-because, although it was easy enough to get down to its level, the cliff bulged
-out on either side of it, and gave for the space of some yards little or no
-hold for the hands or feet of the climber.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The first thing that caught Ernest&rsquo;s eyes when he looked over was a
-lady&rsquo;s foot and ankle, which appeared to be resting on a tiny piece of
-rock that projected from the surface of the cliff; the next was the imploring
-face of Eva Ceswick, who was sprawling in a most undignified position on the
-bulge of sandstone, with nothing more between her and eternity than that very
-unsatisfactory and insufficient knob of rock. It was evident that she could
-move neither one way or the other without being precipitated to the bottom of
-the cliff, to which she was apparently clinging by suction like a fly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Great God!&rdquo; exclaimed Ernest. &ldquo;Hold on, I will come to
-you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I <i>can&rsquo;t</i> hold much longer.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was one thing to say that he would come, and another to do it. The sand gave
-scarcely any foothold; how was he to get enough purchase to pull Eva round the
-bulge? He looked at Dorothy in despair. Her quick mind had taken in the
-situation at a glance.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You must get down there above her, Ernest, and lie flat, and stretch out
-your hand to her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But there is nothing to hold to. When she puts her weight on to my hand
-we shall both go together.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, I will hold your legs. Be quick, she is getting exhausted.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It took Ernest but two seconds to reach the spot that Dorothy had pointed to,
-and to lay himself flat, or rather slanting, for his heels were a great deal
-higher than his head. Fortunately, he discovered a hard knob of sandstone,
-against which he could rest his left hand. Meanwhile, Dorothy, seating herself
-as securely as she could above, seized him by the ankles. Then Ernest stretched
-his hand downwards, and, gripping Eva by the wrist, began to put out his
-strength. Had the three found any time to indulge their sense of humour, they
-might have found the appearance they presented intensely ludicrous; but they
-did not, for the very good reason that for thirty seconds or so their lives
-were not worth a farthing&rsquo;s purchase. Ernest strained and strained, but
-Eva was a large woman, although she danced so lightly, and the bulge over which
-he had to pull her was almost perpendicular. Presently he felt that Dorothy was
-beginning to slip above him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She must make an effort, or we shall all go,&rdquo; she said in a quiet
-voice.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Drive your knees into the sand and throw yourself forward, it is your
-only chance!&rdquo; gasped Ernest to the exhausted woman beneath him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She realised the meaning of his words, and gave a desperate struggle.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Pull, Doll; for God&rsquo;s sake, pull! she&rsquo;s coming.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then followed a second of despairing effort, and she was beside him on the spot
-where he lay; another struggle, and the three sank exhausted on the top of the
-cliff, rescued from a most imminent death.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;By Jove!&rdquo; ejaculated Ernest, &ldquo;that was a near thing!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy nodded; she was too exhausted to speak. Eva smiled and fainted.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He turned to her with a little cry and began to chafe her cold hands.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, she&rsquo;s dead, Doll!&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, she has fainted, give me your hat.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Before he could do so she had seized it, and was running as quickly as her
-exhaustion would allow towards a spring that bubbled up a hundred yards away,
-and which once had been the water supply of the old abbey.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest went on rubbing for a minute or more, but without producing the
-slightest effect. He was in despair. The beautiful face beneath him looked so
-wan and death-like; all the red had left her lips. In his distress, and
-scarcely knowing what he did, he bent over them and kissed them, once, twice,
-thrice. That mode of restoration is not recommended in the medicine-chest
-&ldquo;guide,&rdquo; but in this instance it was not without its effect.
-Presently a faint and tremulous glow diffused itself over the pale cheek; in
-another moment it deepened to a most unmistakable blush. (Was it a
-half-consciousness of Ernest&rsquo;s new method of treatment, or merely the
-returning blood, that produced the blush? Let us not inquire.) Next Eva sighed,
-opened her eyes, and sat up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, you are not dead!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, I don&rsquo;t think so, but I can&rsquo;t quite remember. What was
-it? Ah, I know;&rdquo; and she shut her eyes, as though to keep out some horrid
-sight. Presently she opened them again. &ldquo;You have saved my life,&rdquo;
-she said. &ldquo;If it had not been for you, I should have now been lying
-crushed at the foot of that dreadful cliff. I am so grateful.&rdquo;&rsquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At that moment Dorothy came back with a little water in Ernest&rsquo;s black
-hat, for in her hurry she had spilled most of it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Here, drink some of this,&rdquo; she said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva tried to do so; but a billycock hat is not a very convenient
-drinking-vessel till you get used to it, and she upset more than she swallowed.
-But what she drank did her good. She put down the hat, and they all three
-laughed a little; it was so funny drinking out of an old hat.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Were you long down there before we came?&rdquo; asked Dorothy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, not long; only about half a minute on that dreadful bulge.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What on earth did you go there for?&rdquo; said Ernest, putting his
-dripping hat on to his head, for the sun was hot.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wanted to see the bones. I am very active, and thought that I could
-get up quite safely; but sand is so slippery. O, I forgot; look here;&rdquo;
-and she pointed to a thin cord that was tied to her wrist.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is that?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, it is tied to such an odd lead box that I found in the sand. Mr.
-Jones said the other day that he thought it was a bit of an old coffin; but it
-is not, it is a lead box with a rusty iron handle. I could not move it much;
-but I had this bit of cord with me&mdash;I thought I might want it getting
-down, you know&mdash;so I tied one end of it to the handle.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let us pull it up,&rdquo; said Ernest, unfastening the cord from
-Eva&rsquo;s wrist, and beginning to tug.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But the case was too heavy for him to lift alone; indeed, it proved as much as
-they could all three manage to drag it to the top. However, up it came at last.
-Ernest examined it carefully, and came to the conclusion that it was very
-ancient. The massive iron handle at the top of the oblong case was almost eaten
-through with rust, and the lead itself was much corroded, although, from
-fragments that still clung to it, it was evident that it had once been
-protected by an outer case of oak. Evidently the case had been washed out of
-the churchyard where it had lain for centuries.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;This is quite exciting,&rdquo; said Eva, who was now sufficiently
-interested to forget all about her escape. &ldquo;What can be in
-it?&mdash;treasure or papers, I should think.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know,&rdquo; answered Ernest; &ldquo;I should hardly think
-that they would bury such things in a churchyard. Perhaps it is a small
-baby.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ernest,&rdquo; broke in Dorothy, in an agitated way, &ldquo;I
-don&rsquo;t like that thing. I can&rsquo;t tell you why, but I am sure it is
-unlucky. I wish that you would throw it back to where it came from, or into the
-sea. It is a horrid thing, and we have nearly lost our lives over it
-already.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense, Doll! whoever thought that you were so superstitious? Why,
-perhaps it is full of money or jewels. Let&rsquo;s take it home and open
-it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am not superstitious, and you can take it home if you like. I will not
-touch it; I tell you it is a horrid thing.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right, Doll, then you sha&rsquo;n&rsquo;t have a share of the spoil.
-Miss Ceswick and I will divide it. Will you help me to carry it to the house,
-Miss Ceswick?&mdash;that is, unless you are afraid of it, like Doll.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O no,&rdquo; she answered, &ldquo;I am not afraid; I am dying of
-curiosity to see what is inside.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap10"></a>CHAPTER X.<br/>
-WHAT EVA FOUND</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are sure you are not too tired?&rdquo; said Ernest, after a
-moment&rsquo;s consideration.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, indeed, I have quite recovered,&rdquo; she answered, with a blush.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest blushed too, from sympathy probably, and went to pick up a bough that
-lay beneath a stunted oak-tree which grew in the ruins of the abbey, on the
-spot where once the altar had stood. This he ran through the iron handle, and,
-directing Eva to catch hold of one end, he took the other himself, and they
-started for the house, Dorothy marching solemnly in front.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-As it happened, Jeremy and Mr. Cardus were strolling along together smoking,
-when suddenly they caught sight of the cavalcade advancing, and hurried to meet
-it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is all this?&rdquo; asked Mr. Cardus of Dorothy, who was now nearly
-fifty yards ahead of the other two.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, Reginald, it is a long story. First we found Eva Ceswick slipping
-down the cliff, and dragged her up just in time.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My luck again!&rdquo; thought Jeremy, groaning in spirit.&rdquo; I might
-have sat on the edge of that cliff for ten years, and never got a chance of
-dragging her up.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then we pulled up that horrid box, which she found down in the sand, and
-tied a cord to.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; exclaimed Ernest, who was now arriving, &ldquo;and, would
-you believe it, Dorothy wanted us to throw it back again!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I know I did; I said that it was unlucky, and it is unlucky.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense, Dorothy! it is very interesting. I expect that it will be
-found to contain deeds buried in the churchyard for safety and never dug up
-again,&rdquo; broke in Mr. Cardus, much interested. &ldquo;Let me catch hold of
-that stick, Miss Ceswick, and I daresay that Jeremy will go on and get a hammer
-and a cold chisel, and we will soon solve the mystery.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, very well, Reginald; you will see,&rdquo; said Dorothy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus glanced at her. It was curious her taking such an idea. Then they
-walked to the house. On reaching the sitting-room they found Jeremy already
-there with his hammer and chisel. He was an admirable amateur blacksmith;
-indeed, there were few manual trades of which he did not know a little, and,
-placing the case on the table, he set about the task of opening it in a most
-workmanlike manner.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The lead, though it was in places eaten quite away, was still thick and sound
-near the edges, and it took him a good quarter of an hour&rsquo;s hard chopping
-to remove what appeared to be the front of the case. Excitement was at its
-height as it fell forward with a bang on the table; but it was then found that
-what had been removed was merely a portion of an outer case, there being
-beneath it an inner chest, also of lead.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Jeremy, &ldquo;they fastened it up pretty well;&rdquo;
-and then he set to work again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This inner skin of lead was thinner and easier to cut than the first had been,
-and he got through the job more quickly, though not nearly quickly enough for
-the impatience of the bystanders. At last the front fell out, and disclosed a
-small cabinet made of solid pieces of black oak and having a hinged door, which
-was fastened by a tiny latch and hasp of the common pattern, that is, probably,
-as old as doors are. From this cabinet there came a strong odour of spices.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The excitement was now intense, and seemed to be shared by everybody in the
-house. Grice had come in through the swing-door and stationed herself in the
-background, Sampson and the groom were peeping through the window, and even old
-Atterleigh, attracted by the sound of the hammering, had strolled aimlessly in.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What can it be?&rdquo; said Eva, with a gasp.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Slowly Jeremy extracted the cabinet from its leaden coverings and set it on the
-table.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Shall I open it?&rdquo; he said; and, suiting the action to the word, he
-lifted the latch, and placing the chisel between the edge of the little door
-and its frame, prised the cabinet open.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The smell of spices became more pronounced than ever, and for a moment the
-cloud of dust that came from them, as their fragments rolled out of the cabinet
-on to the table, prevented the spectators, who, all but Dorothy, were crowding
-up to the case, from seeing what it contained. Presently, however, a large
-whitish bundle became visible. Jeremy put in his hand, pulled it out, and laid
-it on the top of the box. It was heavy. But when he had done this he did not
-seem inclined to go any further in the matter. The bundle had, he considered,
-an uncanny look.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At that moment an interruption took place, for Florence Ceswick entered through
-the open door. She had come up to see Dorothy, and was astonished to find such
-a gathering.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, what is it all about?&rdquo; she asked.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Somebody told her in as few words as possible, for everybody&rsquo;s attention
-was concentrated on the bundle, which nobody seemed inclined to touch.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, why don&rsquo;t you open it?&rdquo; asked Florence.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think that they are all afraid,&rdquo; said Mr. Cardus, with a laugh.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He was watching the various expressions on the faces with an amused air.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, I am not afraid, at any rate,&rdquo; said Florence. &ldquo;Now,
-ladies and gentlemen, the Gorgon&rsquo;s head is about to be unveiled: look the
-other way, or you will all be turned to stone.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;This is getting delightfully ghastly,&rdquo; said Eva to Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I know that it will be something horrid,&rdquo; added Dorothy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Meanwhile Florence had drawn out a heavy pin of ancient make, with which the
-wrapping of the bundle was fastened, and begun to unwind a long piece of
-discoloured linen. At the very first turn another shower of spices fell out. As
-soon as these had been swept aside, Florence proceeded slowly with her task,
-and as she removed fold after fold of the linen, the bundle began to take shape
-and form, and the shape it took was that of a human head!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva saw it, and drew closer to Ernest; Jeremy saw it, and felt inclined to
-bolt; Dorothy saw it, and knew that her presentiments as to the disagreeable
-nature of the contents of that unlucky case were coming true; Mr. Cardus saw
-it, and was more interested than ever. Only Florence and Hard-riding Atterleigh
-saw nothing. Another turn or two of the long winding-sheet, and it slipped
-suddenly away from whatever it enclosed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There was a moment&rsquo;s dead silence as the company regarded the object thus
-left open to their gaze. Then one of the women gave a low cry of fear, and,
-actuated by some common impulse, they all turned and broke from the room in
-terror, and calling, &ldquo;It is alive!&rdquo; No, not all. Florence turned
-pale, but she stood there by the object, the winding-sheet in her hands; and
-old Atterleigh also remained staring at it, either paralysed or fascinated.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It, too, seemed to stare at him from its point of vantage on the oak chest, in
-which it had rested for so many centuries.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And this was what he saw there upon the box. Let the reader imagine the face
-and head of a lovely woman of some thirty years of age, the latter covered with
-rippling brown locks of great length, above which was set a roughly fashioned
-coronet studded with uncut gems. Let him imagine this face, all but the lips,
-which were coloured red, pale with the bloodless pallor of death, and the flesh
-so firm and fresh-looking that it might have been that of a corpse not a day
-old; so firm, indeed, that the head and all its pendant weight of beautiful
-hair could stand on the unshrunken base of the neck which, in some far-past
-age, cold steel had made so smooth. Then let him imagine the crowning horror of
-this weird sight. The eyes of a corpse are shut, but the eyes in this head were
-wide open, and the long black lashes, as perfect now as on the day of death,
-hung over what, when the light struck them, appeared to be two balls of
-trembling fire, that glittered and rolled and fixed themselves upon the face of
-the observer like living human eyes. It was these awful eyes that carried such
-terror to the hearts of the on-lookers when they cast their first glance
-around, and made them not unnaturally cry out that the head was alive.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was not until he had made a very careful examination of these fiery orbs
-that Mr. Cardus was afterwards able to discover what they were; and as the
-reader may as well understand at once that this head had nothing about it
-different from any other skilfully preserved head, he shall be taken into
-confidence without delay. They were balls of crystal fitted, probably by the
-aid of slender strings, into the eye sockets with such infernal art that they
-shook and trembled to the slightest sound, and even on occasion rolled about.
-The head itself, he also discovered, had not been embalmed in the ordinary
-fashion, by extracting the brain, and filling the cavity with spices or
-bitumen, but had been preserved by means of the injection of silica, or some
-kindred substance, into the brain, veins, and arteries, which, after permeating
-all the flesh, had solidified and made it like marble. Some brilliant pigment
-had been used to give the lips their natural colour, and the hair had been
-preserved by means of the spices. But perhaps the most dreadful thing about
-this relic of forgotten ages was the mocking smile that the artist who
-&ldquo;set it up&rdquo; had managed to preserve upon the face&mdash;a
-smile that just drew the lips up enough to show the white teeth beneath, and
-gave the idea that its wearer had died in the full enjoyment of some malicious
-jest or triumph. It was a terrible thing to look on, that long-dead, beautiful
-face, with its abundant hair, its crowning coronet, its moving crystal eyes,
-and its smile; and yet there was something awfully fascinating about it: those
-who had seen it once would always long to see it again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus had fled with the rest, but as soon as he got outside the swing-door
-his common sense reasserted itself, and he stopped.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Come, come,&rdquo; he called to the others, &ldquo;don&rsquo;t be so
-silly; you are not going to run away from a dead woman&rsquo;s head, are
-you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You ran too,&rdquo; said Dorothy, pulling up and gasping.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, I know I did; those eyes startled me; but, of course, they are
-glass. I am going back; it is a great curiosity.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is an accursed thing,&rdquo; muttered Dorothy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus turned and re-entered the room, and the others, comforting
-themselves with the reflection that it was broad daylight, and drawn by their
-devouring curiosity, followed him. That is, they all followed him except Grice,
-who was ill for two days afterwards. As for Sampson and the groom, who had seen
-the sight through the window, they ran for a mile or more along the cliff
-before they stopped.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When they got back into the room, they found old Atterleigh still standing and
-staring at the crystal eyes, that seemed to be returning his gaze with compound
-interest, while Florence was there with the long linen wrapper in her hand,
-gazing down at the beautiful hair that flowed from the head on to the oak box,
-from the box to the table, and from the table nearly to the ground. It was,
-oddly enough, of the same colour and texture as her own. She had taken off her
-hat when she began to undo the wrappings, and they all noticed the fact. Nor
-did the resemblance stop there. The sharp fine features of the mummied head
-were very like Florence&rsquo;s; so were the beautiful teeth and the fixed hard
-smile. The dead face was more lovely, indeed, but otherwise the woman of the
-Saxon era&mdash;for, to judge from the rude tiara on her brow, it is probable
-that she was Saxon&mdash;and the living girl of the nineteenth century might
-have been sisters, or mother and daughter. The resemblance startled them all as
-they entered the room, but they said nothing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They drew near, and gazed again without a word. Dorothy was the first to break
-the silence.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think she must have been a witch,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;I hope that
-you will have it thrown away, Reginald, for she will bring us bad luck. The
-place where she was buried has been unlucky; it was a great abbey once, now it
-is a deserted ruin. When we tried to get the case up, we were all very nearly
-killed. She will bring us bad luck. I am sure of it. Throw it away, Reginald,
-throw her into the sea. Look, she is just like Florence there.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence had smiled at Dorothy&rsquo;s words, and the resemblance became more
-striking than ever. Eva shuddered as she noticed it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense, Dorothy!&rdquo; said Mr. Cardus, who was a bit of an
-antiquarian, and had now forgotten his start in his collector&rsquo;s zeal,
-&ldquo;it is a splendid find. But I forgot,&rdquo; he added, in a tone of
-disappointment, &ldquo;it does not belong to me, it belongs to Miss
-Ceswick.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, I am sure you are welcome to it, so far as I am concerned,&rdquo;
-said Eva, hastily. &ldquo;I would not have it near me on any account.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, very well. I am much obliged to you. I shall value the relic very
-much.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence had meanwhile moved round the table, and was gazing earnestly into the
-crystal eyes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What are you doing, Florence?&rdquo; asked Ernest, sharply, for the
-scene was uncanny, and jarred upon him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I?&rdquo; she answered, with a little laugh; &ldquo;I am seeking an
-inspiration. That face looks wise, it may teach me something. Besides, it is so
-like my own, I think she must be some far-distant ancestress.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So she has noticed it too,&rdquo; thought Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Put her back in the box, Jeremy,&rdquo; said Mr. Cardus. &ldquo;I must
-have an air-tight case made.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I can do that,&rdquo; said Jeremy, &ldquo;by lining the old one with
-lead, and putting a glass front to it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy set about putting the head away, touching it very gingerly. When he got
-it back into the oak case, he dusted it, and placed it upon a bracket that
-jutted from the oak panelling at the end of the room.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Florence, &ldquo;now that you have put your guardian
-angel on her pedestal, I think that we must be going home. Will any of you walk
-a little way with us?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy said that they would all come&mdash;that is, all except Mr. Cardus, who
-had gone back to his office. Accordingly they started, and as they did so,
-Florence intimated to Ernest that she wished to speak to him. He was alarmed
-and disappointed, for he was afraid of Florence, and wished to walk with Eva,
-and presumably his face betrayed what was in his mind to her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do not be frightened,&rdquo; she said, with a slight smile; &ldquo;I am
-not going to say anything disagreeable.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Of course he replied that he knew that she never could say anything
-disagreeable at any time; at which she smiled again the same faint smile, and
-they dropped behind.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ernest,&rdquo; she said presently, &ldquo;I want to speak to you. You
-remember what happened between us two evenings ago on this very beach;&rdquo;
-for they were walking home by the beach.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, Florence, I remember,&rdquo; answered Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, Ernest, the words I have to say are hard for a woman&rsquo;s lips,
-but I must say them. I made a mistake, Ernest, in telling you that I loved you
-as I did, and in talking all the wild nonsense that I talked. I don&rsquo;t
-know what made me do it&mdash;some foolish impulse, no doubt. Women are very
-curious, you know, Ernest, and I think that I am more curious than most. I
-suppose I thought I loved you, Ernest&mdash;I know I thought it when you kissed
-me; but last night, when I saw you at the Smythes&rsquo; dance, I knew that it
-was all a mistake, and that I cared for you&mdash;no more than you cared for
-me, Ernest. Do you understand me?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He did not understand her in the least, but he nodded his head, feeling vaguely
-that things were turning out very well for him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That is all right; and so here, in the same place where I said them, I
-renounce them. We will forget all that foolish scene, Ernest. I made a little
-mistake when I told you that my heart was as deep as the sea; I find that it is
-shallow as a brook. But will you answer me one question, Ernest, before we
-close this conversation?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, Florence, if I can.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, when you&mdash;you kissed me the other night, you did not really
-mean it, did you? I mean you only did so for a freak, or from the impulse of
-the moment, not because you loved me? Don&rsquo;t be afraid to tell me, because
-if it was so, I shall not be angry; you see you have so much to forgive me for.
-I am breaking faith, am I not?&rdquo; And she looked him straight in the face
-with her piercing eyes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest&rsquo;s glance fell under that searching gaze, and the lie that men are
-apt to think it no shame to use where women are concerned rose to his lips. But
-he could not get it out&mdash;he could not bring himself to say that he did
-love her&mdash;so he compromised matters.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think you were more in earnest than I was, Florence.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She laughed, a cold little laugh, that somehow made his flesh creep.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Thank you for being candid: it makes matters so much easier, does it
-not? But, do you know, I suspected as much, when I was standing there by that
-head to-day, just at the time that you took Eva&rsquo;s hand.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest started visibly. &ldquo;Why, your back was turned!&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, but I saw what you did reflected in the crystal eyes. Well, do you
-know, as I stood there, it seemed to me as though I could consider the whole
-matter as dispassionately and with as clear a brain as though I had been that
-dead woman. All of a sudden I grew wise. But there are the others waiting for
-us.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We shall part friends, I hope, Florence?&rdquo; said Ernest anxiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O yes, Ernest, a woman always follows the career of her old admirer with
-the deepest interest, and for about five seconds you were my admirer&mdash;when
-you kissed me, you know. I shall watch all your life, and my thoughts shall
-follow your footsteps like a shadow. Good-night, Ernest, good-night;&rdquo; and
-again she smiled that mocking smile which was so like that on the features of
-the dead woman, and fixed her piercing eyes upon his face. He bade her
-good-night, and made his way homewards with the others, feeling an undefinable
-dread heavy on his heart.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap11"></a>CHAPTER XI.<br/>
-DEEP WATERS</h2>
-
-<p>
-In due course Jeremy duly fitted up &ldquo;the witch,&rdquo; as the mysterious
-head came to be called at Dum&rsquo;s Ness in her air-tight cabinet, which he
-lengthened till it looked like a clock-case, in order to allow the beautiful
-hair to hang down at full length, retaining, however, the original door and
-ancient latch and hasp. His next step was to fit the plate-glass front, and
-exhaust the air as well as was feasible from the interior of the case. Then he
-screwed on the outside door, and stood it back on its bracket in the
-oak-paneled sitting-room, where, as has been said, it looked for all the world
-like an eight-day clock-case.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Just as he had finished the job, a visitor&mdash;it was Mr. de Talor&mdash;came
-in, and remarked that he had made a precious ugly clock. Jeremy, who disliked
-<i>the</i> De Talor, as he called him, excessively, said that he would not say
-so when he had seen the works, and at the same time unhasped the oak door of
-the cabinet, and turned the full glare of the dreadful crystal eyes on to his
-face. The results were startling. For a moment De Talor stared and gasped; then
-all the rich hues faded from his features, and he sank back in a sort of fit.
-Jeremy shut up the door in a hurry, and his visitor soon recovered; but for
-years nothing would induce him to enter that room again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-As for Jeremy himself, at first he was dreadfully afraid of &ldquo;the
-witch,&rdquo; but as time went on&mdash;for his job took him several
-days&mdash;he seemed to lose his awe of her, and even to find a fearful joy in
-her society. He spent whole hours, as he sat in his workshop in the yard,
-tinkering at the airtight case, in weaving histories in which this beautiful
-creature, whose head had been thus marvellously recovered, played the leading
-part. It was so strange to look at her lovely scornful face, and think that,
-long ages since, men had loved it, and kissed it, and played with the waving
-hair.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There it was, this relic of the dead, preserved by the consummate skill of some
-old monk or chemist, so that it retained all its ancient beauty long after the
-echoes of the tragedy, with which it must have been connected, had died out of
-the world. For, as he wrought at his case, Jeremy grew certain that it was the
-ghastly memento of some enormous crime; indeed, by degrees, as he tacked and
-hammered at the lead lining, he made up a history that was quite satisfactory
-to his mind, appealing on doubtful points to the witch herself, who was on the
-table near him, and ascertaining whether she meant &ldquo;yes&rdquo; or
-&ldquo;no&rdquo; by the simple process of observing whether or not her eyes
-trembled when he spoke. It was slow work getting the story together in this
-fashion, but then the manufacture of the case was slow also, and it was not
-without its charm, for he felt it an honour to be taken into the confidence of
-so lovely a lady.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But if the head had a fascination for Jeremy, it had a still greater charm for
-his grandfather. The old man would continually slip out of the office and cross
-the yard to the little room where Jeremy worked, in order to stare at this
-wonderful relic. One night, indeed, when the case was nearly finished, Jeremy
-remembered that he had not locked the door of his workshop. He was already half
-undressed, but slipping on his coat again, he went out by the back door and
-crossed the yard, carrying the key with him. It was bright moonlight, and
-Jeremy, having slippers on, walked without noise. When he reached the workshop,
-and was about to lock the door, he thought he heard a sound in the room. This
-startled him, and for a moment he meditated retreat, leaving the head to look
-after itself. Those eyes were interesting in the daytime, but he scarcely cared
-to face them alone at night. It was foolish, but they did look so very much
-alive! After a moment&rsquo;s hesitation, during which the sound, whatever it
-was, again made itself audible, he determined to compromise matters by going
-round to the other side of the room and looking in at the little window. With a
-beating heart he stole round, and quietly peeped in. The moonlight was shining
-bright into the room, and struck full upon the long case he had manufactured.
-He had left it <i>shut</i>, and the head inside it. Now it was open; he could
-clearly see the white outlines of the trembling eyes. The sound, too&mdash;a
-muttering sound&mdash;was still going on. Jeremy drew back, and wiped the
-perspiration from his forehead, and for the second time thought of flight. But
-his curiosity overcame him, and he looked again. This time he discovered the
-cause of the muttering. Seated upon his carpentering-bench was his grandfather,
-old Atterleigh, who appeared to be staring with all his might at the head, and
-talking incoherently to himself. This was the noise he had heard through the
-door. It was an uncanny sight, and made Jeremy feel cold down the back. While
-he was still contemplating it, and wondering what to do, old Atterleigh rose,
-closed the case, and left the room. Jeremy slipped round, locked up the door,
-and made his way back to bed much astonished. He did not, however, say anything
-of what he had seen, only in future he was careful never to leave the door of
-his workshop open.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At last the case was finished, and, for an amateur, a very good job he made of
-it. When it was done he placed it, as already narrated, back on the bracket,
-and showed it to Mr. de Talor.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But from the day when Eva Ceswick nearly fell to the bottom of the cliff in the
-course of her antiquarian researches, things began to go wrong at Dum&rsquo;s
-Ness. Everybody felt it except Ernest, and he was thinking too much of other
-things. Dorothy was very unhappy in those days, and began to look thin and
-miserable, though she sturdily alleged, when asked, that she never had been
-better in her life. Jeremy himself was also unhappy, and for a good reason. He
-had caught the fever that women like Eva Ceswick have it in their power to give
-to the sons of men. His was a deep self-contained nature, very gentle and
-tender, not admitting many things into its affections, but loving such as were
-admitted with all the heart and soul and strength. And it was in the deepest
-depths of this loyal nature that Eva Ceswick had printed her image; before he
-knew it, before he had time to think, it was photographed there upon his heart,
-and he felt that there it must stay for good or evil; that plate could never be
-used again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She had been so kind to him; her eyes had grown so bright and friendly when she
-saw him coming! He was sure that she liked him (which indeed she did), and once
-he had ventured to press her little hand, and he had thought that she returned
-the pressure, and had not slept all night in consequence.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But perhaps this was a mistake. And then, just as he was getting on so nicely,
-came Ernest, and scattered his hopes like mists before the morning sun. From
-the moment that those two met, he knew that it was all up with his chance. And
-next, to make assurance doubly sure, Providence itself, in the shape of a
-shilling, had declared against him, and he was left lamenting. Well, it was all
-fair; but still it was very hard, and for the first time in his life he felt
-inclined to be angry with Ernest. Indeed, he was angry, and the fact made him
-more unhappy than ever, because he knew that his anger was unjust, and because
-his brotherly love condemned it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But for all that, the shadow between them grew darker.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus, too, had his troubles, connected, needless to say&mdash;for nothing
-else ever really troubled him&mdash;with his monomania of revenge. Mr. de
-Talor, of whose discomfiture he had at last made sure, had unexpectedly slipped
-out of his power, nor could he at present see any way in which to draw him back
-again. Consequently he was distressed. As for Hard-riding Atterleigh, ever
-since he had found himself fixed by &ldquo;the witch&rsquo;s&rdquo; crystal
-eye, he had been madder than ever, and more perfectly convinced that Mr. Cardus
-was the devil in person. Indeed, Dorothy, who watched over the old man, the
-grandfather who never knew her, thought that she observed a marked change in
-him. He worked away at his writing as usual, but, it appeared to her, with more
-vigour, as though it were a thing to encounter and get rid of. He would cut the
-notches out of his stick calendar, too, more eagerly than heretofore, and
-altogether it seemed as though his life had become dominated by some new
-purpose. She called Mr. Cardus&rsquo;s attention to this change; but he
-laughed, and said that it was nothing, and would probably pass with the moon.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But if nobody else was happy, Ernest was&mdash;that is, except when he was sunk
-in the depths of woe, which was, on an average, about three days a week. On the
-occasion of these seizures, Dorothy, noting his miserable aspect and entire
-want of appetite, felt much alarmed, and took an occasion after supper to ask
-him what was the matter. Before many minutes were over she had cause to regret
-it; for Ernest burst forth with a history of his love and his wrongs that
-lasted for an hour. It appeared that another young gentleman, one of those who
-danced with the lovely Eva at the Smythes&rsquo; ball, had been making the most
-unmistakable advances; he had called&mdash;three times; he had sent
-flowers&mdash;twice (Ernest sent them every morning, beguiling Sampson into
-cutting the best orchid-blooms for that purpose); he had been out
-walking&mdash;once. Dorothy listened quietly, till he ceased of his own accord.
-Then she spoke.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So you really love her, Ernest?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Love her! I&rdquo;&mdash;but we will not enter into a description of
-this young man&rsquo;s raptures. When he had done, Dorothy did a curious thing.
-She rose from her chair, and coming to where Ernest was sitting, bent over him,
-and kissed him on the forehead, and as she did so he noticed vaguely that she
-had great black rings round her eyes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope that you will be happy, my dear brother. You will have a lovely
-wife, and I think that she is as good as she is beautiful.&rdquo; She spoke
-quite quietly, but somehow her voice sounded like a sob. He kissed her in
-acknowledgment, and she glided away.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest did not think much of the incident, however. Indeed, in five minutes his
-thoughts were back with Eva, with whom he really was seriously and earnestly in
-love. In sober truth, the antics that he played were enough to make the angels
-weep to see a human being possessing the normal weight of brain making such a
-donkey of himself. For instance, he would promenade for hours at night in the
-neighbourhood of the Cottage. Once he ventured into the garden to enjoy the
-perfect bliss of staring at six panes of glass, got severely bitten by the
-house-dog for his pains, and was finally chased for a mile or more by both the
-dog and the policeman, who, having heard of the mysterious figure that was to
-be seen mooning (in every sense of the word) round the Cottage, had laid up to
-watch for him. Next day he had the satisfaction of hearing from his
-adored&rsquo;s own lips the story of the attempted burglary, but as she told it
-there was a smile playing about the corners of her mouth which almost seemed to
-indicate that she had her suspicions as to who the burglar was. And then Ernest
-walked so very lame, which, considering that the teeth of a brute called Towzer
-had made a big hole in his calf, was not to be wondered at.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-After this he was obliged to give up his midnight sighing, but he took it out
-in other ways. Once indeed, without warning, he flopped down on to the floor
-and kissed Eva&rsquo;s hand, and then, aghast at his own boldness, fled from
-the room.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At first all this amused Eva greatly. She was pleased at her conquest, and
-took a malicious pleasure in leading Ernest on. When she knew that he was
-coming she would make herself look as lovely as possible, and put on all her
-charming little ways and graces in order to more thoroughly enslave him.
-Somehow, whenever Ernest thought of her in after years as she was at that
-period of her life, his memory would call up a vision of her in a pretty little
-drawing-room at the Cottage, leaning back in a low chair in such a way as to
-contrive to show off her splendid figure to the best advantage, and also the
-tiny foot and slender ankle that peeped from beneath her soft white dress.
-There she sat, a little Skye-terrier called &ldquo;Tails&rdquo; on her lap,
-with which his rival had presented her but a fortnight before,
-and&mdash;yes&mdash;actually kissing the brute at intervals, her eyes shining
-all the time with innocent coquetry. What would not Ernest have given to occupy
-for a single minute the position of that unappreciative Skye-terrier! It was
-agony to see so many kisses wasted on a dog, and Eva, seeing that he thought
-so, kissed the animal more vigorously than ever.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At last he could stand it no longer. &ldquo;Put that dog down!&rdquo; he said,
-peremptorily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She obeyed him, and then, remembering that he had no right to dictate to her
-what she should do, made an effort to pick it up again; but
-&ldquo;Tails,&rdquo; who, be it added, was not used to being kissed in private
-life, and thought the whole operation rather a bore, promptly bolted.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why should I put the dog down?&rdquo; she asked, with a quick look of
-defiance.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Because I hate to see you kissing it; it is so effeminate.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He spoke in a masterful way; it was a touch of the curb, and there are few
-things a proud woman hates so much as the first touch of the curb.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What right have you to dictate what I shall or shall not do?&rdquo; she
-asked, tapping her foot upon the floor.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest was very humble in those days, and he collapsed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;None at all. Don&rsquo;t be angry, Eva&rdquo; (it was the first time
-that he had called her so; till now she had always been Miss Ceswick),
-&ldquo;but the fact was I could not bear to see you kissing that dog; I was
-jealous of the brute.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Whereupon she blushed furiously and changed the subject. But after a while
-Eva&rsquo;s coquettishness began to be less and less marked. When they met she
-no longer greeted him with a smile of mischief, but with serious eyes that once
-or twice, he thought, bore traces of tears. At the same time she threw him into
-despair by her coldness. Did he venture a tender remark, she would pretend not
-to hear it&mdash;alas, that the mounting blood should so obstinately proclaim
-that she did! Did he touch her hand, it was cold and unresponsive. She was
-quieter too, and her reserve frightened him. Once he tried to break it, and
-began some passionate appeal, but she rose without answering and turned her
-face to the window. He followed her, and saw that her dark eyes were full of
-tears. This he felt was even more awful than her coldness, and, fearing that he
-had offended her, he obeyed her whispered entreaty and went. Poor boy! he was
-very young. Had he had a little more experience, he might have found means to
-brush away her tears and his own doubts. It is a melancholy thing that such
-opportunities should, as a rule, present themselves before people are old
-enough to take advantage of them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The secret of all this change of conduct was not far to seek. Eva had played
-with edged tools till she cut her fingers to the bone. The dark-eyed boy, who
-danced so well and had such a handsome, happy face, had become very dear to
-her. She had begun by playing with him, and now, alas! she loved him better
-than anybody in the world. That was the sting of the thing; she had fallen in
-love with a <i>boy</i> as young as herself&mdash;a boy, too, who, so far as she
-was aware, had no particular prospects in life. It was humiliating to her pride
-to think that she, who in the few months that she had been &ldquo;out&rdquo; in
-London, before her cousins rose up and cast her forth, had already found the
-satisfaction of seeing one or two men of middle age and established position at
-her feet, and the further satisfaction of requesting them to kneel there no
-more, should in the upshot have to strike her colours to a boy of twenty-one,
-even though he did stand six feet high, and had more wits in his young head and
-more love in his young heart than all her middle-aged admirers put together.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Perhaps, though she was a woman grown, she was not herself quite old enough to
-appreciate the great advantage it is to any girl to stamp her image upon the
-heart of the man she loves while the wax is yet soft and undefaced by the half
-worn-out marks of many shallow dies; perhaps she did not know what a blessing
-it is to be able to really <i>love</i> a man at all, young, middle-aged, or
-old. Many women wait till they cannot love without shame to make that
-discovery. Perhaps she forgot that Ernest&rsquo;s youth was a fault which would
-mend day by day, and he had abilities, which, if she would consent to inspire
-them, might lead him to great things. At any rate, two facts remained in her
-mind after much thinking: she loved him with all her heart, and she was ashamed
-of it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But as yet she could not make up her mind to any fixed course. It would have
-been easy to crush poor Ernest, to tell him that his pretensions were
-ridiculous, to send him away, or to go away herself, and so to make an end of a
-position that she felt was getting absurd, and which we may be sure her elder
-sister Florence did nothing to make more pleasant. But she could not do it;
-that was the long and short of the matter. The idea of living without Ernest
-made her feel cold all over; it seemed to her that the only hours that she
-really did live were the hours which they spent together, and that when he went
-away he took her heart with him. No, she could not make up her mind to that;
-the thought was too cruel. Then there was the other alternative&mdash;to
-encourage him a little and become engaged to him, to brave everything for his
-sake. But as yet she could not make up her mind to that either.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva Ceswick was very loving, very sweet, and very good, but she did not possess
-a determined mind.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap12"></a>CHAPTER XII.<br/>
-DEEPER YET</h2>
-
-<p>
-While Ernest was wooing and Eva doubting, Time, whose interest in earthly
-affairs is that of the sickle in the growing crop, went on his way as usual.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The end of August came, as it has come so many thousand times since this globe
-gave its first turn in space, as it will come for many thousand times more,
-till at last, its appointed course run out, the world darkens, quivers, and
-grows still; and, behold! Ernest was still wooing, Eva still doubting.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-One evening&mdash;it was a very beautiful evening&mdash;this pair were walking
-together on the sea-shore. Whether they met by appointment or by accident does
-not matter; they did meet, and there they were, strolling along together, as
-fully charged with intense feeling as a thunder-cloud with electricity, and
-almost as quiet. The storm had not yet burst.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-To listen to the talk of these two, they might have met for the first time
-yesterday. It was chiefly about the weather.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Presently, in the course of their wanderings, they came to a little
-sailing-boat drawn up upon the beach&mdash;not far up, however, just out of the
-reach of the waves. By this boat, in an attitude of intense contemplation,
-there stood an ancient mariner. His hands were in his pockets, his pipe was in
-his mouth, his eyes were fixed upon the deep. Apparently he did not notice
-their approach till they were within two yards of him. Then he turned,
-&ldquo;dashed&rdquo; himself, and asked the lady, with a pull of his grizzled
-fore-lock, if she would not take a sail.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest looked surprised.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How&rsquo;s the wind?&rdquo; he asked.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Straight off shore, sir; will turn with the turn of the tide, sir, and
-bring you back.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Will you come for a bit of a sail, Eva?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O no, thank you. I must be getting home; it is seven
-o&rsquo;clock.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There is no hurry for you to get home. Your aunt and Florence have gone
-to tea with the Smythes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Indeed, I cannot come; I could not think of such a thing.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Her words were unequivocal, but the ancient mariner put a strange
-interpretation upon them. First he hauled up the little sail, and then, placing
-his brown hands against the stern of the boat, he rested his weight upon them,
-and caused her to travel far enough into the waves to float her bow.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now, miss.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am not coming, indeed.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>Now,</i> miss.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I will <i>not</i> come, Ernest.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Come,&rdquo; said Ernest, quietly holding out his hand to help her in.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She took it and got in. Ernest and the mariner gave a strong shove, and as the
-light boat took the water the former leaped in, and at the same second a puff
-of wind caught the sail, and took them ten yards out or more.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, the sailor is left behind!&rdquo; said Eva.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest gave a twist to the tiller to get the boat&rsquo;s head straight off
-shore, and then leisurely looked round. The mariner was standing as they had
-found him, his hands in his pockets, his pipe in his mouth, his eye fixed upon
-the deep.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He doesn&rsquo;t seem to mind it,&rdquo; he said, meditatively.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, but I do; you must go back and fetch him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Thus appealed to, Ernest went through some violent manoeuvres with the tiller,
-without producing any marked effect on the course of the boat, which by this
-time had got out of the shelter of the cliff, and was bowling along merrily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Wait till we get clear of the draught from the cliff, and I will bring
-her round.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But when at last they were clear from the draught of the cliff, and he slowly
-got her head round, lo and behold, the mariner had vanished!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How unfortunate!&rdquo; said Ernest, getting her head towards the open
-sea again; &ldquo;he has probably gone to his tea.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva tried hard to get angry, but somehow she could not: she only succeeded in
-laughing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If I thought that you had done this on purpose, I would never come out
-with you again.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest looked horrified. &ldquo;On purpose!&rdquo; he said; and the subject
-dropped.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They were sitting side by side in the stern-sheets of the boat, and the sun was
-just dipping all red-hot into the ocean. Under the lee of the cliff there were
-cool shadows; before them was a path of glory that led to a golden gate. The
-air was very sweet, and for those two all the world was lovely; there was no
-sorrow on the earth, there were no storms upon the sea.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva took off her hat, and let the sweet breeze play upon her brow. Then she
-leaned over the side, and, dipping her hand into the cool water, watched the
-little track it made.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Eva.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, Ernest.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you know I am going away?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The hand was withdrawn with a start.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Going away! when?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The day after to-morrow; to Guernsey first, then to France.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And when are you coming back again?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think that depends upon you, Eva.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The hand went back into the water. They were a mile or more from the shore now.
-Ernest manipulated the sail and tiller so as to sail slowly parallel with the
-coast-line. Then he spoke again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Eva.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-No answer.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Eva, for God&rsquo;s sake look at me!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There was something in his voice that forced her to obey. She took her hand out
-of the water and turned her eyes on to his face. It was pale, and the lips were
-quivering.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I love you,&rdquo; he said, in a low, choked voice.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She grew angry. &ldquo;Why did you bring me here? I will go home. This is
-nonsense; you are nothing but a boy!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There are moments in life when the human face is capable of conveying a more
-intense and vivid impression than any words, when it seems to speak to the very
-soul in a language of its own. And so it was with Ernest now: he made no answer
-to her reproaches, but, if that were possible, his features grew paler yet, and
-his eyes, shining like stars, fixed themselves upon her, and drew her to him.
-And what they said she and he knew alone, nor could any words convey it, for
-the tongue in which they talked is not spoken in this world.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A moment still she wavered, fighting against the sweet mastery of his will with
-all her woman&rsquo;s strength, and then&mdash;O Heaven! it was done, and his
-arms were round about her, her head upon his breast, and her voice was lost in
-sobs and broken words of love.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-O, radiant-winged hour of more than mortal joy; the hearts which you have
-touched will know when their time comes that they have not beat quite in vain!
-</p>
-
-<div class="fig" style="width:100%;">
-<a name="illus04"></a>
-<br />
-<img src="images/fig04.jpg" width="407" height="600" alt="[Illustration: ]" />
-<p class="caption">&ldquo;O, radiant-winged hour!&rdquo;
-</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>
-And so they sat, those two, quite silent, for there seemed to be no need for
-speech; words could not convey half they had to say, and, indeed, to tell the
-honest truth, their lips were, for the most part, otherwise employed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Meanwhile the sun went down, and the sweet moon arose over the quiet sea, and
-turned their little ship to silver. Eva gently disengaged herself from his
-arms, and half-rose to look at it; she had never thought it half so beautiful
-before. Ernest looked at it too. It is a way that lovers have.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you know the lines?&rdquo; he said; &ldquo;I think I can say them:
-</p>
-
-<p class="poem">
-&lsquo;With a swifter motion,<br/>
-Out upon the ocean,<br/>
-Heaven above and round us, and you along with me:<br/>
-Heaven around and o&rsquo;er us,<br/>
-The Infinite before us,<br/>
-Floating on for ever, upon the flowing sea.&rsquo;&rdquo;<br/>
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Go on,&rdquo; she said, softly.
-</p>
-
-<p class="poem">
-&ldquo;&lsquo;What time is it, dear, now?<br/>
-We are in the year now<br/>
-Of the New Creation, one million, two, or three;<br/>
-But where are we now, love?<br/>
-We are, as I trow, love,<br/>
-In the Heaven of Heavens, upon the Crystal Sea.&rsquo;&rdquo;<br/>
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That is how I hope it may be with us, dear,&rdquo; she said, taking his
-hand, as the last words passed his lips.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Are you happy now?&rdquo; he asked her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, Ernest, I am happy indeed. I do not think that I shall ever be so
-happy again; certainly I never was so happy before. Do you know, dear, I wish
-to tell you so, that you may see how mean I have been; I have fought so hard
-against my love for you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He looked pained. &ldquo;Why?&rdquo; he asked.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I will tell you quite truly, Ernest&mdash;because you are so young. I
-was ashamed to fall in love with a boy, and yet you see, dear, you have been
-too strong for me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, there is no difference in our ages!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, Ernest, but I am a woman, and ever so much older than you. We age so
-much quicker, you know. I feel about old enough to be your mother,&rdquo; she
-said, with a pretty assumption of dignity.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And I feel quite old enough to be your lover,&rdquo; he replied,
-impertinently.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So it seems. But, Ernest, if three months ago anybody had told me that I
-should be in love to-day with a boy of twenty-one, I would not have believed
-them. Dear, I have given you all my heart; you will not betray me, will you?
-You know very young men are apt to change their minds.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He flushed a little as he answered, feeling that it was tiresome to have the
-unlucky fact that he was only twenty-one so persistently thrust before him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then they are young men who have not had the honour of winning your
-affections. A man who has once loved you could never forget you. Indeed, it is
-more likely that you will forget me; you will have plenty of temptation to do
-so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She saw that she had vexed him. &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t be angry, dear; but you see
-the position is a very difficult one, and, if I could not be quite sure of you,
-it would be intolerable.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My darling, you may be as sure of me as woman can be of man; but
-don&rsquo;t begin your doubts over again. They are settled now. Let us be quite
-happy just this one evening. No doubt there are plenty coming when we shall not
-be able to.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And so they kissed each other and sailed on&mdash;homeward, alas! for it was
-getting late&mdash;and were perfectly happy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Presently they drew near the shore, and there, at the identical spot where they
-had left him, stood the ancient mariner. His hands were in his pockets, his
-pipe was in his mouth, his eyes were fixed upon the deep.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest grounded the little boat skilfully enough, and, jumping over the bow, he
-and the mariner pulled it up. Then Eva got out, and as she did so she thought,
-in the moonlight, that she noticed something resembling a twinkle in the
-latter&rsquo;s ancient eye. She felt confused&mdash;there is nothing so
-confusing as a guilty conscience&mdash;and, to cover her confusion, plunged
-into conversation, while Ernest was finding some money to pay for the boat.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you often let boats?&rdquo; she asked.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, miss, only to Mr. Ernest in a general way&rdquo; (so that wicked
-Ernest had set a trap to catch her).
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, then, I suppose you go out fishing?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, miss, only for rikkration, like.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then what do you do?&rdquo;&mdash;she was getting curious on the point.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Times I does nothing; times I stands on the beach and sees things; times
-I runs cheeses, miss.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Run cheeses!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, miss, Dutch ones.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He means that he brings cargoes of Dutch cheeses to Harwich.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh!&rdquo; said Eva.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest paid the man, and they turned to go. She had not gone many yards when
-she felt a heavy hand laid upon her shoulder. Turning round in astonishment,
-she perceived the mariner.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I say, miss,&rdquo; he said, in a hoarse whisper.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, what?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>Niver you eat the rind of a Dutch cheese!</i> I says it as
-knows.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva did not forget his advice.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap13"></a>CHAPTER XIII.<br/>
-MR. CARDUS UNFOLDS HIS PLANS</h2>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ernest,&rdquo; said Mr. Cardus, on the morning following the events
-described in the previous chapter, &ldquo;I want to speak to you in my
-office&mdash;and you too, Jeremy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They both followed him into his room, wondering what was the matter. He sat
-down and so did they, and then, as was his habit, letting his eyes stray over
-every part of their persons except their faces, he began:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is time that you two fellows took to doing something for yourselves.
-You must not learn to be idle men&mdash;not that most young men require much
-teaching in that way. What do you propose to do?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy and Ernest stared at one another rather blankly, but apparently Mr.
-Cardus did not expect an answer. At any rate, he went on before either of them
-could frame one.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You don&rsquo;t seem to know, never gave the matter any consideration
-probably; quite content to obey the Bible literally, and take no thought for
-the morrow. Well, it is lucky that you have somebody to think for you. Now I
-will tell you what I propose for you both. I want you, Ernest, to go to the
-bar. It is a foolish profession for most young men to take to, but it will not
-be so in your case, because, as it happens, if you show yourself capable, I
-shall by degrees be able to put a good deal of business in your
-hands&mdash;Chancery business, for I have little to do with any other. I
-daresay that you will wonder where the business is to come from. I don&rsquo;t
-seem to do very much here, do I? with a mad old hunting-man as a clerk, and
-Dorothy to copy my private letters; but I do, for all that. I may as well tell
-you both, in confidence, that this place is only the head-centre of my
-business. I have another office in London, another at Ipswich, and another at
-Norwich, though they all carry on business under different names; besides which
-I have other agencies of a different nature. But all this is neither here nor
-there. I have communicated with Aster, the rising Chancery man, and he will
-have a vacancy in his chambers next term. Let me see&mdash;term begins on
-November 2nd; I propose, Ernest, to write to-day to enter you at
-Lincoln&rsquo;s Inn. I shall make you an allowance of three hundred a year,
-which you must clearly understand you must not exceed. I think that is all I
-have to say about the matter.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am sure I am very much obliged to you, uncle&mdash;&rdquo; began
-Ernest, fervently, for since the previous evening he had clearly realised that
-it was necessary for him to make a beginning of doing something.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But his uncle cut him short.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right, Ernest, we will understand all that. Now, Jeremy, for you. I
-propose that you shall be articled to me, and if you work well and prove
-useful, it is my intention in time to admit you to a share of the business. In
-order that you may not feel entirely dependent, it is my further intention to
-make you an allowance also, on the amount of which I have not yet
-settled.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy groaned in spirit at the thought of becoming a lawyer, even with a
-&ldquo;share of the business,&rdquo; but he remembered his conversation with
-Dorothy, and thanked Mr. Cardus with the best grace that he could muster.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right, then; I will have the articles prepared at once, and you can
-take to your stool in the office next week. I think that is all I have to
-say.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Acting on this hint, the pair were departing, Jeremy in the deepest state of
-depression, induced by the near prospect of that stool, when Mr. Cardus called
-Ernest back.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I want to speak to you about something else,&rdquo; he said
-thoughtfully. &ldquo;Shut the door.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest turned cold down his back, and wondered if his uncle could have heard
-anything about Eva. He had the full intention of speaking to him about the
-matter, but it would be awkward to be boarded himself before he had made up his
-mind what to say. He shut the door, and then walking to the glass entrance to
-the orchid blooming-house, stood looking at the flowers, and waiting for Mr.
-Cardus to begin. But he did not begin; he seemed to be lost in thought.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, uncle,&rdquo; he said at last.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is a delicate business, Ernest, but I may as well get it over. I am
-going to make a request of you, a request to which I beg you will give me no
-immediate answer, for from its nature it will require the most anxious and
-careful consideration. I want you to listen, and say nothing. You can give me
-your answer when you come back from abroad. At the same time, I must tell you
-that it is a matter which I trust you will not disappoint me in; indeed, I do
-not think that you could be so cruel as to do so. I must also tell you that if
-you do, you must prepare to be a great loser, financially speaking.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I have not the faintest idea what you are driving at, uncle,&rdquo; said
-Ernest, turning from the glass door to speak.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I know you have not. I will tell you. Listen; I will tell you a little
-story. Many years ago a great misfortune overtook me, a misfortune so great
-that it struck me as lightning sometimes does a tree&mdash;it left the bark
-sound, but turned the heart to ashes. Never mind what the details were, they
-were nothing out of the common; such things sometimes happen to men and women.
-The blow was so severe that it almost turned my brain, so from that day I gave
-myself to revenge. It sounds melodramatic, but there was nothing of the sort
-about it. I had been cruelly wronged, and I determined that those who had
-wronged me should taste of their own medicine. With the exception of one man
-they have done so. He has escaped me for a time, but he is doomed. To pass on.
-The woman who caused the trouble&mdash;for wherever there is trouble there is
-generally a woman who causes it&mdash;had children. Those children are Dorothy
-and her brother. I adopted them. As time went on, I grew to love the girl for
-her likeness to her mother. The boy I never loved; to this hour I cannot like
-him, though he is a gentleman, which his father never was. I can, however,
-honestly say that I have done my duty by him. I have told you all this in order
-that you may understand the request which I am going to make. I trust to you
-never to speak of it, and if you can to forget it. And now for my request
-itself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest looked up wonderingly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is my most earnest desire that you should marry Dorothy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-His listener started violently, turned quite pale, and opened his lips to
-speak. Mr. Cardus lifted his hand and went on:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Remember what I asked you. Pray say nothing; only listen. Of course I
-cannot force you into this or any other marriage. I can only beg you to give
-heed to my wishes, knowing that they will in every way prove to your advantage.
-That girl has a heart of gold; and if you marry her you shall inherit nearly
-all my fortune, which is now very large. I have observed that you have lately
-been about a great deal with Eva Ceswick. She is a handsome woman, and very
-likely has taken some hold upon your fancy. I warn you that any entanglement in
-that direction would be most disagreeable to me, and would to a great extent
-destroy your prospects, so far as I am concerned.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Again Ernest was about to speak, and again his uncle stopped him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I want no confidences, Ernest, and had much rather that no words passed
-between us that we might afterwards regret. And now I understand that you are
-going abroad with your friend Batty for a couple of months. When you return you
-shall give me your answer about Dorothy. In the meanwhile here is a cheque for
-your expenses: what is over you can spend as you like. Perhaps you have some
-bills to pay.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He gave him a folded cheque, and then went on:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now leave me, as I am busy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest walked out of the room in a perfect maze. In the yard he mechanically
-unfolded the cheque. It was for a large sum&mdash;two hundred and fifty pounds.
-He put it in his pocket, and began to reflect upon his position, which was
-about as painful as a position can well be. Truly he was on the horns of a
-dilemma; probably before he was much older, one of them would have pierced him.
-For a moment he was about to return to his uncle and tell him all the truth,
-but on reflection he could not see what was to be gained by such a course. At
-any rate, it seemed to him that he must first consult Eva, whom he had arranged
-to meet on the beach at three o&rsquo;clock; there was nobody else whom he
-could consult, for he was shy of talking about Eva to Jeremy or Dolly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The rest of that morning went very ill for Ernest, but three o&rsquo;clock came
-at last, and found him at the trysting-place.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-About a mile on the farther side of Kesterwick, that is, two miles or so from
-Titheburgh Abbey, the cliff jutted out into the sea in a way that corresponded
-very curiously with the little promontory known as Dum&rsquo;s Ness, the reason
-of its resistance to the action of the waves being that it was at this spot
-composed of an upcrop of rock of a more durable nature than the sandstone and
-pebbles of the remainder of the line of cliff. Just at the point of this
-promontory the waves had worn a hollow in the rock that was locally dignified
-by the name of the Cave. For two hours or more at high tide this hollow was
-under water, and it was, therefore, impossible to pass the headland except by
-boat; but during the rest of the day it formed a convenient grotto or
-trysting-place, the more so as anybody sitting in it was quite invisible either
-from the beach, the cliff above, or indeed, unless the boat was quite close in
-shore, the sea in front.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Here it was that Ernest had arranged to meet Eva, and on turning the rocky
-corner of the cave he found her sitting on a mass of fallen rock waiting for
-him. At the sight of her beautiful form he forgot all his troubles, and when
-rising to greet him, blushing like the dawn, she lifted her pure face for him
-to kiss, there was not a happier lad in England. Then she made room for him
-beside her&mdash;the rock was just wide enough for two&mdash;and he placed his
-arm round her waist, and for a minute or two she laid her head upon his
-shoulder, and they were very happy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are early,&rdquo; he said at last.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes; I wanted to get away from Florence and have a good think. You have
-no idea how unpleasant she is; she seems to know everything. For instance, she
-knew that we went out sailing together last evening, for this morning at
-breakfast she said in the most cheerful way that she hoped that I enjoyed my
-moonlight sail last night.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The deuce she did! and what did you say?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I said that I enjoyed it very much, and luckily my aunt did not take any
-notice.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why did you not say at once that we were engaged? We <i>are</i> engaged,
-you know.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes&mdash;that is, I suppose so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Suppose so! There is no supposition about it. At least, if we are not
-engaged, what are we?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, you see, Ernest, it sounds so absurd to say that one is engaged to
-a boy! I love you, Ernest, love you dearly, but how can I say that I am engaged
-to you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest rose in great wrath. &ldquo;I tell you what it is, Eva, if I am not good
-enough to acknowledge, I am not good enough to have anything to do with. A boy,
-indeed! I am one-and-twenty; that is full age. Confound it all! you are always
-talking about my being so young, just as though I should not get old fast
-enough. Can&rsquo;t you wait for me a year or two?&rdquo; he asked, with tears
-of mortification in his eyes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O Ernest, Ernest, do be reasonable, there&rsquo;s a dear; what is the
-good of getting angry and making me wretched? Come and sit down here, dear, and
-tell me, am <i>I</i> not worth a little patience? There is not the slightest
-possibility, so far as I can see, of our getting married at present; so the
-question is, if it is of any use to trumpet out an engagement that will only
-make us the object of a great deal of gossip, and which, perhaps, your uncle
-would not like?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, by Jove!&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;that reminds me;&rdquo; and sitting
-down beside her again, he told her the story of the interview with his uncle.
-She listened in silence.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;This is all very bad,&rdquo; she said, when he had finished.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, it is bad enough; but what is to be done?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There is nothing to be done at present.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Shall I make a clean breast of it to him?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, no, not now; it will only make matters worse. We must wait, dear.
-You must go abroad for a couple of months, as you had arranged, and then when
-you come back we must see what can be arranged.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But, my dearest, I cannot bear to leave you; it makes my heart ache to
-think of it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dear, I know that it is hard; but it must be done. You could not stop
-here now very well without speaking about our&mdash;our engagement, and to do
-that would only be to bring your uncle&rsquo;s anger on you. No, you had better
-go away, Ernest, and meanwhile I will try to get into Mr. Cardus&rsquo;s good
-graces, and, if I fail, then when you come back we must agree upon some plan.
-Perhaps by that time you will take your uncle&rsquo;s view of the matter and
-want to marry Dorothy. She would make you a better wife than I shall, Ernest,
-my dear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Eva, how can you say such things! it is not kind of you!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, why not? It is true. O yes, I know that I am better-looking, and that
-is what you men always think of; but she has more brains, more fixity of mind,
-and, perhaps, for all I know, more heart than I have, though, for the matter of
-that, I feel as if I was all heart just now. Really, Ernest, you had better
-transfer your allegiance. Give me up, and forget me, dear; it will save you
-much trouble. I know that there is trouble coming; it is in the air. Better
-marry Dorothy, and leave me to fight my sorrow out alone. I will release you,
-Ernest;&rdquo; and she began to cry at the bare idea.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I shall wait to give you up until you have given me up,&rdquo; said
-Ernest, when he had found means to stop her tears; &ldquo;and as for forgetting
-you, I can never do that. Please, dear, don&rsquo;t talk so any more; it pains
-me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Very well, Ernest; then let us vow eternal fidelity instead; but, my
-dear, I <i>know</i> that I shall bring you trouble.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is the price that men have always paid for the smiles of women like
-you,&rdquo; he answered. &ldquo;Trouble may come&mdash;so be it, let it come;
-at any rate, I have the consciousness of your love. When I have lost that,
-then, and then only, shall I think that I have bought you too dear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In the course of his after life these words often came back to Ernest&rsquo;s
-mind.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap14"></a>CHAPTER XIV.<br/>
-GOOD-BYE</h2>
-
-<p>
-There are some scenes, trivial enough perhaps in themselves, that yet retain a
-peculiar power of standing out in sharp relief, as we cast our mind&rsquo;s eye
-down the long vista of our past. The group of events with which these
-particular scenes were connected may have long ago vanished from our mental
-sight, or faded into a dim and misty uniformity, and be as difficult to
-distinguish one from the other as the trees of a forest viewed from a height.
-But here and there an event, a sensation, or a face will stand out as perfectly
-clear as if it had been that moment experienced, felt, or seen. Perhaps it is
-only some scene of our childhood, such as a fish darting beneath a rustic
-bridge, and the ripple which its motion left upon the water. We have seen many
-larger fish dart in many fine rivers since then, and have forgotten them; but
-somehow that one little fish has kept awake in the storehouse of our brain,
-where most things sleep, though none are really obliterated.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was in this clear and brilliant fashion that every little detail of the
-scene was indelibly photographed on Ernest&rsquo;s mind when, on the morning
-following their meeting in the cave, he said good-bye to Eva before he went
-abroad. It was a public good-bye, for, as it happened, there was no opportunity
-for the lovers to meet alone. They were all gathered in the little drawing-room
-at the Cottage: Miss Ceswick seated on a straight-backed chair in the
-bow-window; Ernest on one side of the round table, looking intensely
-uncomfortable; Eva on the other, a scrapbook in her hand, which she studiously
-kept before her face; and in the background, leaning carelessly over the back
-of a chair in such a way that her own face could not be seen, though she could
-survey everybody else&rsquo;s, was Florence. Ernest, from where he sat, could
-just make out the outline of her olive face, and the quick glance of her brown
-eyes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And so they sat for a long time, but what was said he could not remember; it
-was only the scene that imprinted itself upon his memory.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And then at last the fatal moment came&mdash;he knew that it was time to go,
-and said good-bye to Miss Ceswick, who made some remark about his good fortune
-in going to France and Italy, and warned him to be careful not to lose his
-heart to a foreign girl. Then he crossed the room and shook hands with
-Florence, who smiled coolly in his face, and read him through with her piercing
-eyes; and last of all came to Eva, who dropped her album and a
-pocket-handkerchief in her confusion as she rose to give him her hand. He
-stooped and picked them up&mdash;the album he placed on the table, the little
-lace-edged handkerchief he crumpled up in the palm of his left hand and kept;
-it was almost the only souvenir he had of her. Then he took her hand, and for a
-moment looked into her face. It wore a smile, but beneath it the features were
-wan and troubled. It was so hard to go.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, Ernest,&rdquo; said Miss Ceswick, &ldquo;you two are taking leave
-of each other as solemnly as though you were never going to meet again.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Perhaps they never will,&rdquo; said Florence, in her clear voice; and
-at that moment Ernest felt as though he hated her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You should not croak, Florence; it is unlucky,&rdquo; said Miss Ceswick.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence smiled.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then Ernest dropped the cold hand, and turning, left the room. Florence
-followed him, and, snatching a hat from the pegs, passed into the garden before
-him. When he was half-way down the garden-walk, he found her ostensibly picking
-some carnations.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I want to speak to you for a minute, Ernest,&rdquo; she said;
-&ldquo;turn this way with me;&rdquo; and she led him past the bow-window, down
-a small shrubbery-walk about twenty paces long. &ldquo;I must offer you my
-congratulations,&rdquo; she went on. &ldquo;I hope that you two will be happy.
-Such a handsome pair ought to be happy, you know.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, Florence, who told you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Told me! nobody told me. I have seen it all along. Let me see, you first
-took a fancy to one another on the night of the Smythes&rsquo; dance, when she
-gave you a rose, and the next day you saved her life quite in the romantic and
-orthodox way. Well, and then events took their natural course, till one evening
-you went out sailing together in a boat. Shall I go on?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t think it is necessary, Florence, I am sure I don&rsquo;t
-know how you know all these things.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She had stopped, and was standing slowly picking a carnation to pieces leaf by
-leaf.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t you?&rdquo; she answered, with a laugh. &ldquo;Lovers are
-blind; but it does not follow that other people are. I have been thinking,
-Ernest, that it is very fortunate that I found out my little mistake before you
-discovered yours. Supposing I really had cared for you, the position would have
-been awkward now, would it not?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest was forced to admit that it would.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But luckily, you see, I do not. I am only your true friend now, Ernest;
-and it is as a friend that I wish to say a word to you about Eva&mdash;a word
-of warning.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Go on.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You love Eva, and Eva loves you, Ernest; but remember this, she is weak
-as water. She always was so from a child; those beautiful women often are;
-Nature does not give them everything, you see.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What do you mean?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What I say, nothing more. She is very weak; and you must not be
-surprised if she throws you over.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Good heavens, Florence! Why, she loves me with all her heart!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes; but women often think of other things besides their hearts. But
-there, I don&rsquo;t want to frighten you, only I would not pin all my faith to
-Eva&rsquo;s constancy, however dearly you may think she loves you. Don&rsquo;t
-look so distressed, Ernest; I did not wish to pain you. And remember that if
-any difficulty should arise between Eva and you, you will always have me on
-your side. You will always think of me as your true friend, won&rsquo;t you,
-Ernest?&rdquo; and she held out her hand.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He took it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Indeed I will,&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They had turned now, and again reached the bow-window, one of the divisions of
-which stood open. Florence touched his arm, and pointed into the room. He
-looked in through the open window. Miss Ceswick had gone, but Eva was still at
-her old place by the table. Her head was down upon the table, resting on the
-album he had picked up, and he could see from the motion of her shoulders that
-she was sobbing bitterly. Presently she lifted her face&mdash;it was all
-stained with tears&mdash;only, however, to drop it again. Ernest made a motion
-as though he would enter the house, but Florence stopped him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Best leave her alone,&rdquo; she whispered; and then, when they were
-well past the window, added aloud, &ldquo;I am sorry that you saw her like
-that; if you should never meet again, or be separated for a very long time, it
-will leave a painful recollection in your mind. Well, good-bye. I hope that you
-will enjoy yourself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest shook hands in silence&mdash;there was a lump in his throat that
-prevented him from speaking&mdash;and then went on his way, feeling utterly
-miserable. As for Florence, she put up her hand to shade her keen eyes from the
-sun, and watched him till he turned the corner with a look of intense love and
-longing, which slowly changed into one of bitter hate. When he was out of sight
-she turned, and, making her way to her bedroom, flung herself upon the bed,
-and, burying her face in the pillow to stifle the sound of her sobbing, gave
-way to an outburst of jealous rage that was almost awful in its intensity.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest had only just time to get back to Dum&rsquo;s Ness, and go through the
-form of eating some luncheon, before he was obliged to start to catch his
-train. Dorothy had packed his things, and made all those little preparations
-for his journey that women think of; so, after going to the office to bid
-good-bye to his uncle, who shook him heartily by the hand, and bade him not
-forget the subject of their conversation, he had nothing to do but jump into
-the cart and start. In the sitting-room he found Dorothy waiting for him, with
-his coat and gloves, also Jeremy, who was going to drive to the station with
-him. He put on his coat in silence; they were all quite silent; indeed, he
-might have been going for a long sojourn in a deadly climate, instead of a two
-months&rsquo; pleasure-tour, so depressed was everybody.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Good-bye, Doll dear,&rdquo; he said, stooping to kiss her; but she
-shrank away from him. In another minute he was gone.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At the station a word or two about Eva passed between Jeremy and himself.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, Ernest,&rdquo; asked the former nervously, &ldquo;have you pulled
-it off?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;With her?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Of course; who else?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, I have. But, Jeremy&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t want you to say anything about it to anybody at
-present.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Very good.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I say, old fellow,&rdquo; Ernest went on, after a pause, &ldquo;I hope
-you don&rsquo;t mind very much.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If I said I did not mind, Ernest,&rdquo; he answered, slowly turning his
-honest eyes full on to his friend&rsquo;s face, &ldquo;I should be telling a
-lie. But I do say this: as I could not win her myself, I am glad that you have,
-because next to her I think I love you better than anybody in the world. You
-always had the luck, and I wish you joy. There&rsquo;s the train.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest wrung his hand.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Thank you, old chap,&rdquo; he said; &ldquo;you are a downright good
-fellow, and a good friend too. I know I have had the luck, but perhaps it is
-going to turn. Good-bye.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest&rsquo;s plans were to sleep in London, and to leave on the following
-morning, a Wednesday, for Guernsey. There he was to meet his friend on
-Thursday, when they were to start upon their tour, first to Normandy, and
-thence wherever their fancy led them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This programme he carried out to the letter&mdash;at least the first part of
-it. On his way from Liverpool Street Station to the rooms where he had always
-slept on the few occasions that he had been in London, his hansom passed down
-Fleet Street, and got blocked opposite No. 19. His eye caught the number, and
-he wondered what there was about it familiar to him. Then he remembered that 19
-Fleet Street was the address of Messrs. Goslings &amp; Sharpe, the bankers on
-whom his uncle had given him the cheque for &pound;250. Bethinking himself that
-he might as well cash it, he stopped the cab and entered the bank. As he did
-so, the cashier was just leaving his desk, for it was past closing hour; but he
-courteously took Ernest&rsquo;s cheque, and, though it was for a large sum,
-cashed it without hesitation. Mr. Cardus&rsquo;s name was evidently well known
-in the establishment. Ernest proceeded on his journey with a crisp little
-bundle of Bank of England notes in his breast-pocket, a circumstance that, in
-certain events of which at that moment he little dreamed, proved of the utmost
-service to him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It will not be necessary for us to follow him in his journey to St.
-Peter&rsquo;s Port, which very much resembled other people&rsquo;s journeys. He
-arrived there safely enough on Wednesday afternoon, and proceeded to the best
-hotel, took a room, and inquired the hour of the <i>table d&rsquo;hôte</i>.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In the course of the voyage from Southampton, Ernest had fallen into
-conversation with a quiet, foreign-looking man, who spoke English with a
-curious little accent. This gentleman&mdash;for there was no doubt about his
-being a gentleman&mdash;was accompanied by a boy about nine years of age,
-remarkable for his singularly prepossessing face and manners, whom Ernest
-rightly judged to be his son. Mr. Alston&mdash;for such he discovered his
-companion&rsquo;s name to be&mdash;was a middle-aged man, not possessed of any
-remarkable looks or advantages of person, nor in any way brilliant-minded. But
-nobody could know Mr. Alston for long without discovering that, his neutral
-tints notwithstanding, he was the possessor of an almost striking
-individuality. From his open way of talking, Ernest guessed that he was a
-colonial; for he had often noticed at college that colonials are much less
-reserved than Englishmen proper are bred up to be. He soon learned that Mr.
-Alston was a Natal colonist, now, for the first time, paying a visit to the old
-country. He had, until lately, held a high position in the Natal Government
-service; but having unexpectedly come into a moderate fortune through the death
-of an aged lady, a sister of his father in England, he had resigned his
-position in the service; and after his short visit &ldquo;home,&rdquo; as
-colonists always call the mother country, even when they have never seen it,
-intended to start on a big game-shooting expedition in the country between
-Secocoeni&rsquo;s country and Delagoa Bay.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-All this Ernest learned before the boat reached the harbour at St.
-Peter&rsquo;s Port, and they separated. He was, however, pleased when, having
-seen his luggage put into his room, he went into the little courtyard of the
-hotel and found Mr. Alston standing there with his son, and looking rather
-puzzled.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hullo!&rdquo; said Ernest, &ldquo;I am glad that you have come to this
-hotel. Do you want anything?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, yes, I do. The fact of the matter is, I don&rsquo;t understand a
-word of French, and I want to find my way to a place that my boy and I have
-come over here to see. If they talked Zulu or Sisutu, you see, I should be
-equal to the occasion; but to me French is a barbarous tongue, and the people
-about here all seem to talk nothing else. Here is the address.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I can talk French,&rdquo; said Ernest, &ldquo;and, if you like, I will
-go with you. The <i>table d&rsquo;hôte</i> is not till seven, and it is not six
-yet.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is very kind of you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not at all. I have no doubt that you would show me the way about
-Zululand, if ever I wandered there.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ay, that I would, with pleasure;&rdquo; and they started.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was with considerable difficulty that Ernest discovered the place Mr. Alston
-was in search of. Finally, however, he found it. It was a quaint out-of-the-way
-little street, very narrow and crooked, an odd mixture of old private houses
-and shops, most of which seemed to deal in soap and candles. At last they came
-to No. 36, a gray old house standing in its own grounds. Mr. Alston scanned it
-eagerly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That is the place,&rdquo; he said; &ldquo;she often told me of the
-coat-of-arms over the doorway&mdash;a mullet impaled with three squirrels;
-there they are. I wonder if it is still a school?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It turned out that it was still a school, and in due course they were admitted,
-and allowed to wander round the ancient walled garden, with every nook of which
-Mr. Alston seemed to be perfectly acquainted.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There is the tree under which she used to sit,&rdquo; he said sadly to
-his boy, pointing out an old yew-tree, under which there stood a rotting bench.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who?&rdquo; asked Ernest, much interested.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My dead wife, that boy&rsquo;s mother; she was educated here,&rdquo; he
-said, with a sigh. &ldquo;There, I have seen it. Let us go.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap15"></a>CHAPTER XV.<br/>
-ERNEST GETS INTO TROUBLE</h2>
-
-<p>
-When Mr. Alston and Ernest reached the hotel, there was still a quarter of an
-hour to elapse before the <i>table d&rsquo;hôte</i>, so, after washing his
-hands and putting on a black coat, Ernest went down into the coffee-room. There
-was only one other person in it, a tall fair Frenchwoman, apparently about
-thirty years of age. She was standing by the empty fireplace, her arm upon the
-mantelpiece, and a lace pocket-handkerchief in her hand; and Ernest&rsquo;s
-first impression of her was that she was handsome and much over-dressed. There
-was a newspaper upon the mantelpiece, which he desired to get possession of. As
-he advanced for this purpose, the lady dropped her handkerchief. Stooping down,
-he picked it out of the grate and handed it to her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>Mille remerciments, monsieur,</i>&rdquo; she said, with a little
-curtsey.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>Du tout, madame.</i>&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>Ah, monsieur parle fran&ccedil;ais?</i>&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>Mais oui, madame.</i>&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And then they drifted into a conversation, in the course of which Ernest
-learned that madame thought St. Peter&rsquo;s Port very dull; that she had been
-there three days with her friends, and was nearly dead <i>de tristesse;</i>
-that she was going, however, to the public dance at the &ldquo;Hall&rdquo; that
-night. &ldquo;Of course monsieur would be there;&rdquo; and many other things,
-for madame had a considerable command of language.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In the middle of all this the door opened, and another lady of much the same
-cut as madame entered, followed by two young men. The first of these had a face
-of the commonplace English type, rather a good-humoured face; but when he saw
-the second, Ernest started, it was so like his own, as his would become if he
-were to spend half a dozen years in drinking, dicing, late hours, and their
-concomitants. The man to whom this face belonged was evidently a gentleman, but
-he looked an ill-tempered one, and very puny and out of health; at least so
-thought Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is time for dinner, Camille,&rdquo; said the gentleman to madame, at
-the same time favouring Ernest with a most comprehensive scowl.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Madame appeared not to understand, and made some remark to Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is time for dinner, Camille,&rdquo; said the gentleman again, in a
-savage voice. This time she lifted her head and looked at him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>Din-nare, dinnare!</i> qu&rsquo;est-que c&rsquo;est que
-<i>din-nare?</i>&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>Table d&rsquo;hôte,</i>&rdquo; said the gentleman.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, pardon;&rdquo; and with a little bow and most fascinating smile to
-Ernest, she took the gentleman&rsquo;s extended arm and sailed away.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why did you pretend not to understand me?&rdquo; Ernest heard him ask,
-and saw her shrug her shoulders in reply. The other gentleman followed with his
-companion, and after him came Ernest. When he reached the <i>salle-à-manger</i>
-he found that the only chair vacant at the table was one next to his friend of
-the <i>salon.</i> Indeed, had he thought of it, it might have struck him that
-madame had contrived to keep that chair vacant, for on his approach she
-gathered together the folds of her silk dress, which had almost hidden it, and
-welcomed him with a little nod.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest took the chair, and forthwith madame entered into a most lively
-conversation with him, a course of proceeding that appeared to be extremely
-distasteful to the gentleman on her right, who pished and pshawed and pushed
-away his plate in a manner that soon became quite noticeable. But madame talked
-serenely on, quite careless of his antics, till at last he whispered something
-to her that caused the blood to mount to her fair cheek.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mais tais-toi, donc,&rdquo; Ernest heard her answer, and next
-moment&mdash;the subsequent history of our hero demands that the truth should
-be told&mdash;it was his turn to colour, for, alas! there was no doubt about
-it, he distinctly felt madame&rsquo;s little foot pressed upon his own. He took
-up his wine and drank a little to hide his confusion; but whether he had or had
-not the moral courage to withdraw from the situation, by placing his toes under
-the more chilly but safe guardianship of the chair-legs, history saith not; let
-us hope and presume that he had. But if this was so or not he did not get on
-very well with his dinner, for the situation was novel and not conducive to
-appetite. Presently Mr. Alston, who was sitting opposite, addressed him across
-the table.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Are you going to the dance here to-night, Mr. Kershaw?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-To Ernest&rsquo;s surprise, the gentleman on the other side of madame answered,
-with an astonished look:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, I am going.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I beg your pardon,&rdquo; said Mr. Alston, &ldquo;I was speaking to the
-gentleman on your left.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, indeed! I thought you said Kershaw.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, I did; the gentleman&rsquo;s name is Kershaw, I think.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; put in Ernest, &ldquo;my name is Kershaw.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That is odd,&rdquo; said the other gentleman, &ldquo;so is mine. I did
-not know that there were any other Kershaws.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nor did I,&rdquo; answered Ernest, &ldquo;except Sir Hugh
-Kershaw;&rdquo; and his face darkened as he pronounced the name.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am Sir Hugh Kershaw&rsquo;s son; my name is Hugh Kershaw,&rdquo; was
-the reply.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Indeed! Then we are cousins, I suppose; for I am his nephew, the son of
-his brother Ernest.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Hugh Kershaw the elder did not receive this intelligence with even the moderate
-amount of enthusiasm that might have been expected; he simply lifted his scanty
-eyebrows, and said, &ldquo;Oh, I remember, my uncle left a son;&rdquo; then he
-turned and made some remark to the gentleman who sat next him that made the
-latter laugh.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest felt the blood rise to his cheeks; there was something very insolent
-about his cousin&rsquo;s tone.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Shortly afterwards the dinner came to an end, and madame, with another
-fascinating smile, retired. As for Ernest, he smoked a pipe with Mr. Alston,
-and about nine o&rsquo;clock strolled over with him to the Hall, or Assembly
-Rooms, a building largely composed of glass, where thrice a week, during the
-season, the visitors at St. Peter&rsquo;s Port adjourned to dance, flirt, and
-make merry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-One of the first sights that caught his eye was a fair creature in
-evening-dress, and with conspicuously white shoulders, in whom he recognised
-madame. She was sitting near the door, and appeared to be watching it. Ernest
-bowed to her, and was about to pass on; but, pursuing her former tactics, she
-dropped the bouquet she was carrying. He stooped, picked it up, returned it,
-and again made as though he would pass on, when she addressed him, just as the
-band struck up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, que c&rsquo;est belle, la musique! Monsieur valse, n&rsquo;est-ce
-pas?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In another minute they were floating down the room together. As they passed
-along, Ernest saw his cousin standing in the corner, looking at him with no
-amiable air. Madame saw his glance.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;Monsieur Hugh ne valse pas, il se grise; il
-a l&rsquo;air jaloux, n&rsquo;est-ce pas?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest danced three times with this fair enslaver, and with their last waltz
-the ball came to an end. Just then his cousin came up, and they all, including
-Mr. Alston, walked together along the steep streets, which were now quite
-deserted, to the door of the hotel. Here Ernest said good-night to madame, who
-extended her hand. He took it, and as he did so he felt a note slipped into it,
-which, not being accustomed to such transactions, he clumsily dropped. It was
-the ball programme, and there was something written across it in pencil.
-Unfortunately, he was not the only one who saw this; his cousin Hugh, who had
-evidently been drinking, saw it too, and tried to pick up the programme, but
-Ernest was too quick for him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Give me that,&rdquo; said his cousin, hoarsely.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest answered by putting it into his pocket.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is written on that programme?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What have you written on that programme, Camille?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mon Dieu, mais vous m&rsquo;ennuyez!&rdquo; was the answer.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I insist upon your giving me that!&rdquo; with an oath.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Monsieur est <i>gentleman!</i> Monsieur ne la rendra pas,&rdquo; said
-madame, with a meaning glance; and then turning, she entered the hotel.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am not going to give it to you,&rdquo; said Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You shall give it to me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Is this lady your wife?&rdquo; asked Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That is my affair; give me that note.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I shall not give it to you,&rdquo; said Ernest, whose temper was rapidly
-rising. &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know what is on it, and I don&rsquo;t wish to
-know; but whatever it is, the lady gave it to me, and not to you. She is not
-your wife, and you have no right to ask for it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-His cousin Hugh turned livid with fury. At the best of times he was an
-evil-tempered man; and now, inflamed as he was by drink and jealousy, he looked
-a perfect fiend.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Damn you!&rdquo; he hissed, &ldquo;you half-bred cur; I suppose that you
-get your &mdash;&mdash; manners from your &mdash;&mdash; of a mother!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He did not get any further; for at this point Ernest knocked him into the
-gutter, and then stood over him, very quiet and pale, and told him that if ever
-he dared to let a disrespectful word about his mother pass his lips again, he
-(Ernest) would half-kill him (Hugh). Then he let him get up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Hugh Kershaw rose, and turning, whispered something to his friend, who had sat
-next him at dinner, a man about thirty years of age, and with a military air
-about him. His friend listened, and pulled his large moustache thoughtfully.
-Then he addressed Ernest with the utmost politeness:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am Captain Justice, of the &mdash;&mdash; Hussars. Of course, Mr. Kershaw, you
-are aware that you cannot indulge yourself in the luxury of knocking people
-down without hearing more about it. Have you any friend with you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest shook his head as he answered: &ldquo;This,&rdquo; indicating Mr.
-Alston, who had been an attentive observer of everything that had passed,
-&ldquo;is the only gentleman I know in the town, and I cannot ask him to mix
-himself up in my quarrels.&rdquo; Ernest was beginning to understand that this
-quarrel was a very serious business.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right, my lad,&rdquo; said Mr. Alston quietly, &ldquo;I will stand
-by you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Really, I have no right&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo; began Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense! It is one of our colonial customs to stick by one
-another.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mr. Justice&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Captain Justice,&rdquo; put in that gentleman, with a bow.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Captain Justice, my name is Alston. I am very much at your
-service.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Captain Justice turned to Hugh Kershaw, whose clothes were dripping from the
-water in the gutter, and after whispering with him for a moment, said aloud,
-&ldquo;If I were you, Kershaw, I should go and change those clothes; you will
-catch cold.&rdquo; And then, addressing Mr. Alston, &ldquo;I think the
-smoking-room is empty. Shall we go and have a chat?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Alston assented, and they went in together. Ernest followed; but having lit
-his pipe, sat down in a far corner of the room. Presently Mr. Alston called
-him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Look here, Kershaw, this is a serious business, and as you are
-principally concerned, I think that you had better give your own answer. To be
-brief, your cousin, Mr. Hugh Kershaw, demands that you should apologise in
-writing for having struck him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am willing to do that if he will apologise for the terms he used in
-connection with my mother.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah!&rdquo; said the gallant Captain, &ldquo;the young gentleman is
-coming to reason.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He also demands that you should hand over the note you received from the
-lady.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That I certainly shall not do,&rdquo; he answered; and drawing the card
-from his pocket, he tore it into fragments, unread.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Captain Justice bowed and left the room. In a few minutes he returned, and,
-addressing Mr. Alston and Ernest, said:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mr. Kershaw is not satisfied with what you offer to do. He declines to
-apologise for any expression that he may have used with reference to your
-mother, and he now wishes you to choose between signing an apology, which I
-shall dictate, or meeting him to-morrow morning. You must remember that we are
-in Guernsey, where you cannot insult a man on the payment of forty
-shillings.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Of course, this view was an entirely incorrect one. Although Guernsey has a
-political constitution of its own, many of its laws being based upon the old
-Norman-French customs, and judicial proceedings being carried on in French,
-&amp;c., it is quite as criminal an act to fight a duel there as in England, as
-Captain Justice himself afterwards found out to his cost. But they none of them
-knew that.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest felt the blood run to his heart. He understood now what Captain Justice
-meant. He answered simply:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I shall be very happy to meet my cousin in whatever place and way you
-and Mr. Alston may agree upon;&rdquo; and then he returned to his chair, and
-gave himself up to the enjoyment of his pipe and an entirely new set of
-sensations.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Captain Justice gazed after him pityingly. &ldquo;I am sorry for him,&rdquo; he
-said to Mr. Alston. &ldquo;Kershaw is, I believe, a good shot with pistols. I
-suppose you will choose pistols. It would be difficult to get swords in such a
-hurry. He is a fine young fellow. Took it coolly, by George! Well, I
-don&rsquo;t think that he will trouble the world much longer.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;This is a silly business, and likely to land us all in a nasty mess. Is
-there no way out of it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;None that I know of, unless your young friend will eat dirt. He is a
-nasty-tempered fellow, Kershaw, and wild about that woman, over whom he has
-spent thousands. Nor is he likely to forgive being rolled in the gutter. You
-had better get your man to give in, for if you don&rsquo;t, Kershaw will kill
-him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is no good talking of it. I have lived a rough life, and know what
-men are made of. He is not of that sort. Besides, your man is in the wrong, not
-that boy. If anybody spoke of my mother like that, I would shoot him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Very good, Mr. Alston. And now about the pistols; I have none.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I have a pair of Smith &amp; Wesson revolvers that I bought yesterday to
-take out to Africa with me. They throw a very heavy bullet, Captain
-Justice.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Too heavy. If one of them is hit anywhere in the body&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo; He
-did not finish the sentence.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Alston nodded. &ldquo;We must put them twenty paces apart, to give them a
-chance of missing. And now about the place and the time?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I know a place on the beach, about a mile and a half from here, that
-will do very well. You go down that street till you strike the beach, then turn
-to your right, and follow the line of the sea till you come to a deserted hut
-or cottage. There we will meet you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;At what time?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let me see; shall we say a quarter to five? It will be light enough for
-us then.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Very good. The Weymouth boat leaves at half-past six. I am going to see
-about getting my things ready to go to meet it. I should advise you to do the
-same, Captain Justice. We had better not return here after it is over.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And then they parted.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Luckily the manager of the hotel had not gone to bed; so the various parties
-concerned were able to pay their bills, and make arrangements about their
-luggage being sent to meet the early boat, without exciting the slightest
-suspicion. Ernest wrote a note, and left it to be given to his friend when he
-should arrive on the morrow, in which he stated mysteriously that business had
-called him away. He could not help smiling to himself sadly when he thought
-that his business might be of a sort that it would take all eternity to settle.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then he went to his room and wrote two letters, one to Eva and one to Dorothy.
-Mr. Alston was to post them if anything happened to him. The first was of a
-passionate nature, and breathed hopes of reunion in another place&mdash;ah, how
-fondly the poor human heart clings to that idea!&mdash;the second collected and
-sensible enough. The letters finished, following Mr. Alston&rsquo;s advice, he
-undressed and took a bath; then he said his prayers&mdash;the prayers his
-mother had taught him&mdash;put on a quiet dark suit of clothes, and went and
-sat by the open window.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The night was very still and fragrant with the sweet strong breath of the sea.
-Not a sound came from the quaint old town beneath&mdash;all was at peace.
-Ernest, sitting there, wondered whether he would live to see another night,
-and, if not, what the nights were like in the land whither he was journeying.
-And as he thought of it the gray damps that hide that unrisen world from our
-gaze struck into his soul and made him feel afraid. Not afraid of death, but
-afraid of the empty loneliness beyond it&mdash;of the cold air of an infinite
-space in which nothing human can live. Would his mother meet him there, he
-wondered, or would she put him from her, coming with blood upon his hands. And
-then he thought of Eva, and in his solitude a tear gathered in his dark eyes.
-It seemed so hard to go to that other place without her.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap16"></a>CHAPTER XVI.<br/>
-MADAME&rsquo;S WORK</h2>
-
-<p>
-Presently the eastern sky began to be barred with rays of light, and Ernest
-knew that the dawn was near.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Rising with a sigh, he made his last preparations, inwardly determining that,
-if he was to die, he would die in a way befitting an English gentleman. There
-should be no sign of his fears on his face when he looked at his
-adversary&rsquo;s pistol.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Presently there came a soft knock at the door, and Mr. Alston entered with his
-shoes off. In his hand he held a case containing the two Smith &amp; Wessons.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We must be off presently,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;I just heard Captain
-Justice go down. Look here, Kershaw, do you understand anything about
-these?&rdquo; and he tapped the Smith &amp; Wessons.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes; I have often practised with a pair of old duelling-pistols at home.
-I used to be a very fair shot with them.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That is lucky. Now take one of these revolvers; I want to give you a
-lesson, and accustom you to handle it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, I will not. It would not be fair on the other man. If I did, and
-killed him, I should feel like a murderer.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;As you like; but I am going to tell you something, and give you a bit of
-advice. These revolvers are hair-triggered; I had the scears filed. When the
-word is given, bring the barrel of your pistol <i>down</i> till you get the
-sight well on to your antagonist somewhere about his chest, then <i>press</i>
-the trigger, do not pull it, remember that. If you do as I tell you, he will
-never hear the report. Above all, do not lose your nerve; and don&rsquo;t be
-sentimental and fire in the air, or any such nonsense, for that is a most
-futile proceeding, morally, and in every other way. Mark my words, if you do
-not kill him, he will kill you. He intends to kill you, and you are in the
-right. Now we must be going. Your luggage is in the hall, is it not?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All except this bag.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Very good; bring it down with you. My boy will bring it to the boat with
-my own. If you are not hit, you will do well to get out of this as soon as
-possible. I mean to make for Southampton as straight as I can. There is a
-vessel sailing for South Africa on Friday morning; I shall embark in her. We
-will settle what you are to do afterwards.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Ernest, with a smile, &ldquo;there is no need to talk
-of that at present.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Five minutes afterwards they met in the hall, and slipped quietly out through
-the door that always stood open all night for the accommodation of visitors
-addicted to late hours. Following the street that Captain Justice had pointed
-out, they descended to the beach, and, turning to the right, walked along it
-leisurely. The early morning air was very sweet, and all nature smiled dimly
-upon them as they went, for the sun was not yet up; but at that moment Ernest
-did not think much of the beauty of the morning. It all seemed like a frightful
-dream. At last they came to the deserted hut, looming large in the gray mist.
-By it stood two figures.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They are there already,&rdquo; said Mr. Alston.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-As they approached the two figures lifted their hats, a compliment which they
-returned. Then Mr. Alston went to Captain Justice, and fell into conversation
-with him, and together they paced off a certain distance on the sand, marking
-its limits with their walking-sticks. Ernest noticed that it was about the
-length of a short cricket-pitch.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Shall we place them?&rdquo; he heard Captain Justice say.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not just yet,&rdquo; was the reply; &ldquo;there is barely light
-enough.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now, gentlemen,&rdquo; said Mr. Alston presently, &ldquo;I have prepared
-in duplicate a paper setting forth as fairly as I can the circumstances under
-which this unhappy affair has come about. I propose to read it to you, and to
-ask you all to sign it, as a protection to&mdash;to us all. I have brought a
-pen and a pocket ink-pot with me for that purpose.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Nobody objected, so he read the paper. It was short, concise, and just, and
-they all signed it as it stood. Ernest&rsquo;s hand shook a good deal as he did
-so.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Come, that won&rsquo;t do,&rdquo; said Mr. Alston, encouragingly, as he
-pocketed one copy of the document after handing the other to Captain Justice.
-&ldquo;Shake yourself together, man!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But for all his brave words he looked the more nervous of the two.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wish to say,&rdquo; began Ernest, addressing himself to all the other
-three, &ldquo;that this quarrel is none of my seeking. I could not in honour
-give up the note the lady wrote to me. But I feel that this is a dreadful
-business; and if you,&rdquo; addressing his cousin, &ldquo;are ready to
-apologise for what you said about my mother, I am ready to do the same for
-attacking you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Hugh Kershaw smiled bitterly, and, turning, said something to his second.
-Ernest caught the words &ldquo;white feather.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mr. Hugh Kershaw refuses to offer any apology; he expects one,&rdquo;
-was Captain Justice&rsquo;s ready answer.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then if any blood is shed, on his head be it!&rdquo; said Mr. Alston
-solemnly. &ldquo;Come, let us get it over.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Each took his man and placed him by one of the sticks, and then handed him a
-revolver.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Stand sideways, and remember what I told you,&rdquo; whispered Mr.
-Alston.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Are you ready, gentlemen?&rdquo; asked Captain Justice presently.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There was no answer; but Ernest felt his heart stand still, and a mist gathered
-before his eyes. At that moment he heard a lark rise into the air near him and
-begin to sing. Unless he could get his sight back he felt that he was lost.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>One!</i>&rdquo; The mist cleared away from his eyes; he saw his
-adversary&rsquo;s pistol-barrel pointing steadily at him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>Two!</i>&rdquo; A ray broke from the rising sun, and caught a crystal
-pin Hugh Kershaw incautiously wore. Instinctively Ernest remembered Mr.
-Alston&rsquo;s advice, and lowered the sight of his long barrel till it was
-dead on the crystal pin. Curiously enough, it reminded him at the moment of the
-eyes in the witch&rsquo;s head at Dum&rsquo;s Ness. His vital forces rose to
-the emergency, and his arm grew as steady as a rock. Then came a pause that
-seemed hours long.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>Three!</i>&rdquo; There was a double report, and Ernest became aware
-of a commotion in his hair. Hugh Kershaw flung up his arms wildly, sprang a few
-inches off the ground, and fell backwards. Great God, it was over!
-</p>
-
-<div class="fig" style="width:100%;">
-<a name="illus05"></a>
-<br />
-<img src="images/fig05.jpg" width="413" height="600" alt="[Illustration: ]" />
-<p class="caption">&ldquo;Hugh Kershaw flung up his arms, wildly.&rdquo;
-</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>
-Ernest staggered a moment from the reaction, and then ran with the others
-towards his cousin&mdash;nay, towards what had been his cousin. He was lying on
-his back upon the sand, his wide-opened eyes staring up at the blue sky, as
-though to trace the flight of the spirit, his arms extended. The heavy
-revolver-ball had struck near the crystal pin, and then passed upwards through
-the throat and out at the base of the head, shattering the spinal column.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He is dead,&rdquo; said Captain Justice, solemnly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest wrung his hands.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I have killed him,&rdquo; he said&mdash;&ldquo;I have killed my own
-cousin!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Young man,&rdquo; said Mr. Alston, &ldquo;do not stand there wringing
-your hands, but thank Providence for your own escape. He was very near killing
-you, let me tell you. Is your head cut?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Instinctively Ernest took off his hat, and as he did so some fragments of his
-curly hair fell to the ground. There was a neat hole through the felt, and a
-neat groove along his thick hair. His cousin had meant to kill him; and he was
-a good shot&mdash;so good that he thought that he could put a ball through
-Ernest&rsquo;s head. But he forgot that a heavy American revolver, with forty
-grains of powder behind the ball, is apt to throw a trifle high.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And then they all stood silent and looked at the body; and the lark, that had
-been frightened by the noise, began to sing again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;This will not do,&rdquo; said Mr. Alston presently. &ldquo;We had better
-move the body in there,&rdquo; and he pointed to the deserted hut.
-&ldquo;Captain Justice, what do you intend to do?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Give myself up to the authorities, I suppose,&rdquo; was the gallant
-Captain&rsquo;s scared answer.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Very well. I don&rsquo;t advise you to do that, but if you are
-determined to, there is no need for you to be in a hurry about it. You must
-give us time to get clear first.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They lifted the corpse, reverently bore it into the deserted hut, and laid it
-on the floor. Ernest remained standing looking at the red stain where it had
-been. Presently they came out again, and Mr. Alston kicked some sand over the
-stain and hid it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;we had better make an addition to those
-documents, to say how this came about.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They all went back to the hut, and the addition was made, standing there by the
-body. When it came to Ernest&rsquo;s turn to sign, he almost wished that his
-signature was the one missing from the foot of that ghastly post-scriptum. Mr.
-Alston guessed his thoughts.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The fortune of war,&rdquo; he said, coolly. &ldquo;Now, Captain Justice,
-we are going to catch the early boat, and we hope that you will not give
-yourself up before midday, if you can help it. The inquiry into the affair will
-not then be held before to-morrow; and by eleven to-morrow morning I hope to
-have seen the last of England for some years to come.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The Captain was a good fellow at bottom, and had no wish to see others dragged
-into trouble.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I shall certainly give myself up,&rdquo; he said; &ldquo;but I
-don&rsquo;t see any reason to hurry about it. I don&rsquo;t think that they can
-do much to me here. Poor Hugh! he can well afford to wait,&rdquo; he added,
-with a sigh, glancing down at the figure that lay so still, with a coat thrown
-over the face. &ldquo;I suppose that they will lock me up for six
-months&mdash;pleasant prospect! But I say, Mr. Kershaw, you had better keep
-clear; it will be more awkward for you. You see, he was your cousin, and by his
-death you become, unless I am mistaken, next heir to the title.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, I suppose so,&rdquo; said Ernest, vaguely.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Here it may be stated that Captain Justice found himself sadly mistaken.
-Instead of the six months he expected, he was arraigned for murder, and finally
-sentenced to a term of penal servitude. He received a pardon, however, after
-serving about a year of his time.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Come, we must be off,&rdquo; said Mr. Alston, &ldquo;or we shall be late
-for the boat;&rdquo; and, bowing to Captain Justice, he left the hut.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest followed his example, and, when he had gone a few yards, glanced round
-at the hateful spot. There stood Captain Justice in the doorway of the hut,
-looking much depressed, and there, a few yards to the left, was the impress in
-the sand that marked where his cousin had fallen. He never saw either the man
-or the place again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Kershaw,&rdquo; said Mr. Alston, &ldquo;what do you propose
-doing?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But you must think; remember you are in an awkward fix. You know by
-English law duelling is murder; and now I come to think of it, I expect that
-this place is subject to the English law in criminal matters, or at least that
-the law is identical.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think I had better give myself up, like Captain Justice.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense. You must hide away somewhere for a year or two till the row
-blows over.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Where am I to hide?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Have you any money, or can you get any?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, I have nearly two hundred and fifty pounds on me now.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My word, that is fortunate! Well, now, what I have to suggest is, that
-you should assume a false name, and sail for South Africa with me. I am going
-up-country on a shooting expedition, outside British territory, so there will
-be little fear of your being caught and extradited. Then, in a year or so, when
-the affair is forgotten, you can come back to England. What do you say to
-that?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose I may as well go there as anywhere else. I shall be a marked
-man all my life, anyhow. What does it matter where I go?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, you are down on your luck now; by-and-by you will cheer up
-again.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Just then they met a fisherman, who gazed at them, wondering what the two
-gentlemen were doing out walking at that hour; but concluding that, after the
-mad fashion of Englishmen, they had been to bathe, he passed them with a civil
-&ldquo;Bonjour.&rdquo; Ernest coloured to the eyes under the scrutiny; he was
-beginning to feel the dreadful burden of his secret. Presently they reached the
-steamer, and found Mr. Alston&rsquo;s little boy Roger, who, though he was only
-nine years old, was as quick and self-reliant as many English lads of fourteen,
-waiting for them by the bridge.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, here you are, father; you have been walking so long that I thought
-you would miss the boat. I have brought the luggage down all right, and this
-gentleman&rsquo;s too.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s right, my lad. Kershaw, do you go and take the tickets; I
-want to get rid of this;&rdquo; and he tapped the revolver-case, that was
-concealed beneath his coat.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest did so, and presently met Mr. Alston on the boat. A few minutes more
-and, to his intense relief, she cast off and stood out to sea. There were not
-very many passengers on board, and those there were, were too much taken up in
-making preparations to be sea-sick to take any notice of Ernest. And yet he
-could not shake himself free from the idea that everybody knew that he had just
-killed a man. His own self-consciousness was so intense that he saw his guilt
-reflected on the faces of all he met. He gazed around him in awe, expecting
-every moment to be greeted as a murderer. Most people who have ever done
-anything they should not are acquainted with this sensation. Overcome with this
-idea, he took refuge in his berth, nor did he emerge therefrom till the boat
-reached Weymouth. There both he and Mr. Alston bought some rough clothes, and,
-to a great extent, succeeded in disguising themselves; then made their way
-across country to Southampton in the same trains, but in separate compartments.
-Reaching Southampton without let or hindrance, they agreed to take passages in
-the Union Company&rsquo;s R.M.S. <i>Moor,</i> sailing on the following morning.
-Mr. Alston obtained a list of the passengers; fortunately, there was nobody
-among them whom he knew. For greater security, however, they took steerage
-passages, and booked themselves under assumed names. Ernest took his second
-Christian name, and figured on the passenger list as E. Beyton, while Mr.
-Alston and his boy assumed the name of James. They took their passages at
-different times, and feigned to be unknown to each other. These precautions
-they found to be doubly necessary, inasmuch as at Southampton Mr. Alston
-managed to get hold of a book on English criminal law, from which it appeared
-that the fact of the duel having been fought at Guernsey did not in the least
-clear them from the legal consequences of the act, as they had vaguely supposed
-would be the case, on the insufficient authority of Captain Justice&rsquo;s
-statement.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At last the vessel sailed, and it was with a sigh of relief that Ernest saw his
-native shores fade from view. As they disappeared, a fellow-passenger, valet to
-a gentleman going to the Cape for his health, politely offered him a paper to
-read. It was the <i>Standard</i> of that day&rsquo;s date. He took it and
-glanced at the foreign intelligence. The first thing that caught his eye was
-the following paragraph, headed &ldquo;A Fatal Duel&rdquo;:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The town of St. Peter&rsquo;s in Guernsey has been thrown into a state
-of consternation by the discovery of the body of an English gentleman, who was
-this morning shot dead in a duel. Captain Justice, of the &mdash;&mdash; Hussars, who
-was the unfortunate gentleman&rsquo;s second, has surrendered himself to the
-authorities. The other parties, who are at present unknown, have absconded. It
-is said that they have been traced to Weymouth; but there all trace of them has
-been lost. The cause of the duel is unknown, and in the present state of
-excitement it is difficult to obtain authentic information.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-By the pilot who left the vessel Ernest despatched two letters, one to Eva
-Ceswick, and the other&mdash;which contained a copy of the memoranda drawn up
-before and after the duel, and attested by Mr. Alston&mdash;to his uncle. To
-both he told the story of his misfortune, fully and fairly, imploring the
-former not to forget him and to wait for happier times, and asking the
-forgiveness of the latter for the trouble that he had brought upon himself and
-all belonging to him. Should they wish to write to him, he gave his address as
-Ernest Beyton, Post-office, Maritzburg.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The pilot-boat hoisted her brown sail with a huge white P. upon it and vanished
-into the night; and Ernest, feeling that he was a ruined man, and with the
-stain of blood upon his hands, crept to his bunk and wept like a child.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Yesterday he had been loved, prosperous, happy, with a bright career before
-him. To-day he was a nameless outcast, departing into exile, and his young life
-shadowed by a cloud in which he could see no break.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Well might he weep; it was a hard lesson.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="book02"></a>BOOK II.</h2>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap17"></a>CHAPTER I.<br/>
-MY POOR EVA</h2>
-
-<p>
-Two days after the pilot-boat, flitting away from the vessel&rsquo;s side like
-some silent-flighted bird, had vanished into the night, Florence Ceswick
-happened to be walking past the village post-office on her way to pay a visit
-to Dorothy, when it struck her that the afternoon post must be in, and that she
-might as well ask if there were any letters for Dum&rsquo;s Ness. There was no
-second delivery at Kesterwick, and she knew that it was not always convenient
-to Mr. Cardus to send in. The civil old postmaster gave her a little bundle of
-letters, remarking at the same time that he thought that there was one for the
-Cottage.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Is it for me, Mr. Brown?&rdquo; asked Florence.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, miss; it is for Miss Eva.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, then I will leave it; I am going up to Dum&rsquo;s Ness. No doubt
-Miss Eva will call.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She knew that Eva watched the arrival of the posts very carefully. When she got
-outside the office she glanced at the bundle of letters in her hand, and
-noticed with a start that one of them, addressed to Mr. Cardus, was in
-Ernest&rsquo;s handwriting. It bore a Southampton post-mark. What, she
-wondered, could he be doing at Southampton? He should have been in Guernsey.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She walked on briskly to Dum&rsquo;s Ness, and on her arrival found Dorothy
-sitting working in the sitting-room. After she had greeted her she handed over
-the letters.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There is one from Ernest,&rdquo; she said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, I am so glad!&rdquo; answered Dorothy. &ldquo;Who is it for?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;For Mr. Cardus. O, here he comes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus shook hands with her, and thanked her for bringing the letters,
-which he turned over casually, after the fashion of a man accustomed to receive
-large quantities of correspondence of an uninteresting nature. Presently his
-manner quickened, and he opened Ernest&rsquo;s letter. Florence fixed her keen
-eyes upon him. He read the letter; she read his face.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus was accustomed to conceal his emotions, but on this occasion it was
-clear that they were too strong for him. Astonishment and grief pursued each
-other across his features as he proceeded. Finally he put the letter down and
-glanced at an enclosure.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is it, Reginald, what is it?&rdquo; asked Dorothy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is,&rdquo; answered Mr. Cardus solemnly, &ldquo;that Ernest is a
-murderer and a fugitive.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy sank into a chair with a groan, and covered her face with her hands.
-Florence turned ashy pale.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What do you mean?&rdquo; she said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Read the letter for yourself, and see. Stop, read it aloud, and the
-enclosure too. I may have misunderstood.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence did so in a quiet voice. It was wonderful how her power came out in
-contrast to the intense disturbance of the other two. The old man of the world
-shook like a leaf, the young girl stood firm as a rock. Yet, in all
-probability, her interest in Ernest was more intense than his.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When she had finished, Mr. Cardus spoke again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You see,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;I was right. He is a murderer and an
-outcast. And I loved the boy, I loved him. Well, let him go.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O Ernest, Ernest!&rdquo; sobbed Dorothy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence glanced from one to the other with contempt.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What are you talking about?&rdquo; she said at last. &ldquo;What is
-there to make all this fuss about? &lsquo;Murderer,&rsquo; indeed! Then our
-grandfathers were often murderers. What would you have had him do? Would you
-have had him give up the woman&rsquo;s letter to save himself? Would you have
-had him put up with this other man&rsquo;s insults about his mother? If he had,
-I would never have spoken to him again. Stop that groaning, Dorothy. You should
-be proud of him; he behaved as a gentleman should. If I had the right I should
-be proud of him;&rdquo; and her breast heaved and the proud lips curled as she
-said it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus listened attentively, and it was evident that her enthusiasm moved
-him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There is something in what Florence says,&rdquo; he broke in. &ldquo;I
-should not have liked the boy to show the white feather. But it is an awful
-business to kill one&rsquo;s own first cousin, especially when one is next in
-the entail. Old Kershaw will be furious at losing his only son, and Ernest will
-never be able to come back to this country while he lives, or he will set the
-law on him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is dreadful!&rdquo; said Dorothy; &ldquo;just as he was beginning
-life, and going into a profession, and now to have to go and wander in that
-far-off country under a false name!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O yes, it is sad enough,&rdquo; said Mr. Cardus; &ldquo;but what is done
-cannot be undone. He is young, and will live it down, and if the worst comes to
-the worst, must make himself a home out there. But it is hard upon me, hard
-upon me;&rdquo; and he went off to his office, muttering, &ldquo;hard upon
-me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When Florence started upon her homeward way, the afternoon had set in wet and
-chilly, and the sea was hidden in wreaths of gray mist. Altogether the scene
-was depressing. On arrival at the Cottage she found Eva standing, the picture
-of melancholy, by the window, and staring out at the misty sea.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O Florence, I am glad that you have come home; I really began to feel
-inclined to commit suicide.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Indeed! and may I ask why?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know; the rain is so depressing, I suppose.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It does not depress me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, nothing ever does; you live in the land of perpetual calm.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I take exercise, and keep my liver in good order. Have you been out this
-afternoon?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, I thought not. No wonder you feel depressed, staying indoors all
-day. Why don&rsquo;t you go for a walk?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There is nowhere to go.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Really, Eva, I don&rsquo;t know what has come to you lately, why
-don&rsquo;t you go along the cliff, or stop&mdash;have you been to the
-post-office? I called for the Dum&rsquo;s Ness letters, and Mr. Brown said that
-there was one for you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva jumped up with remarkable animation, and passed out of the room with her
-peculiar light tread. The mention of that word &ldquo;letter&rdquo; had
-sufficed to change the aspect of things considerably.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence watched her go with a dark little smile.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah,&rdquo; she said aloud, as the door closed, &ldquo;your feet will
-soon fall heavily enough.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Presently Eva went out, and Florence, having thrown off her cloak, took her
-sister&rsquo;s place at the window and waited. It was seven minutes&rsquo; walk
-to the post-office. She would be back in about a quarter of an hour. Watch in
-hand, Florence waited patiently. Seventeen minutes had elapsed when the
-garden-gate was opened, and Eva re-entered, her face quite gray with pain, and
-furtively applying a handkerchief to her eyes. Florence smiled again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I thought so,&rdquo; she said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-From all of which it will be seen that Florence was a very remarkable woman.
-She had scarcely exaggerated when she said that her heart was as deep as the
-sea. The love that she bore Ernest was the strongest thing in all her strong
-and vigorous life; when every other characteristic and influence crumbled away
-and was forgotten, it would still remain overmastering as ever. And when she
-discovered that her high love, the greatest and best part of her, had been made
-a plaything of by a thoughtless boy, who kissed girls on the same principle
-that a duck takes to water, because it came natural to him, the love in its
-mortal agonies gave birth to a hate destined to grow great as itself. But, with
-all a woman&rsquo;s injustice, it was not directed towards the same object. On
-Ernest, indeed, she would wreak vengeance if she could, but she still loved him
-as dearly as at first; the revenge would be a mere episode in the history of
-her passion. But to her sister, the innocent woman who, she chose to consider,
-had robbed her, she gave all that bountiful hate. Herself the more powerful
-character of the two, she determined upon the utter destruction of the weaker.
-Strong as Fate, and unrelenting as Time, she dedicated her life to that end.
-Everything, she said, comes to those who can wait. She forgot that the
-Providence above us can wait the longest of us all. In the end it is Providence
-that wins.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva came in, and Florence heard her make her way up the stairs to her room.
-Again she spoke to herself:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The poor fool will weep over him and renounce him. If she had the
-courage she would follow him and comfort him in his trouble, and so tie him to
-her for ever. Oh, that I had her chance! But the chances always come to
-fools.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then she went upstairs and listened outside Eva&rsquo;s door. She was sobbing
-audibly. Turning the handle, she walked casually in.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, Eva, did you&mdash;Why, my dear girl, <i>what</i> is the matter
-with you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva, who was lying sobbing on her bed, turned her head to the wall and went on
-sobbing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What <i>is</i> the matter, Eva? If you only knew how absurd you
-look!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No-no-thing!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense! People do not make such scenes as this for nothing.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-No answer.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Come, my dear, as your affectionate sister, I really must ask what has
-happened to you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The tone was commanding, and half unconsciously Eva obeyed it.
-&ldquo;Ernest!&rdquo; she ejaculated.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, what about Ernest? He is nothing to you, is he?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No&mdash;that is, yes. O, it is so dreadful! It was the letter;&rdquo;
-and she touched a sheet of closely written paper that lay on the bed beside
-her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, as you do not seem to be in a condition to explain yourself,
-perhaps you had better let me read the letter.&rdquo; &ldquo;O no.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense! Give it me; perhaps I may be able to help you;&rdquo; and she
-took the paper from her unresisting grasp, and, turning her face from the
-light, read it deliberately through.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was very passionate in its terms, and rather incoherent; such a letter, in
-short, as a lad almost wild with love and grief would write under the
-circumstances.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So,&rdquo; said Florence, as she coolly folded it up, &ldquo;it appears
-that you are engaged to him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-No answer, unless sobs can be said to constitute one. &ldquo;And it seems that
-you are engaged to a man who has just committed a frightful murder, and run
-away from the consequences.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva sat up on the bed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It was not a murder; it was a duel.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Precisely, a duel about another woman; but the law calls it murder. If
-he is caught he will be hanged.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O Florence! how can you say such dreadful things?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I only say what is true. Poor Eva, I do not wonder that you are
-distressed.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is all so dreadful!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You love him, I suppose?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O yes, dearly.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then you must get over it; you must never think of him any more.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Never think of him! I shall think of him all my life.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That is as it may be. You must never have anything more to do with him.
-He has blood upon his hands, blood shed for some bad woman.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I cannot desert him, Florence, because he has got into trouble.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Over another woman.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A peculiar expression of pain passed over Eva&rsquo;s face.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How cruel you are, Florence! He is only a boy, and boys will go wrong
-sometimes. Anybody can make a fool of a boy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And it seems that boys can make fools of some people who should know
-better.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O Florence, what is to be done? You have such a clear head; tell me what
-I must do. I cannot give him up; I cannot indeed.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence seated herself on the bed beside her sister, and put an arm round her
-neck and kissed her. Eva was much touched at her kindness.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My poor Eva,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;I am so sorry for you! But tell me,
-when did you get engaged to him&mdash;that evening you went out sailing
-together?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He kissed you, I suppose, and all that?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes. Oh, I was so happy!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My poor Eva!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I tell you I cannot give him up.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, perhaps there will be no need for you to do so. But you must not
-answer that letter.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why not?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Because it will not do. Look at it which way you will, Ernest has just
-killed his own cousin in a quarrel about another woman. It is necessary that
-you should mark your disapproval of that in some way or other. Do not answer
-his letter. If in time he can wash himself clear of the reproach, and remains
-faithful to you, then it will be soon enough to show that you still care for
-him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But if I leave him like that, he will fall into the hands of other
-women, though he loves me all the time. I know him well; his is not a nature
-that can stand alone.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, let him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But, Florence, you forget I love him, too. I cannot bear to think of it.
-O, I love him, I love him!&rdquo; and she dropped her head upon her
-sister&rsquo;s shoulder and began to sob again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My dear, it is just because you do love him so that you should prove
-him; and besides, my dear, you have your own self-respect to think of. Be
-guided by me, Eva; do not answer that letter; I am sure that you will regret it
-if you do. Let matters stand for a few months, then we can arrange a plan of
-action. Above all, do not let your engagement transpire to anybody. There will
-be a dreadful scandal about this business, and it will be most unpleasant for
-you, and, indeed, for us all, to have our name mixed up in the matter. Hark!
-there is aunt coming in. I will go and talk to her; you can stop here and
-recover yourself a little. You will follow my advice, will you not,
-dearest?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose so,&rdquo; answered Eva, with a heavy sigh, as she buried her
-face in the pillow.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then Florence left her.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap18"></a>CHAPTER II.<br/>
-THE LOCUM TENENS</h2>
-
-<p>
-And so it came to pass that Ernest&rsquo;s letter remained unanswered. But Mr.
-Cardus, Dorothy, and Jeremy all wrote. Mr. Cardus&rsquo;s letter was very kind
-and considerate. It expressed his deep grief at what had happened, and told him
-of the excitement that the duel had caused, and of the threatening letters
-which he had received from Sir Hugh Kershaw, who was half-wild with grief and
-fury at the loss of his son. Finally, it commended his wisdom in putting the
-seas between himself and the avengers of blood, and told him that he should not
-want for money, as his drafts would be honoured to the extent of a thousand a
-year, should he require so much&mdash;Mr. Cardus was very open-handed where
-Ernest was concerned; also if he required any particular sum of money for any
-purpose, such as to buy land or start a business, he was to let him know.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy&rsquo;s letter was like herself, sweet and gentle, and overflowing with
-womanly sympathy. She bade him not to be down-hearted, but to hope for a time
-when all this dreadful business would be forgotten, and he would be able to
-return in peace to England. She bade him also, shyly enough, to remember that
-there was only one Power that could really wash away the stain of blood upon
-his hands. Every month she said she would write him a letter, whether he
-answered it or not. This promise she faithfully kept.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy&rsquo;s letter was characteristic. It is worth transcribing:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My DEAR OLD Fellow,&mdash;Your news has knocked us all into the middle
-of next week. To think of your fighting a duel, and my not being there to hold
-the sponge! And I will tell you what it is, old chap: some of these people
-round here, like that old De Talor, call it murder, but that is gammon, and
-don&rsquo;t you trouble your head about it. It was he who got up the row, not
-you, and he tried to shoot you into the bargain. I am awfully glad that you
-kept your nerve and plugged him; it would have been better if you could have
-nailed him through the right shoulder, which would not have killed him; but at
-the best of times you were never good enough with a pistol for that.
-Don&rsquo;t you remember when we used to shoot with the old pistols at the man
-I cut out on the cliff, you were always just as likely to hit him on the head
-or in the stomach as through the heart? It is a sad pity that you did not
-practise a little more, but it is no use crying over spilt milk&mdash;and after
-all the shot seems to have been a very creditable one. So you are going on a
-shooting expedition up in Secocoeni&rsquo;s country. That is what I call
-glorious. To think of a rhinoceros makes my mouth water; I would give one of my
-fingers to shoot one. Life here is simply wretched now that you have
-gone&mdash;Mr. Cardus as glum as Titheburgh Abbey on a cloudy day, and Doll
-always looking as though she had been crying, or were going to cry. Old
-Grandfather Atterleigh is quite lively compared to those two. As for the
-office, I hate it, everlastingly copying deeds which I don&rsquo;t in the
-slightest understand, and adding up figures in which I make mistakes. Your
-respected uncle told me the other day, in his politest way, that he considered
-I sailed as near being a complete fool as any man he ever knew. I answered that
-I quite agreed with him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I met that young fellow Smithers the other day, the one who gave Eva
-Ceswick that little brute of a dog. He said something disagreeable about
-wondering if they would hang you. I told him that I didn&rsquo;t know if they
-would or not, but unless he dropped his infernal sneer I was very sure that I
-would break his neck. He concluded to move on. By the way, I met Eva Ceswick
-herself yesterday. She looked pale, and asked if we had heard anything of you.
-She said that she had got a letter from you. Florence came up here, and spoke
-up well for you; she said that she was proud of you, or would be if she had a
-right to. I never liked her before, but now I think that she is a brick.
-Good-bye, old chap; I never wrote such a long letter before. You don&rsquo;t
-know how I miss you; life don&rsquo;t seem worth having. Yesterday was the
-First; I went out and killed twenty brace to my own gun&mdash;fired forty-six
-cartridges. Not bad, eh! And yet somehow I didn&rsquo;t seem to care a twopenny
-curse about the whole thing, though if you had been there you would have duffed
-them awfully. I feel sure you would have set my teeth on edge with letting them
-off&mdash;the birds, I mean. Mind you write to me often. Good-bye, old fellow.
-God bless you!
-</p>
-
-<p class="center">
-&ldquo;Your affectionate friend,
-</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-&ldquo;Jeremy Jones.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;P.S.&mdash;In shooting big game, a fellow told me that the top of the
-flank raking forward is a very deadly shot, as it either breaks the back or
-passes through the kidneys to the lungs or heart. I should have thought that
-the shot was very apt to waste itself in the flesh of the flank. Please try it,
-and take notes of the results.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-About a fortnight after these letters, addressed Ernest Beyton, Esq., Post
-Office, Maritzburg, Natal, had been despatched, Kesterwick and its
-neighbourhood was thrown into a state of mild excitement by the announcement
-that Mr. Halford, the clergyman, whose health had of late been none of the
-best, purposed taking a year&rsquo;s rest, and that the Bishop had consented to
-the duties of his parish being carried on by a locum tenens, named the Reverend
-James Plowden. Mr. Halford was much liked and respected, and the intelligence
-was received with general regret, which was, however, tempered with curiosity
-as to the new-comer. Thus, when it became known that Mr. Plowden was to preach
-in the parish church at the evening service on the third Sunday in September,
-all Kesterwick was seized with profound religious fervour, and went to hear
-him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The parish church at Kesterwick was unusually large and beautiful, being a
-relic of an age when, whatever men&rsquo;s lives may have been, they spared
-neither their money nor their thought in rearing up fitting habitations to the
-Deity, whom they regarded perhaps with more of superstitious awe than true
-religious feeling. Standing as it did somewhat back from the sea, it alone had
-escaped the shock of the devouring waves, and remained till this day a monument
-of architectural triumph. Its tall tower, pointing like a great finger up to
-heaven, looked very solemn on that quiet September evening as the crowd of
-church-goers passed beneath its shadow into the old doorway, through which most
-of them had been carried to their christening, and would in due time be carried
-to their burial. At least so thought Eva and Dorothy, as they stood for a
-moment by the monument to &ldquo;five unknown sailors,&rdquo; washed ashore
-after a great gale, and buried in a common grave. How many suffering, erring
-human beings had stood upon the same spot and thought the same thoughts! How
-many more now sleeping in the womb of time would stand there and think them,
-when these two had suffered and erred their full, and been long forgotten!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They formed a strange contrast, those two sweet women, as they passed together
-into the sacred stillness of the church&mdash;the one stately, dark, and
-splendid, with an unrestful trouble in her eyes; the other almost insignificant
-in figure, but pure and patient of face, and with steady blue eyes which never
-wavered. Did they guess, those two, as they walked thus together, how closely
-their destinies were linked? Did they know that each at heart was striving for
-the same prize&mdash;a poor one indeed, but still all the world to them?
-Perhaps they did, very vaguely, and it was the pressure of their common trouble
-that drew them closer together in those days. But if they did, they never spoke
-of it; and as for little Dorothy, she never dreamed of winning. She was content
-to be allowed to toil along in the painful race.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When they reached the pew that the Ceswicks habitually occupied, they found
-Miss Ceswick and Florence already there. Jeremy had refused to come; he had a
-most unreasonable antipathy to parsons. Mr. Halford he liked, but of this new
-man he would have none. The general curiosity to see him was to Jeremy
-inexplicable, his opinion being that he should soon see a great deal more of
-him than he liked. &ldquo;Just like a pack of girls running after a new
-doll,&rdquo; he growled; &ldquo;well, there is one thing, you will soon be
-tired of hearing him squeak.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-As the service went on, the aisles of the great church grew dim except where
-the setting sun shot a crimson shaft through the west window, which wandered
-from spot to spot and face to face, and made them glorious. When it came to the
-hymn before the sermon, Eva could scarcely see to read, and with the exception
-of the crimson pencil of sunlight that came through the head of the Virgin
-Mary, and wavered restlessly about, and the strong glow of the lights upon the
-pulpit, the church was almost dark.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When the new clergyman, Mr. Plowden, ascended the steps of the ancient pulpit
-and gave out his text, Eva looked at him in common with the rest of the
-congregation. Mr. Plowden was a large man of a somewhat lumbering make. His
-head, too, was large, and covered with masses of rather coarse-textured black
-hair. The forehead was prominent, and gave signs of intellectual power; the
-eyebrows thick and strongly marked, and in curious contrast to the cold
-light-gray eyes that played unceasingly beneath them. All the lower part of the
-face, which, to judge from the purple hue of the skin, Nature had intended
-should be plentifully clothed with hair, was clean shaven, and revealed a large
-jaw, square chin, and pair of thick lips. Altogether Mr. Plowden was considered
-a fine man, and his face was generally spoken of as &ldquo;striking.&rdquo;
-Perhaps the most curious thing about it, however, was a species of varicose
-vein on the forehead, which was generally quite unnoticeable, but whenever he
-was excited or nervous stood out above the level of the skin in the form of a
-perfect cross. It was thus visible when Eva looked at him, and it struck her as
-being an unpleasant mark to have on one&rsquo;s forehead. She turned her eyes
-away&mdash;the man did not please her fastidious taste&mdash;and listened for
-his voice. Presently it came; it was powerful and even musical, but coarse.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He is not a gentleman,&rdquo; thought Eva to herself; and then
-dismissing him and his sermon too from her mind, she leaned back against the
-poppy-head at the end of the pew, half-closed her eyes, and let her thoughts
-wander in the way that thoughts have the power to do in church. Far across the
-sea they flew, to where a great vessel, labouring in a heavy gale, was
-ploughing her sturdy way along&mdash;to where a young man stood clinging to the
-iron stanchions, and gazed out into the darkness with sorrow in his eyes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Wonderfully soft and tender grew her beautiful face as the vision passed before
-her soul; the ripe lips quivered, and there was a world of love in the
-half-opened eyes. And just then the wandering patch of glory perceived her,
-settled on her like a butterfly upon a flower, and for a while wandered no
-longer.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Suddenly she became aware of a momentary pause in the even flow of the
-clergyman&rsquo;s eloquence, and waking from her reverie, glanced up at that
-spot of light surrounding him, and as she did so it struck her that she herself
-was illuminated with a more beautiful light&mdash;that he and she alone were
-distinguishable out of all the people beneath that roof.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The same thought had evidently struck Mr. Plowden, for he was gazing intently
-at her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Instinctively she drew back into the shadow, and Mr. Plowden went on with his
-sermon. But he had driven away poor Eva&rsquo;s vision; there only remained of
-it the sad reproachful look of those dark eyes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Outside the church Dorothy found Jeremy waiting to escort her home. They all
-went together as far as the Cottage. When they got clear of the crowd Florence
-spoke:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What a good-looking man Mr. Plowden is, and how well he preached!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I did not like him much,&rdquo; said Dorothy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What do you think of him, Eva?&rdquo; asked Florence.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I? Oh, I do not know. I do not think he is a gentleman.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am sure that he is not,&rdquo; put in Jeremy. &ldquo;I saw him by the
-post-office this afternoon. He is a cad.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Rather a sweeping remark that, is it not, Mr. Jones?&rdquo; said
-Florence.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know if it is sweeping or not,&rdquo; answered Jeremy,
-sententiously, &ldquo;but I am sure that it is true.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then they said good-night, and went their separate ways.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap19"></a>CHAPTER III.<br/>
-EVA TAKES A DISTRICT</h2>
-
-<p>
-The Reverend James Plowden was born of rich but honest parents in the
-sugar-broking way. He was one of a large family, who were objects of anxious
-thought to Mr. and Mrs. Plowden. These worthy people, aware of the
-disadvantages under which they laboured in the matter of education, determined
-that neither trouble nor money should be spared to make their children
-&ldquo;genteel.&rdquo; And so it came to pass that the &ldquo;mansion&rdquo;
-near Bloomsbury was overrun with the most expensive nurses, milliners,
-governesses, and tutors, all straining every nerve to secure the perfect
-gentility of the young Plowdens. The result was highly ornamental, but scarcely
-equivalent to the vast expense incurred. The Plowden youth of both sexes may be
-said to have been painted, and varnished, and gilded into an admirable
-imitation of gentlefolks; but if the lacquer-work would stand the buffetings of
-the world&rsquo;s weather was another question, and one which does not concern
-us, except in so far as it has to do with a single member of the family.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Master James Plowden came about half-way down the family list, but he might
-just as well have stood at the head of it, for he ruled his brothers and
-sisters&mdash;old and young&mdash;with a heavy rod. He was the strong one of
-the family, strong both in mind and body, and he had a hand of iron.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-For his misdeeds were his brothers thrashed, preferring to take those ills they
-knew of from the hands of the thrasher rather than endure the unimagined
-horrors brother James would make ready for them should they venture to protest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Thus it was that he came to be considered <i>par excellence</i> the good boy of
-the family, and he was certainly the clever one, and bore every sort of
-blushing honour thick upon him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was to an occurrence in his boyhood that Mr. Plowden owed his parents&rsquo;
-determination to send him into the Church. His future career had always been a
-matter of much speculation to them, for they belonged to that class of people
-who love to arrange their infants&rsquo; destinies when the infants themselves
-are still in the cradle, and argue their fitness for certain lines of life from
-remarks which they make at three years old.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Now, James&rsquo;s mamma had a very favourite parrot with a red tail, and out
-of this tail it was James&rsquo;s delight to pull the feathers, having
-discovered that so doing gave a parrot a lively twinge of pain. The onus of the
-feather-pulling, if discovered, was shouldered on to a chosen brother, who was
-promptly thrashed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But on one occasion things went wrong with Master James. The parrot was
-climbing up the outside of his cage, presenting the remainder of his tail to
-the hand of the spoiler in a way that was irresistibly seductive. But, aware of
-the fact that his enemy was in the neighbourhood, he kept a careful look-out
-from the corner of his eye, and the moment that he saw James&rsquo;s stealthy
-hand draw near his tail made a sudden dart at it, and actually succeeded in
-making his powerful beak meet through its forefinger. James shrieked with pain
-and fury, and shaking the bird on to the floor, stunned it with a book. But he
-was not satisfied with this revenge, for, as soon as he saw that it could no
-longer bite, he seized it and twisted its neck.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There, you devil!&rdquo; he said, throwing the creature into the cage.
-&ldquo;Hullo, something has burst in my forehead!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O James, what have you done!&rdquo; said his little brother Montague,
-well knowing that he had a lively personal interest in James&rsquo;s misdoings.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense! what have you done? Now remember, Montague, <i>you</i> killed
-the parrot.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Just then Mr. and Mrs. Plowden came in from a drive, and a very lively scene
-ensued, into which we need not enter. Suffice it to say that, all evidence to
-the contrary notwithstanding, James was acquitted on the ground of general good
-character, and Montague, howling and protesting his innocence, was led off to
-execution. Justly fearful lest something further should transpire, James was
-hurriedly leaving the room, when his mother called him back. &ldquo;Why, what
-is that on your forehead?&rdquo; &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t know,&rdquo; answered
-James; &ldquo;something went snap there just now.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, I never! Just look at the boy, John; he has got a cross upon his
-forehead.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Plowden papa examined the phenomenon very carefully, and then, solemnly
-removing his spectacles, remarked with much deliberation:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Elizabeth, that settles the point.&rdquo; &ldquo;What point,
-John?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What point! Why, the point of the boy&rsquo;s profession. It is, as you
-remark, a cross upon his forehead. Good!&mdash;he shall go into the Church.
-Now, I must decline to be argued with, Elizabeth. The matter is settled.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And so in due course James Plowden, Esq., went to Cambridge, and became the
-Reverend James Plowden.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Shortly after the Reverend James had started in life as a curate&mdash;having
-first succeeded in beguiling his parents into settling on himself a portion
-just twice as large as that to which he was entitled&mdash;he found it
-convenient to cut off his connection with a family he considered vulgar, and a
-drag upon his professional success. But somehow, with all his gifts&mdash;and
-undoubtedly he was by nature well-endowed, especially as regards his mind, that
-was remarkable for a species of hard cleverness and persuasive power&mdash;and
-with all the advantages which he derived from being in receipt of an
-independent income, the Reverend James had not hitherto proved a conspicuous
-success. He had held some important curacies, and of late had acted as the
-locum tenens of several gentlemen who, like Mr. Halford, through loss of health
-or other reasons, had been called away from their livings for a length of time.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But from all these places the Reverend James had departed without regret, nor
-had there been any very universal lamentations over his going. The fact of the
-matter was that the Reverend James was not a popular man. He had ability in
-plenty, and money in plenty, and would expend both without stint if he had an
-end to gain. He was more or less of a good companion, too, in the ordinary
-sense of the word; that is, he could make himself agreeable in a rough,
-exaggerated kind of way to both men and women. Indeed, by the former he was
-often spoken of carelessly as a &ldquo;good fellow;&rdquo; but women, or rather
-ladies, following their finer instincts, disliked him intensely. He jarred upon
-them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Of course, it is impossible to lay down any fixed rule about men, but there are
-two tokens by which they may be known. The first is by their friends; the
-second by the degree of friendship and affection to which they are admitted by
-women. The man to whom members of the other sex attach themselves is in
-ninety-nine cases out of a hundred a good fellow, and women&rsquo;s instinct
-tells them so, or they would not love him. It may be urged that women often
-love blackguards. To this the answer is, that there must be a good deal of good
-mixed up with the blackguardism. Show me the man whom two or three women of his
-own rank love with all their honest hearts, and I will trust all I have into
-his hands and not be a penny the poorer.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But women did not love the Reverend James Plowden, although he had for several
-years come to the conclusion that it was desirable that they should, or rather
-that one of them should. In plain language he had for some years past thought
-that he would improve his position by getting married. He was a shrewd man, and
-he could not disguise from himself the fact that so far he was not altogether a
-success. He had tried his best, but, with all his considerable advantages, he
-had failed. There was only one avenue to success which he had not tried, and
-that was marriage. Marriage with a woman of high caste, quick intellect, and
-beauty, might give him the tone that his social system so sadly needed. He was
-a man in a good position, he had money, he had intelligence of a robust if of a
-coarse order, he had fairly good looks, and he was only thirty-five; why should
-he not marry blood, brains, and beauty, and shine with a reflected splendour?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Such were the thoughts which were simmering in the astute brain of the Reverend
-James Plowden when he first set eyes upon Eva Ceswick in the old church at
-Kesterwick.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Within a week or so of his arrival, Mr. Plowden, in his character of spiritual
-adviser to the motley Kesterwick flock, paid a ceremonious call on the Miss
-Ceswicks. They were all at home.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Miss Ceswick and Florence welcomed him graciously; Eva politely, but with an
-air that said plainly that he interested her not at all. Yet it was to Eva that
-he chiefly directed himself. He took this opportunity to inform them all,
-especially Eva, that he felt the responsibilities of his position as locum
-tenens to weigh heavily upon him. He appealed to them all, especially Eva, to
-help him to bear his load. He was going to institute a new system of district
-visiting. Would they all, especially Eva, assist him? If they would, the good
-work was already half done. There was so much for young ladies to do. He could
-assure them, from his personal experience, that one visit from a young lady,
-however useless she might be in a general way, which his instinct assured him
-these particular young ladies before him were not, had more influence with a
-distressed and godless family than six from well-meaning but unsympathetic
-clergymen like himself. Might he rely on their help?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am afraid that I am too old for that sort of thing, Mr.
-Plowden,&rdquo; answered Miss Ceswick. &ldquo;You must see what you can do with
-my nieces.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am sure that I shall be delighted to help,&rdquo; said Florence,
-&ldquo;if Eva will bear me company. I always feel a shyness about intruding
-myself into cottages unsupported.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Your shyness is not surprising, Miss Ceswick. I suffered from it myself
-for many years, but at last I have, I am thankful to say, got the better of it.
-But I am sure that we shall not appeal to your sister in vain.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I shall be glad to help if you think that I can do any good,&rdquo; put
-in Eva, thus directly appealed to; &ldquo;but I must tell you I have no great
-faith in myself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do the work. Miss Ceswick, and the faith will come; sow the seed and the
-tree will spring up, and bear fruit too in due season.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There was no reply, so he continued: &ldquo;Then I have your permission to put
-you down for a district?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O yes, Mr. Plowden,&rdquo; answered Florence. &ldquo;Will you take some
-more tea?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Plowden would take no more tea, but went on his way to finish the
-day&rsquo;s work he had mapped out for himself&mdash;for he worked hard and
-according to a strict rule&mdash;reflecting that Eva Ceswick was the loveliest
-woman he had ever seen.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think that we must congratulate you on a conquest, Eva,&rdquo; said
-Miss Ceswick, cheerfully, as the front door closed. &ldquo;Mr. Plowden never
-took his eyes off you, and really, my dear, I do not wonder at it; you look
-charming.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva flushed up angrily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense, aunt!&rdquo; she said, and left the room.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Really,&rdquo; said Miss Ceswick, &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know what has
-come to Eva lately, she is so very strange.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I expect that you have touched her on a sore point. I rather fancy that
-she has taken a liking to Mr. Plowden,&rdquo; said Florence, dryly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, indeed!&rdquo; answered the old lady, nodding her head wisely.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In due course a district was assigned to the two Miss Ceswicks, and for her
-part Eva was glad of the occupation. It brought her a good deal into contact
-with Mr. Plowden, which was not altogether pleasant to her, for she cherished a
-vague dislike of the clergyman, and did not admire his shifty eyes. But, as she
-got to know him better, she could find nothing to justify her dislike. He was
-not, it is true, quite a gentleman, but that was his misfortune. His manner to
-herself was subdued and almost deferential; he never obtruded himself upon her
-society, though somehow he was in it almost daily. Indeed, he even succeeded in
-raising her to some enthusiasm about her work, a quality in which poor Eva had
-of late been sadly lacking. She thought him a very good clergyman, with his
-heart in his duty. But she disliked him all the same.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva never answered Ernest&rsquo;s letter. Once she began an answer, but
-bethought her of Florence&rsquo;s sage advice, and changed her mind. &ldquo;He
-will write again,&rdquo; she said to herself. She did not know Ernest; his was
-not a nature to humble itself before a woman. Could she have seen her lover
-hanging about the steps of the Maritzburg post-office when the English mail was
-being delivered, in order to go back to the window when the people had
-dispersed, and ask the tired clerk if he was &ldquo;sure&rdquo; that there were
-no more letters for Ernest Beyton, and get severely snubbed for his pains,
-perhaps her heart would have relented. And yet it was a performance which poor
-Ernest went through once a week out there in Natal.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-One mail-day Mr. Alston went with him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, Ernest, has it come?&rdquo; he asked, as he came down the steps, a
-letter from Dorothy in his hand.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, Alston, and never will. She has thrown me over.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Alston took his arm, and walked away with him across the market-square.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Look here, my lad,&rdquo; he said; &ldquo;the woman who deserts a man in
-trouble, or as soon as his back is turned, is worthless. It is a sharp lesson
-to learn, but, as most men have cause to know, the world is full of sharp
-lessons and worthless women. You know that she got your letter?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, she told my friend so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then I tell you that your Eva, or whatever her name is, is more
-worthless than most of them. She has been tried and found wanting. Look,&rdquo;
-he went on, pointing to a shapely Kafir girl passing with a pot of native beer
-upon her head, &ldquo;you had better take that Intombi to wife than such a
-woman as this Eva. She at any rate would stand by you in trouble, and if you
-fell would stop to be killed over your dead body. Come, be a man, and have done
-with her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<div class="fig" style="width:100%;">
-<a name="illus06"></a>
-<br />
-<img src="images/fig06.jpg" width="406" height="600" alt="[Illustration: ]" />
-<p class="caption">&ldquo;A shapely Kafir girl.&rdquo;
-</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ay, by Heaven I will!&rdquo; answered Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s right; and now, look here, the waggons will be at Lydenburg
-in a week. Let us take the post-cart tomorrow and go up. Then we can have a
-month&rsquo;s wilderbeeste and koodoo shooting until it is safe to go into the
-fever country. Once you get among the big game, you won&rsquo;t think any more
-about that woman. Women are all very well in their way, but if it comes to
-choosing between them and big game shooting, give me the big game.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap20"></a>CHAPTER IV.<br/>
-JEREMY&rsquo;S IDEA OF A SHAKING</h2>
-
-<p>
-Two months or so after Ernest&rsquo;s flight there came a letter from him to
-Mr. Cardus in answer to the one sent by his uncle. He thanked his uncle warmly
-for his kindness, and more especially for not joining in the hue and cry
-against him. As regarded money, he hoped to be able to make a living for
-himself, but if he wanted any he would draw. The letter, which was short, ended
-thus:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Thank Doll and Jeremy for their letters. I would answer them, but I am
-too down on my luck to write much; writing stirs up so many painful memories,
-and makes me think of all the dear folks at home more than is good for me. The
-fact is, my dear uncle, what between one thing and another, I never was so
-miserable in my life, and as for loneliness I never knew what it meant before.
-Sometimes I wish that my cousin had hit me instead of my hitting him, and that
-I was dead and buried, clean out of the way. Alston, who was my second in that
-unhappy affair, and with whom I am going up-country shooting, has been most
-kind to me, and has introduced me to a good many people here. They are very
-hospitable&mdash;everybody is hospitable in a colony; but somehow a hundred new
-faces cannot make up for one old one, and I should think old Atterleigh a
-cheerful companion beside the best of them. What is more, I feel myself an
-impostor intruding myself on them under an assumed name. Good-bye, my dear
-uncle. It would be difficult for me to explain how grateful I am for your
-goodness to me. Love to dear Doll and Jeremy.
-</p> <p class="right">
-&ldquo;Ever your affectionate nephew, E. K.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-All the party at Dum&rsquo;s Ness were much touched by this letter, more
-especially Dorothy, who could not bear to think of Ernest all alone out there
-in that strange far-off land. Her tender little heart grew alive with love and
-sorrow as she lay awake at night and thought of him travelling over the great
-African plains. She got all the books that were to be had about South Africa
-and read them, so that she might be the better able to follow his life in her
-thoughts. One day when Florence came to see her she read her part of
-Ernest&rsquo;s letter, and when she had finished was astonished to see a tear
-in her visitor&rsquo;s keen eyes. She liked Florence the better for that tear.
-Could she have seen the conflict that was raging in the fierce heart of the
-woman before her, she would have started from her as though she had been a
-poisonous snake. The letter touched Florence&mdash;touched her to the quick.
-The tale of Ernest&rsquo;s loneliness almost overcame her resolution, for she
-alone knew why he was so utterly lonely, and what it was that crushed him. Had
-Ernest alone been concerned, it is probable that she would then and there have
-thrown up her cruel game; but he was not alone concerned. There was her sister
-who had robbed her of her lover&mdash;her sister whose loveliness was a
-standing affront to her as her sweetness was a standing reproach. She was sorry
-for Ernest, and would have been glad to make him happier, but as that could
-only be done by foregoing her revenge upon her sister, Ernest must continue to
-suffer. And after all why should he not suffer? she argued. Did not she suffer?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When Florence got home she told Eva about the letter from her lover, but she
-said nothing of his evident distress. He was making friends, he expected great
-pleasure from his shooting&mdash;altogether he was getting on well.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva listened, hardened her heart, and went out district visiting with Mr.
-Plowden.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Time went on, and no letters came from Ernest. One month, two months, six
-months passed, and there was no intelligence of him. Dorothy grew very anxious,
-and so did Mr. Cardus, but they did not speak of the matter much, except to
-remark that the reason no doubt was that he was away on his shooting excursion.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy also, in his slow way, grew intensely preoccupied with the fact that
-they never heard from Ernest now, and that life was consequently a blank. He
-sat upon the stool in his uncle&rsquo;s outer office and made pretence to copy
-deeds and drafts, but in reality he occupied his time in assiduously polishing
-his nails and thinking. As for the deeds and drafts, he gave them to his
-grandfather to copy. &ldquo;It kept the old gentleman employed,&rdquo; he would
-explain to Dorothy, &ldquo;and from indulging in bad thoughts about the
-devil.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But it was one night out duck-shooting that his great inspiration came. It was
-a bitter night, a night on which no sane creature except Jeremy would ever have
-dreamed of going to shoot ducks or anything else. The marshes were partially
-frozen, and a fierce east wind was blowing across them; but utterly regardless
-of the cold, there sat Jeremy under the lee of a dike bank, listening for the
-sound of the ducks&rsquo; wings as they passed to their feeding-grounds, and
-occasionally getting a shot at them as they crossed the moon above him. There
-were not many ducks, and the solitude and silence were inductive to
-contemplation. Ernest did not write. Was he dead? Not probable, or they would
-have heard of it. Where was he, then? Impossible to say, impossible to
-discover. Was it impossible? &ldquo;<i>Swish, swish, bang!</i>&rdquo; and down
-came a mallard at his feet. A quick shot, that! Yes, it was impossible; they
-had no means of inquiry here. The inquiry, if any, must be made there, on the
-other side of the water. But who was to make it? Ah! an idea struck him. Why
-should not he, Jeremy, make that inquiry? Why should he not go to South Africa
-and look for Ernest? A flight of duck passed over his head unheeded. What did
-he care for duck? He had solved the problem which had been troubling him all
-these months. He would go to South Africa and look for Ernest. If Mr. Cardus
-would not give him the money, he would work his way out. Anyhow he would go. He
-could bear the suspense no longer.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy rose in the new-found strength of his purpose, and gathering up the
-slain&mdash;there were only three&mdash;whistled to his retriever, and made his
-way back to Dum&rsquo;s Ness.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He found Mr. Cardus and Dorothy by the fire in the sitting-room. Hard-riding
-Atterleigh was there too, in his place in the ingle-nook, a riding-whip in his
-ink-stained hand, with which he was tapping his top-boot. They turned as he
-entered, except his grandfather, who did not hear him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What sport have you had, Jeremy?&rdquo; asked his sister, with a sad
-little smile. Her face had grown very sad of late.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Three ducks,&rdquo; he answered shortly, advancing his powerful
-form out of the shadows into the firelight. &ldquo;I came home just as they
-were beginning to fly.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You found it cold, I suppose?&rdquo; said Mr. Cardus, absently. They had
-been talking of Ernest, and he was still thinking of him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, I did not think of the cold. I came home because I had an
-idea.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Both his hearers looked up surprised. Ideas were not very common to Jeremy, or
-if they were he kept them to himself.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, Jeremy?&rdquo; said Dorothy, inquiringly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, it is this. I cannot stand it about Ernest any longer, and I am
-going to look for him. If you won&rsquo;t give me the money,&rdquo; he went on,
-addressing Mr. Cardus almost fiercely, &ldquo;I will work my way out. It is no
-credit to me,&rdquo; he added; &ldquo;I lead a dog&rsquo;s life while I
-don&rsquo;t know where he is.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy flushed a pale pink with pleasure. Rising, she went up to her great
-strong brother, and standing on tip-toe, managed to kiss him on the chin.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That is like you, Jeremy dear,&rdquo; she said, softly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus looked up too, and after his fashion let his eyes wander round
-Jeremy before he spoke.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You shall have as much money as you like, Jeremy,&rdquo; he said
-presently; &ldquo;and if you bring Ernest back safe, I will leave you twenty
-thousand pounds;&rdquo; and he struck his hand down upon his knee, an evidence
-of excitement which it was unusual for him to display.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t want your twenty thousand pounds&mdash;I want
-Ernest,&rdquo; answered the young man, gruffly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, I know you don&rsquo;t, my lad; I know you don&rsquo;t. But find him
-and keep him safe, and you shall have it. Money is not to be sneezed at, let me
-tell you. I say keep him, for I forgot you cannot bring him back till this
-accursed business has blown over. When will you go?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;By the next mail, of course. They leave every Friday; I will not waste a
-day. To-day is Saturday; I will sail next Friday.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That is right: you shall go at once. I will give you a cheque for
-&pound;500 to-morrow, and mind, Jeremy, you are not to spare money. If he has
-gone to the Zambesi, you must follow him. Never think of the money; I will
-think of that.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy soon made his preparations. They consisted chiefly of rifles. He was to
-leave Dum&rsquo;s Ness early on the Thursday. On the Wednesday afternoon it
-occurred to him that he might as well tell Eva Ceswick that he was going in
-search of Ernest, and ask if she had any message. Jeremy was the only person,
-or thought that he was the only person, in the secret of Ernest&rsquo;s
-affection for Eva. Ernest had asked him to keep it secret, and he had kept it
-as secret as the dead, never breathing a word of it, even to his sister.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was about five o&rsquo;clock on a windy March afternoon when he set out for
-the Cottage. On the edge of the hamlet of Kesterwick, some three hundred yards
-from the cliff, stood two or three little hovels, turning their naked faces to
-the full fury of the sea-blast. He was drawing near to these when he came to a
-stile which gave passage over a sod wall that ran to the edge of the cliff,
-marking the limits of the village common. As he approached the stile the wind
-brought him the sound of voices&mdash;a man&rsquo;s and a
-woman&rsquo;s&mdash;engaged apparently in angry dispute on the farther side of
-the wall. Instead of getting over the stile, he stepped to the right and looked
-over the wall, and saw the new clergyman, Mr. Plowden, standing with his back
-towards him, and, apparently very much against her will, holding Eva Ceswick by
-the hand. Jeremy was too far off to overhear his words, but from his voice it
-was clear that Plowden was talking in an excited, masterful tone. Just then Eva
-turned her head a little, and he did hear what she said, her voice being so
-much clearer:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, Mr. Plowden, no! Let go my hand. Ah! why will you not take an
-answer?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Just at that moment she succeeded in wrenching her imprisoned hand from his
-strong grasp, and without waiting for any more words, set off towards
-Kesterwick almost at a run.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy was a man of slow mind, though when once his mind was made up, it was of
-a singularly determined nature. At first he did not quite take in the full
-significance of the scene, but when he did a great red flush spread over his
-honest face, and the big gray eyes sparkled dangerously. Presently Mr. Plowden
-turned and saw him. Jeremy noticed that the &ldquo;sign of the cross&rdquo; was
-remarkably visible on his forehead, and that his face wore an expression by no
-means pleasant to behold&mdash;anything but Christian, in short.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hullo!&rdquo; he said to Jeremy; &ldquo;what are you doing there?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Before answering, Jeremy put his hand on the top of the sod wall, and vaulting
-over, walked straight up to the clergyman.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I was watching you,&rdquo; he said, looking him straight in the eyes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Indeed!&mdash;an honourable employment; eavesdropping I think it is
-generally called.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Whatever had passed between Mr. Plowden and Eva Ceswick, it had clearly not
-improved the former&rsquo;s temper.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What do you mean?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I mean what I say.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, Mr. Plowden, I may as well tell you what <i>I</i> mean; I am not
-good at talking, but I know that I shall be able to make you understand. I saw
-you just now assaulting Miss Ceswick.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is a lie!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That is not a gentlemanlike word, Mr. Plowden, but as you are not a
-gentleman I will overlook it.&rdquo; Jeremy, after the dangerous fashion of the
-Anglo-Saxon race, always got wonderfully cool as a row thickened. &ldquo;I
-repeat that I saw you holding her, notwithstanding her struggles to get
-away.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And what is that to you, confound you!&rdquo; said Mr. Plowden, shaking
-with fury, and raising a thick stick he held in his hand in a suggestive
-manner.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t lose your temper, and you shall hear. Miss Eva Ceswick is
-engaged to my friend Ernest Kershaw, or something very like it, and, as he is
-not here to look after his own interests, I must look after them for
-him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, yes,&rdquo; answered Mr. Plowden, with a ghastly smile, &ldquo;I
-have heard of that. The murderer, yon mean?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I recommend you, Mr. Plowden, in your own interest, &ldquo;to be a
-little more careful in your terms.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And supposing that there has been something between your&mdash;your
-friend&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Much better term, Mr. Plowden.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And Miss Eva Ceswick, what, I should like to know, is there to prevent
-her having changed her mind?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy laughed aloud, it must be admitted rather insolently, and in a way
-calculated to irritate people of meeker mind than Mr. Plowden.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;To any one, Mr. Plowden, who has the privilege of your acquaintance, and
-who also knows Ernest Kershaw, your question would seem absurd. You see, there
-are some people between whom there can be no comparison. It is not possible
-that, after caring for Ernest, any woman could care for you;&rdquo; and Jeremy
-laughed again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Plowden&rsquo;s thick lips turned quite pale, the veinous cross upon his
-forehead throbbed until Jeremy thought that it would burst, and his eyes shone
-with the concentrated light of hate. His vanity was his weakest point. He
-controlled himself with an effort, however; though if there had been any deadly
-weapon at hand it might have gone hard with Jeremy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Perhaps you will explain the meaning of your interference and your
-insolence, and let me go on?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, with pleasure,&rdquo; answered Jeremy, with refreshing cheerfulness.
-&ldquo;It is just this; if I catch you at any such tricks again, you shall
-suffer for it. One can&rsquo;t thrash a clergyman, and one can&rsquo;t fight
-him, because he won&rsquo;t fight; but look here, one can <i>shake him,</i> for
-that leaves no marks; and if you go on with these games, so sure as my name is
-Jeremy Jones, I will shake your teeth down your throat! Good-night!&rdquo; and
-Jeremy turned to go.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It is not wise to turn one&rsquo;s back upon an infuriated animal, and at that
-moment Mr. Plowden was nothing more. Even as he turned, Jeremy remembered this,
-and gave himself a slew to one side. It was fortunate for him that he did so,
-for at that moment Mr. Plowden&rsquo;s heavy blackthorn stick, directed
-downwards with ail the strength of Mr. Plowden&rsquo;s powerful arm, passed
-within a few inches of his head, out of which, had he not turned, it would have
-probably knocked the brains. As it was, it struck the ground with such force
-that the jar sent it flying out of its owner&rsquo;s hands.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, you would!&rdquo; was Jeremy&rsquo;s reflection as he sprang at his
-assailant.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Now Mr. Plowden was a very powerful man, but he was no match for Jeremy, who in
-after days came to be known as the strongest man in the east of England, and so
-he was destined to find out. Once Jeremy got a grip of him&mdash;for his
-respect for the Church prevented him from trying to knock him down&mdash;he
-seemed to crumple up like a piece of paper in his iron grasp. Jeremy could
-easily have thrown him, but he would not; he had his own ends in view. So he
-just held the Reverend James tight enough to prevent him from doing him any
-serious injury, and let him struggle frantically till he thought he was
-sufficiently exhausted for his purpose. Then Jeremy suddenly gave him a violent
-twist, got behind him, and set to work with a will to fulfil his promise of a
-shaking. O, what a shake that was! First of all he shook him backwards and
-forwards for Ernest&rsquo;s sake, then he alternated the motion and shook him
-from side to side for his own sake, and finally he shook him every possible way
-for the sake of Eva Ceswick.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was a wonderful sight to see the great burly clergyman, his hat off, his
-white tie undone, and his coat-tails waving like streamers, bounding and
-gambolling on the breezy cliffs, his head, legs, and arms jerking in every
-possible direction, like those of a galvanised frog; while behind him, his legs
-slightly apart to get a better grip of the ground, and his teeth firmly
-clinched, Jeremy shook away with the fixity of Fate.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At last, getting exhausted, he stopped, and, holding Mr. Plowden still, gave
-him a drop-kick&mdash;only one. But Jeremy&rsquo;s leg was very strong, and he
-always wore thick boots, and the result was startling. Mr. Plowden rose some
-inches off the ground, and went on his face into a furze-bush.
-</p>
-
-<div class="fig" style="width:100%;">
-<a name="illus07"></a>
-<br />
-<img src="images/fig07.jpg" width="401" height="600" alt="[Illustration: ]" />
-<p class="caption">&ldquo;The result was startling.&rdquo;
-</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He will hardly like to show <i>that</i> honourable wound,&rdquo;
-reflected Jeremy, as he wiped the perspiration from his brow with every sign of
-satisfaction.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then he went and picked his fallen enemy out of the bush, where he had nearly
-fainted, smoothed his clothes, tied the white tie as neatly as he could, and
-put the wide hat on the dishevelled hair. Then he sat him down on the furze to
-recover himself.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Good-night, Mr. Plowden, good-night. Next time you wish to hit a man
-with a big stick, do not wait till his back is turned. Ah, I daresay your head
-aches. I should advise you to go home and have a nice sleep.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And Jeremy departed on his way, filled with a fearful joy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When he reached the Cottage he found everything in a state of confusion. Miss
-Ceswick, it appeared, had been suddenly taken very seriously ill; indeed, it
-was feared that she had got a stroke of apoplexy. He managed, however, to send
-up a message to Eva to say that he wished to speak to her for a minute.
-Presently she came down, crying.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, my poor aunt is so dreadfully ill,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;We think
-that she is dying!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy offered some awkward condolences, and indeed was much distressed. He
-liked old Miss Ceswick.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am going to South Africa to-morrow. Miss Eva,&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She started violently, and blushed up to her hair.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Going to South Africa! What for?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am going to look for Ernest. We are afraid that something must have
-happened to him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, don&rsquo;t say that!&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;Perhaps he
-has&mdash;amusements which prevent his writing.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I may as well tell you that I saw something of what passed between you
-and Mr. Plowden.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Again Eva blushed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mr. Plowden was very rude,&rdquo; she said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So I thought; but I think that he is sorry for it now!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What do you mean?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I mean that I nearly shook his ugly head off for him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, how could you?&rdquo; Eva asked, severely; but there was no severity
-on her face.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Just then Florence&rsquo;s voice was heard calling imperatively.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I must go,&rdquo; said Eva.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Have you any message for Ernest, if I find him?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva hesitated.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I know all about it,&rdquo; said Jeremy, considerately turning his head.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O no, I have no message&mdash;that is&mdash;O, tell him <i>that I love
-him dearly!</i>&rdquo; and she turned and fled upstairs.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap21"></a>CHAPTER V.<br/>
-FLORENCE ON MARRIAGE</h2>
-
-<p>
-Miss Ceswick&rsquo;s seizure turned out to be even worse than was anticipated.
-Once she appeared to regain consciousness, and began to mutter something; then
-she sank back into a torpor, out of which she never woke again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was fortunate that her condition was not such as to require the services of
-the clergyman, because, for some time after the events described in the last
-chapter, Mr. Plowden was not in any condition to give them. Whether it was the
-shaking or the well-planted kick or the shock to his system it is impossible to
-say, but in the upshot he was constrained to keep his bed for several days.
-Indeed, the first service that he took was on the occasion of the opening of
-the ancient Ceswick vault to receive the remains of the recently deceased lady.
-The only territorial possession which remained to the Ceswicks was their vault.
-Indeed, as Florence afterwards remarked to her sister, there was a certain
-irony in the reflection that of all their wide acres there remained only the
-few square feet of soil which for centuries had covered the bones of the race.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When their aunt was dead and buried the two girls went back to the Cottage, and
-were very desolate. They had both of them loved the old lady in their separate
-ways, more especially Florence, both because she possessed the deeper nature of
-the two and because she had lived the longest with her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But the grief of youth at the departure of age is not inconsolable, and after a
-month or so they had conquered the worst of their sorrow. Then it was that the
-question what they were to do came prominently to the fore. Such little
-property as their aunt had possessed was equally divided between them, and the
-Cottage left to their joint use. This gave them enough to live on in their
-quiet way, but it undoubtedly left them in a very lonely and unprotected
-position. Such as it was, however, they, or rather Florence&mdash;for she
-managed all the business&mdash;decided to make the best of it. At Kesterwick,
-at any rate, they were known, and it was, they felt, better to stay there than
-to float away and become waifs and strays on the great sea of English life. So
-they settled to stay.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence had, moreover, her own reasons for staying. She had come to the
-conclusion that it would be desirable that her sister Eva should marry Mr.
-Plowden. Not that she liked Mr. Plowden&mdash;her lady&rsquo;s instincts rose
-up in rebellion against the man&mdash;but if Eva did not marry him, it was
-probable that she would in the long-run marry Ernest, and Ernest, Florence
-swore, she should not marry. To prevent such a marriage was the main purpose of
-her life. Her jealousy and hatred of her sister had become a part of herself;
-the gratification of her revenge was the evil star by which she shaped her
-course. It may seem a terrible thing that so young a woman could give the best
-energies of her life to such a purpose, but it was none the less the truth.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Hers was a wild strange nature, a nature capable of violent love and violent
-hate; the same pendulum could swing with equal ease to each extreme. Eva had
-robbed her of Her lover; she would rob Eva, and put the prize out of her reach
-too. Little she recked of the wickedness of her design; for where in the long
-record of human crime is there a wickedness to surpass the deliberate
-separation, for no good reason, of two people who love each other with all
-their hearts? Surely there is none. She knew this, but she did not hesitate on
-that account. She was not hypocritical. She made no excuses to herself. She
-knew well that on every ground it was best that Eva should marry Ernest, and
-pursue her natural destiny, happy in his love and in her own. But she would
-have none of it. If once they should meet again, the game would pass out of her
-hands; for the weakest woman grows strong of purpose when she has her
-lover&rsquo;s arm to lean on. Florence realised this, and determined that they
-should never set eyes on each other until an impassable barrier, in the shape
-of Mr. Plowden, had been raised between the two. Having thus finally determined
-on the sacrifice, she set about whetting the knife.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-One day, a month or so after Miss Ceswick was buried, Mr. Plowden called at the
-Cottage on some of the endless details of which district-visiting was the
-parent. He had hardly seen Eva since that never-to-be-forgotten day, when he
-had learned what Jeremy&rsquo;s ideas of a shaking were, for the very good
-reason that she had carefully kept out of his way.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-So it came to pass that when, looking out of the window on the afternoon in
-question, she saw the crown of a clerical hat coming along the road, Eva
-promptly gathered up her work and commenced a hasty retreat to her bedroom.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Where are you going to, Eva?&rdquo; asked her sister.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Upstairs&mdash;here he comes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;&lsquo;He&rsquo;! who is &lsquo;he&rsquo;?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mr. Plowden, of course.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And why should you run away because Mr. Plowden is coming?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I do not like Mr. Plowden.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Really, Eva, you are too bad. You know what a friendless position we are
-in just now, and you go and get up a dislike to one of the few men we know. It
-is very selfish of you, and most unreasonable.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At that moment the front-door bell rang, and Eva fled.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Plowden on entering looked round the room with a somewhat disappointed air.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If you are looking for my sister,&rdquo; said Florence, &ldquo;she is
-not very well.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Indeed, I am afraid that her health is not good; she is so often
-indisposed.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence smiled, and they dropped into the district-visiting. Presently,
-however, Florence dropped out again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;By the way, Mr. Plowden, I want to tell you of something I heard the
-other day, and which concerns you. Indeed, I think that it is only right that I
-should do so. I heard that you were seen talking to my sister, not very far
-from the Titheburgh Abbey cottages, and that she&mdash;she ran away from you.
-Then Mr. Jones jumped over the wall, and also began to talk with you. Presently
-he also turned, and, so said my informant, you struck at him with a heavy
-stick, but missed him. Thereupon a tussle ensued, and you got the worst of
-it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He irritated me beyond all endurance,&rdquo; broke in Mr. Plowden,
-excitedly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, then the story is true?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Plowden saw that he had made a fatal mistake; but it was too late to deny
-it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;To a certain extent,&rdquo; he said, sulkily. &ldquo;That young ruffian
-told me that I was not a gentleman.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Really! Of course that was unpleasant. But how glad you must feel that
-you missed him, especially as his back was turned! It would have looked so bad
-for a clergyman to be had up for assault, or worse, wouldn&rsquo;t it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Plowden turned pale, and bit his lip. He began to feel that he was in the
-power of this quiet, dignified young woman, and the feeling was not pleasant.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And it would not look very well if the story got round here, would it? I
-mean even if it was not known that you hit at him with the stick when he was
-not looking, because, you see, it would seem so absurd! The idea of a clergyman
-more than six feet high being shaken like a naughty child! I suppose that Mr.
-Jones is very strong.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Plowden winced beneath her mockery, and rising, seized his hat; but she
-motioned him back to his chair.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t go yet,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;I wanted to tell you
-that you ought to be much obliged to me for thinking of all this for you. I
-thought that it would be painful to you to have the story all over the
-country-side, so I nipped it in the bud.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Plowden groaned in spirit. If these were the results of a story nipped in
-the bud, what would its uninjured bloom be like?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who told you? &ldquo;he asked, brusquely. &ldquo;Jones went away.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes. How glad you must be, by the way, that he is gone! But it was not
-Mr. Jones, it was a person who oversaw the difference of opinion. No, never
-mind who it was; I have found means to silence that person.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Little did Mr. Plowden guess that during the whole course of his love-scene,
-and the subsequent affair with Jeremy, there had leaned gracefully in an angle
-of the sod wall, not twenty yards away, a figure uncommonly resembling that of
-an ancient mariner in an attitude of the most intense and solemn contemplation;
-but so it was.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am grateful to you, Miss Ceswick.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Thank you, Mr. Plowden, it is refreshing to meet with true gratitude, it
-is a scarce flower in this world; but really I don&rsquo;t deserve any. The
-observer who oversaw the painful scene between you and Mr. Jones also oversaw a
-scene preceding it, that, so far as I can gather, seems to have been hardly
-less painful in its way.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Plowden coloured, but said nothing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now you see, Mr. Plowden, I am left in a rather peculiar position as
-regards my sister; she is younger than I am, and has always been accustomed to
-look up to me, so, as you will easily understand, I feel my responsibilities to
-weigh upon me. Consequently, I feel bound to ask you what I am to understand
-from the report of my informant?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Simply this, Miss Ceswick: I proposed to your sister, and she refused
-me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Indeed! you were unfortunate that afternoon.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Miss Ceswick,&rdquo; went on Mr. Plowden, after a pause, &ldquo;if I
-could find means to induce your sister to change her verdict, would my suit
-have your support?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence raised her piercing eyes from her work, and for a second fixed them on
-the clergyman&rsquo;s face.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That depends, Mr. Plowden.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am well off,&rdquo; he went on, eagerly, &ldquo;and I will tell you a
-secret. I have bought the advowson of this living; I happened to hear that it
-was going, and got it at a bargain. I don&rsquo;t think that Halford&rsquo;s
-life is worth five years&rsquo; purchase.&rsquo;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why do you want to marry Eva, Mr. Plowden,&rdquo; asked Florence,
-ignoring this piece of information; &ldquo;you are not in love with her?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;In love! No, Miss Ceswick. I don&rsquo;t think that sensible men fall in
-love; they leave that to boys and women.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O! Then why do you want to marry Eva? It will be best to tell me
-frankly, Mr. Plowden.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He hesitated, and then came to the conclusion that, with a person of
-Florence&rsquo;s penetration, frankness was the best game.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, as you must know, your sister is an extraordinarily beautiful
-woman.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And would therefore form a desirable addition to your
-establishment?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Precisely,&rdquo; said Mr. Plowden. &ldquo;Also,&rdquo; he went on,
-&ldquo;she is a distinguished-looking woman, and quite the lady.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence shuddered at this phrase.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And would therefore give you social status, Mr. Plowden?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes. She is also sprung from an ancient family.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence smiled, and looked at Mr. Plowden with an air that said more plainly
-than any words, &ldquo;Which you clearly are not.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;In short, I am anxious to get married, and I admire your sister Eva more
-than anybody I ever saw.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All of which are very satisfactory reasons, Mr. Plowden; all you have to
-do is to convince my sister of the many advantages you have to offer her,
-and&mdash;to win her affections.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, Miss Ceswick, that is just the point. She told me that her
-affections were already irredeemably engaged, and that she had none to give. If
-only I have the opportunity, however, I shall hope to be able to distance my
-rival.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence looked at him scrutinisingly as she answered:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You do not know Ernest Kershaw, or you would not be so confident.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why am I not as good as this Ernest?&rdquo; he asked; for
-Florence&rsquo;s remark, identical as it was with that of Jeremy, wounded his
-vanity intensely.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, Mr. Plowden, I do not want to be rude, but it is impossible for me
-to conceive a woman&rsquo;s affections being won away from Ernest Kershaw by
-you. You are so very <i>different.</i>&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-If Mr. Plowden wanted a straightforward answer, he had certainly got it. For
-some moments he sat in sulky silence, and then he said:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose, if that is the case, there is nothing to be done.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I never said that. Women are frequently married whose affections are
-very much engaged elsewhere. You know how they win their wives in savage
-countries, Mr. Plowden: they catch them. Marriage by capture is one of the
-oldest institutions in the world.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, the same institution still obtains in England, only we don&rsquo;t
-call it by that name. Do you suppose that no women are hunted down nowadays?
-Ah, very many are; the would-be husband heads the pack, and all the loving
-relatives swell its cry.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You mean that your sister can be hunted down,&rdquo; he said, bluntly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I! I mean nothing, except that the persistent suitor on the spot often
-has a better chance than the lover at a distance, however dear he may
-be.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then Mr. Plowden took his leave. Florence watched him walking down the
-garden-path.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am glad Jeremy shook you soundly,&rdquo; she said, aloud. &ldquo;Poor
-Eva!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap22"></a>CHAPTER VI.<br/>
-MR. PLOWDEN GOES A-WOOING</h2>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Plowden was not a suitor to let the grass grow under his feet. As he once
-took the trouble to explain to Florence, he considered that there was nothing
-like boldness in wooing, and he acted up to his convictions. Possessing no more
-delicacy of feeling than a bull-elephant, and as much consideration for the
-lady as the elephant has for the lily it tramples underfoot, he, figuratively
-speaking, charged at Eva every time he saw her. He laid wait for her round
-corners, and asked her to marry him; he dropped in on her at odd hours, and
-insisted upon her marrying him. It was quite useless for her to say, &ldquo;No,
-no, no,&rdquo; or to appeal to his better feelings or compassion, for he had
-none. He simply would not listen to her; but encouraged thereto by the moral
-support which he received from Florence, he crushed the poor girl with his
-amorous eloquence.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was a merry chase that Florence sat and watched with a dark smile on her
-scornful lip. In vain did the poor white doe dash along at her best speed; the
-great black hound was ever at her flank, and each time she turned came bounding
-at her throat. This idea of a chase, and a hound, and a doe took such a strong
-possession of Florence&rsquo;s saturnine imagination, that she actually made a
-drawing of it, for she was a clever artist, and not without training, throwing,
-by a few strokes of her pencil, a perfect likeness of Mr. Plowden into the
-fierce features of the hound. The doe she drew with Eva&rsquo;s dark eyes, and
-when she had done them there was such agony in their tortured gaze that she
-could not bear to look at them, and tore her picture up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-One day Florence came in, and found her sister weeping.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, Eva, what is it now?&rdquo; she asked, contemptuously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mr. Plowden,&rdquo; sobbed Eva.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Mr. Plowden again! Well, my dear, if you will be so beautiful, and
-encourage men, you must take the consequences.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I never encouraged Mr. Plowden.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense, Eva! you will not get me to believe that. If you did not
-encourage him, he would not go on making love to you. Gentlemen are not so fond
-of being snubbed.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mr. Plowden is not a gentleman,&rdquo; exclaimed Eva.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What makes you say that?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Because a gentleman would not persecute one as he does. He will not take
-No for an answer, and to-day he kissed my hand. I tried to get it away from
-him, but I could not. Oh, I hate him!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I tell you what it is, Eva; I have no patience with you and your
-fancies. Mr. Plowden is a very respectable man; he is a clergyman, and well
-off, altogether quite the sort of man to marry. Ah, Ernest&mdash;I am sick of
-Ernest! If he wanted to marry you, he should not go shooting people, and then
-running off to South Africa. Don&rsquo;t you be so silly as to pin your faith
-to a boy like that. He was all very well to flirt with while he was here; now
-he has made a fool of himself and gone, and there is an end of him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But, Florence, I love Ernest. I think I love him more dearly every day,
-and I detest Mr. Plowden.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Very likely. I don&rsquo;t ask you to love Mr. Plowden; I ask you to
-marry him. What have love and marriage got to do with each other, I should like
-to know? If people were always to marry the people they loved, things would
-soon get into a pretty mess. Look here, Eva, as you know I do not often obtrude
-myself or my own interests, but I think that I have a right to be considered a
-little in this matter. You have now got an opportunity of making a home for
-both of us. There is nothing against Mr. Plowden. Why should you not marry him
-as well as anybody else? Of course, if you choose to sacrifice your own
-ultimate happiness and the comfort of us both to a silly whim, I cannot prevent
-you; you are your own mistress. Only I beg you to disabuse your mind of the
-idea that you could not be happy with Mr. Plowden, because you happen to fancy
-yourself in love with Ernest. Why, in six months you will have forgotten all
-about him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But I don&rsquo;t want to forget about him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I daresay not. That is your abominable egotism again. But whether you
-want to or not, you will. In a year or two, when you have your own interests
-and your children.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Florence, you may talk till midnight if you like; but, once and for all,
-I will not marry Mr. Plowden;&rdquo; and she swept out of the room in her
-stately way.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence laughed softly to herself as she said after her:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh yes, you will, Eva. I shall be pinning a bride&rsquo;s veil on to
-that proud head of yours before you are six months older, my dear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence was quite right; it was only a question of time and cunningly applied
-pressure. Eva yielded at last.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But there is no need for us to follow the hateful story through its various
-stages. If by chance any of the readers of this history are curious about them,
-let them go and study from the life. Such cases exist around them, and, so far
-as the victims are concerned, there is a painful monotony in the development of
-their details and their conclusion.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And so it came to pass that one afternoon in the early summer, Florence, coming
-in from walking, found Mr. Plowden and her sister together in the little
-drawing-room. The latter was very pale, and shrinking with scared eyes and
-trembling limbs up against the mantelpiece, near which she was standing. The
-former, looking big and vulgar, was standing over her and trying to take her
-hand.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Congratulate me, Miss Florence,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;Eva has promised
-to be mine.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Has she?&rdquo; said Florence, coldly. &ldquo;How glad you must be that
-Mr. Jones is out of the way!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was not a kind speech, but the fact was there were few people in the world
-for whom Florence had such a complete contempt, or whom she regarded with such
-intense dislike, as she did Mr. Plowden. The mere presence of the man irritated
-her beyond all bearing. He was an instrument suited to her purposes, so she
-used him; but she could find it in her heart to regret that the instrument was
-not more pleasant to handle.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Plowden turned pale at her taunt, and even in the midst of her fear and
-misery Eva smiled, and thought to herself that it was lucky for her hateful
-lover that somebody else was &ldquo;out of the way.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Poor Eva!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Poor Eva!&rdquo; you think to yourself, my reader. &ldquo;There was
-nothing poor about her. She was weak; she was wicked and contemptible.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-O, pause awhile before you say so! Remember that circumstances were against
-her; remember that the ideas of duty and of gain drilled into her breast and
-the breasts of her ancestresses from generation to generation, and fated as
-often as not to prove more of a bane than a blessing, were against her;
-remember that her sister&rsquo;s ever-present influence overshadowed her, and
-that her suitor&rsquo;s vulgar vitality crushed her to the ground.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yet with it all she was weak,&rdquo; you say. Well, she <i>was</i> weak,
-as weak as you must expect women to be after centuries of custom have bred
-weakness into their very nature. Why are women weak? Because men have made them
-so. Because the law that was framed by men, and the public opinion which it has
-been their privilege to direct, have from age to age drilled into women the
-belief&mdash;in which, it must be admitted, they for the most part readily
-acquiesce&mdash;that they are chattels, to be owned and played with, existing
-for the male pleasure and passion. Because men have systematically stunted
-their mental growth and denied them their natural rights, and that equality
-which is theirs. Weak!&mdash;women have become weak because weakness is the
-passport to the favour of our sex. They have become foolish because education
-has been withheld from them and ability discouraged; they have become frivolous
-because frivolity has been declared to be the natural mission of woman. There
-is no male simpleton who does not like to find a bigger simpleton than he is to
-lord it over. Truly, the triumph of the stronger sex has been complete, for it
-has even succeeded in enlisting its victims in its service. The great
-instruments in the suppression of women, and in their retention at their
-present level, are women themselves. And yet let us be for a minute just. Which
-is the superior of the two&mdash;the woman or the man? In strength we have the
-advantage, but in intellect she is almost our equal, if only we will give her
-fair-play. And in purity, in tenderness, in long-suffering, in fidelity, in all
-the Christian virtues, which is the superior in these things? O man, whoever
-you are, think of your mother and your sisters; think of her who nursed you in
-sickness, of her who stood by you in trouble when all others would have none of
-you, and then answer. Poor Eva! Yes, give her all your pity, but, if you can,
-purge it of your contempt. It requires that a woman should possess a mind of
-unusual robustness to stand out against circumstances such as hemmed her in,
-and this she did not possess. Nature, which had showered physical gifts upon
-her with such a lavish hand, had not given her that most useful of all gifts,
-the power of self-defence. She was made to yield; but this was her only fault,
-an absolutely fatal one. For the rest she was pure as the mountain snow, and
-with a heart of gold. Herself incapable of deceit, it never occurred to her to
-imagine it in others. She never suspected that Florence could have a motive in
-her advocacy of Mr. Plowden&rsquo;s cause. On the contrary, she was possessed
-to the full with that idea of duty and self-sacrifice which in some women
-amounts almost to madness. The notion so cleverly started by Florence, that she
-was bound to take this opportunity of giving her sister a home and the
-permanent protection of a brother-in-law, had taken a firm hold of her mind. As
-for the cruel wrong and injustice which her marriage with Mr. Plowden would
-work to Ernest, strange as it may seem, as is usual in such cases it never
-occurred to her to consider the matter in that light. She knew what her own
-sufferings were and always must be; she thought that she would rather die than
-be false to Ernest; but somehow she never looked at the other side of the
-picture, never considered the matter from Ernest&rsquo;s point of view. After
-the true womanly fashion she was prepared to throw herself under her Juggernaut
-called Duty, and let her inner life, the life of her heart, be crushed out of
-her; but she never thought of the other life which was welded with her own, and
-which must be crushed too. How curious it is that when women talk so much of
-their duties they often think so little of the higher duty which they owe to
-the unlucky man whose love they have won, and whom they cherish in their
-misguided hearts! The only feasible explanation of the mystery&mdash;outside of
-that of innate selfishness&mdash;is, that one of the ideas which has been
-persistently drilled into the female breast is that men have not any real
-feelings. It is vaguely supposed that they will &ldquo;get over it.&rdquo;
-However this may be, when a woman decides to do violence to her natural
-feelings, and because of pressure or profit contracts herself into an unholy
-marriage, the lover whom she deserts is generally the last person to be
-considered. Poor wretch! he will, no doubt, &ldquo;get over it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Fortunately, many do.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap23"></a>CHAPTER VII.<br/>
-OVER THE WATER</h2>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Alston and Ernest carried out their plans as regarded sport. They went up
-to Lydenburg and had a month&rsquo;s wilderbeeste and blesbok shooting within
-three days&rsquo; &ldquo;trek&rdquo; with an ox-waggon from that curious little
-town. The style of life was quite new to Ernest, and he enjoyed it much. They
-owned an ox-waggon and a span of sixteen &ldquo;salted&rdquo; oxen, that is,
-oxen which will not die of lung-sickness, and in this lumbering vehicle they
-travelled about wherever fancy or the presence of buck took them. Mr. Alston
-and his boy Roger slept in the waggon, and Ernest in a little tent which was
-pitched every night alongside, and never did he sleep sounder. There was a
-freshness and freedom about the life which charmed him. It is pleasant after
-the day&rsquo;s shooting or travelling to partake of a hearty meal, of which
-the <i>pièce de résistance</i> generally consists of a stew compounded
-indiscriminately of wilderbeeste beef, bustard, partridges, snipe, rice, and
-compressed vegetables&mdash;a dish, by the way, which is, if properly cooked,
-fit to set before a king. And then comes the pipe, or rather a succession of
-pipes, and the talk over the day&rsquo;s sport, and the effect of that long
-shot, and the hunting-yarn that it &ldquo;reminds me&rdquo; of. And after the
-yarn the well-known square bottle is produced, and the tin pannikins, out of
-which you have been drinking tea, are sent to the spring down in the hollow to
-be washed by the Zulu &ldquo;voorlooper,&rdquo; who objects to going because of
-the &ldquo;spooks&rdquo; (ghosts) which he is credibly informed inhabit that
-hollow; and you indulge in your evening &ldquo;tot,&rdquo; and smoke more
-pipes, and talk or ruminate as the fancy takes you. And then at last up comes
-the splendid African moon like a radiant queen rising from a throne of inky
-cloud, flooding the whole wide veldt with mysterious light, and reveals the
-long lines of game slowly travelling to their feeding-grounds along the ridges
-of the rolling plain.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Well, &ldquo;one more drop,&rdquo; and then to bed, having come to the
-admirable decision&mdash;so easy to make overnight, so hard to adhere to when
-the time comes&mdash;to &ldquo;trek from the yoke&rdquo; at dawn. And then,
-having undressed yourself outside the tent, all except the flannel shirt in
-which you are going to sleep&mdash;for there is no room to do so
-inside&mdash;you stow your clothes and boots away under your mackintosh
-sheet&mdash;for clothes wet through with dew are unpleasant to wear before the
-sun is up&mdash;creep on your hands and knees into your little tenement, and
-wriggle between the blankets.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-For awhile, perhaps, you lie so, your pipe still between your lips, and gazing
-up through the opening of the little tent at two bright particular stars
-shining in the blue depths above, or watching the waving of the tall
-tambouki-grass as the night-wind goes sighing through it. And then, behold! the
-cold far stars draw near, grow warm with life, and change to Eva&rsquo;s
-eyes&mdash;if unluckily you have an Eva&mdash;and the yellow tambouki-grass is
-her waving hair, and the sad whispering of the wind her voice, which speaks and
-tells you that she has come from far across the great seas to tell you that she
-loves you to lull you to your rest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-What was it that frighted her so soon? The rattling of chains and the deep
-lowing of the oxen, rising to be ready for the dawn. It has not come yet; but
-it is not far off. See, the gray light begins to gleam upon the oxen&rsquo;s
-horns, and far away, there in the east, the gray is streaked with primrose.
-Away with dreams, and up to pull the shivering Kafirs from their snug lair
-beneath the waggon, and to give the good nags, which must gallop wilderbeeste
-all to-day, a double handful of mealies before you start.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-<i>Ah neu-yak-trek!</i> the great waggon strains and starts, and presently the
-glorious sun comes up, and you eat a crust of bread as you sit on the
-waggon-box, and wash it down with a mouthful of spirit, and feel that it is a
-splendid thing to get up early.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then, about half past eight, comes the halt for breakfast, and the welcome tub
-in the clear stream that you have been making for, and, after breakfast, saddle
-up the nags, take your bearings by the kopje, and off after that great herd of
-wilderbeeste.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And so, my reader, day adds itself to day, and each day will find you
-healthier, happier, and stronger than the last. No letters, no newspapers, no
-duns, no women, and no babies. Think of the joy of it, effete Caucasian, then
-go buy an ox-waggon and do likewise.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-After a month of this life, Mr. Alston came to the conclusion that there would
-now be no danger in descending into the low country towards Delagoa Bay in
-search of large game. Accordingly, having added to their party another would-be
-Nimrod, a gentleman just arrived from England in search of sport, they started.
-For the first month or so, things went very well with them. They killed a good
-quantity of buffalo, koodoo, eland, and water-buck, also two giraffes; but to
-Ernest&rsquo;s great disappointment did not come across any rhinoceros, and
-only got a shot at one lion, which he missed, though there were plenty round
-them. But soon the luck turned. First their horses died of the terrible scourge
-of ail this part of South Africa, the horse-sickness. They had given large
-prices for them, about seventy pounds each, as &ldquo;salted&rdquo;
-animals&mdash;that is, animals that, having already had the sickness and
-recovered from it, were supposed to be proof against its attacks. But for all
-that they died one after another. This was only the beginning of evils. The day
-after the last horse died, the companion who had joined them at Lydenburg was
-taken ill of the fever. Mr. Jeffries&mdash;for that was his name&mdash;was a
-very reserved English gentleman of good fortune, something over thirty years of
-age. Like most people who came into close relationship with Ernest, he had
-taken a considerable fancy to him, and the two were, comparatively speaking,
-intimate. During the first stages of his fever, Ernest nursed him like a
-brother, and was at length rewarded by seeing him in a fair way to recovery. On
-one unlucky day, however, Jeffries being so much better, Mr. Alston and Ernest
-went out to try and shoot a buck, as they were short of meat, leaving the camp
-in charge of the boy Roger. For a long while they could find no game, but at
-last Ernest came across a fine bull-eland standing rubbing himself against a
-mimosa thorn-tree. A shot from his express, planted well behind the shoulder,
-brought the noble beast down quite dead, and having laden the two Kafirs with
-them with the tongue, liver, and as much of the best meat as they could carry,
-they started back for camp.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Meanwhile one of the sudden and tremendous thunderstorms peculiar to South
-Africa came swiftly up against the wind, heralding its arrival by a blast of
-ice-cold air, and presently they were staggering along in the teeth of a
-fearful tempest. The whole sky was lurid with lightning, the hills echoed with
-the continuous roll of thunder, and the rain came down in sheets. In the thick
-of it all, exhausted, bewildered, and wet to the skin, they reached the camp.
-There a sad sight awaited them. In front of the tent which served as a hospital
-for Jeffries was a large ant-heap, and on this ant-heap, clad in nothing but a
-flannel shirt, sat Jeffries himself. The rain was beating on his bare head and
-emaciated face, and the ice-cold breeze was tossing his dripping hair. One hand
-he kept raising to the sky to let the cold water fall upon it; the other the
-boy Roger held, and by it vainly attempted to drag him back to the tent. But
-Jeffries was a man of large build, and the little lad might as well have tried
-to drag an ox.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Isn&rsquo;t it glorious?&rdquo; shouted the delirious man, as they came
-up. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve got cool at last!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, and you will soon be cold, poor fellow!&rdquo; muttered Mr. Alston,
-as they hurried up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They got him back into the tent, and in half an hour he was beyond all hope. He
-did not rave much, but kept repeating a single word in every possible tone,
-that word was:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-<i>Alice.</i>
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At dawn on the following morning he died with it on his lips. Ernest often
-wondered afterwards who &ldquo;Alice&rdquo; could be.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Next day they dug a deep grave under an ancient thorn-tree, and reverently laid
-him to his rest. On his breast they piled great stones to keep away the
-jackals, filling in the cracks with earth.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then they left him to his sleep. It is a sad task this, burying a comrade in
-the lonely wilderness.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-As they were approaching the waggon again, little Roger sobbing
-bitterly&mdash;for Mr. Jeffries had been very kind to him, and a first
-experience of death is dreadful to the young&mdash;they met the Zulu
-voorlooper, a lad called Jim, who had been out all day watching the cattle as
-they grazed. He saluted Mr. Alston after the Zulu fashion, by lifting the right
-arm and saying the word &ldquo;Inkoos,&rdquo; and then stood still.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, what is it, boy? &ldquo;asked Mr. Alston. &ldquo;Have you lost the
-oxen?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, Inkoos, the oxen are safe at the yoke. It is this. When I was
-sitting on the kopje yonder, watching that the oxen of the Inkoos should not
-stray, an Intombi (young girl) from the kraal under the mountain yonder came to
-me. She is the daughter of a Zulu mother who fell into the hands of a Basutu
-dog, and my half-cousin.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Inkoos, I have met this girl before, I have met her when I have been
-sent to buy &lsquo;maas&rsquo; (buttermilk) at the kraal.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Good!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Inkoos, the girl came to bring heavy news, such as will press upon your
-heart. Secocoeni, chief of the Bapedi, who lives over yonder under the Blue
-Mountains, has declared war against the Boers.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Sikukuni wants rifles for his men, such as the Boers use. He has heard
-of the Inkosis hunting here. To-night he will send an Impi to kill the Inkosis
-and take their guns.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;These are the words of the Intombi?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, Inkoos, these are her very words. She was sitting outside the hut,
-grinding &lsquo;imphi&rsquo; (Kafir corn) for beer, when she heard
-Secocoeni&rsquo;s messenger order her father to call the men together to kill
-us to-night.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hear. At what time of the night was the killing to be?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;At the first break of the dawn, so that they may have light to take the
-waggon away by.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Good! we shall escape them. The moon will be up in an hour, and we can
-trek away.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The lad&rsquo;s face fell.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Alas!&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;it is impossible; there is a spy watching
-the camp now. He is up there among the rocks; I saw him as I brought the oxen
-home. If we move he will report it, and we shall be overtaken in an
-hour.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Alston thought for a moment, and then made up his mind with the rapidity
-that characterises men who spend their lives in dealing with savage races.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mazooku!&rdquo; he called to a Zulu who was sitting smoking by the
-camp-fire, a man whom Ernest had hired as his particular servant. The man rose
-and came to him, and saluted.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He was not a very tall man; but, standing there nude except for the
-&ldquo;moocha&rdquo; round his centre, his proportions, especially those of the
-chest and lower limbs, looked gigantic. He had been a soldier in one of
-Cetywayo&rsquo;s regiments, but having been so indiscreet as to break through
-some of the Zulu marriage laws, had been forced to fly for refuge to Natal,
-where he had become a groom, and picked up a peculiar language, which he called
-English. Even among a people where all the men are fearless he bore a
-reputation for bravery. Leaving him standing awhile, Mr. Alston rapidly
-explained the state of the case to Ernest, and what he proposed to do. Then
-turning, he addressed the Zulu:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mazooku, the Inkoos here, your master, whom you black people have named
-Mazimba, tells me that he thinks you a brave man.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The Zulu&rsquo;s handsome face expanded into a smile that was positively
-alarming in its extent.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He says that you told him that when you were Cetywayo&rsquo;s man in the
-Undi Regiment, you once killed four Basutos, who set upon you together.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mazooku lifted his right arm and saluted, by way of answer, and then glanced
-slightly at the assegai-wounds on his chest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, I tell your master that I do not believe you. It is a lie you
-speak to him; you ran away from Cetywayo because you did not like to fight and
-be killed as the king&rsquo;s ox, as a brave man should.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The Zulu coloured up under his dusky skin, and again glanced at his wounds.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ow-w!&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Bah! there is no need for you to look at those scratches; they were left
-by women&rsquo;s nails. You are nothing but a woman. Silence! who told you to
-speak? If you are not a woman, show it. There is an armed Basutu among those
-rocks. He watches us. Your master cannot eat and sleep in peace when he is
-watched. Take that big stabbing assegai you are so fond of showing, and kill
-him, or die a coward! He must make no sound, remember.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mazooku turned towards Ernest for confirmation of the order. A Zulu always
-likes to take his orders straight from his own chief. Mr. Alston noticed it,
-and added:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am the Inkoosi&rsquo;s mouth, and speak his words.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mazooku saluted again, and turning, went to the waggon to fetch his assegai.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Tread softly, or you will wake him; and he will run from so great a
-man,&rdquo; Mr. Alston called after him sarcastically.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I go among the rocks to seek &lsquo;mouti&rsquo;&rdquo; (medicine), the
-Zulu answered with a smile.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We are in a serious mess, my boy,&rdquo; said Mr. Alston to Ernest,
-&ldquo;and it is a toss-up if we get out of it. I taunted that fellow so that
-there may be no mistake about the spy. He must be killed, and Mazooku would
-rather die himself than not kill him now.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Would it not have been safer to send another man with him?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes; but I was afraid that if the scout saw two men coming towards him
-he would make off, however innocent they might look. Our horses are dead, and
-if that fellow escapes we shall never get out of this place alive. It would be
-folly to expect Basutos to distinguish between Boers and Englishmen when their
-blood is up; and besides, Secocoeni has sent orders that we are to be killed,
-and they would not dare to disobey. Look, there goes Mr. Mazooku with an
-assegai as big as a fire-shovel.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The kopje, or stony hill, where the spy was hid, was about three hundred yards
-from the little hollow in which the camp was formed, and across the stretch of
-bushy plain between the two Mazooku was quietly strolling, his assegai in one
-hand and two long sticks in the other. Presently he vanished in the shadow, for
-the sun was rapidly setting, and, after what seemed a long pause to Ernest, who
-was watching his movements through a pair of field-glasses, reappeared walking
-along the shoulder of the hill right against the sky-line, his eyes fixed upon
-the ground as though he were searching among the crevices of the rocks for the
-medical herbs which Zulus prize.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-All of a sudden Ernest saw the stalwart form straighten itself and spring down
-into a dip, which hid it from sight, with the assegai in its hand raised to the
-level of its head. Then came a pause, lasting perhaps for twenty seconds. On
-the farther side of the dip was a large flat rock, which was straight in a line
-with the fiery ball of the setting sun. Suddenly a tall figure sprang up out of
-the hollow on to this rock, followed by another figure, in whom Ernest
-recognised Mazooku. For a moment the two men, looking from their position like
-people afire, struggled together on the top of the flat stone, and Ernest could
-clearly distinguish the quick flash of their spears as they struck at each
-other; then they vanished together over the edge of the stone.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;By Jove!&rdquo; said Ernest, who was trembling with excitement, &ldquo;I
-wonder how it has ended?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;We shall know presently,&rdquo; answered Mr. Alston, coolly. &ldquo;At
-any rate, the die is cast one way or other, and we may as well make a bolt for
-it. Now, you Zulus, down with those tents and get the oxen inspanned, and look
-quick about it, if you don&rsquo;t want a Basutu assegai to send you to join
-the spirit of Chaka.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The voorlooper Jim had by this time communicated his alarming intelligence to
-the driver and other Kafirs, and Mr. Alston&rsquo;s exhortation to look sharp
-was quite unnecessary. Ernest never saw camp struck or oxen inspanned with such
-rapidity before. But before the first tent was fairly down, they were all
-enormously relieved to see Mazooku coming trotting cheerfully across the plain,
-droning a little Zulu song as he ran. His appearance, however, was by no means
-cheerful, for he was perfectly drenched with blood, some of it flowing from a
-wound in his left shoulder, and the rest evidently, till recently, the personal
-property of somebody else. Arrived in front of where Mr. Alston and Ernest were
-standing, he raised his broad assegai, which was still dripping blood, and
-saluted.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hear,&rdquo; said Mr. Alston.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I have done the Inkoosi Mazimba&rsquo;s bidding. There were two of them;
-the first I killed easily in the hollow, but the other, a very big man, fought
-well for a Basutu. They are dead, and I threw them into a hole, that their
-brothers might not find them easily.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Good! go wash yourself and get your master&rsquo;s things into the
-waggon. Stop! let me sew up that cut. How came you to be so awkward as to get
-touched by a Basutu?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Inkoos, he was very quick with his spear, and he fought like a
-cat.&rdquo; Mr. Alston did not reply, but, taking a stout needle and some silk
-from a little housewife he carried in his pocket, he quickly stitched up the
-assegai-gash, which, fortunately, was not a deep one. Mazooku stood without
-flinching till the job was finished, and then retired to wash himself at the
-spring.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The short twilight rapidly faded into darkness, or rather into what would have
-been darkness, had it not been for the half-grown moon, which was to serve to
-light them on their path. Then, a large fire having been lit on the site of the
-camp to make it appear as though it were still pitched there, the order was
-given to start. The oxen, obedient to the voice of the driver, strained at the
-trek-tow, the waggon creaked and jolted, and they began their long flight for
-life. The order of march was as follows: Two hundred yards ahead of the waggon
-walked a Kafir, with strict orders to keep his eyes very wide open indeed, and
-report in the best way possible, under the circumstances, if he detected any
-signs of an ambush. At the head of the long line of cattle, leading the two
-front oxen by a &ldquo;reim,&rdquo; or strip of buffalo-hide, was the Zulu boy
-Jim, to whose timely discovery they owed their lives, and by the side of the
-waggon the driver, a Cape Hottentot, plodded along in fear and trembling. On
-the waggon-box itself, each with a Winchester repeating rifle on his knees, and
-keeping a sharp lookout into the shadows, sat Mr. Alston and Ernest. In the
-hinder part of the waggon, also armed with a rifle and keeping a keen look-out,
-sat Mazooku. The other servants marched alongside, and the boy Roger was asleep
-inside, on the &ldquo;cartle,&rdquo; or hide bed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And so they travelled on hour after hour. Now they bumped down terrific hills
-strewn with boulders, which would have smashed anything less solid than an
-African ox-waggon to splinters; now they crept along a dark valley, that looked
-spiritual and solemn in the moonlight, expecting to see Secocoeni&rsquo;s Impi
-emerge from every clump of bush; and now again they waded through
-mountain-streams. At last, about midnight, they reached a plain dividing two
-stretches of mountainous country, and here they halted for a while to give the
-oxen, which were fortunately in good condition and fat after their long rest, a
-short breathing-time. Then on again through the long, quiet night, on, still
-on, till the dawn found them the other side of the wide plain at the foot of
-the mountain-range.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Here they rested for two hours, and let the oxen fill themselves with the lush
-grass. They had travelled thirty miles since the yokes were put upon their
-necks&mdash;not far according to our way of journeying, but very far for
-cumbersome oxen over an almost impassable country. As soon as the sun was well
-up they inspanned again, and hurried forwards, bethinking them of the Basutu
-horde who would now be pressing on their spoor; on with brief halts through all
-that day and the greater part of the following night, till the cattle began to
-fall down in the yokes&mdash;till at last they crossed the boundary and were in
-Transvaal territory.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When dawn broke, Mr. Alston took the glasses and examined the track over which
-they had fled. There was nothing to be seen except a great herd of hartebeest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think that we are safe now,&rdquo; he said, at last, &ldquo;and thank
-God for it. Do you know what those Basutu devils would have done if they had
-caught us?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They would have skinned us, and made our hearts and livers into
-&lsquo;mouti&rsquo; (medicine), and eaten them to give them the courage of the
-white man.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;By Jove!&rdquo; said Ernest.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap24"></a>CHAPTER VIII.<br/>
-A HOMERIC COMBAT</h2>
-
-<p>
-When Mr. Alston and Ernest found themselves safe upon Transvaal soil, they
-determined to give up the idea of following any more big game for the present,
-and to content themselves with the comparatively humble wilderbeeste, blesbok,
-springbok, and other small antelopes. The plan they pursued was to slowly
-journey from one point of the country to another, stopping wherever they found
-the buck particularly plentiful. In this way they got excellent sport, and
-spent several months very agreeably, with the further advantage that Ernest
-obtained considerable knowledge of the country and its inhabitants, the Boers.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was a wild rough life that they led, but by no means a lowering one. The
-continual contact with Nature in all her moods, and in her wildest shapes, to a
-man of impressionable mind like Ernest, was an education in itself. His mind
-absorbed something of the greatness round him, and seemed to grow wider and
-deeper during those months of lonely travel. The long struggle, too, with the
-hundred difficulties which arise in waggon-journeys, and the quickness of
-decision necessary to avoid danger or discomfort in such a mode of life, were
-of great service to him in shaping his character. Nor was he left without
-suitable society, for in his companion he found a friend for whose talents and
-intelligence he had the highest respect.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Alston was a very quiet individual; he never said a thing unless he had
-first considered it in all its bearings; but when he did say it, it was always
-well worth listening to. He was a man who had spent his life in the closest
-observation of human nature in the rough. Now you, my reader, may think that
-there is a considerable difference between human nature &ldquo;in the
-rough,&rdquo; as exemplified by a Zulu warrior stalking out of his kraal in a
-kaross and brandishing an assegai, and yourself, say, strolling up the steps of
-your club in a frock coat, and twirling one of Brigg&rsquo;s umbrellas. But, as
-a matter of fact, the difference is of a most superficial character, bearing
-the same proportion to the common substance that the furniture polish does to
-the table. Scratch the polish, and there you have best raw Zulu human nature.
-Indeed, to anybody who has taken the trouble to study the question, it is
-simply absurd to observe how powerless high civilisation has been to do
-anything more than veneer that raw material, which remains identical in each
-case.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-To return. The result of Mr. Alston&rsquo;s observations had been to make him
-an extremely shrewd companion, and an excellent judge of men and their affairs.
-There were few subjects which he had not quietly considered during all the
-years that he had been trading or shooting or serving the Government in one
-capacity or another; and Ernest was astonished to find, although he had only
-spent some four months of his life in England, how intimate was his knowledge
-of the state of political parties, of the great social questions of the day,
-and even of matters connected with literature and art. It is not too much to
-say that it was from Mr. Alston that Ernest imbibed principles on all these
-subjects which he never deserted in after-life, and which subsequent experience
-proved to be for the most part sound.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And thus, between shooting and philosophical discussion, the time passed on
-pleasantly enough, till at length they drew near to Pretoria, the capital of
-the Transvaal, where they had decided to go and rest the oxen for a month or
-two before making arrangements for a real big-game excursion up towards Central
-Africa. They struck into the Pretoria road just above a town called Heidelberg,
-about sixty miles from the former place, and proceeded by easy stages towards
-their destination.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-As they went on, they generally found it convenient to out-span at spots which
-it was evident had been used for the same purpose by some waggon that was
-travelling one stage ahead of them. So frequently did this happen, that during
-their first five or six out-spans they were able on no less than three
-occasions to avail themselves of the dying fires of their predecessors&rsquo;
-camp. This was a matter of lively interest to Ernest, who always did cook; and
-a very good cook he became. One of the great bothers of South African
-travelling is the fire question. Indeed, how to make sufficient fire to boil a
-kettle when you have no fuel to make it of is the great question of South
-African travel. A ready-made fire is, therefore, peculiarly acceptable; and for
-the last half-hour of the trek Ernest was always in a great state of
-expectation as to whether the waggon before them had or had not been
-considerate enough to leave theirs burning.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Thus it came to pass that one morning, when they were about fifteen miles from
-Pretoria, which they expected to reach the same evening, and the waggon was
-slowly drawing up to the outspan-place, Ernest, accompanied by Mazooku, who
-lounged about after him like a black shadow, ran forward to see if their
-predecessors had or had not been considerate. In this instance energy was
-rewarded, for the fire was still burning.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hoorah!&rdquo; said Ernest. &ldquo;Get the sticks, Mazooku, and go and
-fill the kettle. By Jove! there&rsquo;s a knife.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There was a knife, a many-bladed knife, with a buck horn handle and a corkscrew
-in it, left by the dying fire. Ernest took it up and looked at it; somehow it
-seemed familiar to him. He turned it round, examined the silver plate upon it,
-and suddenly started.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is the matter, Ernest?&rdquo; said Mr. Alston, who had joined them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Look there,&rdquo; he answered; pointing to two initials cut on the
-knife.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, I see some fellow has left his knife; so much the better for the
-finder.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You have heard me speak of my friend Jeremy. That is his knife; I gave
-it to him years ago. Look&mdash;J. J.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense! it is some knife like it; I have seen hundreds of that
-make.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I believe that it is the same. He must be here.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Alston shrugged his shoulders.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not probable,&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest made no answer. He stood staring at the knife.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Have you written to your people lately, Ernest?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No; the last letter I wrote was down there in Secocoeni&rsquo;s country;
-you remember I sent it by the Basutu who was going to Lydenburg, just before
-Jeffries died.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Like enough he never got to Lydenburg. He would not have dared to go to
-Lydenburg after the war broke out. You should write.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I mean to, from Pretoria; but somehow I have had no heart for
-writing.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Nothing more was said about the matter, and Ernest put the knife into his
-pocket.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-That evening they trekked down through the &ldquo;Poort&rdquo; that commands
-the most charming of the South African towns, and, on the plain below,
-Pretoria, bathed in the bright glow of the evening sunshine, smiled its welcome
-to them. Mr. Alston, who knew the town, determined to trek straight through it
-and outspan the waggon on the farther side, where he thought there would be
-better grazing for the cattle. Accordingly, they rumbled on past the gaol, past
-the pleasant white building which afterwards became Government House, and which
-was at that moment occupied by the English Special Commissioner and his staff,
-about whose doings all sorts of rumours had reached them during their journey,
-and on to the market-square. This area was at the moment crowded with Boer
-waggons, whose owners had trekked in to celebrate their &ldquo;nachtmaal&rdquo;
-(communion), of which it is their habit, in company with their wives and
-children, to partake four times a year. The &ldquo;Volksraad,&rdquo; or local
-Parliament, was also in special session to consider the proposals made to it on
-behalf of the Imperial Government, so that the little town was positively
-choked with visitors. The road down which they were passing ran past the
-buildings used as Government offices, and between this and the Dutch church a
-considerable crowd was gathered, which, to judge from the shouts and volleys of
-oaths&mdash;Dutch and English&mdash;that proceeded from it, was working itself
-up into a state of excitement.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hold on,&rdquo; shouted Ernest to the voorlooper; and then, turning to
-Mr. Alston, &ldquo;There is a jolly row going on there; let us go and see what
-it is.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right, my boy; where the fighting is, there will the Englishmen be
-gathered together;&rdquo; and they climbed down off the waggon and made for the
-crowd.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The row was this. Among the Boers assembled for the &ldquo;nachtmaal&rdquo;
-festival was a well-known giant of the name of Van Zyl. This man&rsquo;s
-strength was a matter of public notoriety all over the country, and many were
-the feats which were told of him. Among others it was said that he could bear
-the weight of the after-part of an African buck waggon on his shoulders, with a
-load of three thousand pounds of corn upon it, while the wheels were greased.
-He stood about six feet seven high, weighed eighteen stone and a half, and had
-a double row of teeth. On the evening in question this remarkable specimen of
-humanity was sitting on his waggon-box with a pipe, of which the size was
-proportionate to his own, clinched firmly between his double row of teeth.
-About ten paces from him stood a young Englishman, also of large size, though
-he looked quite small beside the giant, who was contemplating the phenomenon on
-the waggon-box, and wondering how many inches he measured round the chest. That
-young Englishman had just got off a newly arrived waggon, and his name was
-Jeremy Jones.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-To these advances a cringing Hottentot boy of small size. The Hottentot is
-evidently the servant or slave of the giant, and a man standing by Jeremy, who
-understands Dutch, informs him that he is telling his master that an ox has
-strayed. Slowly the giant rouses himself, and, descending from the waggon-box,
-seizes the trembling Tottie with one hand, and, taking a reim of buftalo-hide,
-lashes him to the waggon-wheel.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now,&rdquo; remarked Jeremy&rsquo;s acquaintance, &ldquo;you will see
-how a Boer deals with a nigger.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You don&rsquo;t mean to say that great brute is going to beat that poor
-little devil?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Just then a small fat woman put her head out of a tent pitched by the waggon,
-and inquired what the matter was. She was the giant&rsquo;s wife. On being
-informed of the straying of the ox, her wrath knew no bounds.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Slaat em! slaat de swartsel!&rdquo; (Thrash him! thrash the black
-creature!) she cried out in a shrill voice, running to the waggon, and with her
-own fair hands drawing out a huge &ldquo;sjambock,&rdquo; that is, a strip of
-prepared hippopotamus-hide, used to drive the after-oxen with, and giving it to
-her spouse. &ldquo;Cut the liver out of the black devil!&rdquo; she went on,
-&ldquo;but mind you don&rsquo;t hit his head, or he won&rsquo;t be able to go
-to work afterwards. Never mind about making the blood come! I have got lots of
-salt to rub in.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Her harangue, and the sight of the Hottentot tied to the wheel, had by this
-time attracted quite a crowd of Boers and Englishmen who were idling about the
-market-square.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Softly, Vrouw, softly; I will thrash enough to satisfy even you, and we
-all know that must be very hard where a black creature is in question.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A roar of laughter from the Dutch people round greeted this sally of wit, and
-the giant, taking the sjambock with a good-humoured smile&mdash;for, like most
-giants, he was easy-tempered by nature&mdash;lifted it, whirled his great arm,
-thick as the leg of an average man, round his head, and brought the whip down
-on the back of the miserable Hottentot. The poor wretch yelled with pain, and
-no wonder, for the greasy old shirt he wore was divided clean in two, together
-with the skin beneath it, and the blood was pouring from the gash.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Allamachter! dat is een lecker slaat&rdquo; (Almighty! that was a nice
-one), said the old woman; at which the crowd laughed again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But there was one man who did not laugh, and that man was Jeremy. On the
-contrary, his clear eyes flashed and his brown cheek burned with indignation.
-Nor did he stop at that. Stepping forward, he placed himself between the giant
-and the howling Hottentot, and said to the former, in the most nervous English:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are a damned coward!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The Boer stared at him and smiled, and then, turning, asked what the
-&ldquo;English fellow&rdquo; was saying. Somebody translated Jeremy&rsquo;s
-remark, whereupon the Boer, who was not a bad-natured fellow, smiled again, and
-remarked that Jeremy must be madder than the majority of &ldquo;accursed
-Englishmen.&rdquo; Then he turned to continue thrashing the Hottentot, but, lo!
-the mad Englishman was still there. This put the Dutchman out.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Footsack, carl; ik is Van Zyl!&rdquo; (Get out, fellow; I am Van Zyl!)
-This was interpreted to Jeremy by the by-standers.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right; and tell him that I am Jones, a name he may have heard
-before,&rdquo; was the reply.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What does this brain-sick fellow want?&rdquo; shouted the giant.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy explained that he wanted him to stop his brutality. &ldquo;And what will
-the little man do if I refuse?&rdquo; &ldquo;I shall try to make you,&rdquo;
-was the answer. This remark was received with a shout of laughter from the
-crowd which had now collected, in which the giant joined very heartily when it
-was interpreted to him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Giving Jeremy a shove to one side, he again lifted the great sjambock, with the
-purpose of bringing it down on the Hottentot. Another second, and Jeremy had
-snatched the whip from his hand, and sent it flying fifty yards away. Then,
-realising that his antagonist was really in earnest, the great Dutchman
-solemnly set himself to crush him. Doubling a fist which was the size of a
-Welsh leg of mutton, he struck with all his strength straight at the
-Englishman&rsquo;s head. Had the blow caught Jeremy, it would in all
-probability have killed him; but he was a practised boxer, and, without moving
-his body, he swung his head to one side. The Boer&rsquo;s fist passed him
-harmlessly, and, striking the panel of the waggon, went clean through it. Next
-instant several of the giant&rsquo;s double row of teeth were rolling loose in
-his mouth. Jeremy had returned the stroke by a right-hander, into which he put
-all his power, and which would have knocked any other man backwards.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A great shout from the assembled Englishmen followed this blow, and a
-counter-shout from the crowd of Dutchmen, who pointed triumphantly to the hole
-in the stout yellow-wood panel made by their champion&rsquo;s fist, and asked
-who the madman was who dared to stand against him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The Boer turned and spat out some of his superfluous teeth, and at the same
-instant a young Englishman came and caught hold of Jeremy by the arm.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;For Heaven&rsquo;s sake, my dear fellow, be careful! That man will kill
-you; he is the strongest man in the Transvaal. You are a fellow to be proud of,
-though!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He may try,&rdquo; said Jeremy laconically, stripping off his coat and
-waistcoat. &ldquo;Will you hold these for me?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hold them?&rdquo; answered the young fellow, who was a good sort;
-&ldquo;ay, that I will, and I would give half I have to see you lick him. Dodge
-him; don&rsquo;t let him strike you, or he will kill you. I saw him stun an ox
-once with a blow of his fist.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy smiled.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Stop,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;Ask that coward, if I best him, if he will
-let off that miserable beggar?&rdquo; and he pointed to the trembling
-Hottentot.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The question was put, and the great man answered, &ldquo;Yah, yah! I will make
-you a present of him!&rdquo; ironically, and then expressed his intention of
-knocking Jeremy into small pieces in the course of the next two minutes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then they faced one another. The giant was a trifle over six feet seven high;
-Jeremy was a trifle under six feet two and a half, and looked short beside him.
-But one or two critical observers, looking at the latter now that he was
-stripped for the encounter, shrewdly guessed that the Dutchman would have his
-work cut out. Jeremy did not, it is true, scale more than fourteen stone six,
-but his proportions were perfect. The great deep chest, the brawny
-arms&mdash;not very large, but a mass of muscle&mdash;the short strong neck,
-the quick eye, and massive leg, all bespoke the strength of a young Hercules.
-It was evident, too, that though he was so young, and not yet come to his full
-power, he was in the most perfect training. The Boer, on the other hand, was
-enormous, but his flesh was somewhat soft. Still, knowing his feats, the
-Englishmen present sighed for their champion, feeling that he had no chance.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-For a moment they stood facing each other; then Jeremy made a feint, and,
-getting in, planted a heavy blow with his left hand on his adversary&rsquo;s
-chest. But he was to pay for it, for the next second the Dutchman got in his
-right hand, and Jeremy was lifted clean off his feet, and sent flying backwards
-among the crowd.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The Boers cheered, the giant smiled, and the Englishmen looked sad. They knew
-how it would be.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But Jeremy picked himself up little the worse. The stroke had struck the
-muscles of his chest, and had not hurt him greatly. As he advanced, the
-gradually increasing crowd of Englishmen cheered him warmly, and he swore in
-his heart that he would justify those cheers, or die for it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was at this juncture that Ernest and Mr. Alston came up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Good heavens!&rdquo; exclaimed the former; &ldquo;it is Jeremy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Alston took in the situation at a glance.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t let him see you; you will put him off,&rdquo; he said.
-&ldquo;Get behind me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest obeyed, overwhelmed. Mr. Alston shook his head. He recognised that
-Jeremy had a poor chance, but he did not say so to Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Meanwhile Jeremy came up and faced the Dutchman. Encouraged by his late
-success, presently his adversary struck a tremendous blow at him. Jeremy
-dodged, and next instant succeeded in landing such a fearful right and left
-full on the giant&rsquo;s face that the latter went reeling backwards.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A yell of frantic excitement arose from the English portion of the crowd. This
-was indeed a David.
-</p>
-
-<div class="fig" style="width:100%;">
-<a name="illus08"></a>
-<br />
-<img src="images/fig08.jpg" width="408" height="600" alt="[Illustration: ]" />
-<p class="caption">&ldquo;This was indeed a David.&rdquo;
-</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>
-The Dutchman soon recovered, however, and, rendered more cautious, in his turn,
-kept out of Jeremy&rsquo;s reach, trying to strike him down from a distance.
-For a round or two no important blow was struck, till at last a brilliant idea
-took possession of the young fellow who had charge of Jeremy&rsquo;s coat.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hit him about the body,&rdquo; he whispered; &ldquo;he&rsquo;s
-soft.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy took the advice, and next round succeeded in getting in two or three
-blows straight from the shoulder, every one of which bruised the Boer&rsquo;s
-huge body sadly, and made him rather short of wind.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Next round he repeated the same tactics, receiving himself a stroke on the
-shoulder from Van Zyl&rsquo;s right hand that for a moment rendered his left
-arm helpless. Before another second was over, however, Jeremy had his revenge,
-and the blood was pouring from his adversary&rsquo;s lips.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And now the popular excitement on both sides grew intense, for to the interest
-attaching to the encounter was added that of national feeling, which was then
-at a high state of tension. Englishmen, Dutchmen, and a mob of Kafirs yelled
-and shouted, and each of the former two felt that the honour of his people was
-on the issue. And yet it was an unequal fight.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I believe that your friend will be a match for Van Zyl,&rdquo; said Mr.
-Alston, coolly, but the flash of his eye belied his coolness; &ldquo;and I tell
-you what, he&rsquo;s a devilish fine fellow, too.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At that moment, however, an untoward thing happened. The giant struck out his
-strongest, and Jeremy could not succeed in entirely warding off the blow,
-though he broke its force. Crashing through his guard, it struck him on the
-forehead, and for a moment he dropped senseless. His second rushed up and
-dashed some water over him, and in another instant he was on his legs again;
-but for the rest of that round he contented himself with dodging his
-adversary&rsquo;s attack, at which the Dutchmen cheered, thinking that his iron
-strength was broken.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But presently, when for the sixth time Jeremy came up with the same quiet look
-of determination in his eyes, and, except that the gaping of the nostrils and
-the twitching of the lip showed a certain measure of distress, looking but
-little the worse, they turned with anxiety to examine the condition of the
-giant. It was not very promising. He was perspiring profusely, and his enormous
-chest rose and fell in jerks. Wherever Jeremy&rsquo;s strokes had fallen, also,
-a great blue bruise had risen on his flesh. It was evident that his condition
-was the worse of the two, but still the Boers had little doubt of the issue. It
-could not be that the man could be worsted by an English lad, who, for a bet,
-with one hand had once quelled the struggles of a wild ox, holding it for the
-space of five minutes by the horn. So they called on him to stop playing with
-the English boy, and crush him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Thus encouraged, the giant came on, striking out with fearful force, but
-wildly, for he could not box. For thirty seconds or more Jeremy contented
-himself with avoiding the blows; then, seeing an opportunity, he planted a
-heavy one on his adversary&rsquo;s chest. This staggered Van Zyl and threw him
-off his guard, and, taking the offensive, Jeremy dodged in right under the huge
-fists that beat the air above him, and hit upwards with all his power. Thud,
-thud! The sound of the blows could be heard fifty yards off. Nor were they
-without their effect. The giant staggered, threw up his arms, and, amidst
-fearful shouts and groans, fell like an ox struck with a pole-axe. But it was
-not over yet. In another moment he was on his legs again, and, spitting out
-blood and teeth, whirling his hands like the sails of a windmill, reeled
-straight at Jeremy, a fearful and alarming spectacle. As he came, again Jeremy
-hit him in the face, but it did not stop him, and in another second the huge
-arms had closed round him and held him like a vice.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not fair! no holding!&rdquo; shouted the Englishmen; but the Boer held
-on. Indeed, he did more. Putting all his vast strength into the effort, he
-strained and tugged, meaning to lift Jeremy up and dash him on the ground. But
-lo! amid frantic shouts from the crowd, Jeremy stood firm, moving not an inch,
-whereupon the Boers called out, saying that he was not a mortal, but a man
-possessed with a devil! Again the Dutchman gripped him, and this time succeeded
-in lifting him a few inches from the ground.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;By George, he will throw him next time!&rdquo; said Mr. Alston to
-Ernest, who was shaking like a leaf with the excitement; &ldquo;look!&mdash;he
-is turning white; the grip is choking him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And, indeed, Jeremy was in evil case; his senses were fast being crushed out of
-him in that fearful embrace, and he vas thinking with bitter sorrow that he
-must fail after all, for an Englishman does not like to be beaten even when he
-has fought his best. Just then it was, when things were beginning to swim
-around him, that a voice he loved, and which he had been listening for these
-many months, rang in his ears; whether it was fancy or whether he really heard
-it he knew not.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Remember &lsquo;Marsh Joe,&rsquo; Jeremy, and <i>lift him.</i>
-Don&rsquo;t be beat. For God&rsquo;s sake, lift him!&rdquo; said the voice.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Now there was a trick, which I will not tell you, but which a famous Eastern
-Counties&rsquo; wrestler, known as Marsh Joe, had taught to Jeremy. So well had
-he taught him, indeed, that at the age of seventeen Jeremy had hoisted his
-teacher with his own trick.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Just at the moment that Jeremy heard the voice, the giant shifted his hold a
-little, preparatory to making a fresh effort, and thus enabled his antagonist
-to fill his lungs with air. Ernest saw the broad white chest heave with relief,
-for by this time most of the upper clothing of the combatants had been wrenched
-away, and the darkening eye grow bright again, and he knew that Jeremy had
-heard him, and that he would conquer or die where he was.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And then&mdash;lo, and behold! just as the Boer, feeling that at last he was
-master of the situation, leisurely enough prepared himself for the final
-struggle, suddenly the Englishman advanced his right leg a few inches, and with
-the rapidity of lightning entirely shifted his grip. Then he gathered himself
-for the effort. What secret reserve of strength he drew on, who can say? But
-Ernest&rsquo;s voice had excited it, and it came at his call: and he did a
-thing that few living men could have done, and the fame of which will go down
-in South Africa from generation to generation. For the Englishman&rsquo;s lithe
-arms had found their hold; they tightened and gripped till they sunk in almost
-level with the flesh of his mighty foe. Then slowly Jeremy began to gather
-purchase, swaying backwards and forwards, and the Dutchman swayed with him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Make an end of him! make an end of him!&rdquo; shouted the Boers. But
-behold! their champion&rsquo;s eyes are starting from his blackened face; his
-head sinks lower and lower, his buttocks rise: he cannot stir.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-To and fro sways Jeremy, and now the giant&rsquo;s feet are lifted from the
-ground. And then one slow and mighty effort&mdash;oh, gallant Jeremy!&mdash;up,
-still up above the gasping of the wonder-stricken crowd, up to his shoulders,
-Heaven, over it!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Crash!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Van Zyl fell, to be carried away by six strong men a cripple for life.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap25"></a>CHAPTER IX.<br/>
-ERNEST&rsquo;S LOVE-LETTER</h2>
-
-<p>
-Cheer after cheer arose from the Englishmen around, and angry curses from the
-Dutchmen, as Jeremy turned to look at the senseless carcass of the giant. But,
-even as he turned, exhausted Nature gave out, and he fell fainting into
-Ernest&rsquo;s arms.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then did selected individuals of his fellow-countrymen come forward and bear
-him reverently to a restaurant called the &ldquo;European,&rdquo; where the
-proprietor&mdash;himself an old Eton fellow&mdash;met him, and washed and
-clothed and restored him, and vowed with tears in his eyes that he, Jeremy,
-should live at his expense for as long as he liked&mdash;ay, even if he chose
-to drink nothing meaner than champagne all day long; for thus it is that
-Englishmen greet one who ministers to that deepest rooted of all their
-feelings&mdash;national pride. And then, when at length he had been brought to,
-and refreshed with a tumblerful of dry Monopole, and wonderingly shaken Ernest
-by the hand, the enthusiasm of the crowd outside burst its bounds, and they
-poured into the restaurant, and, seizing Jeremy and the chair whereon he sat,
-they bore him in triumph round the market-square to the tune of &ldquo;God save
-the Queen.&rdquo; This was a proceeding that would have ended in provoking a
-riot had not an aide-de-camp from his Excellency the Special Commissioner, who
-sent a message begging that they would desist, succeeded in persuading them to
-return to the restaurant. And here they all dined, and forced Jeremy to drink a
-great deal more dry Monopole than was good for him, with the result that for
-the first and last time in his life he was persuaded into making an
-after-dinner speech. As far as it was reported it ran something like this:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dear friends&rdquo; (cheers) &ldquo;and Englishmen&rdquo; (renewed
-cheers)&mdash;pause&mdash;&rdquo; all making great fuss about nothing&rdquo;
-(cheers, and shouts of &ldquo;No, no!&rdquo;). &ldquo;Fight the Dutchman again
-to-morrow&mdash;very big, but soft as putty&mdash;anybody fight him&rdquo;
-(frantic cheering). &ldquo;Glad I wasn&rsquo;t thrashed, as you all seem so
-pleased. Don&rsquo;t know why you are pleased; &rsquo;spose you didn&rsquo;t
-like the Dutchman. &rsquo;Fraid he hurt himself over my shoulder. Wonder what
-he did it for? Sit down now. Dear friends, dear old Ernest&mdash;been looking
-for you for long while;&rdquo; and he turned his glassy eye on to Ernest, who
-cheered frantically, under the impression that Jeremy had just said something
-very much to the point. &ldquo;Sit down now&rdquo; (&ldquo;No, no; go
-on&rdquo;). &ldquo;Can&rsquo;t go on&mdash;&rdquo; quite pumped&mdash;very
-thirsty, too&rdquo; (&ldquo;Give him some more champagne; open a fresh
-case&rdquo;). &ldquo;Wish Eva and Doll were here, don&rsquo;t you?&rdquo; (loud
-cheers). &ldquo;Gemman&rdquo; (cheers)&mdash;&ldquo;no, not
-gemman&mdash;friends&rdquo; (louder cheers)&mdash;&ldquo;no, not
-gemman&mdash;friends&mdash;English brothers&rdquo; (yet louder cheers),
-&ldquo;I give you a toast. Eva and Doll: you all know &rsquo;em and love
-&rsquo;em, or if you don&rsquo;t you would, you see, if you did, you
-know.&rdquo; (Frantic outburst of cheering, during which Jeremy tries to resume
-his seat, but gracefully drops on to the floor, and begins singing &ldquo;Auld
-lang syne&rdquo; under the table; whereupon the whole company rise, and with
-the exception of Ernest and a jovial member of the Special Commissioner&rsquo;s
-staff, who get upon the table to lead the chorus, join hands and sing that
-beautiful old song with all the solemnity of intoxication; after which they
-drink more champagne, and jointly and severally swear eternal friendship,
-especially Ernest and the member of his Excellency&rsquo;s staff, who shake
-hands and bless each other, till the warmth of their emotions proves too much
-for them, and they weep in chorus there upon the table.)
-</p>
-
-<p>
-For the rest, Ernest had some vague recollection of helping to drive his newly
-found friend home in a wheelbarrow that would persist in upsetting in every
-&ldquo;sluit&rdquo; or ditch, especially if it had running water in it; and
-that was about all he did remember.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In the morning he woke up, or rather first became conscious of pain in his
-head, in a little double-bedded room attached to the hotel. On the pillow of
-the bed opposite to him lay Jeremy&rsquo;s battered face.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-For a while Ernest could make nothing of all this. Why was Jeremy there? Where
-were they? Everything turned round and seemed phantasmagorial; the only real,
-substantial thing was that awful pain in the head. But presently things began
-to come back to him, and the sight of Jeremy&rsquo;s bruised face recalled the
-fight, and the fight recalled the dinner, and the dinner brought back a vague
-recollection of Jeremy&rsquo;s speech and of something he had said about Eva.
-What could it have been? Ah, Eva! Perhaps Jeremy knew something about her;
-perhaps he had brought the letter that had been so long in coming. O, how his
-heart went out towards her! But how came Jeremy there in bed before him? how
-came he to be in South Africa at all?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At that moment his reflections were interrupted by the entry of Mazooku,
-bearing the coffee which it is the national habit in South Africa to drink
-early in the morning.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The martial-looking Zulu, who seemed curiously out of place carrying cups of
-coffee, seeing that his master was awake, saluted him with the customary
-&ldquo;Koos,&rdquo; lifting one of the cups of coffee to give emphasis to the
-word, and nearly upsetting it in the effort.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mazooku,&rdquo; said Ernest, severely, &ldquo;how did we get
-here?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The substance of the retainer&rsquo;s explanation was as follows: When the moon
-was getting low&mdash;vanishing, indeed, behind the &ldquo;horned house&rdquo;
-yonder (the Dutch church with pinnacles on it), it occurred to him, waiting on
-the verandah, that his master must be weary; and as most had departed from the
-&ldquo;dance&rdquo; in the &ldquo;tin house&rdquo; (restaurant), evidently made
-happy by the &ldquo;twala&rdquo; (drink), he entered into the tin house to look
-for him, and found him overcome by sleep under the table, lying next to the
-&ldquo;Lion-who-threw-oxen-over-his-shoulder&rdquo; (i.e., Jeremy), so overcome
-by sleep, indeed, that it was quite impossible to conduct him to the waggon.
-This being so, he (Mazooku) considered what was his duty under the
-circumstances, and he came to the accurate conclusion that the best thing to do
-was to put them into the white man&rsquo;s bed, since he knew that his master
-did not love the floor to lie on. Accordingly, having discovered that this was
-a room of beds, he and another Zulu entered, but were perplexed to find the
-beds already occupied by two white men, who had lain down to rest with their
-clothes on. But, under all these circumstances, he and the other Zulu,
-considering that their first thought should be towards their own master, had
-taken the liberty of lifting up the two white men, who were slumbering
-profoundly after the &ldquo;dance,&rdquo; by the head and by the heels, and
-putting them out in the sweet cool air of the night, leaving thus &ldquo;made a
-place,&rdquo; they then conveyed first Ernest, and having removed his clothes,
-put him into one bed, and next, in consideration of his undoubted greatness,
-they ventured to take the &ldquo;Lion-who, &amp;c.,&rdquo; himself, and put him
-in the other. He was a very great man, the &ldquo;Lion,&rdquo; and his art of
-throwing greater men over his shoulder could only be attributed to witchcraft.
-He himself (Mazooku) had tried it on that morning with a Basutu, with whom he
-had a slight difference of opinion, but the result had not been all that could
-be desired, inasmuch as the Basutu had kicked him in the stomach, and forced
-him to drop him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest laughed as heartily as his headache would allow at this story, and in
-doing so woke up Jeremy, who at once clapped his hands to his head and looked
-round; whereupon Mazooku, having saluted the awakened &ldquo;Lion-who,
-&amp;c.,&rdquo; with much fervour, and spilled a considerable quantity of hot
-coffee over him in doing so, took his departure abashed, and at length the two
-friends were left alone. Thereupon, rising from their respective pallets, they
-took a step in all the glory of their undress uniform into the middle of the
-little room, and, after the manner of Englishmen, shook hands and called each
-other &ldquo;old fellow.&rdquo; Then they went back to bed and began to
-converse.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I say, old fellow, what on earth brought you out here?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, you see, I came out to look you up. You did not write any letters,
-and they began to get anxious about you at home, so I packed up my duds and
-started. Your uncle stands unlimited tin, so I am travelling like a prince in a
-waggon of my own. I heard of you down in Maritzburg, and guessed that I had
-best make for Pretoria; and here I am and there you are, and I am devilish glad
-to see you again, old chap. By Jove, what a head I have! But, I say, why
-didn&rsquo;t you write? Doll half broke her heart about it, and so did your
-uncle, only he would not say so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I did write. I wrote from Secocoeni&rsquo;s country, but I suppose the
-letter did not fetch,&rdquo; answered Ernest, feeling very guilty. &ldquo;The
-fact is, old fellow, I had not the heart to write much; I have been so
-confoundedly down on my luck ever since that duel business.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah!&rdquo; interposed Jeremy, &ldquo;that shot was a credit to you. I
-didn&rsquo;t think you could have done it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;A credit! I&rsquo;ll tell you what, it is an awful thing to kill a man
-like that. I often see his face as he fell, at night in my sleep.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I was merely looking at it as a shot,&rdquo; replied Jeremy, innocently,
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t trouble myself with moral considerations, which are
-topsy-turvy sort of things; and, considered as a shot at twenty paces and under
-trying circumstances, it was a credit to you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And then, you see, Jeremy, there was another thing, you
-know&mdash;about&mdash;about Eva. Well, I wrote to her, and she has never
-answered my letter, unless,&rdquo; with a gleam of hope, &ldquo;you have
-brought an answer.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy shook his aching head.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah! no such luck. Well, it put me off, and that&rsquo;s the fact. Since
-she has chucked me up, I don&rsquo;t care twopence about anything. I
-don&rsquo;t say but what she is right; I daresay that I am not worth sticking
-to. She can do much better elsewhere;&rdquo; and Ernest groaned, and thought
-that his head was very bad indeed. &ldquo;But there it is. I hadn&rsquo;t the
-heart to write any more letters, and I was too proud to write again to her.
-Confound her! let her go! I am not going to grovel to any woman under heaven,
-no, not even to her!&rdquo; and he kicked the bedclothes viciously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I haven&rsquo;t learned much Zulu yet,&rdquo; replied Jeremy,
-sententiously; &ldquo;but I know two words&mdash;&lsquo;hamba
-gachlé.&rsquo;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, what of them?&rdquo; said Ernest, testily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They mean, I am told, &lsquo;take it easy,&rsquo; or &lsquo;look before
-you leap,&rsquo; or &lsquo;never jump to conclusions,&rsquo; or
-&lsquo;don&rsquo;t be in a confounded hurry&rsquo;; &ldquo;very fine mottoes, I
-think.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Of course they do; but what have they got to do with Eva?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, just this: I said I had got no letter; I never said&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What?&rdquo; shouted Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hamba gachlé,&rdquo; replied Jeremy, the imperturbable, gazing at Ernest
-out of his blackened eyes. &ldquo;I never said that I had not got a
-message.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest sprang clean out of the little truckle-bed, shaking with excitement.
-&ldquo;What is it, man?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Just this. She told me to tell you that she &lsquo;loved you
-dearly.&rsquo;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Slowly Ernest sat down on the bed again, and, throwing a blanket over his head
-and shoulders, remarked, in a tone befitting a sheeted ghost:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The devil she did! Why couldn&rsquo;t you say so before?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then he got up again and commenced walking, blanket and all, up and down the
-little room with long strides, and knocking over the water-jug in his
-excitement.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hamba gachlé,&rdquo; again remarked Jeremy, rising and picking up the
-water-jug. &ldquo;How are we going to get any more water? I&rsquo;ll tell you
-all about it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And he did, including the story of Mr. Plowden&rsquo;s shaking, at which Ernest
-chuckled fiercely.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wish I had been there to kick him,&rdquo; he remarked,
-parenthetically.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I did that too; I kicked him hard,&rdquo; put in Jeremy; at which Ernest
-chuckled again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I can&rsquo;t make it all out,&rdquo; said Ernest, at length, &ldquo;but
-I will go home at once.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You can&rsquo;t do that, old fellow. Your respected uncle, Sir Hugh,
-will have you run in.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, I forgot! Well, I will write to her to-day.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s better; and now let&rsquo;s dress. My head is rather
-clearer. By George, though, I am stiff! It is no joke fighting a giant.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But Ernest answered not a word. He was already, after his quick-brained
-fashion, employed in concocting his letter to Eva.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In the course of the morning he drafted it. It, or rather that part of it with
-which we need concern ourselves, ran thus:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Such then, my dearest Eva, was the state of my mind towards you. I
-thought&mdash;God forgive me for the treason!&mdash;that perhaps you were, as
-so many women are, a fairweather lover, and that now that I am in trouble you
-wished to slip the cable. If that was so, I felt that it was not for me to
-remonstrate. I wrote to you, and I knew that the letter came safely to your
-hands. You did not answer it, and I could only come to one conclusion. Hence my
-own silence. And to be plain I do not at this moment quite understand why you
-have never written. But Jeremy has brought me your message, and with that I
-must be content; for no doubt you have reasons which are satisfactory to
-yourself, and if that is so, no doubt, too, they would be equally satisfactory
-to me if I only knew them. You see, my dearest love, the fact is that I trust
-and believe in you utterly and entirely. What is right and true, what is loyal
-and sincere to me and to yourself&mdash;those are the things that you will do.
-Jeremy tells me a rather amusing story about the new clergyman who has come to
-Kesterwick, and who is, it appears, an aspirant for your hand. Well, Eva, I am
-sufficiently conceited not to be jealous; although I am in the unlucky position
-of an absent man, and worse still, an absent man under a cloud, I do not
-believe that he will cut me out. But on the day that you can put your hand upon
-your heart, and look me straight in the eyes, and tell me, on your honour as a
-lady, that you love this or any other man better than you do me, on that day I
-shall be ready to resign you to him. But till that day comes&mdash;and there is
-something which tells me that it is as impossible for it to come as for the
-mountain-range I look on as I write to move towards the town and bury
-it&mdash;I am free from jealousy, for I know that it is impossible that you
-should be faithless to your love.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, my sweet, the troth we plighted was not for days, or years, or
-times&mdash;it was for ever. I believe that nothing can dissolve it, and that
-Death himself will be powerless against it. I believe that with each new and
-progressive existence it will re-arise as surely as the flowers in spring,
-only, unlike them, more fragrant and beautiful than before. Sometimes I think
-that it has already existed through countless ages. Strange thoughts come into
-a man&rsquo;s mind out there on the great veldt, riding alone hour after hour,
-and day after day, through sunlight and through moonlight, till the spirit of
-Nature broods upon him, and he begins to learn the rudiments of truth. Some day
-I shall tell them all to you. Not that <i>I</i> have ever been quite alone, for
-I can say honestly that you have always been at my side since I left you; there
-has been no hour of the day or night when you have not been in my thoughts, and
-I believe that, till death blots out my senses, no such hour will ever come.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Day by day, too, my love has grown stronger even in its despair. Day by
-day it has taken shape and form and colour, and become more and more a living
-thing, more and more an entity, as distinct as soul and body, and yet as
-inextricably blended and woven into the substance of each. If ever a woman was
-beloved, you are that woman, Eva Ceswick; if ever a man&rsquo;s life, present
-and to come, lay in a woman&rsquo;s hands, my life lies in yours. It is a germ
-which you can cast away or destroy, or which you can nourish till it bursts
-into bloom, and bears fruit beautiful beyond imagining. You are my fate, my
-other part. With you my destiny is intertwined, and you can mould it as you
-will. There is no height to which I cannot rise by your side; there is no depth
-to which I may not sink without you.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And now, what does all this lead up to? Will you make a sacrifice for
-me, who am ready to give all my life to you&mdash;no, who have already given
-it? That sacrifice is this: I want you to come out here and marry me; for, as
-you know, circumstances prevent me from returning to you. If you will come, I
-will meet you at the Cape, and marry you there. Ah, surely you will come! As
-for money, I have plenty from home, and can make as much more as we shall want
-here, so that need be no obstacle. It is long to wait for your
-answer&mdash;three months&mdash;but I hope that the faith that will, as the
-Bible tells us, enable people to move mountains&mdash;and my faith in you is as
-great as that&mdash;will also enable me to bear the suspense, and in the end
-prove its own reward.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest read selected portions of this exalted composition to Mr. Alston and
-Jeremy. Both listened in solemn silence, and at the conclusion Jeremy scratched
-his head and remarked that it was deep enough to &ldquo;fetch&rdquo; any girl,
-though for his part he did not quite understand it. Mr. Alston relit his pipe,
-and for awhile said nothing; but to himself he thought that it was a remarkable
-letter for so young a man to have written, and revealed a curious turn of mind.
-One remark he did make, however, and that was rather a rude one:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The girl won&rsquo;t understand what you are driving at. Master Ernest;
-she will think that you have gone off your head in these savage parts. All you
-say may or may not be true&mdash;on that point I express no opinion; but to
-write such things to a woman is to throw your pearls before swine. You should
-ask her about her bonnets, my boy, and tell her what sort of dresses she should
-bring out, and that the air is good for the complexion. She would come
-then.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Here Ernest fired up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are beastly cynical, Alston, and you should not speak of Miss
-Ceswick like that to me. Bonnets, indeed!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All light, my lad&mdash;all right. Time will show. Ah, you boys! you go
-building up your ideals of ivory and gold and fine linen, only to find them one
-day turned into the commonest of clay, draped in the dirtiest of rags. Well,
-well, it is the way of the world; but you take my advice, Ernest: burn that
-letter, and go in for an Intombi. It is not too late yet, and there is no
-mistake about the sort of clay a Kafir girl is made of.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Here Ernest stamped out of the room in a passion.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Too cock-sure, wanted cooling down a little,&rdquo; remarked Mr. Alston
-to Jeremy; &ldquo;should never be cock-sure where a woman is concerned; women
-are fond of playing dirty tricks, and saying they could not help it. I know
-them; for, though you mightn&rsquo;t think it, I was once young myself. Come
-on; let us go and find him, and go for a walk.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They found Ernest sitting on the box of the waggon, which was outspanned
-together with Jeremy&rsquo;s, just outside the town, and looking rather sulky.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Come on, Ernest,&rdquo; said Mr. Alston, apologetically; &ldquo;I will
-throw no more mud at your ideal. In the course of the last thirty years I have
-seen so many fall to pieces of their own accord that I could not help warning
-you. But perhaps they make them of better stuff in England than we do in these
-parts.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest descended and soon forgot his pique. It was but rarely that he bore
-malice for more than half an hour. As they walked along one of the by-streets
-they met the young fellow who had acted as second to Jeremy in the big fight of
-the previous day. He informed them that he had just been to inquire how the
-giant was. It appeared that he had received an injury to the spine, the effect
-of Jeremy&rsquo;s &ldquo;lift,&rdquo; from which there was little hope of his
-recovery. He was not, however, in much pain. This intelligence distressed
-Jeremy not a little. He had earnestly desired to thrash the giant, but he had
-had no wish to injure him. With his usual promptitude he announced his
-intention of going to see his fallen enemy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are likely to meet with a warm reception if you do,&rdquo; said Mr.
-Alston.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll risk it. I should like to tell him that I am sorry.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Very good; come along&mdash;that is the house.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The injured man had been carried to the house of a relative just outside the
-town, a white thatched building that had been built five-and-thirty years
-before, when the site of Pretoria was a plain, inhabited only by quaggas,
-eland, and vilderbeeste. In front of the door was a grove of orange-trees,
-which smelled sweet and looked golden with hanging fruit.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The house itself was a small white building, with a double-swinging door, like
-those used in stables in this country. The top half of the door was open, and
-over the lower portion of it leaned a Boer, a rough-looking customer, smoking a
-huge pipe.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;&lsquo;Dagh, Oom&rsquo;&rdquo; (Good-day, uncle), said Mr. Alston,
-stretching out his hand.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The other looked at him suspiciously, and then held out a damp paw to each in
-turn, at the same time opening the door. As Ernest passed the threshold he
-noticed that the clay flooring was studded with peach-stones well trodden into
-its substance to prevent wear and tear from passing feet. The door opened into
-a fair-sized room with whitewashed walls called the &ldquo;sit-kam&rdquo; or
-sitting-room, and furnished with a settee, a table, and several chairs seated
-with &ldquo;rimpi,&rdquo; or strips of hide. On the biggest of these chairs sat
-a woman of large size, the mother of the family. She did not rise on their
-entry, but without speaking held out a limp hand, which Mr. Alston and the
-others shook, addressing her affectionately as &ldquo;tanta,&rdquo; or aunt.
-Then they shook hands with six or seven girls and young men, the latter sitting
-about in an aimless sort of way, the former clearing off the remains of the
-family meal, which had consisted of huge bones of boiled fresh beef. So fresh
-was it, indeed, that on the floor by the side of the table lay the gory head
-and skin of a newly killed ox, from which the beef had been cut. Ernest,
-noticing this, wondered at the superhuman strength of stomach that could take
-its food under such circumstances.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The preliminary ceremony of hand-shaking having been got through, Mr. Alston,
-who spoke Dutch perfectly, explained the object of their visit. The faces of
-the Dutchmen darkened as he did so, and the men scowled at Jeremy with hatred
-not unmingled with terror. When he had done, the oldest man said that he would
-ask his cousin if he would see them, adding, however, that he was so ill that
-he did not think it likely. Raising a curtain, which served as a door, he
-passed from the sitting-room into the bedroom, or &ldquo;slaap-kam.&rdquo;
-Presently he returned, and beckoned to the Englishmen to enter. They passed
-into a small chamber about ten feet square, which was hermetically sealed from
-air, after the fashion of these people in cases of any illness. On a large bed
-that blocked up most of the room, and on which it was the usual habit of the
-master of the house and his wife to sleep <i>in their clothes,</i> lay the
-fallen giant. So much as could be seen of his face was a mass of hideous
-bruises, and one of his hands, which lay on the bed, was in splints; the chief
-injury, however, was to his back, and from this he could never expect to
-recover. By his side sat his little wife, who had on the previous day urged the
-thrashing of the Hottentot. She glared fiercely at Jeremy, but said nothing. On
-catching sight of his victor, the giant turned his face to the wall, and asked
-what he wanted.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I have come,&rdquo; said Jeremy, Mr. Alston interpreting for him,
-&ldquo;to say that I am sorry that you are injured so much; that I wanted to
-beat you, but had no idea that I should hurt you so. I know that the trick of
-throwing a man as I threw you is very dangerous, and I only used it as a last
-resource, and because you would have killed me if I had not.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The Boer muttered something in reply about its being very bitter to be beaten
-by such a little man.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was evident to Ernest that the man&rsquo;s pride was utterly broken. He had
-believed himself the strongest man, white or black, in Africa, and now an
-English lad had thrown him over his shoulder like a plaything.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy next said that he hoped that he bore no malice, and would shake hands.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The giant hesitated a little, and then stretched out his uninjured hand, which
-Jeremy took.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Englishman,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;you are a wonderful man, and you will
-grow stronger yet. You have made a baby of me for life, and turned my heart to
-a baby&rsquo;s too. Perhaps one day some man will do the same for you. Till
-then you can never know what I feel. They will give you the Hottentot outside.
-No, you must take him; you won him in fair fight. He is a good driver, though
-he is so small. Now go.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The sight was a painful one, and they were not sorry to get away from it.
-Outside they found one of the young Boers waiting with the Hottentot boy, whom
-he insisted on handing over to Jeremy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Any scruples the latter had about accepting him were overcome by the look of
-intense satisfaction on the features of the poor wretch himself when he learnt
-that he was to be handed over.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-His name was &ldquo;Aasv&ouml;gel&rdquo; (vulture), and he made Jeremy an
-excellent and most faithful servant.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap26"></a>CHAPTER X.<br/>
-A WAY OF ESCAPE</h2>
-
-<p>
-When Mr. Alston, Jeremy, and Ernest emerged from the back street in which was
-the house they had visited into one of the principal thoroughfares of Pretoria,
-they came upon a curious sight. In the middle of the street stood, or rather
-danced, a wiry Zulu, dressed in an old military greatcoat and the ordinary
-native &ldquo;moocha,&rdquo; or scanty kilt, and having a red worsted comforter
-tied round one arm. He was shouting out something at the top of his voice, and
-surrounded by a crowd of other natives, who at intervals expressed their
-approval of what he was saying in deep guttural exclamations.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is that lunatic after?&rdquo; asked Jeremy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Alston listened for a minute, and answered:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I know the man well. His name is Goza. He is the fleetest runner in
-Natal, and can go as fast as a horse; indeed, there are few horses that he
-cannot tire out. By profession he is a &lsquo;praiser.&rsquo; He is now singing
-the praises of the Special Commissioner&mdash;&lsquo;bongering&rsquo; they call
-it. This is what he is saying:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;&lsquo;Listen to the foot of the great elephant Somptseu (Sir T.
-Shepstone). Feel how the earth shakes beneath the tread of the white
-t&rsquo;Chaka,* father of the Zulus, foremost among the great white people. Ou!
-he is coming; ou! he is here. See how the faces of the &ldquo;Amaboona&rdquo;
-(the Boers) turn pale before him. He will eat them up; he will swallow them,
-the huge vulture, who sits still till the ox is dead, who fights the fight of
-&ldquo;sit down.&rdquo; Oh! he is great, the lion; where he turns his eye the
-people melt away, their hearts turn to fat. Where is there one like Somptseu,
-the man who is not afraid of Death; who looks at Death and it runs from him;
-who has the tongue of honey; who reigns like the first star at night; who is
-beloved and honoured of the great white mother, the Queen; who loves his
-children, the Amazulu, and shelters them under his wide wing; who lifted
-Cetywayo out of the dirt, and can put him back in the dirt again? Abase
-yourselves, you low people, doctor yourself with medicine, lest his fierce eyes
-should burn you up. O, hark! he comes, the father of kings, the Chaka; O! be
-still; O! be silent; O! shake in your knees. He is here, the elephant, the
-lion, the fierce one, the patient one, the strong one! See he deigns to talk to
-little children; he teaches them wisdom; he gives light like the sun&mdash;he
-is the sun&mdash;he is t&rsquo;Somptseu.&rsquo;&ldquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At this juncture a quiet-looking, oldish gentleman, entirely unlike either an
-elephant, a lion, or a vulture, of medium height, with gray whiskers, a black
-coat, and a neat black tie fastened in a bow, came round the corner, leading a
-little girl by the hand. As he came the praiser lifted up his right hand, and
-in the most stentorian tones gave the royal salute, &ldquo;Bayte,&rdquo; which
-was re-echoed by all the other natives.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The oldish gentleman, who was none other than the Special Commissioner himself,
-turned upon his extoller with a look of intense annoyance, and addressed him
-very sharply in Zulu.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Be still,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;Why do you always annoy me with your
-noise? Be still, I say, you loud-tongued dog, or I will send you back to Natal.
-My head aches with your empty words.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p class="footnote">
-* The Zulu Napoleon, great-uncle to the last King of Zululand, Cetywayo.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, elephant! I am silent as the dead: Bayte. O Somptseu! I am quiet:
-&lsquo;Bayte.&rsquo;&ldquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Go! Begone!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-With a final shout of Bayte the Zulu turned and fled down the street with the
-swiftness of the wind, shouting praises as he went.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How do you do, sir?&rdquo; said Mr. Alston, advancing. &ldquo;I was just
-coming up to call upon you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, Alston, I am delighted to see you. I heard that you were gone on a
-hunting trip. Given up work and taken to hunting, eh? Well, I should like to do
-the same. If I could have found you when I came up here, I should have been
-tempted to ask you to come with us.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At this point Mr. Alston introduced Ernest and Jeremy. The Special Commissioner
-shook hands with them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I have heard of you,&rdquo; he said to Jeremy; &ldquo;but I must ask you
-not to fight any more giants here just at present; the tension between Boer and
-Englishman is too great to allow of its being stretched any more. Do you know,
-you nearly provoked an outbreak last night with your fighting? I trust that you
-will not do it again.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He spoke rather severely, and Jeremy coloured. Presently, however, he made
-amends by asking them all to dinner.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-On the following morning Ernest sent off his letter to Eva. He also wrote to
-his uncle and to Dorothy, explaining his long silence as best he could. The
-latter, too, he for the first time took into his confidence about Eva. At a
-distance he no longer felt the same shyness in speaking to her about another
-woman that had always overpowered him when he was by her side.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Now that he had been away from England for a year or so, many things connected
-with his home life had grown rather faint amid the daily change and activity of
-his new life. The rush of fresh impressions had to a great extent overlaid the
-old ones, and Dorothy and Mr. Cardus and all the old Kesterwick existence and
-surroundings seemed faint and far away. They were indeed rapidly assuming that
-unreality which in time the wanderer finds gather round his old associations.
-He feels that they know him no more; very likely he imagines that they have
-forgotten him, and so they become like the shades of the dead. It is almost a
-shock to such an one to come back and find, after an absence of many years,
-that though he has been living a rapid vigorous life, and storing his time with
-many acts, good, bad, and indifferent; though he thinks that he has changed so
-completely, and developed greatly in one direction or another, yet the old
-spots, the old familiar surroundings, and the old dear faces have changed
-hardly one whit. They have been living their quiet English life, in which
-sensation, incident, and excitement are things unfamiliar, and have varied not
-at all.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Most people, as a matter of fact, change very little except in so far as they
-are influenced by the cyclic variations of their life, the passage from youth
-to maturity, and from maturity to age, and the attendant modes of thought and
-action befitting each period. But even then the change is superficial rather
-than real. What the child is, that the middle-aged person and the old man will
-be also. The reason of this appears to be sufficiently obvious: the unchanging
-personality that grows not old, the animating spiritual &ldquo;ego,&rdquo; is
-there, and practically identical at all periods of life. The body, the brain,
-and the subtler intellect may all vary according to the circumstances, mostly
-physical, of personal existence; but the effect that the passage of a few
-years, more or less active or stormy, can produce upon a principle so
-indestructible, so immeasurably ancient, and the inheritor of so far-reaching a
-destiny as we believe the individual human soul to be, surely must be small.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Already Ernest began to find it something of a labour to indite epistles to
-people in England, and yet he had the pen of a ready writer. The links that
-bound them together were fast breaking loose. Eva, and Eva alone, remained
-clear and real to the vision of his mind. She was always with him; and to her,
-at any period of his life, he never found difficulty in writing. For, in truth,
-their very natures were interwoven, and the <i>rapport</i> between them was not
-produced merely by the pressure of external circumstances, or by the fact of
-continual contact and mutual attraction arising from physical causes, such as
-the natural leaning of youth to youth and beauty to beauty.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-These causes, according to Ernest&rsquo;s creed, no doubt had to do with its
-production, and perhaps were necessary to its mundane birth, as the battery is
-necessary to the creation of the electric spark. Thus, had Eva been old,
-instead of a young and lovely girl, the <i>rapport</i> would perhaps never have
-come into being here. In short, they formed the cable along which the occult
-communication could pass, but there their function ended. Having once
-established that communication, and provided a means by which the fusion of
-spirit could be effected, youth and beauty and the natural attraction of sex to
-sex had done their part. The great dividing river that rolls so fast and wide
-between our souls in their human shape had been safely passed, and the two
-fortunate travellers had been allowed before their time to reap
-advantages&mdash;the measureless advantage of real love, so rare on earth, and
-at its best so stained by passion, which will only come to most of us, and then
-perhaps imperfectly in a different world from this.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Yes, the bridge might now be broken down; it had served its purpose. Come age,
-or loss of physical attraction, or separation and icy silence, or the change
-called death itself, and the souls thus subtly blended can and will and do defy
-them. For the real life is not here; here only is the blind beginning of
-things, maybe the premature beginning.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And so Ernest posted his letters, and then, partly to employ his thoughts, and
-partly because it was his nature to throw himself into whatever stream of life
-was flowing past him, he set himself to master the state of political affairs
-in the country in which he found himself.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This need not be entered into here, further than to say that it was such as
-might with advantage have employed wiser heads than his, and indeed did employ
-them. Suffice it to say that he contrived to make himself of considerable use
-to the English party, both before and after the annexation of the Transvaal to
-the dominions of the Crown. Among other things he went on several missions in
-conjunction with Mr. Alston, with a view of ascertaining the real state of
-feeling among the Boers. Also, together with Jeremy, he joined a volunteer
-corps which was organised for the defence of Pretoria when it was still a
-matter of doubt whether or not the contemplated annexation would or would not
-result in an attack being made upon the town by the Boers. It was a most
-exciting time, and once or twice Ernest and Jeremy had narrow escapes of being
-murdered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-However, nothing worthy of note happened to them, and at last the long-expected
-annexation came off successfully, to the intense joy of all the Englishmen in
-the country, and to the great relief of the vast majority of the Boers.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Now, together with the proclamation by which the Transvaal was annexed to her
-Majesty&rsquo;s dominions, was issued another that was to have a considerable
-bearing upon Ernest&rsquo;s fortunes. This was none other than a promise of her
-Majesty&rsquo;s gracious pardon to all such as had been resident in the
-Transvaal for a period of six months previous to the date of annexation, being
-former British subjects and offenders against the English criminal law, who
-would register their name and offence within a given time. The object of this
-proclamation was to give immunity from prosecution to many individuals formerly
-deserters from the English army, and other people who had in some way
-transgressed the laws, but were now occupying respectable positions in their
-adopted country.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Alston read this proclamation attentively when it came out in a special
-number of the <i>Gazette.</i> Then, after thinking for a while, he handed it to
-Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You have read this amnesty proclamation?&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; answered Ernest; &ldquo;what of it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What of it? Ah, the stupidity of youth! Go down, go down on your knees,
-young man, and render thanks to the Power that inspired Lord Carnarvon with the
-idea of annexing the Transvaal. Can&rsquo;t you very well see that it takes
-your neck out of the halter? Off with you, and register your name and offence
-with the secretary to Government, and you will be clear for ever from any
-consequences that might ensue from the slight indiscretion of having shot your
-own first cousin on British soil.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;By Jove, Alston! you don&rsquo;t mean that!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mean it? of course I do. The proclamation does not specify any
-particular offence to which pardon is to be denied, and you have lived more
-than six months on Transvaal territory. Off you go!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And Ernest went like an arrow.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap27"></a>CHAPTER XI.<br/>
-FOUND WANTING</h2>
-
-<p>
-Ernest reached the Government office and registered his name, and in due course
-received &ldquo;her Majesty&rsquo;s gracious pardon and indemnity from and
-against all actions, proceedings, and prosecutions at law, having arisen,
-arising, or to arise, by whomsoever undertaken, &amp;c., conveyed through his
-Excellency the Administrator of Our said territory of the Transvaal.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When this precious document was in his pocket, Ernest thought that he now for
-the first time fully realised what must be the feelings of a slave unexpectedly
-manumitted. Had it not been for this fortunate accident, the consequences of
-that fatal duel must have continually overshadowed him. Had he returned to
-England, he would have been liable at any period of his life to a prosecution
-for murder. Indeed, the arm of the law is long, and he lived in continual
-apprehension of an application for his extradition being made to the
-authorities of whatever country he was in. But now all this was gone from him,
-and he felt that he would not be afraid to have words with an attorney-general,
-or shudder any more at the sight of a policeman.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-His first idea on getting his pardon was to return straightway to England; but
-that silent Fate which directs men&rsquo;s lives, driving them whither they
-would not, and forcing their bare and bleeding feet to stumble along the stony
-paths of its hidden purpose, came into his mind, and made him see that it would
-be better to delay a while. In a few weeks Eva&rsquo;s answer would surely
-reach him. If he were to go now, it was even possible that he might pass her in
-mid-ocean, for in his heart he never doubted but that she would come.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And indeed the very next mail there came a letter from Dorothy, written in
-answer to that which he had posted on the same day that he had written to Eva.
-It was only a short letter&mdash;the last post that could catch the mail was
-just going out, and his welcome letter had only just arrived; but she had
-twenty minutes, and she would send one line. She told him how grateful they
-were to hear that he was well and safe, and reproached him gently for not
-writing. Then she thanked him for making her his confidante about Eva Ceswick.
-She had guessed it long before, she said; and she thought they were both lucky
-in each other, and hoped and prayed that when the time came they would be as
-completely happy as it was possible for people to be. She had never spoken to
-Eva about him; but she should no longer feel any diffidence in doing so now.
-She should go and see her very soon, and plead his cause: not that it wanted
-any pleading, however, she was sure of that. Eva looked sad now that he was
-gone. There had been some talk a while back of Mr. Plowden, the new clergyman;
-but she supposed that Eva had given him his quietus, as she heard no more of it
-now; and so on, till &ldquo;the postman is at the door waiting for this
-letter.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Little did Ernest guess what it cost poor Dorothy to write her congratulations
-and wishes of happiness. A man&mdash;the nobler animal, remember&mdash;could
-hardly have done it; only the inferior woman would show such unselfishness.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This letter filled Ernest with a sure and certain hope. Eva, he clearly saw,
-had not had time to write by that mail; by the next her answer would come. It
-can be imagined that he waited for its advent with some anxiety.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Alston, Ernest, and Jeremy had taken a house in Pretoria, and for the past
-month or two had been living in it very comfortably. It was a pleasant
-one-storied house, with a verandah and a patch of flower-garden in front of it,
-in which grew a large gardenia-bush covered with hundreds of sweet-scented
-blooms, and many rose-trees, that in the divine climate of Pretoria flourish
-like thistles in our own. Beyond the flowers was a patch of vines, covered at
-this season of the year with enormous bunches of grapes, extending down to the
-line of waving willow-trees, interspersed with clumps of bamboo that grew along
-the edge of the sluit and kept the house private from the road. On the other
-side of the narrow path which led to the gate was a bed of melons, now rapidly
-coming to perfection. This garden was Ernest&rsquo;s especial pride and
-occupation, and just then he was much troubled in his mind about the melons,
-which were getting scorched by the bright rays of the sun. To obviate this he
-had designed cunning frameworks of little willow twigs, which he stuck over the
-melons and covered with dry grass&mdash;&ldquo;parasols&rdquo; he called them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-One morning&mdash;it was a particularly lovely morning&mdash;Ernest was
-standing after breakfast on this path, smoking, and directing Mazooku as to the
-erection of the &ldquo;parasols&rdquo; over his favourite melons. It was not a
-job at all suited to the capacity of the great Zulu, whose assegai, stuck in
-the ground behind him in the middle of a small bundle of knob-sticks, seemed a
-tool ominously unlike those used by gardeners of other lands. However,
-&ldquo;needs must when the devil drives,&rdquo; and there was the brawny fellow
-on his knees, puffing and blowing, and trying to fix the tuft of grass to
-Ernest&rsquo;s satisfaction.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mazooku, you lazy hound,&rdquo; said the latter, at last, &ldquo;if you
-don&rsquo;t put that tuft right in two shakes, by the heaven you will never
-reach, I&rsquo;ll break your head with your own kerrie!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ow, Inkoos,&rdquo; replied the Zulu, sulkily, again trying to prop up
-the tuft, and muttering to himself meanwhile.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you catch what that fellow of yours is saying?&rdquo; asked Mr.
-Alston. &ldquo;He is saying that all Englishmen are mad, and that you are the
-maddest of the mad. He considers that nobody who was not a lunatic would bother
-his head with those &lsquo;weeds that stink&rsquo; (flowers), or these fruits
-which, even if you succeed in growing them&mdash;and surely the things are
-bewitched, or they would grow without &lsquo;hats&rsquo; (Ernest&rsquo;s
-parasols)&mdash; must lie very cold on the stomach.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At that moment the particular &ldquo;hat&rdquo; which Mazooku was trying to
-arrange fell down again, whereupon the Zulu&rsquo;s patience gave out, and,
-cursing it for a witch in the most vigorous language, he emphasised his words
-by bringing his fist straight down on the melon, smashing it to pieces.
-Whereupon Ernest made for him, and he vanished swiftly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Alston stood by laughing at the scene, and awaited Ernest&rsquo;s return.
-Presently he came strolling back, not having caught Mazooku. Indeed, it would
-not have greatly mattered if he had; for, as that swarthy gentleman very well
-knew, great indeed must be the provocation that could induce Ernest to touch a
-native. It was a thing to which he had an almost unconquerable aversion, in the
-same way that he objected to the word &ldquo;nigger&rdquo; as applied to a
-people who, whatever their faults may be, are, as a rule, gentlemen in the
-truest sense of the word.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-As he came strolling down the path towards him, his face a little flushed with
-the exertion, Mr. Alston thought to himself that Ernest was growing into a very
-handsome fellow. The tall frame, narrow at the waist and broad at the
-shoulders, the eloquent dark eyes, which so far surpass the loveliest gray or
-blue, the silken hair, which curled over his head like that on a Grecian
-statue, the curved lips, the quick intelligence and kindly smile that lit the
-whole face&mdash;all these things helped to make his appearance not so much
-handsome as charming, and to women captivating to a dangerous extent. His
-dress, too&mdash;which consisted of riding-breeches, boots and spurs, a white
-waistcoat and linen coat, with a very broad soft felt hat looped up at one
-side, so as to throw the face into alternate light and shadow&mdash;helped the
-general effect considerably. Altogether Ernest was a pretty fellow in those
-days.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy was lounging on an easy-chair in the verandah, in company with the boy
-Roger Alston, and intensely interested in watching a furious battle between two
-lines of ants, black and red, who had their homes somewhere in the stonework.
-For a long while the issue of the battle remained doubtful, victory inclining,
-if anything, to the side of the thin red line, when suddenly, from the entrance
-to the nest of the black ants, there emerged a battalion of giants&mdash;great
-fellows, at least six times the size of the others&mdash;who fell upon the red
-ants and routed them, taking many prisoners. Then followed the most curious
-spectacle, namely, the deliberate execution of the captive red ants, by having
-their heads bitten off by the great black soldiers. Jeremy and Roger knew what
-was coming very well, for these battles were of frequent occurrence, and the
-casualties among the red ants simply frightful. On this occasion they
-determined to save the prisoners, which was effected by dipping a match in some
-of the nicotine at the bottom of a pipe, and placing it in front of the black
-giants. The ferocious insects would thereupon abandon their captives, and,
-rushing at the strange intruder, hang on like bulldogs till the poison did its
-work, and they dropped off senseless, to recover presently and stagger off
-home, holding their legs to their antennas and exhibiting every other symptom
-of frightful headache.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy was sitting on a chair, oiling the matches, and Roger, kneeling on the
-pavement, was employed in beguiling the giants into biting them, when suddenly
-they heard the sound of galloping horses and the rattle of wheels. The lad,
-lowering his head still more, looked out towards the market-square through a
-gap between the willow-stems.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hurrah, Mr. Jones,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;here comes the mail!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Next minute, amid loud blasts from the bugle, and enveloped in a cloud of dust,
-the heavy cart, to the sides and seats of which the begrimed and worn-out
-passengers were clinging like drowning men to straws, came rattling along as
-fast as the six grays reserved for the last stage could gallop, and vanished
-towards the post-office.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There&rsquo;s the mail, Ernest,&rdquo; hallooed Jeremy; &ldquo;she will
-bring the English letters.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest nodded, turned a little pale, and nervously knocked out his pipe. No
-wonder: that mail-cart carried his destiny, and he knew it. Presently he walked
-across the square to the post-office. The letters were not sorted, and he was
-the first person there. Very soon one of his Excellency&rsquo;s staff came
-riding down to get the Government House bag. It was the same gentleman with
-whom he had sung &ldquo;Auld lang syne&rdquo; so enthusiastically on the day of
-Jeremy&rsquo;s encounter with the giant, and had afterwards been carted home in
-the wheelbarrow.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hullo, Kershaw, here we are, &lsquo;primos inter omnes,&rsquo;
-&lsquo;primos primi primores,&rsquo; which is it? Come, Kershaw, you are the
-last from school&mdash;which is it? I don&rsquo;t believe, you know&mdash;ha!
-ha! ha! What are you doing down here so soon? Does the &lsquo;expectant swain
-await the postman&rsquo;s knock&rsquo;? Why, my dear fellow, you look pale; you
-must be in love or thirsty. So am I&mdash;the latter, not the former. Love, I
-do abjure thee. &lsquo;Quis separabit,&rsquo; who will have a split? I think
-that the sun can&rsquo;t be far from the line. Shall we, my dear Kershaw,
-<i>shall</i> we take an observation? Ha! ha! ha!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, thank you, I never drink anything between meals.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah! my boy, a bad habit; give it up before it is too late. Break it off,
-my dear Kershaw, and always wet your whistle in the strictest moderation, or
-you will die young. What says the poet?&mdash;
-</p>
-
-<p class="poem">
-&lsquo;<i>He who drinks strong beer, and goes to bed mellow,<br/>
-Lives as he ought to live, lives as he ought to live,<br/>
-Lives as he ought to live, and dies a jolly good fellow.</i>&rsquo;<br/>
-</p>
-
-<p class="noindent">
-Byron, I think, is it not? Ha! ha! ha!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Just then some others came up, and, somewhat to Ernest&rsquo;s relief, his
-friend turned the light of his kindly countenance to shine elsewhere, and left
-him to his thoughts.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At last the little shutter of the post-office was thrown up, and Ernest got his
-own letters, together with those belonging to Mr. Alston and Jeremy. He turned
-into the shade of a neighbouring verandah, and rapidly sorted the pile. There
-was no letter in Eva&rsquo;s handwriting. But there was one in that of her
-sister Florence. Ernest knew the writing well; there was no mistaking its
-peculiar upright, powerful-looking characters. This he opened hurriedly.
-Enclosed in the letter was a note, which was in the writing he had expected to
-see. He rapidly unfolded it, and, as he did so, a flash of fear passed through
-his brain.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why did she write in this way?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The note could not have been a long one, for in another minute it was lying on
-the ground, and Ernest, pale-faced and with catching breath, was clinging to
-the verandah post with both hands to save himself from falling. In a few
-seconds he recovered, and, picking up the note, walked quickly across the
-square towards his house. Halfway across he was overtaken by his friend on the
-Staff cantering gaily along on a particularly wooden-looking pony, from the
-sides of which his legs projected widely, and waving in one hand the Colonial
-Office bag addressed to the administrator of the Government.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hullo, my abstemious friend!&rdquo; he hallooed, as he pulled up the
-wooden pony with a jerk that sent each of its stiff legs sprawling in a
-different direction. &ldquo;Was patience rewarded? Is Chloe over the water
-kind? If not, take my advice, and don&rsquo;t trouble your head about her.
-<i>Quant on n&rsquo;a pas ce qu&rsquo;on aime,</i> the wise man <i>aimes ce
-qu&rsquo;il a.</i> Kershaw, I have conceived a great affection for you, and I
-will let you into a secret. Come with me this afternoon, and I will introduce
-you to two charming specimens of indigenous beauty. Like roses they bloom upon
-the veldt, and waste their sweetness on the desert air. &lsquo;Mater pulchra,
-puella pulcherrima,&rsquo; as Virgil says. I, as befits my years, will attach
-myself to the mater, for you sweet youth shall be reserved the puella. Ha! ha!
-ha! &ldquo;And he brought the despatch-bag down with a sounding whack between
-the ears of the wooden pony, with the result that he was nearly sent flying
-into the sluit, being landed by a sudden plunge well on to the animal&rsquo;s
-crupper.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Woho, Bucephalus, woho! or your mealies shall be cut off.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Just then he for the first time caught sight of the face of his companion, who
-was plodding along in silence by his side.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hullo! what&rsquo;s up, Kershaw?&rdquo; he said, in an altered tone;
-&ldquo;you don&rsquo;t look well. Nothing wrong, I hope?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nothing, nothing,&rdquo; answered Ernest, quietly; &ldquo;that is, I
-have got some bad news, that is all. Nothing to speak of, nothing.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My dear fellow, I am so sorry, and I have been troubling you with my
-nonsense. Forgive me. There, you wish to be alone. Good-bye.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A few seconds later, Mr. Alston and Jeremy, from their point of vantage on the
-verandah, saw Ernest coming with swift strides up the garden-path. His face was
-drawn with pain, and there was a fleck of blood upon his lip. He passed them
-without a word, and, entering the house, slammed the door of his own room. Mr.
-Alston and Jeremy looked at one another.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What&rsquo;s up?&rdquo; said the laconic Jeremy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Alston thought a while before he answered, as was his fashion.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Something gone wrong with &lsquo;the ideal,&rsquo; I should say,&rdquo;
-he said at length; &ldquo;that is the way of ideals.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Shall we go and see?&rdquo; said Jeremy, uneasily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, give him a minute or two to pull himself together. Lots of time for
-consolation afterwards.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Meanwhile Ernest, having got into his room, sat down upon the bed, and again
-read the note which was enclosed in Florence&rsquo;s letter. Then he folded it
-up and put it down, slowly and methodically. Next he opened the other letter,
-which he had not yet looked at, and read that too. After he had done it he
-threw himself face downwards on the pillow, and thought a while. Presently he
-arose, and, going to the other side of the room, took down a revolver case
-which hung to a nail, and drew out a revolver, which was loaded. Returning, he
-again sat down upon the bed, and cocked it. So he remained for a minute or two,
-and then slowly lifted the pistol towards his head. At that moment he heard
-footsteps approaching, and, with a quick movement, threw the weapon under the
-bed. As he did so Mr. Alston and Jeremy entered.
-</p>
-
-<div class="fig" style="width:100%;">
-<a name="illus09"></a>
-<br />
-<img src="images/fig09.jpg" width="404" height="600" alt="[Illustration: ]" />
-<p class="caption">&ldquo;He slowly lifted the pistol towards his head.&rdquo;
-</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Any letters, Ernest?&rdquo; asked the former.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Letters! O yes, I beg your pardon; here they are;&rdquo; and he took a
-packet from the pocket of his white coat, and handed them to him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Alston took them, looking all the while fixedly at Ernest, who avoided his
-glance.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is the matter, my boy?&rdquo; he said kindly, at last;
-&ldquo;nothing wrong, I hope?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest looked at him blankly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is it, old chap?&rdquo; said Jeremy, seating himself on the bed
-beside him, and laying his hand on his arm.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then Ernest broke out into a paroxysm of grief painful to behold. Fortunately
-for all concerned, it was brief. Had it lasted much longer, something must have
-given way. Suddenly his mood changed, and he grew hard and bitter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nothing, my dear fellows, nothing,&rdquo; he said; &ldquo;that is, only
-the sequel to a pretty little idyl. You may remember a letter I wrote&mdash;to
-a woman&mdash;some months back. There, you both of you know the story. Now you
-shall hear the answer, or, to be more correct, the answers.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&mdash;woman has a sister. Both she and her sister have written to
-me. My&mdash;her sister&rsquo;s letter is the longest. We will take it first. I
-think that we may skip the first page, there is nothing particular in it, and I
-do not wish to&mdash;waste your time. Now listen:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;&lsquo;By the way, I have a piece of news for you which will interest
-you, and which you will, I am sure, be glad to hear; for, of course, you will
-have by this time got over any little <i>tendresse</i> you may have had in that
-direction. Eva&rsquo; (that is the woman to whom I wrote, and to whom I thought
-I was engaged) &lsquo;is going to be married to a Mr. Plowden, a gentleman who
-has been acting as <i>locum tenens</i> for Mr. Halford.&rsquo;&rdquo; Here Jeremy
-sprang up, and swore a great oath. Ernest motioned him down, and went on:
-&ldquo;&lsquo;I say I am certain that you will be glad to hear this, because
-the match is in every respect a satisfactory one, and will, I am sure, bring
-dear Eva happiness. Mr. Plowden is well off, and, of course, a
-clergyman&mdash;two great guarantees for the success of their matrimonial
-venture. Eva tells me that she had a letter from you last mail&rsquo; (the
-letter I read you, gentlemen), &lsquo;and asks me to thank you for it. If she
-can find time, she will send you a line shortly; but, as you will understand,
-she has her hands very full just at present. The wedding is to take place at
-Kesterwick Church on the 17th of May&rsquo; (that is to-morrow, gentlemen),
-&lsquo;and, if this letter reaches you in time, I am sure you will think of us
-all on that day. It will be very quiet owing to our dear aunt&rsquo;s death
-being still so comparatively recent. Indeed, the engagement has, in obedience
-to Mr. Plowden&rsquo;s wishes&mdash;for he is very retiring&mdash;been kept
-quite secret, and you are absolutely the first person to whom it has been
-announced. I hope that you will feel duly flattered, sir. We are very busy
-about the trousseau, and just now the burning question is, of what colour the
-dress in which Eva is to go away in after the wedding shall be. Eva and I are
-all for gray. Mr. Plowden is for olive-green, and, as is natural under the
-circumstances, I expect that he will carry the day. They are together in the
-drawing-room settling it now. You always admired Eva (rather warmly once; do
-you remember how cut up you both were when you went away? Alas for the
-fickleness of human nature!); you should see her now. Her happiness makes her
-look lovely&mdash;but I hear her calling me. No doubt they have settled the
-momentous question. Good-bye. I am not clever at writing, but I hope that my
-news will make up for my want of skill.&mdash;Always yours,
-</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-&ldquo;&lsquo;Florence Ceswick.&rsquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Now for the enclosure,&rdquo; said Ernest:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;&lsquo;Dear Ernest,&mdash;I got your letter. Florence will tell you what
-there is to tell. I am going to be married. Think what you will of me; I cannot
-help myself. Believe me, this has cost me great suffering; but my duty seems
-clear. I hope that you will forget me, Ernest, as henceforth it will be my duty
-to forget you. Good-bye, my dear Ernest; O, good-bye!&rsquo;&rdquo; &emsp;
-&emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp;
-&lsquo;E.&rsquo;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p class="p2">
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Humph!&rdquo; murmured Mr. Alston beneath his breath. &ldquo;As I
-thought&mdash;clay, and damned bad clay, too!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Slowly Ernest tore the letter into small fragments, threw them down, and
-stamped upon them with his foot as though they were a living thing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wish that I had shaken the life out of that devil of a parson!&rdquo;
-groaned Jeremy, who was in his way as much affected by the news as his friend.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Curse you!&rdquo; said Ernest, turning on him fiercely; &ldquo;why
-didn&rsquo;t you stop where you were and look after her, instead of coming
-humbugging after me?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy only groaned humbly by way of answer. Mr. Alston, as was his way when
-perplexed, filled his pipe and lit it. Ernest paced swiftly up and down the
-little room, the white walls of which he had decorated with pictures cut from
-illustrated papers, Christmas cards, and photographs. Over the head of the bed
-was a photograph of Eva herself, which he had framed in some beautiful native
-wood. He reached it down.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Look,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;that is the lady herself. Handsome,
-isn&rsquo;t she, and pleasant to look on? Who would have thought that she was
-such a devil? Tells me to forget her, and talks about &lsquo;her duty&rsquo;!
-Women love a little joke!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He hurled the photograph on to the floor, and treated it as he had treated the
-letter, grinding it to pieces with his heel.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They say,&rdquo; he went on, &ldquo;that a man&rsquo;s curses are
-sometimes heard wherever it is they arrange these pleasant surprises for us.
-Now, you fellows bear witness to what I say, and watch that woman&rsquo;s life.
-I curse her before God and man! May she lay down her head in sorrow night by
-night and year by year! May her&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Stop, Ernest,&rdquo; said Mr. Alston, with a shrug; &ldquo;you might be
-taken at your word, and you wouldn&rsquo;t like that, you know. Besides, it is
-cowardly to go on cursing at a woman.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest paused, standing for a moment with his clenched fist still raised above
-his head, his pale lips quivering with intense excitement, and his dark eyes
-flashing and blazing like stars.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are right,&rdquo; he said, dropping his fist on to the table.
-&ldquo;It is with the man that I have to deal.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What man?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;This Plowden. I fear that I shall disturb his honeymoon.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What do you mean?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I mean that I am going to kill him, or he is going to kill me; it does
-not matter which.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, what quarrel have you with the man? Of course he looked after
-himself. You could not expect him to consider your interests, could you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If he had cut me out fairly, I should not have a word to say. Every man
-for himself in this pleasant world. But, mark my words, this parson and
-Florence have forced Eva into this unholy business, and I will have his life in
-payment. If you don&rsquo;t believe me, ask Jeremy. He saw something of the
-game before he left.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Look here, Kershaw, the man&rsquo;s a parson. He will take shelter
-behind his cloth; he won&rsquo;t fight. What shall you do then?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I shall shoot him,&rdquo; was the cool reply.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ernest, you are mad; it won&rsquo;t do. You shall not go, and that is
-all about it. You shall not ruin yourself over this woman, who is not fit to
-black an honest man&rsquo;s shoes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Shall not! shall not! Alston, you use strong language. Who will prevent
-me?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I will prevent you,&rdquo; he answered, sternly. &ldquo;I am your
-superior officer, and the corps you belong to is not disbanded. If you try to
-leave this place you shall be arrested as a deserter. Now don&rsquo;t be a
-fool, lad; you have killed one man, and got out of the mess. If you kill
-another you will not get out of it. Besides, what will the satisfaction be? If
-you want revenge, be patient. It will come. I have seen something of life; at
-least, I am old enough to be your father, and I know that you think me a cynic
-because I laugh at your &lsquo;high-falutin&rsquo; about women. How justly I
-warned you, you see now. But, cynic or not, I believe in the God above us, and
-I believe, too, that there is a rough justice in this world. It is in the world
-principally that people expiate the sins of the world; and if this marriage is
-such a wicked thing as you think, it will bring its own trouble with it,
-without any help from you. Time will avenge you. Everything comes to him who
-can wait.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest&rsquo;s eyes glittered coldly as he answered: &ldquo;I cannot wait. I am
-a ruined man already; all my life is laid waste. I wish to die, but I wish to
-kill him before I die.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So sure as my name is Alston you shall not go!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So sure as my name is Kershaw I <i>will</i> go!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-For a moment the two men faced one another; it would have been hard to say
-which looked the most determined. Then Mr. Alston turned and left the room and
-the house. On the verandah he paused and considered for a moment.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The boy means business,&rdquo; he thought to himself. &ldquo;He will try
-and bolt. How can I stop him? Ah, I have it!&rdquo; And he set off briskly
-towards Government House, saying aloud as he went, &ldquo;I love that lad too
-well to let him destroy himself over a jilt.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap28"></a>CHAPTER XII.<br/>
-ERNEST RUNS AWAY</h2>
-
-<p>
-When Alston left the room, Ernest sat down on the bed again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am not going to be domineered over by Alston,&rdquo; he said
-excitedly; &ldquo;he presumes upon his friendship.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy came and sat beside him, and took hold of his arm.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My dear fellow, don&rsquo;t talk like that. You know he means kindly by
-you. You are not yourself just yet. By-and-by you will see things in a
-different light.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not myself, indeed! Would you be yourself, I wonder, if you knew that
-the woman who had pinned all your soul to her bosom, as though it were a
-ribbon, was going to marry another man to-morrow?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Old fellow, you forget, though I can&rsquo;t talk of it in as pretty
-words as you can, I loved her too. I could bear to give her up to you,
-especially as she didn&rsquo;t care a brass farthing about me; but when I think
-about this other fellow, with his cold gray eye and that mark on his confounded
-forehead&mdash;ah, Ernest, it makes me sick!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And they sat on the bed together and groaned in chorus, looking, to tell the
-truth, rather absurd.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I tell you what it is, Jeremy,&rdquo; said Ernest, when he had finished
-groaning at the vision of his successful rival as painted by Jeremy; &ldquo;you
-are a good fellow, and I am a selfish beast. Here have I been kicking up all
-this devil&rsquo;s delight, and you haven&rsquo;t said a word. You are a more
-decent chap than I am, Jeremy, by a long chalk. And I daresay you are as fond
-of her as I am. No, I don&rsquo;t think you can be that, though.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My dear fellow, there is no parallel between our cases. I never expected
-to marry her. You did, and had every right to do so. Besides, we are
-differently made. You feel things three times as much as I do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest laughed bitterly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t think that I shall ever feel anything again,&rdquo; he
-said. &ldquo;My capacities for suffering will be pretty nearly used up. O, what
-a sublime fool is the man who gives all his life and heart to one woman! No man
-would have done it; but what could you expect of a couple of boys like we were?
-That is why women like boys: it is so easy to take them in&mdash;like puppies
-going to be drowned, in love and faith they lick the hand that will destroy
-them. It must be amusing&mdash;to the destroyers. By Jove, Alston was right
-about his ideals! Do you know, I am beginning to see all these things in quite
-a different light. I used to believe in women, Jeremy&mdash;actually I used to
-believe in them. I thought they were better than we are,&rdquo; and he laughed
-hysterically. &ldquo;Well, we buy our experience; I sha&rsquo;n&rsquo;t make
-the mistake again.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Come, come, Ernest, don&rsquo;t go on talking like that. You have got a
-blow as bad as death, and the only thing to do is to meet it as you would meet
-death&mdash;in silence. You will not go after that fellow, will you? It will
-only make things worse, you see. You won&rsquo;t have time to kill him before
-he marries her, and it really would not be worth while getting hanged about it
-when the mischief is done. There is literally nothing to be done except grin
-and bear it. We won&rsquo;t go back to England at all, but right up to the
-Zambesi, and hunt elephants; and as things have turned out, if you should get
-knocked on the head, why, you won&rsquo;t so much mind it, you know.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest made no answer to this consolatory address, and Jeremy left him alone,
-thinking that he had convinced him. But the Ernest of midday was a very
-different man from the Ernest of the morning, directing the erection of
-&ldquo;parasols&rdquo; over melons. The cruel news that the mail had brought
-him, and which from force of association caused him for years afterwards to
-hate the sight of a letter, had, figuratively speaking, destroyed him. He could
-never recover from it, though he would certainly survive it. Sharp indeed must
-be the grief which kills. But all the bloom and beauty had gone from his life;
-the gentle faith which he had placed in women was gone (for so narrowminded are
-we all, that we cannot help judging a class by our salient experiences of
-individuals), and, from that day forwards, for many years, he was handed over
-to a long-drawn-out pain, which never quite ceased, though it frequently
-culminated in paroxysms, and to which death itself would have been almost
-preferable.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But as yet he did not realise all these things; what he did realise was an
-intense and savage thirst for revenge&mdash;so intense, indeed, that he felt as
-though he must put himself in a way to gratify it, or his brain would go.
-To-morrow, he thought, was to see the final act of his betrayal. To-day was the
-eve of her marriage, and he as powerless to avert it as a child. O, great God!
-And yet through it all he knew she loved him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest, like many other pleasant, kindly-tempered men, if once stung into
-action by the sense of overpowering wrong, was extremely dangerous. Ill indeed
-would it have fared with Mr. Plowden if he could have come across him at that
-moment. And he honestly meant that it should fare ill with that reverend
-gentleman. So much did he mean it, that before he left his room he wrote his
-resignation of membership of the volunteer corps to which he belonged, and took
-it up to the Government office. Then, remembering that the Potchefstroom
-post-cart left Pretoria at dawn on the following morning, he made his way to
-the office, and ascertained that there were no passengers booked to leave by
-it. But he did not take a place; he was too clever to do that. Leaving the
-office, he went to the bank, and drew one hundred and fifty pounds in gold.
-Then he went home again. Here he found a Kafir messenger, dressed in the
-Government white uniform, waiting for him with an official letter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The letter acknowledged receipt of his resignation, but &ldquo;regretted that,
-in the present unsettled state of affairs, his Excellency was, in the interest
-of the public service, unable to dispense with his services.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest dismissed the messenger, and tore the letter across. If the Government
-could not dispense with him, he would dispense with the Government. His aim was
-to go to Potchefstroom, and thence to the Diamond Fields. Once there, he could
-take the post-cart to Cape Town, where he would meet the English mail steamer,
-and in one month from the present date be once more in England.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-That evening he dined with Mr. Alston, Jeremy, and Roger as usual, and no
-allusion was made to the events of the morning. About eleven o&rsquo;clock he
-went to bed, but not to sleep. The post-cart left at four. At three he rose
-very quietly, and put a few things into a leather saddle-bag, extracted his
-revolver from under the bed where he had thrown it when, in the first burst of
-his agony, he had been interrupted in his contemplated act of self destruction,
-and buckled it round his waist. Then he slipped out through the window of his
-room, crept stealthily down the garden-path, and struck out for the
-Potchefstroom road. But, silently and secretly as he went, there went behind
-him one more silent and secret than he&mdash;one to whose race, through long
-generations of tracking foes and wild beasts, silence and secrecy had become an
-instinct. It was the Hottentot boy, Aasv&ouml;gel.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The Hottentot followed him in the dim light, never more than fifty paces behind
-him, sometimes not more than ten, and yet totally invisible. Now he was behind
-a bush or a tuft of rank grass; now he was running down a ditch; and now again
-creeping over the open on his belly like a two-legged snake. As soon as Ernest
-got out of the town, and began to loiter along the Potchefstroom road, the
-Hottentot halted, uttering to himself a guttural expression of satisfaction.
-Then, watching his opportunity, he turned and ran swiftly back to Pretoria. In
-ten minutes he was at Ernest&rsquo;s house.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In front of the door were five horses, three with white riders, two being held
-by Kafirs. On the verandah, as usual smoking, was Mr. Alston, and with him
-Jeremy, the latter armed and spurred.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The Hottentot made his report and vanished.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Alston turned and addressed Jeremy in the tone of one giving an order.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now go,&rdquo; he said at last, handing him a paper; and Jeremy went,
-and, mounting one of the led horses, a powerful cream-coloured animal with a
-snow-white mane and tail, galloped off into the twilight, followed by the three
-white men.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Meanwhile Ernest walked quietly along the road. Once he paused, thinking that
-he heard the sound of galloping horses, half a mile or so to the left. It
-passed, and he went on again. Presently the mist began to lift, and the
-glorious sun came up; then came a rumble of wheels running along the silent
-road, and the post-cart with six fresh horses was upon him. He halted, and held
-up his hand to the native driver. The man knew him, and stopped the team at
-once.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am going with you to Potchefstroom, Apollo,&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right, sar; plenty of room inside, sar. No passenger this trip, sar,
-and damn good job too.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest got up, and off they went. He was safe now. There was no telegraph to
-Potchefstroom, and nothing could catch the post-cart if it had an hour&rsquo;s
-start.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A mile farther on there was a hill, up which the unlovely Apollo walked his
-horses. At the top of the hill was a clump of mimosa-bush, out of which, to the
-intense astonishment of both Ernest and Apollo, there emerged four mounted men
-with a led horse. One of these men was Jeremy; it was impossible to mistake his
-powerful form, sitting on his horse with the grip of a centaur.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They rode up to the post-cart in silence. Jeremy motioned to Apollo to pull up.
-He obeyed, and one of the men dismounted and seized the horse&rsquo;s head.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Tricked, by Heaven!&rdquo; said Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You must come back with me, Ernest,&rdquo; said Jeremy quietly. &ldquo;I
-have a warrant for your arrest as a deserter, signed by the Governor.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And if I refuse?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then my orders are to take you back.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest drew his revolver.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;This is a trick,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;and I shall not go back.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then I must take you,&rdquo; was the reply; and Jeremy coolly
-dismounted.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest&rsquo;s eyes flashed dangerously, and he lifted the pistol.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O yes, you can shoot me if you like; but if you do, the others will take
-you;&rdquo; and he continued to walk towards him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest cocked his revolver and pointed it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;At your peril!&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So be it,&rdquo; said Jeremy, and he walked up to the cart.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest dropped his weapon.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is mean of you, Jeremy,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;You know I can&rsquo;t
-fire at you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Of course you can&rsquo;t, old fellow. Come, skip out of that! you are
-keeping the mail. I have a horse ready for you, a slow one; you won&rsquo;t be
-able to run away on him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest obeyed, feeling rather small, and in half an hour was back at his own
-house.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Alston was waiting for him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Good-morning, Ernest,&rdquo; he said, cheerfully. &ldquo;Went out
-driving and come back riding, eh?&rdquo; Ernest looked at him, and his brown
-cheek flushed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You have played me a dirty trick,&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Look here, my boy,&rdquo; answered Mr. Alston, sternly, &ldquo;I am slow
-at making a friend; but when once I take his hand I hold it till one of the two
-grows cold. I should have been no true friend to you if I had let you go on
-this fool&rsquo;s errand, this wicked errand. Will you give me your word that
-you will not attempt to escape, or must I put you under arrest?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I give you my word,&rdquo; answered Ernest, humbled; &ldquo;and I ask
-your forgiveness.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Thus it was that, for the first time in his life, Ernest tried to run away.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-That morning Jeremy, missing Ernest, went into his room to see what he was
-doing. The room was shuttered to keep out the glare of the sun: but when he got
-used to the light he discovered Ernest sitting at the table, and staring
-straight before him with a wild look in his eyes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Come in, old fellow, come in,&rdquo; he called out, with bitter
-jocularity, &ldquo;and assist at this happy ceremony. Rather dark, isn&rsquo;t
-it? but lovers like the dark. Look!&rdquo; he went on, pointing to his watch,
-which lay upon the table before him, &ldquo;by English time it is now about
-twenty minutes past eleven. They are being married now, Jeremy, my boy, I can
-feel it. By Heaven, I have only to shut my eyes and I can <i>see</i> it!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Come, come, Ernest,&rdquo; said Jeremy, &ldquo;don&rsquo;t go on like
-that. You are not yourself, man.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He laughed, and answered:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am sure I wish I wasn&rsquo;t, I tell you I can see it all. I can see
-Kesterwick Church full of people, and before the altar, in her white dress, is
-Eva; but her face is whiter than her dress, Jeremy, and her eyes are very much
-afraid. And there is Florence, with her dark smile, and your friend Mr.
-Plowden, too, with his cold eyes and the cross upon his forehead. Oh, I assure
-you, I can see them all. It is a pretty wedding, very. There, it is over now,
-and I think I will go away before the kissing.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, hang it all, Ernest, wake up!&rdquo; said Jeremy, shaking him by the
-shoulder. &ldquo;You will drive yourself mad if you give your imagination so
-much rein.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Wake up, my boy! I feel more inclined to sleep. Have some grog.
-Won&rsquo;t you? Well, I will.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He rose and went to the mantelpiece, on which stood a square bottle of hollands
-and a tumbler. Rapidly filling the tumbler with raw spirit, he drank it as fast
-as the contractions of his throat would allow. He filled it again, and drank
-that too. Then he fell insensible upon the bed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was a strange scene, and in some ways a coarse one, but yet not without a
-pathos of its own.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ernest,&rdquo; said Mr. Alston, three weeks later, &ldquo;you are strong
-enough to travel now; what do you say to six months or a year among the
-elephants? The oxen are in first-rate condition, and we ought to get to our
-ground in six or seven weeks.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest, who was lying back in a low cane-chair, looking very thin and pale,
-thought for a moment before he answered:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right, I&rsquo;m your man; only let&rsquo;s get off soon. I am tired
-of this place, and want something to think about.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You have given up the idea of returning to England?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, quite.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And what do you say, Jeremy?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Where Ernest goes, there will I go also. Besides, to shoot an elephant
-is the one ambition of my life.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Good! then we will consider that settled. We shall want to pick up
-another eight-bore; but I know of one a fellow wants to sell, a beauty, by
-Riley. I will begin to make arrangements at once.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap29"></a>CHAPTER XIII.<br/>
-MR. PLOWDEN ASSERTS HIS RIGHTS</h2>
-
-<p>
-When last we saw Eva she had just become privately engaged to the Reverend
-James Plowden. But the marriage was not to take place till the following
-spring, and the following spring was a long way off. Vaguely she hoped
-something might occur to prevent it, forgetting that, as a rule, in real life
-it is only happy things which accidents occur to prevent. Rare, indeed, is it
-that the Plowdens of this world are prevented from marrying the Evas; Fate has
-sufficient to do in thwarting the Ernests. And, meanwhile, her position was not
-altogether unendurable, for she had made a bargain with her lover that the
-usual amenities of courtship were to be dispensed with. There were to be no
-embracings or other tender passages; she was not even to be forced to call him
-James. &ldquo;James!&rdquo; how she detested the name! Thus did the wretched
-girl try to put off the evil day, much as the ostrich is supposed to hide her
-head in a bush and indulge in dreams of fancied security. Mr. Plowden did not
-object; he was too wary a hunter to do so. While his stately prey was there
-with her head in the thickest of the bush he was sure of her. She would never
-wake from her foolish dreams till the ripe moment came to deliver the fatal
-blow, and all would be over. But if, on the contrary, he startled her now, she
-might take flight more swiftly than he could follow, and leave him alone in the
-desert.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-So when Eva made her little stipulations he acquiesced in them, after only just
-so much hesitation as he thought would seem lover-like. &ldquo;Life,
-Eva,&rdquo; he said, sententiously, &ldquo;is a compromise. I yield to your
-wishes.&rdquo; But in his heart he thought that a time would come when she
-would have to yield to his, and his cold eye gleamed. Eva saw the gleam, and
-shuddered prophetically.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The Reverend Mr. Plowden did not suffer much distress at the coldness with
-which he was treated. He knew that his day would come, and was content to wait
-for it like a wise man. He was not in love with Eva. A nature like his is
-scarcely capable of any such feeling as that, for instance, which Eva and
-Ernest bore to each other. True love, crowned with immortality, veils his
-shining face from such men as Mr. Plowden. He was fascinated by her beauty,
-that was all. But his cunning was of a superior order, and he was quite content
-to wait. So he contrived to extract a letter from Eva, in which she talked of
-&ldquo;our engagement,&rdquo; and alluded to &ldquo;our forthcoming
-marriage,&rdquo; and waited.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And thus the time went on all too quickly for Eva. She was quietly miserable,
-but she was not acutely unhappy. That was yet to come, with other evil things.
-Christmas came and went, the spring came too, and with the daffodils and
-violets came Ernest&rsquo;s letter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva was down the first one morning, and was engaged in making the tea in the
-Cottage dining-room, when that modern minister to the decrees of Fate, the
-postman, brought the letter. She recognised the writing in a moment, and the
-tea-caddy fell with a crash on to the floor. Seizing the sealed letter, she
-tore it open and read it swiftly. O, what a wave of love surged up in her heart
-as she read! Pressing the senseless paper to her lips, she kissed it again and
-again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O Ernest!&rdquo; she murmured; &ldquo;O my love, my darling!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Just then Florence came down, looking cool and composed, and giving that idea
-of quiet strength which is the natural attribute of some women.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva pushed the letter into her bosom.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is the matter, Eva?&rdquo; said Florence, quietly, noting her
-flushed face, &ldquo;and why have you upset the tea?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Matter!&rdquo; she answered, laughing happily&mdash;she had not laughed
-so for months; &ldquo;O, nothing&mdash;I have heard from Ernest, that is
-all.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Indeed!&rdquo; answered her sister, with a troubled smile on her dark
-face; &ldquo;and what has our runaway to say for himself?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Say! O, he has a great deal to say, and I have something to say too. I
-am going to marry him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Indeed! And Mr. Plowden?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva turned pale.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mr. Plowden! I have done with Mr. Plowden.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Indeed!&rdquo; said Florence, again; &ldquo;really this is quite
-romantic. But please pick up that tea. Whoever you marry, let us have some
-breakfast in the meanwhile. Excuse me for one moment, I have forgotten my
-handkerchief.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva did as she was bid, and made the tea after a fashion.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Meanwhile Florence went to her room and scribbled a note, enclosed it in an
-envelope, and rang the bell.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The servant answered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Tell John to take this to Mr. Plowden&rsquo;s lodgings at once; and if
-he should be out, to follow him till he finds him, and deliver it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, miss.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ten minutes later Mr. Plowden got the following note:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Come here at once. Eva has heard from Ernest Kershaw, and announces her
-intention of throwing you over and marrying him. Be prepared for a struggle,
-but do not show that you have heard from me. You must find means to hold your
-own. Burn this.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Plowden whistled as he laid the paper down. Going to his desk, he unlocked
-it, and extracted the letter he had received from Eva, in which she
-acknowledged her engagement to him, and then, seizing his hat, walked swiftly
-towards the Cottage.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Meanwhile Florence made her way downstairs again, saying to herself as she
-went, &ldquo;An unlucky chance. If I had seen the letter first, I would have
-burned it. But we shall win yet. She has not the stamina to stand out against
-that brute.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-As soon as she reached the dining-room Eva began to say something more about
-her letter, but her sister stopped her quickly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let me have my breakfast in peace, Eva. We will talk of the letter
-afterwards. He does not interest me, your Ernest, and it takes away my appetite
-to talk business at meals.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva ceased, and sat silent; breakfast had no charms for her that morning.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Presently there was a knock at the door, and Mr. Plowden entered with a smile
-of forced gaiety on his face.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How do you do, Florence?&rdquo; he said; &ldquo;how do you do, dear Eva?
-You see I have come to see you early this morning. I want a little refreshment
-to enable me to get through my day&rsquo;s duty. The early suitor has come to
-pick up the worm of his affections,&rdquo; and he laughed at his joke.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence shuddered at the simile, and thought to herself that there was a fair
-chance of the affectionate worm disagreeing with the early suitor.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva said nothing. She sat quite still and pale.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, what is the matter with you both? Have you seen a ghost?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not exactly; but I think that Eva has received a message from the
-dead,&rdquo; said Florence, with a nervous laugh.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva rose. &ldquo;I think, Mr. Plowden,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;that I had
-better be frank with you at once. I ask you to listen to me for a few
-moments.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Am I not always at your service, dear Eva?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wish,&rdquo; began Eva, and broke down&mdash;&ldquo;I wish,&rdquo; she
-went on again, &ldquo;to appeal to your generosity and to your feelings as a
-gentleman.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence smiled.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Plowden bowed with mock humility and smiled too&mdash;a very ugly smile.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are aware that, before I became engaged to you, I had had a
-previous&mdash;affair.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;With the boy who committed a murder,&rdquo; put in Mr. Plowden.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;With a gentleman who had the misfortune to kill a man in a duel,&rdquo;
-explained Eva.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The Church and the law call it murder.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Excuse me, Mr. Plowden, we are dealing neither with the Church nor the
-law; we are dealing with the thing as it is called among gentlemen and
-ladies.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Go on,&rdquo; said Mr. Plowden.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, misunderstandings, which I need not now enter into, arose with
-reference to that affair, though, as I told you, I loved the man. To-day I have
-heard from him, and his letter puts everything straight in my mind, and I see
-how wrong and unjust has been my behaviour to him, and I know that I love him
-more than ever.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Curse the fellow&rsquo;s impudence!&rdquo; said the clergyman,
-furiously; &ldquo;if he were here, I would give him a bit of my mind!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva&rsquo;s spirit rose, and she turned on him with flashing eyes, looking like
-a queen in her imperial beauty.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If he were here, Mr. Plowden, you would not dare to look him in the
-face. Men like you only take advantage of the absent.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The clergyman ground his teeth. He felt his furious temper rising and did not
-dare to answer, though he was a bold man, in face of a woman. He feared lest it
-should get beyond him; but beneath his breath he muttered, &ldquo;You shall pay
-for that, my lady!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Under these circumstances,&rdquo; went on Eva, &ldquo;I appeal to you as
-a gentleman to release me from an engagement into which, as you know, I have
-been drawn more by force of circumstances than by my own wish. Surely, it is
-not necessary for me to say any more.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Plowden rose and came and stood quite close to her, so that his face was
-within a few inches of her eyes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Eva,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;I am not going to be trifled with like this.
-You have promised to marry me, and I shall keep you to your promise. You laid
-yourself out to win my affection, the affection of an honest man.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Again Florence smiled, and Eva made a faint motion of dissent.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, but you did, you encouraged me. It is very well for you to deny it
-now, when it suits your purpose, but you did, and you know it, and your sister
-there knows it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence bowed her head in assent.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And now you wish, in order to gratify an unlawful passion for a shedder
-of blood&mdash;you wish to throw me over, to trample upon my holiest feelings,
-and to rob me of the prize which I have won. No, Eva, I will not release
-you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Surely, surely, Mr. Plowden,&rdquo; said Eva, faintly, for she was a
-gentle creature, and the man&rsquo;s violence overwhelmed her, &ldquo;you will
-not force me into a marriage which I tell you is repugnant to me? I appeal to
-your generosity to release me. You can never oblige me to marry you when I tell
-you that I do not love you, and that my whole heart is given to another
-man.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Plowden saw that his violence was doing its work, and determined to follow
-it up. He raised his voice till it was almost a shout.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;I will; I will not submit to such
-wickedness. Love! that will come. I am quite willing to take my chance of it.
-No, I tell you fairly that I will not let you off; and if you try to avoid
-fulfilling your engagement to me I will do more: I will proclaim you all over
-the country as a jilt; I will bring an action for breach of promise of marriage
-against you&mdash;perhaps you did not know that men can do that as well as
-women&mdash;and cover your name with disgrace! Look, I have your written
-promise of marriage;&rdquo; and he produced her letter.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva turned to her sister.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Florence,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;cannot you say a word to help me? I am
-overwhelmed.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I wish I could, Eva dear,&rdquo; answered her sister, kindly; &ldquo;but
-how can I? What Mr. Plowden says is just and right. You are engaged to him, and
-are in honour bound to marry him. O Eva, do not bring trouble and disgrace upon
-us all by your obstinacy! You owe something to your name as well as to
-yourself, and something to me too. I am sure that Mr. Plowden will be willing
-to forget all about this if you will undertake never to allude to it
-again.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O yes, certainly, Miss Florence. I am not revengeful; I only want my
-rights.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva looked faintly from one to the other; her head sank, and great black rings
-painted themselves beneath her eyes. The lily was broken at last.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are very cruel,&rdquo; she said, slowly; &ldquo;but I suppose
-it must be as you wish. Pray God I may die first, that is all!&rdquo; and she
-put her hands to her head and stumbled from the room, leaving the two
-conspirators facing each other.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Come, we got over that capitally,&rdquo; said Mr. Plowden, rubbing his
-hands. &ldquo;There is nothing like taking the high hand with a woman. Ladies
-must sometimes be taught that a gentleman has rights as well as
-themselves.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence turned on him with bitter scorn.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>Gentlemen!</i> Mr. Plowden, why is the word so often on your lips?
-Surely, after the part you have just played, you do not presume to rank
-yourself among <i>gentlemen?</i> Listen! it suits my purposes that you should
-marry Eva, and you shall marry her; but I will not stoop to play the hypocrite
-with a man like you. You talk of yourself as a gentleman, and do not scruple to
-force an innocent girl into a wicked marriage, and to crush her spirit with
-your cunning cruelty. A <i>gentleman</i> forsooth!&mdash;a satyr, a devil in
-disguise!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am only asserting my rights,&rdquo; he said, furiously; &ldquo;and
-whatever I have done, you have done more.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do not try your violence on me, Mr. Plowden; it will not do. I am not
-made of the same stuff as your victim. Lower your voice, or leave the house and
-do not enter it again.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Plowden&rsquo;s heavy under-jaw fell a little; he was terribly afraid of
-Florence.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;listen! I do not choose that you should
-labour under any mistake. I hold your hand in this business, though to have to
-do with you in any way is in itself a defilement,&rdquo; and she wiped her
-delicate fingers on a pocket-handkerchief as she said the word, &ldquo;because
-I have an end of my own to gain. Not a vulgar end like yours, but a revenge,
-which shall be almost divine or diabolical, call it which you will, in its
-completeness. Perhaps it is a madness, perhaps it is an inspiration, perhaps it
-is a fate. Whatever it is, it animates me body and soul, and I will gratify it,
-though to do so I have to use a tool like you. I wished to explain this to you.
-I wished, too, to make it clear to you that I consider you contemptible. I have
-done both, and I have now the pleasure to wish you good-morning.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Plowden left the house white with fury, and cursing in a manner remarkable
-in a clergyman.
-</p>
-
-<div class="fig" style="width:100%;">
-<a name="illus10"></a>
-<br />
-<img src="images/fig10.jpg" width="403" height="600" alt="[Illustration: ]" />
-<p class="caption">&ldquo;Mr. Plowden left the house, white with fury.&rdquo;
-</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If she wasn&rsquo;t so handsome, hang me if I would not throw the whole
-thing up!&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Needless to say, he did nothing of the sort; he only kept out of
-Florence&rsquo;s way.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap30"></a>CHAPTER XIV.<br/>
-THE VIRGIN MARTYR</h2>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy, in her note to Ernest that he received by the mail previous to the one
-that brought the letters which at a single blow laid the hope and promise of
-his life in the dust, it may be remembered, had stated her intention of going
-to see Eva in order to plead Ernest&rsquo;s cause; but what with one thing and
-another, her visit was considerably delayed. Twice she was on the point of
-going, and twice something occurred to prevent her. The fact of the matter was,
-the errand was distasteful, and she was in no hurry to execute it. She loved
-Ernest herself, and, however deep that love might be trampled down, however
-fast it might be chained in the dungeons of her secret thoughts, it was still
-there, a living thing, an immortal thing. She could tread it down and chain it;
-she could not kill it. Its shade would rise and walk in the upper chambers of
-her heart, and wring its hands and cry to her, telling what it suffered in
-those subterranean places, whispering how bitterly it envied the bright and
-happy life which moved in the free air, and had usurped the love it claimed. It
-was hard to have to ignore those pleadings, to disregard those cries for pity,
-and to say that there was no hope, that it must always be chained, till time
-ate away the chains. It was harder still to have to be one of the actual
-ministers to the suffering. Still, she meant to go. Her duty to Ernest was not
-to be forsaken because it was a painful duty.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-On two or three occasions she met Eva, but got no opportunity of speaking to
-her. Either her sister Florence was with her, or she was obliged to return
-immediately. The truth was that, after the scene described in the last chapter,
-Eva was subjected to the closest espionage. At home, Florence watched her as a
-cat watches a mouse; abroad, Mr. Plowden seemed to be constantly hovering on
-her flank, or, if he was not there, then she became aware of the presence of
-the ancient and contemplative mariner who traded in Dutch cheeses. Mr. Plowden
-feared lest she should run away, and so cheat him of his prize; Florence, lest
-she should confide in Dorothy, or possibly Mr. Cardus, and, supported by them,
-find the courage to assert herself and defraud her of her revenge. So they
-watched her every movement.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At last Dorothy made up her mind to wait no longer for opportunities, but to go
-and see Eva at her own home. She knew nothing of the Plowden imbroglio; but it
-did strike her as curious that no one had said anything about Ernest. He had
-written; it was scarcely likely the letter had miscarried. How was it that Eva
-had not said anything on the subject? Little did Dorothy guess that, even as
-these thoughts were passing through her mind, a great vessel was steaming out
-of Southampton docks, bearing those epistles of final renunciation which
-Ernest, very little to his satisfaction, received in due course.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Full of these reflections, Dorothy found herself one lovely spring afternoon
-knocking at the door of the Cottage. Eva was at home, and she was at once
-ushered into her presence. She was sitting on a low chair&mdash;the same on
-which Ernest always pictured her with that confounded Skye terrier she was so
-fond of kissing&mdash;an open book upon her knee, and looking out at the little
-garden and the sea beyond. She looked pale and thin, Dorothy thought.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-On her visitor&rsquo;s entrance, Eva rose and kissed her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am so glad to see you,&rdquo; she said; &ldquo;I was feeling
-lonely.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Lonely!&rdquo; answered Dorothy, in her straightforward way; &ldquo;why,
-I have been trying to find you alone for the last fortnight, and have never
-succeeded.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva coloured. &ldquo;One may be lonely with ever so many people round
-one.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then for a minute or so they talked about the weather; so persistently did they
-discuss it, indeed, that the womanly instinct of each told her that the other
-was fencing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-After all, it was Eva who broke the ice first.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Have you heard from Ernest lately?&rdquo; she said, nervously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes; I got a note by last mall.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh,&rdquo; said Eva, clasping her hands involuntarily, &ldquo;what did
-he say?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nothing much. But I got a letter by the mail before that, in which he
-said a good deal. Among other things, he said he had written to you. Did you
-get the letter?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva coloured to her eyes. &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; she whispered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy rose, and seated herself again on a footstool by Eva&rsquo;s feet, and
-wondered at the trouble in her eyes. How could she be troubled when she had
-heard from Ernest&mdash;&ldquo;like that?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What did you answer him, dear?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva covered her face with her hands.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do not talk about it,&rdquo; she said; &ldquo;it is too dreadful to
-me!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What can you mean? He tells me you are engaged to him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes&mdash;that is, no. I was half engaged. Now I am engaged to Mr.
-Plowden.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy gave a gasp of horrified astonishment.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Engaged to that man when you were engaged to Ernest! You must be
-joking.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O Dorothy, I am not joking; I wish to Heaven I were. I am engaged to
-him. I am to marry him in less than a month. O, pity me, I am wretched.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You mean to tell me,&rdquo; said Dorothy rising, &ldquo;that you are
-engaged to Mr. Plowden when you love Ernest?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, oh yes; I cannot help&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At that moment the door opened, and Florence entered, attended by Mr. Plowden.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Her keen eyes saw at once that something was wrong, and her intelligence told
-her what it was. After her bold fashion, she determined to take the bull by the
-horns. Unless something were done, with Dorothy at her back, Eva might prove
-obdurate after all.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Advancing, she shook Dorothy cordially by the hand.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I see from your face,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;that you have just heard
-the good news. Mr. Plowden is so shy that he would not consent to announce it
-before; but here he is to receive your congratulations.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Plowden took the cue, and advanced effusively on Dorothy with outstretched
-hand. &ldquo;Yes, Miss Jones, I am sure you will congratulate me; and I ought
-to be congratulated. I am the luckiest&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Here he broke off. It really was very awkward. His hand remained limply hanging
-in the air before Dorothy, but not the slightest sign did that dignified little
-lady show of taking it. On the contrary, she drew herself up to her full
-height&mdash;which was not very tall&mdash;and fixing her steady blue eyes on
-the clergyman&rsquo;s shifty orbs, deliberately placed her right hand behind
-her back.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I do not shake hands with people who play such tricks,&rdquo; she said,
-quietly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Plowden&rsquo;s hand fell to his side, and he stepped back. He did not
-expect such courage in anything so small. Florence, however, sailed in to the
-rescue.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Really, Dorothy, we do not quite understand.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O yes, I think you do, Florence, or if you do not, then I will explain.
-Eva here was engaged to marry Ernest Kershaw. Eva here has just with her own
-lips told me that she still loves Ernest, but that she is obliged to
-marry&mdash;that man;&rdquo; and she pointed with her little forefinger at Mr.
-Plowden, who recoiled another step. &ldquo;Is not that true, Eva?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva bowed her head by way of answer. She still sat in the low chair, with her
-hands over her face.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Really, Dorothy, I fail to see what right you have to interfere in this
-matter,&rdquo; said Florence.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I have the right of common justice, Florence&mdash;the right a friend
-has to protect the absent. Are you not ashamed of such a wicked plot to wrong
-an absent man? Is there no way&rdquo; (addressing Mr. Plowden) &ldquo;in which
-I can appeal to your feelings, to induce you to free this wretched girl you
-have entrapped?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I only ask my own,&rdquo; said Mr. Plowden, sulkily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;For shame! for shame! and you a minister of God&rsquo;s Word! And you
-too, Florence! Oh, now I can read your heart, and see the bad thoughts looking
-from your eyes!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence for a moment was abashed, and turned her face aside.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And you, Eva&mdash;how can you become a party to such a shameful thing?
-You, a good girl, to sell yourself away from dear Ernest to such a man as
-that;&rdquo; and again she pointed contemptuously at Mr. Plowden.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, don&rsquo;t, Dorothy, don&rsquo;t; it is my duty. You don&rsquo;t
-understand.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, Eva, I do understand. I understand that it is your duty to drown
-yourself before you do such a thing, I am a woman as well as you, and though I
-am not beautiful, I have a heart and a conscience, and I understand only too
-well.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You will be lost if you drown yourself&mdash;I mean it is very
-wicked,&rdquo; said Mr. Plowden to Eva, suddenly assuming his clerical
-character as most likely to be effective. The suggestion alarmed him. He had
-bargained for a live Eva.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, Mr. Plowden,&rdquo; went on Dorothy, &ldquo;you are right: it would
-be wicked, but not so wicked as to marry you. God gave us women our lives, but
-He put a spirit in our hearts which tells us that we should rather throw them
-away than suffer ourselves to be degraded. Oh, Eva, tell me that you will not
-do this shameful thing. No, do not whisper to her, Florence.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dorothy, Dorothy,&rdquo; said Eva, rising and wringing her hands,
-&ldquo;it is all useless. Do not break my heart with your cruel words. I must
-marry him. I have fallen into the power of people who do not know what mercy
-is.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Thank you,&rdquo; said Florence.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Plowden scowled darkly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then I have done;&rdquo; and Dorothy walked towards the door. Before she
-reached it she paused and turned. &ldquo;One word, and I will trouble you no
-more. What do you all expect will come of this wicked marriage?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There was no answer. Then Dorothy went.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But her efforts did not stop there. She made her way straight to Mr.
-Cardus&rsquo;s office.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O Reginald,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;I have such dreadful news for you.
-There, let me cry a little first, and I will tell you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And she did, telling him the whole story from beginning to end. It was entirely
-new to him, and he listened with some astonishment, and with a feeling of
-something like indignation against Ernest. He had intended that young gentleman
-to fall in love with Dorothy, and behold, he had fallen in love with Eva. Alas
-for the perversity of youth!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well,&rdquo; he said, when she had done, &ldquo;and what do you wish me
-to do? It seems that you have to do with a heartless scheming woman, a clerical
-cad, and a beautiful fool. One might deal with the schemer and the fool, but no
-power on earth can soften the cad. At least, that is my experience. Besides, I
-think the whole thing is much better left alone. I should be very sorry to see
-Ernest married to a woman so worthless as this Eva must be. She is handsome, it
-is true, and that is about all she is, as far as I can see. Don&rsquo;t
-distress yourself, my dear; he will get over it, and after he has had his fling
-out there, and lived down that duel business, he will come home, and if he is
-wise, I know where he will look for consolation.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy tossed her head and coloured.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is not a question of consolation,&rdquo; she said; &ldquo;it is a
-question of Ernest&rsquo;s happiness in life.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t alarm yourself, Dorothy; people&rsquo;s happiness is not so
-easily affected. He will forget all about her in a year.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think that men always talk of each other like that, Reginald,&rdquo;
-said Dorothy, resting her head upon her hands, and looking straight at the old
-gentleman. &ldquo;Each of you likes to think that he has a monopoly of feeling,
-and that the rest of his kind are as shallow as a milk-pan. And yet it was only
-last night that you were talking to me about my mother. You told me, you
-remember, that life had been a worthless thing to you since she was torn from
-you, which no success had been able to render pleasant. You said more: you said
-that you hoped that the end was not far off; that you had suffered enough and
-waited enough; and that, though you had not seen her face for five-and-twenty
-years, you loved her as wildly as you did the day when she first promised to
-become your wife.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus had risen, and was looking through the glass door at the blooming
-orchids. Dorothy got up, and, following him, laid her hand upon his shoulder.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Reginald,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;think! Ernest is about to be robbed of
-his wife under circumstances curiously like those by which you were robbed of
-yours. Unless it is prevented, what you have suffered all your life that he
-will suffer also. Remember you are of the same blood, and, allowing for the
-difference between your ages, of very much the same temperament too. Think how
-different life would have been to you if any one had staved off your disaster,
-and then I am sure you will do all you can to stave off his.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Life would have been non-existent for you,&rdquo; he answered,
-&ldquo;for you would never have been born.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, well,&rdquo; she said, with a little sigh, &ldquo;I am sure I should
-have got on very well without. I could have spared myself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus was a keen man, and could see as far into the human heart as most.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Girl,&rdquo; he said, contracting his white eyebrows and suddenly
-turning round upon her, &ldquo;you love Ernest yourself. I have often suspected
-it; now I am sure you do.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy flinched.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; she answered, &ldquo;I do love him. What then?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And yet you are advocating my interference to secure his marriage with
-another woman, a worthless creature who does not know her own mind. You cannot
-really care about him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Care about him!&rdquo; and she turned her sweet blue eyes upwards.
-&ldquo;I love him with all my heart and soul and strength. I have always loved
-him; I always shall love him. I love him so well that I can do my duty to him,
-Reginald. It is my duty to strain every nerve to prevent this marriage. I had
-rather that my heart should ache than Ernest&rsquo;s. I implore of you to help
-me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dorothy, it has always been my dearest wish that you should marry
-Ernest. I told him so just before that unhappy duel. I love you both. All the
-fibres of my heart that are left alive have wound themselves around you. Jeremy
-I could never care for. Indeed, I fear that I used sometimes to treat the boy
-harshly. He reminds me so of his father. And do you know, my dear, I sometimes
-think that on that point I am not quite sane. But because you have asked me to
-do it, and because you have quoted your dear mother&mdash;may peace be with
-her!&mdash;I will do what I can. This girl Eva is of age, and I will write and
-offer her a home. She need fear no persecution here.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are kind and good, Reginald, and I thank you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The letter shall go by to-night&rsquo;s post. But run away now; I see my
-friend De Talor coming to speak to me;&rdquo; and the white eyebrows drew near
-together in a way that it would have been unpleasant for the great De Talor to
-behold. &ldquo;That business is drawing towards its end.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O Reginald,&rdquo; answered Dorothy, shaking her forefinger at him in
-her old childish way, &ldquo;haven&rsquo;t you given up those ideas yet? They
-are very wrong.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Never mind, Dorothy. I shall give them up soon, when I have squared
-accounts with De Talor. A year or two more&mdash;a stern chase is a long chase,
-you know&mdash;and the thing will be done, and then I shall become a good
-Christian again.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The letter was written. It offered Eva a home and protection.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In due course an answer, signed by Eva herself, came back. It thanked him for
-his kindness, and regretted that circumstances and &ldquo;her sense of
-duty&rdquo; prevented her from accepting the offer.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then Dorothy felt that she had done all that in her lay, and gave the matter
-up.
-</p>
-
-<p class="p2">
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was about this time that Florence drew another picture. It represented Eva
-as Andromeda gazing hopelessly in the dim light of a ghastly dawn out across a
-glassy sea; and far away in the oily depths there was a ripple, and beneath the
-ripple a form travelling towards the chained maiden. The form had a human head
-and cold gray eyes, and its features were those of Mr. Plowden.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And so, day by day, Destiny, throned in space, shot her flaming shuttle from
-darkness into darkness, and the time passed on, as the time must pass, till the
-inevitable end of all things is attained.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva existed and suffered, and that was all she did. She scarcely ate, or drank,
-or slept. But still she lived; she was not brave enough to die, and the chains
-were riveted too tight round her tender wrists to let her flee away. Poor
-nineteenth-century Andromeda! No Perseus shall come to save you.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The sun rose and set in his appointed course, the flowers bloomed and died,
-children were born, and the allotted portion of mankind passed onwards to its
-rest; but no godlike Perseus came flying out of the golden east.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Once more the sun rose. The dragon heaved his head above the quiet waters, and
-she was lost. By her own act, of her own folly and weakness, she was undone.
-Behold her! the wedding is over. The echoes of the loud mockery of the bells
-have scarcely died upon the noonday air, and in her chamber, the chamber of her
-free and happy maiden-hood, the virgin martyr stands alone.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It is done. There lie the sickly scented flowers; there, too, the bride&rsquo;s
-white robe. It is done. Oh, that life were done too, that she might once press
-her lips to his and die!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The door opens, and Florence stands before her, pale, triumphant,
-awe-inspiring.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I must congratulate you, my dear Eva. You really went through the
-ceremony very well; only you looked like a statue.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Florence, why do you come to mock me?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mock you, Eva, mock you! I come to wish you joy as Mr. Plowden&rsquo;s
-wife. I hope that you will be happy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Happy! I shall never be happy. I detest him!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You detest him, and you marry him; there must be some mistake.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There is no mistake. O Ernest, my darling!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Florence smiled.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If Ernest is your darling, why did you not marry Ernest?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How could I marry him when you forced me into this?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Forced you! A free woman of full age cannot be forced. You married Mr.
-Plowden of your own will. You might have married Ernest Kershaw if you
-chose&mdash;he is in many ways a more desirable match than Mr.
-Plowden&mdash;but you did not choose.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Florence, what do you mean? You always said it was impossible. Is this
-all some cruel plot of yours?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Impossible! there is nothing impossible to those who have courage.
-Yes,&rdquo; and she turned upon her sister fiercely, &ldquo;it <i>was</i> a
-plot, and you shall know it, you poor weak fool! <i>I</i> loved Ernest Kershaw,
-and <i>you</i> robbed me of him, although you promised to leave him alone; and
-so I have revenged myself upon you. I despise you, I tell you; you are quite
-contemptible, and yet he could prefer you to me. Well, he has got his reward.
-You have deserted him when he was absent and in trouble, and you have outraged
-his love and your own. You have fallen very low indeed, Eva, and presently you
-will fall lower yet. I know you well. You will sink, till at last you even lose
-the sense of your own humiliation. Don&rsquo;t you wonder what Ernest must
-think of you now? There is Mr. Plowden calling you. Come, it is time for you to
-be going.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva listened aghast, and then sank against the wall, sobbing despairingly.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap31"></a>CHAPTER XV.<br/>
-HANS&rsquo;S CITY OF REST</h2>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Alston, Ernest, and Jeremy had very good sport among the elephants, killing
-in all nineteen bulls. It was during this expedition that an incident occurred
-which in its effect endeared Ernest to Mr. Alston more than ever.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The boy Roger, who always went wherever Mr Alston went, was the object of his
-father&rsquo;s most tender solicitude. He believed in the boy as he believed in
-little else in the world&mdash;for at heart Mr. Alston was a sad
-cynic&mdash;and to a certain extent the boy justified his belief. He was quick,
-intelligent, and plucky, much such a boy as you may pick up by the dozen out of
-any English public school, except that his knowledge of men and manners was
-more developed, as is usual among young colonists. At the age of twelve Master
-Roger Alston knew many things denied to most children of his age. On the
-subject of education Mr. Alston had queer ideas. &ldquo;The best education for
-a boy,&rdquo; he would say, &ldquo;is to mix with grown-up gentlemen. If you send him
-to school, he learns little except mischief; if you let him live with
-gentlemen, he learns, at any rate, to be a gentleman.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But whatever Master Roger knew, he did not know much about elephants, and on
-this point he was destined to gain some experience.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-One day&mdash;it was just after they had got into the elephant
-country&mdash;they were all engaged in following the fresh spoor of a solitary
-bull. But though an elephant is a big beast, it is hard work catching him up
-because he never seems to get tired, and this was exactly what our party of
-hunters found. They followed that energetic elephant for hours, but they could
-not catch him, though the spoorers told them that he was certainly not more
-than a mile or so ahead. At last the sun began to get low, and their legs had
-already got weary; so they gave it up for that day, determining to camp where
-they were. This being so, after a rest, Ernest and the boy Roger started out of
-camp to see if they could not shoot a buck or some birds for supper. Roger had
-a repeating Winchester carbine, Ernest a double-barrelled shot-gun. Hardly had
-they left the camp when Aasv&ouml;gel, Jeremy&rsquo;s Hottentot, came running
-in, and reported that he had seen the elephant, an enormous bull with a white
-spot upon his trunk, feeding in a clump of mimosa, not a quarter of a mile
-away. Up jumped Mr. Alston and Jeremy, as fresh as though they had not walked a
-mile, and, seizing their double-eight elephant rifles, started off with
-Aasv&ouml;gel.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Meanwhile Ernest and Roger had been strolling towards this identical clump of
-mimosa. As they neared it, the former saw some guinea-fowl run into the shelter
-of the trees.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Capital!&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;Guinea-fowl are first-class eating. Now,
-Roger, just you go into the bush and drive the flock over me. I&rsquo;ll stand
-here, and make believe they are pheasants.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The lad did as he was bid. But in order to get well behind the covey of
-guinea-fowl, which are dreadful things to run, he made a little circuit through
-the thickest part of the clump. As he did so his quick eye was arrested by a
-most unusual performance on the part of one of the flat-crowned mimosa-trees.
-Suddenly, and without the slightest apparent reason, it rose into the air, and
-then, behold! where its crown had been a moment before, appeared its roots.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Such an &ldquo;Alice in Wonderland&rdquo; sort of performance on the part of a
-tree could not but excite the curiosity of an intelligent youth. Accordingly,
-Roger pushed forwards, and slipped round an intervening tree. This was what he
-saw: In a little glade about ten paces from him, flapping its ears, stood an
-enormous elephant with great white tusks, looking as large as a house and as
-cool as a cucumber. Nobody, to look at the brute, would have believed that he
-had given them a twenty miles&rsquo; trot under a burning sun. He was now
-refreshing himself by pulling up mimosa-trees as easily as though they were
-radishes, and eating the sweet fibrous roots.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Roger saw this, and his heart burned with ambition to kill that
-elephant&mdash;the mighty great beast, about a hundred times as big as himself,
-who could pull up a large tree and make his dinner off the roots. Roger was a
-plucky boy, and, in his sportsmanlike zeal, he quite forgot that a repeating
-carbine is not exactly the weapon one would choose to shoot elephants with.
-Indeed, without giving the matter another thought, he lifted the little rifle,
-aimed it at the great beast&rsquo;s head, and fired. He hit it somewhere, that
-was very clear, for next moment the air resounded with the most terrific scream
-of fury that it had ever been his lot to hear. That scream was too much for
-him; he turned and fled swiftly. Elephants were evidently difficult things to
-kill.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Fortunately for Roger, the elephant could not for some seconds make out where
-his tiny assailant was. Presently, however, he winded him, and came crashing
-after him, screaming shrilly, with his trunk and tail well up. On hearing the
-shot and the scream of the elephant, Ernest, who was standing some way out in
-the open, in anticipation of a driving shot at the guinea-fowl, had run towards
-the spot where Roger had entered the bush; and, just as he got opposite to it,
-out he came, scuttling along for his life, with the elephant not more than
-twenty paces behind him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then Ernest did a brave thing.
-</p>
-
-<div class="fig" style="width:100%;">
-<a name="illus11"></a>
-<br />
-<img src="images/fig11.jpg" width="402" height="600" alt="[Illustration: ]" />
-<p class="caption">&ldquo;Ernest did a brave thing.&rdquo;
-</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Make for the bush!&rdquo; he yelled to the boy, who at once swerved to
-the right. On thundered the elephant, straight towards Ernest. But with Ernest
-it was evident he considered he had no quarrel, for presently he tried to swing
-himself round after Roger. Then Ernest lifted his shot-gun, and sent a charge
-of No. 4 into the brute&rsquo;s face, stinging him sadly. It was, humanly
-speaking, certain death which he courted, but at the moment his main idea was
-to save the boy. Screaming afresh, the elephant abandoned the pursuit of Roger,
-and made straight for Ernest, who fired the other barrel of small-shot, in the
-vain hope of blinding him. By now the boy had pulled up, being some forty yards
-off, and seeing Ernest just about to be crumpled up, wildly fired the repeating
-rifle in their direction. Some good angel must have guided the little bullet;
-for, as it happened, it struck the elephant in the region of the knee, and,
-forcing its way in, slightly injured a tendon, and brought the great beast
-thundering to the ground. Ernest had only just time to dodge to one side as the
-huge mass came to the earth; indeed, as it was, he got a tap from the tip of
-the elephant&rsquo;s trunk which knocked him down, and, though he did not feel
-it at the time, made him sore for days afterwards. In a moment, however, he was
-up again, and away at his best speed, legging it as he had never legged it
-before in his life; and so was the elephant. People have no idea at what a pace
-an elephant can go when he is out of temper, until they put it to the proof.
-Had it not been for the slight injury to the knee, and the twenty yards&rsquo;
-start he got, Ernest would have been represented by little pieces before he was
-ten seconds older. As it was, when, a hundred and fifty yards farther on,
-elephant and Ernest broke upon the astonished view of Mr. Alston and Jeremy,
-who were hurrying up to the scene of action, they were almost one flesh; that
-is, the tip of the elephant&rsquo;s trunk was now up in the air, and now about
-six inches off the seat of Ernest&rsquo;s trousers, at which it snapped
-convulsively.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Up went Jeremy&rsquo;s heavy rifle, which luckily he had in his hand.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Behind the shoulder, half-way down the ear,&rdquo; said Mr. Alston,
-beckoning to a Kafir to bring his rifle, which he was carrying. The probability
-of Jeremy&rsquo;s stopping the beast at that distance&mdash;they were quite
-sixty yards off&mdash;was infinitesimal.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There was a second&rsquo;s pause. The snapping tip touched the retreating
-trousers, but did not get hold of them, and the contact sent a magnetic thrill
-up Ernest&rsquo;s back.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Boom&mdash;thud&mdash;crash!&rdquo; and the elephant was down dead as a
-door-nail. Jeremy had made no mistake: the bullet went straight through the
-great brute&rsquo;s heart, and broke the shoulder on the other side. He was one
-of those men who not only rarely miss, but always seem to hit their game in the
-right place.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest sank exhausted on the ground, and Mr. Alston and Jeremy rushed up
-rejoicing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Near go that, Ernest,&rdquo; said the former.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest nodded in reply. He could not speak.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;By Jove! where is Roger?&rdquo; he went on, turning pale as he missed
-his son for the first time.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But at this moment that young gentleman hove in sight, and, recovering from his
-fright when he saw that the great animal was stone-dead, rushed up with yells
-of exultation, and, climbing on to the upper tusk, began to point out where he
-had hit him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Meanwhile Mr. Alston had extracted the story of the adventure from Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You young rascal,&rdquo; he said to his son, &ldquo;come off that tusk.
-Do you know that if it had not been for Mr. Kershaw here, who courted almost
-certain death to save you from the results of your own folly, you would be as
-dead as that elephant and as flat as a biscuit? Come down, sir, and offer up
-your thanks to Providence and Mr. Kershaw that you have a sound square inch of
-skin left on your worthless young body!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Roger descended accordingly, considerably crestfallen.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Never you mind, Roger; that was a most rattling good shot of yours at
-his knee,&rdquo; said Ernest, who had now got his breath again. &ldquo;You
-would not do it again if you fired at elephants for a week.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And so the matter passed off; but afterwards Mr. Alston thanked Ernest with
-tears in his eyes for saving his son&rsquo;s life.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This was the first elephant they killed, and also the largest. It measured ten
-feet eleven inches at the shoulder, and the tusks weighed, when dried out,
-about sixty pounds each.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They remained in the elephant country for nearly four months, when the approach
-of the unhealthy season forced them to leave it&mdash;not, however, before they
-had killed a great quantity of large game of all sorts. It was a most
-successful hunt, so successful, indeed, that the ivory they brought down paid
-all the expenses of the trip, and left a handsome surplus over.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was on the occasion of their return to Pretoria that Ernest made the
-acquaintance of a curious character in a curious way.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-As soon as they reached the boundaries of the Transvaal, Ernest bought a horse
-from a Boer, on which he used to ride after the herds of buck which swarmed
-upon the high veldt. They had none with them, because in the country where they
-had been shooting no horse would live. One day, as they were travelling slowly
-along a little before midday, a couple of bull-vilderbeeste galloped across the
-waggon-track about two hundred yards in front of the oxen. The voorlooper
-stopped the oxen in order to give Ernest, who was sitting on the waggon-box
-with a rifle by his side, a steady shot. Ernest fired at the last of the two
-galloping bulls. The line was good; but he did not make sufficient allowance
-for the pace at which the bull was travelling, with the result that instead of
-striking it forwards and killing it, the bullet shattered its flank, and did
-not stop its career.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dash it!&rdquo; said Ernest, when he saw what he had done, &ldquo;I
-can&rsquo;t leave the poor beast like that. Bring me my horse; I will go after
-him, and finish him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The horse, which was tied already saddled behind the waggon, was quickly
-brought, and Ernest, mounting, told them not to keep the waggons for him, as he
-would strike across country and meet them at the outspan place, about a mile or
-so on. Then he started after his wounded bull, which could be plainly discerned
-standing with one leg up on the crest of a rise about a thousand yards away.
-But if ever a vilderbeeste was possessed by a fixed determination not to be
-finished off, it was that particular vilderbeeste. The pace at which a
-vilderbeeste can travel on three legs when he is not too fat is perfectly
-astonishing, and Ernest had traversed a couple of miles of great rolling plain
-before he even got within fair galloping distance of him. He had a good horse,
-however, and at last he got within fifty yards, and then away they went at a
-merry pace, Ernest&rsquo;s object being to ride alongside and put a bullet
-through him. Their gallop lasted a good two miles or more. On the level, Ernest
-gained on the vilderbeeste, but whenever they came to a patch of ant-bear holes
-or a ridge of stones, the vilderbeeste had the pull, and drew away again. At
-last they came to a dry pan or lake about half a mile broad, crowded with
-hundreds of buck of all sorts, which scampered away as they came tearing along.
-Here Ernest at length drew up level with his quarry, and grasping the rifle
-with his right hand, tried to get it so that he could put a bullet through the
-beast, and drop him. But it was no easy matter, as any one who has ever tried
-it will know, and, while he was still making up his mind, the vilderbeeste
-slewed round, and came at him bravely. Had his horse been unused to the work,
-he must have had his inside ripped out by the crooked horns; but he was an old
-hunter, and equal to the occasion. To turn was impossible, the speed was too
-great, but he managed to slew, with the result that the charging animal brushed
-his head, instead of landing himself in his belly. At the same moment Ernest
-stretched out his rifle and pulled the trigger, and, as it chanced, put the
-bullet right through the vilderbeeste and dropped him dead.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then he pulled up, and, dismounting, cut off some of the best of the beef with
-his hunting-knife, stowed it away in a saddle-bag, and set off on his horse,
-now pretty well fagged, to find the waggons. But to find a waggon-track on the
-great veldt, unless you have in the first instance taken the most careful
-bearings, is almost as difficult as it would be to return from a distance to
-any given spot on the ocean without a compass. There are no trees nor hills to
-guide the traveller; nothing but a vast wilderness of land resembling a sea
-petrified in a heavy swell.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest rode on for three or four miles, as he thought, retracing his steps over
-the line of country he had traversed, and at last, to his joy, struck the path.
-There were waggon-tracks on it; but he thought they did not look quite fresh.
-However, he followed them <i>faute de mieux</i> for some five miles. Then he
-became convinced that they could not have been made by his waggons. He had
-overshot the mark, and must hark back. So he turned his weary horse&rsquo;s
-head, and made his way along the road to the spot where his spoor struck into
-it. The waggons must be outspanned, waiting for him a little farther back. He
-went on, one mile, two, three&mdash;no waggons. A little to the left of the
-road was an eminence. He rode to it, and up and scanned the horizon. O joy!
-there far away, five or six miles off, was the white cap of a waggon. He rode
-to it straight across country. Once he got bogged in a vlei or swamp, and had
-to throw himself off, and drag his horse out by the bridle. He struggled on,
-and at last came to the dip in which he had seen the waggon-tent. It was a
-great white stone perched on a mound of brown ones.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-By this time he had utterly lost his reckoning. Just then, to make matters
-worse, a thunder-shower came up with a bitter wind, and drenched him to the
-skin. The rain passed, but the wind did not. It blew like ice, and chilled his
-frame, enervated with the tropical heat in which he had been living, through
-and through. He wandered on aimlessly, till suddenly his tired horse put his
-foot in a hole and fell heavily, throwing him on to his head and shoulder. For
-a few minutes his senses left him; but he recovered, and, mounting his worn-out
-horse, wandered on again. Luckily, he had broken no bones. Had he done so, he
-would probably have perished miserably in that lonely place.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The sun was sinking now, and he was faint for want of food, for he had eaten
-nothing that day but a biscuit. He had not even a pipe of tobacco with him.
-Just as the sun vanished he hit a little path, or what might once have been a
-path. He followed it till the pitchy darkness set in; then he got off his horse
-and took off the saddle, which he put down on the bare black veldt, for a fire
-had recently swept off the dry grass, and wrapping the saddle-cloth round his
-feet, laid his aching head upon the saddle. The reins he hitched round his arm,
-lest the horse should stray away from him to look for food. The wind was
-bitterly cold, and he was wet through; the hyenas came and howled round him. He
-cut off a piece of the raw vilderbeeste-beef and chewed it, but it turned his
-stomach and he spat it out. Then he shivered and sank into a torpor from which
-there was a poor chance of his awakening.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-How long he lay so he did not know&mdash;it seemed a few minutes; it was really
-an hour when suddenly he was awakened by feeling something shaking him by the
-shoulder.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is it?&rdquo; he said wearily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Wat is it? Ach Himmel! wat is it? dat is just wat I wants to know. Wat
-do you here? You shall die so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The voice was the voice of a German, and Ernest knew German well.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I have lost my way,&rdquo; he said, in that language; &ldquo;I cannot
-find the waggons.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, you can speak the tongue of the Vaterland,&rdquo; said his visitor,
-still addressing him in English. &ldquo;I will embrace you!&rdquo; and he did
-so.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest sighed. It is a bore to be embraced in the dark by an unknown male
-German when you feel that you are not far off dissolution.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are hungered?&rdquo; said the German.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest signified that he was.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And athirsted?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Again he signified assent.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And perhaps you have no &lsquo;gui&rsquo; (tobacco)?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, none.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Good! my little wife, my Wilhelmina, shall find you all these
-things.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What the devil,&rdquo; thought Ernest to himself, &ldquo;can a German be
-doing with his little wife in this place?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-By this time the stars had come out, and gave some light.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Come, rouse yourself, and come and see my little wife. O, the
-pferd!&rdquo; (horse)&mdash;&ldquo;we will tie him to my wife. Ah, she is
-beautiful, though her leg shakes. O yes, you will love her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The deuce I shall!&rdquo; ejaculated Ernest; and then, mindful of the
-good things the lady in question was to provide him with, he added solemnly,
-&ldquo;Lead on, Macduff.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Macduffer! my name is not so, my name is Hans; all ze great South Africa
-know me very well, and all South Africa love my wife.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Really!&rdquo; said Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Although he was so miserable, he began to feel that the situation was
-interesting. A lady to whom his horse was to be tied, and whom all South Africa
-was enamoured of, could hardly fail to be interesting. Rising, he advanced a
-step or two with his friend, who he could now see was a large burly man with
-white hair, apparently about sixty years of age. Presently they came to
-something that in the dim light reminded him of the hand-hearse in Kesterwick
-Church, only it had two wheels instead of four, and no springs.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Behold my beautiful wife,&rdquo; said the German. &ldquo;Soon I will
-show you how her leg shakes; it shakes, O, horrid!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Is&mdash;is the lady inside?&rdquo; asked Ernest. It occurred to him
-that his friend might be carting about a corpse.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Inside! no, she is outside, she is all over;&rdquo; and stepping back,
-the German put his head on one side in a most comical fashion, and, regarding
-the unofficial hearse with the deepest affection, said in a low voice,
-&ldquo;Ah, liebe vrouw, ah, Wilhelmina, is you tired, my dear? and how is your
-poor leg?&rdquo; and he caught hold of a groggy wheel and shook it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Had Ernest been a little less wretched, and one degree further off starvation,
-it is probable that he would have exploded with laughter, for he had a keen
-sense of the ludicrous; but he had not got a laugh left in him, and, besides,
-he was afraid of offending the German. So he merely murmured, &ldquo;Poor, poor
-leg!&rdquo; sympathetically, and then alluded to the question of eatables.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, yes, of course. Let us see what Wilhelmina shall give us;&rdquo; and
-he trotted round to the back end of the cart, which, in keeping with its
-hearse-like character, opened by means of two little folding-doors, and pulled
-out, first, two blankets, one of which he gave to Ernest to put round his
-shoulders; second, a large piece of biltong, or sun-dried game-flesh, and some
-biscuits; and, third, a bottle of peach-brandy. On these viands they fell to,
-and though they were not in themselves of an appetising nature, Ernest never
-enjoyed anything more in his life. Their meal did not take long, and after it
-his friend Hans produced some excellent Boer tobacco, and over their pipes
-Ernest told him how he had lost his way. Hans asked him what road he had been
-travelling on.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The Rustenburg road.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then, my friend, you are not more than one thousand paces off it. My
-wife and I we travel along him all day, till just now Wilhelmina she think she
-would like to come up here, and so I come, and now you see the reason why. She
-know you lie here and die in the cold, and she turn up to save your life. Ah,
-the good woman!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest was greatly relieved to hear that he was so near the road, as, once upon
-it, he would have no difficulty in falling in with the waggons. Clearly, during
-the latter part of his wanderings, he must have unknowingly approached it. His
-mind, relieved upon this point, was at liberty to satisfy his curiosity about
-his friend. He soon discovered that he was a harmless lunatic, whose craze it
-was to wander all over South Africa, dragging his hand-cart after him. He made
-for no fixed point, nor had he any settled round. The beginning of the year
-might find him near the Zambesi, and the end near Cape Town or anywhere else.
-By the natives he was looked upon as inspired, and invariably treated with
-respect, and he lived upon what was given to him, or what he shot as he walked
-along. This mode of life he had pursued for years, and though he had many
-adventures, he never came to harm.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You see, my friend,&rdquo; said the simple man, in answer to
-Ernest&rsquo;s inquiries, &ldquo;I make my wife down there in Scatterdorp, in
-the old colony. The houses are a long way off each other there, and the church
-it is in the middle. And the good volk there, they die very fast, and did get
-tired of carrying each other to be buried, and so they come to me and say,
-&lsquo;Hans, you are a carpenter, you must make a beautiful black cart to put
-us in when we die.&rsquo; And so I set to, and I work, and work, and work at my
-cart till I gets quite&mdash;what you call him?&mdash;stoopid. And then one
-night, just as my cart was finished, I dreams that she and I are travelling
-along a wide straight road, like the road on the high veldt, and I knows that
-she is my wife, and that we must travel always together till we reach the City
-of Rest. And far, far away, above the top of a high mountain like the
-Drakensberg, I see a great wide tree, rooted on a cloud and covered all over
-with beautiful snow, that shined in the sunlight like the diamonds at
-Kimberley. And I know that under that tree is the gate of the real Rustenburg,
-the City of Rest, and my wife and I, we must journey on, on, on till we find
-it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Where do you come from now?&rdquo; asked Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;From Utrecht, from out of the east, where the sun rises so red every
-morning over Zululand, the land of bloodshed. O, the land will run with blood
-there. I know it; Wilhelmina told me as we came along; but I don&rsquo;t know
-when. But you are tired. Good! you shall sleep with Wilhelmina; I will sleep
-beneath her. No, you shall, or she will be&mdash;what you call
-him?&mdash;offended.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest crept into the cavity, and at once fell asleep, and dreamed that he had
-been buried alive. Suddenly in the middle of the night there was a most fearful
-jolt, caused by his horse, which was tied to the pole of Wilhelmina, having
-pulled the prop aside and let the pole down with a run. This Ernest mistook for
-the resurrection, and was extremely relieved to find himself in error. At dawn
-he emerged, bade his friend farewell, and gaining the road, rejoined the
-waggons in safety.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap32"></a>CHAPTER XVI.<br/>
-ERNEST ACCEPTS A COMMISSION</h2>
-
-<p>
-A YOUNG man of that ardent, impetuous, intelligent mind which makes him
-charming and a thing to love, as contrasted with the young man of the sober,
-cautious, moneymaking mind (infinitely the most useful article), which makes
-him a &ldquo;comfort&rdquo; to his relatives and a thing to respect, avoid, and
-marry your daughter to, has two great safeguards standing between him and the
-ruin which dogs the heels of the ardent, the impetuous, and the intelligent.
-These are, his religion and his belief in women. It is probable that he will
-start on his erratic career with a full store of both. He has never questioned
-the former; the latter, so far as his own class in life is concerned, are to
-him all sweet and good, and perhaps there is one particular star who only
-shines for him, and is the sweetest and best of them all. But one fine day the
-sweetest and best of all throws him over, being a younger son, and marries his
-eldest brother, or a paralytic cotton-spinner of enormous wealth and uncertain
-temper, and then a sudden change comes over the spirit of the ardent,
-intelligent, and impetuous one. Not being of a well-balanced mind, he rushes to
-the other extreme, and believes in his sore heart that all women would throw
-over such as he and marry eldest brothers or superannuated cotton-spinners. He
-may be right or he may be wrong. The materials for ascertaining the fact are
-wanting, for all women engaged to impecunious young gentlemen do not get the
-chance. But, right or wrong, the result upon the sufferer is the same&mdash;his
-faith in women is shaken, if not destroyed. Nor does the mischief stop there;
-his religion often follows his belief in the other sex, for in some mysterious
-way the two things are interwoven. A young man of the nobler class of mind in
-love is generally for the time being a religious man; his affection lifts him
-more or less above the things of earth, and floats him on its radiant wings a
-day&rsquo;s journey nearer heaven.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The same thing applies conversely. If a man&rsquo;s religious belief is
-emasculated, he becomes suspicious of the &ldquo;sweetest and best;&rdquo; he
-grows cynical, and no longer puts faith in superlatives. From atheism there is
-but a small step to misogyny, or rather to that disbelief in humanity which
-embraces a profounder constituent disbelief in its feminine section, and in
-turn, as already said, the misogynist walks daily along the edge of atheism. Of
-course there is a way out of these discouraging results. If the mind that
-suffers and falls through its suffering be of the truly noble order, it may in
-time come to see that this world is a world not of superlatives, but of the
-most arid positives, with here and there a little comparative oasis to break
-the monotony of its general outline. Its owner may learn that the fault lay
-with him, for believing too much, for trusting too far, for setting up as an
-idol a creature exactly like himself, only several degrees lower beneath proof;
-and at last he may come to see that though &ldquo;sweetests and bests&rdquo;
-are chimerical, there are women in the world who may fairly be called
-&ldquo;sweet and good.&rdquo; Or, to return to the converse side of the
-picture, it may occur to our young gentleman that although Providence starts us
-in the world with a full inherited or indoctrinated belief in a given religion,
-that is not what Providence understands by faith. Faith, perfect faith, is only
-to be won by struggle, and in most cultivated minds by the passage through the
-dim, mirage-clad land of disbelief. The true believer is he who has trodden
-down disbelief, not he who has run away from it. When we have descended from
-the height of our childhood, when we have entertained Apollyon, and having
-considered what he has to say, given him battle and routed him in the plain,
-then, and not till then, can we say with guileless hearts, &ldquo;Lord, I
-believe,&rdquo; and feel no need to add the sadly qualifying words, &ldquo;help
-Thou mine unbelief.&rdquo; Now these are more or less principles of human
-nature. They may not be universally true, probably nothing is&mdash;that is, as
-we define and understand truth. But they apply to the majority of those cases
-which fall strictly within their limits. Among others they applied rather
-strikingly to Ernest Kershaw. Eva&rsquo;s desertion struck his belief in
-womanhood to the ground, and soon his religion lay in the dust beside it. Of
-this his life for some years after that event gave considerable evidence. He
-took to evil ways, he forgot his better self. He raced horses, he devoted
-himself with great success to love-affairs that he would have done better to
-leave alone. Sometimes, to his shame be it said, he drank&mdash;for the
-excitement of drinking, not for the love of it. In short, he gave himself and
-all his fund of energy up to any and every excitement and dissipation he could
-command, and he managed to command a good many. Travelling rapidly from place
-to place in South Africa, he was well known and well liked in all. Now he was
-at Kimberley, now at King William&rsquo;s Town, now at Durban. In each of these
-places he kept race-horses; in each there was some fair woman&rsquo;s face that
-grew the brighter for his coming.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But Ernest&rsquo;s face did not grow the brighter; on the contrary, his eyes
-acquired a peculiar sadness which was almost pathetic in one so young. He could
-not forget. For a few days or a few months he might stifle thought, but it
-always re-arose. Eva, pale queen of women, was ever there to haunt his sleep,
-and though in his waking hours he might curse her memory, when night drew the
-veil from truth the words he murmured were words of love eternal.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He no longer prayed, he no longer reverenced woman, but he was not the happier
-for having freed his soul from these burdens. He despised himself. Occasionally
-he would take stock of his mental condition, and at each such stocktaking he
-would notice that he had receded, not progressed. He was growing coarse, his
-finer sense was being blunted; he was no longer the same Ernest who had written
-that queer letter to his betrothed before disaster overwhelmed him. Slowly and
-surely he was sinking. He knew it, but he did not try to save himself. Why
-should he? He had no object in life. But at times a great depression and
-weariness of existence would take possession of him. It has been said that he
-never prayed; that is not strictly true. Once or twice he did throw himself
-upon his knees and pray with all his strength that he might die. He did more:
-he persistently courted death, and, as is usual in such cases, it persistently
-avoided him. About taking his own life he had scruples, or perhaps he would
-have taken it. In those dark days he hated life, and in his calmer and more
-reflective moments he loathed the pleasures and excitements by means of which
-he strove to make it palatable. His was a fine strung mind, and, in spite of
-himself, he shuddered when it was set to play such coarse music.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-During those years Ernest seemed to bear a charmed existence. There was a
-well-known thoroughbred horse in the Transvaal which had killed two men in
-rapid succession. Ernest bought it and rode it, and it never hurt him.
-Disturbances broke out in Secocoeni&rsquo;s country, and one of the chief
-strongholds was ordered to be stormed. Ernest rode down from Pretoria with
-Jeremy to see the fun, and, reaching the fort the day before the attack, got
-leave to join the storming party. Accordingly, next day at dawn they attacked
-in the teeth of a furious fusillade, and in time took the place, though with
-very heavy loss to themselves. Jeremy&rsquo;s hat was shot off with one bullet
-and his hand cut by another; Ernest, as usual, came off scathless; the man next
-to him was killed, but he was not touched. After that he insisted upon going
-buftalo-shooting towards Delagoa Bay in the height of the fever-season, having
-got rid of Jeremy by persuading him to go to New Scotland to see about a tract
-of land they had bought. He started with a dozen bearers and Mazooku. Six weeks
-later he, Mazooku, and three bearers returned&mdash;all the rest were dead of
-fever.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-On another occasion, Alston, Jeremy, and himself were sent on a political
-mission to a hostile chief, whose stronghold lay in the heart of almost
-inaccessible mountains. The &ldquo;indaba&rdquo; (palaver) took all day, and
-was purposely prolonged in order to enable the intelligent native to set an
-ambush in the pass through which the white chiefs must go back, with strict
-instructions to murder all three of them. When they left the stronghold the
-moon was rising, and, as they neared the pass, up she came behind the mountains
-in all her splendour, flooding the wide valley behind them with her mysterious
-light, and throwing a pale, sad lustre on every stone and tree. On they rode
-steadily through the moonlight and the silence, little guessing how near death
-was to them. The faint beauty of the scene sank deep into Ernest&rsquo;s heart,
-and presently, when they came to a spot where a track ran out loopwise from the
-main pass, returning to it a couple of miles farther on, he half insisted on
-their taking it, because it passed over yet higher ground, and would give them
-a better view of the moon-bathed valley. Mr. Alston grumbled at &ldquo;his
-nonsense&rdquo; and complied, and meanwhile a party of murderers half a mile
-farther on played with their assegais, and wondered why they did not hear the
-sound of the white men&rsquo;s feet. But the white men had already passed along
-the higher path three-quarters of a mile to their right. Ernest&rsquo;s love of
-moonlight effects had saved them all from a certain and perhaps from a
-lingering death.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was shortly after this incident that Ernest and Jeremy were seated together
-on the verandah of the same house at Pretoria where they had been living before
-they went on the elephant hunt, and which they had now purchased. Ernest had
-been in the garden, watering a cucumber-plant he was trying to develop from a
-very sickly seedling. Even if he only stopped a month in a place he would start
-a little garden; it was a habit of his. Presently he came back to the verandah,
-where Jeremy was as usual watching the battle of the red and black ants, which
-after several years&rsquo; encounter was not yet finally decided.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Curse that cucumber-plant!&rdquo; said Ernest, emphatically, &ldquo;it
-won&rsquo;t grow. I tell you what it is, Jeremy, I am sick of this place; I
-vote we go away.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;For goodness&rsquo; sake, Ernest, let us have a little rest; you do
-rattle one about so in those confounded post-carts,&rdquo; replied Jeremy,
-yawning.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I mean, go away from South Africa altogether.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh,&rdquo; said Jeremy, dragging his great frame into an upright
-position, &ldquo;the deuce you do! And where do you want to go
-to&mdash;England?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;England! no, I have had enough of England. South America, I think. But
-perhaps you want to go home. It is not fair to keep dragging you all over the
-world.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My dear fellow, I like it, I assure you. I have no wish to return to Mr.
-Cardus&rsquo;s stool. For goodness&rsquo; sake don&rsquo;t suggest such a
-thing; I should be wretched.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, but you ought to be doing something with your life. It is all very
-well for me, who am a poor devil of a waif and stray, to go on with this sort
-of existence, but I don&rsquo;t see why you should; you should be making your
-way in the world.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Wait a bit, my hearty!&rdquo; said Jeremy, with his slow smile; &ldquo;I
-am going to read you a statement of our financial affairs which I drew up last
-night. Considering that we have been doing nothing all this time except enjoy
-ourselves, and that all our investments have been made out of income, which no
-doubt your respected uncle fancies were dissipated, I do not think that the
-total is so bad. And Jeremy read:
-</p>
-
-<p class="footnote">
-&ldquo;Landed property in Natal and the Transvaal,<br/>
-&emsp; &emsp; estimated value . &ensp; &ensp; . &ensp; &ensp; . &ensp; &ensp; .
-&ensp; &ensp; . &ensp; &ensp; . &emsp; &emsp; &emsp;&ensp; &pound;2500<br/>
-This house &emsp;&ensp;. &ensp; &ensp; . &ensp; &ensp; . &ensp; &ensp; &ensp; .
-&ensp; &ensp; . &ensp; &ensp; . &ensp; &ensp; . &ensp; &ensp; &ensp; &ensp;
-&ensp; &ensp; &ensp;940<br/>
-Stocks&mdash;waggons, &amp;c., say &emsp;&ensp; . &ensp; &ensp; . &ensp; &ensp;
-. &ensp; &ensp; . &ensp; &ensp; &ensp; &emsp;&emsp; &ensp;300<br/>
-Race-horses&ensp; . &emsp; &ensp; &ensp; . &ensp; &ensp; . &ensp; &ensp; .
-&ensp; &ensp; . &ensp; &ensp; . &ensp; &ensp; . &ensp; &ensp; <br/>
-&emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp;
-&emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp;
-&mdash;&mdash;&ndash;<br/>
-</p>
-
-<p>
-I have left that blank.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Put them at 800<i>l.</i>,&rdquo; said Ernest, after thinking. &ldquo;You know I
-won 500<i>l.</i> with Lady Mary on the Cape Town Plate last week.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy went on:
-</p>
-
-<p class="footnote">
-&ldquo;Race-horses and winnings &emsp; . &ensp; &ensp; . &ensp; &ensp; . &ensp;
-&ensp; . &ensp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &pound;1300<br/>
-Sundries&mdash;cash, balance,&amp;c &ensp; . &ensp; &ensp; . &ensp; &ensp; .
-&ensp; &ensp; . &ensp; &ensp; &emsp; &emsp;&emsp;&ensp; 180<br/>
-&emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp;
-&emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &ensp;
-&mdash;&mdash;&ndash;<br/>
-&emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; Total &emsp; &emsp; . &ensp; &ensp; .
-&ensp; &ensp; . &ensp; &ensp; . &emsp; &emsp; &emsp; &ensp; &pound;5220<br/>
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Now of this we have actually saved and invested about twenty-five hundred, the
-rest we have made or has accumulated. Now, I ask you, where could we have done
-better than that, as things go? So don&rsquo;t talk to me about wasting my
-time.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;&rsquo;Bravo, Jeremy! My uncle was right, after all: you ought to have
-been a lawyer; you are first-class at figures. I congratulate you on your
-management of the estates.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My system is simple,&rdquo; answered Jeremy. Whenever there is any money
-to spare I buy something with it then you are not likely to spend it. Then,
-when I have things enough&mdash;waggons, oxen, horses, what not,&mdash;I sell
-them and buy some land; that can&rsquo;t run away. If you only do that sort of
-thing long enough, you will grow rich at last.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Sweetly simple, certainly. Well, five thousand will go a Iong way
-towards stocking a farm or something in South America or wherever we make up
-our minds to go, and then I don&rsquo;t think that we need draw on my uncle any
-more. It is hardly fair to drain him so. Old Alston will come with us, I think,
-and will put in another five thousand. He told me some time ago that he was
-getting tired of South Africa with its Boers and blacks, in his old age and had
-a fancy to make a start in some other place. I will write to him to-night. What
-hotel is he staying at in Maritzburg? the Royal, isn&rsquo;t it? And then I
-vote we clear in the spring.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Right you are, my hearty!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But I say, Jeremy, I really should advise you to think twice before you
-come. A fine, upstanding young man like you should not waste his sweetness on
-the desert air of Mexico, or any such place. You should go home and be admired
-of the young women&mdash;they appreciate a great big chap like you&mdash;and
-make a good marriage, and rear up a large family in a virtuous, respectable,
-and Jones-like fashion. I am a sort of wandering comet without the shine; but,
-I repeat, I see no reason why you should play tail to a second-class
-comet.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Married! get married! I! No, thank you, my boy. Look you, Ernest, in the
-words of the prophet, &lsquo;When a wise man openeth his eye, and seeth a
-thing, verily he shutteth it not up again.&rsquo; Now, I opened my eye and saw
-one or two things in the course of our joint little affair&mdash;Eva, you
-know.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest winced at the name.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I beg your pardon,&rdquo; said Jeremy, noticing it; &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t
-want to allude to painful subjects, but I must to make my meaning clear. I was
-very hard hit, you know, over that lady, but I stopped in time, and, not having
-any imagination to speak of, did not give it rein. What is the consequence? I
-have got over it; sleep well at night, have a capital appetite, and don&rsquo;t
-think about her twice a week. But with you it is different. Hard hit, too,
-large amount of imagination galloping about loose, so to speak&mdash;rapturous
-joy, dreams of true love and perfect union of souls, which no doubt would be
-well enough if the woman could put in her whack of soul, which she can&rsquo;t,
-not having it to spare, but in a general way is gammon. Results, when the
-burst-up comes: want of sleep, want of appetite, a desire to go
-buffalo-shooting in the fever-season, and to be potted by Basutus from behind
-rocks. In short, a general weariness and disgust of life&mdash;O yes, you
-needn&rsquo;t deny it, I have watched you&mdash;most unwholesome state of mind.
-Further results: horse-racing, a disposition to stop away from church, and nip
-Cape sherry; and, worst sign of all, a leaning to ladies&rsquo; society. Being
-a reasoning creature I notice this, and draw my own deductions, which amount to
-the conclusion that you are in a fair way to go to the deuce, owing to trusting
-your life to a woman. And the moral of all this, which I lay to heart for my
-own guidance, is, never speak to a woman if you can avoid it, and when you
-can&rsquo;t, let your speech be yea, yea, and nay, nay, more especially
-&lsquo;nay.&rsquo; Then you stand a good chance of keeping your appetite and
-peace of mind, and of making your way in the world. Marriage,
-indeed!&mdash;never talk to me of marriage again;&rdquo; and Jeremy shivered at
-the thought.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest laughed out loud at his lengthy disquisition.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And I&rsquo;ll tell you what, old fellow,&rdquo; he went on, drawing
-himself up to his full height, and standing right over Ernest, so that the
-latter&rsquo;s six feet looked very insignificant beside him, &ldquo;never you
-speak to me about leaving you again, unless you want to put me clean out of
-temper, because, look here, I don&rsquo;t like it. We have lived together since
-we were twelve, or thereabouts, and, so far as I am concerned, I mean to go on
-living together to the end of the chapter, or till I see I am not wanted. You
-can go to Mexico, or the North Pole, or Acapulco, or wherever you like, but I
-shall go too, and so that is all about it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Thank you, old fellow,&rdquo; said Ernest, simply; and at that moment
-their conversation was interrupted by the arrival of a Kafir messenger with a
-telegram addressed to Ernest. He opened it and read it. &ldquo;Hullo,&rdquo; he
-said, &ldquo;here is something better than Mexico; listen:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;&lsquo;Alston, Pieter Maritzburg, to Kershaw, Pretoria. High
-Commissioner has declared war against Cetywayo. Local cavalry urgently required
-for service in Zululand. Have offered to raise a small corps of about seventy
-mounted men. Offer has been accepted. Will you accept post of second in
-command?&mdash;you would hold the Queen&rsquo;s commission. If so, set about
-picking suitable recruits. Terms ten shillings a day, all found. Am coming up
-Pretoria by this post-cart. Ask Jones if he will accept
-sergeant-major-ship.&rsquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hurrah!&rdquo; sang out Ernest, with flashing eyes. &ldquo;Here is some
-real service at last. Of course you will accept.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Of course,&rdquo; said Jeremy, quietly; &ldquo;but don&rsquo;t indulge
-in rejoicings yet; this is going to be a big business, unless I am
-mistaken.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap33"></a>CHAPTER XVII.<br/>
-HANS PROPHESIES EVIL</h2>
-
-<p>
-Ernest and Jeremy did not let the grass grow under their feet. They guessed
-that there would soon be a great deal of recruiting for various corps, and so
-set to work at once to secure the best men. The stamp of men they aimed at
-getting was the colonial-born Englishman, both because such men have more
-self-respect, independence of character, and &ldquo;gumption,&rdquo; than the
-ordinary drifting sediment from the fields and seaports, and also because they
-were practically ready-made soldiers. They could ride as well as they could
-walk, they were splendid rifle-shots, and they had, too, from childhood, been
-trained in the art of travelling without baggage, and very rapidly. Ernest did
-not find much difficulty in the task. Mr. Alston was well known, and had seen a
-great deal of service as a young man in the Basutu wars, and stories were still
-told of his nerve and pluck. He was known, too, to be a wary man, not rash or
-over-confident, but of a determined mind; and, what is more, to possess a
-perfect knowledge of Zulu warfare and tactics. This went a long way with
-intending recruits, for the first thing a would-be colonial volunteer inquires
-into is the character of his officers. He will not trust his life to men in
-whom he puts no reliance. He is willing to lose it in the way of duty, but he
-has a great objection to having it blundered away. Indeed, in many South
-African volunteer corps it is a fundamental principle that the officers should
-be elected by the men themselves. Once elected, however, they cannot be deposed
-except by competent authority.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest, too, was by this time well known in the Transvaal, and universally
-believed in. Mr. Alston could not have chosen a better lieutenant. He was known
-to have pluck and dash, and to be ready-witted in emergency; but it was not
-that only which made him acceptable to the individuals whose continued
-existence would very possibly depend upon his courage and discretion. Indeed,
-it would be difficult to say what it was; but there are some men who are by
-nature born leaders of their fellows, and who inspire confidence magnetically.
-Ernest had this great gift. At first sight he was much like any other young
-man, rather careless-looking than otherwise in appearance, and giving the
-observer the impression that he was thinking of something else; but old hands
-at native warfare, looking into his dark eyes, saw something there which told
-them that this young fellow, boy as he was, comparatively speaking, would not
-show himself wanting in the moment of emergency, either in courage or
-discretion. Jeremy&rsquo;s nomination, too, as sergeant-major, a very important
-post in such a corps, was popular enough. People had not forgotten his victory
-over the Boer giant, and besides, a sergeant-major with such a physique would
-have been a credit to any corps.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-All these things helped to make recruiting an easy task, and when Alston and
-his son Roger, weary and bruised, stepped out of the Natal post-cart four days
-later, it was to be met by Ernest and Jeremy with the intelligence that his
-telegram had been received, the appointments accepted, and thirty-five men
-provisionally enrolled subject to his approval.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My word, young gentlemen,&rdquo; he said, highly pleased, &ldquo;you are
-lieutenants worth having.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The next fortnight was a busy one for all concerned. The organisation of a
-colonial volunteer corps is no joke, as anybody who has ever tried it can
-testify. There were rough uniforms to be provided, arms to be obtained, and a
-hundred and one other wants to be satisfied. Then came some delay about the
-horses, which were to be served out by Government. At last these were handed
-over, a good-looking lot, but apparently very wild. Matters were at this point,
-when one day Ernest was seated in the room he used as an office in his house,
-enrolling a new recruit previous to his being sworn, interviewing a tradesman
-about flannel shirts, making arrangements for a supply of forage, filling up
-the endless forms which the imperial authorities required for transmission to
-the War Office, and a hundred other matters. Suddenly his orderly announced
-that two privates of the corps wished to see him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is it?&rdquo; he asked of the orderly, testily; for he was nearly
-worked to death.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;A complaint, sir.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, send them in.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The door opened, and a curious couple entered. One was a great, burly
-sailor-man, who had been a quartermaster on board one of her Majesty&rsquo;s
-ships at Cape Town, got drunk, overstayed his leave, and deserted rather than
-face the punishment; the other a quick, active little fellow, with a face like
-a ferret. He was a Zululand trader, who had ruined himself by drink, and a
-peculiarly valuable member of the corps on account of his knowledge of the
-country in which they were going to serve. Both the men saluted and stood at
-ease.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, my men, what is it?&rdquo; asked Ernest, going on filling up his
-forms.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nothing, so far as I am concerned, sir,&rdquo; said the little man.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest looked up sharply at the quondam tar.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now, Adam, your complaint; I have no time to waste.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Adam hitched up his breeches and began:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You see, sir, I brought <i>he</i> here by the scruff of the neck.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s true, sir,&rdquo; said the little man, rubbing that portion
-of his body.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Because he and I, sir, as is messmates, sir, &rsquo;ad a difference of
-opinion. It was his day, you see, sir, to cook for our mess, and instead of
-putting on the pot, sir, he comes to me he does, and he says &lsquo;Adam, you
-blooming father of a race of fools&rsquo;&mdash;that&rsquo;s what he says, sir,
-a-comparing of me to the gent who lived in a garden&mdash;&lsquo;why
-don&rsquo;t you come and take the &mdash;&mdash; skins off the &mdash;&mdash; taters, instead of
-a-squatting of yourself down on that there &mdash;&mdash; bed!&rsquo;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Slightly in error, sir,&rdquo; broke in the little man, suavely;
-&ldquo;our big friend&rsquo;s memory is not as substantial as his form. What I
-said was, &lsquo;My <i>dear</i> Adam, as I see you have nothing to occupy your
-time, except sit and play a jew&rsquo;s-harp upon your <i>couch,</i> would you
-be so kind as to come and assist me to remove the outer integument of these
-potatoes?&rsquo;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest began to explode, but checked himself, and said sternly:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t talk nonsense, Adam; tell me your complaint.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, sir,&rdquo; answered the big sailor, scratching his head,
-&ldquo;if I must give it a name, it is this&mdash;this here man, sir, be too
-<i>infarnal sargustic</i>.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Be off with you both,&rdquo; said Ernest, sternly, &ldquo;and
-don&rsquo;t trouble me with any such nonsense again, or I will put you both
-under arrest, and stop your pay. Come, march!&rdquo; and he pointed to the
-door. As he did so he observed a Boer gallop swiftly past the house, and take
-the turn to Government House.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is up now?&rdquo; he wondered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Half an hour afterwards another man passed the window, also at full gallop, and
-also turned up towards Government House. Another half-hour passed, and Mr.
-Alston came hurrying in.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Look here, Ernest,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;here is a pretty business.
-Three men have come in to report that Cetewayo has sent an Impi (army) round by
-the back of Secocoeni&rsquo;s country to burn Pretoria, and return to Zululand
-across the High Veldt. They say that the Impi is now resting in the Saltpan
-Bush, about twenty miles off, and will attack the town to-night or to-morrow
-night. All these three, who have, by the way, had no communication with each
-other, state that they have actually seen the captains of the Impi, who came to
-tell them to bid the other Dutchmen stand aside, as they are now fighting the
-Queen, and they would not be hurt.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It seems incredible,&rdquo; said Ernest; &ldquo;do you believe
-it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know. It is possible, and the evidence is strong. It is
-possible; I have known the Zulus make longer marches than that. The Governor
-has ordered me to gallop to the spot, and report if I can see anything of this
-Impi.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Am I to go too?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, you will remain in the corps. I take Roger with me&mdash;he is a
-light weight&mdash;and two spare horses. If there should be an attack and I
-should not be back, or if anything should happen, you will do your duty.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Good-bye. I am off. You had better muster the men to be ready for an
-emergency;&rdquo; and he was gone.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ten minutes afterwards, down came an orderly from the officer commanding, with
-a peremptory order to the effect that the officer commanding Alston&rsquo;s
-Horse was to mount and parade his men in readiness for immediate service.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Here is a pretty go,&rdquo; thought Ernest, &ldquo;and the horses not
-served out yet!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Just then Jeremy came in, saluted, and informed him that the men were mustered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Serve out the saddlery. Let every man shoulder his saddle. Tell Mazooku
-to bring out the &lsquo;Devil&rsquo; (Ernest&rsquo;s favourite horse), and
-march the men up to the Government stables. I will be with you
-presently.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy saluted again with much ceremony and vanished. He was the most
-punctilious sergeant-major who ever breathed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Twenty minutes later, a long file of men, each with a carbine slung to his
-back, and a saddle on his head, which, at a distance, gave them the appearance
-of a string of gigantic mushrooms, were to be seen proceeding towards the
-Government stables a mile away.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest, mounted on his great black stallion, and looking, in his military
-uniform and the revolver slung across his shoulders, a typical volunteer
-officer, was there before them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now, my men,&rdquo; he said, as soon as they were paraded, &ldquo;go in,
-and each man choose the horse which he likes best, bridle him, and bring him
-out and saddle him. Sharp!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The men broke their ranks and rushed to the stables, each anxious to secure a
-better horse than his neighbours. Presently from the stables there arose a
-sound of kicking, plunging, and &ldquo;wo-hoing&rdquo; impossible to describe.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There will be a pretty scene soon, with these unbroken brutes,&rdquo;
-thought Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He was not destined to be disappointed. The horses were dragged out, most of
-them lying back upon their haunches, kicking, bucking, and going through every
-other equine antic.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Saddle up!&rdquo; shouted Ernest, as soon as they were all out.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was done with great difficulty.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now mount.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Sixty men lifted their legs and swung themselves into the saddle, not without
-sad misgivings. A few seconds passed, and at least twenty of them were on the
-broad of their backs; one or two were being dragged by the stirrup-leather; a
-few were clinging to their bucking and plunging steeds; and the remainder of
-Alston&rsquo;s Horse was scouring the plain in every possible direction. Never
-was there such a scene.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In time, however, most of the men got back again, and some sort of order was
-restored. Several men were hurt, one or two badly. These were sent to the
-hospital, and Ernest formed the rest into half-sections, to be marched to the
-place of rendezvous. Just then, to make matters better, down came the rain in
-sheets, soaking them to the skin, and making confusion worse confounded. So
-they rode to the town, which was by this time in an extraordinary state of
-panic. All business was suspended; women were standing about on the verandahs,
-hugging their babies and crying, or making preparations to go into laager; men
-were hiding deeds and valuables, or hurrying to defence meetings on the
-market-square, where the Government were serving out rifles and ammunition to
-all able-bodied citizens; frightened mobs of Basutos and Christian Kafirs were
-jabbering in the streets, and telling tales of the completeness of Zulu
-slaughter, or else running from the city to pass the night among the hills.
-Altogether the scene was most curious, till dense darkness came down over it
-like an extinguisher, and put it out.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest took his men to a building which the Government had placed at their
-disposal, and had the horses stabled, but not unsaddled. Presently orders came
-down to him to keep the corps under arms all night; to send out four patrols,
-to be relieved at midnight, to watch the approaches to the town; and at dawn to
-saddle up and reconnoitre the neighbouring country.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest obeyed these orders as well as he could; that is, he sent the patrols
-out, but so dense was the darkness that they never got back again till the
-following morning, when they were collected, and, in one instance, dug out of
-the various ditches, quarry-holes, &amp;c., into which they had fallen.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-About eleven o&rsquo;clock Ernest was seated in a little room that opened out
-of the main building where they were quartered, consulting with Jeremy about
-matters connected with the corps, and wondering if Alston had found a Zulu
-Impi, or if it was all gammon when suddenly they heard the sharp challenge of
-the sentry outside:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Who goes there?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Whoever it is had better answer sharp,&rdquo; said Ernest; &ldquo;I gave
-the sentry orders to be quick with his rifle to-night.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Bang!&mdash;crash! followed by loud howls of &ldquo;Wilhelmina, my wife! Ah,
-the cruel man has killed my Wilhelmina!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Heavens, it is that lunatic German! Here, orderly, run up to the Defence
-Committee and the Government offices, and tell them that it is nothing; they
-will think the Zulus are here. Tell two men to bring the man in here, and to
-stop his howls.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Presently Ernest&rsquo;s old friend of the High Veldt, looking very wild and
-uncouth in the lamplight, with his long beard and matted hair, from which the
-rain was dripping, was bundled rather unceremoniously into the room.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, there you are, dear sir; it is two&mdash;three years since we meet.
-I look for you everywhere, and they tell me you are here, and I come on quick
-all through the dark and the rain; and then before I know if I am on my head or
-my heel, the cruel man he ups a rifle, and do shoot my Wilhelmina, and make a
-great hole through her poor stomach. O sir, wat shall I do?&rdquo; and the
-great child began to shed tears; &ldquo;you, too, will weep: you, too, love my
-Wilhelmina, and sleep with her one night&mdash;bo-hoo!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;For goodness&rsquo; sake, stop that nonsense! This is no time or place
-for such fooling.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He spoke sharply, and the monomaniac pulled up, only giving vent to an
-occasional sob.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now, what is your business with me?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The German&rsquo;s face changed from its expression of idiotic grief to one of
-refined intelligence. He glanced towards Jeremy, who was exploding in the
-corner.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You can speak before this gentleman, Hans,&rdquo; said Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Sir, I am going to say a strange thing to you this night.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He was speaking quite quietly and composedly now, and might have been mistaken
-for a sane man.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Sir, I hear that you go down to Zululand to help to fight the fierce
-Zulus. When I hear it, I was far away, but something come into my head to
-travel as quick as Wilhelmina can, and come and tell you not to go.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What do you mean?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How can I say what I do mean? This I know&mdash;many shall go down to
-Zululand who rest in this house to-night, few shall come back.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You mean that I shall be killed?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I know not. There are things as bad as death, and yet not death.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He covered his eyes with his hand, and continued:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I cannot <i>see</i> you dead, but do not go; I pray you do not
-go.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My good Hans, what is the good of coming to me with such an old
-wives&rsquo; tale? Even if it were true, and I knew that I must be killed
-twenty times, I should go. I cannot run away from my duty.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That is spoken as a brave man should,&rdquo; answered his visitor, in
-his native tongue. &ldquo;I have done <i>my</i> duty, and told you what Wilhelmina
-said. Now go, and when the black men are leaping up at you like the sea-waves
-round a rock, may the God of Rest guide your hand, and bring you safe from the
-slaughter!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest gazed at the old man&rsquo;s pale face; it wore a curious rapt
-expression, and the eyes were looking upwards.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Perhaps, old friend,&rdquo; he said, addressing him in German, &ldquo;I,
-as well as you, have a City of Rest which I would reach, and care not if I pass
-thither on an assegai.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I know it,&rdquo; replied Hans, in the same tongue; &ldquo;but useless
-is it to seek rest till God gives it. You have sought and passed through the
-jaws of many deaths, but you have not found. If it be not God&rsquo;s will, you
-will not find it now. I know you too seek rest, my brother, and had I known
-that you would find that only down there&rdquo;&mdash;and he pointed towards
-Zululand&mdash;&ldquo;I had not come down to warn you, for blessed is rest, and
-happy he who gains it. But no, it is not that; I am sure now that you will not
-die; your evil, whatever it is, will fall from heaven.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So be it,&rdquo; said Ernest; &ldquo;you are a strange man. I thought
-you a common monomaniac, and now you speak like a prophet.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The old man smiled.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are right; I am both. Mostly I am mad. I know it. But sometimes my
-madness has its moments of inspiration, when the clouds lift from my mind, and
-I see things none others can see, and hear voices to which your ears are deaf.
-Such a moment is on me now; soon I shall be mad again. But before the cloud
-settles I would speak to you. Why, I know not, save that I loved you when first
-I saw your eyes open there upon the cold veldt. Presently I must go, and we
-shall meet no more, for I draw near to the snow-clad tree that marks the gate
-of the City of Rest. I can look into your heart now and see the trouble in it,
-and the sad, beautiful face that is printed on your mind. Ah, she is not happy;
-she, too, must work out her rest. But the time is short, the cloud settles, and
-I would tell you what is in my mind. Even though trouble, great trouble, close
-you in, do not be cast down, for trouble is the key of heaven. Be good; turn to
-the God you have neglected; struggle against the snares of the senses. O, I can
-see now! For you and for all you love there is joy and there is peace!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Suddenly he broke off; the look of inspiration faded from his face, which grew
-stupid and wild-looking.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, the cruel man; he made a great hole in the stomach of my
-Wilhelmina!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest had been bending forwards, listening with parted lips to the old
-man&rsquo;s talk. When he saw that the inspiration had left him, he raised his
-head and said:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Gather yourself together, I beg you, for a moment. I wish to ask one
-question. Shall I ever&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How shall I stop de bleeding from the witals of my dear wife?&mdash;who
-will plug up the hole in her?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest gazed at the man. Was he putting all this on?&mdash;or was he really
-mad? For the life of him he could not tell.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Taking out a sovereign, he gave it to him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There is money to doctor Wilhelmina with,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;Would
-you like to sleep here?&mdash;I can give you a blanket.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The old man took the money without hesitation, and thanked Ernest for it, but
-said he must go on at once.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Where are you going to?&rdquo; asked Jeremy, who had been watching him
-with great curiosity, but had not understood that part of the conversation
-which had been carried on in German.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Hans turned upon him with a quick look of suspicion.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Rustenburg&rdquo; (<i>Anglicè;,</i> the town of rest), he answered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Indeed! the road is bad, and it is far to travel.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; he replied, &ldquo;the road is rough and long.
-Farewell!&rdquo; And he was gone.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, he is a curious old buster, and no mistake, with his cheerful
-anticipations and his Wilhelmina,&rdquo; reflected Jeremy, aloud. &ldquo;Just
-fancy starting for Rustenburg at this hour of the night, too! Why it is a
-hundred miles off!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest only smiled. He knew that it was no earthly Rustenburg that the old man
-sought.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Some while afterwards he heard that Hans had attained the rest which he
-desired. Wilhelmina got fixed in a snowdrift in a pass of the Drakensberg. He
-was unable to drag her out.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-So he crept underneath and fell asleep, and the snow came down and covered
-them.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap34"></a>CHAPTER XVIII.<br/>
-MR. ALSTON&rsquo;S VIEWS</h2>
-
-<p>
-The Zulu attack on Pretoria ultimately turned out only to have existed in the
-minds of two mad Kafirs, who dressed themselves up after the fashion of chiefs,
-and personating two Zulu nobles of repute, who were known to be in the command
-of regiments, rode from house to house, telling the Dutch inhabitants that they
-had an Impi of thirty thousand men lying in the bush, and bidding them stand
-aside while they destroyed the Englishmen. Hence the scare.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The next month was a busy one for Alston&rsquo;s Horse. It was drill, drill,
-drill, morning, noon, and night. But the results soon became apparent. In three
-weeks from the day they got their horses, there was not a smarter, quicker
-corps in South Africa, and Mr. Alston and Ernest were highly complimented on
-the soldier-like appearance of the men, and the rapidity and exactitude with
-which they executed all the ordinary cavalry manoeuvres.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They were to march from Pretoria on the 10th of January, and expected to
-overtake Colonel Glynn&rsquo;s column, with which was the General, about the
-18th, by which time Mr. Alston calculated the real advance upon Zululand would
-begin.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-On the 8th, the good people of Pretoria gave the corps a farewell banquet, for
-most of its members were Pretoria men; and colonists are never behindhand when
-there is an excuse for conviviality and good-fellowship.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Of course, after the banquet, Mr.&mdash;or, as he was now called,
-Captain&mdash;Alston&rsquo;s health was drunk. But Alston was a man of few
-words, and had a horror of speech-making.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He contented himself with a few brief sentences of acknowledgment, and sat
-down. Then somebody proposed the health of the other commissioned and
-noncommissioned officers, and to this Ernest rose to respond, making a very
-good speech in reply. He rapidly sketched the state of political affairs, of
-which the Zulu war was the outcome, and, without expressing any opinion on the
-justice or wisdom of that war, of which, to speak the truth, he had grave
-doubts, he went on to show, in a few well-chosen, weighty words, how vital were
-the interests involved in its successful conclusion, now that it once had been
-undertaken. Finally he concluded thus:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am well aware, gentlemen, that with many of those who are your guests
-here to-night, and my own comrades, this state of affairs and the conviction of
-the extreme urgency of the occasion has been the cause of their enlistment. It
-is impossible for me to look down these tables, and see so many in our
-rough-and-ready uniform, whom I have known in other walks of life, as farmers,
-storekeepers, Government clerks, and what not, without realising most clearly
-the extreme necessity that can have brought these peaceable citizens together
-on such an errand as we are bent on. Certainly it is not the ten shillings a
-day, or the mere excitement of savage warfare, that has done this&rdquo; (cries
-of &lsquo;No, no!&rsquo;);&rdquo; because most of them can well afford to
-despise the money, and many more have seen enough of native war, and know well
-that few rewards and plenty of hard work fall to the lot of colonial
-volunteers. Then what is it? I will venture a reply. It is that sense of
-patriotism which is a part and parcel of the English mind&rdquo; (cheers),
-&ldquo;and which from generation to generation has been the root of
-England&rsquo;s greatness, and, so long as the British blood remains untainted,
-will from unborn generation to generation be the mainspring of the greatness
-that is yet to be of those wider Englands, of which I hope this continent will
-become not the least.&rdquo; (Loud cheers.)
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That, gentlemen and men of Alston&rsquo;s Horse, is the bond which
-unites us together; it is the sense of a common duty to perform, of a common
-danger to combat, of a common patriotism to vindicate. And for that reason,
-because of the patriotism and the duty, I feel sure that when the end of this
-campaign comes, whatever that end may be, no one, be he imperial officer, or
-newspaper correspondent, or Zulu foe, will be able to say that Alston&rsquo;s
-Horse shirked its work, or was mutinous, or proved a broken reed, piercing the
-side of those who leaned on it.&rdquo; (Cheers.) &ldquo;I feel sure, too, that,
-though there may be a record of brave deeds such as become brave men, there
-will be none of a comrade deserted in the time of need, or of a failure in the
-moment of emergency, however terrible that emergency may be.&rdquo; (Cheers.)
-&ldquo;Ay, my brethren in arms,&rdquo; and here Ernest&rsquo;s eyes flashed and
-his strong clear voice went ringing down the great hall, &ldquo;whom England
-has called, and who have not failed to answer to the call, I repeat, however
-terrible may be that emergency, even if it should involve the certainty of
-death&mdash;I speak thus because I feel I am addressing brave men, who do not
-fear to die, when death means duty, and life means dishonour&mdash;I know well
-that you will rise to it, and, falling shoulder to shoulder, will pass as
-heroes should on to the land of shades&mdash;on to that Valhalla of which no
-true heart should fear to set foot upon the threshold.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest sat down amid ringing cheers. Nor did these noble words, coming as they
-did straight from the loyal heart of an English gentleman, fail of their
-effect. On the contrary, when, a fortnight later, Alston&rsquo;s Horse formed
-that fatal ring on Isandhlwana&rsquo;s bloody field, they flashed through the
-brain of more than one despairing man, so that he set his teeth and died the
-harder for them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Bravo, my young Viking!&rdquo; said Mr. Alston to Ernest, while the roof
-was still echoing to the cheers evoked by his speech, &ldquo;the old Bersekir
-spirit is cropping up, eh?&rdquo; He knew that Ernest&rsquo;s mother&rsquo;s
-family, like so many of the old Eastern County stocks, were of Danish
-extraction.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was a great night for Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Two days later Alston&rsquo;s Horse, sixty-four strong, marched out of Pretoria
-with a military band playing before. Alas! they never marched back again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At the neck of the poort or pass the band and the crowd of ladies and gentlemen
-who had accompanied them halted, and, having given them three cheers, turned
-and left them. Ernest, too, turned and gazed at the pretty town, with its white
-houses and rose-hedges red with bloom, nestling on the plain beneath, and
-wondered if he would ever see it again. He never did.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The troop was then ordered to march at ease in half-sections, and Ernest rode
-up to the side of Alston; on his other side was the boy Roger, now about
-fourteen years of age, who acted as Alston&rsquo;s aide-de-camp, and was in
-high spirits at the prospect of the coming campaign. Presently Alston sent his
-son back to the other end of the line on some errand.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest watched him as he galloped off, and a thought struck him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Alston,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;do you think that it is wise to bring
-that boy into this business?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-His friend slewed himself round sharply in the saddle.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why not?&rdquo; he asked, in his deliberate way.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, you know there is a risk.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And why should not the boy run risks as well as the rest of us? Look
-here, Ernest, when I first met you there in Guernsey I was going to see the
-place where my wife was brought up. Do you know how she died?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I have heard she died a violent death; I do not know how.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then I will tell you, though it costs me something to speak of it. She
-died by a Zulu assegai, a week after the boy was born. She saved his life by
-hiding him under a heap of straw. Don&rsquo;t ask me particulars; I can&rsquo;t
-bear to talk of it. Perhaps now you understand why I am commanding a corps
-enrolled to serve against the Zulus. Perhaps, too, you will understand why the
-lad is with me. We go to avenge my wife and his mother, or to fall in the
-attempt. I have waited long for the opportunity; it has come.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest relapsed into silence, and presently fell back to his troop.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-On the 20th of January, Alston&rsquo;s Horse, having moved down by easy marches
-from Pretoria, camped at Rorke&rsquo;s Drift, on the Bulialo River, not far
-from a store and a thatched building used as a hospital, which were destined to
-become historical. Here orders reached them to march on the following day and
-join No. 3 column, with which was Lord Chelmsford himself, and which was camped
-about nine miles from the Bulialo River, at a spot called Isandhlwana, or the
-&ldquo;Place of the Little Hand.&rdquo; Next day, the 21st of January, the
-corps moved on accordingly, and following the waggon-track that runs past the
-Inhlazatye Mountain, by midday came up to the camp, where about twenty-five
-hundred men of all arms were assembled under the immediate command of Colonel
-Glynn. Their camp, which was about eight hundred yards square, was pitched
-facing a wide plain, with its back towards a precipitous, slab-sided hill, of
-the curious formation sometimes to be seen in South Africa. This was
-Isandhlwana.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hullo!&rdquo; said Alston, as, on reaching the summit of the neck over
-which the waggon-road runs, they came in sight of the camp, &ldquo;they are not
-entrenched. By Jove,&rdquo; he added, after scanning the camp carefully,
-&ldquo;they haven&rsquo;t even got a waggon-laager!&rdquo; and he whistled
-expressively.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What do you mean?&rdquo; asked Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Alston so rarely showed surprise that he knew there must be something very
-wrong.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I mean, Ernest, that there is nothing to prevent this camp from being
-destroyed, and every soul in it, by a couple of Zulu regiments, if they choose
-to make a night attack. How are they to be kept out, I should like to know, in
-the dark, when you can&rsquo;t see to shoot them, unless there is some barrier?
-These officers, fresh from home, don&rsquo;t know what a Zulu charge is, that
-is very clear. I only hope they won&rsquo;t have occasion to find out. Look
-there,&rdquo; and he pointed to a waggon lumbering along before them, on the
-top of which, among a lot of other miscellaneous articles, lay a bundle of
-cricketing bats and wickets, &ldquo;they think that they are going on a picnic.
-What is the use, too, I should like to know, of sending four feeble columns
-sprawling over Zululand, to run the risk of being crushed in detail by a foe
-that can move from point to point at the rate of fifty miles a day, and which
-can at any moment slip past them and turn Natal into a howling wilderness?
-There, it is no use grumbling; I only hope I may be wrong. Get back to your
-troop, Ernest, and let us come into camp smartly. Form fours&mdash;trot!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-On arrival in the camp, Mr. Alston learned, on reporting himself to the officer
-commanding, that two strong parties of mounted men under the command of Major
-Dartnell were out on a reconnaissance towards the Inhlazatye Mountain, in which
-direction the Zulus were supposed to be in force. The orders he received were
-to rest his horses, as he might be required to join the mounted force with
-Major Dartnell on the morrow.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-That night, as Alston and Ernest stood together at the door of their tent,
-smoking a pipe before turning in, they had some conversation. It was a
-beautiful night, and the stars shone brightly. Ernest looked at them, and
-thought on how many of man&rsquo;s wars those stars had looked.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Star-gazing?&rdquo; asked Mr. Alston.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I was contemplating our future homes,&rdquo; said Ernest, laughing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, you believe that, do you? think you are immortal, and that sort of
-thing?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes; I believe that we shall live many lives, and that some of them will
-be there,&rdquo; and he pointed to the stars. &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know. I think it rather presumptuous. Why should you
-suppose that for you is reserved a bright destiny among the stars more than for
-these?&rdquo; and he put out his hand and clasped several of a swarm of
-flying-ants which were passing at the time. Just think how small must be the
-difference between these ants and us in the eyes of a Power who can produce
-both. The same breath of life animates both. These have their homes, their
-government, their colonies, their drones and workers. They enslave and annex,
-lay up riches, and, to bring the argument to an appropriate conclusion, make
-peace and war. What then is the difference? We are bigger, walk on two legs,
-have a larger capacity for suffering, and, we believe, a soul. Is it so great
-that we should suppose that for us is reserved a heaven, or all the glorious
-worlds which people space&mdash;for these, annihilation? Perhaps we are at the
-top of the tree of development, and for them may be the future, for us the
-annihilation. Who knows? There, fly away, and make the most of the present, for
-nothing else is certain.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You overlook religion entirely.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Religion? Which religion? There are so many. Our Christian God, Buddha,
-Mohammed, Brahma, all number their countless millions of worshippers. Each
-promises a different thing, each commands the equally intense belief of his
-worshippers, for with them all blind faith is a condition precedent; and each
-appears to satisfy their spiritual aspirations. Can all of these be true
-religions? Each holds the other false and outside the pale; each tries to
-convert the other, and fails. There are many lesser ones of which the same
-thing may be said.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But the same spirit underlies them all.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Perhaps. There is much that is noble in all religions, but there is also
-much that is terrible. To the actual horrors and wearing anxieties of physical
-existence, religion bids us add on the vaguer horrors of a spiritual existence,
-which are to be absolutely endless. The average Christian would be
-uncomfortable if you deprived him of his hell and his personal devil. For
-myself, I decline to believe in such things. If there is a hell, it is this
-world; this world is the place of expiation for the sins of the world, and the
-only real devil is the devil of man&rsquo;s evil passions.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is possible to be religious and be a good man without believing in
-hell,&rdquo; said Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, I think so, otherwise my chance is a poor one. Besides, I do not
-deny the Almighty Power. I only deny the cruelty that is attributed to Him. It
-may be that, from the accumulated mass of the wrong and bloodshed and agony of
-this hard world, that Power is building up some high purpose. Out of the bodies
-of millions of living creatures Nature worked out her purpose and made the
-rocks, but the process must have been unpleasant to the living creatures by
-whose humble means the great strata were reared up. They lived, to die in
-billions, that tens of thousands of years afterwards there might be a rock. It
-may be so with us. Our tears and blood and agony may produce some solid end
-that now we cannot guess; their volume, which cannot be wasted, for nothing is
-wasted, may be building up one of the rocks of God&rsquo;s far-off purpose. But
-that we shall be tortured here for a time in order that we may be indefinitely
-tortured there and he pointed to the stars, &ldquo;that I will never believe.
-Look at the mist rising from that hollow; so does the reek of the world&rsquo;s
-misery rise as an offering to the world&rsquo;s gods. The mist will cease to
-rise, and fall again in rain, and bring a blessing; but the incense of human
-suffering rises night and day for so long as the earth shall endure, nor does
-it fall again in dews of mercy. And yet Christians, who declare that God is
-love, declare, too, that for the vast majority of their fellow-creatures this
-process is to continue from millennium to millennium.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It depends on our life, they say.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Look here, Ernest, a man can do no more than he can. When I got to the
-age of discretion, which I put at eight-and-twenty&mdash;you have hardly
-reached it yet, my boy, you are nothing but a babe&mdash;I made three
-resolutions: always to try and do my duty, never to turn my back on a poor man
-or a friend in trouble, and, if possible, not to make love to my
-neighbour&rsquo;s wife. Those resolutions I have often broken more or less,
-either in the spirit or the letter, but in the main I have stuck to them, and I
-can put my hand upon my heart to-night and say, &lsquo;I have done my
-best!&rsquo; And so I go my path, turning neither to the right nor to the left,
-and when Fate finds me, I shall meet him, fearing nothing, for I know he has
-wreaked his worst upon me, and can only at the utmost bring me eternal sleep;
-and hoping nothing, because my experience here has not been such as to justify
-the hope of any happiness for man, and my vanity is not sufficiently strong to
-allow me to believe in the intervention of a superior Power to save so
-miserable a creature from the common lot of life. Good-night.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-On the following day his fate found him.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap35"></a>CHAPTER XIX.<br/>
-ISANDHLWANA</h2>
-
-<p>
-Midnight came, and the camp was sunk in sleep. Up to the sky, whither it was
-decreed their spirits should pass before the dark closed in again and hid their
-mangled corpses, floated the faint breath of some fourteen hundred men. There
-they lay, sleeping the healthy sleep of vigorous manhood, their brains busy
-with the fantastic madness of a hundred dreams, and little recking of the
-inevitable morrow. There, in his sleep, the white man saw his native village,
-with its tall, wind-swayed elms, and the gray old church that for centuries had
-watched the last slumber of his race; the Kafir, the sunny slope of fair Natal,
-with the bright light dancing on his cattle&rsquo;s horns, and the green of the
-gardens, where, for his well-being, his wives and children toiled. To some that
-night came dreams of high ambition, of brave adventure, crowned with the
-perfect triumph we never reach; to some, visions of beloved faces, long since
-passed away; to some, the reflected light of a far-off home, and echoes of the
-happy laughter of little children. And so their lamps wavered hither and
-thither in the spiritual breath of sleep, flickering wildly, ere they went out
-for ever. The night-wind swept in sad gusts across Isandhlwana&rsquo;s plain,
-tossing the green grass, which to-morrow would be red. It moaned against
-Inhlazatye&rsquo;s Mountain and died upon Upindo, fanning the dark faces of a
-host of warriors who rested there upon their spears, sharpened for the coming
-slaughter. And as it breathed upon them, they turned, those brave soldiers of
-U&rsquo;Cetywayo&mdash;&ldquo;born to be killed,&rdquo; as their saying runs,
-at Cetywayo&rsquo;s bidding&mdash;and, grasping their assegais, raised
-themselves to listen. It was nothing, death was not yet; death for the morrow,
-sleep for the night.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A little after one o&rsquo;clock on the morning of the 22nd of January, Ernest
-was roused by the sound of a horse&rsquo;s hoofs and the harsh challenge of the
-sentries. &ldquo;Despatch from Major Dartnell,&rdquo; was the answer, and the
-messenger passed on. Half an hour more and the reveille was sounded, and the
-camp hummed in the darkness like a hive of bees making ready for the dawn.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Soon it was known that the General and Colonel Glynn were about to move out to
-the support of Major Dartnell, who reported a large force of the enemy in front
-of him, with six companies of the second battalion of the 24th Regiment, four
-guns, and the mounted infantry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At dawn they left.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At eight o&rsquo;clock a report arrived from a picket, stationed about a mile
-away on a hill to the north of the camp, that a body of Zulus was approaching
-from the north-east.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At nine o&rsquo;clock the enemy showed over the crest of the hills for a few
-minutes, and then disappeared.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At ten o&rsquo;clock Colonel Durnford arrived from Rorke&rsquo;s Drift with a
-rocket battery and two hundred and fifty mounted native soldiers, and took over
-the command of the camp from Colonel Pulleine. As he came up he stopped for a
-minute to speak to Alston, whom he knew, and Ernest noticed him. He was a
-handsome, soldier-like man, with his arm in a sling, a long, fair moustache,
-and restless, anxious expression of face.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At 10.30, Colonel Durnford&rsquo;s force, divided into two portions, was, with
-the rocket battery, pushed some miles forwards to ascertain the enemy&rsquo;s
-movements, and a company of the 24th was directed to take up a position on the
-hill about a mile to the north of the camp. Meanwhile, the enemy, which they
-afterwards heard consisted of the Undi Corps, the Nokenke and Umcitu Regiments,
-and the Nkobamakosi and Imbonambi Regiments, in all about twenty thousand men,
-were resting about two miles from Isandhlwana, with no intention of attacking
-that day. They had not yet been &ldquo;moutied&rdquo; (doctored), and the
-condition of the moon was not propitious.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Unfortunately, however, Colonel Durnford&rsquo;s mounted Basutos, in pushing
-forwards, came upon a portion of the Umcitu Regiment, and fired on it;
-whereupon the Umcitu came into action, driving Durnford&rsquo;s Horse before
-them, and then engaged the company of the 24th, which had been stationed on the
-hill to the north of the camp, and, after a stubborn resistance, annihilating
-it. It was followed by the Nokenke, Imbonambi, and Nkobamakosi Regiments, who
-executed a flanking movement, and threatened the front of the camp. For awhile
-the Undi Corps, which formed the chest of the army, held its ground. Then it
-marched off to the right, and directed its course to the north of Isandhlwana
-Mountain, with the object of turning the position.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Meanwhile, the remaining companies of the 24th were advanced to various
-positions in front of the camp, and engaged the enemy, for awhile holding him
-in check; the two guns under Major Smith shelling the Nokenke Regiment, which
-formed the Zulu left centre, with great effect. The shells could be seen
-bursting amid the dense masses of Zulus, who were coming on slowly and in
-perfect silence, making large gaps in their ranks, which instantly closed up
-over the dead.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At this point the advance of the Undi Regiment to the Zulu right and the
-English left was reported; and Alston&rsquo;s Horse were ordered to proceed,
-and, if possible, to check it. Accordingly they left, and, riding behind the
-company of the 24th on the hill, to the north of the camp, which was now hotly
-engaged with the Umcitu, and Durnford&rsquo;s Basutos, who, fighting
-splendidly, were slowly being pushed back, made for the north side of
-Isandhlwana. As soon as they got on to the high ground they caught sight of the
-Undi, who, something over three thousand strong, were running swiftly in a
-formation of companies, about half a mile away to the northward.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;By Heaven, they mean to turn the mountain, and seize the
-waggon-road!&rdquo; said Mr. Alston. &ldquo;Gallop!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The troop dashed down the slope towards a pass in a stony ridge, which would
-command the path of the Undi, as they did so breaking through and killing two
-or three of a thin line of Zulus that formed the extreme point of one of the
-horns or nippers, by means of which the enemy intended to enclose the camp and
-crush it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-After this, Alston&rsquo;s Horse saw nothing more of the general fight; but it
-may be as well to briefly relate what happened. The Zulus of the various
-regiments pushed slowly on towards the camp, notwithstanding their heavy
-losses. Their object was to give time to the horns or nippers to close round
-it. Meanwhile, those in command realised too late the extreme seriousness of
-the position, and began to concentrate the various companies. Too late! The
-enemy saw that the nippers had closed. He knew, too, that the Undi could not be
-far off the waggon-road, the only way of retreat; and so, abandoning his
-silence and his slow advance, he raised the Zulu war-shout, and charged in from
-a distance of from six to eight hundred yards.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Up to this time the English loss had been small, for the shooting of the Zulus
-was vile. The enemy, on the contrary, had, especially during the last half-hour
-before they charged, lost heavily. But now the tables turned. First the Natal
-Contingent, seeing that they were surrounded, bolted, and laid open the right
-and rear flank of the troops. In poured the Zulus, so that most of the soldiers
-had not even time to fix bayonets. In another minute, our men were being
-assegaied right and left, and the retreat on the camp had become a fearful
-rout. But even then there was nowhere to run to. The Undi Corps (which
-afterwards passed on and attacked the post at Rorke&rsquo;s Drift) already held
-the waggon-road, and the only practical way of retreat was down a gully to the
-south of the road. Into this the broken fragments of the force plunged wildly,
-and after them and mixed up with them went their Zulu foes, massacring every
-living thing they came across.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-So the camp was cleared. When, a couple of hours afterwards, Commandant
-Lonsdale, of Lonsdale&rsquo;s Horse, was sent back by General Chelmsford to
-ascertain what the firing was about, he could see nothing wrong. The tents were
-standing, the waggons were there; there were even soldiers moving about. It did
-not occur to him that it was the soldiers&rsquo; coats which were moving on the
-backs of Kafirs, and that the soldiers themselves would never move again. So he
-rode quickly up to the headquarter tents; out of which, to his surprise, there
-suddenly stalked a huge naked Zulu, smeared all over with blood, and waving in
-his hand a bloody assegai.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Having seen enough, he then rode back again to tell the General that his camp
-was taken.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-To God&rsquo;s good providence and Cetywayo&rsquo;s clemency, rather than to
-our own wisdom, do we owe it that all the outlying homesteads in Natal were not
-laid in ashes, and men, women, and children put to the assegai.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap36"></a>CHAPTER XX.<br/>
-THE END OF ALSTON&rsquo;S HORSE</h2>
-
-<p>
-Alston&rsquo;s Horse soon reached the ridge, past which the Undi were
-commencing to run, at a distance of about three hundred and fifty yards, and
-the order was given to dismount and line it. This they did, one man in every
-four keeping a few paces back to hold the horses of his section. Then they
-opened fire; and next second came back the sound of the thudding of the bullets
-on the shields and bodies of the Zulu warriors.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest, seated up high on his great black horse &ldquo;The Devil,&rdquo; for
-the officers did not dismount, could see how terrible was the effect of that
-raking fire, delivered as it was, not by raw English boys, who scarcely knew
-one end of a rifle from the other, but by men, all of whom could shoot, and
-many of whom were crack shots. All along the line of the Undi companies men
-threw up their arms and dropped dead, or staggered out of the ranks wounded.
-But the main body never paused. By-and-by they would come back and move the
-wounded, or kill them if they were not likely to recover.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Soon, as the range got longer, the fire began to be less deadly, and Ernest
-could see that fewer men were dropping.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ernest,&rdquo; said Alston, galloping up to him, &ldquo;I am going to
-charge them. Look, they will soon cross the donga, and reach the slopes of the
-mountain, and we sha&rsquo;n&rsquo;t be able to follow them on the broken
-ground.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Isn&rsquo;t it rather risky?&rdquo; asked Ernest, somewhat dismayed at
-the idea of launching their little clump of mounted men at the moving mass
-before them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Risky? yes, of course it is, but my orders were to delay the enemy as
-much as possible, and the horses are fresh. But, my lad&rdquo;&mdash;and he
-bent towards him and spoke low&mdash;&ldquo;it doesn&rsquo;t much matter
-whether we are killed charging or running away. I am sure that the camp must be
-taken; there is no hope. Good-bye, Ernest; if I fall, fight the corps as long
-as possible, and kill as many of those devils as you can; and if you survive,
-remember to make off well to the left. The regiments will have passed by then.
-God bless you, my boy! Now order the bugler to sound the &lsquo;cease
-fire,&rsquo; and let the men mount.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They were the last words Alston ever spoke to him, and Ernest often remembered,
-with affectionate admiration, that even at that moment he thought more of his
-friend&rsquo;s safety than he did of his own. As to their tenor, Ernest had
-already suspected the truth, though, luckily, the suspicion had not as yet
-impregnated the corps. Mazooku, too, who as usual was with him, mounted on a
-Basutu pony, had just informed him that, in his (Mazooku&rsquo;s) opinion, they
-were all as good as ripped up (alluding to the Zulu habit of cutting a dead
-enemy open), and adding a consolatory remark to the effect that man can die but
-once, and &ldquo;good job too.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But, strangely enough, he did not feel afraid; indeed, he never felt quieter in
-his life than he did in that hour of near death. A wild expectancy thrilled his
-nerves and looked out of his eyes. &ldquo;What would it be like?&rdquo; he
-wondered. And in another minute all such thoughts were gone, for he was at the
-head of his troop, ready for the order.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Alston, followed by the boy Roger, galloped swiftly round, seeing that the
-formation was right, and then gave the word to unsheath the short swords with
-which he had insisted upon the corps being armed. Meanwhile, the Undi were
-drawing on to a flat plain, four hundred yards or more broad, at the foot of
-the mountain, a very suitable spot for a cavalry manoeuvre.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now, men of Alston&rsquo;s Horse, there is the enemy before you. Let me
-see how you can go through them. <i>Charge!</i>&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>Charge!</i>&rdquo; re-echoed Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<div class="fig" style="width:100%;">
-<a name="illus12"></a>
-<br />
-<img src="images/fig12.jpg" width="407" height="600" alt="[Illustration: ]" />
-<p class="caption">&ldquo;The last Charge of Alston&rsquo;s Horse.&rdquo;
-</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>Charge!</i>&rdquo; roared Sergeant-Major Jones, brandishing his
-sword.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Down the slope they go, slowly at first; now they are on the plain, and the
-pace quickens to a hand-gallop. Ernest feels his great horse gather himself
-together and spring along beneath him; he hears the hum of astonishment rising
-from the dense black mass before them as it halts to receive the attack; he
-glances round, and sees the set faces and determined look upon the features of
-his men, and his blood boils up with a wild exhilaration, and for awhile he
-tastes the fierce joy of war.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Quicker still grows the pace; now he can see the white round the dark eyeballs
-of the Zulus.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;<i>Crash!</i>&rdquo; They are among them, trampling them down, hewing
-them down, thrusting, slashing, stabbing, and being stabbed. The air is alive
-with assegais, and echoes with the savage Zulu war-cries and with the shouts of
-the gallant troopers, fighting now as troopers have not often fought before.
-Presently, as in a dream, Ernest sees a huge Zulu seize Alston&rsquo;s horse by
-the bridle, jerk it on to its haunches, and raise his assegai. Then the boy
-Roger, who is by his father&rsquo;s side, makes a point with his sword, and
-runs the Zulu through. He falls, but next moment the lad is attacked by more,
-is assegaied, and falls fighting bravely. Then Alston pulls up, and, turning,
-shoots with his revolver at the men who have killed his son. Two fall, another
-runs up, and with a shout drives a great spear right through Alston, so that it
-stands out a hand-breadth behind his back. On to the body of his son he, too,
-falls and dies. Next second the Zulu&rsquo;s head is cleft in twain down to the
-chin. That was Jeremy&rsquo;s stroke.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-All this time, they are travelling on, leaving a broad red line of dead and
-dying in their track. Presently it was done; they had passed right through the
-Impi. But out of sixty-four men they had lost their captain and twenty
-troopers. As they emerged, Ernest noticed that his sword was dripping blood,
-and his sword-hand stained red. Yet he could not at the moment remember having
-killed anybody.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But Alston was dead, and he was now in command of what remained of the corps.
-They were in no condition to charge again, for many horses and some men were
-wounded. So he led them round the rear of the Impi, which, detaching a company
-of about three hundred men to deal with the remnants of the troop, went on its
-way with lessened numbers, and filled with admiration at the exhibition of a
-courage in no way inferior to their own.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This company, running swiftly, took possession of the ridge down which the
-troop had charged, and by which alone it would be possible for Ernest to
-retreat, and taking shelter behind stones, began to pour in an inaccurate but
-galling fire on the little party of whites. Ernest charged up through them,
-losing two more men and several horses in the process; but what was his horror,
-on reaching the crest of the ridge, to see about a thousand Zulus, drawn up,
-apparently in reserve, in the neck of the pass leading to the plain beyond! To
-escape through them would be almost impossible, for he was crippled with
-wounded and dismounted men, and the pace of a force is the pace of the slowest.
-Their position was desperate, and looking round at his men, he could see that
-they thought so too.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-His resolution was soon taken. A few paces from where he had for a moment
-halted the remainder of the corps was a little eminence, something like an
-early Saxon tumulus. To this he rode, and, dismounting, turned his horse loose,
-ordering his men to do the same. So good was the discipline, and so great his
-control over them, that there were no wild rushes to escape: they obeyed,
-reaching their desperate case, and formed a ring round the rise.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now, men of Alston&rsquo;s Horse,&rdquo; said Ernest, &ldquo;we have
-done our best, let us die our hardest.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The men set up a cheer, and next minute the Zulus, creeping up under shelter of
-the rocks which were strewed around, attacked them with fury.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In five minutes, in spite of the withering fire which they poured in upon the
-surrounding Zulus, six more of the little band were dead. Four were shot, two
-were killed in a rush made by about a dozen men, who, reckless of their own
-life, determined to break through the white man&rsquo;s ring. They perished in
-the attempt, but not before they had stabbed two of Alston&rsquo;s Horse. The
-remainder, but little more than thirty men, retired a few paces farther up the
-little rise so as to contract their circle, and kept up a ceaseless fire upon
-the enemy. The Zulus, thanks to the accurate shooting of the white men, had by
-this time lost more than fifty of their number, and, annoyed at being put to
-such loss by a foe numerically so insignificant, they determined to end the
-matter with a rush. Ernest saw their leader, a great almost naked fellow, with
-a small shield and a necklace of lion&rsquo;s claws, walking, utterly
-regardless of the pitiless rifle fire, from group to group, and exhorting them.
-Taking up a rifle which had just fallen from the hand of a dead
-trooper&mdash;for up to the present Ernest had not joined in the
-firing&mdash;he took a fine sight at about eighty yards at the Zulu
-chief&rsquo;s broad chest, and pulled. The shot was a good one; the great
-fellow sprang into the air and dropped. Instantly another commander took his
-place and the final advance began.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But the Zulus had to come up-hill, with but little cover, and scores were mown
-down by the scorching and continuous fire from the breech-loaders. Twice, when
-within twenty yards, were they driven back, twice did they come on again. Now
-they were but twelve paces or so away, and a murderous fire was kept up upon
-them. For a moment they wavered, then pushed forwards up the slope.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Close up!&rdquo; shouted Ernest, &ldquo;and use your swords and
-pistols.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-His voice was heard above the din. Some of the men dropped the now useless
-rifles, and the revolvers began to crack.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then the Zulus closed in upon the doomed band, with a shout of &ldquo;Bulala
-umlungo!&rdquo; (Kill the white man!)
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Out rang the pistol-shots, and fire flew from the clash of swords and assegais;
-and still the little band, momentarily growing fewer, fought on with labouring
-breath. Never did hope-forsaken men make a more gallant stand. Still they
-fought, and still they fell, one by one, and as they fell were stabbed to
-death; but scarcely one of them was there whose death-wound was in his back.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At last the remaining Zulus drew back; they thought that it was done.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But no; three men yet stood together upon the very summit of the mound, holding
-six foes at bay. The Zulu captain laughed aloud when he saw it, and gave a
-rapid order. Thereupon the remaining Zulus formed up, and stabbing the wounded
-as they went, departed swiftly over the dead, after the main body of the corps,
-which had now vanished round the mountain.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They left the six to finish the three.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Three hundred had come to attack Alston&rsquo;s Horse; not more than one
-hundred departed from that attack. The overpowered white men had rendered a
-good account of their foes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The three left alive on the summit of the little hill were, as Fate would have
-it, Ernest, Jeremy, and the ex-sailor, who had complained of the
-&ldquo;sargustic&rdquo; companion, who, it happened, had just died by his side.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Their revolvers were empty; Ernest&rsquo;s sword had broken off short in the
-body of a Zulu; Jeremy still had his sword, and the sailor a clubbed carbine.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Presently one of the six Zulus dodged in under the carbine and ran the sailor
-through. Glancing round, Ernest saw his face turn grey. The honest fellow died
-as he had lived, swearing hard.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, you &mdash;&mdash; black mate,&rdquo; he sang out, &ldquo;take that, and be damned
-to you!&rdquo; The clubbed rifle came down upon the Zulu&rsquo;s skull and
-cracked it to bits, and both fell dead together.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Now there were five Zulus left, and only Ernest and Jeremy to meet them. But
-stay; suddenly from under a corpse uprises another foe. No, it is not a foe, it
-is Mazooku, who has been shamming dead, but suddenly and most opportunely shows
-himself to be very much alive. Advancing from behind, he stabs one of the
-attacking party, and kills him. That leaves four. Then he engages another, and
-after a long struggle kills him too, which leaves three. And still the two
-white men stand back to back with flashing eyes and gasping breath, and hold
-their own. Soaked with blood, desperate, and expecting death, they were yet a
-gallant sight to see. Two of the remaining Zulus rush at the giant Jeremy, one
-at Ernest. Ernest, having no effective weapon left, dodges the assegai thrust,
-and then closes with his antagonist, and they roll, over and over, down the
-hill together, struggling for the assegai the Zulu holds. It snaps in two, but
-the blade and about eight inches of the shaft remain with Ernest. He drives it
-through his enemy&rsquo;s throat, and he dies. Then he struggles up to see the
-closing scene of the drama, but not in time to help in it. Mazooku has wounded
-his man badly, and is following to kill him. And Jeremy? He has struck at one
-of the Kafirs, with his sword. The blow is received on the edge of the cowhide
-shield, and sinks half-way through it, so that the hide holds the steel fast.
-With a sharp twist of the shield the weapon is jerked out of his hand, and he
-is left defenceless, with nothing to trust to except his native strength.
-Surely he is lost! But no&mdash;with a sudden rush he seizes both Zulus by the
-throat, one in each hand, and, strong men as they are, swings them wide apart.
-Then with a tremendous effort he jerks their heads together with such awful
-force that they fall senseless, and Mazooku comes up and spears them.
-</p>
-
-<p class="p2">
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Thus was the fight ended.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest and Jeremy sank upon the bloody grass, gasping for breath. The firing
-from the direction of the camp had now died away, and, after the tumult, the
-shouts, and the shrieks of the dying, the silence seemed deep.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was the silence of the dead.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There they lay, white man and Zulu, side by side in the peaceable sunlight and
-in a vague bewildered way Ernest noticed that the faces, which a few minutes
-before looked so grim, were mostly smiling now. They had passed through the
-ivory gates and reached the land of smiles. How still they all were! A little
-black-and-white bird, such as fly from ant-hill to ant-hill, came and settled
-upon the forehead of a young fellow, scarcely more than a boy, and the only son
-of his mother, who lay quiet across two Zulus. The bird knew why he was so
-still. Ernest had liked the boy, and knew his mother, and began to wonder as he
-lay panting on the grass what she would feel when she heard of her son&rsquo;s
-fate. But just then Mazooku&rsquo;s voice broke the silence. He had been
-standing staring at the body of one of the men he had killed, and was now
-apostrophising it in Zulu.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, my brother,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;son of my own father, with whom I
-used to play when I was little; I always told you that you were a perfect fool
-with an assegai but little thought that I should ever have such an opportunity
-of proving it to you. Well, it can&rsquo;t be helped; duty is duty, and family
-ties must give way to it. Sleep well, my brother; it was painful to kill
-you&mdash;very!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest lifted himself from the ground, and laughed the hysterical laugh of
-shattered nerves, at this naive and thoroughly Zulu moralising. Just then
-Jeremy rose and came to him. He was a fearful sight to see&mdash;his hands, his
-face, his clothes, were all red; and he was bleeding from a cut on the face,
-and another on the hand.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Come, Ernest,&rdquo; he said, in a hollow voice, &ldquo;we must clear
-out of this.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose so,&rdquo; said Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-On the plain at the foot of the hill several of the horses were quietly
-cropping the grass, till such time as the superior animal, man, had settled his
-differences. Among them was Ernest&rsquo;s black stallion, &ldquo;The
-Devil,&rdquo; which had been wounded, though slightly, on the flank. They
-walked towards the horses, stopping on their way to arm themselves from the
-weapons which lay about. As they passed the body of the man Ernest had killed
-in his last struggle for life, he stopped and drew the broken assegai from his
-throat. &ldquo;A memento!&rdquo; said he. The horses were caught without
-difficulty, and &ldquo;The Devil&rdquo; and the two next best animals selected.
-Then they mounted, and rode towards the top of the ridge over which Ernest had
-seen the body of Zulus lying in reserve. When they were near it Mazooku got
-down and crept to the crest on his stomach. Presently, to their great relief,
-he signalled to them to advance: the Zulus had moved on, and the valley was
-deserted. And so the three passed over the neck, that an hour and a half before
-they had crossed with sixty-one companions, who were now all dead. &ldquo;I
-think we have charmed lives,&rdquo; said Jeremy, presently. &ldquo;All gone
-except us two. It can&rsquo;t be chance.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is fate,&rdquo; said Ernest, briefly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-From the top of the neck they got a view of the camp, which now looked quiet
-and peaceful, with its white tents and its Union Jack fluttering as usual in
-the breeze.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They must be all dead too,&rdquo; said Ernest; &ldquo;which way shall we
-go?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then it was that Mazooku&rsquo;s knowledge of the country proved of the utmost
-service to them. He had been brought up at a kraal in the immediate
-neighbourhood, and knew every inch of the land. Avoiding the camp altogether,
-he led them to the left of the battle-field, and after two hours&rsquo; ride
-over rough country, brought them to a ford of the Bulialo which he was
-acquainted with, some miles below where the few survivors of the massacre
-struggled across the river, or were drowned in attempting to do so. Following
-this route they never saw a single Zulu, for these had all departed in the
-other direction, and were spared the horrors of the stampede and of
-&ldquo;Fugitives&rsquo; Drift.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At last they gained the farther side of the river, and were, comparatively
-speaking, safe on Natal ground.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They determined, after much anxious consultation, to make for the little fort
-at Helpmakaar, and had ridden about a mile or so towards it, when suddenly the
-Zulu&rsquo;s quick ear caught the sound of distant firing to their right. It
-was their enemy, the Undi Corps, attacking Rorke&rsquo;s Drift. Leaving Mazooku
-to hold the horses, Ernest and Jeremy dismounted, and climbed a solitary koppie
-or hill which just there cropped out from the surface of the plain. It was of
-an ironstone formation, and on the summit lay a huge flat slab of almost pure
-ore. On to this they climbed, and looked along the course of the river, but
-could see nothing. Rorke&rsquo;s Drift was hidden by a rise in the ground.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-All this time a dense thundercloud had been gathering in the direction of
-Helpmakaar, and was now, as is common before sunset in the South African summer
-season, travelling rapidly up against the wind, set in a faint rainbow as in a
-frame. The sun, on the other hand, was sinking towards the horizon, so that his
-golden beams, flying across a space of blue sky, impinged upon the black bosom
-of the cloud, and were reflected thence in sharp lights and broad shadows,
-flung like celestial spears and shields across the plains of Zululand.
-Isandhlwana&rsquo;s Mountain was touched by one great ray which broke in glory
-upon his savage crest, and crowned him that day as king of death, but the
-battlefield over which he towered was draped in gloom. It was a glorious scene.
-Above, the wild expanse of sky broken up by flaming clouds, and tinted with
-hues such as might be reflected from the jewelled walls of heaven. Behind, the
-angry storm, set in its rainbow-frame like ebony in a ring of gold. In front,
-the rolling plain, where the tall grasses waved, the broad Bulialo flashing
-through it like a silver snake, the sun-kissed mountains, and the shadowed
-slopes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was a glorious scene. Nature in her most splendid mood flung all her
-colour-streamers loose across the earth and sky, and waved them wildly ere they
-vanished into night&rsquo;s abyss. Life, in his most radiant ecstasy, blazed up
-in varied glory before he sank, like a lover, to sleep awhile in the arms of
-his eternal mistress&mdash;Death.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest gazed upon it, and it sank into his heart, which, set to Nature&rsquo;s
-tune, responded ever when her hands swept the chords of earth or heaven. It
-lifted him above the world, and thrilled him with indescribable emotion. His
-eyes wandered over the infinite space above, searching for the presence of a
-God; then they fell upon Isandhlwana, and marked the spot just where the
-shadows were deepest; where his comrades lay, and gazed upon the splendid sky
-with eyes that could not see; and at last his spirit gave way, and, weakened
-with emotion and long toil and abstinence, he burst into a paroxysm of grief.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O Jeremy,&rdquo; he sobbed, &ldquo;they are all dead, all except you and
-I, and I feel a coward that I should still live to weep over them. When it was
-over, I should have let that Zulu kill me; but I was a coward, and I fought for
-my life. Had I but held my hand for a second, I should have gone with Alston
-and the others, Jeremy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Come, come, old fellow, you did your best, and fought the corps like a
-brick. No man could have done more.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, Jeremy, but I should have died with them; it was my duty to die.
-And I do not care about living, and they did. I have been an unfortunate dog
-all my life. I shot my cousin, I lost Eva, and now I have seen all my comrades
-killed, and I, who was their leader, alone escaped, and perhaps I have not done
-with my misfortunes yet. What next, I wonder? what next?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest&rsquo;s distress was so acute, that Jeremy, looking at him and seeing
-that all he had gone through had been too much for him, tried to soothe him,
-lest he should go into hysterics, by putting his arm round his waist and giving
-him a good hug.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Look here, old chap,&rdquo; he said; &ldquo;it is no use bothering
-one&rsquo;s head about these things. We are just so many feathers blown about
-by the wind, and must float where the wind blows us. Sometimes it is a good
-wind, and sometimes a bad one; but on the whole it is bad, and we must just
-make the best of it, and wait till it doesn&rsquo;t think it worth while to
-blow our particular feathers about any more, and then we shall come to the
-ground, and not till then. And now we have been up here for more than five
-minutes, and given the horses a bit of a rest. We must be pushing on if we want
-to get to Helpmakaar before dark, and I only hope we shall get there before the
-Zulus, that&rsquo;s all. By Jove, here comes the storm&mdash;come on!&rdquo;
-And Jeremy jumped off the lump of iron-ore, and began to descend the koppie.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest, who had been listening with his face in his hands, rose and followed
-him in silence. As he did so, a breath of ice-cold air from the storm-cloud,
-which was now right over-head, fanned his hot brow, and when he had gone a few
-yards he turned to meet it, and to cast one more look at the scene.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was the last earthly landscape he ever saw. For at that instant there leaped
-from the cloud overhead a fierce stream of jagged light, which struck the mass
-of iron-ore on which they had been seated, shivered and fused it, and then ran
-down the side of the hill to the plain. Together with the lightning there came
-an ear-splitting crack of thunder.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy, who was now nearly at the bottom of the little hill, staggered at the
-shock. When he recovered, he looked up where Ernest had been standing, and
-could not see him. He rushed up the hill again, calling him in accents of
-frantic grief. There was no answer. Presently he found him lying on the ground,
-white and still.
-</p>
-
-<div class="fig" style="width:100%;">
-<a name="illus13"></a>
-<br />
-<img src="images/fig13.jpg" width="405" height="600" alt="[Illustration: ]" />
-<p class="caption">&ldquo;He found him lying on the ground, white and
-still.&rdquo;
-</p>
-</div>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="book03"></a>BOOK III.</h2>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap37"></a>CHAPTER I.<br/>
-THE CLIFFS OF OLD ENGLAND</h2>
-
-<p>
-It was an April evening; off the south coast of England. The sun had just made
-up his mind to struggle out from behind a particularly black shower-cloud, and
-give that part of the world a look before he bade it good-night.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That is lucky,&rdquo; said a little man, who was with difficulty hanging
-on to the bulwark netting of the H.M.S. <i>Conway Castle;</i> &ldquo;now, Mr.
-Jones, look if you can&rsquo;t see them in the sunlight.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Jones accordingly looked through his glasses again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;I can see them distinctly.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;See what?&rdquo; asked another passenger, coming up. &ldquo;The cliffs
-of Old England,&rdquo; answered the little man, joyously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, is that all?&rdquo; said the other; &ldquo;curse the cliffs of Old
-England!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nice remark that for a man who is going home to be married, eh?&rdquo;
-said the little man, turning to where his companion had stood.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But Mr. Jones had shut up his glasses, and vanished aft.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Presently he reached a deck-cabin, and entered without knocking.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;England is in sight, old fellow,&rdquo; he said, addressing somebody who
-lay back smoking in a cane-chair.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The person addressed made a movement as though to rise, then put up his hand to
-a shade that covered his eyes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I forgot,&rdquo; he answered, with a smile; &ldquo;it will have to be
-very much in sight before I can see it. By the way, Jeremy,&rdquo; he went on,
-nervously, &ldquo;I want to ask you something. These doctors tell such
-lies.&rdquo; And he removed the shade. &ldquo;Now, look at my eyes, and tell me
-honestly, am I disfigured? Are they shrunk, I mean, or have they got a squint,
-or anything of that sort?&rdquo; and Ernest turned up his dark orbs, which,
-except that they had acquired that painful, expectant look peculiar to the
-blind, were just as they always had been.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy looked at them, first in one light, then in another.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well!&rdquo; said Ernest, impatiently. &ldquo;I can feel that you are
-staring me out of countenance.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hamba gachlé,&rdquo; replied the imperturbable one. &ldquo;I am
-di&mdash;di&mdash;diagnosing the case. There, that will do. To all appearance,
-your optics are as sound as mine. You get a girl to look at them, and see what
-she says.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, well; that is something to be thankful for.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Just then somebody knocked at the cabin-door. It was a steward.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You sent for me, Sir Ernest?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O yes, I remember. Will you be so good as to find my servant? I want
-him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, Sir Ernest.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest moved impatiently.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Confound that fellow, with his everlasting &lsquo;Sir
-Ernest&rsquo;!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What, haven&rsquo;t you got used to your handle yet?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, I haven&rsquo;t, and I wish it were at Jericho, and that is a fact.
-It is all your fault, Jeremy. If you had not told that confoundedly garrulous
-little doctor, who went and had the information printed in the <i>Natal
-Mercury,</i> it would never have come out at all. I could have dropped the
-title in England; but now all these people know that I am Sir Ernest, and Sir
-Ernest I shall remain for the rest of my days.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, most people would not think that such a dreadful
-misfortune.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, they would, if they had happened to shoot the real heir. By the
-way, what did the lawyer say in his letter? As we are so near home, I suppose I
-had better post myself up. You will find it in the despatch-box. Read it,
-there&rsquo;s a good fellow.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy opened the box, battered with many years of travel, and searched about
-for the letter. It contained a curious collection of articles, prominent among
-which was a handkerchief, which once belonged to Eva Ceswick; a long tress of
-chestnut hair tied up with a blue ribbon; ditto of golden, which had
-come&mdash;well, not from Eva&rsquo;s locks; a whole botanical collection of
-dead flowers, tender souvenirs of goodness knows who, for, after awhile, these
-accumulated dried specimens are difficult to identify; and many letters and
-other curiosities.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At last Jeremy came to the desired document, written in a fair clerk&rsquo;s
-hand; and having shovelled back the locks of hair, &amp;c., began to read it
-aloud:
-</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-<i>St. Ethelred&rsquo;s Court, Poultry,</i>
-</p> <p class="right">
-<i>22nd January, 1879.</i>
-</p>
-
-<p class="letter">
-&ldquo;Sir,&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You see,&rdquo; broke in Ernest, &ldquo;while we were fighting over
-there at Isandhlwana, those beggars were writing to tell me that I was a
-baronet. Case of the &lsquo;bloody hand&rsquo; with a vengeance, eh?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Sir&rdquo; (began Jeremy again), &ldquo;it is our duty to inform you of
-the death, on the 16th of the present month, of our esteemed client, Sir Hugh
-Kershaw, Bart., of Archdale Hall, Devonshire, and of the consequent devolution
-of the baronetcy to yourself, as only son of the late Sir Hugh&rsquo;s only
-brother, Ernest Kershaw, Esq.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Into the question of the unhappy manner in which you came to be placed
-in the immediate succession it does not become us to enter. We have before us
-at this moment a copy of Her Majesty&rsquo;s pardon, granted to you under the
-Transvaal Amnesty Act, and forwarded to us by Reginald Cardus, Esq., of
-Dum&rsquo;s Ness, Suffolk, which we have neither the wish nor the will to
-dispute. It is clear to us that, under this pardon, you are totally free from
-any responsibility for the breach of the law which you perpetrated some years
-since; and of this it is our duty to advise you your title to succeed is also a
-clear one.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;As was only to be expected under the circumstances, the late Sir Hugh
-did not bear any feeling of goodwill towards you. Indeed, we do not think that
-we shall be exaggerating if we say that the news of your free pardon materially
-hastened his end. On the attainment of full age by the late Hugh Kershaw, Esq.,
-who fell by your hand, the entail of the family estates was cut, and only the
-mansion-house of Archdale Hall, the heirlooms, which are numerous and valuable,
-therein contained, and the deer-park, consisting of one hundred and eighty-five
-acres of land, were resettled. These consequently pass to you, and we shall be
-glad to receive your instructions concerning them, should you elect to honour
-us with your confidence. The estates pass, under the will of the late Baronet,
-to a distant cousin of his late wife&rsquo;s, James Smith, Esq., 52 Camperdown
-Road, Upper Clapham. We now think that we have put you in possession of all the
-facts connected with your accession to the baronetcy, and, awaiting your
-instructions, have the honour to remain,
-</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-&ldquo;Your obedient servants,
-</p> <p class="right">
-(Signed) &ldquo;Paisley &amp; Paisley.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, so much for that!&rdquo; was Ernest&rsquo;s comment. &ldquo;What am
-I to do with Archdale Hall, its heirlooms, and its deer-park of one hundred and
-eighty-five acres, I wonder? I shall sell them if I can. Mine is a pretty
-position: a baronet with about sixpence halfpenny per annum to support my rank
-on; a very pretty position!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Hamba gachlé,&rdquo; replied Jeremy; &ldquo;time enough to consider all
-that. But now, as we are on the reading lay, I may as well give you the benefit
-of my correspondence with the officer commanding Her Majesty&rsquo;s forces in
-Natal and Zululand.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Fire away!&rdquo; remarked Ernest, wearily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;First letter, dated Newcastle, Natal, 27th January, from your humble
-servant to officer commanding, &amp;c.:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;&lsquo;Sir,&mdash;I have the honour to report, by order of Lieutenant
-and Adjutant Kershaw, of Alston&rsquo;s Horse, at present incapacitated by
-lightning from doing so himself&rsquo;&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Very neatly put that, I think!&rdquo; interpolated Jeremy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Very. Go on.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&mdash;&ldquo;&lsquo;that on the 22nd inst., Alston&rsquo;s Horse, having received
-orders to check the flanking movement of the Undi Corps, proceeded to try and
-do so. Coming to a ridge commanding the advance of the Undi, the corps, by
-order of their late commander, Captain Alston, dismounted, and opened fire on
-them at a distance of about three hundred yards, with considerable effect. This
-did not, however, check the Undi, who appeared to number between three and four
-thousand men, so Captain Alston issued an order to charge the enemy. This was
-done with some success. The Zulus lost a number of men; the corps, which passed
-right through the enemy, about twenty troopers, Captain Alston, and his son
-Roger Alston, who acted as his aide-de-camp. Several horses and one or two men
-were also severely wounded, which crippled the further movements of the corps.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;&rsquo;Lieutenant and Adjutant Kershaw, on taking command of the corps,
-determined to attempt to retreat. In this attempt, however, he failed, owing to
-the presence of dismounted and wounded men; to the detachment of a body of
-about three hundred Zulus to intercept any such retreat; and to the presence of
-a large body of Zulus on the farther side of the pass leading to the valley
-through which such retreat must be conducted.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;&rsquo;Under these circumstances he determined to fight the remains of
-the corps to the last, and dismounting them, took possession of a fairly
-advantageous position. A desperate hand-to-hand encounter ensued. It ended in
-the almost total extermination of Alston&rsquo;s Horse, and in that of the
-greater part of the attacking Zulus. The names of the surviving members of
-Alston&rsquo;s Horse are&mdash;Lieutenant and Adjutant Kershaw, Sergeant-Major
-Jeremy Jones, Trooper Mazooku (the only native in the corps). These ultimately
-effected their escape, the enemy having either been all destroyed or having
-followed the track of the Undi. Lieutenant and Adjutant Kershaw regrets to have
-to state that in process of effecting his escape he was struck by lightning and
-blinded.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;&rsquo;He estimates the total loss inflicted on the enemy by
-Alston&rsquo;s Horse at from four hundred to four hundred and fifty men. In
-face of such determined bravery as was evinced by every one of his late gallant
-comrades, Lieutenant Kershaw feels that it would be invidious for him to
-mention any particular names. Every man fought desperately, and died with his
-face to the enemy. He begs to enclose a return of the names of those lost, the
-accuracy of which he cannot, however, guarantee, as it is compiled from memory,
-the papers of the corps having all been lost. Trusting that the manoeuvres
-attempted by Lieutenant Kershaw under somewhat difficult circumstances will
-meet with your approval, I have, &amp;c.&mdash;By order of Lieutenant Kershaw,
-</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-(Signed) Jeremy Jones, <i>Sergeant-Major.</i>
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then follows the reply, dated Maritzburg, 2nd February:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;&lsquo;Sir,&mdash;1. I have to direct you to convey to Lieutenant and
-Adjutant Kershaw, and the surviving members of the corps known as
-Alston&rsquo;s Horse, the high sense entertained by the Officer, &amp;c., of
-the gallant conduct of that corps in the face of overwhelming odds at
-Isandhlwana on the 22nd of January.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;&lsquo;2. It is with deep regret that the Officer, &amp;c., learns of
-the heavy misfortune which has befallen Lieutenant Kershaw. He wishes to
-express his appreciation of the way in which that officer handled the remnants
-of his corps, and to inform him that his name will be forwarded to the proper
-quarter for the expression of Her Majesty&rsquo;s pleasure with regard to his
-services.*
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;&lsquo;3. I am directed to offer you a commission in any of the
-volunteer corps now on service in this campaign.&mdash;I have, &amp;c.,
-</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-(Signed) &ldquo;&lsquo;CHIEF OF THE STAFF.&rsquo;&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then comes a letter from Sergeant-Major Jones, gratefully acknowledging the
-expression of the high opinion of the Officer, &amp;c., and declining the offer
-of a commission in another volunteer corps.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Next is a private letter from the Officer, &amp;c., offering to recommend
-Sergeant-Major Jeremy Jones for a commission in the army.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And, finally, a letter from Sergeant-Major Jones to the Officer, &amp;c.,
-gratefully declining the same.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest looked up sharply. The <i>raison d&rsquo;être</i> of the movement was
-gone, for he could no longer see, but the habit remained.
-</p>
-
-<p class="footnote">
-* It may be stated here that, if this was ever done, the War Office did not
-consider Ernest&rsquo;s service worthy of notice; for he never heard anything
-more about them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why did you decline the commission, Jeremy?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy moved uneasily, and looked through the little cabin-window.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;On general principles,&rdquo; he answered, presently.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense! I know you would have liked to go into the army. Don&rsquo;t
-you remember, as we were riding up to the camp at Isandhlwana, you said that
-you proposed that if the corps did anything, we should try and work it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, I said <i>we!</i>&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t quite follow you, Jeremy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My dear Ernest, you can&rsquo;t go in for a commission now, can
-you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest laughed a little bitterly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What has that to do with it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Everything. I am not going to leave you in your misfortune to go and
-enjoy myself in the army. I could not do it; I should be wretched if I did. No,
-old fellow, we have gone through a good many things side by side, and, please
-God, we will stick to each other to the end of the chapter.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest was always easily touched by kindness, especially now that his nerves
-were shaken, and his heart softened by misfortune, and his eyes filled with
-tears at Jeremy&rsquo;s words. Putting out his hand, he felt about for
-Jeremy&rsquo;s, and, when he had found it, grasped it warmly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If I have troubles, Jeremy, at least I have a blessing that few can
-boast&mdash;a true friend. If you had gone with the rest at Isandhlwana yonder,
-I think that my heart would have broken. I think we do bear one another a love
-&lsquo;passing the love of women.&rsquo; It would not be worth much if it
-didn&rsquo;t, that is one thing. I wonder if Absalom was a finer fellow than
-you are, Jeremy? &lsquo;from the sole of his foot even to the crown of his head
-there was no blemish in him.&rsquo; Your hair would not weigh &lsquo;two
-hundred shekels after the king&rsquo;s weight,&rsquo; though&rdquo; (Jeremy
-wore his hair cropped like a convict&rsquo;s); &ldquo;but I would back you to
-throw Absalom over your shoulder, hair and all.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was his fashion to talk nonsense when affected by anything, and Jeremy,
-knowing it, said nothing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Just then there came a knock at the door, and who should enter but Mazooku, and
-Mazooku transformed. His massive frame, instead of being clothed in the loose
-white garments he generally wore, was arrayed in a flannel shirt with an
-enormous stick-up collar, a suit of pepper-and-salt reach-me-downs several
-sizes too small for him, and a pair of boots considerably too large for his
-small and shapely feet; for, like those of most Zulus of good blood, his hands
-and feet were extremely delicately made.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-To add to the incongruity of his appearance, on the top of his hair, which was
-still done in ridges, Zulu fashion, and decorated with long bone snuff-spoons,
-was perched an extremely small and rakish-looking billycock hat, and in his
-hand he carried his favourite and most gigantic knobstick.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-On opening the cabin-door he saluted in the ordinary fashion, and coming in,
-squatted down on his haunches to await orders, forgetting that he was not in
-all the freedom of his native dress. The results were most disastrous. With a
-crack and a bang the reach-me-down trousers, already strained to their utmost
-capacity, split right up the back. The astonished Zulu flew up into the air,
-but presently discovering what had happened, sat down again, remarking that
-there was &ldquo;much more room now.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy burst out laughing, and having sketched his retainer&rsquo;s appearance
-for the benefit of Ernest, told him what had happened.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Where did you get those things from, Mazooku?&rdquo; asked Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mazooku explained that he had bought the rig-out for three pound ten from a
-second-class passenger, as the weather was growing cold.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do not wear them again. I will buy you clothes as soon as we get to
-England. If you are cold, wear your great-coat.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Koos!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How is &lsquo;The Devil&rsquo;?&rdquo; Ernest had brought the black
-stallion on which he had escaped from Isandhlwana home with him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mazooku replied that the horse was well, but playful. A man forward had been
-teasing him with a bit of bread. He had waited till that man passed under his
-box, and had seized him in his teeth, lifted him off the ground by his coat,
-and shaken him severely.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;&rsquo;Good! Give him a bran-mash to-night.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Koos!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And so you find the air cold. Are you not regretting that you came? I
-warned you that you would regret.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ou ka Inkoos&rdquo; (&ldquo;O no, chief&rdquo;), the Zulu answered, in
-his liquid native tongue. &ldquo;When first we came upon the smoking ship, and
-went out on to the black water out of which the white men rise, and my bowels
-twisted up and melted within me, and I went through the agonies of a hundred
-deaths, then I regretted. &lsquo;O, why,&rsquo; I said in my heart, &lsquo;did
-not Mazimba my father kill me rather than bring me on to this great moving
-river? Surely if I live I shall grow like a white man from the whiteness of my
-heart, for I am exceedingly afraid, and have cast all my inside forth.&rsquo;
-All this I said, and many more things which I cannot remember, but they were
-dark and heavy things. But behold! my father, when my bowels ceased to melt,
-and when new ones had grown to replace those which I had thrown forth, I was
-glad, and did eat much beef, and then I questioned my heart about this journey
-over the black water. And my heart answered and said, &lsquo;Mazooku, son of
-Ingoluvu, of the tribe of the Maquilisini, of the people of the Amazulu, you
-have done well. Great is the chief whom you serve; great is Mazimba on the
-hunting-path; great was he in the battle; all the Undi could not kill him, and
-his brother the lion (Jeremy), and his servant the jackal (Mazooku), who hid in
-a hole and then bit those who digged. O yes, Mazimba is great, and his breast
-is full of valour; you have seen him strike the Undi down; and his mind is full
-of the white man&rsquo;s knowledge and discretion; you have seen him form the
-ring that spat out fire so fast that his servants the horsemen were buried
-under the corpses of the Undi. So great is he, that the &ldquo;heaven
-above&rdquo; smelled him out as &ldquo;tagati,&rdquo; as a wizard, and struck
-him with their lightning, but could not kill him then.&rsquo; And so now my
-father wanders and wanders, and shall wander in the darkness, seeing not the
-sun or the stars, or the flashing of spears, or the light that gathers in the
-eyes of brave men as they close in the battle, or the love which gleams in the
-eyes of women. And how is this? Shall my father want a dog to lead him in his
-darkness? Shall his dog Mazooku, son of Ingoluvu, prove a faithless dog, and
-desert the hand that fed him, and the man who is braver than himself? No, it
-shall not be so, my chief and my father. By the head of Chaka, whither thou
-goest thither will I go also, and where thou shalt build thy kraal there shall
-I make my hut. Koos! Baba!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And having saluted after the dignified Zulu fashion, Mazooku departed to tie up
-his split trousers with a bit of string. There was something utterly
-incongruous between his present appearance and his melodious and poetical
-words, instinct as they were with qualities which in some respects make the
-savage Zulu a gentleman, and put him above the white Christian, who for the
-most part regards the &ldquo;nigger&rdquo; as a creature beneath contempt. For
-there are lessons to be learned even from Zulu &ldquo;niggers,&rdquo; and among
-them we may reckon those taught by a courage which laughs at death; an absolute
-fidelity to those who have the right to command it, or the qualities necessary
-to win it; and, in their raw and unconverted state, perfect honesty and
-truthfulness.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He is a good fellow, Mazooku,&rdquo; said Ernest, when the Zulu had
-gone; &ldquo;but I fear that one of two things will happen to him. Either he
-will get homesick and become a nuisance, or he will get civilised and become
-drunken and degraded. I should have done better to leave him in Natal.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap38"></a>CHAPTER II.<br/>
-ERNEST&rsquo;S EVIL DESTINY</h2>
-
-<p>
-About nine o&rsquo;clock on the morning following Mazooku&rsquo;s oration, a
-young lady came running up the stairs of the principal Plymouth hotel, and
-burst into a private sitting-room, like a human bomb-shell of attractive
-appearance, somewhat to the astonishment of a bald old gentleman who was
-sitting at breakfast.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Good gracious, Dorothy, have you gone suddenly mad?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O Reginald, the <i>Conway Castle</i> is nearly in, and I have been to
-the office and got leave for us to go off in the launch; so come along,
-quick!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What time does the launch leave?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;A quarter to ten exactly.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then we have three-quarters of an hour.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O please, Reginald, be quick; it might go before, you know.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus smiled, and, rising, put on his hat and coat, &ldquo;to oblige
-Dorothy,&rdquo; he said; but, as a matter of fact, he was as excited as she
-was. There was a patch of red on each of his pale cheeks, and his hand shook.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In a quarter of an hour they were walking up and down the quay by the Custom
-House, waiting for the launch to start.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;After all these years,&rdquo; said Mr. Cardus, &ldquo;and blind!&rdquo;
-&ldquo;Do you think that he will be much disfigured, Reginald?&rdquo; &ldquo;I
-don&rsquo;t know, dear; your brother said nothing about it.&rdquo; &ldquo;I can
-hardly believe it; it seems so strange to think that he and Jeremy should have
-been spared out of all those people. How good God is!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;A cynic,&rdquo; replied Mr. Cardus, with a smile, &ldquo;or the
-relations of the other people, might draw a different conclusion.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But Dorothy was thinking how good God was to <i>her.</i> She was dressed in
-pink that morning, and
-</p>
-
-<p class="poem">
-&ldquo;Oh, she looked sweet<br/>
-As the little pink flower that grows in the wheat.&rdquo;<br/>
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy neither was, nor ever would be, a pretty woman, but she was essentially
-a charming one. Her kindly puzzled face (and, to judge from the little wrinkles
-on it, she had never got to the bottom of the questions which contracted her
-forehead as a child), her steady blue eyes, her diminutive rounded form, and,
-above all, the indescribable light of goodness which shone round her like a
-halo, all made her charming. What did it matter if the mouth was a little wide,
-or the nose somewhat &ldquo;tip-tilted?&rdquo; Those who can look so sweet are
-able to dispense with such fleshly attributes as a Grecian nose or chiselled
-lips. At the least, they will have the best of it after youth is past; and let
-me remind you, my young and lovely reader, that the longer and dustier portion
-of life&rsquo;s road winds away towards the pale horizon of our path on the
-farther side of the grim mile-post marked &ldquo;30.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But what made her chiefly attractive was her piquante taking manner and the
-<i>chic</i> of her presence. She was such a perfect lady.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All aboard, if you please,&rdquo; broke in the agent. &ldquo;Run in the
-gangway!&rdquo;and they were off towards the great gray vessel with a blue
-pennant at her top.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was a short run, but it seemed long to Dorothy and the old gentleman with
-her. Bigger and bigger grew the great vessel, till at last it seemed to swallow
-up their tiny steamer.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ease her! Look out for the line there! Now haul away! Make fast!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was all done in an instant, and next moment they stood upon the broad white
-deck, amid the crowd of passengers, and were looking round for Ernest and
-Jeremy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But they were not to be seen.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope they are here,&rdquo; faltered Dorothy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus took his hat off, and wiped his bald head. He too hoped that they
-were there.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At that moment Dorothy became aware of a black man, clad in a white smock
-pulled on over a great-coat, and carrying a big spear and a kerrie in his hand,
-who was pushing his way towards them. Next moment he stood before them,
-saluting vigorously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Koos!&rdquo; he said, thrusting his spear into the air before Mr.
-Cardus&rsquo;s astonished nose.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Inkosikaas!&rdquo; (chieftainess) he repeated, going through the same
-process before Dorothy. &ldquo;This way, master; this way, missie. The chief
-without eyes send me to you. This way; the lion bring him now.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They followed him through the press towards the after-part of the ship, while,
-giving up the unfamiliar language, he vociferated in Zulu (it might have been
-Sanskrit, for all they knew):
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Make way, you low people, make way for the old man with the shining
-head, on whose brow sits wisdom, and the fair young maiden, the sweet rosebud,
-who comes,&rdquo; &amp;c.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At that moment Dorothy&rsquo;s quick eye saw a great man issuing from a cabin,
-leading another man by the hand. And then she forgot everything, and ran
-forward.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O Ernest, Ernest!&rdquo; she cried.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The blind man&rsquo;s cheek flushed at the music of her voice.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He drew his hand from Jeremy&rsquo;s, and stretched out his arms towards the
-voice. It would have been easy to avoid them&mdash;one never need be kissed by
-a blind man&mdash;but she did not avoid them. On the contrary, she placed
-herself so that the groping arms closed round her, while a voice said:
-&ldquo;Dolly, where are you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Here, Ernest, here!&rdquo; and in another moment he had drawn her to
-him, and kissed her on the face, and she had returned the kiss.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then she kissed Jeremy too, or rather Jeremy lifted her up two or three feet
-and kissed her&mdash;it came to the same thing. And then Mr. Cardus wrung them
-both by the hand, wringing Ernest&rsquo;s the hardest; and Mazooku stood by,
-and, Zulu fashion, chanted a little song of his own improvising, about how the
-chiefs came back to their kraal after a long expedition, in which they had,
-&amp;c.; and how Wisdom, in the shape of a shining headed and ancient one, the
-husband without any doubt of many wives, and the father of at least a hundred
-children, &amp;c.; and Beauty, in the shape of a sweet and small one, &amp;c.;
-and finally they all went very near to crying, and dancing a fling on the
-quarter-deck together.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And then they all talked at once, and set about collecting their things in a
-muddle-headed fashion. When these had been put in a pile, and Mazooku was
-seated, assegai and all, upon the top of them, as a solemn warning to thieves
-(and ill would it have gone with the thief who dared to meddle with that pile),
-they started off to inspect Ernest&rsquo;s great black horse, &ldquo;The
-Devil.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And behold, Dorothy stroked &ldquo;The Devil&rsquo;s&rdquo; nose, and he,
-recognising how sweet and good she was, abandoned his usual habits, and did not
-bite her, but only whinnied and asked for sugar. Then Ernest, going into the
-box with the horse, which nobody but he and Mazooku were fond of taking
-liberties with, felt down his flank till he came to a scar inflicted by an
-assegai in that mad charge through the Undi, and showed it to them. And
-Dorothy&rsquo;s eyes filled with tears of thankfulness, as she thought of what
-that horse and its rider had gone through, and of the bleaching bones of those
-who had galloped by their side; and she would have liked to kiss Ernest again,
-only there was no excuse. So she only pressed his hand, feeling that the sorrow
-of the empty years which were gone was almost atoned for by this hour of joy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then they went ashore to the hotel, and sat together in the pleasant
-sitting-room which Dorothy had chosen, and made sweet with great bunches of
-violets (for she remembered that Ernest loved violets), and talked. At length
-Mr. Cardus and Jeremy went off to see about getting the things through the
-Custom House, where they arrived to find Mazooku keeping half a dozen gorgeous
-officials, who wanted to open a box, at bay with his knobsticks, and plastering
-them with offensive epithets, which fortunately they did not understand.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Doll,&rdquo; said Ernest, presently, &ldquo;it is a beautiful day, is it
-not? Will you take me for a walk, dear? I should like to go for a walk.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, Ernest, of course I will.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are sure you do not mind being seen with a blind man? You must give
-me your hand to hold, you know.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ernest, how can you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mind giving him her hand to hold, indeed! thought Dorothy to herself, as she
-ran to put her bonnet on. O, that she could give it to him for always! And in
-her heart she blessed the accident of his blindness, because it brought him so
-much nearer to her. He would be helpless without her, this tall strong man, and
-she would be ever at his side to help him. He would not be able to read a book,
-or write a letter, or move from room to room without her. Surely she would soon
-be able so to weave herself into his life that she would become indispensable
-to it. And then, perhaps&mdash;perhaps&mdash;and her heart pulsed with a joy so
-intense at the mere thought of what might follow that it became a pain, and she
-caught her breath and leaned against the wall. For every fibre of her frame was
-thrilled with a passionate love of this blind man whom she had lost for so many
-years, and now had found again; and in her breast she vowed that if she could
-help it she would lose him no more. Why should she? When he had been engaged to
-Eva, she had done her best for him and her, and bitterly had she felt the way
-in which he had been treated, but Eva had taken her own course, and was now no
-longer in the outward and visible running, whatever place she might still hold
-in the inward and spiritual side of Ernest&rsquo;s nature.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy did not underrate that place; she knew well that the image of her rival
-had sunk too deep into his heart to be altogether dislodged by her. But she was
-prepared to put up with that.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;One can&rsquo;t have everything, you know,&rdquo; she said, shaking her
-wise little head at her own reflection in the glass, as she tied her
-bonnet-strings.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy was an eminently practical little person, and having recognised the
-&ldquo;eternal verity&rdquo; of the saying that half a loaf is better than no
-bread, especially if one happens to be dying of hunger, she made up her mind to
-make the best of the position. Since she could not help it, Eva would be
-welcome to the inward and spiritual side of Ernest, if only she could secure
-the outward and visible side; &ldquo;for after all, that is real and tangible,
-and there isn&rsquo;t much comfort in spiritual affection, you know,&rdquo; she
-said, with another shake of the head.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In short, the arguments which proved so convincing to her were not unlike those
-that carried conviction home to the gentle breast of Mr. Plowden, when he made
-up his mind to marry Eva in the teeth of her engagement to, and love for,
-Ernest; but, putting aside the diversity of the circumstances, there was this
-difference between them: Mr. Plowden recognised no higher spiritual part at
-all; he did not believe in that sort of thing; he contracted for Eva as he
-would have contracted to buy a lovely animal, and when he had got the given
-quantity of flesh and blood he was satisfied. Of the soul&mdash;the inner
-self&mdash;which the human casket held, and which loathed and hated him, he
-took no account. He had got the woman, what did he care about the woman&rsquo;s
-soul? Souls, and spiritual parts, and affinities with what is good and high,
-and the divinity of love, &amp;c. &amp;c., were capital things to preach about,
-but they did not apply to the affairs of every-day life. Besides, if he had
-been asked, he would have given it as his candid opinion that women did not
-possess any of these things.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There are hundreds of educated men who think like Mr. Plowden, and there are
-thousands of educated ladies who give colour to such opinions by their idle,
-aimless course of life, their utter inappreciation of anything beyond their own
-little daily round, and the gossip of the dozen or so of families who for them
-make up what they call society and the interests of existence, and by their
-conduct in the matter of marriage. Truly the great factor in the lowering of
-women is woman herself. But what does it matter? In due course they have their
-families, and the world goes on!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Now, Dorothy did believe in all these things, and she knew what an important
-part they play in human affairs, and how they dominate over, and direct, finer
-minds. So did she believe in the existence of the planets, and in the blooming
-of roses in walled gardens; but she could not get near to know the beauties of
-the stars, or to see the opening rosebuds, so she had to satisfy herself with
-the heat that poured from the one, and the scent that came from the other. When
-one is star-stricken, or mad in the matter of roses, that is better than
-nothing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And so, taking Ernest by the hand, she led him through the crowded streets with
-tender care, and on to the quiet Hoe. And as they passed, the people turned to
-look at the handsome young fellow who was blind, and some thought that they
-would not mind a little blindness if it led to being personally conducted by so
-sweet a girl.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Soon they reached the gardens.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now tell me about yourself, Ernest. What have you been doing all these
-long years, besides growing bigger and handsomer, and getting that hard look
-about the mouth?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;A great many things, Doll. Shooting, fighting, playing the fool.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Pshaw! I know all that, or at least I can guess it. What have you been
-doing in your mind, you know?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, thinking of you, of course, Doll.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ernest, if you talk to me like that, I will go away, and leave you to
-find your own way home. I know well of whom you have been thinking every day
-and every night. It was not of me. Now, confess it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t let&rsquo;s talk of <i>her,</i> Doll. If you talk of the
-devil, you know, you sometimes raise him; not that he requires much raising in
-this instance,&rdquo; he laughed bitterly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I was so sorry for you, Ernest dear, and I did my best; indeed I did.
-But I could do nothing with her. She must have been off her head, or that
-man&rdquo; (Dorothy always spoke of Plowden as &lsquo;that man&rsquo;)&rdquo;
-and Florence had some power over her; or perhaps she never really cared for
-you; there are some women, you know, who seem very sweet, but cannot truly care
-for anybody except themselves. At any rate, she married, and has a family of
-children, for I have seen their births in the paper. Oh, Ernest, when I think
-of all you must have suffered out there about that woman, I cease to be sorry
-for her, and begin to hate her. I am afraid you have been very unhappy, Ernest,
-all these years.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, yes, I have been unhappy sometimes&mdash;sometimes I have consoled
-myself. There, what is the use of telling lies?&mdash;I have always been
-unhappy, and never so much so as when I have been in process of consolation.
-But you should not hate her, poor girl! Perhaps she has her bad times too;
-only, fortunately, you women cannot feel, at least not much&mdash;not like us,
-I mean.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know about that,&rdquo; put in Dorothy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, I will qualify my remark&mdash;most women. And, besides, it is not
-quite her fault; people cannot help themselves much in this world. She was
-appointed to be my evil destiny, that is all, and she must fulfil her mission.
-All my life she will probably bring me trouble, till at last the fate works
-itself out. But, Dolly, my dear, there must be an end to these things, and
-Nature, always fertile in analogies, teaches us that the end of sorrow will be
-happiness. It is from the darkness of night that day is born, and ice and snow
-are followed by the flowers. Nothing is lost in the world, as old Alston used
-to say, and it is impossible to suppose that all the grief and suffering are
-alone wasted; that they are the only dull seed that will not, when their day
-comes, bloom into a beautiful life. They may seem to be intangible things now;
-but, after all, the difference between tangible and intangible is only a
-difference of matter. We know that intangible things are real enough, and
-perhaps in a future state we shall find that they are the true immortal parts.
-I think so myself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think so too.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, then, Doll, you see, if once one gets the mastery of that idea, it
-makes the navigation easier. Once admit that everything works to an end, and
-that end a good and enduring one, and you will cease to call out under your
-present sorrows. But it is hard for the little boy to learn to like being
-whipped, and we are all children, Doll, to the end of our days.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And you see, Doll, for some reason I have been picked out to catch it
-pretty warm. It does seem rather hard that a woman like that should be allowed
-to turn all the wine of a man&rsquo;s life into vinegar; but so it often is.
-Now, if she had died, that would have been bad enough; but I could have borne
-it, and bided my time in the hope of joining her. Or if she had ceased to love
-me, and learned to love the other man, I think I could have borne that, because
-my pride would have come to my rescue, and because I know that the law of her
-affections is the only law that the heart of woman really acknowledges, however
-many others she may be forced to conform to; and that a woman of refined nature
-who has ceased to love you, and is yet forced to live with you, is in
-consequence a thing worthless to you, and dishonoured in her own eyes. Besides,
-I ask no favour in such matters. I have no sympathy, as a general rule, with
-people who raise a howl because they have lost the affection of their wives or
-sweethearts, for they should have been able to keep them. If any man could have
-cut me out, he was welcome to do so, for he would have proved himself the
-better man, and as for the lady, I would not have her without her heart. But I
-gather that was not quite the case with Eva.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O no, indeed; at least she said that she was wretched.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Exactly as I thought. Well, now, you will understand that it is rather
-hard. You see I did love her dearly, and it is painful to think of this woman,
-whose love I won, and who by that divine right and by the law of nature should
-have been my wife, as forced into being the wife of another man, however
-charming he may be; and I hope for her sake that he is charming. In fact, it
-fills me with a sensation I cannot describe.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Poor Ernest!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh no, don&rsquo;t pity me. Everybody has his troubles&mdash;this is
-mine.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Ernest, but you have been unfortunate, and now your sight has gone;
-but perhaps Critchett or Couper would be able to do something for that.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All the Critchetts and Coupers in the world will never do anything for
-it, my dear. But you must remember that where I only lost my sight, many others
-lost their lives, and it is supposed to be better to lose your sight than your
-life. Besides, blindness has its advantages: it gives you so much more time to
-think, and it humbles you so. You can have no idea what it is like, Doll.
-Intense, everlasting blackness hedging you in like a wall: one long, long
-night, even when the sunlight is beating on your face; and out of the night,
-voices and the touching of hands, like the voices and the touchings of departed
-spirits. Your physical body is as helpless and as much at the mercy of the
-world as your spiritual body is in the hands of the Almighty. And things grow
-dim to you too: you begin to wonder what familiar faces and sights are like, as
-you wonder about the exact appearance of those who died many years ago, or of
-places you have not seen for years. All of which, my dear Doll, is very
-favourable to thought. When next you lie awake for five or six hours in the
-night, try to reckon all the things which occupy your brain; then imagine such
-wakefulness and its accompanying thoughts extended over the period of your
-natural life, and you will get some idea of the depth and breadth and height of
-total blindness.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-His words struck her, and she did not know what to answer, so she only pressed
-his hand in token of her mute sympathy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He understood her meaning; the faculties of the blind are very quick.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you know, Doll,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;coming back to you and to your
-gentle kindness is like coming into the peace and quiet of a sheltered harbour
-after bearing the full brunt of the storm.&rdquo; Just then a cloud which had
-obscured the sun passed away, and its full light struck upon his face.
-&ldquo;There,&rdquo; he went on, &ldquo;it is like that. It is like emerging
-into the sweet sunshine after riding for miles through the rain and mist. You
-bring peace with you, my dear. I have not felt such peace for years as I feel
-holding your hand to-day.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am very glad, dear Ernest,&rdquo; she answered; and they walked on in
-silence. At that moment, a little girl, who was trundling a hoop down the
-gravel-path, stopped her hoop to look at the pair. She was very pretty, with
-large dark eyes, but Dorothy noticed that she had a curious mark upon her
-forehead. Presently Dorothy saw her run back towards an extremely tall and
-graceful woman, who was sauntering along, followed at some distance by a nurse
-with a baby in her arms, and turning occasionally to look at the beds of spring
-flowers, hyacinths and tulips, which bordered the path.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O mother!&rdquo; she heard the little girl call out, in the clear voice
-of childhood, &ldquo;there is such a nice blind man! He isn&rsquo;t old and
-ugly, and he hasn&rsquo;t a dog, and he doesn&rsquo;t ask for pennies. Why is
-he blind if he hasn&rsquo;t a dog, and doesn&rsquo;t ask for pennies?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Blindness, according to this little lady&rsquo;s ideas, evidently sprang from
-the presence of a cur and an unsatisfied hunger for copper coin. Sometimes it
-does.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The tall graceful lady looked up carelessly, saying, &ldquo;Hush, dear!&rdquo;
-She was quite close to them now, for they were walking towards each other, and
-Dorothy gave a great gasp, for before her stood <i>Eva Plowden.</i> There was
-no doubt about it. She was paler and haughtier-looking than of yore; but it was
-she. No one who had once seen her could mistake that queenly beauty. Certainly
-Dorothy could not mistake it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is the matter, Doll?&rdquo; said Ernest, carelessly. He was
-thinking of other things.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nothing; I hurt myself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They were quite close now.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And Eva, too, looked at them, and she, too, saw the face she had never thought
-to see again. With all her eyes, and with her lips parted as though to cry out,
-she gazed at the sight before her&mdash;slowly, slowly, taking in all it meant.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They were nearly level now.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then there leaped up into her eyes and face&mdash;the eyes and face which a
-second before had been so calm and statue-like&mdash;a wild light of love, an
-intensity of passionate and jealous desire, such as is not often to be seen on
-the faces of women.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ernest there, and Ernest blind, and being led by the hand of Dorothy,
-and looking happy with her! How dared she touch her love! How dared he look
-happy with her!&rdquo; Those were the thoughts which flashed through her
-troubled mind.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She made a step towards them, as though to address him, and the blind eyes fell
-upon her lovely face, and wandered over it. It made her mad. His eyes were on
-her face, and yet he could not see her. O God!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy saw the motion, and, moved by an overmastering instinct, threw herself
-between them in an attitude of protection not unmixed with defiance. And so,
-for a second, their eyes flashing and their bosoms heaving with emotion, the
-two women stood face to face, and the blind pathetic eyes wandered uneasily
-over both, feeling a presence they were unable to define.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was a tragic, almost a dreadful scene. The passions it revealed were almost
-too intense for words, as no brush can justly paint a landscape made vivid by
-the unnatural fierceness of the lightning.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, Doll, why do you stop?&rdquo; Ernest said, impatiently.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-His voice broke the spell. Eva withdrew her arm, which was half outstretched,
-and touched her lips with her finger as though to enjoin silence. Then a deep
-misery spread itself over her flushed face, her head sank low, and she passed
-thence with rapid steps. Presently the nurse with the baby followed her, and
-Dorothy noticed vaguely that this child had also a mark upon its forehead. The
-whole thing had not taken forty seconds.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Doll,&rdquo; said Ernest, in a wild voice, and commencing to tremble,
-&ldquo;who was that passed us?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;A lady,&rdquo; was the answer.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;A lady; yes, I know that&mdash;what lady?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know&mdash;a lady with children.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was a fib; but she could not tell him then; an instinct warned her not to do
-so.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, it is strange, Doll, strange; but, do you know, I felt just now as
-though Eva were very near me. Come, let us go home!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Just then the cloud got over the sun again, and they walked home in the shadow.
-Apparently, too, all their talkativeness had gone the way of the sun. They had
-nothing to say.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap39"></a>CHAPTER III.<br/>
-INTROSPECTIVE</h2>
-
-<p>
-Eva Plowden could scarcely be said to be a happy woman. A refined woman who has
-deliberately married one man when she loves another is not as a rule happy
-afterwards, unless, indeed, she is blessed, or cursed, with a singularly
-callous nature. But there are degrees and degrees of unhappiness. Such a fate
-as Eva&rsquo;s would have killed Dorothy, and would have driven Florence, bad
-as she might otherwise be, to suicide or madness. But with Eva herself it was
-not so; she was not sufficiently finely strung to suffer thus. Hers was not a
-very happy life, and that was all about it. She had been most miserable; but
-when the first burst of her misery had passed, like the raving storm that
-sometimes ushers in a wet December day, she had more or less reconciled
-herself&mdash;like a sensible woman&mdash;to her position. The day was always
-rather wet, it is true; but still the sun peeped out now and again, and if life
-was not exactly a joyous thing, it was at least endurable.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And yet with it all she loved Ernest in her heart as much as ever; his memory
-was inexpressibly dear to her, and her regrets were sometimes very bitter. On
-the whole, however, she had got over it wonderfully&mdash;better than anybody
-would have thought possible, who could have witnessed her agony some years
-before, when Florence told her the whole truth immediately after the wedding.
-The Sabine women, we are told, offered every reasonable resistance to their
-rape by the Romans, but before long they gave the strongest proofs of
-reconciliation to their lot. There was something of the Sabine woman about Eva.
-Indeed, the contrast between her state of mind as regarded Ernest, and
-Ernest&rsquo;s state of mind as regarded her, would make a curious study. They
-each loved the other, and yet how different had the results of that love been
-on the two natures! To Eva it had been and was a sorrow, sometimes a very real
-one; to Ernest, the destruction of all that made life worth living. The
-contrast, indeed, was almost pitiable, it was so striking; so wide a gulf was
-fixed between the two. The passion of the one was a wretched thing compared to
-the other. But both were real; it was merely a difference of degree. If
-Eva&rsquo;s affection was weak when measured by Ernest&rsquo;s, it was because
-the soil in which it grew was poorer. She gave all she had to give.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-As for Mr. Plowden, he could not but feel that on the whole his matrimonial
-speculation had answered very well. He was honestly fond of his wife, and, as
-he had a right to be, very proud of her. At times she was cold and capricious,
-and at times she was sarcastic; but, take it altogether, she made him a good
-and serviceable wife, and lifted him up many pegs in the social scale. People
-saw that though Plowden was not a gentleman, he had managed to marry a lady,
-and a very lovely lady too; and he was tolerated, indeed to a certain extent
-courted, for the sake of his wife. It was principally to attain this end that
-he had married her, so he had every reason to be satisfied with his bargain,
-and he was, besides, proud to be the legal owner of so handsome a creature.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva often thought of her old lover, though, except in the vaguest way, she had
-heard nothing of him for years. Indeed, she was, as it happened, thinking of
-him tenderly enough that very morning, when her little girl had called her
-attention to the &ldquo;nice blind man.&rdquo; And when at last, in a way which
-seemed to her little short of miraculous, she set eyes again upon his face, all
-her smouldering passion broke into flame, and she felt that she still loved him
-with all her strength, such as it was.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At that moment indeed she realised how great, how bitter, how complete was the
-mistake she had made, and what a beautiful thing life might have been for her
-if things had gone differently. But, remembering how things <i>were,</i> she
-bowed her head and passed on, for the time completely crushed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Presently, however, two points became clear in the confusion of her mind,
-taking shape and form as distinct and indisputable mental facts, and these
-were&mdash;first, that she was wildly jealous of Dorothy; second, that it was
-her fixed determination to see Ernest. She regretted now that she had been too
-overcome to go up and speak to him, for see him she must and would; indeed, her
-sick longing to look upon his face and hear his voice filled her with alarm.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva reached her home, after the meeting on the Hoe, just before luncheon-time.
-Her husband was now acting as locum tenens for the rector of one of the
-Plymouth parishes. They had moved thus from place to place for years, waiting
-for the Kesterwick living to fall vacant, and Eva liked the roving life well
-enough&mdash;it diverted her thoughts.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Presently she heard her husband enter, bringing somebody else with him, and
-summoned up the sweet smile for which she was remarkable to greet him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In another instant he was in the room, followed by a fresh-faced subaltern,
-whose appearance reminded her of the pictures of cherubs. Mr. Plowden had
-changed but little since we saw him last, with the exception that his hair was
-now streaked with white, and the whole face rather stouter. Otherwise the cold
-gray eyes were as cold as ever, and the countenance of Plowden was what the
-countenance of Plowden had always been&mdash;powerful, intelligent, and
-coarse-looking.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let me introduce my friend Lieutenant Jasper to you, my dear,&rdquo; he
-said, in his full strong voice, which was yet unpleasant to the ear. &ldquo;We
-met at Captain Johnstone&rsquo;s, and, as it is a long way to go to the
-barracks for lunch, I asked him to come and take pot-luck with us.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The cherubic Jasper had screwed an eyeglass into his round eye, and through it
-was contemplating Eva with astonished ecstasy; but, like most very beautiful
-women, she was used to that sort of thing, and it only amused her faintly. Mr.
-Plowden, too, was used to it, and took it as a personal compliment.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am delighted,&rdquo; she murmured, and held out her hand.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The cherub, suddenly awaking to the fact, dropped his eyeglass, and, plunging
-at the hand, seized it as a pike does a little fish, and shook it with
-enthusiasm.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva smiled again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Shall we go to lunch?&rdquo; she said, sweetly: and they went to lunch,
-she sailing down in front of them with the grace of a swan.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At lunch itself the conversation flagged rather&mdash;that is, Mr. Plowden
-talked with all the facility of an extemporary preacher; the cherub gazed at
-this pale dark-eyed angel; and Eva, fully occupied with her own thoughts,
-contributed a great many appreciative smiles and a few random remarks. Just as
-they were, to her intense relief, nearing the conclusion of the meal, a
-messenger arrived to summon Mr. Plowden to christen a dying baby. He got up at
-once, for he was punctilious in the performance of his duties, and, making
-excuses to his guest, departed on his errand, thus forcing Eva to carry on the
-conversation.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Have you been in Plymouth long, Mr. Jasper?&rdquo; she asked.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The eyeglass dropped spasmodically.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Plymouth? O dear, no; I only landed this morning.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Landed? Indeed! where from? I did not know that any boat was in except
-the <i>Conway Castle.</i>
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, I came by her, from the Zulu war, you know. I was invalided home
-for fever.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The cherub suddenly became intensely interesting to Eva, for it had struck her
-that Ernest must have come from Africa.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Indeed! I hope you had a pleasant passage. It depends so much on your
-fellow-passengers, does it not?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O yes, we had a very nice lot of men on board, wounded officers mostly.
-There were a couple of very decent civilians, too&mdash;a giant of a fellow
-called Jones, and a blind baronet, Sir Ernest Kershaw.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva&rsquo;s bosom heaved.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I once knew a Mr. Ernest Kershaw; I wonder if it is the same? He was
-tall, and had dark eyes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That&rsquo;s the man; he only got his title a month or two ago. A
-melancholy sort of chap, I thought; but then he can&rsquo;t see now. That Jones
-is a wonderful fellow, though&mdash;could pull two heavy men up at once, as
-easily as you would lift a puppy-dog. Saw him do it myself. I knew them both
-out there.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh! Where did you meet them?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, it was rather curious. I suppose you heard of the great disaster
-at that place with an awful name. Well, I was at a beastly hole called
-Helpmakaar, when a fellow came riding like anything from Rorke&rsquo;s Drift,
-telling us what had happened, and that the Zulus were coming. So we all set to
-and worked like mad, and just as we had got the place a little fit for them,
-somebody shouted that he saw them coming. That was just as it was getting dark.
-I ran to the wall to look, and saw, not the Zulus, but a great big fellow
-carrying a dead fellow in his arms, followed by a Kafir leading three horses.
-At least, I thought the fellow was dead, but he wasn&rsquo;t&mdash;he had been
-struck by lightning. We let him in; and such a sight as they were you never
-saw, all soaked with blood from top to toe!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah! And how did they come like that?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They were the only survivors of a volunteer corps called Alston&rsquo;s
-Horse. They killed all the Zulus that were attacking them, when the Zulus had
-killed everybody except them. Then they came away, and the blind
-fellow&mdash;that is, Sir Ernest&mdash;got struck in a storm; fellows often do
-out there.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva put further questions, and listened with breathless interest to the story
-of Ernest&rsquo;s and Jeremy&rsquo;s wonderful escape, so far as the details
-were known to Mr. Jasper, quite regardless of the pitiless fire that young
-gentleman was keeping on herself through his eyeglass. At last, reluctantly
-enough, he rose to go.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I must be off now, Mrs. Plowden; I want to go and call on Sir Ernest at
-the hotel. He lent me a Derringer pistol to practise at a bottle with, and I
-forgot to give it back.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva turned the full battery of her beautiful eyes upon him. She saw that the
-young gentleman was struck, and determined to make use of him. Women are
-unscrupulous when they have an end in view.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I am so sorry you must go; but I hope you will come and see me again,
-and tell me some more about the war and the battles.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are very kind,&rdquo; he stammered. &ldquo;I shall be
-delighted.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He did not think it necessary to add that he had not had the luck to see a shot
-fired himself. Why should he?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;By the way, if you are going to see Sir Ernest, do you think you could
-give him a private message from me? I have a reason for not wishing it to be
-overheard.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O yes, I daresay I can. Nothing would give me greater pleasure.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are very good.&rdquo; Another glance. &ldquo;Will you tell him that
-I wish he would take a fly and come to see me? I shall be in all this
-afternoon.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A pang of jealousy shot through the cherubic bosom, but he comforted himself
-with the reflection that a fine woman like that could not care for a
-&ldquo;blind fellow.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, certainly, I will try.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Thank you;&rdquo; and she extended her hand.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He took it, and, intoxicated by those superb eyes, ventured to press it
-tenderly. A mild wonder took possession of Eva&rsquo;s mind that anybody so
-very young could have developed such an astonishing amount of impudence, but
-she did not resent the pressure. What did she care about having her hand
-squeezed when it was a question of seeing Ernest?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Poor deluded cherub!
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap40"></a>CHAPTER IV.<br/>
-AFTER MANY DAYS</h2>
-
-<p>
-Within an hour of the departure of Lieutenant Jasper, Eva heard a fly draw up
-at the door. Then came an interval and the sound of two people walking up the
-steps, one of whom stumbled a good deal; then a ring.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Is Mrs. Plowden at home?&rdquo; said a clear voice, the well-remembered
-tones of which sent the blood to her head and then back to her heart with a
-rush.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, sir.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh! Wait here, flyman. Now, my good girl, I must ask you to give me your
-hand, for I am not in a condition to find my way about strange places.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Another pause, and the drawing-room door opened, and the maid came in, leading
-Ernest, who wore a curious, drawn look upon his face.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How do you do?&rdquo; she said, in a low voice, coming and taking him by
-the hand. &ldquo;That will do, Jane.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He did not speak till the door closed; he only looked at her with those
-searching blind eyes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Thus they met again after many years.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She led him to a sofa, and he sat down.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do not leave go of my hand,&rdquo; he said quickly; &ldquo;I have not
-yet got used to talking to people in the dark.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She sat down on the sofa beside him, feeling frightened and yet happy. For
-awhile they remained silent; apparently they could find nothing to say, and,
-after all, silence seemed most fitting. She had never thought to sit hand in
-hand with him again. She looked at him; there was no need for her to keep a
-guard over her loving glances, for he was blind. At length she broke the
-silence.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Were you surprised to get my message?&rdquo; she asked, gently.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes; it was like getting a message from the dead. I never expected to
-see you again. I thought that you had quite passed out of my life.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So you had forgotten me?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why do you say such a thing to me? You must know, Eva, that it is
-impossible for me to forget you; I almost wish that it were possible. I meant
-that you had passed out of my outward life, for out of my mind you can never
-pass.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva hung her head and was silent, and yet his words sent a thrill of happiness
-through her. So she had not quite lost him after it all.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Listen, Eva,&rdquo; Ernest went on, gathering himself together, and
-speaking sternly enough now, and with a strange suppressed energy that
-frightened her. &ldquo;How you came to do what you have done you best
-know.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is done; do not let us speak of it. I was not altogether to
-blame,&rdquo; she broke in.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I was not going to speak of it. But I was going to say this, now while I
-have the chance, because time is short, and I think it right that you should
-know the truth. I was going to tell you just that for what you have done I
-freely forgive you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O Ernest!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is,&rdquo; he went on, not heeding her, &ldquo;a question that you
-can settle with your conscience and your God. But I wish to tell you what it is
-that you have done. You have wrecked my life, and made it an unhappy thing; you
-have taken that from me which I can never have to give again; you have
-embittered my mind, and driven me to sins of which I should not otherwise have
-dreamed. I loved you, and you gave me proofs which I could not doubt that I had
-won your love. You let me love you, and then when the hour of trial came you
-deserted and morally destroyed me, and the great and holy affection that should
-have been the blessing of my life has become its curse.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Eva covered her face with her hands and sat silent.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You do not answer me, Eva,&rdquo; he said presently, with a little
-laugh. &ldquo;Perhaps you find what I have to say difficult to answer, or
-perhaps you think I am taking a liberty.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are very hard,&rdquo; she said, in a low voice.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Had you not better wait till I have done before you call me hard? If I
-wished to be hard, I should tell you that I no longer cared for you, that my
-prevailing feeling towards you was one of contempt. It would, perhaps, mortify
-you to think that I had shaken off such heavy chains. But it is not the truth,
-Eva. I love you now, as I always have loved you, as I always shall love you. I
-hope for nothing, I ask for nothing; in this business it has always been my
-part to give, not to receive. I despise myself for it, but so it is.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She laid her hand upon his shoulder. &ldquo;Spare me, Ernest,&rdquo; she
-whispered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I have very little more to say, only this: I believe all that I have
-given you has not been given uselessly. I believe that the love of the flesh
-will die with the flesh. But my love for you has been something more and higher
-than that, or how has it lived without hope, and in spite of its dishonour,
-through so many years? It is of the spirit, and I believe that its life will be
-like that of the spirit, unending, and that when this hateful existence is done
-with I shall in some way reap its fruits with you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why do you believe that, Ernest? It seems too happy to be true.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why do I believe it? I cannot tell you. Perhaps it is nothing but the
-fantasy of a mind broken down with brooding on its grief. In trouble we grow
-towards the light&mdash;like a plant in the dark, you know. As a crushed flower
-smells sweet, so all that is most aspiring in human nature is called into life
-when God lays His heavy hand upon us. Heaven is sorrow&rsquo;s sole ambition.
-No, Eva, I do not know why I believe it&mdash;certainly you have given me no
-grounds for this&mdash;but I do believe it, and it comforts me. By the way, how
-did you know that I was here?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I passed you on the Hoe this morning, walking with Dorothy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest started. &ldquo;I felt you pass,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;and asked
-Dorothy who it was. She said she did not know.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She knew, but I made a sign to her not to say.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ernest, will you promise me something?&rdquo; asked Eva, wildly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nothing. I have changed my mind&mdash;nothing at all!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The promise that she was about to ask was that he would not marry Dorothy, but
-her better nature rose in rebellion against it. Then they talked awhile of
-Ernest&rsquo;s life abroad.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well,&rdquo; said Ernest, rising after a pause, &ldquo;good-bye,
-Eva.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is a very cruel word,&rdquo; she murmured.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, it is cruel, but not more cruel than the rest.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It has been a happiness to see you, Ernest.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He shrugged his shoulders as he answered. &ldquo;Has it? For myself I am not
-sure if it has been a happiness or a misery. I must have a year or two of quiet
-and darkness to think it over before I make up my mind. Will you kindly ring
-the bell for the servant to take me away?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Half unconsciously she obeyed him, and then she came and took his hand and
-looked with all her eyes and all her soul into his face. It was fortunate that
-he could not see her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O Ernest, you are blind!&rdquo; she said, scarcely knowing what she
-said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He laughed&mdash;a hard little laugh. &ldquo;Yes, Eva, <i>I</i> am as blind now
-as <i>you</i> have been always.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ernest! Ernest! how can I live without seeing you? <i>I love
-you!</i>&rdquo; and she fell into his arms.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He kissed her once&mdash;twice, and then somehow, he never knew how, found the
-strength to put her from him. Perhaps it was because he heard the servant
-coming.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Next moment the servant came and led him away. As soon as he was gone Eva flung
-herself on to the sofa, and sobbed as though her heart would break.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When Dorothy saw a fresh-faced young officer, who had come up to see Ernest,
-mysteriously lead him aside, and whisper something in his ear which caused him
-to turn first red and then white, being a shrewd observer, she thought it
-curious. But when Ernest asked her to ring the bell and then ordered a fly to
-be brought round at once, the idea of Eva at once flashed into her mind. She
-and no other must be at the bottom of this mystery. Presently the fly was
-announced, and Ernest went off without a word, leaving her to the tender
-mercies of the cherub, who was contemplating her with his round eye as he had
-contemplated Eva, and finding her also charming. It must be remembered that he
-had but just returned from South Africa, and was prepared, <i>faute de
-mieux,</i> to fall in love with an apple-woman. How much more, then, would he
-succumb to the charms of the stately Eva and the extremely fascinating Dorothy!
-It was some time before the latter could get rid of his eyeglass. On an
-ordinary occasion she would have been glad enough to entertain him, for Dorothy
-liked a little male society; and the cherub, though he did look so painfully
-young, was not half a bad fellow, and after all his whole soul was in his
-eyeglass, and his staring was meant to be complimentary. But just now she had a
-purpose in her head, and was heartily glad when he departed to reflect over the
-rival attractions of the two charmers.
-</p>
-
-<div class="fig" style="width:100%;">
-<a name="illus14"></a>
-<br />
-<img src="images/fig14.jpg" width="404" height="600" alt="[Illustration: ]" />
-<p class="caption">&ldquo;After many days.&rdquo;
-</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>
-It was very evident to Dorothy, who was always strictly practical, that to keep
-Eva and Ernest in the same town was to hold dry tow to a lighted match over a
-barrel of gun-powder. She only hoped that he might come back now without having
-put his foot into it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, what fools men are!&rdquo; she said to herself, with a stamp;
-&ldquo;a pretty face and a pair of bright eyes, and they count the world well
-lost for them. Bah! if it had been a plain woman who played Ernest that trick,
-would he be found dangling about after her now? Not he. But with her, she has
-only to say a soft word or two, and he will be at her feet, I&rsquo;ll be
-bound. I am ashamed of them both.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Meanwhile she was putting on her bonnet, which was a very favourite time with
-her for meditation, having already made up her mind as to her course of action.
-Ernest had authorised her to make arrangements for an interview with an
-oculist. She proceeded to make those arrangements by telegram, wiring to a
-celebrated surgeon to know if he could make an appointment for the following
-afternoon. Then she took a walk by herself to think things over. In an hour she
-returned, to find Ernest in the sitting-room, looking extremely shaken and
-depressed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You have been to see Eva?&rdquo; she said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; he answered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Just then there was a knock at the door, and the servant brought in a telegram.
-It was from the oculist. He would be glad to see Sir Ernest Kershaw at four
-o&rsquo;clock on the following afternoon.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I have made an appointment for you with an eye-doctor, Ernest, at four
-o&rsquo;clock to morrow.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;To-morrow!&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes. The sooner you get your eyes looked to the better.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He sighed. &ldquo;What is the good? However, I will go.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And so next morning they all took the express, and at the appointed time Ernest
-found himself in the skilful hands of the oculist. But though an oculist can
-mend the sight, he cannot make it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I can do nothing for you, Sir Ernest,&rdquo; he said, after an
-exhaustive examination. &ldquo;Your eyes will remain as they are, but you must
-always be blind.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest took the news with composure.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I thought as much,&rdquo; he said; but Dorothy put her handkerchief to
-her face and wept secretly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Next morning he went with Jeremy to call on Messrs. Paisley and Paisley, and
-told them to try and let Archdale Hall, and to lock up the numerous and
-valuable heirlooms, as unfortunately he was unable to see them. Then they went
-on home to Dum&rsquo;s Ness, and that night Ernest lay awake in the room where
-he had slept for so many years in the boyhood which now seemed so dim and
-remote, and listened to the stormy wind raving round the house, and thought
-with an aching heart of Eva, but was thankful that he had bid her farewell, and
-wondered if he could find the strength to keep away from her.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And Eva, his lost love, she too lay by the sea and listened to the wind, and
-thought on him. There she lay in her beauty, seeking the sleep that would not
-settle round her. She could not sleep; forgetful sleep does not come readily to
-such as she. For her and those like her are vain regrets and an empty love and
-longing, and the wreath of thorns that crowns the brow where sorrow is
-enthroned.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Yet, Eva, lift that fevered head, and turn those seeking eyes to heaven. See,
-through the casement, above the tumult of the storm, there gleams a star. For
-you, too, there shines a star called Hope, but it is set in no earthly sky.
-Have patience, wayward heart, there is but a space of trouble. As you suffer,
-so have millions suffered, and are they not at peace? so shall millions suffer:
-</p>
-
-<p class="poem">
-&ldquo;While thou, that once didst make the place thou stoodst in lovely, shalt
-lie still,<br/>
-Thy form departed, and thy face remembered not in good or ill.&rdquo;<br/>
-</p>
-
-<p>
-For of this we may be sure&mdash;if suffering is not the widest gate of heaven,
-then heaven has no gates. Unhappy woman, stretch out those longing arms in
-supplication to the God of sorrows for strength to bear your load, since here
-it shall not be lightened. The burdens which Providence binds on our backs,
-Providence will sometimes lessen, but those which our own folly fastens remain
-till death deliver us.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-So, Eva, dry your tears, for they can avail you naught, and go get you to your
-daily task&mdash;go tend your children, and smile that sweet sad smile on all
-alike, and <i>wait.</i> As you have sowed so shall you reap, but seed-time is
-not done, and not yet is the crop white to the harvest.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap41"></a>CHAPTER V.<br/>
-HOME AGAIN</h2>
-
-<p>
-It was very peaceful, that life at Kesterwick, after all the fierce racket and
-excitement of the past years. Indeed, as day succeeded day, and brought nothing
-to disturb his darkness but the sound of Dorothy&rsquo;s gentle voice, and the
-scent of flowers on the marshes when the wind blew towards the ocean, and the
-sharp strong odour of the sea when it set upon the land, Ernest could almost
-fancy that the past was nothing but a dream more or less ugly, and that this
-was a dream more or less pleasant, from which he should presently wake up and
-find himself a boy again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-English villages change but little. Now and again a person dies, and pretty
-frequently some one is born; but, on the whole, the tide of time creeps on very
-imperceptibly, and though in the course of nature the entire population is
-changed every sixty years or so, nobody seems to realise that it is changing.
-There is so little in such places by which to mark the change. The same
-church-tower makes a landmark to the eye as it did centuries ago to the eyes of
-our ancestors, and the same clouds sweep across the same blue space above it.
-There are the same old houses, the same streams, and, above all, the same roads
-and lanes. If you could put one of our Saxon forefathers down in the
-neighbourhood of most of our country towns, he would have little difficulty in
-finding his way about. It is the men who change, not the places.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Still there were some few changes at Kesterwick. Here and there the sea had
-taken another bite out of the cliff, notably on the north side of Dum&rsquo;s
-Ness, out of which a large slice had gone, thus bringing the water considerably
-nearer to the house. Here and there a tree, too, had been cut down, or a
-cottage built, or a family changed its residence. For instance, Miss Florence
-Ceswick had suddenly shut up the Cottage, where she had remained ever since
-Eva&rsquo;s marriage, seeing nothing of her sister or her sister&rsquo;s
-husband, and had gone abroad&mdash;people said to Rome, to study art. For
-Florence had suddenly electrified the Kesterwick neighbourhood by appearing as
-an artist of tragic force and gruesome imagination. A large picture by her hand
-had been exhibited in the Royal Academy of the previous year, and, though the
-colouring was somewhat crude, it made a great and deserved sensation, and
-finally sold for a considerable sum.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This picture represented a promontory of land running out far into a stormy
-ocean. The sky above the sea was of an inky blackness, except where a fierce
-ray of light from a setting sun pierced it, and impinged upon the boiling
-waters which surged round the low cliff of the promontory. On the extreme edge
-of the cliff stood a tall and lovely woman. The wind caught the white robe she
-wore and pressed it against her, revealing the extraordinary beauty of her
-form, and, lifting her long fair locks, tossed them in wild confusion. She was
-bending forward, pointing with her right hand at the water, with such a look of
-ghastly agony upon her beautiful face and in the great gray eyes, that people
-of impressionable temperament were wont to declare it haunted their sleep for
-weeks. Down below her, just where the fierce ray lit up the heaving waters,
-gleamed a naked corpse. It was that of a young man, and was slowly sinking into
-the unfathomable darkness of the depths, turning round and round as it sank.
-The eyes and mouth were wide open, and the stare of the former appeared to be
-fixed upon those of the woman on the cliff. Lastly, over the corpse, in the
-storm-wreaths above their heads, there hovered on steady wings a dim female
-figure, with its arm thrown across the face as though to hide it. In the
-catalogue this picture was called &ldquo;The Lost Lover,&rdquo; but speculation
-was rife as to what it meant.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy heard of it, and went to London to see it. The first thing that struck
-her about the work was the extraordinary contrast it presented to the
-commonplace canvases by which it was surrounded, of reapers, of little girls
-frisking with baa-lambs, and nude young women musing profoundly on the edge of
-pools, as though they were trying to solve the great question&mdash;to wash or
-not to wash. But presently the horror of the picture laid hold upon her, and
-seemed to fascinate her, as it had so many others. Then she became aware that
-the faces were familiar to her, and suddenly it broke upon her mind that the
-sinking corpse was Ernest, and the agonised woman, Eva. She examined the faces
-more attentively. There was no doubt about it. Florence, with consummate art,
-had changed the colouring of the hair and features, and even to a great extent
-altered the features themselves; but she had preserved the likeness perfectly,
-both upon the dead face of the murdered man, and in the horror-inspired eyes of
-his lover. The picture made her sick with fear&mdash;she could not tell
-why&mdash;and she hurried from Burlington House full of dread of the terrible
-mind that had conceived it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There had been no intercourse between the two women since Eva&rsquo;s marriage.
-Florence lived quite alone at the Cottage, and never went out anywhere; and if
-they met by any chance, they passed with a bow. But for all that, it was a
-relief to Dorothy to hear that she was not for some long time to see that stern
-face with its piercing brown eyes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In Dum&rsquo;s Ness itself there appeared to be no change at all. Except that
-Mr. Cardus had built a new orchid-house at the back&mdash;for as he grew older
-his mania for orchids increased rather than diminished&mdash;the place was
-exactly the same. Even the arrangement of the sitting-room was unchanged, and
-on its familiar bracket rested the case which Jeremy had made containing the
-witch&rsquo;s head.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The people in the house to all appearance had changed as little as the house
-itself. Jeremy confided to Ernest that Doll had grown rather
-&ldquo;tubby,&rdquo; which was his elegant way of indicating that she had
-developed a very pretty figure, and that Grice (the old housekeeper) was as
-skinny as a flayed weasel, and had eyes like the point of a knife. Ernest
-maliciously repeated these sayings to the two ladies concerned, with the result
-that they were both furious. Then he retreated, and left them to settle it with
-Jeremy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Old Atterleigh, too, was almost exactly the same, except that of late years his
-intellect seemed to have brightened a little. It was, however, difficult to
-make him understand that Ernest was blind, because the latter&rsquo;s eyes
-looked all right. He retained some recollection of him, and brought him his
-notched stick to show him that, according to his (&ldquo;hard-riding
-Atterleigh&rsquo;s&rdquo;) calculation, his time of service with the devil,
-otherwise Mr. Cardus, would expire in a few months. Dorothy read what the old
-man wrote upon his slate, and repeated it to Ernest; for, he being practically
-dumb and Ernest being blind, that was the only way in which they could
-communicate.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And what will you do then?&rdquo; asked Ernest. &ldquo;You will be
-wretched without any writs to fill up. Who will look after the lost souls, I
-should like to know?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The old man at once wrote vigorously on his slate:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I shall go out hunting on the big black horse you brought with you; he
-will carry my weight.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I should advise you not to try,&rdquo; said Ernest, laughing; &ldquo;he
-does not like strange riders.&rdquo; But the old man, at the mere thought of
-hunting, was striding up and down the room, clanking his spurs and waving his
-hunting crop with his uninjured arm.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Is your grandfather as much afraid of my uncle as ever, Doll?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh yes, I think so; and do you know, Ernest, I don&rsquo;t quite like
-the way he looks at him sometimes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest laughed. &ldquo;I should think that the old boy is harmless
-enough,&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope so,&rdquo; said Dorothy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When first they came back to Dum&rsquo;s Ness, Jeremy was at a great loss to
-know what to do with himself, and was haunted by the idea that Mr. Cardus would
-want him to resume that stool in his office which years before he had quitted
-to go in search of Ernest. A week or so after his arrival, however, his fears
-were very pleasantly set at rest. After breakfast, Mr. Cardus sent for him to
-come into his office.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, Jeremy,&rdquo; he said, letting his soft black eyes wander round
-that young gentleman&rsquo;s gigantic form&mdash;for it was by now painfully
-large&mdash;not so much in height, for he was not six feet three&mdash;as in
-its great width, which made big men look like children beside him, and even
-dwarfed his old grandfather&rsquo;s enormous frame&mdash;&ldquo;well, Jeremy,
-what do you think of doing? You are too big for a lawyer; all your clients
-would be afraid of you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know about being too big,&rdquo; said Jeremy, solemnly,
-&ldquo;but I know that I am too great an ass. Besides, I can&rsquo;t afford to
-spend several years in being articled at my time of life.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Quite so. Then what do you propose doing?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know from Adam.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, how would you like to turn your sword to a plough-share, and
-become a farmer?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think that would suit me first-rate. I have some capital laid by.
-Ernest and I made a little money out there.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, I would not advise you to take a farm in that way; these are bad
-times. But I want a practical man to look after my land round here&mdash;salary
-&pound;150. What do you say?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are very kind; but I doubt if I can boss that coach; I don&rsquo;t
-know anything of the work.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, you will very soon learn; there is a capital bailiff;
-Stamp&mdash;you remember him&mdash;he will soon put you up to the ropes. So we
-will consider that settled.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Thus it was that our friend Jeremy entered on a new walk in life, and one which
-suited him very well. In less than a year&rsquo;s time he grew aggressively
-agricultural, and one never met him but what he had a handful of oats, or a
-mangel-wurzel in his coat-tail pocket, which he was ready to swear were samples
-of the finest oats, mangel-wurzel, or whatever the particular agricultural
-product might be that ever had been, or were ever likely to be, grown.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap42"></a>CHAPTER VI.<br/>
-HOW IT ALL CAME ABOUT</h2>
-
-<p>
-How did it all come about?
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Let us try and discover. Dorothy and Ernest were together all day long. They
-only separated when Mazooku came to lead the latter off to bed. At
-breakfast-time he led him back again, and handed him over to Dorothy for the
-day. Not that our Zulu friend liked this; he did not like it at all. It was, he
-considered, his business to lead his master about, and not that of the
-&ldquo;Rosebud,&rdquo; who was, as he discovered, after all nothing but a girl
-connected with his master neither by birth nor marriage. And on this point
-there finally arose a difference of opinion between the Rosebud and Mazooku.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The latter was leading Ernest for his morning walk, when Dorothy, perceiving
-it, and being very jealous of what she considered her rights, sallied out and
-took his hand from the great Zulu&rsquo;s. Then did Mazooku&rsquo;s long-pent
-indignation break forth.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O Rosebud, sweet and small Rosebud!&rdquo; he commenced, addressing her
-in Zulu, of which, needless to say, she understood not one word, &ldquo;why do
-you come and take my father&rsquo;s hand out of my hand? Is not Mazimba my
-father blind, and am I not his dog, his old dog, to lead him in his blindness?
-Why do you take his bone from a dog?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is the man saying?&rdquo; asked Dorothy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He is offended because you come to lead me; he says that he is my dog,
-and that you snatch his bone from him: A pretty sort of bone indeed!&rdquo; he
-added.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Tell him,&rdquo; said Dorothy, &ldquo;that here in this country I hold
-your hand. What does he want? Is he not always with you? Does he not sleep
-across your door? What more does he want?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest translated her reply.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ow!&rdquo; said the Zulu, with a grunt of dissatisfaction.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;He is a faithful fellow, Doll, and has stood by me for many years; you
-must not vex him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But Dorothy, after the manner of loving women, was tenacious of what she
-considered <i>her</i> rights.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Tell him that he can walk in front,&rdquo; she said, putting on an
-obstinate little look&mdash;and she could look obstinate when she liked.
-&ldquo;Besides,&rdquo; she added, &ldquo;he cannot be trusted to lead you. I am
-sure he was tipsy last night.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest translated the first remark only&mdash;into the latter he did not care
-to inquire, for the Zulu vowed that he could never understand Dorothy&rsquo;s
-English, and Mazooku accepted the compromise. Thus for awhile the difference
-was patched up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Sometimes Dorothy and Ernest would go out riding together; for, blind as he
-was, Ernest could not be persuaded to give up his riding. It was a pretty sight
-to see them; Ernest mounted on his towering black stallion, &ldquo;The
-Devil,&rdquo; which in his hands was as gentle as a lamb, but with everybody
-else fully justified his appellation, and Dorothy on a cream-coloured cob Mr.
-Cardus had given her, holding in her right hand a steel guiding-rein linked to
-&ldquo;The Devil&rsquo;s&rdquo; bit. In this way they would wander all over the
-country-side, and sometimes, when a good piece of turf presented itself, even
-venture on a sharp canter. Behind them Mazooku rode as groom, mounted on a
-stout pony, with his feet stuck, Zulu fashion, well out at right-angles to his
-animal&rsquo;s side.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They were a strange trio.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And so from week&rsquo;s end to week&rsquo;s end Dorothy was ever by
-Ernest&rsquo;s side, reading to him, writing for him, walking and riding with
-him, weaving herself into the substance of his life.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And at last there came one sunny August day, when they were sitting together in
-the shade of the chancel of Titheburgh Abbey. It was a favourite spot of
-theirs, for the gray old walls sheltered them from the glare of the sun and the
-breath of the winds. It was a spot, too, rich in memories of the dead past, and
-a pleasant place to sit.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Through the gaping window-places came the murmur of the ocean and the warmth of
-the harvest sunshine; and gazing out by the chancel doorway, Dorothy could see
-the long lights of the afternoon dance and sparkle on the emerald waves.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She had been reading to him, and the book lay idle on her knees as she gazed
-dreamily at those lights and shadows, a sweet picture of pensive womanhood. He,
-too, had relapsed into silence, and was evidently thinking deeply.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Presently she roused herself.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, Ernest,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;what are you thinking about? You
-are as dull as&mdash;as the dullest thing in the world, whatever that may be.
-What is the dullest thing in the world?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know,&rdquo; he answered, awakening. &ldquo;Yes, I think I
-do; an American novel.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, that is a good definition. You are as dull as an American
-novel.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is unkind of you to say so, Doll, my dear. I was thinking of
-something, Doll.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She made a little face, which of course he could not see, and answered quickly:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You generally are thinking of something. You generally are thinking
-of&mdash;Eva, except when you are asleep, and then you are dreaming of
-her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest coloured up.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;it is true; she is often more or less in my
-mind. It is my misfortune, Doll, not my fault. You see, I do not do things by
-halves.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy bit her lip.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;She should be vastly flattered, I am sure. Few women can boast of having
-inspired such affection in a man. I suppose it is because she treated you so
-badly. Dogs love the hand that whips them. You are a curious character, Ernest.
-Not many men would give so much to one who has returned so little.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So much the better for them. If I had a son, I think that I should teach
-him to make love to all women, and to use their affection as a means of
-amusement and self-advancement, but to fall in love with none.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That is one of your bitter remarks, for which I suppose we must thank
-Eva. You are always making them now. Let me tell you that there are good women
-in the world; yes, and honest, faithful women, who, when they have given their
-heart, are true to their choice, and would not do it violence to be made Queen
-of England. But you men do not go the right way to find them. You think of
-nothing but beauty, and never take the trouble to learn the hearts of the sweet
-girls who grow like daisies in the grass all round you, but who do not happen
-to have great melting eyes or a splendid figure. You tread them underfoot, and
-if they were not so humble they would be crushed, as you rush off and try to
-pick the rose; and then you prick your fingers and cry out, and tell all the
-daisies how shamefully the rose has treated you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest laughed, and Dorothy went on:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, it is an unjust world. Let a woman but be beautiful and everything
-is at her feet, for you men are despicable creatures, and care for little
-except what is pleasant to the senses. On the other hand, let her be plain, or
-only ordinary-looking&mdash;for the fate of most of us is just to escape being
-ugly&mdash;and you pay as much regard to her as you do to the chairs you sit
-on. And yet, strange as it may seem to you, probably she has her feelings, and
-her capacities for high affection, and her imaginative power, all working
-vigorously behind her plain little face. Probably, too, she is better than your
-beauty. Nature does not give everything. When she endows a woman with perfect
-loveliness, she robs her either of her heart or her brains. But you men
-don&rsquo;t see that, because you won&rsquo;t look; so in course of time all
-the fine possibilities in Miss Plainface wither up, and she becomes a
-disappointed old maid, while my Lady Beauty pursues her career of selfishness
-and mischief-making, till at last she withers up too, that&rsquo;s one comfort.
-We all end in bones, you know, and there isn&rsquo;t much difference between us
-then.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest had been listening with great amusement to Dorothy&rsquo;s views. He had
-no idea that she took such matters into her shrewd consideration.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I heard a girl say the other day that, on the whole, most women
-preferred to become old maids,&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then she told fibs; they don&rsquo;t. It isn&rsquo;t natural that they
-should&mdash;that is, if they care for anybody. Just think, there are more than
-ten hundred thousand of our charming sisterhood in these islands, and more
-women being born every day! Ten hundred thousand restless, unoccupied,
-disgusted, loveless women! It is simply awful to think of. I wonder they
-don&rsquo;t breed a revolution. If they were all beautiful, they would.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He laughed again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Do you know what remedy Mazooku would apply to this state of
-affairs?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;The instant adoption of polygamy. There are no unmarried women among the
-Natal Zulus, and as a class they are extremely happy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy shook her head.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It wouldn&rsquo;t do here; it would be too expensive.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I say, Doll, you spoke just now of our &lsquo;charming
-sisterhood&rsquo;; you are rather young to consider yourself an old maid. Do
-you want to become one?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; she said sharply.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then <i>you</i> don&rsquo;t care for anybody, eh?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She blushed up furiously.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What business is that of yours, I should like to know?&rdquo; she
-answered.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, Doll, not much. But will you be angry with me if I say
-something?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I suppose you can say what you like.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes; but will you listen?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If you speak I cannot help hearing.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, then, Doll&mdash;now don&rsquo;t be angry, dear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O Ernest, how you aggravate me! Can&rsquo;t you get it out and have done
-with it?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right, Doll, I&rsquo;ll steam straight ahead this time. It is this.
-I have sometimes lately been vain enough to think that you cared a little about
-me, Doll, although I am as blind as a bat. I want to ask you if it is true. You
-must tell me plain, Doll, because I cannot see your eyes to learn the truth
-from them.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She turned quite pale at his words, and her eyes rested upon his blind orbs
-with a look of unutterable tenderness. So it had come at last.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why do you ask me that question. Ernest? Whether or no I care for you, I
-am very sure that you do not care for me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You are not quite right there, Doll, but I will tell you why I ask it;
-it is not out of mere curiosity.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You know all the history of my life, Doll, or at least most of it. You
-know how I loved Eva, and gave her all that a foolish youngster can give to a
-weak woman&mdash;gave it in such a way that I can never have it back again.
-Well, she deserted me; I have lost her. The best happiness of my life has been
-wrecked beyond redemption; that is a fact which must be accepted as much as the
-fact of my blindness. I am physically and morally crippled, and certainly in no
-fit state to ask a woman to marry me on the ground of my personal advantages.
-But if, my dear Doll, you should, as I have sometimes thought, happen to care
-about anything so worthless, then, you see, the affair assumes a different
-aspect.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t quite understand you. What do you mean?&rdquo; she said,
-in a low voice.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I mean that in that case I will ask you if you will take me for a
-husband.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You do not love me, Ernest; I should weary you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He felt for her hand, found it, and took it in his own. She made no resistance.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dear,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;it is this way: I can never give you that
-passion I gave to Eva, because, thank God, the human heart can know it but once
-in a life; but I can and will give you a husband&rsquo;s tenderest love. You
-are very dear to me, Doll, though it is not in the same way that Eva is dear. I
-have always loved you as a sister, and I think that I should make you a good
-husband. But, before you answer me, I want you to thoroughly understand about
-Eva. Whether I marry or not, I fear that I shall never be able to shake her out
-of my mind. At one time I thought that perhaps if I made love to other women I
-might be able to do so, on the principle that one nail drives out another. But
-it was a failure; for a month or two I got the better of my thoughts, then they
-would get the better of me again. Besides, to tell you the truth, I am not
-quite sure that I wish to do so. My trouble about this woman has become a part
-of myself. It is, as I told you, my &lsquo;evil destiny,&rsquo; and goes where
-I go. And now, dear Doll, you will see why I asked you if you really cared for
-me before I asked you to marry me. If you do not care for me, then it will
-clearly not be worth your while to marry me, for I am about as poor a catch as
-a man can well be; if you do&mdash;well, then it is a matter for your
-consideration.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She paused awhile and answered:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Suppose that the positions were reversed, Ernest; at least, suppose
-this: suppose that you had loved your Eva all your life, but she had not loved
-you except as a brother, having given her heart to some other man, who was,
-say, married to somebody else, or in some way separated from her. Well,
-supposing that this man died, and that one day Eva came to you and said,
-&lsquo;Ernest, my dear, I cannot love you as I loved him who has gone, and whom
-I one day hope to rejoin in heaven; but if you wish it, and it will make you
-the happier, I will be your true and tender wife.&rsquo; What should you answer
-her, Ernest?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Answer? why, I suppose that I should take her at her word and be
-thankful. Yes, I think that I should take her at her word.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And so, dear Ernest, do I take you at your word; for as it is with you
-about Eva, so it is with me about you. As a child I loved you; ever since I
-have been a woman I have loved you more and more, even through all those cold
-years of absence. And when you came back, ah, then it was to me as it would be
-to you if you suddenly once more saw the light of day. Ernest, my beloved, you
-are all my life to me, and I take you at your word, my dear. I will be your
-wife.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He stretched out his arms, found her, drew her to him, and kissed her on the
-lips.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Doll, I don&rsquo;t deserve that you should love me so; it makes me feel
-ashamed that I have not more to give you in return.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ernest, you will give me all you can; I mean to make you grow very fond
-of me. Perhaps one day you will give me everything.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He hesitated a little while before he spoke again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Doll,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;you are quite sure that you do not mind
-about Eva?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My dear Ernest, I accept Eva as a fact, and make the best of her, just
-as I should if I wanted to marry a man with a monomania that he was Henry
-VIII.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Doll, you know I call her my evil destiny. The fact is, I am afraid of
-her; she overpowers my reason. Well, now, Doll, what I am driving at is this:
-supposing&mdash;not that I think she will&mdash;that she were to crop up again,
-and take it into her head to try and make a fool of me! She <i>might</i> succeed,
-Doll.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ernest, will you promise me something on your honour?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, dear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Promise me that you will hide from me nothing that passes between Eva
-and yourself, if anything ever should pass, and that in this matter you will
-always consider me not in the light of a wife, but of a trusted friend.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why do you ask me to promise that?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Because then I shall, I hope, be able to keep you both out of trouble.
-You are not fit to look after yourselves, either of you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I promise. And now, Doll, there is one more thing. It is somehow fixed
-in my mind that my fate and that woman&rsquo;s are intertwined. I believe that
-what we are now passing through is but a single phase of interwoven existence;
-that we have, perhaps, already passed through many stages, and that many higher
-stages and developments await us. Of course, it may be fantasy, but at any rate
-I believe it. The question is, do you care to link your life with that of a man
-who holds such a belief?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ernest, I daresay your belief is a true one, at any rate for you who
-believe it, for it seems probable that as we sow so shall we reap, as we
-spiritually imagine so shall we spiritually inherit, since causes must in time
-produce effects. These beliefs are not implanted in our hearts for nothing, and
-surely in the wide heavens there is room for the realisation of them all. But I
-too have my beliefs, and one of them is, that in God&rsquo;s great Hereafter
-every loving and desiring soul will be with the soul thus loved and desired.
-For him or her, at any rate, the other will be there, forming a part of his or
-her life, though, perhaps, it may elsewhere and with others also be pursuing
-its own desires and satisfying its own aspirations. So you see, Ernest, your
-beliefs will not interfere with mine, nor shall I be afraid of losing you in
-another place.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And now, Ernest, my heart&rsquo;s love, take my hand, and let me
-lead you home; take my hand, as you have taken my heart, and never leave go of
-it again till at last I die.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And so hand in hand they went home together, through the lights and shadows of
-the twilight.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap43"></a>CHAPTER VII.<br/>
-MAZOOKU&rsquo;S FAREWELL</h2>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy and Ernest got back to Dum&rsquo;s Ness just in time to dress for
-dinner, for since Ernest and Jeremy had come back, Dorothy, whose will in that
-house was law, had instituted late dinner. The dinner passed over as usual,
-Dorothy sitting between Ernest and her grandfather, and attending to the wants
-of those two unfortunates, both of whom would have found it rather difficult to
-get through their meal without her gentle, unobtrusive help. But when dinner
-was over and the cloth removed, and Grice had placed the wine upon the table
-and withdrawn, an unusual thing happened.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest asked Dorothy to fill his glass with port, and when she had done so he
-said:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Uncle and Jeremy, I am going to ask you to drink a health.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The old man looked up sharply. &ldquo;What is it, Ernest, my boy?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-As for Dorothy, she blushed a rosy red, guessing what was coming, and not
-knowing whether to be pleased or angry.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It is this, uncle&mdash;it is the health of my future wife,
-Dorothy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then came a silence of astonishment. Mr. Cardus broke it:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Years ago, Ernest, my dear nephew, I told you that I wished this to come
-to pass; but other things happened to thwart my plans, and I never expected to
-see it. Now in God&rsquo;s good time it has come, and I drink the health with
-all my heart. My children, I know that I am a strange man, and my life has been
-devoted to a single end, which is now drawing near its final development; but I
-have found time in it to learn to love you both. Dorothy, my daughter, I drink
-your health. May the happiness that was denied to your mother fall upon your
-head, her share and your share too! Ernest, you have passed through many
-troubles, and have been preserved almost miraculously to see this day. In
-Dorothy you will find a reward for everything, for she is a good woman. Perhaps
-I shall never live to see your happiness and the children of your
-happiness&mdash;I do not think I shall; but may the solemn blessing I give you
-now rest upon your dear heads! God bless you both, my children. All peace go
-with you, Dorothy and Ernest!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Amen!&rdquo; said Jeremy, in a loud voice, and with a vague idea that he
-was in church. Then he got up and shook Ernest&rsquo;s hand so hard in his
-fearful grip that the latter was constrained to holloa out, and lifted Dolly
-out of her chair like a plaything, and kissed her boisterously, knocking the
-orchid-bloom she wore out of her hair in the process. Then they all sat down
-again and beamed at one another and drank port-wine&mdash;at least the men
-did&mdash;and were inanely happy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Indeed, the only person to whom the news was not satisfactory was Mazooku.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ou!&rdquo; he said, with a grunt, when Jeremy communicated it to him.
-&ldquo;So the Rosebud is going to become the Rose, and I shan&rsquo;t even be
-able to lead my father to bed now. Ou!&rdquo; And from that day forward
-Mazooku&rsquo;s abstracted appearance showed that he was meditating deeply on
-something.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Next morning his uncle sent for Ernest into the office. Dorothy led him in.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O, here you are!&rdquo; said his uncle.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, here we are, Reginald,&rdquo; answered Dorothy; &ldquo;what is it?
-Shall I go away?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, don&rsquo;t go away. What I have to say concerns you both. Come and
-look at the orchids, Ernest; they are beautiful. Ah!&rdquo; he went on,
-stammering, &ldquo;I forgot you can&rsquo;t see them. Forgive me.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Never mind, uncle, I can smell them;&rdquo; and they went into the
-blooming-house appropriated to the temperate kinds.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At the end of this house was a little table and some iron chairs, where Mr.
-Cardus would sometimes come and smoke a cigarette. Here they sat down.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now, young people,&rdquo; said Mr. Cardus, wiping his bald head,
-&ldquo;you are going to get married. May I ask what you are going to get
-married on?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;By Jove,&rdquo; said Ernest, &ldquo;I never thought of that! I
-haven&rsquo;t got much, except a title, a mansion with &lsquo;numerous and
-valuable&rsquo; heirlooms, and one hundred and eighty acres of park,&rdquo; he
-added, laughing.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, I don&rsquo;t suppose you have; but, luckily for you both, I am not
-so badly off, and I mean to do something for you. What do you think would be
-the proper thing? Come, Dorothy, my little housewife, what do you reckon you
-can live on&mdash;living here, I mean, for I suppose that you do not mean to
-run away and leave me alone in my old age, do you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy wrinkled up her forehead as she used to as a child, and began to
-calculate upon her fingers. Presently she answered:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Three hundred a year comfortably, quietly on two.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What!&rdquo; said Mr. Cardus, &ldquo;when the babies begin to
-come?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy blushed, old gentlemen are so unpleasantly out-spoken, and Ernest
-jumped, for the prospect of unlimited babies is alarming till one gets used to
-it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Better make it five hundred,&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh,&rdquo; said Mr. Cardus, &ldquo;that&rsquo;s what you think, is it?
-Well, I tell you what I think. I am going to allow you young people two
-thousand a year and pay the housekeeping bills.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;My dear uncle, that is far more than we want.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense, Ernest! it is there and to spare; and why should you not have
-it, instead of its piling up in the bank or in investments? There are enough of
-them now, I can tell you. Everything that I have touched has turned to gold; I
-believe it has often been the case with unfortunate men. Money! I have more
-than I know what to do with, and there are idiots who think that to have lots
-of money is to be happy.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He paused awhile and then went on:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I would give you more, but you are both comparatively young, and I do
-not wish to encourage habits of extravagance in you. The world is full of
-vicissitudes, and it is impossible for anybody to know how he may be
-pecuniarily situated in ten years&rsquo; time. But I wish you, Ernest, to keep
-up your rank&mdash;moderately, if you like, but still to keep it up. Life is
-all before you now, and whatever you choose to go in for, you shall not want
-the money to back you. Look here, my children, I may as well tell you that when
-I die you will inherit nearly all I have got; I have left it to be divided
-equally between you, with reversion to the survivor. I drew up that will some
-years back, and I do not think that it is worth while altering it now.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Forgive me,&rdquo; said Ernest, &ldquo;but how about Jeremy?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus&rsquo;s face changed a little. He had never got over his dislike of
-Jeremy, though his sense of justice caused him to stifle it.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I have not forgotten Jeremy,&rdquo; he said, in a tone that indicated
-that he did not wish to pursue the conversation.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest and Dorothy thanked the old man for his goodness, but he would not
-listen, so they went off and left him to return to his letter-writing. In the
-passage Dorothy peeped through the glass half of the door which opened into her
-grandfather&rsquo;s room.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-There sat the old man writing, writing, his long iron-gray hair hanging all
-about his face. Presently he seemed to think of something, and a smile, which
-the contorted mouth made ghastly, spread itself over the pallid countenance.
-Rising, he went to the corner and extracted a long tally-stick on which notches
-were cut. Sitting down again, he counted the remaining notches over and over,
-and then took a penknife and cut one out. This done, he put the stick back,
-and, looking at the wall, began to mutter&mdash;for he was not quite
-dumb&mdash;and to clasp and unclasp his powerful hand. Dorothy entered the room
-quickly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Grandfather, what are you doing?&rdquo; she said sharply.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The old man started, and his jaw dropped. Then the eyes grew dull, and his
-usual apathetic look stole over his face. Taking up his slate, he wrote,
-&ldquo;Cutting out my notches.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy asked him some farther questions, but could get nothing more out of
-him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t at all like the way grandfather has been going on
-lately,&rdquo; she said to Ernest. &ldquo;He is always muttering and clinching
-his hand, as though he had some one by the throat. You know he thinks that he
-has been serving the fiend all these years, and that his time will be up
-shortly, whereas you know, though Reginald had no cause to love him, he has
-been very kind to him. If it had not been for Reginald, my grandfather would
-have been sent to the madhouse; but because he was connected with his loss of
-fortune, he thinks he is the devil. He forgets how he served Reginald; you see
-even in madness the mind only remembers the injuries inflicted on itself, and
-forgets those it inflicted on others. I don&rsquo;t at all like his way.&rdquo;
-&ldquo;I should think that he had better be shut up.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Reginald would never do it. Come, dear, let us go out.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was a month or so after Mr. Cardus&rsquo;s announcement of his pecuniary
-intentions that a little wedding-party stood before the altar in Kesterwick
-Church. It was a very small party, consisting, indeed, only of Ernest, Dorothy,
-Mr. Cardus, Jeremy, and a few idlers, who, seeing the church door open, had
-strolled in to see what was going on. Indeed, the marriage had been kept a
-profound secret; for since he had been blind, Ernest had developed a great
-dislike to being stared at. Nor, indeed, had he any liking for the system under
-which a woman proclaims with loud and unseemly rejoicings that she has found a
-man to marry her, and the clan of her relations celebrate her departure with a
-few outward and visible tears and much inward and spiritual joy.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But among that small crowd, unobserved by any of them, quite close up in the
-shadow of one of the massive pillars, sat a veiled woman. She sat quite quiet
-and still; she might have been carved in stone; but as the service went on she
-raised her thick veil, and fixed her keen brown eyes upon the two who stood
-before the altar. And as she did so, the lips of this shadowy lady trembled a
-little, and a mist of trouble rose from the unhealthy marshes of her mind and
-clouded her fine cut features. Long and steadily she gazed, then dropped the
-veil again, and said beneath her breath:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Was it worth while for this? Well, I have seen him.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Then this shadowy noble-looking lady rose, and glided from the church, bearing
-away with her the daunting burden of her sin.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And Ernest? He stood there and said the responses in his clear manly voice; but
-even as he did so there rose before him the semblance of the little room in
-faraway Pretoria, and of the vision which he had had of this very church, and
-of a man standing where he himself stood now, and a lovely woman standing where
-stood Dorothy his wife. Well, it was gone, as all visions go&mdash;as we, who
-are but visions of a longer life, go too. It was gone&mdash;gone into that
-limbo of the past which is ever opening its insatiable maw and swallowing us
-and our joys and our sorrows&mdash;making a meal of the atoms of to-day that it
-may support itself till the atoms of to-morrow are ready for its appetite.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was gone, and he was married, and Dorothy his wife stood there wreathed in
-smiles and blushes which he could not see, and Mr. Halford&rsquo;s voice, now
-grown weak and quavering, was formulating heartfelt congratulations, which were
-being repeated in the gigantic echo of Jeremy&rsquo;s deep tones, and in his
-uncle&rsquo;s quick jerky utterances. So he took Dorothy his wife into his arms
-and kissed her, and she led him down the church to the old vestry, into which
-so many thousand newly married couples had passed during the course of the last
-six centuries, and he signed his name where they placed his pen upon the
-parchment, wondering the while if he was signing it straight, and then went
-out, and was helped into the carriage, and driven home.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest and his wife went upon no honeymoon; they stopped quietly there at the
-old house, and began to accustom themselves to their new relationship. Indeed,
-to the outsider at any rate, there seemed to be little difference between it
-and the former one; for they could not be much more together now than they had
-been before. Yet in Dorothy&rsquo;s face there was a difference. A great peace,
-an utter satisfaction which had been wanting before, came down and brooded upon
-it, and made it beautiful. She both looked and was a happy woman.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But to the Zulu Mazooku this state of affairs did not appear to be
-satisfactory.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-One day&mdash;it was three days after the marriage&mdash;Ernest and Dorothy
-were walking together outside the house, when Jeremy, coming in from a visit to
-a distant farm, advanced, and, joining them, began to converse on agricultural
-matters; for he was already becoming intensely and annoyingly technical.
-Presently, as they talked, they became aware of the sound of naked feet running
-swiftly over the grass.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That sounds like a Zulu dancing,&rdquo; said Ernest, quickly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was a Zulu; it was Mazooku, but Mazooku transformed. It had been his fancy
-to bring a suit of war finery, such as he had worn when he was one of
-Cetywayo&rsquo;s soldiers, with him from Natal; and now he had donned it all,
-and stood before them, a striking yet alarming figure. From his head a single
-beautiful gray feather, taken from the Bell crane, rose a good two feet into
-the air; around his waist hung a kilt of white ox-tails, and beneath his right
-knee and shoulder were small circles of white goat&rsquo;s hair. For the rest,
-he was naked. In his left hand he held a milk-white fighting shield made of
-ox-hide, and in his right his great &ldquo;bangwan,&rdquo; or stabbing assegai.
-Still as a statue he stood before them, his plume bending in the breeze; and
-Dorothy, looking with wondering eyes, marvelled at the broad chest scarred all
-over with assegai wounds, and the huge sinewy limbs. Suddenly he raised the
-spear, and saluted in sonorous tones:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Koos! Baba!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Speak,&rdquo; said Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I speak, Mazimba, my father. I come to meet my father as a man meets a
-man. I come with spear and shield, but not in war. With my father I came from
-the land of the sun into this cold land, where the sun is as pale as the white
-faces it shines on. Is it not so, my father?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hear you.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;With my father I came. Did not my father and I stand together for many a
-day? Did I not slay the two Basutus down in the land of Secocoeni, chief of the
-Bapedi, at my father&rsquo;s bidding? Did I not once save my father from the
-jaws of the wild beast that walks by night&mdash;from the fangs of the lion?
-Did I not stand by the side of my father at the place of the Little Hand, when
-all the plain of Isandhlwana was red with blood? Do I dream in the night, or
-was it so, my father?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hear you. It was so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then when the heavens above smelt out my father, and smote him with
-their fire, did I not say, &lsquo;Ah, my father, now art thou blind, and canst
-fight no more, and no more play the part of a man. Better that thou hadst died
-a man&rsquo;s death, O my father! But as thou art blind, lo! whither thou
-goest, thither will I go also and be my father&rsquo;s dog.&rsquo; Did I not
-say this, O Mazimba, my father?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Thou didst say it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And so we sailed across the black water, thou Mazimba and I and the
-great Lion, like unto whom no man was ever born of woman, and came hither, and
-have lived for many moons the lives of women, have eaten and drunken, and have
-not fought or hunted, or known the pleasure of men. Is it not so,
-Mazimba, my father?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Thou speakest truly, Mazooku; it is even so.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, we sailed across the black water in the smoking ship, sailed to the
-land of wonders, which is full of houses and trees, so that a man cannot
-breathe in it, or throw out his arms lest they should strike a wall; and,
-behold! there came an ancient one with a shining head wonderful to look on, and
-a girl Rosebud, small but very sweet, and greeted my father and the Lion, and
-led them away in the carriages which put the horses inside them, and set them
-in this place, where they may look for ever at the sadness of the sea.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And then, behold, the Rosebud said, &lsquo;What doth this black dog
-here? Shall a dog lead Mazimba by the hand? Begone, thou black dog, and walk in
-front or ride behind; it is I who will hold Mazimba&rsquo;s hand.&rsquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then my father, sinking deep in ease, and becoming a fat man, rich in
-oxen and waggons and corn, said to himself, &lsquo;I will take this Rosebud to
-wife.&rsquo; And so the Rosebud opened her petals, and closed them round my
-father, and became a Rose; and now she sheds her fragrance round him day by day
-and night by night, and the black dog stands and howls outside the door.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And so, my father, it came to pass that Mazooku, thy ox and thy dog,
-communed with his heart, and said: &lsquo;Here is no more any place for thee.
-Mazimba thy chief has no longer any need of thee, and behold in this land of
-women thou, too, shalt grow like a woman. So get up and go to thy father, and
-say to him, &ldquo;O my father, years ago I put my hand between thy hands, and
-became a loyal man to thee; now I would withdraw it, and return to the land
-whence we came; for here I am not wanted, and here I cannot
-breathe.&rdquo;&rsquo; I have spoken, O my father and my chief.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mazooku, umdanda ga Ingoluvu, umfana ga Amazulu&rdquo; (son of Ingoluvu,
-child of the Zulu race), answered Ernest, adopting the Zulu metaphor, his voice
-sounding wonderfully soft as the liquid tongue he spoke so well came rolling
-out, &ldquo;thou hast been a good man to me, and I have loved thee. But thou
-shalt go. Thou art right: now is my life the life of a woman; never again shall
-I hear the sound of the rifle or the ringing of steel in war. And so thou
-goest, Mazooku. It is well. But at times thou wilt think of thy blind master
-Mazimba, and of Alston, the wise captain who sleeps, and of the Lion who threw
-the ox over his shoulder. Go, and be happy. Many be thy wives, many thy
-children, and countless thy cattle! The Lion shall take thee by the hand and
-lead thee to the sea, and shall give thee of my bounty wherewith to buy a
-little food when thou comest to thine own land, and a few oxen, and a piece of
-ground, or a waggon or two, so that thou shalt not be hungry, nor want for
-cattle to give for wives. Mazooku, fare thee well!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<div class="fig" style="width:100%;">
-<a name="illus15"></a>
-<br />
-<img src="images/fig15.jpg" width="415" height="600" alt="[Illustration: ]" />
-<p class="caption">Mazooku&rsquo;s Farewell.
-</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;One word, Mazimba, my father, and I will trouble thine ears no more,
-since for thee my voice shall be silent for ever. When the time has come for
-thee to die, and thou dost pass, as the white men say, up &lsquo;into the
-heavens above,&rsquo; and thy sight dawns again, and thou art once more a man
-eager for battle, then turn thee and cry with a loud voice: &lsquo;Mazooku, son
-of Ingoluvu, of the tribe of the Maquilisini, where art thou, O my dog? Come
-thou and serve me!&rsquo; And surely, if I still live, then shall I hear thy
-voice, and groan and die, that I may pass to thee; and if I be already dead,
-then shall I be there at thy side even as thou callest. This thou wilt do for
-me, O Mazimba, my father and my chief, because, lo! I have loved thee as the
-child loves her who suckled it, and I would look upon thy face again, O my
-father from the olden time, my chief from generation to generation!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;If it be in my power, this I will do, Mazooku.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The great Zulu drew himself up, raised his spear, and for the first and last
-time in his life gave Ernest the royal salute&mdash;to which, by the way, he
-had no right at all&mdash;&ldquo;<i>Bayte, Bayte!</i>&rdquo; Then he turned
-and ran swiftly thence, nor would he see Ernest again before he went.
-&ldquo;The pain of death was over,&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-As the sound of his footsteps grew faint, Ernest sighed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There goes our last link with South Africa, Jeremy, my boy. It is a good
-thing, for he was growing too fond of the bottle; they all do here. But it
-makes me very sad, and sometimes I think that, as Mazooku says, it is a pity we
-did not go under with Alston and the others. It would all have been over
-now.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Thank you,&rdquo; said Jeremy, after reflecting; &ldquo;on the whole, I
-am pretty comfortable as I am.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap44"></a>CHAPTER VIII.<br/>
-MR. CARDUS ACCOMPLISHES HIS REVENGE</h2>
-
-<p>
-Mr. de Talor owed his great wealth not to his own talents, but to a lucky
-secret in the manufacture of the grease used on railways discovered by his
-father. Talor <i>pre</i> had been a railway-guard till his discovery brought
-him wealth. He was a shrewd man, however, and on his sudden accession of
-fortune did his best to make a gentleman of his only son, at that date a lad of
-fifteen. But it was too late; the associations and habits of childhood are not
-easily overcome, and no earthly power or education could accomplish the desired
-object. When his son was twenty years of age, old Jack Talor died, and his son
-succeeded to his large fortune and a railway-grease business which supplied the
-principal markets of the world.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This son had inherited a good deal of his father&rsquo;s shrewdness, and set
-himself to make the best of his advantages. First he placed a &ldquo;de&rdquo;
-before his name, and assumed a canting crest. Next he bought the Ceswick Ness
-estates, and bloomed into a country gentleman. It was shortly after this latter
-event that he made a mistake, and fell in love with the beauty of the
-neighbourhood, Mary Atterleigh. But Mary Atterleigh would have none of him,
-being at the time secretly engaged to Mr. Cardus. In vain did he resort to
-every possible means to shake her resolution, even going so far as to try to
-bribe her father to put pressure upon her; but at this time old Atterleigh,
-&ldquo;Hard-riding Atterleigh,&rdquo; as he was called, was well off, and
-resisted his advances, whereupon De Talor, in a fit of pique, married another
-woman, who was only too glad to put up with his vulgarity in consideration of
-his wealth and position as a county magnate.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Shortly afterwards three events occurred almost simultaneously.
-&ldquo;Hard-riding Atterleigh&rdquo; got into money difficulties through
-over-gratification of his passion for hounds and horses; Mr. Cardus was taken
-abroad for the best part of a year in connection with a business matter and a
-man named Jones, a friend of Mr. de Talor&rsquo;s staying in his house at the
-time, fell in love with Mary Atterleigh. Herein De Talor saw an opportunity of
-revenge upon his rival, Mr. Cardus. He urged upon Jones that his real road to
-the possession of the lady lay through the pocket of her father, and even went
-so far as to advance him the necessary funds to bribe Atterleigh; for though
-Jones was well off, he could not at such short notice lay hands upon a
-sufficient sum in cash to serve his ends.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The plot succeeded. Atterleigh&rsquo;s scruples were overcome as easily as the
-scruples of men in his position without principle to back them generally are,
-and pressure of a most outrageous sort was brought to bear upon the
-gentle-minded Mary, with the result that when Mr. Cardus returned from abroad
-he found his affianced bride the wife of another man, who became in due course
-the father of Jeremy and Dolly.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This cruel and most unexpected bereavement drove Mr. Cardus partially mad, and
-when he came to himself there arose in his mind a monomania for revenge on all
-concerned in bringing it about. It became the passion and object of his life.
-Directing all his remarkable intelligence and energy to the matter, he early
-discovered the heinous part that De Talor had played in the plot, and swore to
-devote his life to the unholy purpose of avenging it. For years he pursued his
-enemy, trying plan after plan to achieve his ruin, and as one failed fell back
-upon another. But to ruin a man of De Talor&rsquo;s wealth was no easy matter,
-especially when, as in the present instance, the avenger was obliged to work
-like a mole in the dark, never allowing his enemy to suspect that he was other
-than a friend. How he ultimately achieved his purpose the reader shall now
-learn.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest and Dorothy had been married about three weeks, and the latter was just
-beginning to get accustomed to hearing herself called Lady Kershaw, when one
-morning a dogcart drove up to the door, and out of it emerged Mr. de Talor.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Dear me, how Mr. de Talor has changed of late!&rdquo; said Dorothy, who
-was looking out of the window.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How? Has he grown less like a butcher?&rdquo; asked Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No,&rdquo; she answered; &ldquo;but he looks like a used-up butcher
-about to go through the Bankruptcy Court.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Butchers never go bankrupt,&rdquo; said Ernest; and at that moment Mr de
-Talor came in.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy was right; the man was much changed. The fat cheeks were flabby and
-fallen, the insolent air was gone, and he was so shrunken that he looked not
-more than half his former size.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How do you do, Lady Kershaw? I saw Cardus &rsquo;ad got some one with
-him, so I drove round to pay my respects and congratulate the bride. Why, bless
-me. Sir Ernest, you &rsquo;ave grown since I saw you last! Ah, we used to be
-great friends then. You remember how you used to come and shoot up at the
-Ness&rdquo; (he had once or twice given the two lads a day&rsquo;s
-rabbit-shooting). &ldquo;But, bless me, I hear that you have become quite a
-fire-eater since then, and been knocking over the niggers right and
-left&mdash;eh?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He paused for breath, and Ernest said a few words, not many, for he disliked
-the man&rsquo;s flattery as much as in past years he used to dislike his
-insolence.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah,&rdquo; went on De Talor, looking up and pointing to the case
-containing the witch&rsquo;s head, &ldquo;I see you&rsquo;ve still got that
-beastly thing your brother once showed me; I thought it was a clock, and he
-pretty well frightened me out of my wits. Now I think of it, I&rsquo;ve never
-&rsquo;ad any luck since I saw that thing.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At this moment the housekeeper Grice came to say that Mr. Cardus was ready to
-see Mr. de Talor if he would step into the office. Dorothy thought that their
-visitor turned paler at this news, and it evidently occupied his mind
-sufficiently to cause him to hurry from the room without bidding them good-bye.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When Mr. de Talor entered the office he found the lawyer pacing up and down.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How do you do, Cardus?&rdquo; he said jauntily.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;How do you do, Mr. de Talor?&rdquo; was the cold reply.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-De Talor walked to the glass door and looked at the glowing mass of blooming
-orchids.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Pretty flowers, Cardus, those, very. Orchids, ain&rsquo;t they? Must
-have cost you a pot of money.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;They have not cost me much, Mr. de Talor; I have reared most of
-them.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Then you are lucky; the bill my man gives me for his orchids is
-something awful.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You did not come to speak to me about orchids, Mr. de Talor.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;No, Cardus, I didn&rsquo;t; business first, pleasure
-afterwards&mdash;eh?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Mr. Cardus, in his soft, jerky way. &ldquo;Business
-first, pleasure afterwards.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. de Talor fidgeted his legs about.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, Cardus, about that mortgage. You are going to give me a little
-more time, I hope?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;On the contrary, Mr. de Talor, the interest being now eight months
-overdue, I have given my London agents orders to foreclose, for I don&rsquo;t
-conduct such business myself.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-De Talor turned pale. &ldquo;Foreclose! Good God, Cardus! it is not
-possible&mdash;on such an old friend too!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Excuse me, it is not only possible, but a fact. Business is business,
-even where <i>old friends</i> are concerned.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But if you foreclose, what is to become of me, Cardus?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That, I imagine, is a matter for your exclusive consideration.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-His visitor gasped, and looked like an unfortunate fish suddenly pulled out of
-the water.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Let us recapitulate the facts. I have at different periods within the
-last several years lent you sums of money secured on your landed estates at
-Ceswick&rsquo;s Ness and the neighbourhood, amounting in
-all&rdquo;&mdash;referring to a paper&mdash;&ldquo;to one hundred and
-seventy-six thousand five hundred and thirty-eight pounds ten shillings and
-fourpence; or, reckoning in the overdue interest, to one hundred and
-seventy-nine thousand and fifty-two pounds eight shillings. That is so, I
-think.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, I suppose so, Cardus.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;There is no supposition about it. The documents prove it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, Cardus?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, Mr. de Talor; and now, as you cannot pay, I have instructed my
-London agents to commence an action in Chancery for the sale of the lands, and
-to buy in the property. It is a most desirable property.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O Cardus, don&rsquo;t be rough on me! I am an old man now, and you led
-me into this speculation.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mr. de Talor, I also am an old man; if not very old in years, at least
-as old as Methuselah in heart.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t understand it all, Cardus.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It will give me the greatest pleasure to explain. But to do so I must go
-back a little. Some ten or twelve years ago, you may remember,&rdquo; he began,
-sitting down with his back to the light, which struck full on the wretched De
-Talor&rsquo;s face, &ldquo;that a firm named Rastrick and Codley took out a
-patent for a new railway-grease, and set up an establishment in Manchester not
-far from the famous De Talor house, which was established by your
-father.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, curse them!&rdquo; groaned De Talor.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus smiled.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;By all means, curse them. But what did this enterprising firm do, Mr. de
-Talor? They set to work, and sold a grease superior to the article manufactured
-by your house, at about eighteen per cent. cheaper. But the De Talor house had
-the ear of the markets, and the contracts with all the leading lines and
-Continental firms, and for awhile it seemed as though the new house must go to
-the wall; and if they had not had considerable capital at command, they must
-have gone to the wall.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, and where did they get it from? That&rsquo;s the mystery,&rdquo;
-said De Talor.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Precisely; that was the mystery. I shall clear it up a little presently.
-To return. After awhile the buyers began to find that Rastrick and
-Codley&rsquo;s grease was a better grease and a cheaper grease, and as the
-contracts lapsed, the companies renewed them, not with the De Talor house, but
-with the house of Rastrick and Codley. Doubtless you remember.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. de Talor groaned in acquiescence, and the lawyer continued: &ldquo;In time
-this state of affairs produced its natural results&mdash;De Talor&rsquo;s house
-was ruined, and the bulk of the trade fell into the hands of the new
-firm.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, I should just like to know who they really were&mdash;the low
-sneaks!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Would you? I will tell you. The firm of Rastrick and Codley
-were&mdash;Reginald Cardus, solicitor, of Dum&rsquo;s Ness.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. de Talor struggled out of his chair, looked wildly at the lawyer, and sank
-down again.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You look ill; may I offer you a glass of wine?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The wretched man shook his head.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Very good. Doubtless you are curious to know how I, a lawyer, and not
-otherwise connected with Manchester, obtained the monopoly of the grease trade,
-which is, by the way, at this moment paying very well. I will satisfy your
-curiosity. I have always had a mania for taking up inventions, quite quietly,
-and in the names of others. Sometimes I have made money over them, sometimes I
-have lost; on the whole, I have made largely. But whether I have made or lost,
-the inventors have, as a rule, never known who was backing them. One day, one
-lucky day, this railway-grease patent was brought to my notice. I took it up
-and invested fifty thousand in it straight off the reel. Then I invested
-another fifty thousand. Still your firm cut my throat. I made an effort, and
-invested a third fifty thousand. Had I failed, I should then have been a ruined
-man; I had strained my credit to the utmost. But fortune favours the brave, Mr.
-de Talor, and I succeeded. It was your firm that failed. I have paid all my
-debts, and I reckon that the railway-grease concern is worth, after paying
-liabilities, some two hundred thousand pounds. If you should care to go in for
-it, Messrs. Rastrick and Codley will, I have no doubt, be most happy to treat
-with you. It has served its purpose, and is now in the market.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-De Talor looked at him with amazement. He was too upset to speak.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;So much, Mr. de Talor, for my share in the grease episode. The failure
-of your firm, or rather its stoppage from loss of trade, left you still a rich
-man, but only half as rich as you had been. And this, you may remember, made
-you furious. You could not bear the idea of losing money; you would rather have
-lost blood from your veins than sovereigns from your purse. When you thought of
-the grease which had melted in the fire of competition, you could have wept
-tears of rage. In this plight you came to me to ask advice.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes; and you told me to speculate.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not quite accurate, Mr. de Talor. I said&mdash;I remember the words
-well&mdash;&lsquo;You are an able man, and understand the money market; why
-don&rsquo;t you take advantage of these fluctuating times, and recoup yourself
-for all you have lost?&rsquo; The prospect of gain tempted you, Mr. de Talor,
-and you jumped at the idea. You asked me to introduce you to a reliable firm,
-and I introduced you to Messrs. Campsey and Ash, one of the best in the
-City.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Confound them for a set of rogues!&rdquo; answered De Talor.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Rogues! I am sorry you think so, for I have an interest in their
-business.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Good heavens! what next?&rdquo; groaned De Talor.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, notwithstanding the best efforts of Messrs. Campsey and Ash on
-your behalf, in pursuance of such written instructions as you from time to time
-communicated to them, and to which you can no doubt refer if you please, things
-went wrong with you, Mr. de Talor, and year by year, when your balance-sheet
-was sent in, you found that you had lost more than you gained. At last, one
-unlucky day, about three years ago, you made a plunge against the advice, you
-may remember, of Messrs. Campsey and Ash, and lost. It was after that, that I
-began to lend you money. The first loan was for fifty thousand; then came more
-losses, and more loans, till at length we had reached the present state of
-affairs.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;O Cardus, you don&rsquo;t mean to sell me up, do you? What shall I do
-without money? And think of my daughters: &rsquo;ow will they manage without
-their comforts? Give me time. What makes you so rough on me?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus had been walking up and down the room rapidly. At De Talor&rsquo;s
-words he stopped, and going to a despatch-box, unlocked it, and drew from a
-bundle of documents a yellow piece of stamped paper. It was a cancelled bill
-for ten thousand pounds in the favour of Jonas de Talor, Esquire. This bill he
-came and held before his visitor&rsquo;s eyes.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;That, I believe, is your signature,&rdquo; he said quietly, pointing to
-the receipt written across the bill.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-De Talor turned almost livid with fear, and his lips and hands began to
-tremble.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Where did you get that?&rdquo; he asked.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus regarded him, or rather all round him, with the melancholy black
-eyes that never looked straight at anything, and yet saw everything, and then
-answered:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Among your friend Jones&rsquo;s papers. You scoundrel!&rdquo; he went
-on, with a sudden change of manner, &ldquo;now perhaps you begin to understand
-why I have hunted you down step by step: why for thirty years I have waited,
-and watched, and failed, and at last succeeded. It is for the sake of Mary
-Atterleigh. It was you who, infuriated because she would have none of such a
-coarse brute, set the man Jones on to her. It was you who lent him the money
-with which to buy her from old Atterleigh. There lies the proof before you. By
-the way, Jones need never have repaid you that ten thousand pounds, for it was
-marriage-brokage, and therefore not recoverable at law. It was you, I say, who
-were the first cause of my life being laid waste, and who nearly drove me to
-the madhouse, ay, who did drive Mary, my betrothed wife, into the arms of that
-fellow, whence, God be praised! she soon passed to her rest.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Mr. Cardus paused, breathing quick with suppressed rage and excitement; the
-large white eyebrows contracted till they nearly met, and, abandoning his usual
-habit, he looked straight into the eyes of the abject creature in the chair
-before him.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;It&rsquo;s a long while ago, Cardus; can&rsquo;t you forgive, and let
-bygones be bygones?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Forgive! Yes, for my own sake, I could forgive; but for her sake, whom
-you first dishonoured and then killed, I will never forgive. Where are your
-companions in guilt? Jones is dead; I ruined him. Atterleigh is there; I did
-not ruin him, because, after all, he was the author of Mary&rsquo;s life; but
-his ill-gotten gains did him no good; a higher power than mine took vengeance
-on his crime, and I saved him from the madhouse. And Jones&rsquo;s children,
-they are here too, for once they lay beneath <i>her</i> breast. But do you
-think that I will spare you, you coarse arrogant knave&mdash;you, who spawned
-the plot? No, not if it were to cost me my own life, would I forego one jot or
-tittle of my revenge!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-At that moment Mr. Cardus happened to look up, and saw through the glass part
-of the door of his office, of which the curtain was partially drawn, the
-wild-looking head of Hard-riding Atterleigh. He appeared to be looking through
-the door, for his eyes, in which there was a very peculiar look, were fixed
-intently upon Mr. Cardus&rsquo;s face. When he saw that he was observed, he
-vanished.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now go,&rdquo; said the lawyer sternly to the prostrate De Talor;
-&ldquo;and never let me see your face again!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;But I haven&rsquo;t any money; where am I to go?&rdquo; groaned De
-Talor.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Wherever you like, Mr. de Talor&mdash;this is a free country; but, if I
-had control of your destination, it should be&mdash;to the devil!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The wretched man staggered to his feet.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;All right, Cardus; I&rsquo;ll go, I&rsquo;ll go. You&rsquo;ve got it all
-your own way now. You are damned hard, you are; but perhaps you&rsquo;ll get it
-taken out of you some day. I&rsquo;m glad you never got hold of Mary; it must
-have been pleasant to you to see her marry Jones.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In another second he was gone, and Mr. Cardus was left thinking, among other
-things, of that look in old Atterleigh&rsquo;s eyes, which he could not get out
-of his mind. Thus did he finally accomplish the revenge to which he had devoted
-his life.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap45"></a>CHAPTER IX.<br/>
-MAD ATTERLEIGH&rsquo;S LAST RIDE</h2>
-
-<p>
-A month had passed since Mr. de Talor had crept, utterly crushed, from the
-presence of the man whom Providence had appointed to mete out to him his due.
-During this time Mr. Cardus had been busy from morning till night. He was
-always a busy man, writing daily with his own hand an almost incredible number
-of letters; for he carried on all, or nearly all, his great affairs by
-correspondence, but of late his work seemed to have doubled.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-In the course of that month the society in the neighbourhood of Kesterwick
-experienced a pleasurable sensation of excitement, for suddenly the De Talor
-family vanished off the face of the Kesterwick world, and the Ceswick Ness
-estates, after being advertised, were put up for sale, and bought, so said
-report, by a London firm of lawyers on behalf of an unknown client. The De
-Talors were gone, where to nobody knew, nor did they much care to
-inquire&mdash;that is, with the exception of the servants whose wages were left
-unpaid, and the tradespeople to whom large sums were owing. They inquired
-vigorously enough, but without the smallest result; the De Talors had gone and
-left no trace, except the trace of bankruptcy, and Kesterwick knew them no
-more, but was glad over the sensation made by their disappearance.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-But on one Saturday Mr. Cardus&rsquo;s business seemed to come to a sudden
-stop. He wrote some letters and put them in the post-bag, and then he went to
-admire his orchids.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Life,&rdquo; he said aloud to himself, &ldquo;shall be all orchids now;
-my work is done. I will build a new house for Brazilian sons, and spend two
-hundred pounds on stocking it. Well, I can afford it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-This was about five o&rsquo;clock. Half an hour later, when he had well
-examined his flowers, he strolled out Titheburgh Abbey way, and here he met
-Ernest and his wife, who had been sitting in their favourite spot.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, my dears,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;and how are you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Pretty well, uncle, thank you; and how are you?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I? Oh, I am very jolly indeed for an old man; as jolly as an individual
-who has just bid good-bye to work for ever should be,&rdquo; he said.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Why, Reginald, what <i>do</i> you mean?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Mean, Dorothy, my dear? I mean that I have wound up my affairs and
-retired on a modest competence. Ah, you young people should be grateful to me,
-for let me tell you that everything is now in apple-pie order, and when I slip
-off you will have no trouble at all, except to pay the probate duty, and that
-will be considerable. I never quite knew till a week ago how rich I was; but,
-as I said the other day, everything I have touched has turned to gold. It will
-be a large fortune for you to manage, my dears; you will find it a great
-responsibility.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I hope you will live many years to manage it yourself,&rdquo; said
-Ernest.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, I don&rsquo;t know, I am pretty tough; but who can see the future?
-Dolly, my dear girl,&rdquo; he went on, in a dreamy way, &ldquo;you are growing
-like your mother. Do you know, I sometimes think that I am not far off her now;
-you see I speak plainly to you two. Years ago I used to think&mdash;that is,
-sometimes&mdash;that your mother was dust and nothing more; that she had left
-me for ever; but of late I have changed my ideas. I have seen,&rdquo; he went
-on, speaking in an absent way, as though he were meditating to himself,
-&ldquo;how wonderfully Providence works even in the affairs of this imperfect
-world, and I begin to believe that there must be a place where it allows itself
-a larger development. Yes, I think I shall find your mother somewhere, Dorothy,
-my dear. I seem to feel her very near me sometimes. Well, I have avenged
-her.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I think that you will find her, Reginald,&rdquo; she answered;
-&ldquo;but your vengeance is wicked and wrong. I have often made bold to tell
-you so, though sometimes you have been angry with me, and I tell you so again.
-It can only bring evil with it. What have we poor creatures to do with
-vengeance, who do not understand the reason of things, and can scarcely see an
-inch before our noses?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Perhaps you are right, my love&mdash;you generally are right in the
-main; but my desire for vengeance upon that man De Talor has been the breath of
-my nostrils, and behold! I have achieved it. Man, if he only lives long enough,
-and has strength of will enough can achieve anything. But man fritters away his
-powers over a variety of objects; he is led astray in pursuit of the butterfly
-Pleasure, or the bubble Ambition, or the Destroying Angel Woman; and his
-purposes fall to the ground between a dozen stools. Most men, too, are not
-capable of a purpose. Men are weak creatures; and yet what a mighty seed lies
-hid in every human breast! Think, my children, what man might, nay, may become,
-when his weakness and follies have fallen from him, when his rudimentary
-virtues have been developed, and his capacities for physical and mental
-beauties brought to an undreamed of perfection! Look at the wild flower and the
-flower of the hot-house&mdash;it is nothing compared to the possibilities
-inherent in man, even as we know him. It is a splendid dream! Will it ever be
-fulfilled, I wonder? Well, well&mdash;
-</p>
-
-<p class="poem">
-&lsquo;Whatever there is to know<br/>
-That we shall know one day.&rsquo;<br/>
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Come, let us turn; it will soon be time to dress for dinner. By the way,
-Dorothy, that reminds me. I don&rsquo;t quite like the way that your respected
-grandfather is going on. I told him that I had no more deeds for him to copy,
-that I had done with deeds, and he went and got that confounded stick of his,
-and showed me that according to his own little calculations his time was up;
-and then he got his slate and wrote about my being the devil on it, but that I
-had no more power over him, and that he was bound for heaven. The other day,
-too, I caught him staring at me through the glass of the door with a very queer
-look in his eyes.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah, Reginald, so you have noticed it! I quite agree with you; I
-don&rsquo;t at all like his goings-on. Do you know, I think that he had better
-be shut up.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t like to shut him up, Dorothy. However, here we are; we
-will talk about it to-morrow.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Having led Ernest to his room, Dorothy, before beginning to dress herself, went
-to the office to see if her grandfather was still there. And there, sure
-enough, she found him, pacing up and down, muttering, and waving his long
-stick, out of which all the notches had now been cut.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What are you doing, grandfather?&rdquo; she asked; &ldquo;why
-haven&rsquo;t you gone to dress?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-He snatched up his slate and wrote rapidly upon it:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Time&rsquo;s up! Time&rsquo;s up! Time&rsquo;s up! I&rsquo;ve done with
-the devil and all his works. I&rsquo;m off to heaven on the big black horse to
-find Mary. Who are you? You look like Mary.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Grandfather,&rdquo; said Dolly, quietly taking the slate out of his
-hand, &ldquo;what do you mean by writing such nonsense? Let me hear no more of
-it. You ought to be ashamed of yourself. Now, mind, I will have no more of it.
-Put away that stick, and go and wash your hands for dinner.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The old man did as he was bid somewhat sulkily, Dorothy thought; but when he
-arrived at the dinner-table there was nothing noticeable about his manner.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They dined at a quarter to seven, and dinner did not take them very long. When
-it was over, old Atterleigh drank some wine, and then, according to his habit,
-went and sat in the ancient ingle-nook which had presumably been built by the
-forgotten Dum for his comfort on winter evenings. And on winter evenings, when
-there was a jolly wood-fire burning on the hearth, it was a pleasant spot
-enough; but to sit there in the dark on a lovely summer night was an act,
-well&mdash;worthy of old Atterleigh.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-After dinner the conversation turned upon that fatal day when Alston&rsquo;s
-Horse was wiped out at Isandhlwana. It was a painful subject both to Ernest and
-Jeremy, but the former was gratifying his uncle&rsquo;s curiosity by explaining
-to him how that last dread struggle with the six Zulus came to determine itself
-in their favour.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;And how was it,&rdquo; asked Mr. Cardus, &ldquo;that you managed to get
-the better of the fellow you rolled down the hill with?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Because the assegai broke, and, fortunately enough, the blade was left
-in my hand. Where is it, Doll?&rdquo; (for Jeremy had brought it home with
-him.)
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy got up and reached the broken assegai, which had about eight inches of
-the shaft, from its place over the mantelpiece.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now then, Jeremy, if you would be so good as to sprawl upon your back on
-the floor, I will just show my uncle what happened.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy complied, not without grumbling about dirtying his dress-coat.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Now, Jeremy, my boy, where are you? O, there! Well, excuse my taking the
-liberty of kneeling on your chest, and holloa out if the assegai goes into you.
-If we are going to have a performance at all, it may as well be a realistic
-one. Now, uncle, you see when we finished rolling, which was just as this
-assegai snapped in two, as luck would have it I was uppermost, and managed to
-get my knee on my friend&rsquo;s left arm and to hold his right with my left.
-Then, before he could get loose, I drove this bit of spear through the side of
-his throat, just there, so that it cut the jugular vein, and he died shortly
-afterwards; and now you know all about it.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Here Ernest rose and laid the spear upon the table, and Jeremy, entering into
-the spirit of the thing, began to die as artistically as a regard for his
-dress-coat would allow. Just then Dorothy, looking up, saw her grandfather
-Atterleigh&rsquo;s distorted face peering round the wall of the ingle-nook,
-where he was sitting in the dark, and looking at the scene of mimic slaughter
-with that same curious gaze that he had worn on several occasions lately. He
-withdrew his head at once.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Get up, Jeremy!&rdquo; said his sister, sharply, &ldquo;and stop
-writhing about there like a great snake. You look as though you had been
-murdered; it is horrible!&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Jeremy arose laughing, and, having obtained Dorothy&rsquo;s permission, they
-all lit their pipes, and, sitting there in the fading light, fell to talking
-about that sad scene of slaughter, which indeed appeared that night to have a
-strange fascination for Mr. Cardus. He asked Ernest and Jeremy about it again
-and again&mdash;how this man was killed, and that?&mdash;did they die at once?
-and so on.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The subject was always distressing to Ernest, and one to which he rarely
-alluded, full as it was for him of the most painful recollections, especially
-those connected with his dear friend Alston and his son.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy knew this, and knew too that Ernest would be low spirited, for at least
-a day after the conversation, which she did her best to stop. At last she
-succeeded; but the melancholy associations connected with the talk had
-apparently already done their work, for everybody lapsed into the most complete
-silence, and sat grouped together at the top end of the old oak table as
-quietly as though they were cut in stone. Meanwhile, the twilight deepened, and
-little gusts of wind arose, and gently shook the old-fashioned window-lattices,
-making a sound as though feeble hands were trying to throw them open. The dull
-evening light crept from place to place, and threw great shadows about the
-room, glanced upon the armour on its panelled walls, and at last began to die
-away into darkness. The whole scene was eerie, and for some unknown reason it
-oppressed Dorothy. She wondered why everybody was so silent, and yet she
-herself did not feel equal to breaking the silence; there was a load upon her
-heart.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Just then a curious thing happened. As may be remembered, the case containing
-the wonderful mummied head, found by Eva Ceswick, had years before been placed
-by Jeremy upon a bracket at the end of the room. Round about this case hung
-various pieces of armour, and among others, above it, suspended by a piece of
-string from a projecting hook, was a heavy iron gauntlet. For many
-years&mdash;twenty or more&mdash;it had hung from the hook, but now at last the
-string was worn through, and even as Dorothy was wondering at the silence it
-gave. Down came the heavy iron hand with a crash, and, as it passed, it caught
-the latch of the long air-tight case, and jarred the door wide open.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Everybody in the room sprang to their feet, and, as they did so, a last ray
-from the setting sun struggled through one of the windows and rested upon the
-open case, staining it, and all about it, the hue of blood, and filling the
-fearful crystal eyes within with a lurid light. How they glowed and shone, to
-be sure, after their long years of sleep!&mdash;for the case had scarcely been
-opened for years&mdash;while their tremulous glance, now dull, now intense,
-according as the light played upon them, appeared to wander round and round the
-room, as though in search of somebody or something.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-It was an awful sight which that ray of sunlight showed, as it played upon the
-trembling crystal orbs, the scornful, deathly features, and the matchless hair
-that streamed on either side. Together with the sudden break in the silence,
-caused by the crashing fall of the gauntlet, as it had done many years before,
-it proved altogether too much for the beholder&rsquo;s nerves.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;What is that?&rdquo; asked Ernest, with a start, as the gauntlet fell.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Dorothy glanced up and gave a little cry of horror. &ldquo;Oh, that dreadful
-head! it is looking at us.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They all rose to their feet, and Dorothy, seizing Ernest by one hand, and
-covering her eyes with the other, retreated, slowly followed by the others,
-towards the swing-door. Soon they had reached the door, were through it, down
-the passage, and out into the peaceful stillness of the evening. Then Jeremy
-spoke, and his language was more forcible than polite.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Well, I am blowed!&rdquo; he said, wiping the cold perspiration from his
-forehead.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, Reginald, I do wish you would get that horrible thing out of the
-house; there has been nothing but misfortune ever since it has been here. I
-cannot bear it, I cannot bear it!&rdquo; said Dolly, hysterically.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Nonsense, you superstitious child!&rdquo; answered Mr. Cardus, who was
-now recovering from his start. &ldquo;The gauntlet knocked the door open, that
-was all. It is nothing but a mummied head; but, if you don&rsquo;t like it, I
-will send it to the British Museum to-morrow.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Oh, please do, Reginald,&rdquo; answered Dorothy, who appeared quite
-unhinged.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-So hurried had been their retreat from the room that everybody had forgotten
-&ldquo;Hard-riding Atterleigh&rdquo; sitting in the dark in the ingle-nook. But
-the bustle in the room had attracted him, and already, before they had left, he
-had projected his large head covered with the tangled gray locks, and begun to
-stare about. Presently his eyes fell upon the crystal orbs, and then, to him,
-the orbs appeared to cease their wanderings and rest upon his eyes. For awhile
-the two heads stared at each other thus&mdash;the golden head without a body in
-the box, and the gray head that, thrust out as it were from the ingle-wall,
-seemed to have no body either. They stared and stared, till at last the golden
-head got the mastery of the grey head, and the old man crept from his corner,
-crept down the room till he was almost beneath the baleful eyes, and <i>nodded,
-nodded, nodded</i> at them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And they, too, seemed to <i>nod, nod, nod</i> at him. Then he retreated
-backwards as slowly as he had come, nodding all the while, till he came to
-where the broken assegai lay upon the table, and, taking it, thrust it up his
-sleeve. As he did so, the ray of light faded and the fiery eyes went out. It
-was as though the thick white lids and long eyelashes had dropped over them.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-None of the other four returned to the sitting-room that night.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-When he had recovered from his fright, Jeremy went into his little room, the
-same in which he used to stuff birds as a boy, and busied himself with his farm
-accounts. Mr. Cardus, Dorothy, and Ernest walked about together in the balmy
-moonlight, for, very shortly after the twilight had departed, the great
-harvest-moon came up and flooded the world with light. Mr. Cardus was in a
-talkative, excited mood that night. He talked about his affairs, which he had
-now finally wound up, and about Mary Atterleigh, mentioning little tricks of
-manner and voice which were reproduced in Dorothy. He talked too about
-Ernest&rsquo;s and Dorothy&rsquo;s marriage, and said what a comfort it was to
-him. Finally, about ten o&rsquo;clock, he said that he was tired and was going
-to bed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;God bless you, my dears; sleep well! Good-night,&rdquo; he said.
-&ldquo;We will settle about that new orchid-house to-morrow. Good-night,
-good-night.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Shortly afterwards Dorothy and Ernest also went to bed, reaching their room by
-a back entrance, for they neither of them felt inclined to come under the fire
-of the crystal eyes again, and soon they were asleep in each other&rsquo;s
-arms.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The minutes stole on one by one through the dead silence of the night, bearing
-their records with them to the archives of the past. Eleven o&rsquo;clock came
-and fled away; midnight came too, and swept on bat-like wings across the world.
-Everywhere&mdash;on land, sky, and sea&mdash;there was silence, nothing but
-silence sleeping in the moonlight.
-</p>
-
-<p class="p2">
-</p>
-
-<p>
-<i>Hark!</i> Oh, heavens, what was that!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-One fearful, heartrending yell of agony, ringing all through the ancient house,
-rattling the casements, shaking the armour against the panelled walls, pulsing
-and throbbing in horrible notes out into the night, echoing and dying far away
-over the sea! And then silence again, silence sleeping in the moonlight.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They sprang from their beds, did every living soul beneath that roof, and
-rushed in their night-gear, men and women together, into the sitting-room. The
-crystal eyes seemed to be awake again, for the moon was up and played upon
-them, causing them now and then to flash out in gleams of opalescent light.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Somebody lit a candle, somebody missed Mr. Cardus; surely he could never have
-slept through that! Yes, he had slept through it. They rushed and tumbled, a
-confused mass of white, into the room where he lay. He was there sure enough,
-and he slept very sound, with a red gash in his throat, from which the blood
-fell in heavy drops, down, down to the ground.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They stood aghast, and as they stood, from the courtyard outside there came a
-sound of galloping hoofs. They knew the sound of the galloping; it was that of
-Ernest&rsquo;s great black stallion!
-</p>
-
-<p class="p2">
-</p>
-
-<p>
-A mile or more away out on the marshes, just before you come to the well-known
-quicksands, which have, tradition says, swallowed so many unfortunates, and
-which shudder palpably at times and are unpleasant to look on, stands a
-lock-house, inhabited by one solitary man, who has charge of the sluice. On
-this very night it is necessary for him to open his sluice-gates at a
-particular moment, and now he stands awaiting that propitious time. He is an
-ancient mariner; his hands are in his pockets, his pipe is in his mouth, his
-eyes are fixed upon the sea. We have met him before. Suddenly he hears the
-sound of a powerful horse galloping furiously. He turns, and his hair begins to
-rise upon his head, for this is what he sees in the bright moonlight:
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Fast, fast towards him thunders a great coal-black horse, snorting with mingled
-rage and terror, and on its bare back there sits a man with a grip of
-iron&mdash;an old man, for his gray locks stream out behind him&mdash;who waves
-above his head the fragment of a spear.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-On they come. Before them is the wide sluice; if they are mortal, they will
-turn or plunge into it. No; the great black horse gathers himself, and springs
-into the air.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-By Heaven, he has cleared it! No horse ever took that leap before, or will
-again. On at whirlwind speed towards the shuddering quicksand two hundred yards
-away!
-</p>
-
-<p>
-<i>Splash!</i> Horse and man are in it, making the moist mass shake and tremble
-for twenty yards round. The bright moonlight shows it all. The horse shrieks in
-fear and agony, as only a horse can; the man on its back waves the spear.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-The horse vanishes, the man vanishes; the spear glitters an instant longer in
-the moonlight, and then vanishes too. They have all vanished for ever.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They have all vanished, and again the perfect silence sleeps in the moonlight.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Bust me!&rdquo; says the ancient one, aloud, and shaking with a mortal
-dread; &ldquo;bust me, I have stood still and seed many a queer thing, but I
-never seed a thing like that!&rdquo; And he turned and fled fast as his old
-legs would carry him, forgetful of Dutch cheeses and of sluice-gates, forgetful
-of everything except that demon horse and man.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Thus ended &ldquo;Hard-riding Atterleigh&rsquo;s&rdquo; maddest gallop, and
-thus, too ended the story of Mr. Cardus and his revenge.
-</p>
-
-<div class="fig" style="width:100%;">
-<a name="illus16"></a>
-<br />
-<img src="images/fig16.jpg" width="398" height="600" alt="[Illustration: ]" />
-<p class="caption">Mad Atterleigh&rsquo;s last Ride.
-</p>
-</div>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<h2><a name="chap46"></a>CHAPTER X.<br/>
-DOROTHY&rsquo;S TRIUMPH</h2>
-
-<p>
-Some years passed before Eva Plowden returned to Kesterwick, and then she was
-carried thither. Alive she did not return, nor during all those years did she
-and Ernest ever meet.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-They buried her, in obedience to her last wishes, there in the churchyard where
-lay generation upon generation of her ancient race, and the daisies grew above
-her head. Twice had they bloomed above her before Sir Ernest Kershaw stood by
-the spot, hallowed by the presence of what once held the spirit of the woman he
-had loved.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest was now getting well into middle life, and Dorothy&rsquo;s bright hair
-was slightly lined with gray, as they stood that summer evening by Eva&rsquo;s
-grave. Many things had happened to the pair since Mr. Cardus&rsquo;s tragic
-death. They had had children&mdash;some they had lost, some
-remained&mdash;honest English lads and lasses, with their father&rsquo;s eyes.
-They had enjoyed great wealth, and spent it royally, giving with both hands to
-all who needed. They had drunk deep of the cup of this world&rsquo;s joys and
-sorrows. Ernest had gone into Parliament for a couple of years, and made
-something of a name there. Then, impatient for the active life of other days,
-he had accepted a high Colonial appointment, for which, notwithstanding his
-blindness, his wealth and parliamentary reputation eminently fitted him. Now he
-was just about to leave to fill the governorship of one of the Australian
-colonies.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Long years had passed, many things had happened; and yet as he stood by that
-heap of turf, which he could not see, it seemed but yesterday when&mdash;and he
-sighed.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Not quite cured yet, Ernest?&rdquo; said Dorothy, interrogatively.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, Dorothy,&rdquo; he answered, with a little sigh, &ldquo;I think I
-am cured. At any rate,&rdquo; he went on, as she took his hand to lead him away
-from the grave, &ldquo;I have learned to accept the decrees of Providence
-without murmuring. I have done with dreams, and outlived pessimism. Life would,
-it is true, have been a different thing for me if poor Eva had not deserted me,
-for she poisoned its waters at the fount, and so they have always tasted
-bitter. But happiness is not the end and object of man&rsquo;s existence; and
-if I could I do not think I would undo the past. Take me to the old flat
-tombstone, Dolly, near the door.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She led him to it, and he sat down.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ah,&rdquo; he went on, &ldquo;how beautiful she was! Was there ever
-woman like her, I wonder? And now her bones lie there; her beauty is all gone;
-and there lives of her only the unending issues of <i>what she did.</i> I have
-only to think, Dolly, and I can see her as I saw her a score of times passing
-in and out of this church-door. Yes, I can see her, and the people round her,
-and the clothes she wore, and the smile in her beautiful dark eyes&mdash;for
-her eyes seemed to smile, you remember, Dolly. How I worshipped her, too, with
-all my heart and soul and strength, as though she were an angel! And that was
-my mistake, Dolly. She was only a woman&mdash;a weak woman.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;You said just now that you were cured, Ernest; one would hardly think it
-to hear you talk,&rdquo; put in Dorothy, smiling.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, Doll, I am cured; you have cured me, my dear wife, for you have
-crept into my life, and taken possession of it, so that there is little room
-for anybody else; and now, Dorothy, I love you with all my heart.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-She pressed his hand and smiled again, for she knew that she had triumphed, and
-that he did love her, truly love her, and that his passion for Eva was a poor
-thing compared to what it had been years before&mdash;more indeed of a tender
-regret, not unmingled with a starry hope, than a passion at all. Dorothy was a
-clever little person, and understood something of Ernest and the human heart in
-general. She had thought long ago that she would win Ernest altogether to her
-in the end. By what tenderness, by what devotion and nobility of character she
-accomplished this, those who know her can well imagine, but in the end she did
-accomplish it, as she deserved to. The contrast between the conduct of the two
-women who had mainly influenced his life was too marked for Ernest, a man of a
-just and reasonable mind, to altogether ignore; and when once he came to
-comparisons the natural results followed. And yet, though he learned to love
-Dorothy so dearly, it cannot be said that he forgot Eva; because there are
-things that some men can never forget, since they are a part of their inner
-life, and of these first love is unfortunately one.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ernest,&rdquo; went on Dorothy, &ldquo;you remember what you told me
-when you asked me to marry you in Titheburgh Abbey, about your belief that your
-affection for Eva would outlast this world. Do you still believe that?&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, Doll, to a great extent.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-His wife sat and thought for a minute.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Ernest,&rdquo; she said presently.
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;Yes, dear.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I have managed to hold my own against Eva in this world, when she had
-all the chances and all the beauty on her side, and what I have to say about
-your theories now is, that when we get to the next, and are all beautiful, it
-will be very strange if I don&rsquo;t manage to hold my own there. She had her
-chance, and she threw it away; now I have got mine, and I don&rsquo;t mean to
-throw it away, either in this world or the next.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-Ernest laughed a little. &ldquo;I must say, my dear, it would be a very poor
-heaven if you were not there.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-&ldquo;I should think so, indeed. &lsquo;Those whom God hath joined together
-let not man put asunder&rsquo;&mdash;nor woman either. But what is the good of
-our stopping here to talk such stuff about things of which we really understand
-nothing? Come, Ernest, Jeremy and the boys will be waiting for us.&rdquo;
-</p>
-
-<p>
-And so hand in hand they went on homeward through the quiet twilight.
-</p>
-
-</div><!--end chapter-->
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE WITCH’S HEAD ***</div>
-<div style='text-align:left'>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin:0.83em 0; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE<br />
-<span style='font-size:smaller'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE<br />
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</span>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/65998-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/65998-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index e72edd5..0000000
--- a/old/65998-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/65998-h/images/fig01.jpg b/old/65998-h/images/fig01.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d8a88e1..0000000
--- a/old/65998-h/images/fig01.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/65998-h/images/fig02.jpg b/old/65998-h/images/fig02.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index a07d530..0000000
--- a/old/65998-h/images/fig02.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/65998-h/images/fig03.jpg b/old/65998-h/images/fig03.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 699ee6e..0000000
--- a/old/65998-h/images/fig03.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/65998-h/images/fig04.jpg b/old/65998-h/images/fig04.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 6c7cd49..0000000
--- a/old/65998-h/images/fig04.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/65998-h/images/fig05.jpg b/old/65998-h/images/fig05.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index e758f97..0000000
--- a/old/65998-h/images/fig05.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/65998-h/images/fig06.jpg b/old/65998-h/images/fig06.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 51519d1..0000000
--- a/old/65998-h/images/fig06.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/65998-h/images/fig07.jpg b/old/65998-h/images/fig07.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 66d77af..0000000
--- a/old/65998-h/images/fig07.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/65998-h/images/fig08.jpg b/old/65998-h/images/fig08.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 5de46bc..0000000
--- a/old/65998-h/images/fig08.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/65998-h/images/fig09.jpg b/old/65998-h/images/fig09.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index cea4b66..0000000
--- a/old/65998-h/images/fig09.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/65998-h/images/fig10.jpg b/old/65998-h/images/fig10.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 3f97e4b..0000000
--- a/old/65998-h/images/fig10.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/65998-h/images/fig11.jpg b/old/65998-h/images/fig11.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index c5717fc..0000000
--- a/old/65998-h/images/fig11.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/65998-h/images/fig12.jpg b/old/65998-h/images/fig12.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index f2b85a9..0000000
--- a/old/65998-h/images/fig12.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/65998-h/images/fig13.jpg b/old/65998-h/images/fig13.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 881c76e..0000000
--- a/old/65998-h/images/fig13.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/65998-h/images/fig14.jpg b/old/65998-h/images/fig14.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 04ad25b..0000000
--- a/old/65998-h/images/fig14.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/65998-h/images/fig15.jpg b/old/65998-h/images/fig15.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 50e3f85..0000000
--- a/old/65998-h/images/fig15.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/65998-h/images/fig16.jpg b/old/65998-h/images/fig16.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 68436ca..0000000
--- a/old/65998-h/images/fig16.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ